jean Lovis de la Vallette Duke of Espernon Pair and Collond General of Fraince; Gowernour and Lieutenant General for the King in Guienne, the Town and Citadel of Mets, and the Country of Messin, etc. THE HISTORY OF THE LIFE OF THE Duke of ESPERNON, THE GREAT FAVOURITE OF FRANCE. ENGLISHED BY CHARLES COTTON, Esq In Three Parts, containing Twelve Books. Wherein the History of FRANCE is continued from the Year 1598. where D'AVILA leaves off, down to our own Times, 1642. Orationi, & Carmini est parva gratia, nisi Eloquentia est Summa: Historia, quoquo modo scripta, delectat. Plin. LONDON, Printed by E. Cotes, and A. Clark, for Henry Brome, at the Gun in Ludgate-street, at the West End of St. Paul's, MDCLXX. To the most Reverend Father in God, GILBERT, Lord Archbishop of Canterbury, HIS GRACE, Primate of All England, and Metropolitan, one of His Majesty's Most Honourable PRIVY COUNCIL, etc. May it please your Grace, THAT the Virtues of Great Persons are sometimes dangerous to themselves, is too manifest in the Liberty I have taken to prefer the following History to your Grace's Patronage, your own Affability, and Bounty having procured you that Inconvenience, and Encouraged me to a Dedication; I should not otherwise, and at a greater distance of Favour, have presumed to impose upon your Protection: a Truth I have not only thought fit to put your Grace in mind of, the better to excuse my Presumption; but have moreover been prompted thereunto by an honest Vanity I have, the World should take notice, that how private soever my Life has been, I have not altogether conversed with Obscurity: but that I have had the Honour to be sometime known unto, and to have been Favoured by one of the greatest Prelates, and the best Men upon Earth. Thus (my Lord) by my own ill governed, though otherwise not very Criminal Ambition, I am put upon a necessity of seeming to accuse that Virtue, I have so just reason to magnify; and from whence I have derived so many advantages, to colour a boldness, that would otherwise admit of no Excuse. Neither will this I fear serve me against the Censures of the Time, by whom I expect notwithstanding to be accused of another sort of Vanity, that something of mine may be worthy your Grace's Acceptation; which if I should absolutely deny, the Dedication itself would then convince me of a premeditated injury to your Name. I cannot therefore avoid confessing I think this History so fine a thing in itself, that if I be not the worst Translator that ever Writ (and there is no Triumph due to the best) it may very well endure the light, and pass amongst good natured men, with other things, that every day sally from the Press; which is my true opinion of it, and nothing more. A more Illustrious Image of Virtue, and Honour than is here represented in the Person of the Duke of Espernon, in my little Reading I have no where met with, a more exemplary Piety, a braver Courage, a more shining and unblemished Loyalty, more inviolate Friendships, nor a nobler Constancy in all the shocks of Fortune; so that I have sometimes thought, had there not been a little mixture of Humane Frailty amongst so many excellent Qualities as he was Master of to a very great perfection, the Story would have looked like an Idea of an Hero only, and rather a Character of what a Brave man should be, than what any man ever truly was. There are indeed some Passages in his History, that are not altogether to be justified, though none that may not (methinks) be slipped over amongst so many better Pages of his Life, like a Counterfeit Piece in a great Sum of Current Gold. If (my Lord) I have been so successful as to make a tolerable Copy of this brave Original, and that my endeavour be graciously accepted, I have my end. I have learned that the Best men are not always the hardest to please, and ever the aptest to forgive; which being granted, I shall appear in a good measure justified in the great freedom I have taken to recommend my Book to your Grace's perusal: and it has so much the better Title to your Acceptance, as it is the Fruit of the most innocent part of my time; and offered with a Heart as grateful for the many Favours I have received from your Grace's Bounty, and as full of Honour and Reverence for your Person, and Dignity as any Man, who in a better, and more studied stile may take the boldness to subscribe himself, My Lord, Your Graces Most Humble, and most Obedient Servant Charles Cotton. Beresford, this 30 th'. of October, 1669. The Preface. HAving about three Years since, and in the Vacancy of a Country Life, taken this Volume in hand, before I had gone through the three first Books, I was called away first by Employment, and after dismissed from that, taken off by so long, and so uncomfortable a Sickness, that I found myself utterly unfit for any undertaking of this, or any other kind, and consequently had almost given over all thoughts of proceeding in a work, which at some melancholy times I believed I might not live to finish. Being since restored to a better state of Health, and coming to review my Papers, either the dislike of what I had already done, the shame of having been so long in doing it, the indisposition my Disease left still hanging upon me, the bulk of what I had undertaken, the little leisure I conceived I might have wherewith to perform it, or all together, had almost persuaded me to hold on the same resolution, and for ever to let it alone: till recollecting myself, I remembered I had a greater Obligation upon me (which nevertheless I do not think fit to publish in this place) to go through with what I had already begun, than was to be dissolved by any truant Humour, or private Aversion of my own. I therefore reassumed my former purpose, and some months since took the Book again in good earnest in hand, which when I have said, any ingenious person may reasonably wonder, how a man in good earnest, and that has so little to do in the world as I have, could be all this tedious time about such a piece of Work as this: To which (if what I have already said will not serve for an excuse) I shall answer, that although by my incapacity, my ill fortune, or both, I stand excused from public Employment, I have notwithstanding so much private concern of my own to divert me, and so few moments to bestow upon myself, that I wonder 'tis done so soon: An Apology I might however have spared, since my haste will I fear be too legible in every Line. And now that I have told my Reader why I have proceeded so slowly in the work, I conceive it time (as men in Prefaces usually do) to give some account of the motives that induced me to undertake it at all; which though they will arise to no better reasons than what other men usually give for their Follies in such cases, will nevertheless serve perhaps to satisfy such as are kindest to me, and who will not render themselves overhard to be satisfied in a thing wherein I presume they would themselves be content to see me justified. It was not therefore out of any ambition I had to be again in Print, I having suffered too much that way already; nor to be reputed a good Translator, the best whereof sit in the lowest Form of Writers, and no one can be proud of the meanest Company; neither shall I pretend to be put upon it by my Friends, for that would tacitly imply something of opinion they must have of my ability that way, and I must be so just to 〈◊〉 my worthy Acquaintance, as to dec●●re them men of better judgements, than to be so deceived; besides the greater part of them being better Frenchmen, than I pretend to be, such as have read the Original, could never wish to see it blemished by so unskilful a hand: neither was I prompted to it by any design of advantage, that consideration being ever very much below my thoughts; nor to oblige the world, that being as much above my expectation: but having an incurable humour of scribbling upon me, I believed I could not choose a braver Subject for my Friend's diversion, and my own Entertainment than this, wherein I thought at least I discovered as much Variety of Revolution, and accident as is any where in no larger a Volume to be found; besides something of utility, here being a general account of the most important Transactions of Europe for above threescore years together, and in one continued series of Discourse, which are otherwise only to be picked up out of several Authors, and most of them ●mitted in all: but that which gave me the greatest invitation (besides the Character of Honour that continues throughout the whole thread of his Life) was the great example of uncorrupted Loyalty the Duke of Espernon ever retained in all his Exigencies, and Disgraces; a Virtue which though none of the Nobility of this Kingdom (for whom this is chiefly designed) need to be informed in, 'tis nevertheless a glorious Record, and aught to be in History, that succeeding times may see after what manner a good Subject (●ow powerful soever) ought to behave himself, how; or how unkindly soever his Prince shall please to dispose of his Person, and Fortune. This consideration it was, that after a first, and second reading of this brave life (though every year of it contains variety enough to furnish out a History) which I must confess to have been the greatest temptation that decoyed me into this undertaking, especially when I reflected upon the times we ourselves have too lately seen, when Loyalty was not very much in fashion, or not to be owned without manifest ruin. And although I know very well we have Examples enough of Virtue, Bravery, Wisdom, Fidelity, and Honour in persons of our own Nation, as well Kings as Subjects, Princes of the Blood, Generals, ecclesiastics, and Statesmen, both of Former, and the present Age, and the meanest of those Lives sufficient to create as beautiful a Story; yet of those the Dead are many of them already recorded beyond my imitation, and to Write in Praise of the Living (besides the danger of standing suspected, either of Flattery, or Design) were to offend the modesty natural to all generous minds. In the next place, I am to acquaint my Reader, that the Author of this History Monsieur Girard was Secretary to the Duke of Espernon, and a very extraordinary person in himself, as you will find in the Texture, Disposition, and Elegancy of the whole, in despite of my ill handling; by which advantages he must doubtless be able to give the best, and truest account of any w●●ever, both of his Masters private Affairs, and the general Transactions of that time, he being (especially in the Duke's later Years) continually employed by him, and the Duke himself being so eternally upon the Scene of Action, that we shall seldom find him retired, and alone in the whole course of his Life. And although his dependence upon this great person may render his testimony suspected to some, he is however so generally allowed by the most Intelligent, and such as are best read in the Affairs of that Kingdom, for a faithful Historian, that the truth of the Story ought to Balance any other defect of the work. Lastly, in the behalf of my Bookseller Mr. Brome (to whose Kindness I owe more, than I can pay him by this Impression) I am to say, that although I dare not answer how far this History may suffer by my Oversights, or Mistakes, or by the Faults escaped the Press, which (I know not by what accident) are very many, and some of them very considerable; yet I dare pronounce it one of the best things I have seen in that Language, I do not mean for the Excellency, or Harmony of the Style, which in the Original itself, though the words there be very Significant, Elegant, and admirably well chosen, is notwithstanding none of the smoothest I have read: but for the importance of the Subject, wherein you will find much of the Policy of that time, not only of France itself, but moreover of the Courts of England, Rome, Spain, Savoy, Germany, Sweeden, and the States of the United Provinces, together with a Narrative of all the most celebrated Battles, Skirmishes, Rencounters, Combats, Sieges, Assaults, and Stratagems for above threescore years together, with the Descriptions of the Strengths, Situations, and distances of Cities, Towns, Castles, Citadels, Forts, Rivers, Countries, Seigneuries, jurisdictions, and Provinces, and all this collected, and delivered by a judicious, and Impartial Hand, an extraordinary effect of a French Pen, that Nation (especially in Records that immediately concern their own Honour) having been commonly observed to be very civil to themselves: So that methinks the Dignity of the Subject, and the Ingenuity of the Author considered, a work how unhappily soever performed by me, undertaken nevertheless merely for the common benefit, and delight, ought not to be discountenanced, nor very ill received. Yet do I not (though in the foregoing Paragraph, I have discovered something of the Charlatan in the behalf of my Bookseller) hereby intent to beg any favour for myself, or by these large promises to bribe my Reader into milder Censures; neither do I think it fit to provoke him by a defiance; for that were to be an ill Man, as well as an ill Writer. I therefore frankly, and without condition expose myself to every man's judgement, of which such as appear civil to me are my Friends, and I shall owe them the same respect, when it shall be my turn to judge, as it is now to be censured: Those who will not be so, I shall threaten no further, than to put them in mind, that if ever they attempt any thing of the same nature, they will then lie under the same disadvantage I now do, and consequently may meet with the same Injustice. THE AUTHOR'S APOLOGY. I Doubt not but many, who in the Front of this Book shall meet with no more than the bare title of the Life of the Duke of Esperson, will be very much surprised; and consequently I expect to be by them condemned for having burdened the Press with so large a Volume upon no other account, than the mere Narrative of one particular Life: but if such shall consider that this Life continued for almost an Age, and that it was continually taken up in the greatest and most remarkable Transactions of all that time, that consideration will doubtless conquer their astonishment, and it may then perhaps fall out, that instead of the Imputation I have so much apprehended, they will allow me some Excuse, if not some Commendation, in that I have not been sparing of a few words, to the end so many brave and glorious Actions might be the better, and more truly known. In treating of a Person so highly concerned as the Duke of Espernon was in the general Affairs of the Kingdom, I have been constrained to tip up a great many passages already upon Record, and so ancient, as near an hundred years ago; by which means my work will in many places be stripped of that grace of Novelty, which of itself would have been a considerable Ornament to it: but having observed withal that many of the things already published, have not been delivered with that laudable candour, and indifferency (the principal Virtue of Historians) that the most exact have omitted many circumstances (which are ofttimes preferable to the main scope of the thing itself) and that several Exploits, the Honour where of was absolutely, and indisputably due to him, whose History I have undertaken, have been either disguised, or unjustly, attributed to others who had no share in the execution, I conceived that by the reverence to truth I stood obliged to clear those mistakes, and in several passages to vindicate the Duke's honest intentions, against such at were evidently passionate against his person, and emulous of his Honour. These indeed were the principal inducements that have sometimes tempted me out of the precise limits of the Duke of Espernon's Life, and that have administered occasion to stretch some of his Actions beyond their natural extent, and beyond what directly touched his own person; not that I needed notwithstanding to seek matter out of the way of my design; for where could I possibly have chosen out a more ample or a more illustrious Subject? there is hardly any so notable event, or so high performance within the prospect of History, or in the vicissitude of worldly revolution, of which glorious, and extraordinary Examples are not here to be found Could any thing be imagined more active, or more vigorous in his prosperity, or more constant, and even in all the disgraces that befell him, than this great man was? Since then upon these two principles, Valour and Fortitude, all life depends, and that from the manner of a man's Behaviour in Prosperities, and his manly supporting the Adversities of Fortune, are extracted all the precepts for the conduct of Humane Life, what utility may we not propose to ourselves, from the great examples both of the one, and the other, which are every where to be met with in the current of this History? It is not nevertheless, that we may not perhaps sometimes observe some flying Clouds in this Serene Firmament of Virtue, that constancy so much celebrated for the most eminent quality in him, of whose Actions I have undertaken to give an account, having not always been acquitted from censure. He has been sometimes accused of too severe, and too obstinate a humour, in that he would never give place to time, nor accommodate himself to the necessity of Affairs; and that he would never yield, not even then when he saw he could not contend, but to his own manifest Ruin. I cannot deny, but that in this particular there was something to have been wished, if men would have the Virtue of the Great confined within the narrow bounds of common Prudence: but were it not in the mean time to offer violence to those great Souls, elevated so much above the ordinary condition of men, to subject their actions to the Rules of others? It is very true that this Duke could never temporize in the least, nor ever gave way to any thing that justled his Humour; that on the contrary he has often pushed things on to the last extremes, and that from very trivial and light beginnings he has pulled upon himself many, and great Disgraces: but if in this particular any thing may be found wherewith to reproach his Conduct, what Praises are not due to his Courage, that could never bend, nor bow under the highest Persecutions? Something essential would have been wanting in his Life, had he been always happy; and he contributed no little to his glory, in sometimes promoting his own Misfortunes, they having made a discovery of Qualities in him, which in a continual prosperity would have been totally buried, and concealed. So brave an Argument does, I must confess, deserve a far better Pen than mine to do it right, and I am sufficiently conscious of my own imperfection, to think myself infinitely below the dignity of my Subject; neither was it any vain design of publishing my own Name, that prompted me to this attempt; and had I had no greater a reverence to the Reputation of another, than any respect to my own, I had never embarked in this design. I very well understand to what a man exposes himself who submits to a public Judgement; but I have considered withal, that it were a very great weakness to decline an honourable Undertaking for fear of a little Censure. I do herein discharge a Debt, and I do it with the best I have. I owe all things to him whose Life I have here Written, he brought me up from my younger years by his bounty, nourished me by his Favour, in the height of his Disgraces honoured me with his confidence, and trust; he moreover gratified me with several, and those signal Benefits: Is it not just then, that at least I should manifest my gratitude by a few words? Yet although I stand prepossessed by so many Obligations, I am nevertheless more certain that no one shall find me out of that Consideration, corrupted in my Benefactors Favour; who having undertaken to give a true and sincere account of things, I shall by no means impose upon the public belief: Neither do I indeed design his Elegy herein, but merely to give an exact Narrative of his Actions, wherein the native truth shall be the only part of History he shall receive from my Endeavour; all the rest shall be wanting, and I have had no little ado to persuade myself to give my Book so eminent a Title, knowing what Respect is due to that great Name, and to such, as in their better Writings have given him his just Character of Honour. I have not throughout my whole Work spoken to the disadvantage of any one person, either out of Animosity or Design; and if m● Passions went hand in hand with the Interests of my Master in the time of his Life, they also went out with his, when extinguished by the hand of Death. I do not nevertheless pretend to have been so dextrous, as to have satisfied all those of whom I have been obliged to speak in the order of the following Treatise, some Historical Truth's having perhaps slipped in, which may not be very acceptable to such, as would have all things granted to them, and will not allow to others the liberty of a bare recital: but I did not conceive myself obliged to submit to that magisterial Law, and therefore have reserved the liberty (not extending to injury) an honest man ought to be jealous of, that he may keep himself from being a slave to other men's humours by a mean complacency. I could some years ago have delivered this work to the Light, and had then done it, had not the disorders of the time put all things into so great confusion, that it was long before I could gather my Mesmoires, which were dispersed into several hands, together again. Now at last by the command of those who have most Authority with me, and at the instance of my Friends, I here present them to your view. I wish they may give satisfaction both to the one, and the other, and I could be content that satisfaction might proceed further, and extend to the generality of men: but being I cannot reasonably expect that good Fortune upon any other account, than merely as an act of Favour, I shall make no difficulty to beg that grace of all such as shall have the Curiosiry, or the Patience to read these followng Volumes. The Reader is desired to look over the Errata, and to correct them with his Pen, before he begin to read the Book. ERRATA. PAge 2. Line 3. r. lafoy Valette, p. 3. l. 4. r. Alarms, p. 3. l. 25. r. Arms, p. 5. l. 3. r. Bellegarde, l. 15. r. Luxembourg, p. 11. l. 1. & 3. r. Rufes l. 7. r. Rufec's, p. 12. l. 7. r. the merits of, p. 14. l. 16. ●. be went then to this Siege, p. 16. l. 14. ●. R●nfard, p. 19 l. 7. r. Aul●is, p. 22. l. 18. r. for that time, l. 38. r. to mate the League, p. 25. l. 29. r. with a medes●y, p. 28. l▪ 37. r. 〈◊〉, p. 30. l. 5. & l. 37. r. Chiverny, p. 33. l. 1. r. Requelaure, l. 18. r. concurring, p. 36. l. 26. r. it is not hard to judge, p. 37. l. 31. r. with a more absolute, p. 42. l. 1. r. festering, p. 48. l. 38. r. easily to succeed, p. 59 l. 40. r. Count de Candalle, p. 62. l. 1. deal and, p. 63. l. 12. r. all things being, p. 64. l. 13. r. their own Confines, p. 70. l. 1. r. after this there, p. 80. l. 19 r. Loathes, p. 84. l. 23. r. contented, p. 92. l. 21. 1. (as he had, d. 93. l. 26. r. Seguenic●, p. 94. l. 17. r. of chiefest note, p. 108. l. 13. r. lost, p. 119. l. 1. r. than a delay, p. 125. l. 20. r. Marth●nie, p. 134. l. 20. r. Humieres, p. 13●. l. 29. r, Campagne, p. 142. l. 3. r. ●elloc, l. 21. r. v●st Levies, l. 3. ●. r. Frenzy is Redont, p. 145, l. 35. r. T●ulon l. 42. r. seduced p. 158 l. 39 r. and a, p. 159. l. 6. 1. and those very advantageous matches, p. 170. l. 12. r. into Languedoc, l. 15. r▪ Pr●ve●sal. and so throughout the whole Impression, l. 35. ●. V●entadour, p. 173. l. 19 r. seduced, p. 175. l. 32. r. inveterate, and ●●●●concilable hatred, p. 183. l. 42. r. since the taking, p. 184. l. 3. r. 60000. Crowns, p. 185. l. 20. r. favours, p. 186. l. 12. r. amused, p. 189 l. 20. r. with his reputation, p. 191. l. ●. r. as has been said, p. 198 l. 2. r. instead of that Pr●vence, l. 5. r. Commission then, the Duke departed, p. 202, l. 13. r. would often break out, p. 206. l. 〈◊〉 r. would be the, p. 211. l. 8. r. inveterate jealousy, p. ●12. l. 25. r. proceeding to, p. 213. l. 28. r. by the return, p. 215. l. 15. r. of the Accommodati●●, p. 217. l. 5. deal his, p. 218. l. 39 r. and wherein if the, p. 221. l. 19 r. stayed to expect him, p. 227. l. 11. the comma tobe placed after notwithstanding, p. 227. l. 20. r. and still kep●, l. 28. r. in the Dukes; p. 229 l. 8. r. to the first, l. 31. r. begin to grow, p. 231. l. 2. r. further instructed, p. 232. l. 24. r. compel the King, p. 235. l. 29. r. of whom after having got▪ l. 34 r. Treasury, p. 238. l. 2. r. en●w, p. 243. l. 6. r. inveterate, p. 245. l. 15. r. intercepted, p. 246. l. 21. r. and power, p. 249. l. 4. & 5. r. to mould them into the new form, l. 13. r. restore to the Republics, p. 256. l. 7. r. judging. p. 257. l. 2. ●. Dr●üet, p. 267. l. 10, r. was preparing, p. 268. l. 6. r. to be cu●b'd, g. 269. l. 15. r. ●er Regency, p. 270. l. 18. r. to repr●ach him, p. 274. l. 6. r. able to mate, p. 227. l. 17. & ●4. r. Aulnis, p. 258. l. 19 r. nor any intelligence, p. 29●. l. 12. deal how, p. 293. l. 36. r. Sisters falling sick, p. 295. l. 16. r. convoyed, p. 297 l. ul●. r. opposer, p. 29●. l. 2. r Ch●stelseraut & l. 13. a comma after the duke, p. 303, l. 34. r. Counterscarpe, p. 304. l. 8, r. easily, p. 315. l. 28, r. determine of him, p. 319. l. 17. ●. Court, 326. l. 13. r. by the effect of, p. 339. l. 14. r. Arnaut, p. 343. l. 21. r, his Voyage, p. 345. l. 29. ●. Mont●●chard, p. 356, l. 26. r. Saluisse, l. 38. r. not to be imagined, p. 364. l. 37. r. to recommend him. p. 365. l. 33. r. his Kingdom, p 369. l. 〈◊〉. r. this first Essay, l, 16. r, Governments, p. 374 l. 19 r. and with a submission, l. 20. r. to give up their Arms, p. 386. l. 23. r. in his desire, p. 400. l. 7. r. upon The Drawbridge, p. 401. l, 17. deal and. p. 40●. l. 42. r. Tho●●eins, p. 403. l. 25. r. Aulnis, p, 407. l. 33. r. his hands. p. 411. l. 5 r. companious, p. 414. l. 27. deal and, p. 430. l, 16. r. so many important, p. 431. l. 26. r. Sevebbes, p 434. l. 9 r. Vair●n, l. 36. r. Malagu●t l. 38. r. le ●ec d' Ambez, p. 441. l, 31. r. the thirst, p. 450. l. ●. r. Olonne. p. 458. l. 11. r, lasting repose. p. 459. l, 21. r. co●cur●ents. p 461 l. 31. r. ●e obtained it,, p. 464. l. 26. r. at this time, p. 467. l. 35. r. could be, p. 469 l. 37. deal the, p, 485. l. 40 1. Milla●t, p. 494. l. 8. r. being a woman, p. 495. l. 37. r. been determined, p. 506. l. 10. r. inclined to the other, p. 507. l. 6. 1. R●ffec, p. 516. l. 37. r, any extraordinary Assembly, p. 525. l. 39 r. be ever committed, p. 526. l. 27. r. Cospian, p. 529. l. 34. r. would not deny, p. 532. l. 7. r. had his instructions, p. 534. l. 13. & p. 538. l. 33. r. d' Aguesseau, p. 536. l. 19 r. this house, p. 541. l. 30. r. companions, p. 545. l. 17. r. started p. 554. l. 24. r. weimar, p. 555. l. 42. deal this, p. 556. l. 29. r. granted to those who had, etc. l. ult. r. and, was not, p. 562. l. 35. r. he fortunately effected, p. 564. l. 31. deal on, before condition, p. 566. l. 9 r, this couticus, p. 569. l. 9 r. might be distedged, p. 570. l. 28. r. examples enough, p. 572. l. 14. r. that the Cardinal, p. 573. l. 15. r. Kings, 31. r. did him, p. 575. l. 32. r. by how much it had been p. 578. l, ult. r. Poyanne, p. 538. l. 27. r. Maub●uge. p, 592. l. 6. r. These desays, p. 601. l. penult, r. indisposition, p. 61●. l, 30. r. he had occastonality only, p. 616. l. ●8. r. seen, p. 62●. l. ult. r. and to go away, p. 625. l. 18. r. the trial of this p, 626. l. 19 r. to chance the Garrison, p. 628. l. 26, r. the Baron of Anton, p. 636. l. antepenult. r. ought not to be suspected, p. 637. l. ●4. r. but proceedid. p. 641. l. 1. r. the Authors of this calumay, p. 642, l. 21. r. Seniqoux, p. 644, l. 11. r, escaped his pen, p 646. l. 8. r. Metivi, p. 647. l. 10. r. what was to be so done, well, etc. l. 2. r. but of God. The TABLE. A. Abdyed Uzerche in Limousin taken by Count Schomberg page 356 Accident by Ligones htning 597 Again Revolts 547 The Sedition there appeased by Precedent du Bernet 548 Aglimant taken by Assault by the Duke de Candalle 280 Aix blocked up by the Duke of Espernon, by Forts 151 The main Fort delivered up to Lafin, 169 Surprised from him by Monsieur I'Esdiguieres, 171 Demolished 172 Alencon D. retires from Court 10 Aletz surrendered 462 Ambergris found upon the Coast of Medoc in France 236 Amiens surprised by the Spaniard, 198 Again besieged by Marshal Byron, 199 Surrendered to the King 200 Antibe taken by Assault by the Duke of Espernon 148 Archbishop of Tholouze youngest Son to the Duke of Espernon, promoted to the Dignity of Cardinal 379 Archduke of Austria enters upon the Government of Flanders 192 Ardres surrendered to the Archduke 196 Arles surrendered to the Duke ●f Espernon 147 Arquien Governor of the Citadel of Metz 265, 266 Arras Petared by Marshal Byron but in vain 201 Assassinate attempted upon the person of Monsieur de la Valette, Father to the Duke of Espernon 5 Assembly of the States at Rouen 197 D'Autry Intendant de la Justice 390 B. BAron de St. Surin, Governor of Royan 399 Barricades of Bourdeaux 543 Barricades of Paris 72 Baussonniere Nephew to le Plessis Baussonniere in danger about the Queen Mothers Escape 339 Baths of Bannieres 487 Battle of Coutras' 65 Battle of Dreux 7 Bayonne Preserved by the Duke of Espernon 566 Beaujeu slain before Chartres 135 Bedossan slain 194 Bellegarde D. a Favourite 29 Bethune Count sent to Treat with the Q. Mother 354 Bergerac surrendered to the Duke de la Valette 580 Bezaudan slain in cold Blood 168 Byron's Conspiracy, 216 He is sent Ambassador into England, 217 His Death 226 Birth of Henry de Foix the D. of Espernon 's eldest Son, and of Bernard de Foix, and de la Valette his second Son 129 Birth of Lewis Cardinal de la Valette the Duke of Espernon 's youngest Son 130 Birth of the Dolphin, now King of France, 595 Blumet slain before Chartres 135 Bourg relieved by the Duke of Espernon 129 La Boissiere slain at Aglimant 280 Bravery of a Cooper 545 Breach betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and Rucellay 359 Briet 's Coach-Horses killed by the Duke of Espernon 's Order 500 De la Brove an excellent Rider 275 Buckingham D. 447 Bustle betwixt Arquien, and Tilladet, in the Citadel of Metz 267 Bustle betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and Du Vair Garde des Sceaux 310 Le Buysson a Counsellor in the Parliament of Paris 334 Bishop of Luson afterwards Cardinal de Richelieu comes to the Queen Mother to Angoulesme 3●0 Bishop of Paris Monsieur de Ret● created Cardinal 309 C. CAdillac founded by the Duke of Espernon 210 Caen delivered up to the King 372 Cahors surprised by the King of Navarre 22 Calais besieged, 193 Taken by Assault 195 Calonges Governor of Montpellier his Character 410 Cambray besieged by the Condè de Fuentes 176 Cambresis taken by the Duke de Candalle, and the Cardinal de la Valette 583 Campagnol carries Relief into Calais beyond expectation, 194 His brave behaviour there 195 Cans surrendered to the Duke of Espernon 149 La Capelle, le Catelet, and Corbie taken by the Spaniards 561 Captains fourteen hanged at Montauron, by the Duke of Espernon 145 Cardinal Richelieu in disgrace, 480 Restored to favour, 482 He revenges himself upon his Enemies 484 Cardinal de la Valette made Governor of Anjou, 488 His Death 604 Cardinal Richelieu made prime Minister of State, 428 His ambitious designs, 501 His first distaste against the Duke of Espernon, 503 Another, 504 He declares himself opposite to the Duke of Espernon 429 Cardinal Richelieu comes to Montauban, 464 He is there visited by the Duke of Espernon, 465 His expedition into Italy 472 Cardinal de Medicis sent Legate into France 197 Cardinal Aldobrandino sent Legate into France 208 Carricks of Portugal Shipwrecked upon the Coast of Medoc ●n Guienne 441, 442 Casal besieged by the King of Spain, and the Duke of Savoy, 460 The Siege raised 461 Caumont enters into Arms, and rescues his Pather in a Skirmish near Mauvasin, 6 Goes to the Siege of Rochel, and thence to Court, 7, 8 He putteth himself into the King of Navarre 's dependence, and accompanies him in his Escape from St. Germans, 9 He withdraws himself from the King of Navarre 's Service 10 Caumonts' second journey to Court, where he is very well received by the King, and the Queen Mother, 10, 11 He receives the first bounty from the King, 13 He follows the Duke of Alencon in the War, 14 He is sent Ambassador into Savoy 17 Caumont Campmaster to the Regiment of Champagne at the Siege of la Fere 23 Caumont 's first Suit to the King in the behalf of his elder Brother, and his high Favour 24 Caumont offers to fight the Duke of Guise, but is not permitted by the King 24, 25 Caumont advanced to the Dignity of Duke and Peer of France 26 Challenge from the Duke of Espernon to the Marshal d' Ornano, 213 The Quarrel taken up by the King 214 Challenge from the Duke of Guise to the Duke of Espernon 244 Challenge carried by Marsillac from Balagny to the Duke of Eguillon 283 Challenge from the Prince of Joinville to the Duke of Espernon 244 Charters surrendered to the King 114, 135 Chasteauneuf Guard des Sceaux in disgrace 507 Chastillon slain before Chartres 135 Church Lands in Bearn restored 306 Cicutat taken by the Duke of Espernon 150 Cinque-Mars Grand Escuyer of France 634 Cisteron taken by the Duke of Espernon, 150 Citadel of Xaintes demolished 362 Civil War breaks out 431 Commotion of the Princes of the Blood to hinder the Match with Spain 291 Comparison betwixt the Duke of Espernon and ●'Esdiguieres 405 Conspiracy of Angoulesme, 87 & sequentibus Conspiracy against the Queen Mother at Angoulesme 363 Conspiracy against the Duke of Espernon 180, 181 Council of sixteen, and their practices 68, 69 Count de Brenne 344 Count de Candalle slain at the storming of Sommieres 60 Count de Bethune sent to treat with the Queen Mother 354 Count de Moret slain 496 Count de Soissons retires from Court 572 Count de Soissons furiously exasperated against the Duke of Espernon 273 Crequi made Campmaster to the Regiment of Guards 228 La Croix sent by the Duke de Luines to the Duke of Espernon 369 D. DEath of the Cardinal of Guise 106 Death of the Duchess of Espernon 158 Death of Pere Ange de Joyeuse 248 Death of the Duke of Cleves 250 Death of the Duke de Luines 395 Death of the Count de Soisso●s slain at the Battle of Sedan 628 Death of the Duchess de la Valette 444 Death of the Duchess of Orleans 445 Defagues Massacred at Bourdeaux 538 Description of the City of Metz 39 Difference betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and the Parliament of Paris 207, & sequentibus. Difference betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and Villeroy Secretary of State 42, 52 Difference betwixt Pope Paul the Fifth, and the Republic of Venice composed by the King of France 246 Difference betwixt the Duke of Espernon and the Archbishop of Bourdeaux 507 Disorders of the Kingdom 284 Dispute betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and the Marshal d' Ornano, 210, 211 Another 238 Dispute betwixt the Dukes of Espernon, and Guise 243 Dispute betwixt the Prince of Joinville and the Duke of Espernon 244 Dispute betwixt the Duke of Espernon and the Baron de la Chastagneraye 274 Dispute betwixt the Duke of Espernon and Cardinal Richelieu about the Portugal Carricks 446 Disputes betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and the Parliament of Bourdeaux, 424, 429 Continued 436 Duel betwixt two Captains 170 Duel betwixt two Soldiers 286 Duke de Candalle discontented at his Partage given him by his Father, 278 He is Married to the Duchess of Haluin 278 His Voyage into the Levant, 280 He misdemeans himself in Xaintonge, 294 He comes to his Father to Bourdeaux, 443 444 His Death 600 E. EDict de Crew erected 557 Edict of the Union with the League published at Rouen 80 Education of the Duke of Espernon 's Children 275 English Land in the Isle of the, 448 Are Defeated 455 Engagement betwixt the Duke of Espernon and I'Esdiguieres 165 Interview betwixt the King and the Queen Mother at Cousieres 366 L' Esdiguieres Created Constable of France 405 Esgarrebaques Governor of Toulon, 172 Espernon Duke offered by the King his Majesty's Sister-in-Law in Marriage, which he modestly refuses, 25 He is sent to Treat with the King of Navarre, 31, By whom he is offered the Princess Katherine the King's only Sister in Marriage 33 His dangerous fall near to Lions, 34, 35 He is offered the Duke of Guise's Daughter, since Princess of Conty in Marriage, which he refuses, 36 He is sent with an Army into Provence, 50 His Exploits there 51 Espernon Duke Married to Margaret de Foix, and de Candalle 59 & sequ. Espernon Duke beats up a Quarter of Germane Horse 63 Espernon Duke invested with the Offices vacant by the Death of the Duke of Joyeuse, slain at the Battle of Coutras, as also with those vacant by the Duke de Bellegarde, slain at the same Battle, 65 He exposes himself to very great danger, 69 He retires from Court, 80 He returns to Court, and is well received, 111 He refuses to follow Henry the Fourth, and leaves the Army, 119, 121 He is shot into the mouth at Pierre Fonds, 134 He is sent Governor, and Captain General of all the King's Forces into Provence, 141, 142 His miraculous escape before Aix, 156 He is forsaken by his Friends in Provence, 176 He is traduced by the Cardinal d' Ossat, 183 He comes to the King to Amiens, 200 His expedition into Limousin 240 Espernon Duke goes to the Hostel de Ville at Paris upon the Death of Henry the Fourth, 258 And to the Augustins, 259 His Harangue there, ibid. Espernon Duke re-established in Metz 267 Espernon Duke generously refuses to consent to the Murder of the Duke of Sully, though his Enemy, 265 He divides his Estate amongst his three Sons, 277 He rejects the proffered Alliance of the Marshal d' Encre, 282 He falls sick at Angoulesme 295 Espernon Duke in Disgrace 297 Espernon Duke in great danger, 298 He retires from Court, 299 He presents himself before Rochel 303 Espernon Duke's preparation in order to the Queen Mother's escape from Blois, 332 His Magnificence, 364 His Letter to the King 365 Espernon Duke, his Expedition into Bearne, 380 His successes there, 383 His Generosity 384 Espernon Duke his Expedition against Rochel, 389 His Actions there 392 Espernon Duke goes to lay Siege to Royan 398 Espernon Duke created Governor of Guienne, 403 He takes possession of his Government, 420 He falls sick, 456 He entertains the Queen at Cadillac 503 Espernon Duke stops the Progress of Rebellion in Guienne, 486 And thereupon is confi●'d to his House Plassac, 528 He is Excommunicated, 505 Absolved, 532 He falls sick 536 Espernon Duke goes against the Mutineers of Bourdeaux, 541 And suppresses them 550 Espernon Duke aspersed, ibid. He receives some reparation, 553 He again falls sick, 555 And again at Bayonne 563 Espernon Duke in the greatest Disgrace, 598 He is deposed from his Government, and calumniated, 599 Whereupon he again falls sick, 600 And again at Plassac 618 Espernon Duke commanded to retire to Loches, and upon what occasion, 619 & sequ. His arrival there 631 Espernon Duke falls mortally sick, 644 His good disposition to die, 646 His Death 650 Estampes taken by Assault 114 D'Estampes barbarously slain 168 F. FAmine in Guienne 480 Father Arnoux a jesuit 320 Favier sent to Metz as a spy upon the Duke of Espernon 314 Faure a common Soldier receives a Canonshot in the Belly, of which he miraculously escapes 402 La Fere surprised by the Prince of Condé, 22 Surrendered to the King 169 Feud betwixt the Princes of the Blood, and the Duke of Espernon, 273 Wherein the Queen Regent is favourable to the Duke 274 Fontarabie besieged by the Prince of Condé, 563 The Prince defeated there 596 Fontrailles 634 Fort of Aix demolished 172 Fort at Arras taken by Assault by the Duke of Espernon 201 Frejus taken by the Duke of Espernon 150 G. Guard des Sceaux du Vair 310 Gergeau taken by the King 114 De Gourgues first Precedent of the Parliament of Bourdeaux, 418 His Letter to the Duke of Espernon, 419 Which begets an open Rupture betwixt them, 423 His Death and Character 459 Grillon 189, 190 Guines surrendered to the Archduke of Austria 196 Guise Duke retires from Court, and breaks into Rebellion, 29 He approaches with his Army to Paris, 42 Comes to Court, 81 His Death 106 Guise Duke, Son to the late Duke of Guise, created Governor of Provence, 174 He goes into Provence with an Army against the Duke of Espernon 175 H. HAM surrendered to the Archduke of Austria 196 Harangue of the Duke of Espernon in the Hostel de Ville of Paris 259 Henry the third Proclaims War with the Hugonots, 49 He forbids the Duke of Guise from coming to Paris, 70 Who notwithstanding comes, 71 He resolves to put the Duke of Guise to Death 105 Henry the Third retires to Chartres 72 Henry the Third together with the King of Navarre escape narrowly of being both taken at Tours 110 Henry the Third slain at St. Clou 116, 117 Henry the forth turns Roman Catholic 160 Henry the Fourth comes to the Leaguer before Amiens 200 Henry the Fourths Expedition to Sedan 245 Henry the Fourth raises a mighty Army 250 Henry the Fourths Speech to the Queen in the Duke of Espernon 's Favour 251 Henry the Fourth slain by Ravillac 253 I. JAne Albret Queen of Navarre denied entrance into Lietoure by Monsieur de la Valette 3, 4 Lafoy Iliere Governor of Loches 341 Joyeuse rises in favour, 15 He is shot in the Face at the Siege of la Fere, 23 Advanced to the Dignity of Duke, and Peer of France, 26 He is slain at the Battle of Coutras' 65 Isle of Maran surprised by the Duke of Espernon 394 K. Katherine of Bourbon only Sister to Henry the Fourth, Married to the Duke of Bar 203 King of Navarre advances to the relief of the D. of Espernon at Angoulesme 100 King of Sweeden wins the Battle of Lipsick 490 King of Navarre makes his escape from St. Germans, 9 He joins Forces with Henry the Third of France, 110 His First aversion to the Duke of Espernon augmented at the Siege of Estampes 114, 115 L. LAfin's Character 206 Laon Besieged 230 League take up Arms, 38 Their Exploits, 41 They publish a Manifesto against the Duke of Espernon, and his Brother, 75 Lendrecis taken by the Duke de Candalle 583 Letter from the Queen Mother to the Duke of Espernon, 323 Another, 329 Another, 330 Another 352 Letter from the King to the QUEEN'S Mother ibid. Letter from the King to the Duke of Espernon 521 Letter from the Queen to the Duke of Espernon, and from the Cardinal, 608 Answer to the Cardinal 's 609 Letter from Lewis the Thirteenth to the Queen Mother after her escape from Blois 354 Letter from Lewis the Thirteenth to the Duke of Espernon, 622 The Answer 623 Lewis the Thirteenth resolves to arrest the Duke of Espernon 311 Lewis the Thirteenth his Expedition into Italy, 461 He falls sick at Lions, 478 Recovers 480 Lymoges Rescued by the Duke of Espernon out of the hands of the League 125 Lorme 's Treachery 334, & sequ. Lorraine Duke makes War upon France 471 Luines the great Favourite, 308 His Quarrel to the Duke of Espernon, 310 His design to 〈◊〉 him, 311 Prevented by the Duke's retiring 312 M. MAdaillan calumniates the Duke of Espernon 635 Madam the King's Sister falls sick of the Small Pox at Poitiers 292 Marcelles attempted by the Duke of Esper non, but in vain 153 Marshal Byron sent Ambassador into England, 217 And into Switzerland, 218 Marshal Byron arrives at Fountain Bleau, 222 He is beheaded 223 Marshal d' Encre takes Arms against the Prince of Condé, and his Faction, 300 His Death 307 Marshal de Themines his difference with the Duke of Espernon, 421 They are reconciled 423 Marquis de la Valette Marries Madamoiselle de Vernevil Marquis de la Force revolts in Bearne 379 Marquis de la Valette like to be slain by a Mine 401 Marsillac slain at the Siege of Privas 284 Mascaron slain before Chartres 135 Match with the Infanta of Spain concluded, 282 Matelet defeated attempting to relieve Calais 195 Maubeuge taken by the Duke de Candalle 583 Mauzac surrendered to the D. of Esp. 144 Mayenne Duke goes with a great Army against the Queen Mother, 356 He is slain by a Musket-shot before Montauban 395 Minieux defeated, and taken Prisoner by the Duke of Espernon 133 Miraculous escape 182 Mirebeau taken by the Spaniard 562 Moissac surrendered to the Duke of Espernon 144 Moncassin wounded at Tours 110 Monserrat described 409 Monsieur de la Valette defeats part of the Forcin Army at Lizere 66 Monsieur Marries the Duchess of Montpensier 439 Monsieur retires in discontent from Court, 471 He returns, 472 He retires again from Court 572 Monsieur retires into Flanders, 484 He invades the Kingdom 〈◊〉 France 492 Monsieur de la Valette Brother to the Duke of Espernon, slain at the Siege of Roquebrune 138 Montauban relieved by the Duke of Espernon, 144 Surrendered 464 Montauron surrendered to Mercy to the D. of Espernon 145 Montereau Faut-Yonne taken by Petard 115 Montmelian surrendered to the King's Army 208 Montmorency D. declares in favour of the Monsieur, 492 He is taken Prisoner, 497 He is brought to Tholouze in order to his Trial, 498 The Duke of Espernon intercedes for him, but in vain, 499 He is beheaded 502 Montpellier besieged, 410 Surrendered, 414 Montpensier Duke Marries Katherine de Joyeuse, 203 His Death 247 Money sent by the Queen Mother to the Duke of Espernon, in order to her escape from the Castle of Blois 330 N. NEgrepolisse taken by assault 403 Nevers D. presents himself with a great Army before Metz 358, 359 La Nove, his attempt and Character 392 Noyon surrendered to the King 135 O. OAth Administered to the Queen Mother 320 Obeliske erected by the Duke of Espernon in the Church of St. Clou to the Memory of his Master Henry the third of France 269 Obsequies of the two Kings, Henry the Third, and Fourth of France performed at one, and the same time 269 Office of Colonel General of France erected in Favour of the Duke of Espernon 37 P. Parish besieged 116 Parliament of Bourdeaux draw up an Information against the Duke of Espernon 519 Peace with the Hugonots concluded 436 Peace betwixt the King and the Queen Mother concluded at Angoulesme 358 Peace concluded with the Prince of Condé 286 Peace between the Crowns of France and Spain concluded at Veruins 202, 203 Peace concluded with Savoy 209 Pedro Medici wounded at the storming of Aglimant in Caramania 280 Perigueux Revolts, but the Mutiny is appeased by Verthamont Intendant de la Justice 548 Peyroles deserts the Duke of Espernon 177 Philip Cospean his beginning and advancement 236, 237 Pignerol in Savoy taken by Cardinal Richelieu 472 Fimentel an Italian Gamester comes to the French Court 235 Piviers open its Gates to the King 114 Plessis Baussonniere sent by the Duke of Espernon to Marshal Byron 220, 221 Plessis Baussonniere comes to the Queen Mother to Blois, 343, 344 His Death 489 Pompeo Targone an Italian Engineer 393 Pont de Cé assaulted, and the Pass gained 372 Pontoise surrendered 116 Princes of the Blood discontented 272 Prince of Condé returns to Court, and appears dissatisfied with the Duke of Espernon, 269 He is confined 269 Prince of Condé offers some propositions to the Duke of Espernon, 610 Which are rejected by the Duke 612 Prince of Condé made Lieutenant General in Guienne, and some other adjoining Provinces 452 Prince of Condé arrives in Guienne 590 Privas taken by Assault 462 Q. QVeen Anne of Austria arrives at Bourdeaux 296 Queen Elizabeth of England sends a Compliment to the Duke of Espernon, by Marshal Byron 219 Queen Mother sent to Treat an Accommodation with the Lords of the League, 47 Which is concluded at Nemours 49 Queen Mother sent to Treat with the King of Navarre 54, 55 Queen Mother Mary de Medici attempts to recover her Liberty, 316 She addresses herself to the Duke of Bovillon, 317 She escapes from Blois, 349 & sequ. She is received by the Duke of Espernon, 350 She arrives at Loches, 351 Her Letter to the Duke of Espernon, 352 Her Letter to the King 353 Queen Mother prepares for War, and is deserted by all the Nobility, excepting the Duke of Espernon, 354 She departs from Angoulesme to go to court 366 Queen Mother begins a second War, 370 but with ill success, 372 Whereupon an Accommodation ensues 373 Queen Mother professes an open hatred to Cardinal Richelieu, 471 She retires into Flanders 484 R. RAmefort deserts the Duke of Espernon 176 Ramée a common Soldier receives a strange shot before Royan, of which he as strangely recovers 402 Rèbellion breaks out in several Provinces of France, 577 Quieted by the Duke de la Valette 580 Reiters enter into France, 54 They Article, and retire 64 Three Remarkable Stories 616, 617 Reply of the Duke of Espernon to the King 240 Retreat of Houdan made by Monsieur de la Valette father to the Duke of Espernon 3 Retreat made by the Cardinal de la Valette 554 Revol made Secretary of State 106 Revolt of Montauban 431 Rhosne a Gentleman of Champagne 192 Richelieu Brother to the Cardinal slain by the Marquis de Themines 362 Rochefort surprised by the Rochellers 301 Rochel surrendered to the King 457 Rohan Duke takes Arms 462 Royan described, 398, 399 The Suburbs taken, 400 And the Town by assault 402 Rucellay a Florentine, 317 He arrives at Sedan 321 Rucellay Treats with the Duke of Espernon about the Queen Mothers Escape from Blois 328 Rucellay deserts the Queen Mother, 361 His Gratitude and good Offices to the Duke of Espernon 377 Rupture betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and Villeroy Secretary of State, 42 Which grows wider 52, 53 Rupture betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and the Duke de Luines 309 S. SAlly at Aix, 152 Two others 157 St. Africa besieged by the Prince of Condé, 454 But with ill success 455 St. Africa taken, and dismantled by the Duke of Espernon 486 St. Blancart created Admiral of France 139 St. Germains surrendered to the Duke of Espernon 126 St. Jeaned Angeli surrendered, and preserved from being sacked by the Duke of Espernon 388 St. Jean de Luz taken by the Spaniard 565 St. Lucs Disgrace, with the reasons of it 19, 20 St. Tropes taken by the Duke of Espernon, 150 Retaken by Mesples 179 Savoy practices the Marshal Byron 286 La Sauvitat taken by Assault 580 Sedition of Guienne 535 Siege of Perigueux raised by the Duke of Espernon 107 Sentence of Excommunication against the Duke of Espernon 515 Separation betwixt the Duke de Candalle and the Duchess his Wife 278 Sieurs de Vaous Brother's desert the Duke of Espernon 176 Skirmish betwixt the Dukes of Espernon and Guise 179 Sobole Deputy Governor of Metz, 230 His ingratitude, 231 He is deposed from his Government 232 Society of the Jesuits reestablished in Metz 233 Socoa taken by the Spaniard 565 Soubize invades the Country of Medoc, 434 He is defeated 435 Spain and Savoy invade the Duke of Mantua 460 Spanish Forces invade Picardy, 561 And Guienne 562 Spanish Army defeated by the Duke de la Valette 582 Speech of the Duke of Espernon to the King 78 Speech of the Duke of Espernon in the Council 30 Speech of the Duke of Espernon to his Officers, 153 Another 173 Speech of the Duke of Espernon to the Queen upon the Death of Henry the Fourth of France 254 Speech of the Duke of Espernon to the Parliament of Paris 209 T. De Thou involved in the Ruin of Cinq-Mars, Grand Escuyer of France 635 Tilting at Bourdeaux 440 Toiras sent by the Duke de Luines to the Duke of Espernon 369 Truce betwixt Spain, and the United Provinces concluded 248 V. VAlette Duke forces le Pas de Suze, 461 He is in disgrace, 597 Flies into England, 598 He is in his Absence sentenced to Death 602 Varennes 621 Verneque slain in the Levant 280 Verthamont Intendant de la Justice in Guienne 473 Villandry slain at Aglimant 280 Villebois taken by the Duke of Espernon 127 Villemur relieved by the Duke of Espernon 143 Vincentio Ludovici sent from the Queen Mother to the Duke of Espernon 322 W. WAR with England, 447 Whereupon follows a Commotion of the Huguenot Party in France 451 War with Savoy 471 Worthy Act of a mean Fellow 551 THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. The First Book. JOHN Lewis de Nogaret, and de la Valette Duke of Espernon, whose History I attempt to write, though he were, in the Progress of a long Life, for the most part the Favourite of Fortune, stood notwithstanding no less obliged to Nature for the advantages he came into the world withal by his Noble Extraction. The Duke's Extraction. He was descended from an Illustrious Family in the Higher Gascony, and so ancient, that it has continued above five hundred years from Male to Male, without intermission; a truth I could without much difficulty prove, out of the Records, and Evidences in my Custody, did not his Genealogy, already drawn by a more skilful hand, render that pains unnecessary in this place. I shall therefore only undertake a Narrative of the principal Actions of his Life, without troubling my Reader, or myself, with a superfluous Catalogue of his Ancestors. The matter, of which I intent to treat, is of itself so ample, as might find work enough for a better Pen; and although birth be acknowledged by all to be the foundation, upon which all superstructures of Fortune do ordinarily erect themselves, I should not nevertheless make any mention of this Dukes, had not the merit and virtue of john de Valette his Father such a relation to the History of his Son, as will not permit their names to be separated without manifest injury to the one, or the other. Finding myself then obliged to look a little back, and to say something of his Father before I come to him, I shall tell you (with the best Historians of that time) that he was ranked amongst the greatest Captains of this Kingdom; and that by the mere consideration of his Prudence, and Valour, without any advantage of Favour, he was made Campmaster to the Light Horse of France, and the King's Lieutenant General in Guienne; a Province abounding in Nobility, and Gentry, and men of such spirits, as would have made a difficulty of their Obedience to any Superior, where there had not been an indisputable concurrence of Merit, and Blood. But these two qualities, happily meeting in the person of monsieur de la Valette, gave him so great an interest, if not so absolute a power in that Country, that notwithstanding it was during the time of his Government unquiet and mutinous in many places, and in some even to a contempt of the King's Royal Power; yet his Authority, never received in those very places the least affront, or contradiction. He commanded Armies in chief, which were led, paid, armed, provided for, and kept together by his Conduct and Care; and I myself have seen many Acts and Monuments of that time which sufficiently discover the Power and Dignity he preserved entire, even in the most difficult functions of his charge. It was he, who in the Battles of Dreux, of jarnac, and of Moncountour, who in the Skirmishes of jasennes, of Rene le Duc, and in all the most signal actions of his time, exercising the Office of Comp-Master to the Light Horse, by his courage and conduct won to himself a principal share of the Honour due to the successes of the Royal Arms; and chiefly in the Battle of jarnac, which he undertook with so much prudence, and fought it with so much bravery, that * D' Avila. they who write the Transactions of that time, attribute supereminently to him the reputation of that day's Victory. It was he that made the brave Retreat of Houdan, one of the most memorable Exploits of that Age, which, though it be recorded by other Writers, deserves to be recited here; and the circumstances, which I have several times heard repeated to the Duke his Son, will not render a relation suspected that stands justified by our own * Mr. De Tho● D' A●bign●. Historians. The Huguenot Army had laid siege to the City of Chartres, and that of the King was disposed to relieve it; but that being a work of greater preparation, and leisure, than the condition of the besieged could well admit, the Royal Party conceived, that to disturb the Enemy's Camp with frequent Alarms would give the defendants some convenient respite, till a sufficient succour might be made ready to come. Mounsieur de la Valette was he that would take upon him to execute this design, Remarkable exploits of john de la Valette the D●●e's Father. and accordingly keeping himself for the most part on Horseback, he gave so good an account of what he had undertaken, that few days past wherein he obtained not some signal advantage over the Enemy: Now beating up one quarter, now alarming another, with such an active and unwearied diligence, as put the Enemy to an unintermitted duty, and forced them continually to stand to their Arms. The Admiral Coligny, who commanded at this Leaguer under the Prince of Conde, nettled at the inconveniences his Army suffered by these frequent inroads of Mounsieur de la Valette, meditatated with himself a revenge, and to lay a Trap to catch him: to which purpose he stole privately from his Camp with 3500 Horse; Mounsieur de la Valette having but 500 in all, lay baiting his Horses in a Wood for the execution of his enterprise. The Admiral, who had observed his motion, surprised him in this posture, set upon him, and charged him, almost before perceived: notwithstanding all which, he found a brave resistance, and Mounsieur de la Valette without being astonished, ●either at the presence of so great a Captain, or the inequality of their Armies, having given his Soldier's time to mount, charged him several times with advantage, and made good his Retreat for six Leagues together in the open Country of Beausse, the Admiral never being able, during the retreat, either to break his order, or force him to a general engagement: an action of so high a repute, that there are few Historians who have not set a particular mark upon it for one of the most memorable of that time. If we yet pass from his public actions of Command, to inquire into the private engagements of his single person, I can perhaps fit you with as remarkable a story of that kind as you have read. jane Albret Queen of Navarre, a great Fautress to those of the Reformed Religion, of which she herself also made public Profession, desirous to draw all places within her demean into the same persuasion, presented herself before Leitoure to be there received. A Town of so advantageous a situation, and therefore so considerable in Guienne, that the successive Governors of that Province have ever had a particular regard to the preservation of that place, Mounsieur de la Valette who had received private Instructions from King Charles the Ninth, to have an eye to the actions of this Princess, and to frustrate her designs; but with all outward show of respect (the King being unwilling to break openly with her) having intelligence, that she meant to attempt that place, prevented her by his diligence, and at her coming refused her entrance into that Town. The Queen highly incensed at this affront, makes her complaint to the King, who, to satisfy her, seemed in public to condemn an action, which in his heart he highly approved, commanding him to go as far as Pau, where the Queen then resided, and there by all the submissive means imaginable to make his excuse. Mounsieur de la Valette having received this command, attended only by one Page very well mounted, and another inferior servant, takes his journey to the Queen; to whom he humbly offered all the excuses, and submissions, that the dignity of the offended party could reasonably exact from a meaner offender, and for a higher offence: But this Princess, of a sex and condition not apt to forget an Injury, was by no means satisfied with whatever he could say to appease her; and whether it were, that she discovered to two Gentlemen of her Court, whereof one was called pinson's, and the other Bisquerre, that nothing but the death of Mounsieur de la Valette could satisfy her; or that they of themselves (as Courts ordinarily produce wicked instruments enough to execute the passions of the Great) voluntarily meditated his ruin, is yet to be discovered: But so it was that these two combined together to lie in wait for him by the way he was to return, and to dispatch him. Mounsieur de la Valette having taken his leave of Pau, without being able with all the submission he could use, and with all the Interest he could make, to reconcile himself to the Queen, was now on his own way home in the same equipage he came, when his servant, looking accidentally back, perceived three men rush out of a Wood hard by, and the two foremost (who were armed) to come upon the spur directly towards his Master, the third it seems being (as it was afterward reported) one of the Queen's Domestics, sent rather to be a witness of, than an assistant in the intended assassinate. Mounsieur de la Valette at the first sight apprehending them for what indeed they were, and their business for what really it was, immediately commanded his Page to alight, and having mounted his Horse, spurred boldly upon them, with so much gallantry and success, that he left them both dead upon the place. I have often seen the Sword he made use of in this occasion, and have often heard the manner of the action related to the Duke in the very same terms I deliver it here. From this wise and valiant Captain (the Epithets with which all the Historians of that time have honoured the Virtue of this great man) and from jane de Saint Lary de Bellegarde, Sister to the Marshal de Dellegarde, and Niece to the Marshal de Termes, were descended Bernard, jean Lovis, and another jean de Nagaret, and de la Valette, the eldest in the year 1553. jean Lovis in May, 1554, and the youngest died almost as soon as born. They had likewise issue three Daughters, Helen, Catharine, and Mary, the eldest of which having engaged her affection, before her Brother rose to favour, with the Marquis of Rovillac a young Gentleman of good quality in the Country, preferred him to many others her Brother afterwards offered to her: The second was married to the Count de Bouchage Brother to the Duke of joyeuse fellow Favourite with jean Lovis, from which match sprung Catherine de joyeuse now Duchess of Guise. The last married the Count of Brienne, of the House of Luxemberg, and she died without Issue, within a few years after she was married. The two Brothers Bernard, and jean Lovis, having been brought up in their Father's House till the ages of thirteen, and fourteen years, were from thence sent to the College of Navarre at Paris, there to continue their studies; where, amongst other instructions, they had particular charge often to see, and diligently to observe Mounsieur de Villeroy, than Secretary of State, and a man looked upon as an extraordinary person in that employment. Mounsieur de la Valette esteeming him for his intimate, and assured friend, hoped in him to establish such a friendship for his Children in their greener years, as might one day be of great use and advantage to them: so hard it is, even for the wisest to foresee the events of things, this very man proving at last, amongst all the great Ministers, that governed the Affairs of that time, the only, or the greatest enemy to their Advancement and Fortune. After some years' continuance of their studies at Paris, Anno 157●. the report of a War, spread from all parts, so inflamed the noble courages of these two young Gentlemen, that it was impossible longer to restrain them from the exercise of Arms. They considered Letters now as an obstacle to something nobler they conceived themselves obliged to profess; so that their Governor fearing some sally of youth, should he carry too rude a hand over them, was constrained to give Mounsieur de la Valette timely notice of the disposition of his Sons. Their Father either unwilling to cross them in their first desires, or loath to discourage so early and so generous resolutions, and considering the maturity of their age, now grown up to Man, and fit to undergo the hardships of War, upon the first intimation called them home, to place them by his own side, there to share with him the fortune of War, which chanced to be about the beginning of the troubles that happened in the year 1570. Mounsieur de la Valette, having by the great services he had done the King in his Armies attracted the envy or jealousy of the other Chiefs, who were more diligent at Court than he, was by their procurement sent away into his Government to oppose, as was pretended, the designs and erterprises, that those of the Reformed Religion daily practised in several parts of that Province. And whether this were effectively the true, or but the pretended cause of his dispatch into Guienne, so it was that he was commanded there to reside, which he accordingly did, and during that residence performed many notable exploits, to the advantage of his Master's Interest: amongst which I cannot omit the mention of one, that particularly relates to the honour of his second Son, whose History I have undertaken, and to whom his Father had given the name of Caumont, The first Exploit of jean Lovis called Caumont. by which we shall for some time call him. In an encounter that happened near to Mauvasin, whether Mounsieur de la Valette had carried his two Sons, he charged so far into the Enemy's Body, that his Horse being killed under him, he was himself in manifest danger of his life, when Caumont seeing his Father in that peril, threw himself desperately in amongst them, and being well seconded by some few of the Troop, behaved himself so well as to disengage and bring him off; paying in this first trial of his Arms, by an act of no less Piety than Valour, part of the obligation due to him from whom he had received his being. And this was his first exploit. He passed some years at this rate under his Father's Discipline, Anno 1573. but a Province was a Theatre too narrow for the acts his courage was likely to produce, ambition began already to make him aspire to greater things; which his Father perceiving, and willing to encourage so generous a passion, resolved to send him, together with his elder Brother, to the Siege of Rochel, that was then sitting down. He was the rather inclined to send them to that place, because he himself was to have no share in the honour of that action, prevented by the jealousy of the Mareschals de Byron, and Bellegarde, who although they were both of them his near relations, and the best reputed Captains of their time, employed nevertheless their utmost interest to hinder Mounsieur de la Valette, from serving in that occasion. They very well knew his merit, with the favour, and esteem, he had with the Duke of Anjou, who was to command at that Siege, and foreseeing that such a concurrent, as he, was likely not a little to eclipse the glory they intended to engross wholly to themselves, Anno 1574. they carried on their design with that dexterity, that he was not so much as once called to that service. This ill office was so much the more sensible to him, as it made him lose the Mareschals Staff, which had been promised him before; an injury that, no doubt, he would have discovered, how highly he had resented, had he not been prevented by Death, the Arbiter of all Humane Controversies. All he could at that time do (to let them see he understood them to be no friends of his) was to forbid his Sons to see them, or to be presented by either of them to the Duke of Anjou; desiring rather they should receive that favour from the Duke of Guise, a Prince with whom he had acquired a great interest, as having oftern served under his Command; but most signally at the Battle of Dreux, where he fought at the head of the Reserve, with which, when all other hopes were l●st, the Duke won that day, and wholly routed the Enemies victorious Army. To him therefore he commanded his Sons to address themselves, for their access to the Duke, an occasion the Duke of Guise embraced with so much fervour, and presented them after that obliging manner, with that honourable mention of the Father's great Merit, and the great hope of his Sons, that they could not possibly have chosen out a man, that could more handsomely, more obligingly, or with greater integrity have performed so important an Office. The infinite civility of the Duke of Guise, together with the singular, and natural art he had to acquire men to him, gained Caumont so absolutely to his service, that it was with no little reluctancy, that he afterwards withdrew himself from him; which nevertheless he was shortly after enforced to do, the divers interests that swayed the one and the other, looking so several ways, that it was not possible longer to continue their intelligence. Their friendship began to grow cold, before it came to an open Rupture; Caumont not having received from the Duke, that support, and assistance, he promised to himself, from so powerful, and so sincere a frined, as he took him to be: But that which struck the main blow was this: The death of Mounfieur de la Valette immediately following the Siege of Rochel, his several Employments lay vacant by his decease, which made Caumont repair to Court, in hopes by the Duke's favour at least to obtain the charge of Campmaster to the Light Horse for his elder Brother, (neither of them yet presuming by reason of their youth to pretend to the Lieutenancy of Guienne) which the Duke of Guise not only peremptorily refused to intermeddle in, but withal carried on the interest of some other pretenders, with so much vigour and efficacy, that in fine he excluded both the Brothers from all their Father's employments. Upon which unexpected unkindness Caumont retired so much dissatisfied with the Duke, that since that time, neither his Brother▪ nor he, ever had any complacency for the house of Guise. The Brothers after this repulse spent some time at home in order to a settlement of their own private affairs, which the quietness of that time (a general Peace being before concluded) gave them leisure enough to do. But Caumont Caumonts' first Journey to Court. was impatient of this Country life, and seeing there was now no more employment for his Arms, he put himself into an equipage to go to Court, to try if he could, by his own endeavours, obtain that for himself, which the memory of his Father's great services had not power to retain to his forgotten Family. It was about the end of the Year 1574. that he undertook this journey, King Henry the Third being then newly returned from Poland, a Prince in●●●nitely inclined to Peace, and to that, Catharine de Medicis his Mother being also wearied out with the former troubles, they bent their ●oynt endeavours to the continuing of Affairs in the same quiet posture they then were, to the extinguishing of all old discontents, and to the avoiding all possible occasions of new. They knew very well that none had power to beget new mischiefs, or to disturb the present Peace of the Kingdom, except the Duke of Alencon, or the King of Navarre, both which they politicly made, as it were, prisoners to the Court, by the vigilancy of Spies, though without Guards: or other visible marks of restraint. The King of Navarre, as he whose Courage, and great Qualities were more to be suspected, had the stricter eye upon him; and although he professed himself a Catholic, yet his Fortune, and Confederates, obliging him to the contrary Religion, they were in a perpetual jealousy, lest he should at one time or another embrace the Profession, and Party of those with whom his nearest concerns and chiefest interests lay. The Queen Mother, one of the most experienced Princesses of her time, and a Woman whose Prudence, and subtlety extended to all the Arts of Government, knowing as well how upon occasion to order the allurements of Peace, as to guide and govern the more important Affairs in the Tumults of War, being no stranger to the amorous inclinations of the King of Navarre, Anno 1575. 1576. by daily invitations to Plays, Masques, Revels, and other entertainments, made the Court continually to shine in all the lustre and temptation of Beauty, if possible to divert the designs, and to soften the Martial humour of this Prince, in the more delicate delights of vacancy and peace: which kind of life, it may easily be imagined, could not be unpleasant to a man so young, and so inclined as the King then was. The Court being now nothing but jollity, the whole Nobility of France had nothing else to do, but to divide themselves according to their several inclinations into the Parties, and Factions of these two young Princes; amongst which Caumonts' particular liking, and Affection to his person, and great virtues having inclined him to the King of Navarres side, he was by him received with so infinite respect and kindness, that in a very short time he stood equal to the best in the highest degree of Favour, and trust. Of which the King could not give him a greater testimony, than by discovering to him his intended escape from Court, and by commending thereby so important a secret to his fidelity, and assistance. Our Histories have glanced at the grounds upon which the King took this resolution, The memoirs of Queen Mar. which he shortly after executed with great secrecy, and a very slender train; For pretending to go hunt in the Parks of Saint Germains, he thence with only four or five of his greatest confidents (of which number Caumont was one) made his escape. I have often heard him say, that he thought himself so obliged by that favour, that he had never separated himself from that Prince, had not he first separated himself from his obedience to the Church. He accompanied him in his retirement as far as Alenson, Aubigné. whither the King was no sooner come, but that his Physician invited him to be Godfather to one of his Children. The Ceremony was performed in the Huguenot Congregation, and after their Directory, as it may be presumed, it was beforehand determined it should be. Whereupon Caumont, taking the usual liberty the King had ever till that time freely allowed him, converted all the passages of that Ceremony into Mirth and Laughter: But the King, afraid no doubt lest this should produce some effect that might hinder his main designs, secretly chid him, for what he had already done, giving him caution for the future to forbear such railleries, and to behave himself with more respect in occasions wherein he himself was so seriously concerned. Which sharp reproof giving Caumont sufficiently to understand, that although the King did not as yet make public profession of that Religion, yet that he was notwithstanding so moderate, and so lukewarm a Catholic, that he only wanted a handsome opportunity to do it. He resolved also to quit his service upon the first occasion that fairly presented itself: An effect (besides his own Devotion to the Church) of a solemn Promise his Brother and he had jointly made to their dying Father, never to serve other than a Catholic Prince. From thenceforward therefore, he sought all opportunities, civilly to disengage himself from the service of this King, which soon after a light Indisposition of body gave him a handsome Pretence to do; for finding himself not very well, and continuing foam few days in the same distemper without any amendment, Caumont. withdraws himself from the King of Navarre. he entreated leave to retire into the privacy and convenience of his own house, for the recovery of his health; which the King (though he doubtless well enough understood the meaning of that request) without any difficulty, or the least show of unkindness, freely permitted him to do. France began now to see itself threatened with the approaching troubles, which the Duke of Alenson's, and the King of Navarre's departure from Court, (happening much about the same time) shortly after produced in the Kingdom; neither could the Queen Mother, notwithstanding her great vigilancy, and care to prevent those disorders, the discontents of these two Princes, together with those of the Huguenot Faction, were likely to bring upon the State, with all her industry and prudence hinder men, in that Crisis of Affairs, from running into the tumult of Arms. It was in this juncture of time, that Caumont prepared himself for a second journey to Court: C●umont's second journey to Court, and the beginning of his Favour. He had had the honour to be known to the King, first at the Siege of Rochel, and afterwards in his dependence upon the King of Navarre; so that these preceding habitudes and acquaintance, made him resolve to go, and tie himself directly to his Majesty's person and service. Having therefore left his own house with this resolution, he takes his journey to Bordeaux, where the Marquis de Villars, a great friend and an old companion in Arms of Mounsieur de la Valette his Father, and now Governor of Guienne, then resided; and where he was not a little busy to provide against the disorders which at that time threatened that Province. Caumont at his arrival gives him a visit, acquaints him with the true design of his journey, and withal offers his service, if he had any to command him to Court Villars readily accepts his offer, charges him with Letters of Credit to the King, and, the ways betwixt Bordeaux and Poitiers being very difficult to pass by reason of the continual inroads of the Huguenot party, he informs him of the particular state of the Country, instructs him in the safest ways he was to pass, and finally gives him a full account of the posture wherein his Majesty's Affairs than stood; that he might thereupon receive new orders from the King and Council. Caumont, being glad to present himself to their Majesties with the advantage of so considerable a service, departs, throughly instructed in all the Affairs of Guienne, from Bordeaux to Angoubesme; where he further discourses about his Government with the Marquis of Rufee, Governor of that Town, and Country, and by him finds matters there to be in no better a condition, than those of Guienne. Rufee had made a late denial of that place to the Heads of the Huguenot party, to whom by the Treaty of Champigny, made with the Duke of Alenson, it should have been delivered up for a Cautionary Town. He informs himself of the reasons of Rufees refusal in this case, with other things that concerned the King's Service in that Country, and continues his journey from thence to Poitiers, by the houses of Gentlemen his acquaintance, sometimes with Convoys, but for the most part in the slender guard of his own inconsiderable train. At last by short and wary journeys he arrives at Court, which was then at Blois, though with infinite difficulty and danger; such was the disorder, and confusion, that raged in all the Provinces through which he was to pass. I heard him a few days before his death relate all the particulars of this journey, without omitting the least circumstance that befell him by the way; not without admiration, that a man after threescore and odd years should retain so perfect a memory of such petty accidents (if such aught to be called so) as gave a beginning to the establishment of so prodigious a Fortune. Being come to Court, Anno 1577. he presented himself to the King, delivered the several dispatches he had from Villars, and Rufee, giving his Majesty a particular account of all they had given him in charge. The King immediately commanded him to address himself to the Queen Mother, and to inform her fully of the same things, being at this first Conference highly satisfied with his dexterity, and judgement, and mightily taken with his behaviour, and the gracefulness he observed, in whatever he said, or did: neither indeed could there be a more accomplished Gentleman, than he was at that age of two and twenty, as I have heard men of great judgement say, that very well knew him in those times. His Conference with the Queen Mother proved no less to his advantage with her, than that he had had with the King had done with him; she was pleased to give him a gracious audience, and to take a great liking to his Person; so that the King coming (as it was his constant custom) in the evening to confer about business with her, and ask her if she had seen Caumont, and what her opinion was of him? the Queen made answer, That she had seen, and discoursed with him, and that it was upon men of his condition and merit, that his Majesty ought to repose the Trust, and Confidence of his most important Affairs: which she said as not being unwilling (to the end she might still keep her dominion over the King's affections) that Caumont, though the King had many Favourties already, should yet make one of that number; that so his heart, being divided amongst many, might not too violently incline to one. The King told her he was of her opinion, and the approbation he found in her judgement having justified his own inclinations, after he had entertained her some time with merits of the Father, and the good qualities of the Son, he from thenceforward took a resolution to receive him into a degree of favour, and to place him near his own person, Yet was it not immediately, notwithstanding this auspicious beginning, that Caumont's favour began to appear; neither did he on his part cultivate his springing fortune with an assiduity, and diligence unbecoming his Spirit, and Blood, for whatever testimonies of favour and esteem the King daily discovered to him, there was nevertheless no occasion of action, which he did not greedily embrace, and for which he did not continually neglect all Court Interest, preferring his Honour and Duty before all other Advantages of Fortune. At his return from one of these expeditions, he soon discerned a coldness in his Majesty towards him; and his Court Rivals, who very well saw how precipitiously the King's Affections were bend upon him, had not failed on their part, by their ill offices to weaken that interest during his absence, with all the Art, and Malice they had: but his brave services having acquired his Master's Esteem, he soon recovered his former possession of Grace, and at last settled himself so firm in the King's Bosom, that the favour, which had for a long time before been divided amongst many pretenders, was at last established without reservation in joyeuse, and him, though he had still the greatest share. I have already observed, what an effect Caumonts' negotiation about the Affairs of Guienne had produced with the King and Queen; neither was he so blind to his own interest as not to see it, nor so negligent as not to improve it with all the industry he had. Nor was his diligence less effectual with the Queen Mother, who bore the greatest sway of Affairs, than with the King himself, she ever receiving him with great demonstration of Favour, and Esteem; which he to continue, or to increase, contracted great Familiarities with some of the Maids of Honour of chiefest trust about her, and from their Friendship received no few good Offices in this Foundation of his Fortune. But neither these good Offices, nor the Favour he was by their procurement seated in, had yet produced any thing to his benefit; 'tis true he was looked upon with an Eye of Favour, the King would often speak to him, and in all appearance he was in a hopeful way, but still this was hitherto only appearance, and he reaped no other advantage by it until the Duke of Alenfon's expedition, which was the first time he tasted of his Master's Bounty. After the Treaty of Champigny, which was a little before this time, the King having designed absolutely to disengage his Brother the Duke of Alenson from the Huguenot Party, had to that purpose given him the command of an Army against them. Upon which occasion Caumont failed not to prepare himself to make one, which the King so well approved of, that coming to take his leave, his Majesty having first publicly commended his generous design, ordered him twelve hundred Crowns of Gold, The King's first Bounty to Caumont. out of his privy Purse, to put him into a handsome posture: A largess so seasonable as enabled him to put himself into a better equipage, than otherwise he could conveniently have done; and as he had a mind above his present Fortune, he laid out all the King's Bounty in Horses, Arms, and other Furniture: but above all, he bought himself the finest Tent, that could possibly be seen. The Rendezvous of the Army being appointed to be at Romorentin, the King and Queen Mother, being then at Blois, would themselves see it; and there dismiss the Duke of Alenson, with all possible demonstration of Honour, and Kindness. Caumont failed not to Muster up his Equipage, upon this occasion; and for the better advantage, caused his Tent to be set up in that part of the Camp, that lay most in view of the Queen's Lodgings, to the end chiefly, that her Maids of Honour might more conveniently see it. The King who never failed (as I have observed before) to visit his Mother once a day, as he was one day leaning with her in her Chamber Window, took particular notice of this Tent, which being for its fineness remarkable above the rest, the King and Queen both fancied it to be Caumont's; and the better to be satisfied, sent one purposely to inquire; at whose return, finding it to be so indeed, his gallantry was highly commended by them both. Soon after coming to take his leave of the King, and to receive his Commands, he was dismissed with so high testimonies of Affection, as might for the future give him just occasion to hope for greater things. These observations may perhaps seem light to some upon such a subject; but since Fortune suffers nothing to be lost to happy men, and that she is industrious to collect, and improve the least of their actions to make them succeed to their advantage, I thought it not altogether improper, by her example, to make mention of these passages; which, how inconsiderable soever in themselves, have been nevertheless the steps, and gradations, by which this great man afterwards rose to such an eminence of Fortune. The Duke of Alensons expedition succeeded according to the King's desire, he took la Charité, and Issoire, and the Army was in a condition to perform greater things, had not the over-strict League, and Friendship betwixt the Duke of Alenson, Caumont follows the Duke of Alenson in the War. and the Duke of Guise (his Lieutenant General in this Employment) begot a suspicion in the King. To break then this Friendship, the King began to hearken to overtures of Peace; which, although they were not presently concluded, yet the mere proposition was pretence enough to call home the Duke of Alenson, and to give Caumont opportunity to return to Court. At his coming back he was less favourably received, than he had reason to expect, through the jealousy of those who had been more industrious to improve the King's Favour, than he had been: Yet could not this hinder him (a new occasion of the Siege of Brovage He goes to the Siege of Brovage. presenting itself) once more to expose, and abandon, his springing Favour to the malicious Offices of his Court-Concurrents. He went to this Siege, where he behaved himself so well (as he had done before at la Charit●, and Issoire) that in all these expeditions he still won the great liking, and approbation of his Generals; who, being just to his merit, in the testimony of his actions, confirmed the King more and more in the opinion, he had before conceived, of his Worth and Valour. This esteem of Caumont took at last so deep root in this Prince's Breast, that it was no more in the power of Envy to shake it; and he had him in so high consideration, that he never used him with the least severity, nor ever gave him the least injurious word; an indulgence not common to his other Favourites, who were often subject to very passionate language: But the King in his noble nature was pleased to spare a heart, which, he had before observed, was too stout to submit to Injuries, what advantage soever might accrue by such a patience. Of which (now we are upon this discourse) I shall give you an instance in this place; although the thing happened not just at this time, but after Caumont's more apparent Favour, not tying myself, in these youthful relations of him, so much to the order of time, as to the truth of things. The King his Master being an infinite lover of neatness in clothes, and being none were admitted into the Bedchamber without his white Shoes, black Velvet Galoches, his long Stockings, and other Vestments wherein they were to observe a punctual Decorum, no wonder if the Favourties, who were continually in the King's Eye, were especially tied to these strict rules of decency. Caumont appearing one day before the King unbuttoned, his Stockings untied, and in a greater negligence, and disorder, than he was wont to be, received a sever check; nay his chiding proceeded so far, as that the King forbade him ever to appear before him again in the like posture. Caumont in his heat interpreting this for an absolute command, without condition, immediately withdraws himself, resolved (as I have since heard him say) to take Post, and for ever to retire himself from Court. But the King, who very well knew what an impression his words had made with his Favourite, and fearing lest the rashness of his Youth might make him commit a fault to his own ruin, commanded him presently to be called back; saying, That his heat and folly would destroy him, if he were left to himself; but that he had in him withal Qualities, of which good use might be made: and, that he would therefore have an eye to his preservation. Upon his return the King having changed his Humour, Caumont changed his Resolution, not without considering upon how light an occasion he was like to have forfeited his Master's Favour, and to have destroyed the hopes of his own rising Fortune; And from the knowledge of his fault drew this advantage, to become less hot, and passionate for the future, and to observe such an elegancy and neatness in his habit, even to an extreme old age, as might serve for an example to the younger sort of men. The Surrender of Brovage His return from the Siege of Brovage to Court. was soon succeeded by a Peace concluded at Bergerac about the end of the year 1577. by which cessation Caumont had liberty to return to Court, and there without any more divertion, or impediment, to husb●nd his Master's Royal Inclinations towards him. But as he had many Concurrents in the same Design, Anno 1578. so the King for some time suspended the declaration of his Favour; though Caumont was one of those to whom his Majesty showed a particular Inclination, and whose freedom, and boldness was nothing displeasing to him: His Wit, fine Fashion, and a particular Grace he had in performing all his exercises, gave him a great advantage over the other young men of his condition; which he managed so well, that he still out-shone all his equals, and appeared the true Favourite in men's opinion, though his Favour was not yet so fully manifest. All this year 1578. past in this deliberation, and the Court was in suspense which of all the pretenders to favour would prove to be the Favourites indeed, when at last the King in the beginning of the year 1579. Anno 1579. at the Ceremony of the institution of the Knights of the Order of the Holy Ghost, appearing public with Caumont, Darques (afterwards Duke of joyeuse) St. ●uc, and D'O in the same Livery with himself, there was then no further dispute of their favour; and upon this discovery, all the Courtiers according to their inclinations, or interest, divided themselves into the several Parties, and dependencies of these four great men. We have now brought Caumont upon the great Theatre of the World, exposed, not only to the sight, but also to the censure and envy of most men. We shall hereafter see how he disengaged himself from those snares, and designs that were laid by his Adversaries to undermine his greatness, during the space of threescore and ten years, which he lived after his first rise of Favour. From the time of this establishment of his Fortune, he had the good hap to have all the most eminent men about the Court, either for Arts or Arms, to apply themselves to him. Mounsieur du Perron, one of the greatest Ornaments of his Age, was of this number, together with Rousard, Des Portes, and many other persons of great Merit, and Esteem. But amongst them all, Caumont taking particular notice of the great worth of Mounsieur du Perron, and considering his Virtue to be above all the advantages, he in himself was able to procure for him; took an especial care to prefer him to the King's knowledge, and at last, with the assiduity and recommendation of a true friend, placed him in his Majesty's chiefest confidence; an Office which he afterwards continued with so constant a friendship, as contributed no little to that greatness, to which he was sometime after advanced. Saint Blancard since Marshal of France, and Duke de Byron, with the greatest part of the Gascon Nobility that then followed the Court, put themselves also into his dependence: his Employments, and the great credit he had with the King, having in a short time afforded him means to gratify a number of gallant Gentlemen, and to acquire many Friends, and Servants, whose Valour and Fidelity contributed much to the preservation of his Life, and Fortune. But his youth, having been bred up in the rudeness of War, required some necessary improvements, the better to fit him for his Master's conversation, who was himself the most accomplished Prince of his time. The King would take care for his second Education, that he might be the more proper for those Employments, which his Majesty's confidence in him, and the necessity of the present times, were shortly to call him to; and to that purpose commanded Des Ports to be continually about his Person, which he accordingly obeyed; and not only by his diligence bettered him in the French Tongue, which then first began to purge itself from the Barbarism of past Ages: but having withal found in him a capacity that outstripped his Precepts, he in a short time infused into him such general notions, as, having opened his understanding, made him capable of those important negotiations in which he was afterwards employed. The same affection which had made the King so solicitous to embellish his Mind, made him no less careful to establish his Fortune; though he still concealed the daily progress of his Bounty from him, not being willing it seems that he should so much as trouble himself with the management of his own Domestic Affairs; but commanded Fontenay Marevil a Gentleman of quality, and of whose integrity his Majesty had a particular Esteem, to take upon him that care, and twice a week to bring him an account of Caumonts' business, as another Person of Quality did of that of joyeuse. From these two Gentlemen the King had still advice, of all Offices, and Revenues, that fell vacant; out of which his Malesty made choice of such for his two Favourites, as he thought most proper, and advantageous for them, and commanded their dispatch; which afterward Caumont, and joyeuse were to solicit, but without the least dispensation, notwithstanding their Favour, from the due and customary forms of Law; where, if any difficulty, or opposition chanced to arise, his Majesty ever interposed his Justice to overrule them, if justly they were to be overruled: neither did they ever receive any Grace, or Largess, which did not either first pass the Seal, the Chamber of Accounts, or an Act of Parliament. In these beginnings, the two young Favourites were continually called to all the Councils, not to give their advice, from which by their immaturity, and inexperience, they were exempt, but to inform, and to inure themselves to business: Which the better to exercise them in, the King himself was pleased often in private to propose weighty questions to them, and to make them debate them before him, without exposing their early Opinions to the Experience of his graver Council initiating them with his own Precepts, and forming them with his own hand; and that rather with the tenderness and indulgence of a Father to his Children, than with the authority of a Master over his Servants, About this time (as I have already observed) the Order of the Holy Ghost was instituted, and the first Ceremony was already past: where, although Caumont had no share, by reason of his Youth, but was deferred to the next Creation, which happened a few years after; yet his Majesty, though he judged him too young to be admitted into that honourable Fraternity, thought him notwithstanding sufficient to treat with Philibert D. of Savoy, Caumont's Embassy to Savoy. though he were one of the most discreet, and most circumspect Princes of his time. This Prince had raised a considerable Army, which he intended to employ against the Genoveses; and the King, who was obliged to protect them, dispatched Caumont to the Duke to dissuade him from that enterprise. His negotiation in this Affair met with great difficulties, and infinite oppositions, both from the House of Austria, the League, and the Pope; which nevertheless he overcame with that dexterity, that having untied all those knots of State, he obtained full satisfaction for the King his Master, and acquired so much Reputation, and Esteem with the Duke, as at the same time to obtain a signal Favour, and a timely assistance for himself. The occasion this. The Marshal de Bellegarde his Uncle, having for some time possessed the King's Favour, was at last, through the ill Offices of some, fallen into disgrace, and had thereupon retired himself into the Marquisate of Saluzzo, of which Province he had the Government; and whither being come, he had chased Charles Birague, the King's Lieutenant in that Marquisate, out of all the Places and strong holds he had formerly possessed; which he had taken upon him to do, without any order from the King: and indeed Bellegarde unsatisfied with the Court, rather endeavoured to fortify himself, and to secure his own interest, than to stand upon the niceties, and punctilio's of his duty. This disorder gave a hot alarm to all Italy, who knew not to what Bellegardes designs might tend; and the Queen Mother, desirous in time to prevent any ill consequence, had herself taken a Journey to accommodate the business, and had composed it to the King's satisfaction, and seemingly to the Marshal's too, who had received a ratification of whatever he had done: but the Marshal was no sooner returned into his Government, than he fell immediately sick, and of so violent a distemper, as in few days carried him away, not without vehement suspicion of poison. Many being persuaded, that his turbulent spirit having given the Court an apprehension, that a discontented man of his Courage, would be hard to be continued in the due limits of his Obedience, they thought it better at once to dispatch him out of the way, than to be at the continual trouble would be necessary to contain him in his duty. His Son, whom he le●t very young, and much unsettled in his Government, soon found himself in danger to be turned out by the Faction of the People, the whole Country in general, favouring the Biragues, Gentlemen of good quality, and Natives of that Country; whom doubtless they would have restored to the Government, had not Caumont, in the time of his Embassy in Savoy, obtained some Troops from the Duke for his Kinsman's assistance, with which he brought him so opportune, and so effectual a succour, that he soon suppressed the Faction, placed Bellegarde secure in his charge, and left him strong enough to defend himself; until the King, whose interest required a Minister of greater Experience in that Country, called him from thence to place la Valette, Caumont's elder Brother in his stead, giving to Bellegarde in recompense the Governments of Xaintonge, Angoumois, and the Country of Auluis. It was during the interim of this Voyage, that the disgrace of St. Luc, one of the Favourites, was concluded. D' Aubigné tell us that he learned the cause of this disgrace from St. Lucs own mouth, and thereupon tells an impudent Story: but they who well consider this malevolent Author's way of writing, will easily judge it his own invention, to bespatter the King's reputation; against whom (besides the interest of his Party) he had a particular spleen, having been ill used, and slighted upon many occasions. Of which he himself cannot forbear to complain in his History, and which confession in itself is sufficient to discredit all the calumnies he has forged against the Honour of this Prince. Here then take the true reason of his disgrace. The King, falling in love with a Lady of great Quality, St. Lucs disgrace. had made Caumont, and St. Luc the confidents of his Passion; shortly after which Caumont was sent upon the Embassy of Savoy, spoke of before: and St. Luc, in this interval of his absence, discovers the secret of the King's love to his Wife, who was of the Family of Brissac, and his Wife immediately to the Queen, who could not long dissemble her discontent to the King her Husband; but reproached him with his Love, and that with so many circumstances, that in effect he could not much deny it. The King infinitely concerned at the infidelity of his Confidents, to whose discretion he had only entrusted that secret, falls upon St. Luc, Caumont being out of the reach of his anger, complains how basely he was betrayed, and in fine, reproaches him with the discovery. St. Luc excuses himself, and, that he might do it with the better colour, charges Caumont (whose absence exposed him to that ill office) with the fault; but the King, who had before begun to distaste St. Luc, ever since his Marriage with a Wife, who was very partial to the House of Guise (a Family whose designs were every day more and more suspected to him) was still in his own Judgement more inclined to condemn him, than Caumont of the Treachery. Yet for the better clearing of the truth, which he was impatient to know, he addresses himself to the Queen, pressing, and conjuring her, to tell him freely, from whom she had received the knowledge of his Love, at the same time confessing on his part, the naked, and undisguised truth, the more to oblige her to deal clearly, and candidly with him. The Queen though at first she defended herself with many excuses, and was very loath to betray her intelligence, was at last (as there are few secrets which are not communicative betwixt persons of so near relation) overcome, and confessed that it was from St. Lucs Wife she had received that secret. There needed no more to confirm the King in the prejudice he had before conceived against St. Luc: and his Majesty believing there was more of design, than levity in this miscarriage, from thenceforth conceived a mortal animosity against him, and was resolute to his ruin; yet would he defer the discovery of his displeasure till Caumont's arrival, who was now upon return, that he might first know, how ill an office his companion, and friend had attempted to do him. Caumont was no sooner returned, than the King asked him what opinion he had of St. Lucs friendship? who answered, That he took him to be his best friend, as he knew himself to be his; and that there was a particular, and strict friendship betwixt them. The King told him he must no longer continue in that error, and thereupon acquainted him with the whole story, and with the resolution he had taken against him. Caumont (notwithstanding the ill Offices he had received) failed not in this occasion to perform all the duties of a true friend, but employed his power with the King, to persuade his Majesty into milder resolutions: but not being able with all he could say to prevail against the just indignation he had conceived against him; and seeing him exasperated to such a height, as was like enough to transport him to the greatest extremities, he gave notice to St. Luc speedily to retire from Court, which he accordingly did, and fled to Brovage. This is the true story of his disgrace, which I have received from a more faithful, and less passionate hand than that of Aubign●. It was at this same time of Caumont's return from Savoy, Anno 1580. that the King found himself engaged in a more dangerous Affair, than this before related. The Huguenot Party began now to break out into open insurrection: and their Rebellion was of so much the greater consequence, by how much it interrupted, and overthrew all the designs he had laid, to establish the peace of his Kingdom. The King having had, and with great reason, the greatness of the House of Guise long suspected to him, had determined with himself, but insensibly, and with all security, to abate that growing greatness; and to bring his designs the better to pass, and with the least noise, he continually disposed all the great employments, and most considerable Offices, as they fell void, into the hands of his own Creatures, without distributing any part into the power of the Guises, or of any that he knew depended upon them, or that he suspected to be of their Faction. The House of Guise easily enough penetrating into the depth of this design, had fortified themselves more than ever, in their Confederates and Friends, to oppose by strong hand this project of the Kings; and covering with the pretence of the Catholic Religion (of which they had long assumed to themselves the titles of Protectors, either their Ambition (or what they called by a more specious name) the necessity of their Defence, were ready to break out into open Arms. The King, advertised of their designs, was resolved to prevent them, and for a time to lay aside his milder Maxims, and to chastise their insolence with an armed hand: but because he should have wanted means, and strength, if at the same time, he should undertake the House of Guise, the Huguenot Party (which he also intended to cut off in due time) should appear in Arms, he tried to moderate the last, by commanding all the Edicts that had been made in their Favour, to be strictly, and inviolately observed. He granted to the King of Navarre all he could reasonably desire, treating with him like a Prince, that he neither thought it safe to raise too high, nor that he had a desire absolutely to subdue. A proceeding that in all appearance was likely to continue the Peace on that side. And the King had very great reason to hope, that this Prince, and those of his party, would at least give him leisure to suppress the Family of Guise, who as they were dangerous to him, were also their open, and declared Enemies. The suppression of which had at this time been a matter easy, and inevitable, had Affairs continued in this posture. But all these considerations were overruled, and overthrown by so little means, that certainly 'tis worthy our astonishment to consider how light, and how contemptible things will pervert the ordinary course of humane prudence. The Queen of Navarre in this juncture of time retired from Court, much dissatisfied with the King her Brother, as she herself declares in her own Commentaries; and as she was a Princess of a dangerous Wit, a great Spirit, and one that conceived the highest point of generosity to consist in revenge, she thought she could not do the King her Brother a more sensible injury, whose designs she very well knew; nor consequently better satisfy her own revenge, than by stirring up the King her Husband against him. Yet thinking her own interest too weak of itself to prevail in a thing of this consequence, she thought fit to assault him where he lay most open to her, and where he had the least power to defend himself. Having therefore in her train a great many very fine women, and such as were well disciplined in Love Affairs, she won so far upon their obedience; as that they behaving themselves according to her instructions towards the King her Husband, and the young Nobility about him, soon made as many Lovers, Au●ig●é. as there were Servants attending his Person: and by that means seated herself absolute Mistress of that Court. The King of Navarre prepossessed with these ill Councils, resolved upon taking Arms, which he did with that secrecy, that the blow was given before the noise was heard. The design was great, and vast (as they usually are in all commotions) but when it came to execution, all their great projects ended in the surprisal of two important places. The first was Cahors ●etard by the King of Navarre, the other la ●eré, by the Prince of Cond●; Mounsieur Chatillon, in Languedoc, nor Mounsieur Lesdiguieres, in Dauphine not being able to do any considerable service for their party. The King advertized of this disorder, found himself necessitated to alter his first resolutions, and to turn his thoughts to the present danger; so that instead of pursuing the suppression● of the House of Guise, and their League, he was constrained that time, not only to wink at their Faults, but to employ their Persons, and make use of their Interest●y to stop this unexpected Rupture. In which he carried himself with that wisdom, and diligence, as gave no little astonishment to his Enemies, when they saw he had in a moment set three great Armies on foot, to attend their motion, and to oppose and frustrate their attempts. They had principally built their designs upon the opinion of the King's negligence, which they interpreted cowardice, and sloth. But they soon perceived themselves abused in that belief, and found in this occasion, that the pleasure and ease, he was something addicted unto, had not unnerved him from vigorous action, when his Honour and Interest called him abroad. There is one thing very remarkable in this occasion, which is rarely observed in the order of Humane Affairs, that all things succeeded absolutely according to the King's Designs; and Fortune, who is wont to delude the wisest Counsels, submitted here to the King's Prudence, and foresight. His Majesty had great reasons not to oppress the King of Navarre, in this conjuncture; and though he had just cause to be angry with him, yet, he had more to preserve him, to the end that he might in his person maintain a Party to make the League, who were directly opposite to him. He therefore sent against him the Marshal de Byron, rather to spin out the War in exploits of little moment, than to end it at one blow. Into Dauphine, where there was little, or nothing to be done, no more than in Languedoc, he dispatched the Duke of Mayenne, Affairs being at this time in such a condition, that his Majesty was constrained to serve himself with some of those Heads of the League, who were already sworn to it: but he did it withal in an occasion of so little importance, that the Duke was therein likely to acquire no great reputation to himself, nor no great advantage to his Faction. But on the contrary, for what concerned la Feré, as being a Town near to Paris, and in Picardy, where the Hugonots had as yet no other footing, such troublesome neighbours standing highly suspected to his Majesty, he dispatched thither the Marshal de Matignon a Subject of great Merit, and approved Fidelity, to labour in good earnest the recovery of that place. In this Army marched the Favourites, of which Caumont and joyeuse in this expedition got the greatest name; the last by a Harquebus shot he received in his Face, and the other by the taking of the Town; of which success the Historians of that time attribute to him the chiefest reputation. He had entreated of the King the charge of Campmaster to the Regiment of Champagne, that he might have some remarkable employment in this occasion, and with that had obtained the command of a Quarter; so that, nothing necessary being wanting to the advancement of his work he raised by the industry of an ●talian Engineer, a Cavalier by favour of which, having planted a battery, Aubigné. that looked directly into the place, and that shot into the Enemy's Defences, he reduced them to that extremity, that not daring to show their heads upon the Walls, they were soon forced to a capitulation. The first overtures of Surrender were made to Caumont, who most pressed upon them; which the Marshal de Matignon, being displeased at, as jealous of the honour they had done him, to the prejudice (as he conceived) of the command he had at that Siege, he immediately granted to the Deputies, which Caumont had out of respect wholly referred to him, their own conditions, without once calling Caumont to the determination; an injury he so highly resented, that he could not govern his passion from breaking out at the instant, but smartly continued his Battery against the Town (notwithstanding the Articles agreed upon, and signed) and ceased not till the King's Troops were entered into it. But he shortly after had a better revenge: for departing the Camp, without taking leave of the Marshal, and arrived at Court, he obtained from the King the Government of that place, which the Marshal had importunately sued for, and kept it many years after. By this exploit the War ended, which having been undertaken rather out of a capricious humour, than mature deliberation, had the same success, that commonly attends precipitous and indigested Counsels. The Peace that followed, kept Caumont at Court, where his favour daily increased, till it came to such a height, that there was no employment, or benefit, with which the King his Master was not highly pleased to gratify him. Before he obtained the charge of Campmaster to the Regiment of Champagne for himself, he had procured for la Valette his elder Brother, that of Campmaster to the Light Horse; an Employment that had been so worthily discharged by their Father; which I have often heard him say, was the first grace he ever begged of the King, having it seems a desire to retrieve the Offices of his Family for his Brother, and to give him the first advantages of his Favour, reserving nothing, save future hopes for himself: but those hopes were not long suspended, for the esteem the King had of him, being founded upon his courage, and fidelity, had begot in his Majesty so great a passion for him, C●umont's high Favour. that his thoughts were wholly taken up with the contrivance, how to make him great; and he has often been heard to say, he would raise him so high, that he would not so much as reserve to himself the power to pull him down. The Historians of that age give him from henceforward an advantage over joyeuse in the King's Favour, and would make us believe it was so apparent, as to beget a jealousy in joyeuse; but that is a secret I never learned from Caumont's mouth; though it may be presumed that his carriage, and conduct, was more likely to please the King; joyeuse having such a vanity to boast, and make a show of the credit he had with his Master, and of the favours and liberalities he received from him by inordinate profusions, and expense, as did not only bring many inconveniences upon himself, but great murmurings and discontents upon the King: whereas Caumont, who had rather be powerful and esteemed in effect, than in outward show, made a sober, and profitable use of the interest he had in the King; and made his greatness more apparent to discerning men, by the established constancy that tied him fast to his duty, than by the exterior fopperies of pomp, which are but the faint reflections of a true shining lustre. If this stability of his was commendable in any thing, it was much more in the constant aversion he had to the League, to which nothing could ever reconcile him; nor to the heads of that Faction: but on the contrary he took all occasions publicly to exasperate, and affront the Duke of Guise, without regarding the reputation of so great a man, or fearing the danger of so powerful an Enemy; his animosity carrying him so far, as several times to beg leave of the King, that he might fight him man to man, desiring with all his soul to hazard his own life, that he might by an honourable way deliver his Master, from the troubles, and apprehensions, with which the practices of this Duke perpetually afflicted him, though his Majesty would never consent to it. But joyeuse lived after another manner, maintaining a greater intelligence with the House of Guise, than aught to have been betwixt so obliged a Servant, and his Master's open, and declared Enemies; which doubtless was the chief cause of the diminution of his favour, and in truth either prompted by the sole ambition of seeing himself Brother-in-law to the King, to which honour he thought he could not arrive without the Duke of Guise's assistance, or by the desire he had to secure his Fortune on all sides, which is very often a ruinous maxim, he ever industriously laboured the friendship of that Family. Some believe that he at first treated with them unknown to the King about his Marriage with a Princess of their House, and Name, Sister to the Queen. 'Tis true he had afterwards the King's permission, and the overture, being once made, was pressed by the King himself to a consummation of it: but it was his part to have foreseen the inconveniences of this Alliance, and to have considered the consequences before he had embarked himself. As one of the King's chiefest cares was to keep such an equality towards his Favourites, Anno 1581. that they might have no occasion to trouble the delight he took in their conversation, with complaints, or differences; so had he no sooner concluded the Marriage of his Sister-in-law to the Duke of joyeuse; but that he would bestow another called Christina, upon the Duke of Espernon. I begin here to give him the title of Duke, A proposition of Marriage for the Duke of Espernon. because he had it before, although the thread of this discourse permits me not to speak of his promotion to this dignity, till the following page. A temptation delicate enough to flatter a mind so great, and so ambitious, as that of the Duke; nevertheless he excused himself with a moderation, highly to be commended in an occasion of this nature; neither was his prudence less to be admired, than his moderation: and all the world have believed, that amongst all the actions of his life, this was of greatest importance to the conservation of his Fortune. Upon this refusal of his, divers Judgements were made, all actions of great men, especially Favourites, never wanting interpreters: such as were justest to the Duke highly approved his conduct, that so prudently under the shadow of respect, had rejected an advantage, that in itself carried only noise, and show; though otherwise it might render him capable of pretending to more solid things, and at least make him rival the extraordinary honour the Duke of joyeuse had received; others that would less favourably interpret him, discommended his carriage, as if by this refusal he intended tacitly to condemn the Duke of joyeuse his Vanity, and Ambition; and these confirmed themselves in their opinion, by the great disproportion they saw betwixt the moderate expense at the Marriage of the Duke's elder Brother, and the prodigious profusion that was made at that of the Duke of joyeuse; The journal of Henry the third. where the expense was so great as amounted to above two millions of Livers, an immense sum in those days, and especially at a time wherein the State was in great necessities. This gave a great occasion of murmur, not only to the well and ill disposed French, but even to such strangers as were affectionate to the Crown of France; whereas that of Mounsieur de la Valette, which was solemnised at the same time with Anne de Batarnay, was passed over with very little noise; not but that the King would also in this occasion have poured out his liberality: but the two Brothers, having discreetly avoided an unnecessary expense, soberly husbanded their Master's purse, to his and their own reputation. From the time that his Majesty had determined to raise his two Favourites to the honour of his Alliance, Anno 1582. he honoured them both with the Dignity of Duke, and Peer; and purchased in Caumont's name the Manor of Espernon, to the end, he might bear that Title. But his Letters Patents, having been carried to the Parliament, received at first some difficulty in their verification, as it had before happened, in the case of joyeuse: which difficulty arose from the place the King had given in those Letters to the two new Dukes, having there ranked them immediately after the Princes of the Blood, which the other more ancient Dukes, The two Favourites made Dukes and Peers of 〈◊〉. being highly displeased at, opposed; and had so wrought the Parliament to their Favour, that the King was forced to send them a peremptory command to pass over all oppositions, telling them (amongst other terms of favour) that having chosen Caumont, and joyeuse, for his Brothers-in-law, and intending to place them by this Alliance so near his own person, he could not endure they should make any difficulty of receiving them into the degree, he had assigned for them; that Honour being far inferior to what he had already conferred upon them by that choice: Upon which, there being no more contest, the thing past according to his Majesty's pleasure, and was recorded without reservation. Though the King seemed to have his thoughts wholly taken up with these little domestic Affairs, Anno 1583. and to intend nothing but the advancement of his Favourites; yet was he not even in this without a further end, and design: for perceiving himself too weak by fine force, to crush the two powerful Factions, that divided the whole Kingdom, he tried to accomplish that by policy, which he could not effect by power, in depriving both sides of all kind of authority and trust; advancing on the contrary his Favourites, and such as he had confidence in, to all the Offices, and Employments he possibly could; neither was there any grace, or favour to be obtained, but for them, or for such of their creatures, as wholly relied upon their fortune. Neither met this design of his with any opposition from the Huguenot Party; who, the more they were his open and declared Enemies, the less were they in his way, and gave him the less trouble: For the Court being suspected to the King of Navarre, the Prince of Cond●, and the other Chiefs of their party, kept them at such a distance, as deprived them of the means to sue for Governments, Offices, and commands of places; nay, it was a favour to let them enjoy those they already had; so that living retired, and at ease, but without credit, or consideration, their interest by degrees mouldered away, and grew weak of itself: which was the posture the King would have them in. But the heads of the League were in a far different condition, they had for many years upheld their credit at Court, had discharged successively from Father to Son, the greatest Offices of the Crown, were possessed of many important Governments, and very considerable places, and by the greatness of their Birth, and Services, by the reputation of their valour, and other eminent qualities they were Masters of, endeavoured to eclipse the Majesty of the King; who, being less inclined to ostentation, lived a more retired life than they. It was necessary to abate the growing greatness of those powerful, The state of Affairs at Court, and the King's cond●ct. and dangerous Subjects; to effect which (which was the chief and most important Affair of State) the King first exhibited a public and general prohibition to all sorts of people, excepting the Queen his Mother, and the Queen his Wife, not to presume to ask any thing of his Majesty, whether Money, Offices, or Commands; reserving wholly to himself the disposition of all such things, and that of his own voluntary grace, and bounty, and upon due consideration of the party's Merit. And to the end that the over free access to his person, might not give occasion to those he most suspected to exceed the limits of this prohibition, he seconded that with another. That no person of what quality soever, should come into his Cabinet, without he were called: but from this general rule he made a particular exception for his Favourites, whom he made free to enter at all hours, like enough on purpose to nettle the House of Guise; though they were not the only men offended at it, almost all the great men about the Court, being sensibly concerned, to be deprived of a privilege, that was now only reserved for five or six of his Majesty's Creatures. The Lords of the House of Guise, being by this means excluded from all hope of increasing their power by new acquisitions of trust, the King began to contrive how he might gently withdraw what they already had, out of their hands; and carried it so, that so often as there was any vacancy, by the decease of any of their creatures, he immediately conferred those places upon some of his own; and if at any time any of their Partisans were content to take money for such charges, as they were seized of, the King would stick at nothing that might satisfy them, to the end he might dispose places, into secure, and faithful hands. The Duke of joyeuse by these two ways, that is by the King's gift when a Government fell void, or otherwise by Contract, had obtained the Government of Normandy, with Haure de Grace, ●aen, and other places: the Government of Anjou for the Compte de Bouchage, his Brother; the Lieutenancy of Languedoc for his Father, with many other important Governments and Places. The Duke of Espernon had also the Government of Metz, and the Messin Country, that of Dauphine, Boulogne, Calais, lafoy Fere, Loches, the Citadel of Lions, and some others. As it was necessary for these two great meant to find out assured Friends, and faithful Servants, into whose hands they might safely commit so many several places of trust, as the King's bounty had possessed them of; so was it the Duke of Espernon's care to provide himself of such persons; and supposing he could find none, who were likely to be more faithful to him, than those of his own Kindred and Relation, he to that purpose called the greatest part of them about his person. His elder Brother had by his recommendation the Government of Dauphine, The Duke advances his own Relations. in which employment he behaved himself so well, that he preserved that Province entire in his Majesty's obedience during all the commotions of the League: neither were his Services confined within the bounds of his Government; he passed over several times into Provence, and secured that Country against the attempts of the said League, when assisted both by Spain and Savoy. He also opposed the power of the Hugonots, which was very considerable in both these Provinces; so that France has to him only the obligation, that Dauphin● is not now in the Savoyard's hands, as well as the Marquisate of Saluzzo. Montcasin the Duke's Cousin was put into Metz, Cajan his Brother had the Regiment of Champagne, and soon after the Lieutenancy of Xaintogne, Angomois, and the Country of Aulins. And many other places were disposed into the hands of several men of trust, and quality, who depended upon the Duke. But he had yet a Kinsman in Gascony, to whom, next to his Brother, he had a particular regard above all others, which was Roger, afterwards Duke the Bellegarde, Son to Mounsieur de Termes, the Duke's Uncle by the Mother's side, and Heir to the House of Bellegarde. This young Gentleman, being bred up according to his condition, to all the exercises becoming a person of his Birth and Quality, was by the Duke brought to Court; where he continued the care of his Education in his own House, keeping him still to his Exercises, till he was grown excellent in them all: but the Duke was not content to oblige, him only in this, he further employed his care, and good Offices to place him in the King's esteem, wherein he succeeded perhaps beyond his own desire; Bellegarde arriving to such a degree of Favour, as grew at last suspected to the Duke himself. Some years passed over in these Court practices; Anno 1584. neither from the time of the Treaty of Peace with the King of Navarre, in the Year 1580. until the beginning of the Year 1584. were there any Affairs of importance, save those of the Cabinet. The King constant to his first Maxims, continually laboured the ruin of the League, and of the Huguenot Party; neither was he, in his own nature, more inclined to advance those he had a kindness for, than he was bend to weaken, and depress those who were suspected to him. The Duke of Guise, The first commotion of the League. the Cardinal his Brother, their Relations, and Confederates, seeing all things directed to this end, and not being able to endure the condition of private persons to which they saw the King endeavoured to reduce them, set on foot great practices, both within, and without the Kingdom, and tried all imaginable ways they thought might help to fortify and secure themselves. And as they had hitherto been proceeded against without violence, so had they carried on their practices without noise: but at last finding the King more openly laboured their ruin, which was already almost inevitable, they would no longer forbear to unmask themselves, nor to publish their long premeditated designs by an open Rupture. In the beginning then of the Year 1585. Anno 1585. the Duke of Guise retired himself to joinville, and there received into his House the King of Spain's Deputies, together with the Sieur de Meneville Attorney to the Cardinal of Bourbon, who did all the business of the League in France. Where also the Duke of Mayenne his Brother, and divers others of his Partisans, repaired to him. At which Assembly it was resolved to break out suddenly into open Arms, upon such conditions, as the Historians of that time have already declared, and which is nothing to my business. The King, who was soon advertized of this Conspiracy (which was now no longer a secret) to hinder it from taking any dangerous effect, and in due time to provide for the safety of the Kingdom, assembled, together with the Queen his Mother, such persons as were of chiefest trust about him, and whose Counsels he ever made use of in debates of greatest importance, to deliberate, and advise what, in this posture of Affairs, was best to be done. These were the Dukes of Espernon, of Joyeuse, and of Retz, the Chancellor Chiveruy, Bellieure, D'O, Villeroy, and Villequier. The Duke of Espernon as the youngest, being commanded to give his opinion first of the Proposition in hand, freely Remonstrated. That so long as the ambition of the House of Guise had contained itself within some moderate limits of respect to their Sovereign, he had infinitely commended his Majesty's Clemency, that so long had winked at their faults, expecting when Subjects of their quality and merit should come to themselves, and see their own error. That in the beginning of great Crimes, Patience was almost a necessary Virtue, and that it had often obliged such Offenders into their duty, as it would have been a matter of some difficulty to have reduced by force: but that this Patience had its bounds as well as other Virtues, and that the excess of it degenerated into Vices, of all other most pernicious to Princes. That he would never advise his Majesty to cruelty, because it was dreadful, and inhuman, though it often begot that Sovereign power a more absolute respect. That profuseness begot love, at least in the receivers; and that the other mistakes of Princes were seldom altogether unfruitful; whereas an excessive toleration rendered them contemptible to all the world. That from contempt men fell into hatred, and from hatred ran headlong into attempts. That above all things Princes should fear being despised, which is infallibly destructive to Authority; as on the contrary, Fear and Respect supports it. That it was his opinion, the King without further deliberation should have recourse to Arms. That his Enemies not having yet the assistance of Strangers, and the Forces they expected at home not being yet united, would be easily suppressed. That his Majesty ought not to suspect his own strength in this occasion; that so good a cause as his could want no Soldiers, and that his own Royal Courage would give vigour, and encouragement to all true Frenchmen to maintain his Authority, not only against his Rebellious Subjects, but against all the World. The Chancellor Chiveruy, the Duke de Retz, and the Marquis D'O, were of this opinion, and the King himself had too much experience, and too much judgement, not to be of the same; but the Duke of joyeuse, Bellieure, Villeroy, and Villequier, were of a contrary advice: to whom the Queen Mother adhering, the King, who had ever a great deference to her Councils, cooled in the inclination he had to that of the Duke of Espernon, and was overruled into mildness, and moderation; which as they are usually, the ruin of all Affairs of this nature, so they proved to be of this. They thenceforward therefore began to treat about this War, and that by propositions not like those of a Prince to his Subject; but such as were more proper betwixt enemy, and enemy, that stood upon equal ground. The King, before he would resolve upon the last remedy of Arms, first caused the Duke of Guise to be sounded, to try, whether or no, he would by fair means be prevailed with to leave of those practices his Majesty very well knew he entertained against his Service, and his own Duty: which having in vain attempted, and finding his obstinacy to be such, as was not to be overcome by gentle ways, he presently dispatched away into Germany, and Switzerland, to make speedy Levies both of Horse and Foot; and conceiving he could not in the present necessity receive so prompt, and so certain a succour from any, as from the King of Navarre, his Majesty would try if he could not gain him to his Interest, that they might jointly oppose the first fury of the League, that erected itself to their common prejudice. In which deliberation there was notwithstanding an almost invincible difficulty, namely the difference of Religion; for the King, what need soever he had of the King of Navarre's assistance, could never persuade himself to join with him in Arms, if he were not first a Catholic; wherein the respect to his Conscience prevailed with him, above the consideration of his Fortune, and Kingdom. This point therefore, The King sends the Duke of Espernon to treat with the King of Navarre. upon which so much depended, was to be discreetly managed: and the Duke of Espernon as Supreme in the King's confidence, was, before all others chosen to treat with the King of Navarre about this great Affair; which, that it might be carried with the greater secrecy, the Duke pretended a visit to Madam de la Valette, his Mother at Caumont, whom he had never seen since his advancement to favour; nor whom (a rare example of Virtue, and Moderation in a person of her Sex, and Condition) he could ever, with all the instance he could use, prevail with, to come to Court, nor persuade to leave the sweet repose of her own House, nor the modesty, and retiredness of her former life. Things being thus ordered, the Duke began his Journey from Court with a Train, and Magnificence; that is still remembered in all the places, through which he past. He had above 500 Gentlemen, and many of those men of very great quality in his attendance: so great authority and esteem, he had already acquired; neither did that authority and esteem ever decline, but were his inseparable Companions during his whole life. The King writ to all the places, through which he was to pass, to receive him with the same respect, and to pay him the same honours they would do to his own person: which was absolutely obeyed, if not overdone, the Duke receiving infinite and unusual civilities, both at Orleans, Poitiers, Bordeaux, Tholouse, and in all the other Cities through which he passed. At last he arrived at Caumont, where he had the satisfaction of seeing his Mother, who was no more dazzled with the immediate sight of her Son's greatness, than she had been before elevated with the report of it. She discoursed with him of Affairs of State, and of the advantages of his own Fortune, with the Gravity and Authority of a Mother, but of a Virtuous and Prudent Mother: and I have heard him say, That he received more safe and solid Counsels from the prudent simplicity of that good Lady, than from the subtlety, and experience, of the most practised Courtiers. After having stayed some days in her company, and his chief business being not to receive a dispatch there, he parted thence towards the King of Navarre, who was then in the County of Foix. The King did him the honour to meet him as far as Saverdun, where they had the first Conference. The second was at Pamiers, in the same County of Foix, whither the Duke of Espernon (who could by no means avoid the great crowd of Nobility, and Gentry that came from all parts of Guienne, and Languedoc to see him) came so extraordinarily accompanied; that the King of Navarre, who (designing to continue the same honour to him) intended to have met him a good way out of Town, was advised to expect him on foot at the Gates of the City, his own Friends and Retinue, being too few to make up a number, that might hold any proportion with that the Duke brought along with him. In these two Conferences the Duke delivered what he had in Commission, D' A●●igné. fortifying the propositions he had to make with so many, and so powerful Arguments; that the King of Navarre clearly satisfied of his own good, discovered at last a great inclination to perform what the King desired of him, viz. his Conversion to the Roman Catholic Religion. He evidently saw the eminent danger, whereinto this great conspiracy of the League was likely to precipitate him; with the advantages he might have by running the same fortune with the King, of defending himself, and his Interest, by his Majesty's Authority and Power. Requelaure, and many other persons of good quality about him, fortified him in this good deliberation; but he was dissuaded from it by a far greater number of the other opinion, who represented to him, the hard usage he had received at Court, the hazards he had run in his own person, and the persecution those of the Reformed Religion, who were his Servants, and Friends, had suffered from thence. They did not stick further absolutely to impute all the hard measure the Huguenot Party had received to this King; although the greatest violences had been exercised upon them in the Reign of Charles the Ninth, expressing as passionate a hatred against him, as the League so impudently manifested in their Rebellious Actions. And certainly the Misfortune of this Prince is never too much to be lamented, nor the unsteddiness of his condition too much to be wondered at; having his Kingdom divided by two Factions, so directly opposite to one another that he could never serve himself by the one, to defend himself from the other; and both sides, though implacable enemies betwixt themselves, concurred nevertheless always in this, that they both equally desired his Ruin. At last, after many Conferences, the King of Navarre gave the Duke his final Answer at Pau, whither he had invited him to come, to this effect. That he was the Kings most humble Servant, that he would justify himself to be so upon all occasions, and that he would never separate himself from his Service and Interests, if his Majesty did not constrain him to it, by condescending too much to his Enemy's Counsels: but that he could not, for any consideration of Honour, Riches, or any other advantages that could be proposed to him, depart from the Religion he had embraced, and was so firmly established in. It was in this pleasant Palace of Pau, and amongst the magnificences and delights, that place then abounded in, that the Duke had first the honour to see the Lady Catharine, the King of Navarre's only Sister, since Duchess of Bar; in whom the Duke's Merit, who was then in the flower of his youth, and the meridian of his favour, made such an impression, that she began from that time to honour him with her favour, which she continued to him to her death. And it is certain that the King her Brother (who perhaps did not think himself so near that height of fortune, to which he soon after arrived, and who doubtless would have been glad to have engaged the Duke absolutely to his Interests) made him some propositions of Marriage with this Princess; but the condition of the time, and intervening accidents, permitting that Treaty to pass no further, the Duke was forced to content himself with the advantage of so glorious a friendship, which was ever after dear, and precious to him, the whole remainder of his life. The King of Navarre to multiply still more entertainments, and favours upon the Duke, would needs have him yet to give him the satisfaction of another visit at Nerac; which the Duke could not handsomely deny, though the King's commands were something pressing for his return to Court: and as it is likely the King of Navarre spun out the time, that he might more maturely deliberate upon an Affair of so great importance; so was it the Duke's interest to give him that leisure he desired, if possible to make his negotiation succeed according to the King his Master's desire. But in the end finding he could not overcome those traverses, and difficulties, that his Majesty's enemies still strewed in his way, he prepared himself for his departure; and than it was, that opening the last, and most secret part of his Commission; he told the King of Navarre, That though he had denied his Majesty the satisfaction he desired of him, yet that the King nevertheless considering him as his Kinsman, and next Heir to the Crown, if God should please to dispose of him without Issue, had given him in charge to let him know, that he would be well pleased, he should use his best endeavour to preserve himself in a condition to oppose the League, that was confederated to the ruin of the Royal House and Line. That since they could not unite their Arms to resist their common Enemies, he should at least assure himself of the places already in his possession; which his Majesty took to be much safer, and much more at his devotion in his hands, than those that should hereafter be possessed by the League. And that although in the present state of Affairs he could not openly favour his designs, by reason of their difference in Religion; nor avoid being instant for the restitution of those cautionary places, that had been granted to him; yet that he should nevertheless be very well satisfied with whatever he should do to his own advantage. After this Declaration, which was received by the King of Navarre with infinite demonstrations of Obligation and Respect, the Duke took post for the Court at Lions, where the King impatiently expected his return. He was now arrived within view of the City, and all the Court were mounted to honour his arrival, the King himself having much ado to forbear going out to meet him; when a strange, and unexpected Accident was like to have turned all the Honours prepared for his welcome into the Funeral Pomp of his Obsequies: For one of the Gentlemen, who came out to meet him, having accidentally entangled the Chape of his Sword in the Duke's Bridle, the Horse took such a fright at it, that he immediately ran away with his Master; nor could the Duke stop him with all the art, and force he had, from throwing himself, and his Rider headlong into a dreadful precipice; the place, very remarkable by the greatness of the fall, and the wonderful escape, is to this day called Espernons Leap; neither was there any man present, who did not confidently believe the Duke certainly bruised to pieces: an opinion so firmly grounded in every one, that the report of his Death was immediately carried to Lions, which made as many several impressions in men's minds, as their inclinations were different, towards him. But the King was afflicted beyond imagination, though his Majesty was not long in that error: For some of the company, having immediately descended the precipice, found the Horse, who by good fortune fell plum upon his feet, and bore the whole weight of the fall, killed stone dead; but the Duke miraculously escaped, with only a slight hurt in the Shoulder. This accident set all the Court Wits on work; neither was there any, who did not write something upon this occasion; but that which most pleased the Duke, was an Emblem, that was presented to him. The body of the Emblem was a figure of the Duke himself, hanging upon the brow of a precipice; so as that he seemed to be irrecoverably falling from that prodigious height; when Fortune running to his succour, withdrew him from the danger, with this Motto in Italian, the first words thereof expressing his name, Eper non lasciarti mai. A Motto the Duke at first took for a good Omen; which time, and his own good conduct after turned into a kind of Prophecy; and causing it to be graved in a Cornelian, and set in a Ring, he wore it many years upon his Finger, as a mark of his gratitude to Fortune, or rather Providence, which is effectually that we call Fortune; to which he ever attributed all the successes of his life, rather than to his own conduct. By this accident the King's affection to the Duke seemed to be augmented, The League makes the Duke of Esp●rnon's Voyage a Pretence to stir up the people. at least it made a greater show of tenderness, than in former occasions, his Majesty never almost departing his Chamber during the time he was constrained to keep his Bed: and it was in this condition that he gave the King a full account of his Journey, and Negotiation; a thing that furnished the League with a sufficient pretence to decry the King's actions; neither did the Chiefs of that Faction fail to cause it proclaimed in the Pulpits (as it is usual to make Holy Places and Religious men the Scenes, and Instruments to blemish the Actions of Princes) that his Majesty was strictly united with Heretics: and that this slander might the better be believed, the Duke of Espernon's Voyage (whom they endeavoured to render odious to the people, by calling him the Abetter of that Party) was first brought upon the stage; they published that Negotiation to be a conspiracy against the Catholic Religion, which was no way to be opposed, but with their Swords in their hands: So that this was the first Pretence they made use of, to colour their Rebellion. But before they would proceed to the effects of so violent a Rupture, The Duke of Guise attempts to win the Duke of Espernon to his side by giving him his Daughter. the Duke of Guise, who would have been glad to have won the Duke of Espernon to his Party, by that means to remove those Obstacles which the Duke's Vigour and Fidelity ever had, and were still likely to oppose to his Designs, caused him to be treated with about a match with his Daughter, since Princess of Conty: a Princess that for the beauty of her person, the vigour of her mind, and many other endowments, and excellent qualities, had few rivals in the Kingdom; neither was the Duke of Espernon so blind, as not to see the honour he should receive by this alliance, had it been proposed in a more quiet time; or had the Duke her Father been upon better terms with the King: but knowing he must by such a match abandon his duty, or at least be obliged to favour designs he could by no means approve, the last consideration so absolutely prevailed above the other, that he scarce deliberated upon a thing that was likely to stagger his fidelity; and how dangerous soever it were to declare himself an open enemy to the Duke of Guise, which he must of necessity do by refusing his alliance; he rather chose to run that hazard, than to falter in the least in the duty he owed to his Prince and Benefactor. It is hard to judge, what passions of grief, and despite, the Duke of Guise was possessed withal, to see his designs so frustrated, and his offer so despised by this refusal, which was in itself no light offence; neither did he afterwards meditate any thing more, than his revenge; and how to destroy him he could neither by civilities, nor by threats acquire unto him: but his fury was raised to the height by a new Honour the Duke and conferred upon him: which was the second Pretence the League took hold of to justify their proceedings. The second pretence of the League. The King had some time before this bought the Duke of Mayenne out of his charge of Admiral of France, which the Duke had the rather laid down in favour of the Duke of joyeuse; and his Majesty desirous to confer upon the Duke of Espernon also some Office of the Crown (to continue the same equality he had ever observed in their Fortunes) proposed to the Duke of Guise a very advantageous recompense in lieu of his Office of Grand-Maistre to the King's Household; and it seemed probable he would follow the example of his Brother the Duke of Mayenne, who doubtless had not quitted so important a charge without his elder Brother's advice: but the Duke of Guise notwithstanding would never comply with his Majesty's desire; and though the King would never permit him to exercise any function of his charge, thereby to make him weary of it; yet was he still more obstinately bend to keep it, nor would ever consent (as he said) That his Enemy should possess any of those charges he had exercised, and been invested withal. The King seeing him so obstinate, and perhaps not more solicitous to advance the Fortune of his Favourite, than willing to spite the Duke of Guise, resolved with himself to erect, purposely for the Duke of Espernon, an Office, so honourable, and so great, as should by its authority and power infinitely surpass all other the highest, and most important employments both of the State and Crown: The Office of Colonel General of France erected. and this was that of Colonel General of France; an Office formerly divided into two, on this side, and on that side the Mountains, of which Andelot had possessed the one, and Strozzi the other; and after Andelot's death they were united in Strozzi, who remained sole Colonel. After Strozzi's decease, the King having by an Edict reunited these two Offices into one, made it an Office of the Crown, under the Title of Colonel General of France, caused that Edict to be ratified in Parliament, attributing to it the absolute power to name in general Officers for all the vacant places in the French Militia, without so much as excepting from this nomination, that of Campmaster to the Regiment of Guards: He established for the Colonel a Sovereign Court of Justice, or Council of War, to determine of the Lives and Honours of Military men, without calling any other to it, than his own Officers; adding to it besides several Grants, Privileges, and Pensions, and finally (to sum up all his bounty) his Majesty delivering the Commission into the Duke's hands, told him, that nothing troubled him, but that he knew not how to invest him into a more absolute Authority, and that he could not add a part of the Royal Dignity to his charge. And it is certain, that in giving the Duke the Governments of Metz, Toul, and Verdun, his Majesty would have given them in Sovereignty, and have demised to him the Title of the Crown: but the Duke displeased with this proposition, as an injury offered to his Obedience and Loyalty, complained to the King, that his Majesty, honouring him with so noble an employment, should go about to deprive him of the dearest Relation he had, which was that of his Majesty's most humble, and obedient Subject, an honour that in his soul he preferred before all titles of Sovereignty, and all the advantages of Fortune his Majesty could prefer him to; and thereupon received both the Governments, and the charge of Colonel General, under the King's Authority. From this new advancement the League, as I have said before, derived their second pretence for the taking of Arms; they looked upon the Duke of Espernon's new Honour, as an offence to their whole Party; and the Duke of Guise took it for a particular injury to himself, and thereupon openly published. That there were now no more Employments, The Duke of Guise's complaints. Riches, or Honours, save only for the Duke of Espernon, and la Valette his Brother. That the State was only impoverished by profusions made in their favour. That they were the true causes of the people's oppression. That the Treasure, set apart for the extirpation of Heresy, was by them perverted to their own uses, and particular profit. That the greatest Dignities, the most important Places, and Governments of greatest concern, were too many advantages for their ambition. That whilst the King's good Servants were neglected, and kept under, there were new Offices, with unheard of Privileges, contrived, and erected for them. That if the power they had over the King were longer suffered, they would equally ruin the State, and Religion. That the Duke of Espernon was therefore to be removed from Court, if men desired to see an end of public Miseries. That his Majesty being delivered from his Counsels, which were equally violent, and interessed, would doubtless for the future be more favourable to his good Subjects, and better inclined to the Catholic Cause. At the same time a Manifesto was published by the Cardinal of Bourbon, who was the declared Head of that Faction, containing principally the foregoing complaints, and immediately after followed the rising into Arms. The League takes up Arms. The first design of the League was upon Metz, as if they meant to strike at the heart of the Duke of Espernon's Fortune; a place so considerable, that the Duke had reason to look upon it, as the surest foundation of his greatness: neither did he in his latter years condescend to any thing with more unwillingness, and reluctancy, than to the surrender of that place, that proposition seeming to him, as though men were bend to the total ruin of his House; nor could he ever have been persuaded to have stripped himself of such a defence, upon a less consideration, than the investiture of his Son the Cardinal of lafoy Valette into that Government; who being younger by forty years, than himself, he might reasonably hope, it would continue in his Family at least during his life: but God was pleased to dispose it otherwise. To make a right judgement of the importance of this place, it will be necessary to consider its Site, and condition; and the share it has ever had in the Duke's Fortune does indeed require it should be something insisted upon. The description of the City of Metz, and i●s importance. Metz then is a City something bigger than Bordeaux, or Orleans; that is to say, one of the greatest, and the fairest in the Kingdom, full of Inhabitants, and those a rich and industrious people; to whom the neighbourhood of Germany gives great facility, to an advantageous Commerce. She was in former times thought beautiful enough to be the Metropolis of Austrasia, once the Inheritance of one of our Kings: but when the Empire of Germany began to decline, and that the Princes who were Subject to it began to withdraw themselves from their obedience (every one being ambitious to be Sovereign in his own Dominions) many Cities, which were also in the same subjection, allured by the tempting sound of Liberty, followed the same example. Of these Metz was one, who for many years took leave to govern herself by her own Laws, annually creating Sovereign Magistrates, disposing absolutely of the Lives and Estates of her Subjects, Coining Money, and in all things taking upon her the Authority of a Sovereign Jurisdiction; in which condition she maintained herself, till the Year 1552. that the Constable Montmorency, passing with the King's Army that way, totally freed her from all kind of Homage to the Empire, and settled it under the Protection of the Crown of France. 'Tis true that King Henry the Second, in whose Reign this Conquest was made, continued to this City her ancient privileges; but withal to assure himself of his possession, he did exceedingly fortify it, establishing a Governor of his own, and causing a Citadel to be built, which was mightily cried up, for one of the best, and most exact of that time: but this was before Sieges were turned into a Science, and that the industry of man had left little to Fortune, in this kind of War. It does not now carry that Reputation; and in this condition it was when the Duke entered upon his Government, only with this difference, that what it's own Laws had formerly performed by their own Virtue, during its independency, was now executed by his order, under the Authority of the Royal Name, the Duke (as I have said before) absolutely refusing to accept it upon other terms. He annually appointed, and created the Supreme Magistrate, whom they call * 〈…〉 Sheriff. Maistre Eschevin, and appointed him his Council, and Judges, who were to determine in Sovereignty, upon the Lives, Honours, and Estates of all the Inhabitants: but withal the Duke had Authority upon occasion to censure them, had power to remove them from their Magistracy within their year, if he saw cause; or to continue them beyond their term, if he thought fit. It is then no wonder if he were infinitely respected in a place, where all things so absolutely depended upon him: but that which was indeed very rare, and very commendable, was, that in so unlimited a power, and in the course of above threescore years, that this City continued in his Custody, he behaved himself with that Justice, and Moderation, that not so much as any one Citizen ever complained of his administration; neither is there any now living, that do not yet remember, with a kind of delight, the indulgence, and sweetness of his Government. Whilst the Duke stood seized of a place of this consequence, and so disposed to his service, it was no easy matter to cut him off; such a retirement being a sufficient refuge from all sudden danger: neither (the Town being entrusted in the hands of valiant, and faithful friends) had it been convenient (even when he was most remote from it) to provoke him; lest a place of that importance, should have taken part in his disgrace, and followed the humour of his discontents. It was therefore by the taking of this Town, that the League would begin to labour the Duke's ruin, and in that the advancement of their own Affairs. The most considerable Forces, the League had then on foot, were those of the Duke of Lorain; a Prince who having till this time contained himself Neuter in all the Affairs of France, upon this occasion thought fit, it seems, to declare himself partial to his Family, in hopes nevertheless to join Metz, Toul, and Verdun to his own Dukedom: neither was his design unlikely to succeed; for the two last having made no great difficulty of receiving the Duke of Guise, he had reason (considering the intelligence he had in the City) to expect the same from Metz, had not the Duke of Espernon by his vigilancy prevented him, seasonably reinforcing the Garrison, with divers Gentlemen his particular Servants, and a good number of Soldiers; by whose coming it was so well secured, that the League thought it not fit to attempt it. This great storm, thus blown over, the Duke, alarmed by the late hazard this City had run, resolved to establish himself in that important possession, so as that for the future it might be secured from the like danger; and to that purpose some of his friends having rendered the Governor suspected to him by some carriage of his at such time as the Army of the League were approaching towards him, though the grounds of this mistrust were not in the Duke's opinion clear enough to countenance an open rupture with him; yet were they sufficient to make the Duke remove him from that trust, and to call him about his own person, instituting Sobole, who before was only Lieutenant of the Citadel, in the absolute authority both of the City, Citadel, and Messin Country; adding withal ten thousand Crowns in Gold to mend his Equipage, that he might with the more honour support the honourable charge he had seated him in; a bounty we shall hereafter see how Sobol● requited: but that being the business of another time, I shall refer it to another place, and pursue my former Subject. The Leaguers not contenting themselves with those petty successes in Lorain, The Progress of the League. and being made wise and active, by the example of the King's ruinous supineness, who sat still, in vain expecting the arrival of his Foreign Forces, almost at the same time by the several Captains they had disposed into divers Provinces, surprised a great many of the chief Cities of the Kingdom, and made no light attempts upon the rest. The Duke of Guise after the taking of ●oul, and Verdun, (which I have spoke of before) possessed himself yet of Meziere, by which he assured to himself the whole Country of Champagne: The Duke of Mayenne took the City, and Castle of Dijon, which made him Master of the D●tchy of Burgundy: lafoy Chartre seized of Bourges, Entragues of Orleans; the Count de Brisac of Angiers, and many other Cities of that Province. Vaillack had hoped to have done as much by Bourdeaux, by the neighbourhood of Chasteau-Trompette, of which he was Governor: but the Marshal de Matignon broke his design, and Mars●lles, by the Loyalty of her good Inhabitants, maintained itself against the Faction of some who laboured to betray it into the power of the League: but the enterprise of the Citadel of Lions succeeded better with Mandelot, who was Governor of the City, and one of the Duke of Guise's firmest Adherents; who having been formerly awed into his duty by the Citadel, in which le Passage had been placed by the Duke of Espernon, to preserve a City so important to his Majesty's Service; he who beforehand had been made privy to the Duke of Guise's Designs, as soon as ever he heard they were in Arms, failed not suddenly to begird the Citadel; and being assisted by the people (who naturally hate to be bridled by a Fortress) having surprised le Passage, who little suspected any such thing, made himself Master of the place, and immediately razed it to the ground. It was upon this occasion that the ill will which had so long been concealed; yet had continually been fostering in the Bosoms of the Duke of Espernon, and Mounsieur de Villeroy, broke out; from which quarrel, in the succession of time, sprung so many, and so important consequences, The Rupture betwixt the Duke of Espernon and Villeroy. as do not only take up a large share of the Duke's Life, but also make up a considerable part in the general History of that time; which obliges me in this place to discourse, both what I have received from the Dukes own mouth, and what I have gathered from the Commentaries of Mounsieur de Villeroy himself. Mounsieur de Villeroy had been from the Duke's infancy Secretary, and Minister of State; a friend to Mounsieur de la Valette the Father, and a man of great Credit, and Interest, in the King's Council; he had seen the beginning, and increase of the Duke's Favour, at which he ought not in reason to repine: but on the contrary had cause to believe, that such a friend as he, would fortify him with the King, and be no little assisting to support that Trust he already possessed in the management of Affairs. And in effect the Duke had a true affection, and esteem for him, who as he was ever very respective, and constantly fixed to all his Father's Interests (whose memory he had in the greatest veneration) it is certain had a particular consideration for all his Friends; of which number Mounsieur Villeroy being one, the first years of the Duke's Favour were passed over in a strict correspondency with him: but at last Villeroy perceiving the Duke's Credit proceeded so far, as wholly to possess that interest in the King's Bosom he pretended to share, he began in the end to grow jealous of a Prosperity, he ought so much the more to have cherished, by how much it was likely to be more useful to him; and thenceforward began openly to thwart all his opinions in Council, raised up a party against him, to lessen his Reputation there: and the Queen Mother nettled to see her Authority weakened with the King, by the great power the Duke had with him; desiring nothing more, than to have him removed, that she might recover her former possession, could find no one so ready as Mounsieur de Villeroy to second her Passion, and the animosity she had conceived against him. They jointly advised that it was necessary to sacrifice the Duke to the malice of the League; and that the King ought to abandon him for the general satisfaction; a Counsel that had been voluntarily followed by the Duke himself: and I have heard him say, he would as willingly have retired then from Court, as he did not long after, could he have obtained the King's permission: but his Majesty very well perceiving that his Favourite was only a pretence the League made use of to cover their own ambition, that it was the Royal Authority they aimed at, and that their design was only to remove so good a Servant, with less difficulty to make themselves Masters of Affairs; the more obstinately they insisted upon that Article, the more resolute his Majesty was to protect him. The Duke very well informed that Villeroy was one of those, who contributed most to his Persecution, and seeing how publicly he professed to desire his ruin, resented it with an Animosity proportionable to the Injury received; which was the more violent, by how much the offence came from a person he had never done any ill Office to, and whom he had ever made it his business to oblige. They were in this posture of unkindness, on the one side, and the other, when happened the taking of the Citadel of Lions; before which time it was thought, Villeroy had secretly treated of a Marriage betwixt Alincourt his Son, and Mandelot's only Daughter; not having dared publicly to do it by reason of the intelligence Mandelot held with those of the League: but having upon this occasion taken up Mandelot's Interests against le Passage; that is to say, against the Duke himself, le Passage being his creature, he offered to undertake for Mandelot's fidelity to the King, provided his Majesty would please to consent to the Marriage proposed, and settle upon Alincourt the Government of Lions in reversion, in favour of the match; which the King, being reduced to the necessity of taking all men for friends, who were not actually otherwise, was forc'd to allow of, and to ratify what he could not well impeach; by that means trying to draw Mandelot over to him: but the Duke exasperated to the last degree could no longer smother his passion, nor dissemble his animosity against Villeroy; but spoke freely, and aloud to his disadvantage, and of the Correspondence he held with the League, which was the first effect of their open, and declared Hatred. The end of the first Book. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. The Second Book. AFter the Surrender, or rather the Revolt, of the many places already mentioned, the Duke of Guise, conceiving it necessary to press nearer the King, the sooner, and with less difficulty to obtain his ends, ordered the General Rendezvous of his Army to be at Chalons. Which place he made choice of for two Reasons; first, because by the nearness of it to Paris, The Duke of Guise approaches with his Army near Paris. (being but three little days Journey from thence) his presence would be apt to fortify the Citizens in their Devotion to him, and secondly, the number of his Confederates being so great, and some of them of so great Authority in the City, he could by their means continually infuse into the people such dispositions, as might best serve his purpose: hoping by this means, either to incline the King, to satisfy all his demands; or at least to be able to raise such mutiny and confusion in the City, as might give him opportunity, at one time, or another, to effect that by fine Force, he could not obtain by the more moderate ways of Addresses, and Treaty. Then it was that his Majesty perceived the manifest peril his Person, and his Affairs were in, and then would he take up Arms for his own defence; which he had no sooner resolved, but that at the same time he saw it was too late, and impossible to be done. The Reiters which he had raised in Germany could not come to him, (the Duke of Lorain having denied them a passage through his Country) and all the Forces within the Kingdom were either engaged with the League, or with the King of Navarre; so that the King was left utterly naked of all defence, save of those few Servants he had about his own person: Nay even those who, in the beginning of these troubles, would with all their hearts have assisted him to punish to Duke, whilst merely in the condition of a Rebel, durst not, now he was grown to that formidable height, and become the head of a strong Party, attempt to succour a weak, and disfurnished Prince, against an armed and prevailing Subject. The thoughts of War then being altogether fruitless, and impossible in the posture the King then was, he must of necessity have recourse to the Treaties of Peace; to which resolution he was further necessitated by the King of Navarre's breaking into Arms, at the same time, which I should not however have mentioned for a second Motive his Majesty had to satisfy the League, had this Prince pretended no further, than simply to defend his own Fortune with those Forces he had already had in France; for than his designs might have been favourable to the King, and either have kept the Army of the League wholly employed; or at least have diverted their designs: but he fearing at once to be oppressed by the Union of two Catholic Armies, had recourse to strangers for aid. The King knew he had treated with the Queen of England, and with the States of Holland, who both of them assisted him with Men, and Money, and that all the Protestant Princes of Germany, made extraordinary Provision to send him a powerful succour; so that he now evidently saw, he must in good earnest close with the League, and join with one of the Factions, to preserve himself from being a Prey to both. The Queen Mother had for many years been employed Mediatrix in all the accommodations of Peace that had been concluded in France; The Queen Mother sent to Treat of a Peace. and it was commonly believed, she was not then altogether without such an Interest in the Duke of Guise, as might have established this to the King's satisfaction: I never heard the Duke of Espernon say she was partial to that Faction; and though he received several ill Offices from her in his declining Favour, he notwithstanding ever retained a constant Respect for so great a Princess, who was his Master's Mother, and ever defended her Honour against all the calumnies of the time. 'Tis true he thought she was not altogether displeased that there should ever be a party on foot in France, such as might oblige the King her Son to make use of her Counsels and Mediation; her great, and ambitious spirit ill digesting the calms of peace; and worse enduring to be deprived of an employment; in which she had ever been as successful as necessary. Her therefore the King passionately entreated to labour an Accommodation with the Duke of Guise, an Office she as cheerfully undertaken, and two days after began her Journey towards Espernay, where she had appointed the Duke to meet, and whither he accordingly came, together with the Cardinal of Bourbon. In the first overtures she found a spirit puffed up with success, and wholly averse to Peace: but when he had more deliberately considered, that it was not yet time to weaken the King's Authority (which he thought was absolutely at his mercy) that there would afterwards remain the King of Navarre a powerful, active, and diligent Enemy, backed with great Forces within, and ready to receive greater from without the Kingdom; he conceived it requisite to subdue him first, that he might afterwards dispose of the King's Affairs with less opposition: so that he altogether fell from the extravagancy of his first demands, and only insisted upon the suppression of the King of Navarre, which he called the extirpation of Heresy; though it was in effect in order only to the establishment of his own Power. The King had so openly declared himself an Enemy (as effectively he was) to this new Religion; and it so much imported him to clear himself to his Subjects from those aspersions the League had cast upon him, that he was now necessitated to declare against the King of Navarre in the most severe Form, the League could themselves invent; yet was it not without the greatest reluctancy imaginable, that his Majesty was constrained to that extremity against a Prince, whom (as has been said before) it was not his interest wholly to suppress: but having lost the opportunity he once had, whilst they were weak, and inconsiderable, of chastising the Heads of the League, he saw himself now necessitated to grant them that, he could no longer, without apparent Ruin, refuse. His Wisdom then prompting him to submit to the necessity of Affairs, he made a show of complying in all things with their desires; and that he might with less difficulty incline the Duke of Espernon to consent to a resolution he had ever before been so much against, he privately told him, That he did not consent to those things that were exacted from him without very great Aversion, but that he hoped to reap from thence a signal effect, and a very great advantage to his Affairs; that the Party of the League was now too strong to be suppressed by force: that they had brought their Armies to the Gates of Paris, and that Paris itself was corrupted in their Favour: That he very well saw the time to chastise them was now past, and that he now knew (but too late) what he had lost in letting the occasion slip, wherein they might have been punished, when he had advised him to it; but that such an opportunity would certainly return again, and that than his evil Counsellors should never dissuade him from making better use of his time: That in the mean time it was necessary to dissemble, that they might the better look into their Enemy's Interests, to discover their weakness, and to make use of that discovery to their ruin: That there was no Party so strong that was not defective somewhere: That it was necessary to discover where that defect lay, and that it was impossible to make that discovery, without engaging with, and being interested in the cause they meant to overthrow: That being Head of the League, as they would have him declare himself to be, he should be able to strew such difficulties in the way of their Designs, as that they would find themselves perplexed in every enterprise they should undertake. Though the Duke of Espernon had much rather his Majesty would have defended his Honour, and trampled Authority, by the Arms of those few good Catholic Servants he had, and to have joined with the King of Navarre (with whom he did not think an accommodation impossible) and with such Foreign Forces, as were affectionate to the Crown; yet seeing it was now expedient to submit to the necessity of the time, he humbly acquiesced in the good Pleasure of the King his Master. In this posture of Affairs the King writ to the Queen his Mother, that she might conclude the Treaty upon such Conditions, as she thought fit; and, for a further testimony of his Candour, and sincere intention herein, sent the dispatch by the Duke of Espernon, whom all the world knew to have the greatest power with him, and the greatest Antipathy for the League; to the end that the Lords of Guise might not in the least doubt the observance of a Treaty, that was ratified on his part, by a person who lived in so eminent a degree of favour with him. This employment of the Duke's, though it was only intended to countenance the Queen's Negotiation, and to make it more easily succeed, did nevertheless incense her in the highest degree against him. She looked upon his interposition, as proceeding from a diffidence the King had in her, and not daring to manifest her dissatisfaction to him, she threw it wholly upon the Duke, and took from thence a new occasion to augment the ill will she had formerly conceived against him. The Treaty was notwithstanding concluded at Nemours, wherein the Lords of Guise had the full of their own demands, whether against those of the Huguenot Party; or in their own particular favour. They were to command the Armies, The Treaty concluded at Nemours. that should be set forth against the Hugonots; and over and above the great, and advantageous Governments they were already possessed of, the King delivered over twelve, or fifteen of the best Cities in the Kingdom into their hands; together with vast sums of money: And then it was, that men were undeceived, and that all men plainly saw they minded more their own private Interest, and the establishment of their own greatness, than they regarded the advancement of the Catholic Religion. The Treaty then being concluded, the Duke of Guise came to kiss the King's Hands at St. Maur des ●aussez, his Majesty so ordering it purposely to defeat the Duke of the Parisians applause; from whence after the Ratification of the Articles, the Duke returned into his own Government of Champagne, dismissed with some feigned Demonstrations of Favour, which was also on his part received with the same dissimulation. From thence forward the King began with great artifice to spin out the violent designs of the League, The War begun by the King against the Hugonots. manifesting nevertheless such an animosity against the Hugonots, and so firm a resolution vigorously to effect what had been concluded against them, as he conceived necessary to satisfy a people jealous of his sincerity, and apt to take up new suspicions upon every instigation of their own corrupted fancy: And in order thereunto he went to the Parliament in great Formality, and State, to cause an Edict to pass against those of the Reformed Religion; where after a revocation of the cautionary Towns, of the Chambres Mi-parties, Chambres Mi-parties were Courts of Justice established in divers▪ Cities of France, in favour of the Hugonots, of which Religion the one half were, and the other half Catholics. of the liberty of Conscience, and of other Concessions that had formerly been granted in their Favour, they were prescribed by a day prefixed, either to abjure their Religion; or to be declared enemies to the State, and punishable to the last degree. This first Act thus played, his Majesty assembled the Provost des marchand's, and the Eschevins of Paris to demand money of them for the prosecution of the War they had so ardently desired; which he also proposed to the Clergy, who had showed themselves no less zealous than they: but finding both the one, and the other equally cold in the business, after he had reproached them with their unseasonable violence, which he said, had hindered him from bringing about by easy, and infallible ways, the utter extirpation of Heresy (a thing he more earnestly desired, than any of them) he told them flatly, that since by them this business was first set on foot, it was reasonable, that they who had been the promoters of it, should likewise be at the charge of the War. His Majesty thought by grasping thus at their purses to take off their edge of fight, and by representing to them the charge, and incommodities of War, he should at the same time imprint in them a hatred, and aversion to it. But what reasons can prevail with a prepossessed, and exasperated multitude? The people displeased at the difficulties the King laid before them, and suffering themselves to be seduced by the malapert Preachers of the League, who by their seditious Sermons had soon persuaded them into commotion, imposed upon the King a necessity of beginning the War; and forgetting the respect due to the Majesty of their Prince, gave him in plain terms to understand, that he should not be safe in his own Lovure, if he did not forthwith betake himself to Arms. The condition of the time, and the conditions of the Treaty lately concluded with the League, equally obliging the King to fall into speedy action, and also to serve himself with some of the Heads of that Party in this Expedition; his Majesty to comply with his own necessity, and likewise to satisfy that Article, dispatched the Duke of Mayenne into Guienne, against the King of Navarre, the Duke of Guise himself desiring to remain in his Government of Champagne, to guard the Frontiers, and that he might have in the other Armies. He was also to set on foot such persons, as he knew were faithful to him: He sent the Marshal de Byron into Xaintonge against the Prince of Cond●, and the Duke of joyeuse into Languedoc, reserving for the Duke of Espernon, as a Servant in whom he reposed the greatest trust, the Employment of Provence: The Duke of Espernon sent with an Army into Provence. A Government which being a little before left vacant by the Death of the Grand Prior of France, Bastard of Valois, had been conferred upon him; and a Province wherein (of all other) his Majesty's Authority had the greatest need of support, having formerly been much weakened by the two contrary Factions that divided the State: Whereof one was commanded by the Sieur de Lesdiguieres, Head of the Huguenot Party; and the other by the Sieur de Vins, the King's Lieutenant there, but a man very partial to the League. His Majesty therefore desiring, amidst the confusion that was made by these two Parties, to secure the Country to himself, sent thither the Duke of Espernon, with a good Army, appointing Mounsieur de la Valette his Brother, for his Lieutenant in that Service; neither was he deceived in his choice: for in less than four months' time, Province, and Dauphiné were wholly settled in his obedience, the only part almost of the Kingdom, where his Majesty was effectively, and truly served; and had he had many more such Servants to employ, his Affairs had certainly, and in a very little time, changed their face, and the Royal Authority been rescued from the Rebellious Insolence, that trod it under foot in most Provinces of France. The Office of Colonel General having given the Duke absolute Authority over the Infantry, there was great contest amongst the old Regiments, which should be preferred to follow him in this action, in which he made shift to satisfy the ambition of the greatest part; his Majesty (who gave him absolute power in matters of greater difficulty) being content, that his best Soldiers should serve under his trustiest Captain: so that he drew out a good part of the Regiment of Guards, of that of Ficardy, and Champagne, with other Companies out of other Regiments, to the number of ten thousand Foot; to which was added twelve hundred Horse, and twelve piece of Cannon, with their Equipage. The Duke, Anno 1586. having about the end of Summer led his Army into Provence, put them immediately into vigorous Action. Vins was the first he undertook, who, having before been worsted by Lesdiguieres, was in no condition of making any great resistance; and Lesdiguieres, though victorious over the League, finding yet himself too weak to oppose the King's Army, conducted by so experienced Commanders, by withdrawing into his own strength, gave the two Brother's liberty to make themselves Masters of Seynes, Breoules, Chorges, and many other Considerable places as well in Provence, as Dauphiné with wonderful expedition: so that by these successes the two Factions, which had so long afflicted those two good Provinces, being equally suppressed, the Duke had leisure to return to Court, where his presence was not a little necessary to countermine such Practices (of which Mounsieur de Villeroy says in his Mesmoires the Duke suspected him to be Author) as were by his Enemies set on foot against him. Neither did the Duke need to make any great difficulty of retiring from Provence, considering the good posture he had brought Affairs into, and that he left his second self upon the place, not only in fidelity, and zeal to the King's Service, but also in valour, and experience; namely, Mounsieur de la Valette his Brother: a man whose Virtues had acquired so great a Reputation with all worthy men, that he is never to be spoke of, without very worthy mention, and the highest Characters of Honour. But the Duke had no sooner turned his back of Provence, and taken back part of the Army with him, than the contrary Factions, encouraged by this Division of the Army, made head anew: so that it was necessary to set another Army on foot to oppose them; the care of which now wholly rested upon Valette: nor did there need a more active and experienced Captain. His principal Exploits were against the League, to whose succour the Duke of Savoy came in person, an ambitious Prince, and one that watching all opportunities of enlarging his own Dominion, had from the Leagues first taking Arms, joined himself with the Countess of Saut, the Sieur d● Vins, the Compte de Carses, and other persons of Quality of that side; neither has he (what Treaties of Peace soever have been concluded with the League) ever desisted from his first design of keeping that Country by force of Arms. But lafoy Valette after having won from him the so celebrated Battle of Vignon, did so uncessantly press upon him, and in several other encounters obtained so many advantages over him, that he forced him to retire beyond the Alps, and to let Provence alone. Neither did Dauphiné escape his diligence, for Lesdiguieres finding himself too weak to meet him in the Field, gave him opportunity to withdraw Geyssens from the Citadel of Valence, which he held in the name of the League, having been placed in that command by the Duke of Mayenne, and to recover Gap into the King's Obedience. So that the two Factions, that of the League, and that of the Religion, being equally weakened by his Valour and Conduct; he then so established those two Provinces in their duty, that it was afterwards no hard matter for him to continue them in that posture of Obedience, until the death of the King. Whilst Mounsieur de la Valette was employed about these brave Services for the Crown, Mounsieur de Villeroy, a declared Enemy to the Duke his Brother, New discontents betwixt the Duke & Mounsieur de Vill●r●y. was no less busy, with all the ill Offices he could contrive, to ruin both their Credits with the King: Which though the Duke had long observed, and as long forborn to take notice of; yet could he at last no longer restrain himself from breaking out to a high, and public Rupture with him. It was at St, Aignan that it happened, at the time the Army of Reiters were preparing to enter the Kingdom; and that the King was consulting of the means to hinder their passage. I have already given an account of the Animosities betwixt these two great Ministers, and the Causes that produced them, which perhaps I should not so punctually have done; neither should I now do it, had not D'Avila an Author of great Repute for the History of that time enlarged himself more thatn ordinary upon this Difference, as upon an accident very considerable, and of great importance to the general Affairs that were then in agitation. The Duke then, and Villeroy being upon these ill terms, the King at the especial instance of the Duke had assigned a sum of 20000 Crowns only, for the entertainment of Mounsieur de la Valette's Army, a proportion very inconsiderable for the great end to which it was designed; but very great considering the necessities the State was then in: which money Villeroy (notwithstanding his Majesty's Order) having diverted to the Payment of the Grand Provost, and his Archers, the Duke discovered it to the King in open Council, complaining that a sum so disproportionable to the utility of his Brother's Services should be diverted to another use. To which Complaint Villeroy who was present replied aloud in his Majesty's Presence, That what the Duke had said, was not true. It is easy to judge, whether the Duke, who was then raised to the highest degree of Favour, were surprised with so tart, and so unexpected an Injury. I have heard him say, That in his whole life, he was never so sensibly offended; nevertheless he had so much power over himself, as to forbear all kind of violence in the King's Presence, so much as from any extravagancy of words: neither made he other reply to Mounsieur de Villeroy but this, That the Presence of the King which had encouraged him to give that Language, obliged him to be Silent: but that he should repent it. The King both disquieted, and displeased at this Quarrel, and willing to interrupt them from proceeding further, went immediately out of the Closet, expecting the Duke should follow him; but he staying behind, and being now no longer awed by the Reverence due to his Majesty's Person, fell very severely upon Mounsieur de Villeroy for the words past: some say he proceeded to high threats, that he had his hand up to have struck him, and that he gave him some very unhandsome language; though I never heard the Duke confess so much, in the many times he has discoursed of that business: But Mounsieur de Villeroy immediately went and complained to the King of the Duke's Threats, demanding Assurance, and Protection from him; where receiving no very satisfactory answer, he waited time, and opportunity, by working his own revenge to procure his own Safety, which happened not long after, when we shall see the Duke's Valour frustrate all his Enemy's Designs. But let us in the mean time return to the general Business. We have already observed, that from the first insurrection of the League, the King of Navarre not doubting, but that all their preparations were chiefly intended against him, had earnestly solicited all the Confederates of his Religion, not only at home, but in Foreign Parts to his aid: but when he understood, that, by the mediation of the Queen Mother, The entry of the Reiters into France, and the King's prudent conduct in this War. the Treaty of Nemours, had been signed by the King himself at St. Maur; he, then foreseeing the storm that was ready to break upon him, very well knew, that he should infallibly be overwhelmed, without a speedy succour. He therefore again pressed his Allies immediately to send their Forces, if they desired to find him in a condition to receive the effects of their Assistance, his Enemies so passionately precipitating his Ruin. The Germane Princes spurred on by this new Solicitation, and having yet been ancient Allies to the Crown of France, would, it should seem, proceed with some show of respect, and thereupon concluded amongst themselves to send first an honourable Embassy to the King, before they would engage in so important a Quarrel. In this occurrence all the Court expected some Civil Remonstrance on the Germane Prince's part; but they soon found themselves deceived; for the Ambassadors either prevailed upon by their Confederates in France, or transported with their own Zeal to Religion, and the passion they had for those of that Party, having publicly reproached the King with his breach of Faith towards his Protestant Subjects, it evidently appeared, that their design was not to mediate an Accommodation; but to push things on to the decision of Arms, by giving the King a premeditated Affront. I have heard the Duke say that he was present at the delivery of this Oration, and that the King justly nettled at so saucy an Embassy, after having in the heat, and apprehension of so great an injury, spoken with greater eloquence, than ever till that time he had heard him do, he positively, and for a final answer, returned the lie to whoever should reproach him with the breach of his Faith. The Ambassadors dismissed after this manner, failed not at their return home, to exasperate their several Princes to the last degree; who, being before resolved upon a War, made speedy and great Levies, and soon set such an Army on foot, as they thought, joined to that the King of Novarre had already of his dependants, should be able absolutely to subdue the Catholic Party in France. The King, as he very well foresaw what inconvenience the entry of such a multitude of strangers must of necessity bring upon his Kingdom, so did he by all imaginable ways try to prevent their coming: and seeing that nothing, but satisfying the King of Navarre could possibly divert that mischief, he once more tried by the means of the Queen his Mother, if possible to win him to a timely accommodation. Which being by her undertaken, after many delays, scruples, and jealousies on both sides, a Conference was at last concluded on at St. Brix, a private house seated upon the Banks of Charente near Coynack: but this Conference nevertheless being able to produce no good effect, by reason of that invincible difficulty, the difference of Religion, and the Germane Princes hasting away their Armies into France, his Majesty was forced to prepare himself to oppose them. A Resolution that he effected with so good orders, and so prudent a Conduct, that their defeat ought to live for a perpetual Monument of this Prince's Wisdom, no man else having any voice in that deliberation. It was he alone who by his own Wise Counsels rendered all the attempts of his Enemies fruitless; it was he alone that overthrew them, and that having by his own prudent orders made them suffer those incommodities that unnerved them, and put them out of all defence, gave the Duke of Guise an opportunity, to win a great deal of Honour, with little trouble, and danger. So great an advantage it is to live in the public opinion. The King having employed all his care, and art to hinder the Reiters from entering into the Kingdom, and all to no purpose, and finding all Treaties, and all moderate ways ineffectual to divert the blow, that was intended against him, he at last put on his wont resolution, and determined bravely to encounter that danger, he then plainly saw he could not with all his dexterity prevent. Having therefore in this determination assembled his Council, to the end he might advise with his principal Ministers, about an Affair of this important consequence; and having there laid open the business to them, he found their opinions very different; neither is it strange that men of several judgements should descent in a resolution of this high nature: some advised him to advance with his Army out of his own Confines, and there to expect, and fight the Enemy: others were of a contrary opinion; neither did the one, nor the other want reasons, or example to justify their advice. At last the King himself delivered his own opinion, which was, To permit the Enemy quietly to enter the Kingdom, but withal to make them pass through so many difficulties, and to suffer so many necessities, that they should be already as good, as overcome, before they should come to fight. He remonstrated to them, that to encounter them fresh, and in their trim, as they came out of their own Country, animated to War by the Interest of Religion, and by the compassion of their Confederates, were to expose things to a doubtful event. That the loss of a Battle, in the flourishing condition those of the Reformed Religion would be after such a Victory, would endanger France, and the Catholic Religion. That he had a desire to preserve both the one, and the other, and to ruin his Enemies more leisurely: but withal more surely, and that there would nevertheless be Honour enough in the Victory, provided it were absolute, and entire. This being then the final Resolution, his Majesty gave order forthwith, that his Armies should be all ready in july following, to appear at Meaux, which he assigned for the general Rendezvous; and, besides the present Forces that he intended to set on foot, he commanded that in every Province, the Nobility, and * Arrierebans, which upon examination I find to be in effect the same thing with our Train-bands Train-Bands should be ready to march at the first Summons. He dispatched also several Commissions for new Levies, to the end, they might either serve to fill up the old Troops, as they should grow thin; or to stand for a reserve in case any thing should happen amiss to the main Army. He sent Commissaries on purpose to beat down all the Ovens, and Mills that were in his Enemy's way, from the Frontier, as far as the place he had appointed for his own Quarters. He caused all the Grain of the▪ Country to be fetched in, and stored up in the good Towns, with all Artificers, and Tradesmen of what condition soever. He caused all the defensible Cities to be fortified with Men, Victuals, and Ammunition; and on the contrary, demolished all such places as were not tenable, nor able to withstand a Siege. He commanded all the Bridges to be broken down, all the Fords to be spoiled, and generally all things to be destroyed, that might any way contribute to his Enemy's advantage, or subsistence. He further sent to the Duke of Lorain, that it stood with his Interest, in this occasion, to do the same in his Territories; and having thus disposed all things, and the Duke of Espernon having highly applauded what he had done, he told the King with his wont freedom, that there was one thing yet left undone; which, though it were more in his Majesty's Power, and Royal Disposition, than all the rest, would nevertheless be the hardest for him to execute. The King commanded him to explain himself, and to tell him what that thing was, promising withal to satisfy him in it; whereupon the Duke growing more serious, told him, That he humbly besought his Majesty to command his Army in Person, and alone without a Competitor that might dispute with him the Honour of a Victory, that, by his Prudent disposition of Affairs, was as good as certain to him. Which the King solemnly promised him he would: but afterwards, according to his custom, giving too much ear to the Counsels of others, and not enough relying upon his own wisdom, he altered that resolution, and dividing his Army into two, gave the better part to the Duke of Guise; and so deprived himself of the whole glory of that Action, to bestow it upon another. The Duke of Guise expert, and valiant, as any Prince of his time, had those Forces no sooner committed to his charge, but that he immediately marched them away to the Frontiers of Champagne, to observe the Enemy's motion, and to oblige them by his lying so near to march close together; which, considering the spoil that had before been made of the Country, was as great an inconvenience as they could suffer. The Duke of joyeuse had also an Employment against the King of Navarre, to hold him in play in Guienne, and to hinder him from joining with the Foreign Army, that came to his assistance. But the Duke of Espernon was reserved by his Majesty to attend upon his own person; as one in whom he reposed an entire confidence, and as a man whose sole and utmost aim, the King evidently saw, was equally directed to his Majesty's Honour, and to the Kingdom's safety: To him the King gave the command of the Vanguard of his own Army; in which Employment he so behaved himself, both with his Valour, his Advice, and his Experience, that the very Historians of that time, M●smoires de la Ligue. though envious, as the greater part of men are, of the greatness of Favourites, could not forbear notwithstanding to attribute to him a very considerable share in the success of that memorable Defeat. And here give me leave without being blamed for a digression from my Subject, Anno 1587. and that upon the Duke of Espernon's word, a man better read than any whosoever in the business of that time, to oppose his Testimony against a Scandal D'Avila has published; not only to the discredit of the Duke of joyeuse his Favour: but also to the infinite prejudice of his Honour. He says that the King, at the Duke's dismission to go to the Army his Majesty had given him in command, gave him this reproach. Che la Corte lo teneva in concetto di poltrone, é chegli era bene di levarsi questo fregio dal viso: which is to say, That the Court looked upon him as a Poltroon, and that he should do well to wipe off that blemish. Towards the Duke's latter end, I read this History to him, which was then newly published in France; and the Duke had very highly commended the Author, though in many particulars he had not spoken very favourably of him: above all he infinitely commended the exact care he had taken to inform himself of the secret motives, by which the several interests of that time were carried on; of which he does in truth for the most part render a very precise, and very often, a very true account: But when he heard these words, which were so highly injurious to the Duke of joyeuse, he could not forbear crying out, ● hat D'Avila was a liar, that he himself was present when the Duke of Joyeuse took his leave of the King; that his Majesty could never have had so great a kindness for a man of whom he had once entertained so mean an opinion; that on the contrary be esteemed him to be as valiant, and as brave a Gentleman, as any was in his Kingdom: And where D'Avila continues to say that he was become burdensome to the King, that the King could no longer bear it; and that he therefore sent him upon this expedition purposely to be cut off: the Duke of Espernon bore witness, That he saw the King weep at the Duke of Joyeuse his departure, than which there could not be a greater evidence of his tenderness and affection to him. That had the King had a mind to have been rid of him, and to have exposed him to the King of Navarre's Forces, he would never have set him out with an Army, almost twice as strong, as that he was employed against, and made up of as good Soldiers as any were in the Kingdom: so that if he lost the Battle of Coutras, it was rather through the chance of War, or through the Valour, and good fortune of the King of Navarre, than by any default of his Army. And to answer yet further to what has been writ concerning his Favour, of which D'Aubigné only speaks by hear-say, making stories, as it is his custom at the random of his own passion, and fancy: The Duke has told me that the King was indeed grown colder towards the Duke of joyeuse, than he had formerly observed him: but that he only attributed that to the Alliance the Duke had contracted with the House of Lorain, and that it was only a diminution of ●avour, and never grew to a disgrace; and indeed, had his Majesty conceived a positive aversion to him, would he have given such public evidences of sorrow for his Death as he did? would he have honoured his dead Body with that excessive Pomp, and those unusual Obsequies? which were such as gave all the Nobility occasion to murmur, having never before been allowed to any, save to the Princes of the Blood, and to the Constables of France, exclusively to all other great men of the Kingdom. The Historians of that time have further discoursed of the jealousy betwixt the two Favourites: to which I can answer on the Duke of Espernon's behalf, that I could never find by any thing I could ever gather from him, that he had been in the least touched with that passion; neither is it very likely, considering the advantage the Duke visibly had in the King's Opinion, there could be any jealousy on his part; but if there had formerly been any such thing betwixt them (as it is hardly possible but there must have been some emulation betwixt two concurrents in so high a pretence as that of a King's Favour) the Death of the Duke of joyeuse, and a long series of time having worn out those impressions, there now remained nothing more in the Duke of Espernon's memory, than the remembrance of their near Relation, and former Friendship. Some time before the Duke of joyeuse his Death, the knot of that Alliance had been broken by the death of Catherine de Nogaret, and dela Valett●, the Duke of Espernon's Sister; who having at the King's motion, and to the common satisfaction of both the Favourites been married to the Count de Bouchage, younger Brother to the Duke of joyeuse; after they had for four or five years only lived together in a most perfect harmony, this Virtuous Lady died, leaving one Daughter only behind her, namely Cathe●ine de joyeuse, the same, who having formerly been Duchess of Montpensier, is now Duchess of Guise; a Princess of undisputed Virtue, and such as has ever shone equally bright, throughout the prosperities, and afflictions that have divided her life. The C●mpte de Bouchage after having lost his Wife, finding nothing in the world either to allure him, or to comfort him, retired himself from it amongst the Father Capuchins; where he took upon him the Habit of that Order, and there continued some years, under the name of Father Ange de joyeuse. 'Tis true, the Pope having since enjoined his Superiors to persuade him abroad again, to the end he might be Head of the League in Languedoc, that he obeyed his command: but it was to return afterwards into the same order again, as soon as Affairs would give him leave, where he continued to his death, and died in great opinion of Sanctity. And since, upon occasion, I have been drawn aside to mention this Marriage out of its due order, it is reasonable that I now speak of that of the Duke, The Marriage betwixt the Duke of Espernon and Marguerite de Foix, and de Candalle. which happened at this time. The Duke therefore having been offered a match with the Sister-in-law of his King, and having been esteemed not unworthy to marry with the King of Navarre's Sister, her Brother being at that time immediate Heir to the Crown: It is to be presumed he might reasonably pretend to the greatest Fortune whatsoever in France but amongst the many were proposed to him, he preferred that with Marguerite de Foix, and the Candelle, Daughter and Heir to Henry de Foix, and the Candelle, and to Mary de Montmorency, before all the rest. The Father, and Mother of this Lady died both young, her Mother of Sickness, and her Father at the Siege of Sommieres. For the Duke de Anvil his Brother in law, having undertaken that Siege, A●●igné. the Compte do Candelle raised two thousand men amongst his Tenants in Gascony to favour his Design; a very considerable supply in the weak condition the Duke de Anville's Army than was; where being come, and finding the breach already made, and the assault ready to be given, he entreated the Honour of the first Assault might be conferred upon his men, who he desired might give immediate proof of their Valour. A fatal request, which having been granted to him, his men went on with very great courage to the assault; where, being as resolutely received, they were at last beaten back: but the Compte de Candalle, not being able to endure such a repulse, returned to the Assault, and putting himself in his Doublet only at the head of his men, he repelled the Enemy, and won the top of the Breach; when being now upon the point to carry the Town, an unfortunate Musket shot in his Throat laid him dead upon the place. An accident, by which the Town, already as good as taken, was again lost with the life of the Conqueror. By the death of this Compte, his Daughter being then but three years old, was left to the Tuition of Francis de Foix, and de Candalle Bishop of Air, her Uncle by the Father's side, a Prelate who, having to the dignity of his Birth, added a singular knowledge in the profoundest Sciences, and chief in the Mathematics, had the reputation of one of the most excellent Men, not only of his own time, but also of all Antiquity; Yet did not his diligence in study, though he were immeasurably addicted to it, hinder his due care of his Niece, either as to the Education of her Person, or as to the management of her Fortune; for he delivered her over when very young, to the Connestable de Montmorency her Aunt, a Lady of singular Virtue, who had earnestly desired it, that she might bring her up, as one of her own Daughters; which she accordingly did: and under her excellent Tuition this young Lady grew up to so great a perfection in all virtuous Qualities, that she won the general Applause, and was admired above all others of her Quality in the Kingdom. To these eminent endowments of Mind she had yet the advantage of her Birth, and the reputation of her Fortune: For the first I shall need to say no more, than that she was allied to almost all the Crowns of Europe, Tho●. and that from her Family descended the House of Navarre, that her Family had obliged Hungary with a Queen, Bem●●. and France with a Gaston de Foix, with other Captains of so incomparable Valour, as took place of the most eminent Leaders of their time. Their Estates had also been very great, and there yet remained in fair demesnes to the value of above fourscore thousand Livers annual Rent; though to say truth, the Affairs of that Family had of late years been so ill managed, that there now remained but a very small part of that vast Revenue clear, and unincumbred with Debts. Her Estate therefore required both a discreet manager to husband it, and a man well furnished with money, to disengage it, and to restore it to that Splendour, and Reputation, in which it had formerly been: And if the Person of this Lady I speak of, was not endowed with all those Criticisms of form the curious will have concur to the making up of a rare, and illustrious Beauty, she had yet so much, and that set off with so graceful, and so winning a Fashion, as obliged the Duke to become her Suitor; after which it was not long before the King concluded the Marriage. The Solemnity was held at Bois de Vincennes, the 7th. day of August, in the Year 1587. the King being then going against the Reiters, who were already entered the Borders of France. It is not long since I saw the Articles of that Contract, with the Inventories of the Duke's Estate, both Personal and Real, then taken in the presence of the Countess de Ryberac, and a Gentleman sent for that purpose on the behalf of the Bishop of Air, and by his Letter of Attorney authorised to manage that business. For the Bishop, what hopes soever they could give him of the obtaining of a Cardinal's Hat, if he would come to Court, he could never be drawn from his Books, nor tempted to leave his Study: and his Ambition lying another way, that is, rather to search into the solid Truth, than the vain Appearance of things, he found a greater contentment of mind in his retirement, and solitude, than in all the lustre and bustle of the Court. There were few Writers of that time that do not make mention of the Duke's great Riches, and of the King's unlimited liberalities towards him; and yet upon this occasion there was only found in Land, The Duke's Estate at h●s Marriage. Jewels, Plate, and other Furniture, to the value of thirteen hundred thousand Crowns; which if a man consider the difference berwixt this Fortune, and those of many others, that we have since known, not only Favourites, but also men of very mean beginnings, that have been raised to far greater Riches, in a much shorter time, than the Duke was a Favourite, will appear no such prodigious proportion. His Hostel at Paris was also part of this Estate, which I have heard the Duke say, was then the best House next to the Queen Mothers, now called l' Hostel de Soissons, and so little inferior even to that, that after the Queen's death he might have had it, advancing 10000 Crowns, in exchange for his own. I have made this observation that we may consider to what a degree of State, and Beauty the Structures of these latter times are got, when this House, that was then the second in Paris, has now scarce any name, amongst the many Structures that have been erected since. Men have since been very liberal in their censure of the Duke's Oeconomy, and which many unjust to his Honour, and not very kind to him, have blemished with the name of Avarice: I cannot deny but that the Oeconomy of his House was great, neither do I see why that should not have its due Honour amongst his other Virtues; he being in this as much a Steward for the public, as for his own private Interests: for who does not know that the Profusions of Princes, and the Prodigality's of Favourites, are ever to be repaired by the Oppression of the People? He was a good Husband 'tis true, but his good Husbandry, far from the meanness of Avarice, served only to maintain his greatness, and to enable him the better to support the lustre of his Expense without being chargeable to the King. It has ever been such, that from his first rise to Favour, during the whole course of his life, no man ever maintained a nobler Table at Court, a better Stable of Horses, a more numerous train of Attendants, and those men of Quality, and good Fashion, more stately Furniture, nor a greater number of inferior Servants than the Duke did. His expense in Building infinitely exceeded all others of his condition, and all this without the least abatement in his ordinary way of living, without any visible incommodity in his Affairs, or without ever importuning the King his Master; which can only be attributed to his Oeconomy, and the prudent government of his Affairs, many other great Persons, of far greater Estates than he, having never been able to do such things, as he did with great ease, without apparent inconvenience, and great disorder. The King, willing upon this occasion of the Duke's Marriage to continue his Liberalities, made him then a gift of four hundred thousand Crowns: but the Duke had never other advantage by it, than the bare testimony of his Masters good Inclinations towards him: For the Treasury being either wholly exhausted, or containing no more than was necessary to defray the immediate War, the money could no ways have been raised, but by a new Tax upon the People, which would have bred new Discontents; and though his Majesty notwithstanding desired such an Imposition might be laid; the Duke a truer Servant to his Master's Interests, than a Friend to his own, would never consent, but obstinately opposed it. The Papers are yet to be seen amongst those that were found at his Death, for an eternal monument of this good Master's Affection, and for a testimony of the small account the Servant made of a Benefit, that must be exacted with the clamours of the People, and that was likely to pull down a popular Odium upon his Benefactor. Amongst the preparations that were made for the Duke's Marriage, the King was still intent upon his business, not omitting any due care that might fit his Army to receive the strangers; who were now upon their March, under the command of the Baron de Dona, and were already advanced to the Frontiers of Lorain. The Reiters enter into France. There it was that the Germans first began to be sensible of those inconveniences his Majesty's prudent Conduct had strewed in their way, which still as they advanced further into France, where they promised to themselves a great abundance of all things (upon the false hopes wherewith their Leaders were prepossessed, that the whole Court favoured the King of Navarre, and that they had only the Duke of Guise to wrestle with) they found more, and more to increase upon them, all things removed out of their way that should any ways contribute to the support of so great a Body. And then it was that they plainly saw the vanity of those airy promises that had been made them; they found themselves in a few days oppressed with hunger, thirst, and sickness, their Arms with rust dismounted, and useless, their Horses unshod, and themselves exposed to all the other miseries, with which great Armies in long Marches, and in an Enemy's Country are usually afflicted: By which misfortunes their eyes being opened, they began to fear, and to foresee those, that in a short time fell upon them: but amongst all those difficulties, that which troubled them the most, was their encounter with the Duke of Espernon; who, whilst they were trying to find a pass over the River Loire, having continually coasted them, and attended their motion with eight hundred light Horse, and five hundred Harquebuses on Horseback, and having by his activity, The Duke Beats up a Quarter of the Germane Horse. and vigilancy found an opportunity to beat up a Quarter of twelve hundred Light Horse, and to take the Cornets from them, they plainly saw by that action what they were likely to expect; for they had been made to believe that the Duke was won over to the King of Navarre's Party, a slander (which, having been first spread abroad by the League) those of the Reformed Religion made good use of, De 〈◊〉 de Ligu●. to encourage the strangers to enter the Kingdom: but they, having received so smart a proof of the contrary, were now undeceived: and the more clearly they were convinced of their error, the more did their fears increase; which begetting at first private mutterings, and growing on to public murmurs, proceeded at last to an open Mutiny. The Duke, well informed of this disorder in the Enemy's Camp, began with great dexterity to manage their discontents to the King's advantage; he treated therefore for an accommodation, both with the Reiters, and the Swiss: the latter of which made up a considerable part of that Army, all their Infantry almost being raised out of the Swiss Cantons; pressing nevertheless with his flying Army the Rear of the one, or the other; at the same time that he disturbed their March, and their Quarters with his Armies entertaining them with overtures of Agreement, putting them at once in fear of the King's Force, and in hopes of his clemency: by which different ways of proceeding to one and the same end, the two Nations, equally perplexed, at last harkened to an Accommodation: which notwithstanding was concluded only with the Swiss at that time, and with them the Articles were agreed upon, and Signed under the King's good Pleasure, the 18. of November 1587. Which being afterwards ratified by his Majesty, they immediately retired into their Confines. This great body thus separated from the Reiters, the remaining Army was in such perplexity, that there was now nothing, but disorder, and confusion amongst them; so that their courages being abated, by the extreme necessities they suffered by their being abandoned by their Confederates, who made up the best part of their Army, and by the fear of worse michiefs to come, they now thought of nothing more, than of retiring from the extreme danger they saw themselves enveloped in: and then it was that they harkened in good earnest to the Propositions which were then offered to them afresh by the Duke, though much harder than the former; neither could all the Entreaties, or Authority of their Leaders, as well French, as those of their own Nation, prevail any thing, or dissuade them from concluding a composition, and from retiring at last into their own Country. The Reiters come to Composition, and retire. The Articles with them were Signed the eighth day of December, in the same year by the same Duke: by which it appears, that his courage, vigilancy, and Wisdom contributed not a little to the diversion of this dangerous storm, and to the preservation of the Kingdom from so powerful an invasion, as that of an Army consisting of forty thousand fight men. Yet is it not to be denied but that the Duke of Guise did also very brave service in this occasion; he defeated great numbers of them both at Vilmory, and at Aulneau: but in the condition they then were, ruined, and disarmed by the King's forecast, beaten, and Disunited by the Duke of Espernon's Skirmishing, and Practices, it infinitely much facilitated the Duke of Guise his Victories, to have an Enemy reduced to such straits before he came to engage them. But if the War was carried on with good success to the King in the forementioned engagements, things succeeded much otherwise on his Majesty's part with the King of Navarre: for the Duke of joyeuse having precipitated the Battle of Coutras, the advantage of his Forces having blinded him even to a Contempt of the Enemy (an ordinary presage of Ruin to whoever is too secure of his Fortune) he there lost the Battle, The loss of the Battle of Coutras. with his Life, the twentieth of October, in the same year; together with as considerable a number of Nobility, and Gentry, as have almost fallen in one day in any one Battle in France. Some have believed that the King was neither so much displeased at the loss of this Battle, nor conceived himself so much prejudiced by it, as he imagined himself eclipsed by the Victory he soon after obtained over the Strangers; a deplorable effect of this Prince's misfortune, who could neither be afflicted with his losses, nor yet absolutely satisfied with his success. We have already told you the Reasons the King had not to desire the King of Navarre's Ruin; so that he enjoyed in part his own de●ire in the loss of this Battle, which made for the support of the King of Navarre, and his Party; by whose assistance he thought with less difficulty to mate the ambitious Designs of the League: Whereas the Victory obtained over the Reiters, only served to augment the Duke of Guise's Glory, who was his real, and capital Enemy. Hence therefore proceeded his disquiet, and affliction; and this was it that turned even the prosperous successes of his Arms to his vexation, and trouble. His Majesty fearing left the Duke of Guise puffed up with the vanity of the popular esteem, and the opinion of his own merit, should take upon him the assurance to ask some of the Offices, which were vacant by the Duke of joyeuse his Decease, conferred them all immediately upon the Duke of Espernon; who was in one day made Admiral of France, The Duke of Espernon gratified with all the Offices vacant by the Death of the Duke of joyeuse. Governor of Normandy, Caen, and Haure de Grace: and the dispatches were delivered to him at Gergeau, the seventh of November, 1587. the Death of the Duke of joyeuse happening but in the end of October the same year. Neither was this the only advantage the Duke reaped from the ill success of this Battle; for his Cousin Bellegarde, Governor of Xaintonge, As also those of Bellegarde killed at that Battle. Angoumois, and the Country of Aulnis, having there received a mortal Wound, and dying soon after, the Duke had also the Governments vacant by his decease conferred upon him: which, as we shall hereafter see, at his departure from Court afforded him the benefit of a secure, and honourable Retreat. Although the Victories obtained from the Germane Army were very great, and of great moment; yet were not the Designs of the Enemy utterly ruined by the Defeat, and Dissipation of those Forces beyond the Loire. For the Huguenot Party, who were infinitely solicitous to add all the vigour and encouragement they possibly could to their cause, were principally careful to reinforce Mounsieur Lesdiguieres, who was effectually a very brave Commander, and one of the main pillars of their Faction. There had been therefore four thousand Swiss drawn out of the main Body of the Germane Army, Des Memoires de la Ligue. and sent away into Dauphine to assist him there, and to make him able either to oppose Mounsieur de la Valette, or (if Fortune so favoured their Arms) absolutely to drive him out of that Province, a Force, like enough to cut out a great deal of work in those parts: But lafoy Valette's Fortune being here constant to his Valour, their coming only administered to him an opportunity, wherein to share with the Duke his Brother the Honour that was to be acquired in the Defeat of that Foreign Enemy: For opposing that great Body with only two thousand Foot, and three hundred Horse, he cut them all off in their passage over the River Lizere. Mounsieur de la Valette Def●●●● part of the Foreign Army. De ●hou. Mounsieur de Thou says that there were not fifty Prisoners remaining; so that this may be reckoned amongst the other great losses that Nation sustained in this Expedition. And that which makes it yet more remarkable, is, that Lesdiguieres, and Chatillon being advanced on the other side of the River with three thousand Foot, and six hundred Horse to favour their passage, were beaten back, and constrained to look on, whilst their Confederates were all cut in pieces before their eyes, without being able to give them the least assistance. By this handsome action so happily performed, the hopes those of the Religion had conceived, of reaping any signal advantage from their Victory at the Battle of Coutras, and by uniting with the Foreign Army, were utterly frustrated. Neither can I forbear in this place to give Colonel * The same who in D' Avila is called Alphonso Corso. Alphonso, afterward Marshal d' Ornano, his due share of honour, who fought it with singular Valour; but still under Mounsieur de la Valette's Conduct, and by his directions; with whom no man can dispute the absolute honour of that notable Defeat, After so many brave exploits achieved by the King for the defence of his Kingdom, Anno 1588. and after so considerable services performed by the Duke of Espernon, and by la Valette his Brother, for the public safety; who would have imagined but that his Majesty should have been welcomed home with a thousand blessings of his people, and that so good Subjects should have received the praises due to their Fidelity, and Valour? Nevertheless all these Victories, with the care, industry, and hazards that produced them, wrought a quite contrary effect▪ through the blind affection the giddy multitude had violently placed upon the Duke of Guise. There was now no other discourse at Paris but of him; the Pulpits, Courts, and Public Assemblies rung with his Name: it is to him only that they owe their Lives, and Liberties, and 'tis only his presence they desire. The King's own Person, and those of his most faithful Servants, are become odious to the Parisians. They talk high of transferring the Regal Dignity to the Duke of Guise. They scatter up and down Printed Libels, wherein from railing against the King, proceeding on to the King of Navarre, they would have him declared incapable of succession to the Crown, to the end there might remain no title to dispute the Duke of Guise's Possession. Nay to such a contempt of his Person and Royal Dignity they were grown at last, that these discourses were frequent, and loud in the Kings own Family; his most obliged Servants not daring almost to reply; renouncing by that poor and unmanly toleration, their own interest, whilst they abandoned that of their Sovereign and Benefactor. Neither was there any, save only the Duke of Espernon, a man that slighted his own danger, and despised the malice of all mankind, when his Master's Honour lay in the Balance, who generously exposed himself upon all occasions, to the public violence, that he might preserve the integrity of his Duty. Of which to give you an instance, it happened one day, in a great deal of company, that the Archbishop of Lions, a Prelate of a ready Wit, and great Elocution, but passionately zealous for the League, openly maintained, That the Pope had Power to absolve Subjects from their Allegiance to their lawful Prince: To which the Duke highly offended, as he had reason to be at so dangerous an Argument, made answer before them all, That it would be as hard to persuade him to that, as to make him believe that the Pope could grant a Dispensation to a Prelate to lie with his own Sister: Now you must know it was generally believed at Court, that this Prelate was too familiar with a person related to him in that degree; and as injuries make the deeper impression, by how much nearer they approach to truth: this so touched him to the quick, that he from thenceforward conceived against the Duke a mortal, and implacable hatred. Neither was he long in finding out a way openly to express it; for his Arms being his Tongue, and his Pen (reputed one of the most eloquent of his time) he employed them both with all the rancour imaginable, to blemish the Duke's Honour; he set upon him with a thousand injurious Writings; nor did he fail, for so much as in him lay, to stir up a popular Fury against his Life. Neither did the Duke of Guise labour his overthrow with less vehemency on his part, than the Bishop did on his: and as he knew the Duke's Interest to be very great, and his spirit inflexible, and hardly to be reconciled; so was he not content to endeavour his ruin obliquely, and underhand, but openly declared himself the Author of what he did, the better to effect his desire. And see the means he pursued to work his purpose. After the Reiters were driven out of the Kingdom, the Duke of Guise, accompanied with the principal Heads of his Party, retired to Nancy; where seeing the great Forces he had about him, and promising to himself wonders from the precipitous affection of the People, he resolved to prepare some Articles, which should be presented to the King in the Name of the League: Wherein, as he conceiv●d himself in a condition to carry by a high hand, whatsoever he should propose, he principally insisted upon the Duke of Espernon's removal from Court; pretending him to be a great abettor of the Heretics, the better to colour the persecution he intended against him: interpreting after this sort the affection the Duke had for the King of Navarre, and for all the Royal Family, though grounded upon principles far distant from being any ways interested in that Prince's Religion, as his actions ever had, and then did most clearly demonstrate. But as it was very unlikely that the King to satisfy his Enemies, should consent to the disgrace of his beloved Favourite, the Leaguers of Paris, to impose upon him a necessity of accomplishing the desires of their Party, conspired thenceforward to seize upon the person of the King, that so they might remove all future difficulties that might lie in the way of their Designs: neither did they fail much of executing that accursed Resolution. The Council of sixteen was at that time first set up in Paris; neither is any ignorant what that Council was, how impudent their Proceedings, and how great their Authority with the People, even in the very face of the King himself. In this Council it was one day agreed upon to seize upon the King as he came from hunting from the Bois de Vencennes; D' Avila. and it had accordingly been executed, had not the King (advertized of their purpose) doubled his Guards at his return. That Plot therefore failing, A Conspiracy of the sixteen upon the King's Person. there were divers other Ambuscado's laid for him during the Carnival, that often put him in great danger of being made a Prisoner to his own Subjects; which being all happily evaded, by the timely information of one Nicholas Poulin, a Lieutenant in the Provosty of the Isle of France, who was privy to all these Cabals: Many of the Court, (who (as it is believed) favoured the Designs of the League) endeavoured to render Poulin's Intelligence suspected, that the King discrediting his report, might at one time or another fall into his Enemy's snare: But the Duke of Espernon in an occasion of this consequence, making no difficulty of hazarding his own life, to search out the depth of these practices, frankly exposed himself to infinite danger, that so he might discover the certainty of so necessary, and so important a truth. Being therefore advertised by the same Poulin, that the sixteen had concluded an Assassinate upon him himself at the Fair of St. Germains, whither the Duke usually repaired to divert himself, Du journal de Henry III. with the entertainments of the season; he resolved to run the hazard, and accordingly went. The Plot was to have been executed by the Scholars, under whose name the Inhabitants of the Suburbs of St. Germains were ordered to slip in to fortify the attempt; all which being discovered to the Duke, it was certainly a dangerous, and almost desperate adventure, he thrust himself into; and which must proceed from an unparallelled affection, and a virtuous care he had of his Prince's safety, to run so great a hazard in so critical a time, when even the Court itself was corrupted in the Conspirators favour. And the Duke might excusably enough have forborn going to a place where the danger was immediately directed against his own person, and might have made the experiment, and have penetrated into the bottom of this Conspiracy, by another, without endangering his own life: and doubtless he had done so, had he had only his own Interest to consider in the case; but then things would afterwards have been left doubtful, and the King's life had been still exposed in the uncertainty of the truth of those cautions had been given him; which the Duke resolved by all ways imaginable to put out of future danger. He went therefore to the place where he knew himself to be threatened with death; but that could not affright him, provided he might secure the life of his Master; and being thither come, found the intelligence had been given him, to be punctually true: neither did they fail much of effecting their design; for a sort of young people being gathered about him, began to murmur, and from murmuring grew louder into clamours, making show at last, as if they would proceed to execute what they threatened: whereat the Duke not frighted with their noise, put himself into a posture to resist the violence intended against him; by which resolute carriage, having with as much courage, as good fortune, disengaged himself, he leisurely retired towards the Lovure, not a man daring to attempt any thing upon him, as if even his Enemies had been struck with a kind of reverence due to so brave, and so honourable an Action. After there was no further doubt to be made, but that Poulin's intelligence was true; and by how much the King's danger still increased, by so much the greater was the Duke of Espernon's diligence, zeal, and ardour for the security of his Majesty's Person: so that there passed not a night, wherein sometimes with two, sometimes with three, or four Companies of the Regiment of Guards, he walked not the Round into the most seditious Quarters of the City: and if at any time he had notice of any extraordinary Assembly, thither it was that he immediately repaired with a stronger Party; nor did he ever go to rest, till he had first settled all things quiet, and had carefully provided for his Master's safety. So that it is not to be believed how many of the Enemy's Conspiracies against the King's Person, were countermined, and frustrated, by his vigilancy and diligence. The sixteen seeing their Designs thus traversed, and fearing to be prevented (for they now no longer doubted but that their Treasons were discovered) dispatched away in all haste to the Duke of Guise, pressing him by all means, to make what speed he could to Paris; hoping by his arrival in the first place to be sheltered from the King's Justice, and in the next to reap the fruits of their inordinate desires▪ Neither was the Duke long deliberating upon this Journey; the time as he conceived, being as favourable, as he could possibly wish, for him to raise his Fortune to that prodigious height, to which his ambition had already designed it: For the danger of the Foreign Army being already blown over, and the King of Navarre so depressed since, that it was almost impossible for him ever to rise again, he thought he could never meet with so happy an occasion, and consequently prepared himself without further delay for his Journey▪ Of which resolution the King being advertised, and knowing that he was now on his way, and already advanced as far as Soissons, he dispatched away the Sieur de Bellieure to meet him, and to forbid him from coming to Paris; a command that added spurs to his desire, which usually in great spirits grows most violent, where it meets with most difficulty, and is most eager when most forbidden. But by this message the Duke presently imagining that his Designs were discovered, and doubting that if he did longer defer to drive them on to their intended end, he was in danger to be prevented, and to see himself involved in the disaster, that commonly attends men who deliberate too long upon the execution of great Erterprises, he made all the haste he possibly could; and turning aside from the ordinary Road, for fear of meeting another command, which notwithstanding (his Ambition still presenting to him the image of that greatness to which he aspired) he was resolute not to obey; he came at ●ast with extraordinary diligence to Paris, surprising all men with his sudden and unexpected arrival. At this time (which made still better for the Duke of Guise) the Duke of Espernon was gone to take possession of his Government of Normandy: where he had been received with great acclamations of the people both at Roven, Caen, and the other principal Cities of that Province; so that all places there continued quiet, and firm in the King's Obedience, Haure de Grace only excepted, which alone stood out for the League▪ But before the Duke's departure into Normandy, the King having (as it was his custom) taken him one day in his company to ●resne, his Majesty there in a private Conference discovered to him the trouble, and disquiet the Duke of Guise's Resolution of coming to Paris had put him into, with the danger, to which his arrival (the absolute power the Duke had with the People duly considered) would expose both his Person, and Affairs; and there his mind equally possessed with foresight, and jealousy, making him penetrate into the events of things, as if they had been present before him, he prophesied to the Duke almost all the misfortunes that befell him in a few days after. Whereupon the Duke freely told him that he saw only one way to avoid those mischiefs his Majesty foresaw, and that was to cause the Duke's Head to be struck off, even in the Lovure itself, should he be so impudent as to come to Paris contrary to his Majesty's express command; an advice which he fortified with so many reasons, that the King bound himself with an Oath to do it; though when it came to the test, his resolution appeared no more constant in this than it had done before in other occasions, as we shall presently see. But if things were thus determined on the King's part, the Duke of Guise was no less diligent on his, and had omitted nothing that might any way conduce to the effecting of his Designs: and that he might not, at his coming to Paris, lie at the mercy of his Enemies, he had secretly, and by several ways sent thither divers of his best Commanders beforehand, with order to prepare all those of his Faction in readiness to appear in Arms upon the first occasion: and having thus provided for his safety, came himself to the City the ninth of May, in the year 1588. and attended only with * D' Avila says but seven, De S●rres says eight. twelve, or fifteen Gentlemen alighted at the Queen Mother's Lodgings; who though infinitely surprised at his coming, went immediately along with him to the King: by whom he was received (notwithstanding that his Majesty had been before dissuaded from his first resolution) with so great a disorder in his countenance, as plainly denoted the contrary passions, that were then struggling in his mind. Which the Queen Mother perceiving, and knowing what a determination the King had put on against him; the execution of which she perhaps thought neither safe, nor easy; or perhaps willing to preserve the Duke, she took the King aside, and wrought so effectually with him, that she absolutely changed his mind (which was then wavering, and irresolute) from his premeditated purpose. Yet could she not so qualify and appease him, but that he gave the Duke of Guise very manifest tokens of the highest Indignation: but after a few words, and those exceedingly bitter on the King's part, the Duke retired to his own house, where he more than ever continued his ambitious Designs, and seditious Practices. For his vast Courage, the excess of which had raised him above the condition, and debauched him from the obedience of a Subject, would (as it is believed) now perfect the work had been so long before contrived, and strike home to the main Design. All which though the King very well knew, and though he endeavoured all he could to prevent him, and to deprive him of those means by which he was most likely to effect his purpose; yet those his Majesty employed, proving too weak to divert so great a mischief by their vain oppositions, only made the Torrent to swell higher, which soon after overflowed the Banks with greater violence. All the world has heard of the Barricades of Paris, The Barricades. a day of all others the most infamous to the French Name, and to the inviolate respect that Nation has ever born to their natural Princes, that ever happened since the first foundation of that Monarchy. Of which, to write the particulars, were to deviate impertinently from my Subject: It shall therefore be sufficient to say, that the Duke of Espernon was not at Paris, when this disorder fell; but they there found his richest furniture, upon which the hatred, and avarice of the people wreaked their utmost spleen, and extremest rancour. This storm of popular fury having continued the space of three days without intermission, or abatement; and the King, after the disarming of his Guards, and some other Forces he had then in Paris, having now no means left to defend his Person, which he saw in danger every moment to fall into his Enemy's hands; the multitude preparing on every side to beset the Lovure, he made a virtue of necessity: and to evade the danger that still increased upon him, walking out at the back Gate of the Tuilleries, he presently took Horse in the Garden near to the Stables, and, attended only by sixteen Gentlemen, The King retires to Chartres. retired with all possible diligence to Chartres. The Duke of Espernon was no sooner advertized of this disorder, but that he presently hasted from Roven (where the news was first brought him) to the King; The Duke of Espernon's arrival at Chartr●s. and as he did believe, with very good reason, that his Majesty's Enemies would not satisfy themselves with what they had already done, so he thought it fit to go well accompanied; neither did he a little revive the Court at his arrival, having above five hundred Gentlemen in his Train. They who have undertaken the History of that time, variously report the Duke's Reception at this place: D' Avila says his entertainment was very cold, and that the King looking upon him as his Enemy's Pretence, for all the mischiefs they did, began to distaste him; yet he says soon after with a kind of contradiction, that his Majesty never went less in his affection to him, nor in the confidence he reposed in him, from the first beginning of his Favour. Contradictions amongst the Historians about the Duke's Reception at Court. Others write that he was received with great demonstrations of Favour and Esteem: of which both the one and the other say true; observing the due order of that little space betwixt the Duke's Entertainment at his first arrival, and that he received after he had been two hours in private Conference with the King. It is most certain that this Prince afflicted with his Misfortunes, and reduced more than ever to the necessity of dissimulation, did not at first receive him with that excess of kindness he had formerly done; and it is likewise true, that apprehending at first sight some just reproach from the Duke's passionate affection to his Service, for that his Majesty had not put in execution what he had resolved upon at Fresne, his Majesty put on an unusual gravity at his arrival: But after he had talked with him, and that the Duke who was too discreet, at such a time, to offer the least syllable that might afflict his Master, had on the contrary raised his Spirits with new hopes, he then opened his Bosom to him more than ever; and having received his wont good Counsels, entertained again the joy, and vigour, which seemed to have been stifled in his Misfortunes, and began to meditate the means, and that with good hopes of success, of restoring his Affairs to their former Condition. And then it was that he caressed the Duke with his accustomed freedom, honouring him in public with as high demonstrations of Favour, as ever. It was at this Conference, that the Duke gave his Majesty an account of his Voyage, of the good condition, wherein he had left his Government, and what his Majesty might expect from thence: How all things were so well disposed there, that excepting Haure de Grace, the League possessed nothing in that Province; and that even he who commanded there, had given very good hopes of returning shortly to his Duty: That the Sieur de Cara●ges, Governor of Roven, formerly inclined to favour the League, was made firm to his Majesty's Service, and that the people in general were as well disposed, as good Subjects could possibly be: An Account so highly satisfactory to the King, that he presently resolved upon a Journey into that Province; it seeming to him neither decent, nor suiting with his Honour to continue at Chartres; where to make a longer stay, would look, as if he were there shut up, and forbidden all the other parts of his Kingdom. Neither was it without design, that the Duke spoke so advantageously to the King of the Forces of Normandy: And he could have wished his Majesty had conceived the same opinion of all his other Provinces; to the end that growing confident of his own Power, he might entertain the thoughts of Arms: For he certainly believed, that should his Majesty once undertake a War in good earnest, it would succeed infinitely to his advantage; that he would soon be in a condition to re-establish his neglected Authority, and to make himself feared of all his Subjects. But the King had already formed other Designs, and the Duke of Guise seeming to him so strongly supported, that he could not depress him by open force, without endangering at once himself, and his Kingdom; he thought it safer, though less honourable, to lull him asleep with the hopes of Peace, than by open War to provoke his already approved Power. The Duke of Guise also seeing the King escaped out of his hands, and that he could no more impose upon him those conditions he had proposed to the Queen Mother during the Barricades, was likewise not averse to an Accommodation. So that both Parties concurring in the same disposition, the business was quickly set on foot by the Queen Mother; who as she had been of the first, was now the Mediatrix of this Peace also. She had continued at Paris after the King's departure, and had not failed upon all occasions to possess the Duke of Guise, that the King was willing to be reconciled to him, and to forgive the Parisians upon their due Submission. Whereupon the Duke, the better to sound the King's intention herein, ordered the Parliament to attend his Majesty at Chartres, and there to offer him the first excuses for a fault which in its own nature admitted none: But the Provost des marchand's going before, and the Eschevins following after, both the one, and the other returned with great satisfaction: Which the Duke of Guise seeing, and interpreting this flexibility in the King to an effect of Fear, he re●assum'd his former hopes, and again set on foot the same propositions, which he had before so arrogantly insisted upon; to wit, that War should be proclaimed against the King of Navarre, that there should be Convocation of the State's General, and that the Duke of Espernon should be banished from Court, with a privation of all his Offices: Upon which last Article he chiefly insisted, openly declaring, that there could be no durable Peace, nor no sincere reconciliation, so long as he had so great an Enemy as the Duke in the King's Bosom. The Queen Mother, as has been said before, had long been jealous of the Duke of Espernon's Power, with the King her Son; neither indeed could she well brook any Favourites, but those who stood immediately obliged to her for their Fortune; an humour had made her so much the more impatient of the Duke's greatness, because it was an advantage for which he was indebted to none, but to his Master's bounty. She had often therefore pressed the King for his removal, as the only means to satisfy the League, had propounded several honourable Employments to colour his disgrace, and not long before would have had him sent Ambassador to Rome to justify the King from the aspersions, the League had cast upon him to the Holy Sea: but his Majesty who was as perfect in the Nature, and Designs of the Queen his Mother, as she was in his, had still been constant to his Servants Protection; and the Duke, having been bred up in the School of so politic a Master, had learned so much cunning, as had hitherto ever rendered all those Artifices ineffectual, by which she had so often, and so industriously laboured his Ruin. But at last the Queen (knowing how important the present occasion was to the Kings Repose) embraced it with that fervour, that in the end it procured the Dukes so long wished for removal. She had the management of the Treaty in hand absolutely committed to her, with the choice of any two of the King's Council to assist her; of which, such as she knew were affectionate to the Duke, you may be sure msut have nothing to do in this business; so that it was no hard matter, all parties concurring in the same design to conclude his disgrace: and in conclusion, the King was plainly told, that it was absolutely necessary for him to dismiss the Duke of Espernon, if his Majesty intended to have that Peace, he seemed so passionately to desire. To the same end there was then Printed a Manifest, The League Print a Manifest against the Duke of Espernon, and his Brother. subscribed by the Cardinal of Bourbon, as Head of the League; wherein the whole Faction were very importunate for the Duke's total Ruin, together with Mounsieur de la Valette his Brother; his bare removal from Court being now too little to satisfy their Malice: the League in this sole point comprehending the suppression of the Huguenot Party (of which they said the two Brothers were the Protectors with the King) the redress of the people (oppressed to enrich them) and the satisfaction of the great ones; who might easily be contented with those Offices, and Governments, which the two Brothers now possessed to their common prejudice. The Duke who very well foresaw that he must either comply with the time, or reduce the King to a necessity of taking up Arms to protect him (which would have made him responsible to his Majesty for any sinister event that might happen) chose the lesser evil; The Duke resolves to give way to the time, and to retire. and would rather alone undertake the defence of his own Fortune, than be any ways the occasion of so great a mischief. He saw the King's mind perpetually fluctuating, and continually alarmed with the Counsels of his Enemies; which, in his Majesty's astonishment, grew still more, and more prevalent with him; he saw the powerful Faction of the League wholly Armed against his Person; neither was there any who did not conclude his ruin inevitable in so dangerous a conjuncture, should he be once, though but a moment, removed out of the King's Protection: but he had courage enough to run the hazard, and his undaunted Spirit (notwithstanding he very well understood his danger) made him resolute with his own single Interest to stand the shock of all his Adversaries. I ought here to add yet another Motive the Duke had to retire from Court, a thing which will perhaps hardly be believed, though it be precisely true: but it merits a due place in the Duke's History, as the noblest testimony of a generous heart, and this it was. The Duke had understood something of the King's intention to cut off the Duke of Guise, by those ways by which it was afterwards effected at Blois; and not being able to divert that resolution, he chose rather to absent himself, than to be present at an action he thought so unworthy of his Master's Authority, and Greatness, though it redounded to his own particular preservation. 'Tis true, that in the first motions of the League, he had advised the King to take up Arms, to chastise him; that he had afterwards counselled him to cut off his Head at the very Gate of the Lovure, when the Duke came in contempt of his command to raise that Commotion in Paris; and that he had offered himself to fight him hand to hand in Duel; but he could by no means consent that his Majesty should commit an Act so unworthy of his Name: And this in truth was as powerful a Motive as any, to oblige him to retire. There is great diversity of Opinions amongst the Historians of that time about this retirement of the Dukes, whether, or no, it were frankly; and of his own motion; whether he were dismissed with the King's good Opinion, and Favour; or whether he went not away in a real disgrace; which they severally report, Several opinions upon the Duke's retirement. every man according to his particular passion: But D' Avila much better informed in the Affairs of the Cabinet, than the rest, inclines to the more favourable opinion, and says (very truly) that the Duke resolved upon this retirement of his own voluntary inclination, and that to the King's great grief; who notwithstanding, compelled by the necessity of the conditions imposed upon him in the Articles of Peace, consented to it: And of this truth there are two evident proofs; One, the great familiarity, and privacy the Duke had with the King some days before his departure: and the same D'Avila records, a very remarkable, and a very true passage upon this occasion. That the night preceding this separation, the Abbot del Bene, a great confident of the Duke's, and a man in great esteem with the King, for his excellent parts, (of which his Majesty made continual use in his Politics, a study in which he was strictly regular) was shut up alone with the King in his Cabinet for many hours; not so much as the Grooms of his Majesty's Chamber permitted to come in all the while; by which he conjectures, and very rightly, that his Conference was in order to some Instructions, which were to be conveyed by the Abbot (who was to accompany him in his retirement) to the Duke, for his future Conduct, during the time of his absence: And I have heard the Duke say, that he never in all his life received so many Testimonies of his Master's Affection, as he did at this time. His Majesty being pleased not only to chalk him out what he would have him do, and what he would have him avoid, during his retirement; but also adding a thousand Protestations, that he would sooner abandon his Crown, than his protection; and that he had not consented to his departure, but with a resolution to recall him speedily back to Court with greater Honour, and to confer upon him greater advantages, than he had ever yet done: Commanding at the same time the Abbot del Bene, not to stir from him, to have a care of his Person, and to be assisting to him with his Counsels, in whatever Accidents might happen, and in all the difficulties, and dangers he well foresaw would by his Enemies be prepared against him. The other proof, that the Duke was dismissed in a high state of Favour, was this, that his Majesty made him at his departure, Generalissimo of his Armies in the Provinces of Anjou, Maine, Perche, Poictou, Xaintonge, Angoumois, and the Country of Aulnis, with absolute Power to command: which certainly he would never have done, had his disgrace been really true, and not merely dissembled to satisfy the insolent demands of the League, and to comply with the necessity of the time. Things being thus disposed, the Duke went to take his leave of the King, and to receive his Majesty's final Commands; where, his affection in so great an extremity, suggesting to him the honest liberty, a passionate, and faithful Subject may justly take, he freely told him, That it was not without an extraordinary violence upon himself, that he came to beg leave of his Majesty, that he might retire into his Governments, where he hoped nevertheless to do his Majesty better service, than if he should continue about his Person. That to his extreme grief he saw of late his Majesty's safest Determinations, and the Counsels of his most faithful Servants perverted by the Artifices of those evil Ministers, who had usurped a greater share in his Royal Trust, and Confidence, than was consistent with the prosperity of his Affairs. That the Queen his Mother (however an excellent and prudent Princess) was notwithstanding abused, as his Majesty himself was. That seeing no cure for this evil, he had rather chosen to deprive himself of the Honour of being near his Majesty's Person, than to be an unprofitable Spectator of those inconveniences into which his evil Counsellors were about to precipitate his Affairs. That as to that hour no man could reproach him that any of his Actions had been contrary to his Majesty's Service; so he would not for the future, by a toleration unworthy a good Subject, and an honest Man, draw any jealousy upon his Intentions. That by an excess of bounty, and oftentimes contrary to his own desire, his Majesty had enriched him with so many Possessions, Honours, and Offices, that he had nothing left to desire of Heaven, but Moderation in a Prosperity raised so infinitely beyond his Hopes. That having received these benefits to no other end, than to employ them in his Majesty's Service, he should be ready to surrender all upon command, if by his Spoils any advantage might accrue to his Majesty's Affairs. That for the sum of all Obligation, and for a final Testimony of his Majesty's good Inclinations towards him, he had only two Requests to make: the first, That his Majesty would never confer any of his Offices upon any of the League; and the other, that so often as his Enemies should by their Malice seek to ruin him in his Majesty's Favour, he would please to recollect the infinite Obligations he had laid upon him; which was the greatest pledge of Fidelity, a good Servant, and an honest Man, as he pretended to be, could in his absence possibly leave with so good a Master. The King though already prepared for the Duke's departure, yet touched with so sad a Farewell, could not refrain from Tears; and his friendship producing the usual effects that all true friendships ordinarily do in such occasions, made him forget the conditions he was bound to perform, and once more to reiterate all sorts of persuasion to make him stay: In which importunities, though some have believed there was more of dissimulation, than real truth; yet it is certain, that his Majesty in this proceeded with a most sincere affection, and that looking more narrowly into the condition of his Affairs, and considering he was about to surrender his Person into the hands of his Enemies, by whom he saw himself already environed, he could have been content to have retained a Servant of so approved Valour, and Fidelity about him. But the Duke having so often tried, and so often found it impossible to settle the King's mind to such resolutions as were most proper to secure his Dignity with Honour, could never deliberate to look on, and see the continuation of those evils, for which he could neither see, nor hope for any possible Remedy. Remaining then firm in his resolution to depart, he made a voluntary surrender of his Government of Normandy into the King's hands, which was as soon transferred to the Duke of Montpensier, a Prince of the House of Bourbon, very affectionate to the King's Service, and Father to Henry of Bourbon, likewise Duke of Montpensier; the same, who in succession of time came to be the Duke's Nephew by a Marriage with Catherine de joyeuse his Niece, she, who (as we have said before) is now Duchess of Guise. And this, of all those Offices the Duke stood seized of, was the only resignation the King would consent to, whatever D' Auila is pleased to say to the contrary. He says that the King importuned the Duke to make a surrender of all his Employments at once, excepting his Government of Provence: but that the Duke, Who was a man of exceeding great understanding, and bred up by the King himself in all the Stratagems of State, raised so many difficulties, and made so many exceptions against the persons of all those who were proposed to succeed him, that suddenly departing, before any thing was concluded, he dexterously disengaged himself from so nice, and so dangerous a Proposition. It is certain notwithstanding that the Duke was never pressed to lay down any of his Offices: and if he did surrender his Government of Normandy, it was not only a voluntary act, but founded upon mature deliberation, and great judgement, as a Province that was near neighbour to Paris, separated many Leagues from all the rest of his Governments, and in which his Enemies had so great Interest, that his Presence would be necessary to secure it; neither considering the strong Faction they had within, was it certain to be secured. So that not being able amongst so many persecutions, as he saw prepared against him, to maintain all his Charges at once, he rather chose to part with that he was not likely to keep, at least without exposing all the rest, than to abandon the other strong Holds, and Places in his Possession; which though (particularly considered) they seemed to promise less, than so important a Government as that of Normandy; yet that by their vicinity to one another were more likely to be kept, and to be more serviceable to him. Thus then parted the Duke of Espernon from Court in june 1588. and retired himself to Loches, though far otherwise than in the equipage of a declining Minister, or attended like a Favourite lapsed into disgrace; but with a numerous train of above three hundred Gentlemen, and those of so good Quality, as that he employed the most of them for the raising of such Forces, as he had order from his Majesty speedily to set on foot. But that which rendered him every where more considerable, than this outward show of greatness, was his brave, and unbated Courage, of which he had given so many signal testimonies in his Prosperity, that there was nothing left, but such a disgrace as this, to give it the utmost test, The D●ke re●●●● into his Governments. and the last trial of a noble Constancy. Being come to Lochis, he presently set himself to look into the state of those Provinces newly committed to his charge; where by establishing such order as he thought convenient, by the dispatch of his Levies, and by disposing his men into the most important places, he prepared himself betimes to encounter such Accidents, as the severity of the time was likely to produce. Soon after the Duke's departure, the King went his Journey into Normandy: where the greatest Obstacle, being now removed, the Treaty of Peace went on without any further impediment, and was presently after concluded; the King (who had already determined how to dispose of the Duke of Guise) making no great difficulty to grant him what he was resolved he should not long enjoy. The Peace concluded, the Edict of Union was published, first at Roven, and then in all parts of the Kingdom; after which they immediately fell to the raising of Arms, for the utter suppression of the King of Navarre, and his Party. But above all things, the King was careful to hasten the necessary Dispatches for the Convocation of the State's General at Blois, in the beginning of October next ensuing, an Assembly equally desired by the King, and the Duke of Guise; but to different ends: The Duke hoping there by the joint suffrages of the several Orders of the Kingdom to see himself placed in that degree of height, to which his great Spirit, and vast Ambition, had so long aspired; and the King resolving there, and at that time to quench his restless and inordinate Ambition in a torrent of his own Blood. Thus do we often see the purposes of the greatest Politicians deluded, who, when they think they have brought their Designs by the most infallible Rules, and Maxims of Humane Prudence to an almost certain Issue, find themselves deceived, and usually meet with effects quite contrary to their expectation; giving us to understand, that we ought not to commit our actions to the blind conduct of our own frail and erroneous foresight, but into the hands of Providence, that governs all, and that brings all things to their determinate end. The Edict of Union being sworn, the Duke of E●pernon removed from Court, and the King satisfied (at least in appearance) with the Duke of Guise's, and the Parisians excuses; the Duke confident in the Queen Mother, The D●ke of Guise comes to Court. (who was of late become absolutely powerful with the KIng) had nothing now to hinder his coming to Court; so that upon his Majesty's return out of Normandy, he immediately repaired to him, and having found him at Chartres, he there in person delivered the same Apologies, he had not long before presented by the Mediation of others. All which his Majesty received with a Dissimulation, that was not only natural to him; but that by a long Practice, and by the continual traverses, and difficulties of his Reign, was grown to such a habit in him, that it was no hard matter for him to put on any kind of Language, or Behaviour, on any occasion wherein he was most likely to be surprised: So that in outward show the King was so well pleased with no Company (as indeed it was almost all he had) as with the Duke's, his Relations, and Confederates. Amongst which the Cardinal of Bourbon, who was now also come to Court, was entertained with extraordinary marks of Favour, and Respect; neither was there any Commands, or Offices, Military or Civil, granted to any, but by their recommendation: insomuch that some have thought the Duke of Guise by winning, and submissive carriage, had made some real impression upon the King's Inclinations, and that his Majesty was disposed really to love him, as he had formerly done, if he could have moderated his Ambition, and would have laid aside those designs which rendered him suspected to him. In a conjuncture so favourable to their Designs, neither the Duke of Guise, nor those of his Faction slept in their Business; but with all possible industry, still more, and more laboured the Duke of Espernon's total Ruin, as a thing that imported most of all to the confirmation of that Authority, and Trust, to which they saw themselves by his removal already advanced: So that the King being daily afflicted with a thousand Accusations against him, and wearied by their importunities, was at last so far overcome, as to consent that many of his Offices should be taken away, being not yet to be prevailed upon for his absolute Ruin. Whilst the Duke was present, he continually by his good Services fortified his Master's mind, against all impressions of calumny, his Enemies could invent, to the prejudice of his Fidelity, and Honour, and had ever triumphed in his Majesty's good Opinion, over the Envy and Malice of his Detractors: but he was no sooner removed out of his Eye, than that Confidence began to stagger, his detractors representing him for an Enemy to the Crown, a Friend to the King of Navarre, and one that seducing daily all the Garrisons in his Government to a Revolt, was upon the point to Proclaim open War against the King himself. In the mean time the Duke had very good Intelligence of all that passed at Court; he very well knew that his Enemies made use of all imaginable ways to destroy him, that the King was by them perpetually socilited against him; and that consequently it concerned him in common discretion to frustrate their Designs, and to provide for his own safety in the strength of those places he possessed: Neither was he much surprised at the unexpected news of what the King had consented to against him, he was very well acquainted with the constitution of the Court, and had very well foreseen what would certainly be attempted against him; but he could hardly persuade himself, that his Majesty could ever forget his Fidelity, and good Services; yet did he not for all that neglect his own preservation, that he might live to do him one day more, and better Service: the only revenge this faithful honest Servant meditated for the ingratitude of his Master. He fell therefore presently into Consultation with his Friends, what course he were best to take; a Debate wherein Opinions were very different: some there were who advised him to return to Court, representing that his presence would infallibly disperse all those shadows of mistrust, which by his absence his Adversaries had had opportunity to possess the King's mind withal; that his tried Fidelity would soon recover its former place in his Majesty's Opinion, and that then he would soon be in a condition to return the mischiefs had been intended against him, upon the heads of the first contrivers. Others there were who gave him counsel to put himself into Metz, others to make immediately for Provence, and some of those there to join with the King of Navarre; That to that purpose he should first go into Angoumois, whither he might suddenly, and with great facility convey himself, where he had a strong City to retire unto, and where he would be in a Country very convenient to favour his Passage into Provence, by the way of Guienne and Languedoc; the Friends he had in those two Provinces being enough to make his way, through the one, and the other, should he be put upon a resolution of retiring thither. The first propositions being accompanied with great, and almost invincible difficulties, the Duke wholly adhered to the last advice, and so far followed it, as to retire to Angoulesme, without joining himself nevertheless (though infinitely solicited so to do) with the King of Navarre. A thing impossible for him to resolve upon, had he been so inclined, for two Reasons; First, by reason of that Prince's Religion, and secondly, because being a declared Enemy to the King his Master, the Duke would rather have perished a thousand times, than appear to favour, much less to engage with such, as he knew acted positively against his Majesty's Service. One of the Duke's old Servants * De Guez was Bal●●c's Father. De Guez by name, a man of fourscore and eight years old, but notwithstanding so entire in his Judgement as discovered nothing of the infirmities of Age, gave me not long since a full Relation of all these Circumstances. He was at this time about the Duke's Person, and (as one of his principal, and most trusty Servants) present at this Deliberation; when the Duke ask his particular Opinion of all had been propounded to him, De Guez told him, that he believed the resolution he had already taken, to be without all dispute the best, provided it were put into speedy execution: but that it was to be feared, that whilst he stood deliberating with his Friends what was best to be done, his Enemies, who were very powerful, and already resolved what to do, might effect something to the prejudice of his Fortune; and that the least moments were to be husbanded in a business of so great consequence as this. An advice that being soon considered of by the Duke, he immediately commanded that every one should make himself ready to depart within two days; neither did he longer defer it, but accordingly put himself upon his way to Angoulesme, and that very seasonably, as by the following discourse will suddenly appear. But before the Duke left Loches, he was presented with a discourse, by way of Apology in the behalf of himself, and his Brother, against the Calumnies contained in the forementioned Manifest, of the League: a piece so eloquently couched, and set forth with so many powerful, and so pertinent Arguments, that it is certain the Leaguers could afterwards have wished they had never assaulted the Duke by the way of writing, that so they might not have drawn upon themselves so tart a Reply. I forbear to transcribe it in this place, because it would swell this Volume with things that are elsewhere, and in better language, The Duke publishes an Answer to the Manifest of the League. than I should perhaps express it, to be found: But Mounsieur de Thou, one of the most celebrated Historians of these latter times, thought it a Discourse worth inserting at length in his History; and having translated it out of the Original, into his own elegant Latin, has commended it to all the Nations of Europe, where his works are read with an universal applause. And although the Duke never thought of justifying his actions that way, and that he had so little a share in this answer, as neither then, nor ever since, to know his name, who undertook his Quarrel and Interest with so friendly a Zeal (a thing somewhat hard to believe, that a man who would oblige the Duke at so kind a rate, should deprive himself of the thanks justly due to so great an obligation) he nevertheless took it upon him, and published it in his own name, that all the world might be satisfied both with his and his Brother's Innocency: and certainly it wrought upon all disinterested spirits impressions very disadvantageous to the covert practices of the League. Having caused this Declaration to be published, The Duke arrives at Angou●esme. he departed towards, Angoulesme, where he safely arrived in july; and where the several Orders of the City contented with great emulation, which should give the greatest testimony of joy for his Arrival. Being thither come, the Duke would needs take up his Lodging in the Castle; which although it was only a rude pile of stone, and naked of all defence, (though by him afterwards fortified, and made more considerable) and though there was in the same City a Citadel, much stronger, and more commodious, commanded by the Sieur de Boards, a particular creature of the Dukes; yet to show the Inhabitants how entire a Confidence he reposed in them, he would rather choose to lie in the other, and that with so much civility to the Town, as that he permitted not one of the Soldiers he brought along with him so much as to come within the Walls of the City. Two days after his Arrival the Sieurs Nesmond, Chief Justice, and Normond Consul of the City received dispatches from the King, Signed by Moun●ieur Villeroy, wherein his Majesty positively commanded them, The King commands the Inhabitants of the City not to receive the Duke. not to admit any whomsoexer with any Forces into their City, without his express Order; whatever they might pretend, or what Commissions soever they should produce to the contrary. And indeed his Majesty had been so importuned to exclude the Duke from this important place (being withal made to believe that he had only left Loches in order to a closing with the King of Navarre) that being unwilling to have that Faction strengthened, by so powerful, and so active a Confederate, he had consented to this dispatch: but the Duke's diligence having prevented this command, But too late so frustrated the execution of it, that whereas it had before (had these orders come in time) been a very easy matter to have kept him out, it was now impossible to obey the King's desire, he being got in, or to thrust him out again, who had already made himself Master of the place. The Consul notwithstanding communicated the Orders he had received to some of his Relations, and most intimate Friends; where the greater part of those he consulted about this business, being inclined to the League (and it is hardly to be imagined how strangely that contagion had diffused itself throughout the whole Kingdom, no Family almost being without one, or more of their Party; no City without some notorious Ringleader of their Faction; nor no Province wherein their Interest was not grown to a formidable height) it was soon resolved upon, that (since the King's pleasure could not now be fulfilled in the precise Form his Letters prescribed) to propose to his Majesty other ways, by which (as they conceived) they might work as considerable, if not a more advantageous effect, for his service, than they could have done, by that it was now too late for them to perform. The Consul therefore dispatched away to Court one Souch●t his Brother-in-Law, a notable Leaguer, and a bold Factious Fellow, to acquaint the King with his Design; which was, to seize upon the Duke's person, and to detain him Prisoner in the City, till his Majesty's further Order: who accordingly arriving at Court, and addressing himself to Mounsieur de Villeroy, made this Proposition to him, and was by him very well received. Villeroy promising to acquaint the King with the good affection of the Inhabitants, and to give him a speedy answer. I shall not here make shy of delivering plainly what I have received from the Duke's own mouth upon this occasion, and that without fear of reviving Animosities long ago extinct; the Duke, an Mounsieur de Villeroy having often since (and that with some kind of delight) discoursed themselves into a better intelligence about this Subject: So true it is, that time is a Sovereign Remedy for the most violent passions, no former unkindness betwixt these two great Ministers being of force to hinder the mutual esteem they had of one another's Virtue in their later years, from ending in a most sincere, and perfect Friendship. The King's answer to Villeroy was, that he should be glad to have the Duke within his power, Anno 1558. that so he might hinder him from joining with the King of Navarre; but withal, if it could not be done without endangering his Person, that they should by no means attempt in, his Majesty being neither willing to have him destroyed, nor exasperated, but only restrained within the bounds of his Duty: Which were the very words his Majesty repeated to the Duke at his return to Court, graciously adding, that it was in order to a speedy recalling of him about his own Person, where he intended to use him like a Son (a title by which his Majesty was ever pleased to Honour him in his Letters, and ordinary Discourse) as hitherto he had ever done. But this was too nice a Commission for his Enemies to work upon, who would by all means make use of this occasion the hare-brained Citizens presented to them, to take a full revenge of former injuries: for after the business had been communicated to the Duke of Guise, it was told Souchet by Mounsieur Villeroy, that it was the King's desire, they should take the Duke Prisoner, and that they could not do his Majesty a more acceptable service. Whereupon Souchet having replied, that it would be an enterprise hard to execute so, as to meet with no opposition; and that in such a case he desired to know how they were to behave themselves: he was further ordered to take the Duke alive, or dead; that such was his Majesty's intention, and that it was a business of so great importance, that both he, and all others, who should be employed therein, might certainly expect a recompense proportionable to the merit of the Action. Some have further added, and it was a common report, that a man utterly unknown to Souchet was disguised in his Majesty's clothes, and taught to pronounce this Command, as if it had come from the King's own mouth: but however it were carried, certain it is that Souchet could not have returned more fully persuaded, than he did. At his return he acquaints the Consul with his Instructions (at a private place without the City) who hoping to do the King a signal Service, communicated the Order he had received to forty, or fifty, all active and resolute men, of his most intimate Friends, and conferred yet further with some Gentlemen of the Duke of Guise's Faction about it; so that having made himself as strong as he could, and having writ to the Viscount Aubeterre, who was Head of the League in that Province, to be ready to assist in an action so important to the Service of the King, and the Catholic Union, he at last received the Deputy into the City upon St. Laurence Eve, the day following without further delay being designed for the execution of the Enterprise. There are few Historians of any note, of those times, who have not given a full description of this days business, The Conspiracy of A●goules●●e against the Duke of Espernon. and who have not thought it (though only relating to a particular person) an action for the Novelty, and handsome performance of it, worthy to be recorded amongst the general Transactions of that time. Mounsieur de Thou, D' Aubigné, and D' Avila, have all made long Relations of it; and there were many Printed Reports of it current in France immediately after the thing was done, of which several old Copies yet remain; to all which I could refer my Reader, and spare myself the pains of repeating it over again, could a business so highly important to the Duke's Honour be left out of the recital of his Life, without making myself guilty of an omission, Posterity might justly blame me for. Take here therefore what I have collected, both from the Duke's own mouth, and from some of his Servants; who, as they shared in the danger of this Conspiracy, had also the Honour to do their Master signal Service in so memorable an Action. The Duke living in great security in the City, and behaving himself very obligingly to all the Inhabitants in general, but more particularly to those he saw bore the greatest sway amongst them, spared no kind of good Entertainment, that he thought might win the Consul over to his Devotion: a man, who besides the addition of his Authority, was very considerable in his own Person, as being descended from one of the best Families in the City, and a man of great sagacity and valour. The morning of his enterprise therefore being St. Laurence day, he going early, as it was usual, to give the Duke a Visit, was by him entertained with extraordinary civility; the Duke not suffering him to depart, till he had made him a promise to come again to Dinner: which the Consul, thinking by that means to have his access into the Castle more open, and free, for the effecting of his purpose, readily engaged himself to do: And in the mean time returning home, he found Souchet, and with him some dozen of the most resolute Fellows, and fiercest Leaguers of all the Town, got thither before him. These were to begin the work, and the others to the number of five and forty, or fifty, were lodged in the Houses nearest to the Castle, to be ready to second them, when they had given the first Assault. Neither were these all in the Conspiracy, for there were divers others disposed into the several Streets of the City to alarm the rest of the people (altogether ignorant of the Enterprise) by telling them that the Hugonots had taken the Castle, by the Postern-gate that looked into the Park, and to make them by this device run to their Arms to repel them. Things being thus ordered, the Consul first entered the Castle, taking along with him Souchet Booted, and Spurred, as if he newly arrived from Court, with another in the same Equipage; and being come into the Hall, where he met with some of the inferior Servants, he of them enquired for the Duke, saying, He had there two Courriers to present to him, who brought him good news from Court. Whereupon the Servants who saw him every day with the Duke, and received with great Demonstrations of Favour, and Respect, made no difficulty to tell him, that he was in the Wardrobe: But whilst they were thus talking, six more of the Inhabitants, who were also of the Plot, were come in under pretence of paying their Service to the Duke, and to wait his coming out to present themselves: And all of them, both the Consul, and the rest, Armed under their Cloaks with Curasses, or Coats of Mail, short Swords, and Pistols. The three first having passed through the Hall, and the next Chamber, without giving any suspicion, came into the Wardrobe, where they expected to find the Duke, who by good Fortune was just gone into his Closet, having taken in with him the Abbot d' Elbene, and the Sieur de l' Isle Marivault, two persons in whom of all others he reposed the greatest Confidence; and where they were reading a Scandalous * In wh●ch L●bel the Duke of Espernon was compared to Pierce Gaveston, as I●an de Serres reports. Libel, published to the King's dishonour, that had been sent the Duke that morning. The Conspirators, without taking notice who were in the Wardrobe, vigorously assaulted the first they met; and at their first entrance letting fly their Pistols, betook themselves to their Swords, crying out as loud as they could, Kill, Kill: At this noise the other six (who, dazzled with the Cupboard of Plate in the Hall, had stayed behind to pilfer) ran presently to their Fellows, and all together joined in the Assault: The first that opposed their Fury in the Wardrobe, was Signior Raphael Girolami, a Florentine Gentlemen, and Sorlin the Duke's Chirurgeon; the two Secretaries, who were also in the Chamber being for want of Arms able to make no resistance. But Sorlin drawing his Sword, gave the Consul a slight hurt in the Head; and Girolami on his side, having first mortally wounded three of the Assailants, was at last by a Pistol shot laid dead upon the place; so that he being dispatched, and Sorlin desperately wounded, the Consul and the rest of the Conspirators, had free access to the very door of the Closet, where they called out aloud to the Duke to yield, or otherwise he was dead. The Duke had already at the first uproar, not knowing by whom he was assaulted, nor what security he might promise to himself from the assistance of his Domestics, and Friends, Barricadoed up the Door of his Closet, expecting a further light into this disorder; D' Elbene, and Marivault, who were both with him, having persuaded him so to do, and withheld him from going out, until he first understood the cause of this Tumult, which was yet utterly unknown. There were two Doors to this Closet, one at the further end of a little Gallery, which was open; but there was no way to the second, but through this Gallery, which being dark, and so narrow as only to admit one a breast, made the access to the inner Door very difficult, and dangerous: so that by this means the Duke, and those that were with him, had a conveniency of making some kind of resistance, till they might be better informed of the business. And I have heard the Duke say, when talking sometimes of this Mutiny, that in the heat of the Action, he removed with one hand, and with great facility, unwieldy Trunks, and Chests, to Barricado up the Door; which, after he had a little composed himself, and thought it necessary to go out, they could not scarce all three, with all their strength united, remove again to their places. At the same time that the Assault began, the * An Alarm Bell, which it is the custom in France to ring upon any Tumult, or Insurrection. Tocquesain rung throughout all the Churches in the City; at which Signal, the people ran on all sides to Arms, lodging themselves in the Houses nearest adjoining to the Castle; moved so to do by the outcry of the Conspirators, dispersed into the several quarters of the Town, that the Hugonots had possessed themselves of the Castle. In the mean time the Conspirators immediately appointed for this execution, and who were ordered to follow those already got in with the Consul, attempting to possess themselves of the Gate of the Castle, that they might let in the people, who came running in Arms from all parts, were opposed by some of the Duke's Gentlemen, who were walking without in the base Court, to attend his going abroad; of which the chief were Ambleville, Beaurepaire, Sobole the elder, Lartigue, and some others. Neither was their Design prevented without fight; for Beaurepaire being killed with the blow of an Halberd, and some of the Guards being knocked down by him, other of the Duke's Gentlemen, who were walking at a further distance from the Gate, perceiving what they were about, made all the haste they could, and came time enough to get in before the Gate was quite shut; amongst whom were the Count de Brienne, the Duke's Brother-in-law, Miran, Gohas, la Coste, and Des Emars. All these Gentlemen being joined together, and having with much ado shut the outward Gate, and left a sufficient Guard to defend it, ran up the Stairs to see what was become of the Duke; where meeting no body to inquire of, they believed him to be certainly dead, and all those that were with him: But after having a little recollected themselves from the astonishment so strange a solitude had begot in them, and having gathered together such other Gentlemen, and Soldiers, of the Duke's Guard, as they could find in the Castle, they resolved to set upon the Consul, and his Associates, and to that purpose made directly towards the Duke's Chamber, the only part of the House from whence any noise was to be heard. The Conspirators seeing themselves alone, the Gate of the Castle shut, the Duke's Friends, and Servants got together, and united, and (which most of all perplexed them) that the people could not force their entrance so soon as was requisite for their safety, would yet try by the same Door by which they had entered, to recover the principal Tower of the Castle, and to make that good, till they might be relieved from without: But the passage was so stoutly maintained by the Gentlemen, and those of the Guard, who were joined to them, that the Consul being mortally wounded, and some other of his Complices more slightly hurt, the ardour of their first resolution began apparently to cool, their Enemies being possessed of the only pass, by which they were to expect a prompt, and necessary succour. At this new uproar in the Wardrobe, the Duke having, amidst so great a confusion of voices, distinguished some of them to be his own people, sallied out of his Closet with the Abbot D' Elbene, and Marivalt; so that these sallying out with Sword, and Pistol, by the Door of the Closet, whilst the other Door towards the Hall was made good by the Duke's Friends, the Consul and his Complices found themselves beset on all sides; and seeing no hopes of safety by the way they had in vain, and with many wounds attempted to pass, they resolved to get out by a third Door of the same Wardrobe, which yet remained free, and that let by a back way to the forementioned Tower; and accordingly carrying off the wounded Consul with them, recovered a little pair of stone Stairs, the only refuge was left them, and where they intended to defend themselves to the ●ast man: neither wanted they means so to do; for being all armed, which neither the Duke nor any of his Followers were, and resolute Fellows, as they had sufficiently made it appear; and having only a narrow pair of Stairs to make good, they were not to be assaulted, but with infinite hazard, in a place of so great advantage: which made the Duke resolve upon putting fire to the Stairs, to the end he might there, as it were besieged, keep them in. Whilst these things were doing within the Castle, a Maid came running, and told the Duke, that the Consul's Brother, with a great number of armed Men, were upon entering by a hole they had made in the Wall, on that side next the Curtain; which made him immediately repair thither, as where his presence was most necessary, leaving only three of his Guard to make good the Stair-foot, where the Consul and his Confederates were, that they might attempt nothing in his absence. At his coming into the Court he found the Consul's Brother, and another with him, already entered the place, who both of them strove with incredible valour, to make way for the rest: But the Duke having soon killed the first with his own hand, the other being no better handled by his Followers; and having left a sufficient Guard upon the place, he ran presently to another Alarm, no less dangerous, than this he had already taken so good order in: For the Conspirators without having (as we have said before) been able to force the great Gate, by reason of the vigorous resistance they had met there, were run to another little Postern, that no body dreamed of, with fire to burn it down; by which means, and by a petard they had also got to blow it open, they doubted not to force their entrance that way; but the Duke arriving opportunely upon the place, with some fifteen he had rallied together, after a dangerous, and obstinate Conflict, beat back the Assailants, and so fortified it for the future, that it was impossible for them afterwards to force that pass. Whilst the Duke was thus busy without, those who were with the Consul upon the Stairs, seeing the passage now guarded by only the three Soldiers, who had been left to that purpose, attempted to make their way, and to escape, which they hoped they might do whilst the Duke, and his Servants, were elsewhere employed, intending afterwards to force some of the Avenues (it being impossible they should be all well guarded, the Duke having so few about him) and to let in the rest of their Confederates to their succour: But the Duke, with marvellous diligence presenting himself in all places where there was any suspicion of danger, coming opportunely in, when they were already disputing it with his Guards; and having, by the death of one of the Inhabitants, whom he dispatched with his own hand, beaten back the rest, defeated them of all further hopes, of escaping out of his Power. In which encounter he ran an exceeding great hazard, for the Stairs upon which they fought having been already loosened in the Joints by the heat of the fire, and moreover shaken by the agitation of the Combatants, could no longer support itself from falling down with a sudden ruin, the step whereon the Duke stood only remaining firm, who without so miraculous a fortune had certainly perished in the fall. Miran, a Gentleman of good understanding and great courage, told me some years ago this Story: in which as he had himself a particular share, so has he often assured me, that without the Duke's personal courage, great vigilancy, and noble resolution he did believe they had never escaped that eminent peril; that in his life he never saw a man so constant in all kinds of danger; and that as they who had faithfully served him in this occasion had doubtless deserved very well at his hands, so stood they no less obliged to him for their own preservation, than he to them for his, having done more towards it in his own single person, than almost all the rest, all their endeavours put together. The Inhabitants, who had this while possessed themselves of a House called the Queen's Castle, separated only from that wherein the Duke was assaulted by a little Court, and of equal height with it, by pouring continual shot in at the Windows, which were very large, and high, did not a little incommodate the Duke; another inconvenience to be provided against, as it speedily was, and (as that had already done for the other defects of the place) so well, that it was almost impossible by strength of hand to force him. The toil, and bustle of this Action having been sudden, and violent, and the Fight almost unintermitted from the beginning, the Duke and those with him found themselves so weary, and their strength so abated, that to refresh themselves, and to recover a little breath, the Duke called for something to drink; but upon examination there were but four Bottles of Wine, no Water at all, and very little, and that course Bread, to be found in all the Castle; neither was there any more to be hoped for, the Inhabitants being as they were Masters of all the Kitchens, and other Offices, as also of a Well in the back Court, which could not possibly be recovered from them, an irreparable, and unexpected inconvenience to the Duke and his Followers, who saw themselves at once assaulted with Enemies, within, and without, and more violently with hunger, and thirst; two Enemies they could the worst defend themselves against; a condition in which they continued for two days, and one night, and wherein the Duke's constancy is no less to be admired, than in so gallantly defending himself against the violence of his armed Adversaries, the necessities of Nature being much harder to be contended withal, than the most obstinate attempts of the most resolute Enemy. Hitherto the Duke saw no signs of succour; Tagent his Cousin, and Lieutenant in that Government was at Xaintes, with the Troops, and the Citadel, wherein he had a trusty Servant, had made no show of standing for him, having not so much as made one Cannon, or Musket shot against the City: For the Consul who was no less circumspect than valiant, having, when he first plotted the Design of this Enterprise, forgot nothing, that might any way contribute to the success, had cunningly drawn Boards Governor of the Citadel into the Town, under colour of some important Business he was to communicate to him, and had there seized of his Person; so that at the same time the Duke was first assaulted in the Castle, they who had Boards in custody, brought him before the Citadel, and with a Dagger at his Throat commanded him to yield it up: but he scorned to do a thing so unworthy of himself in so great an exigency, and his Lieutenant remained also firm in his duty, though it be true that the regard he had to his Captain's safety made him forbear to shoot, till the last extremity. As if the Duke in so eminent a peril were not sufficiently disquieted with his own troubles, he had yet present before his eyes the danger to which the Duchess his Lady was exposed; who, being a little before the tumult began gone out of the Castle towards the jacobins, to hear Mass, was seized upon by the Inhabitants, as she was retiring towards the Citadel, the way to the Castle being shut up: Her two Gentlemen Ushers, the one called Piar, and the other Seguencio, bravely offered to make some resistance, but were both wounded to death, whilst they held her by the Arms; so that their Blood flew upon her clothes: Neither was the Duchess alone arrested after this manner, many of the Duke's Gentlemen who were abroad in the Town, suspecting nothing, being also taken prisoners; of which lafoy Curée, since Campmaster to the Light Horse of France, was one, with St. Mesme, Bleré, the Baron de Cousin, de Ramel, and many others. In these extremities, to which the Duke was reduced, he let a Footman by a Rope down the Castlewall, on that side towards the Park, to carry Tagent intelligence of the danger he was in: but the Fellow was no sooner down, than intercepted by the Inhabitants, who had every where set Guards to that purpose: notwithstanding which, two of the Duke's Gentlemen, being gone early abroad a Hunting, and upon the noise of the Tocquesain they heard from the City, being returned upon the spur up to the very Gra●●e of the Citadel, to know the meaning of it, were soon informed, and as soon turned full speed to carry Tagent the news, who by them received the first intimation of the Duke's danger. Tagent, upon the arrival of these two Gentlemen, caused the Trumpets immediately to sound to Horse, and presently mounting with what Cavalry he had, arrived with all possible diligence at the Gates of Angoulesme: It was in a time when the Duke could hardly hold out any longer against hunger and thirst, which for two whole days he had sustained, without any kind of refreshment, that little provision before mentioned having been equally divided amongst his Friends, the Duke disdaining to preserve his own life longer than he could also support so many brave persons, as so frankly exposed themselves to all hazards for his safety. The people had in the mean time continued their first Fury, in which they had been assisted, and advised by several Gentlemen of the Country, who took part with the League; whereof those of chief note were Meré, a man who was a particular Servant to the Duke of Guise, and who had been bred up in his Family; lafoy Messeliere, Les-Bouchaux, de Macqueville, and some others who were drawn into that Faction, by the specious pretence of Religion, a Colour by which most men of that time were prepossessed, and abused. These having invested the Castle on all sides, had summoned the Duke to Surrender, with offers of free Quarter, and Bag, and Baggage to him, and his; a Summons to which the Duke had smartly replied, That he would rather choose to die, than to receive the least courtesy at their hands; and that he hoped e'er long to reduce them to such a strait, that they should be glad to receive conditions at his. It should seem that in this occasion the Duke's Enemies would also give his Duchess an opportunity wherein to manifest her generous Spirit, that she might share with her Husband in the Honour of so handsome an Action; for having already found there was no good to be done upon the Castle by any violent means they could practise against it, they threatened the Duchess, that unless she did persuade the Duke her Husband to make a speedy Surrender, they would make her serve for a Gabion before the place, whither they accordingly led her; such were the Compliments wherewith a Lady of her Birth, and Quality was entertained by these rude people: but she, without being moved with their threats, made answer to those who talked so impudently to her, That did the Duke her Husband's Resolution stand in need of encouragement, she should herself desire to be presented before him, that she might fortify him to persist in his defence: but that being altogether unnecessary, their menaces to her were much more impertinent; that nevertheless she could not but wonder, at their insolence, and that she durst venture to Prophesy, she should e'er long make them repent it; and afterwards turning towards Meré, who of all others had been the most uncivil to her, she reproached him with his barbarous carriage, in so handsome Language, with so masculine a courage, and so graceful an indignation, as if she had foreseen all the good success, that soon after happened in this business, contrary to all humane expectation. The enterprise of which we are now speaking had been carried on with that secrecy, and had so surprised the Duke, and his Family, that there were only eight of his Guards to be found in the Castle, when this business began, all the rest having been trapped in the Town; which small number were notwithstanding so conveniently disposed into places of most danger, and were so expert in the use of their fire Arms, that it was observed they never shot in vain; a dexterity that has since grown to such a habit in all who have succeeded in that employment, that they have ever signalised themselves by their Activity, and Valour, above all others upon all occasions, and by those qualities acquired so great a reputation; that the late King intending to raise a Troop of Dragoons (as he did) for the guard of his own person, did them the honour to choose six out of the Duke's company, to settle the Order, and Discipline of that Troop. If the Duke were himself vigorously assaulted without, he no less importuned the Consul, and his Complices within the Castle, who nevertheless defended themselves with great resolution; but seeing themselves pressed upon by the fire, that by little and little still increased upon them; by hunger likewise, and the Sword, and finding themselves weakened by their wounds to the last extremity, their Ringleader at the point to die, and themselves out of all hopes of relief, they let one of their company by cloth cut into shreds, and tied together, down into the Castle Ditch, to acquaint the Sub-Consul, whose name was Corlieu, with the condition they were in; who presently assembling the people, and consulting with them about their Friend's necessity, it was soon resolved upon, that they should come to Propositions of accommodation; in order to which the Sub-C●●sul presented himself before the Castle, and demanded a Conference; which being granted, the Abbot D' Elbene, and Ambleville drew near to parley with him. But before they could come to any conclusion, the Consul, and those with him being reduced to a final necessity, had surrendered themselves upon the Duke's word; which notwithstanding he punctually observed to them without the least injury, or violence (though the Consul died of his Wounds before the end of the Action) yet as soon as he had them in his power, he ordered them to write to those of the City, what danger their lives were in, should they any more offer to assault the Castle: A Policy that obliged their Relations so to importune the Sub-Consul to conclude the Treaty, that he again returned to the Castle to entreat the Duke, that Ambleville, and D' Elbene might come into the City to Treat with them, which Ambleville absolutely refused to do; it being, as he conceived, inconsistent with his Honour, to abandon the Duke in a time of so great danger: So that the Abbot (sufficient Hostages being first delivered in for his security) was fain to go out alone, and was immediately conducted to the Town-Hall. The Abbot had by his dexterity brought things to so good a forwardness, that the Accommodation was upon the point to be concluded, to the Duke's Honour, and satisfaction, when le Meré, who would by no means lose so fair an opportunity of sacrificing the Duke, to his Master the Duke of Guise's hatred, broke off the Treaty, by promising the people a speedy, and infallible succour from the Viscount D' Aubeterre; who (as he said) having received express Orders from the King, was with all possible diligence coming in to their assistance. The Abbot then must return to the Castle, which he did, not without some danger; so high was the insolence of the people raised by this little beam of hope, though false, and imposed upon them. Every one now ran again to his Arms, which they employed with greater violence than before; the Drums, the Tocquesain, and the clamours of the Seditious rabble, indifferently compelling, as well the Nobility, and Gentry, as the Commons, as well those who were averse to the League, as the Leaguers themselves to join in the common mischief. The hoped by a Petard which they intended to apply to a part of the Castlewall, they knew to be very weak, to make a sufficient breach to enter at; which accordingly playing, and having wrought some effect, the Gentry, and the people presented themselves with great courage to the Assault; bu●●hey found greater in the Defendants, who, though very few in comparison of the Assailants, after a long dispute, forced them to retire, with the loss of a great many very resolute men. The next day about three of the clock in the morning, the Inhabitants heard the Trumpets of the Duke's Cavalry, who were led by the Sieur de Tagent to his Relief; the report of whose arrival having put life into the Commanders and Soldiers of the Citadel, they began to shoot against the City, which till then they had never done: And if the arrival of this succour encouraged the one party, it no less cooled the fury, and obstinacy of the other; who now began submissively to sue for a conclusion of the Treaty, which they had so insolently broken off the day before, and sent again to entreat that the Abbot D' Elbene might once more come out to that purpose; a request the Duke made then some difficulty to grant, though in truth he had the greatest reason to desire it. The Abbot nevertheless went out the second time into the City, but as vainly as before; for the Baron de Touverae, with many other Gentlemen of the League being arrived, and amongst others La-Caze, Quartermaster to the Viscount D' Aubeterre's Company of Cuirassiers, put new vigour into the Inhabitants; La-Caze assuring them, that the next morning the Viscount would infallibly come to their succour, with three hundred Horse, and five hundred Foot; by which the Citizens being reassured, they now breathed nothing but War, the common people being ever as forward to entertain rash and giddy resolutions, as they are usually backwards, and cowardly in the execution of them. The Abbot was therefore again to recover the Castle, and that with greater danger than before, being first carried to the Gates of the Citadel, and there constrained with a Dagger at his Throat, to forbid the Soldiers from shooting any more against the City, which nevertheless they did not forbear to do: The Duke (pressed upon now more than ever by those of the City) having found means, from the high Tower of the Castle, to give a sign to the Commanders of the Citadel, who might easily see it, to shoot continually, so to divert the fury of the Enemy, that so violently assaulted him; a Command so well understood, and so readily obeyed, that the confusion was now far greater in all parts of the City, than hitherto it had ever been. Neither had it ceased so soon, had not the Sieur de Nesmond, chief Justice of the place, a man of great authority amongst them, and no less considerable for his quality, than his Employment, with such of the principal Magistrates, as had not consented to this tumult, resolved to join all their interests together to put an end to the business. To that purpose therefore they assembled at the Bishop's Palace. This Prelate Charles de Bony by name, an Italian by birth, having long governed that Diocese with great reputation of Virtue, and Piety, could not without infinite sorrow behold these confusions, though authorised by the League, and palliated with the pretext of Religion; so that in this Assembly, he, the Magistrates, and some well disposed Citizens, having considered the peril the City was in, as also their own particular danger, who were likely to be involved in the common ruin, uniting themselves against the seditious, with some Gentlemen of Quality of the Country (who being come in at the noise of this disorder, had stood neuters during the whole Action) sent two of the most eminent amongst them to the Duke, to entreat him, that he would please to consent that the Capitulation, which had been agreed upon the day before with the Abbot D' Elbene, might be Signed, and Ra●ified by Tagent, who was with his Cavalry in the Suburbs; a request was readily granted by the Duke, who was now no longer in a condition, had he been so disposed, to refuse it. It had now been above forty hours since the Duke, or any of those who were with him in the Castle had either drank, or eaten; their powder was all spent, the men for the most part wounded, and those who were not, so worn out with watching, fasting, and continual labour, that it was their courage only that did support them; a support that would soon have failed them, with their lives, had the Besiegers known their necessities, which were such as flesh and blood could no longer endure: But God, who reserved the Duke for better occasions, was pleased to deprive them of that knowledge, and so to order things, that the impatience of two short hours delivered him from that eminent, and apparent danger. The Abbot D' Elbene therefore went out the third, and last time into the City; and, together with the Inhabitants repaired to Tagent; who, to the Duke's great astonishment had all this while stood an idle Spectator, without once endeavouring to enter the Town to his succour: 'Tis true, he signed the Capitulation, which was all the share he had in this business: But the Articles were no sooner Signed, than they immediately fell to breaking down the Barricadoes, the people retired every one to their own Houses, and the Duchess of Espernon was conducted to the Castle by the aforesaid Abbot. Where being come, The end of the Action. after she had given the Duke her Husband some tender, and affectionate testimonies of joy for his deliverance; the first thing she did, in return of the barbarous usage she had received, was to mediate their Pardons, by whom she had been so ill used, with the Duke; who, though he had meditated a severe Revenge upon them, who had committed so great an outrage against him, was notwithstanding content to surrender his Animosities to the generous intercession of this Virtuous Lady. He moreover set those he had taken Prisoners with the Consul at Liberty, consented that Meré, with the other Gentlemen of his Party, should retire to their own Houses, giving them a Convoy of Light Horse for their defence; and by a notable effect of Generosity, and good Nature, having restored the dead Bodies of the Consul, and his Brother to their Relations, and Friends, he permitted them to be buried with public Obsequies. Lastly, he so frankly pardoned all the rest of the Citizens, that not any one of them, who would afterwards live in Peace, could ever perceive in him the least memory of any former unkindness; but on the contrary, received from him all the good Offices, and gentle Usage they could expect from a man, they had never offended: by which exceeding Clemency, and by the protection both the City and Country received from him, for the space of fifty years, which he afterwards held that Government, he so won the hearts of that people, that there was not one of them who would not cheerfully have ventured Life, and Fortune for his Service, and who have not, to this hour, his memory in great Veneration, as the Father, Protector, and Restorer of their Country. The King of Navarre, The King of N●varre endeavours to draw the Duke over to his Party. who was ever so intent upon his own Affairs, as to let no occasion slip, that he conceived might any way serve to advance them; foreseeing that after the Assembly which was to be holden at Blois, he should certainly have all the Forces both of the King, and the League bent jointly against him, had not failed to send to the Duke upon his retirement from Court, (a time very proper to have taken his Resentments in the heat, had he been a Malcontent) with offers of as high, and honourable conditions, as he himself could possibly have proposed, if he would join with him. To which the Duke equally firm in his Religion, and Loyalty, made answer, that he did beseech his Majesty to reflect upon the infinite obligations he had to the King his Master; and then he did assure himself, that his own generosity, would for ever condemn him of ingratitude, The Duke excuses himself. should he abandon his Service for any persecution his Enemies could practise against him: After which, and many humble, and respective thanks for his gracious offer, he gave him plainly, and freely to understand, that he would rather perish; than to live obliged to any other for his protection, than to him who was the sole Author of his Fortune. But this Prince not checking, at this first refusal, would yet try if in the business of Angoulesme, by his own Actions, and Presence, he could not work more effectually upon the Duke, than by the mediation of Agents, he had hitherto done; and to that purpose, being advertised of this enterprise (though at a time when he was upon the point to fall upon the City, and Castle of Clisson, in the lower Poictou, very considerable places, and which in all appearance he was likely to carry) he nevertheless gave over the Design, to come to the Duke's Relief: A deliberation that some have believed, was not so much intended to rescue the Duke from the danger he was in, as to make use of that occasion, in the Confusion the City than was, to seize upon it to his own use, and to reduce so considerable a place into the hands of his own Party: But whatever his Design was, he met intelligence by the way, that the Duke had already disengaged himself from his Enemies, and was settled in a posture of safety: by which though he found he should come too late to do the Duke any Service, unwilling nevertheless to lose the thanks of his good intention, The King of Navarre tries again to persuade the Duke, but in vain. he sent to congratulate with him for his happy Deliverance, which he said was so much the more glorious to him, as it was wrought out of himself, and effected by his own Valour, and Constancy; advising him withal to consider how many of the like attempts he was to expect from his Enemy's malice; withal once more offering to join his Interests with his, and to run the same Fortune with him in all hazards. But the Duke answering still with the same civility, and respect he had done before, without suffering himself to be tempted from the duty he owed to the King his Master, continued constant in his Resolution, never to take part with any, who were his open and declared Enemies. In this place methinks the Duke of Espernon is chiefly to be considered, to make thence a right judgement of the greatness and constancy of his mind: He had scarce been seven years a Favourite, when he saw the prodigious Engine of the League ready to fall upon him; a body so formidable, and so great, as having already constrained the King himself to bow before it, made all those of the Reformed Religion to tremble at its motion; no Authority was able to stop it, no Power to resist it, yet could it never startle this young Duke's constancy: But on the contrary, though he saw himself forsaken by the King, and exposed to the malice of his Enemies; though he saw the people, in his own Governments, raised in mutiny against him, and all things as it were conspiring together to his Ruin; yet could he not even in these extremities ever submit to the King of Navarre's Protection, though offered, and so handsomely offered to him: but though alone in his own Quarrel, at least without other assistance than of his Friends and Servants, he had yet the courage to defend his own Interests, and the Service of his Prince, even against his Prince himself, who was now become General of his own Enemies; Yet had he ever so excellent a Government over himself, as to do nothing contrary to his Conscience, or his Duty: So that not being to be moved either by the Menaces of the League, or by the Hopes he might reasonably conceive from the assistance of those of the Reformed Religion, he subdued those two Passions that exercise the most absolute Empire over the minds of men, and that bear the greatest sway in all Humane Designs. The end of the Second Book. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. The Third Book. WHilst the Duke's Enemies exercised his Virtue with these continual troubles, The Affairs of the Court during the Duke's absence. they were themselves no less afflicted with their own Ambition. The Assembly of the Estates was held at Blo●s, where all things in outward show were disposed in favour of the Duke of Guise: but still as he approached nearer to his Object, the greater the height, and the more difficult the access unto the place, to which he aspired, appeared unto him: That one remaining step he was to climb, to reach the height of his desires, seeming to rise still further from him, as oft as he attempted to gain it. So that tired out with so many present difficulties, and apprehending yet more those which were to come, The Duke of Guise in suspense, whether or no he should pursue his Designs. 'tis said he was often almost resolved to leave off his Designs, and to rely upon the King's Word, that had so often assured him the enjoyment of his present greatness, wherein also he doubted not without any great difficulty to maintain himself. The Duke of Mayenne, either jealous (as some have thought) of his Brother's Greatness, or else of a more moderate temper, than the rest of his Family, had often advised him to this Resolution; but the Cardinal their Brother, and the Archbishop of Lions, were the Incendiaries, that rekindled his dying Ambition, and that hurried him on to that precipice, into which they themselves at last fell with him: They represented to him by what infinite labours, and industry they had placed him in that height to which he was already arrived; That if he ever had resolved there to limit his desires, and to content himself with a competent Fortune, he ought never to have undertaken those pains, nor to have undergone those dangers he had so gloriously, and so fortunately overcome; That the merit of his Ancestors had left him greatness enough to satisfy an ordinary Ambition: but that if he ever had the thought of rising above them, as doubtless he had, the way was open to him, and that he had already overcome the greatest difficulties: That the greater part of France stood for him, and that almost all Foreign Princes, and States were favourable to him: That God himself seemed to take his part, by giving him a negligent and voluptuous Prince; whose nature being softened, and unnerved by ease, and sloth, had laid him open to his Designs: That it was an easy matter in the condition himself then was, to make him sure: That not suddenly to do it, it was to be feared the King might recover from his Lethargy; and, looking into himself, might reassume his former vigour, and recover his almost lost Authority: That the very fear the King then lived in, aught to be highly suspected to him: That no Counsels were so violent and dangerous, as those that proceeded from apprehension, or extreme necessity: That he infinitely deceived himself, if he thought there could be any safety for him (what promises soever the King might make) in that height to which he had already raised himself: That the Fortune of a Subject was never more unstable, and unsafe, than when it rendered him suspected to his Prince: That he must boldly therefore step out of the quality of a Subject, if he would be out of the danger of a Sovereign. They further remonstrated to him what Opinion all Europe, who were joined together in his Favour, what all good Frenchmen, who were passionate in his cause, what all posterity (to which he ought to have a greater regard, than to the present) could have of his courage; if the Duke of Guise only should think himself unworthy of that Dignity, to which all the world besides so passionately wished he might arrive: That he ought then boldly to end, what he had so generously begun, and so gloriously pursued; and that though death itself should follow (which was not in the least to be doubted) it were notwithstanding more honourable to perish in so brave a Design, than to survive the shame of not daring to perform it. The Duke of Guise, The Duke of Guise confirmed ●n his first resolutions. whose ambitious and unquiet Spirit was apt enough to take fire at such Counsels, as these haughty, and mutinous Prelates were fit to give, was soon persuaded to renew his former practice; and, as if he had only suspended the prosecution of his Designs to take a little breath, that he might fall on with greater violence, he presently sent new dispatches to Rome, and into Spain, still more and more to fortify himself in the Authority of the one, and Strength of the other, assuring further to himself at the same time, either by promises, or threats, by himself or by his Adherents, almost all the suffrages of the several Deputies of the Assembly: which the King, to whom all these practices were very well known, being informed of▪ and then seeing the manifest danger he was in of losing both his Authority, and his Crown, The King resolves upon his death he determined to prevent the Duke by Counsels as severe and bloody, as his own were rash and mutinous, and to cut him off before he should have time to effect what he had so politicly, and so dangerously design'd● A resolution which, ●eing soon agreed upon with some of the Nobility, his Majesty knew most faithful to him, had the execution of it without further delay committed to eight of the five and forty. These five and forty were all of them Gentlemen of approved Valour, and for whose fidelity they who had recommended them to the King, stood themselves engaged; so that of this Company (to which the number had given the name) his Majesty made his most assured Guard (the greatest part of his Domestics being become suspected to him) and as it were wholly entrusted the safety of his Person to their Fidelity, and care: They attended him wherever he went, they nightly kept Guard in his Antichamber; and (as nothing is so powerful as benefits to win the hearts, and affections of men) there was not one of them, who, besides his Salary of an hundred Crowns of Gold a month (which was very much in those times) had not over and above either received, or had not very good reason to expect, great recompenses from his Royal bounty: So that these men being absolutely tied to all his Majesty's Interests, it was no hard matter to induce them to make an attempt upon the Person of the Duke of Guise, against whom the King had conceived a violent, and implacable Hatred. I shall here say nothing of the manner and circumstances of the Death of this Duke, nor of that of the Cardinal of Guise his Brother, who at the same time came to the same violent end, most of our Historians being particular in that Relation: but I can bear testimony that the Duke of Espernon did neither then, nor ever since approve of that execution; and that although he had received very hard measure from the Duke in his life, he notwithstanding had his great qualities in high esteem after his death. And indeed he had so often, and so generously employed those rare Endowments for the safety and honour of the Kingdom, that his Virtue could never have been too highly commended, could he have added the qualities of a good Subject, to those other excellencies which rendered him one of the greatest men of his time. A little before the Duke of Guise's death, the King had dismissed from Court the High Chancellor Chiverny, and the ●ieures de Belieure, and de Villeroy, Secretaries of State, upon considerations that were then variously interpreted; though the King would have the Duke of Espernon believe, that the chief cause of Mounsieur de Villeroy's disgrace was the business of Angoulesme, which his Majesty wholly laid to his charge; New Ministers chosen after the Duke of Guise's Death. and that the Duke might the better be confirmed in this opinion, the Sieur de Révol, a particular creature of the Dukes, one that was, under him, controller of the Exchequer of Provence, and that had no interest at Court saving his Protection, was received into his Place. His Majesty had no sooner absolutely determined the Duke of Guise's Ruin, than that foreseeing the consequences so bloody an execution was likely to draw after it, he dispatched away Colonel Alphonso Corso, afterwards Marshal d'Ornano, to seize upon the Duke of Mayen●e at Lions, where he then resided; which, if it could have been in time effected, his Majesty had in all appearance been secured from the greatest part of those mischiefs which this action afterwards produced: but the Duke, having received the news of his Brother's Deaths some hours before Alphonso's arrival, was already in great diligence got to Horse, and fled out at one Gate of the City as Ornano entered at another to surprise him, and by that means first recovered Dijon, and afterwards Paris, without any impediment: Where he was no sooner arrived, than that laying aside that moderation he had ever manifested, during his Brother's Life, he declared himself Head of that Party, he had ever till then, to his great Reputation, seemed to condemn; and drawing together all the Forces of the League that lay scattered up and down in several places, he of them, without stirring from Paris, made a very considerable Army. His Majesty easily judged that this storm would suddenly break upon him, and failed not, out of that foresight, to call all his principal Servants about him, which nevertheless made up but an inconsiderable Body, and such as could no ways secure him from any attempt of the Enemy: So that he was advised to send once more to the King of Navarre, to entreat him to advance with his Troops to his succour, which notwithstanding the King not being able to persuade himself to do, (his regard to Religion, and the 〈◊〉 he bore to the Pope, opposing that Council) he only at that time sent Orders to the Duke of Espernon, who had then a considerable Force on Foot to come over to him; though afterwards, and after many deliberations, being also disposed to call in the King of Navar●e, he sent to the Duke, that before he put himself upon his march, he should first go to this Prince, to make the first overtures of this business to him. The Sieur de Beaujeu was purposely dispatched to the Duke with these Orders, which were no sooner received by him, than he departed from Angoulesme to go to St, jean d' Angely, where the King of Navarre then was; and where having found him well disposed, and very ready to do his Majesty the Service he desired of his Person, and Faction, he immediately made himself ready to go to the King; The Duke called back to Court. who, seeing his Enemies now ready to fall upon him, had sent a new, and instant Express to the Duke in all haste to come, and join with him: which express Order to satisfy with the greatest diligence, he rather chose to leave the Negotiation he had already so successfully begun with the King of Navarre, to the Duchess of Angoulesme (who soon after brought it to effect) than one moment to defer his attendance on his Master in so critical a time, and on so urgent an occasion. All these great transactions happened at Court, Anno 1589. after the Duke of Espernon had retired himself from thence into his Governments. Neither was he in his retirement, or in his choice of the place he retired unto, either unactive in himself, or in a Scene improper for his Majesty's Service; for he was no sooner disengaged from the enterprise of Angoulesme, but that he put himself immediately into a condition to awe many of his ill Neighbours in the adjoining Provinces, so as either to continue them in, or to make them return unto their duty: Some actions of the Duke during his retirement. For which purpose having increased his Forces, the first occasion he had to employ them was against those of the Religion; who having besieged Periguex, and upon the point to make themselves Masters of the place, at the Duke's approach raised the Siege in great disorder, and retired not without some considerable loss. The Duke was after this preparing himself for greater erterprises, when Beaujeu brought him those forementioned Orders from the King; by whom having understood the great preparations the Duke of Mayenne made to come first to Blois, and from thence to Tou●s, whither the King had then retired himself; and knowing his Majesty almost naked of all defence, and as it were, exposed to the violence of his Enemies, he thought it necessary upon the instant to move with all his Forces that way, and at the same time by a Gentleman to give his Majesty notice of his motion, that he might receive his Majesty's Commands upon the way: By which Gentleman the King sent him presently word, that the most important service he could then do him, was to put himself into Blois. For the Duke of Mayenne having resolved to make his first attempt upon that place, either by the ruin of the Castle to revenge in part the death of his two Brothers, who there last their lives; or to make that City (which by its vicinity to Tours, was very proper to watch all advantages against the King) his seat of War; his Majesty conceived there would be little security for him in Tours, should his Enemy possess himself of that Post, and had therefore bend all his care, and endeavour to preserve it out of the power of the League. His Majesty would have put the Marshal de Byron into that place, and afterwards, he having excused himself, the Marshal d' Aumont; but both the one, and the other having refused the danger of defending, and with unequal Forces, a place, that being in itself open on all sides, was not well to be defended, and that was to expect the first fury of the League to be bend against it, his Majesty turned his thoughts towards the Duke of Espernon; and knowing that the difficulty of the undertaking would be no little motive to make the Duke embrace it, his Majesty sent him word, that the Mareschals de Byron, and d' Aumont had both of them already excused themselves from that Employment; and that he only remained, from whose Valour and Fidelity he could promise to himself so signal, and so honourable a Service in so difficult an undertaking, and in so dangerous a time; that the defence of that City was of pressing, and immediate concern; but that withal he should be infinitely glad to see him, and that he therefore left it to his own free choice, and judgement, either to come immediately to him, or to defer giving him that satisfaction, till the occasion, which at present called him another way, should be passed, The Duke's Forces. and blown over. The Duke had then in his Army four thousand and five hundred Foot, five hundred Light Horse, and three hundred Harquebusiers on Horseback, besides other Levies he had ordered should be made in the Country, which accordingly soon after came to him; of which he detained three thousand Foot, with a proportion of Horse for the defence of Blois, and the rest he sent away to the King under the command of Moncassin and 〈◊〉 Curé●; from which Forces his Majesty received no little assistance in the occasion that soon after happened before Tours. The Duke in the mean time, according to the King's Order, took his way towards Blois, and interpreting the Liberty his Majesty had so freely given him, (either presently to repair to Court, or to defer it 〈◊〉 a fitter season) as he ought to do; he conceived 〈…〉 by his duty, ● rather to deprive himself of that present Honour, and Satisfaction, than any ways to neglect that Service was expected from him. Advancing therefore with all diligence, and his way lying through Amboise, where the Archbishop of Lions had been detained Prisoner, A generous act of the Duke. ever since the death of the Guises; he (although the Bishop was his capital Enemy, and a man from whom of all others he had received the most sensible injuries) would nevertheless go give him a visit in the Castle. The sad estate, and present condition of this Prelate, had so far reconciled the Duke unto him, that in return of all former injuries, after he had some time entertained him with some consolatory Expressions, as towards his present Fortune; he afterwards made him a promise, as soon as ever he should see the King, to labour with all his Industry, and Interest, for his Enlargement; as after he did, it being one of the first Requests he made, and obtained, after his return to Cou●t. From thence, having recovered Blois, he presently fell to fortifying the place, and in few days put it into so good a posture of Defense, that it would be no easy matter to force it. He also put into St. 〈◊〉, a little Town upon the Road, betwixt that, and Paris, the Count de Brienne, his Brother-in-law, and the Sieur d' Ambleville, with eight hundred Men, the most part Horse; which he did, not so much out of design to keep that place, which he knew was not to be defended, as for some few days to stop the progress of the Duke of Mayenne, and by that means to give the King some leisure to fortify himself: A design that succeeded accordingly; for the Duke of Mayenne not being able to carry this place by assault, and obstinate in the taking of it, having stayed to lay a formal Siege, D' Avila● although he took it in the end, and in it the Count de Brienne, Ambleville, and some other Gentlemen upon composition; yet having lost four days time in the Action, he gave so much respite to the King, who had very great need of it, to prepare himself. This block in the Duke of Mayen●e's way, was perhaps none of the least things that concurred to the preservation of the Royal Affairs: but whether it were or no, the Duke was however infinitely condemned for having so wilfully set himself upon an Enterprise of so little moment, in a time when nothing could be so advantageous as diligence to the execution of his Designs. The Duke of Mayenne, measuring by this first Essay the opposition he was likely to meet withal from the Duke of Espernon at Blois, altered his design of attempting that place, and resolved without further delay to turn the torrent of his Arms upon the King himself, and against the City of Tours, where his Majesty then resided. The King of Navarre had joined himself with his Majesty but the day before, and had with his men taken up his Quarter in one of the Suburbs of the City; whom his Majesty being gone to visit in his Quarters, and walking with him abroad, the earnestness of their discourse had unawares drawn them so far out of the Suburbs, that the Avaunt Coureurs of the Duke of Mayenne's Army missed very little of surprising them both, and consequently of making an end of the War, almost as soon as begun: but the two Kings notwithstanding being happily retired within their strength, the Skirmish grew hot on both sides, and then it was that the Duke of Espernon's Troops signalised themselves. For Moncassin long, M●●●sieur 〈◊〉 Tho●. and bravely defending himself in the very face, and against the first fury of the Enemy, was there wounded in the presence of the King, who was himself Spectator of the Fight; and who, during all which with a constancy far from any show of that effeminacy his Enemies had so often laid to his charge, himself gave the whole direction, and continued in the danger till the end of the Action. The Duke of Mayenne being frustrated in his Design upon Blois, and baffled before Tours, principally through the Duke's opposition, and that of his Forces, seeing nothing was now to be effected, resolved to retire without attempting any thing further at that time; upon which retreat happened the total dissolution of his Army: whereas on the contrary, the Duke of Espernon's Forces grew still greater in strength, and reputation; who having lately received a recruit of fifteen hundred foot, and three hundred Dragoons, The Duke reinforced by new Supplies. the Royal Army received a greater increase from those Regiments he had brought over to the service, than from any other whatsoever. The King of Navarre had not yet had leisure to draw his Forces together, they being dispersed into several parts, as was most convenient for the preservation of such places as were in the possession of the Huguenot Party; by which it may easily be imagined, the King could have no very considerable Army; yet was it necessary to make use of the disorder the Leaguers were then in, which obliged the King upon great probabilities, and almost assurance of signal advantages to be reaped by it, to resolve upon leaving ●ours; and to make directly for Paris. In this March the King of Navarre commanded the Vanguard of the Army, The Command of the Rearguard reserved for the D●ke of Espernon. and his Majesty himself the main Battle, reserving the command of the Rear for the Duke of Espernon, and that in the very face of the Mareschals de Byron, and d' Aumont, and of all the other Nobility who were then about his Person. It was at this time that the Duke came up to the King, The Duke's arrival at the Army, and his favourable reception. by whom he was received with all the honour, and kindness he could expect from his Majesty's old Affection to him, now newly revived by the important Services he had so lately received from his Fidelity, and Valour: And then it was that his Majesty, never thinking he could sufficiently evidence the esteem he had for him, endeavoured (till better times should render him capable of a better acknowledgement) principally to satisfy him concerning all things that had passed during his absence from Court, receiving him into a degree of greater Privacy, and trust, than he had ever been in, in his highest pitch of Favour. The Duke, that he might make a grateful return to those infinite testimonies he received of the King his Master's great affection to him, sought on his part all occasions to please him in all things; and knowing very well he could not give him a greater, nor a more signal satisfaction, than to reconcile himself to the Marshal d' Aumont, a man very acceptable to, and in great esteem with his Majesty, but who had long been upon ill terms with the Duke; he went one day frankly to his Lodging, and without regarding the formalities usual in such Accommodations, there made him offers of Reconciliation, and Friendship; the greatest violence imaginable to his own nature, of itself not easy to be reconciled (an humour in which he has ever since persisted, but too obstinately for the advantage of his own Affairs) but the desire he had to gratify the King his Master overcame that difficulty, M●unsi●●● de 〈◊〉. whose great Interest it was, that those few Servants, who continued about his Person, and were faithful to him, should live in perfect intelligence with one another. The Duke therefore having embraced the Marshal, told him, That he was come with all freedom, and candour, to desire his Friendship, as also to make him a tender of his; that the evil intelligence they had so long lived in could not but be prejudicial to his Majesty's Service, which they both so zealously desired to promote; That there had no offence passed betwixt them, wherein their Honours could be any ways concerned; that if notwithstanding he had entertained some little discontents, he desired him to forget them; as for his part, and that sincerely, he would blot out all memory of his. The Marshal, overcome by this generous, and unexpected freedom, as readily met the Duke in his courtesy, like a true Frenchman, laying open his bosom to the reconciliation with more sincerity, and affection than ever: Whereupon they both of them went immediately to the King, who was not a little pleased at an Accommodation so important to his Service; and having been particularly informed of the Duke's manner of proceeding, gave it the favourable interpretation due to so noble an Action; so that still more, and more increasing the esteem, and kindness he had for him, he made it so highly, He enters into higher favour than ever. and so publicly appear, as gave D'Avila occasion to say, he was re-established in the highest degree of Favour he had ever been, as it was effectually true, whatever D' Aubigné is pleased to write to the contrary. The same D' Aubigné, a man very perfect in calumny, and with which he continually bespatters all the King's Actions, contrary to the truth known and received by all the world, says further, That they had much ado to prevail with the King to march his Army out of Tours towards Paris; that the King of Navarre was forced to use all manner of persuasion, and even a certain kind of violence to bring him to it: but besides that all our Historians are contrary to him in this, the King was observed after the death of the Duke of Guise, to be so vigorous in all his actions, The King's generous Resolution. that at Court they would ordinarily say, he had now reassumed that Lion's Courage, he had for some years suppressed. His whole discourse was nothing, but of reigning with Authority, and of chastising such as would not acknowledge him in their obedience, which his actions likewise confirmed. In the attempt upon the Suburbs of Tours, Mounsieur de Thou (as being continually with the King, and particularly all that day) gives this testimony, That although in this occasion, which was very hot, his Majesty was surprised in his Doublet only, he nevertheless gave orders with so much assurance, and gave so evident proofs of Valour and Constancy in so great a danger, that the whole Army took it for a happy Omen, and every man by his Example fortified himself with Courage and Resolution. In fine (whatever men may say of this Prince) 'tis most certain, that a Martial Disposition governed in him, as he had sufficiently made it appear in his Youth, when he was merely led by his own natural inclination: but it is likewise true, that being come to the Crown, and having learned by the miseries of War, that Peace is the greatest good with which a Prince can gratify his people; he endeavoured by all means (and doubtless too industriously) to establish that happy Government in his Kingdom. To this end were all his Politics (which as I have said) he made his ordinary, and regular study directed: but at last incensed at the ill success of so good a Design, he absolutely resolved upon the taking Arms, never to lay them down, till he had re-established his Authority, and that in the highest degree any of his Predecessors had ever done. With this resolution than he departed from Tours in the beginning of May, 1589. The King marches from Tours to Paris. The first Town upon his way that stood for the League was Gergeau, and this little Town had the confidence to shut their Gates against the Royal Army: So much were men's minds infatuated with zeal to their Faction. The Duke of Espernon was ordered to go before to block up this place, and to cast up the first earth against it, which he accordingly did; and the whole Army being a few days after come up to the Siege, the King of Navarre advanced as far as the Trenches, to see what progress they had made: A Prince whose Valour and Bravery were so generally known, as that his Reputation was universally received, and established in the opinion of all: But the Duke, who till this time had never had the honour to be near him in any occasion of this kind, would now let him see that he also was no Novice in matters of War: 'Tis true, he might have chosen a fitter opportunity of giving the King a testimony of his own Valour, without exposing his Person to so great a danger; but the heat of Youth transported him: and I have heard him discoursing of this Action, and (always accusing his own indiscretion) magnify to the highest degree, the King of Navarre's courage, which appeared in great lustre upon this occasion. D' Aubigné, who was himself then present, gives this Relation of it; and I shall make use of his own words, being in this case not much to be suspected, since every body knows he was never very partial to the Duke. The King of Navarre (says he) being gone to visit the Duke of Espernon's Trenches, the Duke showing him-what he had done, leads him through the middle of the space betwixt the Trenches, and the Town, in his Doublet only, and that so unconcerned, and so open to the Enemy's view, that Hoveilles the Duke's Cousin, and Campmaster, as also another of his people fell dead at their feet; when having gained a Guard commanded by Belangreville, they came out on the back side of that, and passed within forty paces of the Courtine which played upon them all the while, and laid two men more dead upon the place. The King of Navarre, and the Duke having at last gained the blind of a Garden Door. Frontenack, and another (which other must be D' Aubigné himself, who was Gentleman of the Horse to the King of Navarre) earnestly solicited the Duke to retire, which he was about to do by a way, perhaps likely to engage them in more danger than before, when the King of Navarre stayed him by the Collar of his Doublet. This is that he says: but he adds after a thing wherein he is not so good a testimony, as of the first, and which is not so true, viz. that the King being informed of this Action, spoke highly against the Duke, and in terms that nothing tasted of Favour, and that so soon as he saw him, he severely reprehended him, and reproached him, that he would have destroyed his Brother. 'Tis true that his Majesty chid the Duke for his rashness, telling him, That he ought to reserve his Valour for better occasions, and not so lightly to expose the Person of the King of Navarre his Brother, and his own; which were rather words of tenderness, than distaste; and it is likewise very true, that the King of Navarre's Servants murmured highly at it, endeavouring to possess the King, that the Duke had not engaged him in this danger without Design: nay himself manifested something at his coming out of the Trenches; for it was told the Duke that he should say to some of his people, The King of Navarre's first aversion for the Duke of Espernon. I think this man would be content to lose an Arm, to have my Brains beaten out; which was never the Duke's intention, he being only spurred on by the inconsiderate heat of Youth and Bravery, without any other Design. From Gergeau the Army advanced towyrds Piviers, which immediately opened its Gates, as also the City of Chartres surrendered at the first summon: but Estampes stood out a Siege, which being soon after taken by Assault, some of the King of Navarre's Soldiers ran on in their prevailing Fury even to the Church of that Town, there committing all sorts of insolence; which the Duke being advertised of, by the Guards he had placed at the Doo●s of this Church (wisely foreseeing that the King of Navarre's people, who for the greater part were men of the Reformed Religion, would not abstain from violation even of Holy things) he ran thither himself to prevent further disorder; where being come, and seeing the Chalices, and other Sacred Ornaments of the Altars in the hands of the rude Soldier, not being able to endure that things, dedicated to so Sacred Use, should be profaned after that manner, he furiously drew his Sword, and ran the first Offender in his way quite through the Body; which by chance happening to be one of the Dragoons of the King of Navarre's own Guard, and in his own Livery, the Complaint was immediately carried to him, and by him as soon to the King; of which the Duke having also notice, he presently repaired to his Majesty's Quarter, to make his defence. There being come, and his Majesty having demanded of him the reason for what he had done, he gave him a particular account of the whole business: Whereupon the King of Navarre told him with some bitterness, That he had no Authority over his Soldiers, and less over his Domestics; to which the Duke made answer with a respective, but a manly boldness, That the trust wherewith the King was pleased to honour him, and the command he had given him in the Army, invested him with sufficient Authority to chastise Impious, and Sacrilegious Persons; and that moreover every good man ought to assume that Authority in Offences of so high a Nature. Their Dispute was like to grow into hotter terms, when the King imposed silence both upon the one, and the other, not condemning the Duke's action nevertheless; but desiring the King of Navarre to take care for the future, that there might be no more offences committed of that kind. Increase at the Siege of Estampes: Thus by little and little secret discontents against the Duke crept into the King of Navarre's bosom, which many, envious of the Duke's greatness, endeavoured to augment: neither was the Duke blind on that side, nor was it without some affliction that he saw himself so ill requited for the sincere and uninteressed affection he had ever manifested for this Prince's Service in his greatest adversity: but having found by sufficient experience, that the best Offices are not always the best recorded, he contented himself with the conscience of his own integrity, and ever paying the respect due to the Birth, and Virtues of this excellent Prince, in all other concerns of his command he exercised his Duty to the utmost height of Authority he had ever done. The Army advancing daily towards Paris, The taking of Mont●rea● faut-yonne. the Duke had order to make an attempt upon Montereau faut-Yonne, which he carried by Petard; neither was it a service of light importance; for in the sequel of Affairs, that which the Duke won in a few hours cost the King's Enemies many months, and many good men to recover it. From thence the Army being come to Pontoise, the Duke had there the storming of a Suburb, which was very well fortified, committed to him; and which notwithstanding he carried, though with as much hazard as ever he tempted in any action of his life. He was himself the first that leaped upon the Rampire; and though in this assault he had above a hundred men laid dead at his feet, amongst which were many Persons of Quality, and Command, he nevertheless resolutely persisted in the Enterprise, and forced the Enemy at the Swords point even to the Gates of the City, whither he compelled the● to retire; and where having blocked them up, he pressed on the Siege with that vigour and conduct, that the place soon after surrendered upon composition. The Surrender of Pontoise. Thus did the King find all things give place to his Arms, as if Destiny had smoothed, and levelled for him all the paths that lead to Death and Ruin; and in this prosperity of his Affairs, his Majesty resolved upon the Siege of Paris. Already were the Swiss, The Siege of Paris, and the death of Henry the Third. and new raised Reiters come up, and joined with the Body of the Army; the Officers were disposed into their several Quarters, and the King had taken up his own at St Clou, and given the Guard of them to the Duke, in order to a formal Siege. His Majesty's Lodging in this narrow Quarter was at the Hostel de Gondy, as that which was most capable to receive him; and it was in this House of Gondy that (whilst this great Prince was forming the designs of restoring his despised Authority of chastising the temerity, and disobedience of his evil disposed Subjects, of rendering his name venerable to all his Neighbours, and of establishing the Peace of his Kingdom, having already almost extinguished all the sparks of Division that had inflamed it) that I say an accursed Pa●ricide in the Meridian of all his Glory, and in the Crisis of all his Designs plunged a murdering Knife into his Entrails. Every one has heard who jaques Clement was, and the black story of his Bloody Assassinate: but no one could ever yet penetrate so far as to discover by whom he was prompted on to this execrable Act. The King feeling himself wounded, drew the Knife immediately from the Wound, and struck it up to the haft in the Villains Face, at which bustle betwixt them, one of the Grooms of the Wardrobe, who guarded the Closet Door, into which his Majesty was withdrawn to give this wicked wretch a more private audience, ran in to them, as also did several Gentlemen who waited in the outer Room, who all of them drawing their Swords, by an imprudence in itself criminal, if not excused by the violence of their Affections, gave the Caitiff an hundred Wounds; whereby in a moment he vomited out a life, that ought not to have been dismissed, till after the horror of a thousand torments. The King, feeling himself Wounded, commanded the Duke of Espernon to be immediately sent for, who was then at the Post nearest to the City, putting some Troops in order, which were to fall into the Suburbs of Paris; but at this sad and unexpected news he ran in great confusion to the King's Lodging, whom he yet found in the same posture wherein he had received his hurt, with his hand still upon the Wound: At which sight, the Duke bursting out in tears, as fearing a sinister event, his Majesty gave him comfort, by telling him he hoped the Wound would not prove Mortal; and saying to him further these very words, Thou seest here (my Friend) the effects of my Enemy's Treachery and Malice; but I hope God will shortly enable me to bring them to condign punishment. To which the Duke returning no other answer, than his tears, they laid his Majesty upon a bed, and searched his Wound; which the Surgeons at the first dressing, apprehended not to be so dangerous, as it was; so that all that day was passed over in this error: but that night, and the morning following, the dolours of his Wound increasing, and at last growing to be extreme, it was then judged that his bowels were pierced, and that Death must necessarily, and in a few hours ensue. The King of Navarre had hasted with all diligence, at the first bruit of this accident, and being come to his bedside, his Majesty said to him almost the same things, he had said before to the Duke; and talked of nothing the first day, save of the exemplary punishment he would inflict upon his Enemies: but his Wound being at last judged to be mortal, and feeling in himself that he drew near his end, all his discourse of Punishment, and Revenge, was turned into that of Pardon and Oblivion: and certainly no Prince ever made a more Christian, or a more constant end. He declared upon his deathbed the King of Navarre nearest of his Blood, and and consequently right Heir to the Crown, provided he were a Catholic; exhorting him at the same time to abjure his own Religion, and to reconcile himself to the Holy Church, commanding likewise the Duke of Espernon (whom he held by the hand) to serve him upon that condition; after which, and a Pious Resignation of himself, he gave up his last breath in the middle of his victorious Army. We are now entering upon a new Reign, and one the Duke found very different, from that wherein he had hitherto lived; for he now not only saw himself stripped of all kind of Favour: but he further saw the envy, and hatred of the whole Court directed against him. He was now no more called to Council, nor any longer entrusted with his Prince's secrets; but on the contrary every one laboured to diminish that greatness, to which his own Virtue, and his Masters Royal bounty had already raised him. But we shall see how he overcame all these difficulties: and the Justice of this new Prince at last giving the Merits and Services of this virtuous man their due, we shall see him not only support him in his own present Fortune, but also increase it by his daily bounty, and so establish it in him, as to empower him to settle it in his own Posterity. So soon as the King was dead, all the Roman Catholics of quality in the Army assembled themselves together, to advise what in this occurrence was to be done for the maintenance of the Catholic Religion in the Service of this new King: And here their opinions were split into three several Councils; Several Propositions about the new King amongst the Chiefs of the Army. for some there were who thought it fit absolutely to acknowledge the King without condition, or reservation, but those were very few: Others there were who would absolutely abandon his Service, and join with the League; and those were fewer than the first: But the third proposition, and that which was concluded on by the most principal, and prudent Lords of the Army; amongst which were the Dukes of Longueville, of Nevers, of Espernon, and of Luxembourg; the Mareschals de Byron, and d' Aumont, the Marquis of Rambo●illet, and many others, was to serve the King, and to tie themselves wholly to his Fortune, provided his Majesty would please to give them some gracious assurance of his speedy Conversion. The Lords Catholic send his Majesty their Resolution. Which being delivered to his Majesty as their determinate Resolution, and the condition prescribed as it were, by the King his Predecessor, he wisely chose such a mean as seemed necessary to him in this occasion, for the establishment of the uncertain state of his Affairs; and would by all means preserve that moderation, and indifferency betwixt both parties, as should by an equal hope in them both, keep both his Catholic and Huguenot Subjects within the bounds of their duty. His Answer therefore was, His Majesty's Answer. That it would appear to all the world very easy, and unhandsome in him to change his Religion, only to satisfy his Subject's humour, and to receive a Law from them in a thing, which in its self, of all other, aught to be most free: That he desired to be instructed, and satisfied in his Conscience before he proceeded so far, as to change his Religion: That to this purpose he promised within six months to call an Assembly of men of known Piety and Learning, and if occasion were, a National Synod, to whose final Decree he would absolutely submit, and that in the mean time he would be careful to protect, and maintain the Catholic Religion. After divers Messages of Treaty sent to, The major part of the Catholic Lords submit to the King. and fro, on either part, it at last ended in this, that many of the Catholic Lords submitting to his Majesty's first Proposition; what he had then promised by word of mouth, was now only more formally drawn into a writing interchangeably delivered betwixt the King, and his Catholic Subjects, and Signed by the greatest part of Men of Quality, that were then in the Army: But the Duke of Espernon believing this delay of six months proposed by the King, to be no delay, intended only to win longer time, and that at last their hopes, and expectations would be deluded, demanded some further assurance, The Duke of Esperno● stands out. than he yet saw of his Majesty's conversion; neither could he, notwithstanding the importunities of all the Friends he had, be drawn upon other terms to seal to that Writing. And this was the true, and only reason of his refusal, and not what both Mounsieur de Thou, and D'Avila have reported of it. They say that the thing which made him refuse to seal to that Instrument, was a contest which happened betwixt him, and the Mareschals de Byron, and d' Aumont, who should sign first; these as Mareschals of France, and in immediate command in the Army pretending a priority; and he claiming a precedence as Duke, and Peer: a difficulty that might easily have been overcome, had that been all. But the cause proceeded from a principle of greater moment, than the trivial contest of a ●light Ceremony. The King however caused him by several hands to be over and over again solicited, and importuned, to satisfy himself as other good Catholics had done; and as the Dukes were the best, and the fullest Regiments of the Army, and as his person, and his example (which were likely to be followed (as they afterwards were) not only by those under his own command, but by many others of good quality in the Army) altogether rendered him very considerable: So did his Majesty by all sorts of persuasions and promises, endeavour to detain him; The Duke obstinate to leave the Army. but all to no purpose. 'Tis true, he acknowledged the King for lawful Successor to the Crown, as he had sufficiently declared in a time when the greatest persecutions were practised against him, and when he was only King of Navarre, by which he had in part drawn the hatred of the Duke of Guise upon him. And it is also true, that he had all the reason in the world to desire that Prince should now become his Master, whom he had all his life laboured to raise to that Dignity to which he was now arrived: But he thought the Ruin of the Catholic Religion inevitable, should things continue in the posture they were now in; which made him rather choose to expose himself to all those disgraces he knew his Enemies were preparing for him, than to serve his own interests (whose advancement he likewise saw infallible in so favourable a juncture) to the reproach, and prejudice of his own Conscience. Fortified therefore still more and more in this resolution, he caused his Troops to be made ready for his departure: these, at his first coming to the King consisted of six thousand Foot, and twelve hundred Horse; which though they were now much diminished in the Service, yet were they notwithstanding in such a condition, as that there were hardly so many more French in the whole Army, as he had under his sole command. The Marquis de Rocquelaure, and other of his intimate friends laboured by all imaginable means, to dissuade him from his ill taken up resolution; but not being able to prevail, his Enemies would have persuaded the King, The K●ng persuaded to cause the Duke to be stabbed. to have met his obstinacy with a Stab, a Counsel the Duke was as soon informed of. But whether it was, that he thought this generous Prince, not to be persuaded into so foul an action; or that he thought it at that time a thing not easy to be executed, he had the assurance, notwithstanding the caution had been given him, to go take his leave of the King, before he left the Army, and to excuse his departure: A Ceremony that was passed over in few words; and I have often heard him repeat the manner of it to be thus. The Duke goes to take his leave of the King. The Duke took along with him thirty Gentlemen of his Train, in whom he reposed the greatest confidence, and of these he left some at the Doors of the King's Lodgings, and others upon the Stairs, to facilitate his retirement, if any foul play should be offered to him; and himself with only two more in his company entered the Gallery. The last Journey he made to Paris, he happened to lie in the same house, and showed ús the place where he took his leave of the King. This house did at that time belong to Mademoiselle du Tillet, his old, and intimate Friend; a Lady illustrious for her courage and constancy, and passionate for the Duke's Interests to that degree, that he has had few friends who have justified their affection by so great, and so continued a fidelity. The King was at the one end of the Gallery, when the Duke appeared entering at the other; whom the King no sooner perceived, but that coming up to him, with an angry countenance, and striking his stick with some vehemence upon the floor, The King's angry Speech to the Duke. he said. What Mounsieur d' Espernon, it seems you have refused to Sign the Writing, which has been Signed without difficulty by most persons of Quality in my Army, as good Catholics as yourself! do not you, as well as they, acknowledge me for your King? To which the Duke made answer, That he was his Majesty's most humble Subject, and Servant; That there was not a person in his Kingdom, who had more ardently desired to see him in the place where he now was, should the King his Master die, than himself had done; That he would never do anything contrary to his Service; that he had rather die, than once to entertain so dishonest a thought: but that he did humbly beseech his Majesty to excuse him, if being of a Religion differing from that his Majesty professed, he could not attend his person; that being a thing he could not do, without offering the greatest violence to his own Conscience. The Duke had scarce made an end of speaking, when he heard a noise of armed men behind him in the Gallery; and than it was that he certainly believed, these were the men appointed to kill him, as he had been pre-advised: but he was soon delivered out of that fear, when he saw the King move forward with a smiling countenance to embrace them. These were two Captains of the King's Light Horse; the one called le Baron de saint Marry du Mont, a Norman; the others name I have forgot: who, having upon their Guard (which was at a good distance) received intelligence of the Death of Henry III were come in all haste to congratulate the King with his new Advancement▪ and lighted at the Door of his Lodging, were come up in the same posture the news had surprised them in upon their Guard to present their Duty: The Duke taking this occasion to retire, withdrew himself forthwith to his own Quarter; but before he would absolutely depart, he would first attend the Corpse of the King his Master, and Benefactor, as far as Compeigne, whither they were carried with very little Ceremony, the disorders of the time not permitting greater; and where having paid his last duty, he returned to overtake his Troops, which were now marching upon the Road of Loches towards Angoumois. The example of the Duke's departure was followed by many others, so that in a few days the Army was grown so thin, that the King had scarce any save strangers left in his Camp, and even they in the end, for want of pay, disbanded as well as the rest; and than it was that the Duke's Enemies, with a redoubled malice, spoke loudest in his disgrace, and did all they possibly could to animate his Majesty in the highest degree against him. There had already passed (as you have heard) some secret discontents betwixt the King, and the Duke, during the life of the late King; amongst which the business of Gergeau, and that of Estampes had made no little noise; but to these many have added, and likewise some endeavoured to possess the King, that the Duke ever impatient of a Rival in his Master's Favour, and less able to endure his Majesty who was so much above him, had in that time done all the ill offices he could invent to beget a misunderstanding betwixt the King, and him, such as might cause a separation; and certainly so effectually had they laboured with him, as to make him believe too much; by which they had so incensed his Majesty's mind against him, that doubtless he would have bend his whole endeavour to the Duke's Ruin, upon the late refusal he had made of his assistance, had not the necessity of his own Affairs diverted his designs another way: but all these evil dispositions, though they still threatened worse consequences, could not hinder the Duke from persevering in his resolution to retire. As his departure was of infinite importance, whether we consider it as to the Fortune of the King, and Interest of the State; or as to the Duke's own particular concern, and that there are few Historians of that, or later times, who have not taken occasion to blame the Duke's proceeding herein: I think it fit to say something here in his vindication, and to discover the reasons upon which he built that resolution; which having received from his own mouth in the same terms that I shall faithfully deliver here, every one may afterwards 〈◊〉 what judgement of the Action he shall in his own discretion think most fit. He told me that a little before his departure, The Remonstrances of the Duke's Friends to persuade him to stay. many of his intimate friends had endeavoured to dissuade him from his Design, by presenting before him the present juncture of Affairs, so favourable (as they said) to the support of his immediate condition (so generally envied by all) that he could not himself have wished a more advantageous conjuncture: That as it was principally by his means, and assistance the King could build any probable hopes of effecting what he desired; so were there present no advantages (besides an indemnity, and oblivion of all passed unkindnesses, a thing in itself highly to be considered) to which he might not reasonably pretend: That he might now establish his own greatness in so sure a condition, that it would be no hard matter to maintain himself for the future in the same height, should the King's humour chance to come about: That all men plainly saw how much upon his departure, or stay, depended the standing, or dissolution of the Royal Army: That upon his concurrence with his Majesty, depended that of the greatest part of the Catholics, and the Ruin of the League, wherein were his most capital Enemies: That by his assistance men might yet promise to themselves the reducing of Paris, and in that the peace and settlement of the whole Kingdom: That having in his hands the disposition of things of so great utility to the public, and so great honour to himself, he neither aught to envy his Country those advantages, not to deprive himself of the glory of so admirable a success. These were considerations that in their own weight, and laid home to him by men he knew to be his Friends, were not unlikely to prevail, and to have overcome his obstinacy, as doubtless they had done, had the Duke looked no further, than his own Interest; and so he told his Friends, who had so freely argued with him: He told them that he was not so little acquainted with the business of the world, that he did not well enough discern all those advantages they had proposed, as relating to himself: That he did very well believe his Majesty, assisted by his Catholic Subjects, might reduce his Enemies to the point he desired; but that from thence would infallibly ensue the subversion of the Catholic Religion, which would likewise bring on the ruin of the State: That instead of the Peace they proposed to themselves, after the League were reduced to their obedience, they would see themselves engaged in a more violent, and obstinate War than before: That those of the Reformed Religion being grown more strong, and having a lawful, mighty, and active King to head them, would doubtless establish their own Religion in France, and constrain the Catholics to submit to whatever Law they would impose upon them: That it was far better betimes to refuse to countenance the evil, which lay concealed under the appearance of a present good, than to engage himself in mischiefs of so inevitable consequence, and to forbear a while the fruits of a specious, and alluring Peace, to enjoy it at better leisure, more permanent and secure: That the King, what promises soever he had made, and what real dispositions soever he might have to cause himself to be satisfied within six months, had nevertheless been prompted by those of his own persuasion, to demand that respite for no other end, than to keep the Catholic Forces about him, that he might make himself Master of Paris: That having done that, which must necessarily put an end to the War, and being wholly possessed by creatures passionate for their ill received and new opinions, he would certainly be continued in his Error by their restless practice: That there was a necessity of a prompt, and sincere Conversion; not such an one, as was to be hoped for no man knew when, and that then perhaps would be lukewarm, and unsound: That whensoever that should come to pass, they should see him stake his Fortune, his Friends, and his Life, for a Prince whom he did ever acknowledge undoubted Successor to the Crown: That in the mean time he made no doubt but his Enemies (as they use to do) would lay all the disorders that should happen, at his door, and hourly incense the King against him with all the malice, and artifice they could invent; but that he hoped his Majesty would himself one day commend his Zeal to Religion, which ought to be the first thing in every good man's prospect, and which was also his sole object in that resolution, wherein he would live and die: That he was retiring into his Governments, where his Actions should justify the integrity of his heart, and that he would there serve the King to his utmost power, by making War upon those whom he knew to be enemies to his Service. This was the Duke's Declaration to his private Friends, to which his Conduct afterwards was so conformable, as sufficiently demonstrated to all the world, that he was possessed with a better spirit, than that of Ambition. 'Tis true, his determination was in itself positive, and bold; and he had reason in all appearance to apprehend a dangerous issue, and has himself ever acknowledged, that according to the Maxims of humane Prudence, he herein committed a dangerous error; but that having nothing but the sole interest of Religion for his aim, he had reaped greater advantages by it, than he durst have proposed to himself from any other resolution; and that he did believe it was from this fountain he since derived all the successes of his Life; of which the most signal was, that his Majesty himself after some time, having pierced deeper into the candour of his intention, received him into as high a degree of Favour, as any of his other Servants: but it was not until he had first received many infallible, and continual proofs of his Loyalty and Affection. Having after this manner deserted the Army, he soon arrived at Angoulesme; where the first thing he did after his arrival, was to send the Pope an account of his proceeding, and that he had been constrained to quit the Army, being bound so to do, out of his respect to the Catholic Religion: It was also requisite he should by a Declaration purge himself from the Calumnies cast upon him by the League, who had delivered him to the people for a grand Confederate with the Heretics: But other particular correspondencies he had none; for of all Foreign Princes, the Popes were only they with whom he ever held any intelligence; and whatever has been said to the contrary, he ever preserved his fidelity unspo●ted from the practices of other Princes, who daily tempted him with no contemptible offers to an intelligence with them; a virtue not to be passed over in this part of his Life without a worthy mention, it being in a time when few of the great ones of either party had so temperate a respect for their duty; the misfortunes of the time, and the various Factions that divided the Kingdom, seeming as it were, to give every one liberty to fortify the interests of his own party, by all the Friends, and Confederates he could make. The Duke having engaged himself before his retirement from the Army to serve the King by all the ways he could, would now sit no longer idle, but gave immediate order for the recruit of his Troops; and the experience of what had formerly passed, having given him sufficiently to understand what confidence was to be ●epos'd in the people, he was now resolved no longer to depend upon their giddy, and vol●ble humour; nor no more be subject to such commotions, as his Enemies might attempt to raise amongst that credulous, and mutinous rabble. He therefore caused a considerable Fortification to be speedily raised at the Castle of Angoulesme, The Duke fortifies the Castle of Angoulesme, and the Citadel of Xaintes. the King having given him leave so to do, as also to raise what money was necessary to the perfecting that work, upon the Province. He likewise raised another at Xaintes, so that in a short time he secured himself from all Surprises, like that of St. Laurence: but he had scarce time to settle this good order in his Governments, when he was called away to look after other, and those very considerable, Affairs, that immediately concerned the safety of the Kingdom. All the Provinces of the Kingdom being divided betwixt the King, and the League, it was to be expected that the great Cities would likewise ●andy within their own Walls, and stand up for the one party, or the other▪ as men's passions, or judgements inclined them to the cause. Of this number was the City of Lymoges, where the Bishop, who was of the Family of Marthoine, assisted by the Sieurs de Pompadou, de la Gu●rche, de Rastignac, de la Chappelle Byron, and many other Gentlemen of Quality, favoured also by many of the Inhabitants, laboured all he could to make the Town, and City declare for the Duke of Mayenne, and his Faction, wherein nevertheless he at first met some difficulty: but proceeding from persuasions to open force, he, by the assistance of those Gentlemen, made himself Master of the City, and was upon the point to have made himself also Master of the Town, when the Count de la Voute eldest Son to the Duke of Ventadour, put himself into it, and made all possible resistance to preserve it out of their hands: Yet had he not (his Party being so much the weaker) been able long to have held out, had not the Duke of Espernon, advertised of this disorder, come in to his timely succour: The D●ke rescues Lymoges out of the hands of the League. But at the report of the Duke's arrival, the Leaguers immediately dispersed themselves, abandoning the City they already possessed, as he afterwards turned all suspected persons out of the Town, and settled it so well by the prudent order he established there, that it never after started from its duty; but on the contrary continued so firm, and maintained itself so well, that it was almost the only City of the Kingdom which tasted not of those miseries with which the Civil War by taking, re-taking, plunder, and other mischiefs, infested all other Cities of France; a happiness that place principally owes to the timely succour it received from the Duke of Espernon's vigilance and care. The example of the Capital City, contained almost all the lesser Cities of the Province in his Majesty's Obedience; neither was there any except that of St. german which refused to keep within the limits of its Duty; The Du●e 〈◊〉 St. Germ●n, which surren●ers. but that, declaring for the League, constrained the Duke to turn his Forces that way to reduce it. Puiferrat, a Gentleman of the Country, commanded there, who after some volleys of Cannon shot, surrendered upon conditions, that he, and his Soldiers should have free Quarter, and march away with Bag, and Baggage; a capitulation notwithstanding very ill observed, to the Duke's great displeasure; who having appointed the elder Soboles Troop of Light Horse for their Convoy, without considering their Officer had been killed at the Siege, the Cavaliers, incensed at the loss of their Captain, revenged his Death upon these miserable people, and cut them almost all to pieces. A cruelty some Authors have laid to the Duke's charge, though very unjustly; for had his generous heart been capable of committing so dishonourable a crime, what advantage could he have proposed to himself, from so ●oul a treachery▪ And now was the Duke resolved to have cleared all that Province, when the disorders of his own Government called him back to look after his own immediate concerns. We have already given a Narrative of the Enterprise of Angoulesme, The D●ke called back into Angoumois to suppress the Leaguers there. upon St. Laurence day, and further an account of the Clemency the Duke showed to those who had treated him after so barbarous a manner: of which there yet remained some, who (as they were most zealous for the League, and as they had been most guilty of that sedition, mistrusting by the Conscience of their own Crimes, that the Duke could never heartily pardon, and forget them) chose rather, leaving the security and peace of their own Houses, to commit their safeties to the guard of their own Arms, than to rely upon a promise they knew they could not expect in reason should be observed. The Chavalier d' Aubeterre, one of the principal sticklers for the League in that Province, having put himself in the Head of these Mutineers, and having gathered together some other discontented people of the Country, had of these composed a Body of Light Horse, and some Companies of Foot, with which in this time of the Duke's absence, he committed a thousand Insolences: nay, to that confidence were they grown of their own strength, having committed such Riots, whilst there was none to oppose them, that they at last shut up themselves in the Castle of Villebois, which they intended should serve them upon all occasions for a secure retreat; a place indeed of very advantageous situation, very proper for close Fight, and that had all the Avenues unto it of so difficult access, that Cannon without infinite labour was not to be brought up to force it. In this place than they thought to remain in great security, and being but three Leagues distant from Angoulesme, did by their continual sallies very much incommodate that City. The Duke called now home by their insolences, sent them presently a Summons to Surrender; to which they returned so haughty, and so impudent an answer, that he saw he must be forced to Besiege them, as he soon after did: and having, though with infinite trouble, planted two pieces of Cannon upon the Hill where the Castle stood, he caused them immediately to begin to play. The besieged endured above two hundred shot, without showing any countenance of fear: but at last seeing a breach made, which put them out of all hopes long to defend themselves, their insolence was turned into apprehension, and astonishment, and their scornful language into terms of entreaty, and humble supplication, submissively b●gging (as the utmost grace they could expect) that they might be permitted to depart with the assurance of their lives: to which the Duke would by no means consent, nor receive them on other terms, than upon discretion; to which, after many difficulties, which they had good reason to make, they were in the end constrained to submit. Their Commander in Chief, Lieutenant to the Chevalier d' Aubeterre, called Maumont, knowing very well, that both by the Law of Arms, and by the terms of the Capitulation, he was to expect nothing but death, try●d to escape with the soon, by causing himself to be let down by Ropes into the Grass of the Castle: but being pursued, and overtaken, he died more honourably than he expected, being dispatched by a Pistol-shot in his head. As for his Complices, the Duke separated those who had been concerned in the Conspiracy of Angoulesme from the rest, whom seeing to be men so obstinate in their malice, as neither reason could reduce, nor mercy reclaim, he caused eighteen to be hanged up before the Gates of the Castle, and pardoned all the rest. It is but a very little while ago, that an old man of fourscore and two years old, told me this story, wherein he himself had been no little concerned, as being one of those set apart for the Rope; for having before made one in the business of Angoulesme; but his good fortune reserving him for one of the last that was to die, and the Marquis de Mezieres who was at that time Mistress of the Castle of Villebois, being then in the Country, and by some of the poor man's Friends applied to, that she would intercede for him, she had so much time as to entreat, and obtain his pardon; and this was I think the only man of those former Offenders, who escaped that Execution; neither indeed could such a mercy have been better placed, than on a man who knew so well how to husband his life, when it was once more his own, as to preserve it almost an age after. This Castle with the demean and territory belonging to it (one of the fairest of that Country) was soon after purchased by the Duke, and since advanced into a Duchy, and Peerdom, under the Title of the Duchy de la Valette: And I have often heard the Duke lament the ruins he was forced to make of this Castle, being before a delicate Pile of Stone, and very capacious; but never after wholly repaired, there still remaining some monuments of the Rebellion as also of the punishment, those desperate men suffered, who were the Commoters of it. This execution, that would have appeared more like an example of Cruelty, than Justice, had the Crimes of the Offenders been less, or not repeated, struck such a terror into the rest of that Party, that they were not now so hasty to appear for a side they had seen so roughly handled; so that the Duke did now not only enjoy the repose of his Government, but gave sanctuary to many of the King's Party of the neighbouring Provinces, who were overmatched, or oppressed by the League. I have already told you the occasion that called him into Limousin, and I shall now tell you of another of the same nature, and of no less importance, though it made not so great a noise in the world, that called him into the Government of Guyenne. The Marshal de Matignon, the King's Lieutenant in that Province, had his hands so full in, and about Bourdeaux, that the impossibility of his being present in all places, where his presence was required, gave opportunity to Lussan, the Governor of Blaye, a man inclined to the League, to lend some Gentlemen of that Party some Forces, in order to the taking of Bourg; two little Leagues distant only from Blaye. This Town, though of a very little circuit, is notwithstanding of very advantageous situation; for besides that it stands upon an eminence of very difficult access, it absolutely commands the River of Dordongne, as it also at least awes that of Garonne, being not above a quarter of a League from the Bec d' Ambez, where these two Rivers meet to make the Gironde. It must therefore needs be of great advantage to the League to possess this place, by which means Bourdeaux would be absolutely deprived of the succour of two so considerable Rivers, by which the City was continually, and abundantly supplied. The Leaguers therefore, spurred on by these considerations, had laid Siege to Bourg, and were by the favour of some of the Inhabitants of their Party received into the Town, without any opposition; but lafoy joviziere, a man of approved Valour, who commanded in the Castle, defended himself so well, The D●ke relieves B●urg. notwithstanding the ill condition of the place, and the vigour of the Assailants; who pressed hard upon him, that he gave the Duke time to come to his Relief, at whose first appearance, the Enemy retired; when the Duke having publicly commended the Governors' Valour, and the fidelity of some honest Inhabitants who had stuck stoutly to him in this occasion, withdrew the Captain into his own Service, for the testimony he had given of his Valour, leaving Campagno, after Colonel of the Regiment of Guards, and since Governor of Boulogne, with a good Garrison in his room▪ as judging this place of that importance, that it ought to have a person of no less Authority to defend it against any attempt from the Garrison of Blaye, so near, and so dangerous a Neighbour: Yet did not the Duke keep it long in his possession; for the King not long after commanding him to deliver it up to him, he immediately obeyed, though he had in a mann●r himself made a conquest of it: Some say that the Marshal de Matignon, jealous of so considerable a neighbour as the Duke, had earnestly importuned the King to retrieve this place out of his hands. The Duke having by these successes settled all his Neighbours in peace, Anno 1591. whilst the rest of the Kingdom was in trouble, it was but reasonable that he himself should share in that felicity, wherein his Valour and Vigilancy had so fortunately established others; and of this he received the first and most happy fruits by the Blessing God was pleased to give his Marriagebed; for having been already three years Married to Marguerite de Foix, Countess of Candale, without Issue, (the great, and various agitations, wherewith he had been continually exercised all that time; scarce allowing him the leisure to live in company with his Wife) at last this virtuous Lady in March 1591. was at Xaintes brought to Bed of Henry de Foix, The birth of Henry de Foix, and de la Valette▪ the Duke of Espernon's eldest Son. and de la Valette his eldest Son, whom we have since seen Duke of Candale, and whose Valour has manifested itself in most parts of Europe, where he acquired the Reputation of one of the greatest Captains of his time: To these Military Virtues, he had yet the addition of so many other excellent qualities, that it was hard to say, which was to be most admired, his Valour in War, his Sweetness in Conversation, or his Prudence and Dexterity in the Management, The birth of Bernard de F●ix, and de la Valet●e, the Duke's second Son. and Conduct of the most weighty Affairs. The year following 1592. the Duke was enriched with another Son, Bernard de Foix, and de la Valette, who was bo●● at Angoul●sme, and who is now the sole Heir of that illustrious Family; a Prince whose Virtues would furnish me, with sufficient matter for his praise, did not his modesty impose my silence. The Birth of Lewis Cardinal de la Valette, the Duke's youngest Son. The third and last was Lewis Cardinal de la Valette, born at Angoulesme the year following; one whom the Court esteemed, and acknowledged for the greatest, and most accomplished Courtier that had there been bred for many years. He render, d himself conspicuous in his profession whilst he continued in it, by embellishing, and adorning an excellent natural ingenuity with the choicest Flowers of Divine and Humane Learning; and doubtless, had he applied himself wholly to his Book, might have gone equal to the most famous Churchmen of this latter age: but the heat of his Courage having tempted him, out of the bounds of his Spiritual Profession, he proved a better Captain, than the chance of War would give him leave long to continue; for the Wars of Italy wherein he served the State with unparallelled Diligence, and greater Success, than was to be expected from so few Forces, as he commanded, spurred on his untimely Fate, as also his elder Brothers, who both of them in less than four months' space, lost their lives in the same Army. Whilst the Duke had been employing his Power, Passages at Co●rt in the Duke's absence. and Person in these forementioned exploits, there had passed much important action about the Person of the King; who after the Skirmish of Arques, and the Battle of Yary, was grown to such a height of Power and Reputation, as had put him into a condition to undertake the Siege of Paris; which doubtless he might then have taken▪ if on the one side his Majesty had been less solicitous to preserve the City (which would have been utterly destroyed should his Army have entered by storm) or on the other side the Citizens had been less obstinate in their defence: but their despair fortifying, and hardening them against their necessities, which in truth were insupportable, they gave the Duke of Mayenne time to fetch the Duke of Parma to their Relief, which for some years prorogued the entire Victory his Majesty might then, but for his Clemency, have obtained. After the raising of this Siege, the King's Army being much decayed by the length, and ill success thereof, all the Catholics who had thus long served his Majesty, even his most particular Servants, took the liberty, highly to complain of his slow proceeding towards his intended Conversion; The King importuned to hasten his Conversion. as also the several Societies, and Companies of the Kingdom, generally sent their Deputies humbly to beseech his Majesty to put an end to that good work, which would likewise put an end ●o all his own troubles, and be the only means to preserve his Kingdom; nay even the Court itself grew importunate in the same 〈◊〉, and were already laying the design of a third Party, which would have involved the King in a new difficulty his Majesty had then no need of; but to prevent all inconveniencies, to stop men's mouths, and to hinder all these Court-practices, his Majesty saw it necessary to renew the War with new vigour, and by some notable, and important action, to gain a reputation to his Party. He took therefore a resolution to call all the Nobility he could win over to him, about his person, and that not so much to reinforce his Army by their presence, as to hinder them (being at distance, and in full liberty to dispose of themselves) from joining either with those Factions already formed by his Enemies, or such as were now (even by those who had hitherto followed his Fortune) forming against him. Nevertheless his Majesty knowing very well, that the major part of those, who had separated themselves from him, had done it merely out of respect to Religion, and that they would not easily be induced to return, unless he first gave them some hopes, as to that particular; he sent to assure them, that he desired nothing more ardently, than to be instructed in the Catholic Religion, to the end, that with the satisfaction and safety of his Conscience, he might make open profession of it to all the world. Upon this assurance of his speedy Conversion (which notwithstanding was not accomplished till some years after) the Duke of Nevers, with many other persons of Quality, came over to him; The D●ke of Espernon returns to Court. and amongst others, the Duke of Espernon, whom his Majesty having also invited to his Service, and who having only forsaken him at the first out of scruple of Conscience, that being now overcome by the resolution his Majesty professed to have taken, he made no difficulty to return, and with a Train that sufficiently denoted with what passion he embraced his Service; bringing along with him three thousand five hundred Foot, four hundred Light Horse, and four hundred Harquebusiers, on horseback. With which Forces (which the Duke had raised at his own charge, and by his own credit) his Majesty being very well recruited, D'Avila. he resolved to make a new attempt upon Paris itself, and to assault it in four places at once: A Design he intended to execute by Ladders, and Petards, and to lead on one of the Divisions to the Assault in his own person, in which the Duke of Espernon was appointed to attend him; and indeed of his men chiefly consisted that Body his Majesty would in person lead on to the Assault. A Design which, had not the Parisians had timely information of, had been very likely to have taken effect: but the preparation of Ladders, and other provisions for the attempt, being made at St. Dennis, and other adjacent places, almost in the sight of Paris, the King's Forces no sooner appeared, than the Parisians were also found ready upon their Walls, in a resolute posture of defence; which his Majesty perceiving, he retired without making a fruitless attempt in a Design which could not possibly, but in case of a surprise, succeed: So that this Stratagem failing, he resolved upon the Siege of Chartres, The Siege of Chartres, which in the end he took, but not without much difficulty, expense of much time, and the loss of a great number of men. The Duke having considered that he might now have a fit opportunity during this Siege to go to Boulogne, of which he had enjoyed the Government during his time of Favour, to settle it in a posture of safety, he entreated leave of his Majesty that he might undertake that Journey. This place (a Town of great importance) had hitherto been commanded by the Sieur de Bernay, whom the Duke had formerly placed Governor there, and in whom he had for many years reposed an entire confidence: but at last Bernay, having by some odd carriage of his, rendre● himself suspected to the Duke, he was resolved to withdraw him from that trust: And forasmuch as Picardy, in the utmost borders of which this Town was seated, was very partial to the Leaguers, who were possessed of most of the chief Cities of that Province, the Duke entreated his Majesty, The Duke goes into Picardy. that he might take five hundred of those Horse he had brought with him to the Service, for his Convoy in this expedition; a request the King made no difficulty to grant, his Majesty having no great use of Horse in this Siege: So that departing in this equipage, he performed his Journey without the least opposition, or show of an Enemy, withdrew Bernay from Boulogne, and placed the Marquis de Roüillac, his Brother-in-law, in his stead, who served many years after in that employment under his command: But though the Duke had met no body to oppose him, as he went through the Country; the Duke d' Aumale, Governor general for the League in Picardy, had nevertheless been meditating how to cut him off in his return, and to that purpose had called Minieux, the particular Governor of Montreüille, into his Design, where betwixt them it was agreed, that Mini●ux should follow the Duke in the Rear, till he had dogged him within sight of the Duke d' Aumale's Forces; so that being charged at once in the Rear by Minieux▪ and in the Front by the Duke of Aumale, it would be impossible for him, thus beset on all sides, and by Forces double to his own, to disengage himself from so inevitable a danger. And certainly had the Order been as well observed, as the Design was well laid, the Duke wou●d have had very much ado to have freed himself from so manifest a peril: his good fortune nevertheless delivered him from it by an accident, that in itself had been like enough to have hastened his Ruin. An attempt ●pon the Duke of Espernon by the Duke of Aumale. This Minieux had for some time been the Duke's particular, and mortal Enemy; and upon the pretence of not having been well used by him in the height of his favour, had with great impatience watched an occasion like this, wherein to execute his Revenge. Wherefore lying in Ambuscado with two hundred and fifty Light Horse, upon the way the Duke was to pass, and the Duke of Aumale not far off in a Wood within half a League of Pont de Douricé with seven hundred more, Minieux impatient to be at it, and either fearing to lose the opportunity of his revenge, or hoping to gain a rich Booty of the Duke's Baggage, could not contain himself; but appearing sooner, than he should have done, he followed the Duke so clo●e, till he was advanced within almost Musquet-shot of his Rear, which (the Bodies being so near) occasioned many light Skirmishes betwixt them; until at last the Duke nettled to see himself so pursued, and trifled withal by his Enemy, commanded Montestruc his Kinsman to go charge them with forty Horse, himself at the same time seconded by the Baron de Chasteliers (since Baron d' Ars) by Gohas, and Miran the chief Officers of his Party, giving so brisk a Charge into the Enemy's Body, that they were instantly put to rout. Minieux routed by by the Duke, and taken prisoner. The fight was not very obstinate, by reason the Commanders of the other side were either wounded, or slain in the first Encounter, and there was none to Rally, or Command▪ Minieux and his Son, Conteval his Lieutenant, and fifteen, or twenty of the chief Commanders were trodden under foot, and the rest betook themselves to flight. The Duke, who would not engage himself too far into a Country where he had no other business, than to pass through it, thought it not convenient to follow the pursuit; but contenting himself with those prisoners he had taken upon the place, though they were exceedingly wounded, he went on his way; but one of his Gentlemen (Bois Rufier by name) being straggled out to discover the Country, fell into the Duke of Aumale's Ambuscado; who, being carried by those had taken him before the Duke, was by him examined of his quality▪ and who he was for? who answered, That he belonged to the Duke of Espernon, showing him at the same time the Duke's Vanguard, which began to appear upon a little eminence hard by. The Duke then further demanded of him, if he had seen Minieux? to which he answered, That Minieux was the Duke of Espernon's Prisoner, and withal recounted to him the manner of his Defeat; which the Duke of Aumale was no sooner informed of, but that conceiving it was not convenient, to engage in an uncertain Fight, where he had promised to himself a certain Victory, he retired, without once daring to attempt any thing upon the Duke, highly condemning and complaining of Minieux, who by his rashness and impatience, had ruined so hopeful a Design. The Duke, having thus rid his hands of his Enemies, went to put himself into the danger of his Friends; at least those who ought to have been so, being engaged in the same Service: but I dare not here publish all I know of this business, lest I should revive the memory of an Action, that was then condemned by the King himself, and that cannot be approved of now. I shall only tell you, The Duke's ill usage at Corbie. that the Duke having carried his Prisoners into Corbie, they were there peremptorily demanded of him, and upon his refusal violently taken and detained from him: A dispute that was on both sides carried on with such heat, as brought the Duke's Person, who could not with any thought of patience endure so great an affront, into very great danger: and the odds against him was so great, that nothing could have been expected, but certain death, had not the Sieur de Humierres the King's Lieutenant in the place, and the Sieur de la Boissiere his Brother-in-law interposing, hindered the violence was preparing against him, and mediated an Accommodation; which, though it could not obliterate the memory of the offence, kept matters notwithstanding from proceeding to the last Extremes. Neither was this the last danger the Duke escaped in his return: for as he proceeded on his way to Chartres, where the Siege still continued, he heard the Marquis d' O his old friend was very busy at the Siege of Pierre Fonds, which he had undertaken; whom the Duke going to visit, he was by him entreated to stay there a few days, and by his Authority, and those Forces he had then with him, to help him to bring his Enterprise to an honourable issue; which the Duke as frankly consented to, and went immediately into the Trenches, to take a view of the order of the Siege: where presenting himself with his usual bravery to open view of the Enemy, and without other Arms, than his Corsset only, The Duke shot into the mouth at Pierre Fonds. he received a Harquebuss-shot in his mouth, that passing through one of his cheeks, shattered his right jaw, and coming out at his chin, flatted upon his Gorget: A shot that every one believed had certainly dispatched him. But being carried to his Lodging, and his Wound searched, it was found to be nothing dangerous; and in a few days he was in a condition to mount on horseback. After all these good and evil adventures, the Duke being at last arrived at Chartres, he went presently to give the King an account of his Voyage, The Duke returns to the King. not forgetting to make his complaint of the injury done him at Corbie, withal humbly entreating his Majesty would be pleased to do him Justice; which the King had in part already done, having ordered his prisoners immediately to be restored: but their Wounds were such, that they all died of them, soon after they were left at Corbie; so that they who had committed the injury not long surviving, the Duke's Quarrel was at an end, and all thoughts of revenge were soon extinct, and for ever buried in oblivion. The Siege of Chartres continued yet some time after the Duke's return, which la Bourdaisiere, Governor there for the League, had so bravely defended, as often made the King to repent that undertaking, having lost before it the Sieur de Chastillon, eighteen Camp-Masters, and, as may well be imagined from thence, a great number of common Soldiers: Neither did those Forces the Duke of Espernon had left with the King scape better than the rest, the King (willing to husband the lives of his own Servants in whom he yet reposed a greater trust, than in the Duke) continually exposing them to the greatest danger. Of these Beaujeu, Mascaron, and Blumet, three Colonels were there slain, and also many other Officers; by whose valour, amongst the rest (who perhaps had better fortune) the place was at last (notwithstanding their notable resistance) reduced to the necessity of a surrender. From thence his Majesty passed over into Picardy, Charters after an obstinate Siege surrendered to the King, and soon after Noyon. where he besieged, and took Noyon, and secured many other considerable Cities of that Province to his obedience: when having after all made a little digression into Champagne, the year, and that Champagne ended together; it being necessary to dispose the Army into several Garrisons to refresh them: So that the Duke, seeing the time of the year for further Service was now past, asked leave of the King to retire into his own Government to recruit his Troops, The Duke of Espernon retires into his own Government. that they might be in a better condition to serve his Majesty the year to come: to which his Majesty willingly consented, dismissing the Duke with great testimonies of an entire satisfaction in his service, and an absolute oblivion of all past unkindness. The end of the Third Book. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. The Fourth Book. THE Duke solicitous by his Services to dispossess the King of those evil impressions, Anno 1592. his Majesty had, through the ill Offices of some, conceived against him, to the prejudice of his Loyalty and affection; The Duke prepares to return to the King. did now resolve to raise far greater Forces, than before, for the Summer to come. Neither had his Majesty on his part concealed his most secret Designs from the Duke's knowledge; but on the contrary had invited him again into action, and had reserved an Employment of great trust, Is hindered by the death of Mounsieur de la Valette hi● Brother. and Reputation for him in his Army. The Duke also was prepared to go, and expected with great impatience his Majesty's Order, for his setting out; when he received the sad news of the death of Mounsieur de la Valette his Brother. This Lord, after he had beaten the Duke of Savoy out of Provence, and made him sustain such losses, Mounsieur de la Valette 's exploits in Provence, and 〈◊〉. as had forced him to retire into his own Dukedom, after he had settled Provence and Dauphiné in his Majesty's Obedience, and almost rooted out all the seeds of the League in those two Provinces; after having by Treaties carried on with infinite Conduct, and Prudence, interested the Republic of Venice, the Dukes of Florence, and Mantua in his Majesty's Quarrel, and obtained from these Prince's security for thirty thousand Crowns a month, to transport the War into the Duchy of Savoy itself; of which also he was to have the management (by so powerful a diversion to oblige this Ambitious Prince to defend his own Territories instead of invading his Neighbours:) Being, I say, upon the point to execute a design so honourable in itself, and so important to the Crown, he would yet first absolutely cleanse Provence from the contagion of the League, that he might leave no Enemy behind to beget new mischiefs, when he should not be near to suppress them. To this end therefore he dr●w his Ar●y into the Field in the beginning of january, and went to besiege Roquebrune, that stood for the League: A place, which though little, was nevertheless so strong, that Mounsieur de la Valette's Battery, having played upon that side which was best fortified, and not working that speedy effect he desired, he would remove 〈…〉 other side; and in 〈◊〉 impatience to put an end to an enterprise so much inferior to his greater designs, would himself help to remove the Cannon to a more advantageous place; where being exposed to the Enemy's view, open, and in his Doublet only 〈…〉 lost many of our best Captains) he received a Musket shot in the head, the eleventh day of january; of which within thirteen hours after he died. All the Historians of his time celebrated the Virtues of this 〈…〉 highest 〈◊〉 of Honour; Mounsi●ur de 〈◊〉 the King himself appeared infinitely concerned a● his death, by which he was deprived of a valiant Captain, and a faithful Subject: Nay even 〈◊〉 Enemies lamented his loss (so great an interest has Virtue in generous minds:) but the Duke hi● Brother was afflicted to the last degree. He had ever loved him to an example of Fraternal Affection, had never made any distinction betwixt the interests of so good a Brother, and his own; he had invested him in a very considerable share of his own fortune, he had bestowed upon him the Government of Provence, with the Office of Admiral of France, he had been continually assisting to him with his Purse and Credit, and had ever made him a partaker in all the advantages of his Master's Favour: benefits, of which Mounsieur de la Valette had, on his part, made so modest, and so virtuous an use, that he thought himself obliged (having no posterity to provide for) to husband them for the Duke his Brother's Service: Which gratitude to h●s Benefactor was rewarded by a good fortune to himself▪ for having little frequented the Court, the discontents and disgraces which sometimes perplexed the Duke could never● reach or reflect upon him, who had continually been abroad in action, and that with so good success, that his merit made him by every one thought worthy of that greatness he possessed; so that he was favoured, and esteemed by all good men, without the least mixrure of hatred, or envy. Neither was he, on his part, wanting to his own Reputation and Interest; but ever behaved himself in all his Employments with infinite moderation, sweetness, liberality, and noble Courage: Virtues that established him in his Government with such Authority, and that rendered him so considerable to the Princes bordering upon Provence, that their respect to him begot in them a singular regard towards the Duke his Brother; whom no man was willing (upon a light occasion) to offend, left this (whom all the world knew to be so kind a Brother, and so good a Friend) by an injury offered to so dear a Relation, might be tempted into extremities, that usually are the effects of so just a resentment. It appears therefore by this, how great a support he was to his Family: but this unfortunate blow deprived the Duke at once of so considerable a Fortune, of so powerful an Assistant, of so honourable Employments, and of the person of all others most dearly beloved by him. The Office of Admiral of France was presently, and that by the Duke's consent, conferred upon St. Blancart, The Office of Admiral conferred upon St. Blancart. since Duke and Marshal de Byron, his Kinsman, and intimate Friend; who (as we have already observed) put himself into the Duke's Service in the beginning of his Favour: but who afterwards, by his good Services had advanced himself very high in his Majesty's esteem. Some have said, that the King (to whom the Duke's greatness was become suspected) had a good mind, at the same time, to have disposed of the Government of Provence also: but that having considered most of the principal Cities of that Province were in the custody of the Duke's Friends, or their Substitutes, who had served Volunteers under Mounsieur de la Valette; that the Forces, there residing, were made up of their Creatures, such as only served upon the two Brother's account, it was to be feared the Duke's Discontents would be humoured by his Friends, who might interest themselves in his Disgrace: So that his Majesty thinking it neither convenient, nor safe, as Affairs than stood, directly to disoblige the Duke, was forced to comply with the necessity of the time, and to consent, to what he could not well hinder without endangering the Affairs of that Province. Mounsieur de la Valette was no sooner dead, but that all his Officers assembled themselves together, to advise, what, upon this accident, they were best to do; where, without much debate, it was concluded, that to express the affection, they had ever born their dead General, and the respect they had for the Duke his Brother, to whom they would that affection should now descend, it was fit to send to the King, humbly to entreat his Majesty, that he would send the Duke of Espernon, to command them in the place of Mounsieur de la Valette▪ declaring freely withal, that under the command of any other they should not so cheerfully continue those services, they had for the time passed so successfully performed; and accordingly with this Message they dispatched away the ●ieurs d' Esgarrebacques, and the Mespl●s (two of the most eminent amongst them both in Valour and Condition) to the Court. The Duke of Espernon, being advertised of the deputation of these two Gentlemen to the King, by the Sieur de Peyroles (dispatched to him at the same time by the Chief Officers of Provence) sent himself also to solicit his Majesty, for that they had so favourably pursued in his behalf: The Duke demands of the King the Government of Provence. Representing to him, That the Government of Provence could not be reputed vacant, whilst he was living, who had put it into his Brother's hands, upon no other account, than to preserve it in his Majesty's Obedience; whilst himself, with such as depended upon him, exposed his Life, and Fortune elsewhere, for his Service. That the first, and true title, to that Government remained in him, and that since he was so unfortunate as to survive his Brother, he had that confidence in his Majesty's Justice, that he would not add to his affliction by depriving him of an Employment, he had only transferred to another, that he might himself be at more liberty to do him more, and better service: And, as if the Duke had been already assured of his Majesty's Favour to him, or that he would not seem in the least to suspect it, he published his resolution of going into Provence, and made great preparations in order to that expedition. The King foreseeing that the Duke would, of all others, be the most acceptably received by that people, and knowing also, that in the confusion the Kingdom than was, the Government of Provence wherein the Duke of Savoy, and the League had made a dangerous progress since the death of Mounsieur de la Valette) could not be maintained as it ought, otherwise than by the Duke's ●nterest there, thought fit not to contradict his claim; and consequently, about the end of March the same year, sent him a Commission to go into Provence, in quality of Captain General of all his Forces there, without revoking the title of Governor, which had been granted to him by Henry the III. as also without any confirmation of it; but commanding by particular dispatches all the Cities, and all his Servants in that Province to acknowledge, and obey him, giving the Duke in this some seeming satisfaction, till he might find a time and opportunity gently to withdraw him from thence. The Duke, having thus obtained leave of the King, prepared himself with all expedition to depart from his Governments of Xaintonge, and Angoumois; but not before he had first settled his Domestic Affairs; the chief of which was the Inheritance of Mounsieur de la Valette, who, some days before his Death, had made a Will, wherein, 'tis true, he had made the Duke his Heir; but with so little advantage to him, that the very particulars of the Will, exceeded the value of his Estate. He had given great Legacies to all his Friends, and to all his Servants, of which he had not omitted one, who was not very liberally rewarded. He had moreover given many pious Legacies for public Buildings, Foundations of Convents, and Hospitals; and with all this liberality, left so many Debts behind him, that the Duke was advised not to meddle 〈◊〉 the Inheritance, as a thing that would certainly be a burden to him: But he, far from embracing an Advice, which, though prudently enough given, he thought would not be honourable for him to follow, could not think his Brother's intention sufficiently fulfilled, if he did not add something of his own to his Liberalities: A Resolution he so peremptorily executed, that all those who were mentioned in the Will were satisfied, before the Testator's personal Estate could be prized, or his Revenue gathered in. Having thus settled this business, whilst his Friends were busy levying such Forces, as he intended to lead into Provence, he had now nothing left to do, but to begin his Journey, except to take a review of his Army: Of which the Cavalry was commanded by the Sieurs de Chalais, d' Ambleville, The Forces the Duke carried with him into Provence. d' Ars, (who is still full of vigour at the writing of this History, and I think the only Cavalier remaining of all the Officers of that Army) the Touverac, de Miran, de Gohas, de Boards, d' Estausan, de Puygailliart, young Masses, de Boisseau, and some others; each having a hundred Light Horse in his Troop. The Infantry had for Camp Masters, the Baron de Mata, Bonnovurier, Pernes, and la Rodérie; the names of the rest I could not learn, time having worn out their Memories: But the Commanders and Soldiers were such, that it was not possible to see any where a more complete, nor a more sprightly Body. And what he found there. There remained in Provence of those who had kept themselves together, since the death of Mounsieur de la Valette, his own Troop of Gens-d'Armes, and that of the Baron de Montaut his Cousin, consisting each of two hundred Cuirassiers, with that of the Marquis de Cadenot, consisting of one. The Troops of Light Horse under the command of Belloe, of Ramefort, of Lions, of St. Andiol, that of Buous, with his Regiment of Foot, commanded by the Chevalier de Buous his Brother, with the Regiments of Merarques, and the Valaveyre. Soon after the Duke's Arrival in those parts, he was yet reinforced with fifteen hundred Foot, which the Sieur de Gouvernet brought him out of Dauphiné; and the Constable his Uncle, to whom he gave a Visit as he passed through Languedoc, furnished him with three hundred Light Horse, under the Command of the Sieurs de Poyraux, de Monteson, and d' Entragues. So that he no sooner came into Provenc●, but that he had above ten thousand Foot, besides what he was supplied withal from the Garrisons of the Country, which made up three thousand more, and at least fifteen or sixteen hundred Horse. The Mareschals de Camp, to those Forces he had raised himself, were the Sieurs de Megrin, and de Bonnovurier, and of those in Provence, Montaut, and le Passage, who having served in the same quality under his Brother, he thought, by no means fit to be disobliged. So many, and so vast Leagues, made at the Duke's own charges, could not but very much exhaust his purse, which had before been weakened by the excessive expense he had been at for the Service of the two Kings: For in his Voyage to Henry the III at Tours, he had (as has been said) raised six thousand Foot, and twelve hundred Horse, and in the last Campagne, he had brought to Henry FOUR four thousand Foot, and eight hundred Light Horse, which could not be raised without infinite expense: So that it is no wonder, if he was now reduced to borrowing, as indeed he was, and did borrow a very considerable sum at Angoulesme; where one particular man, Francois Redout by name, Sieur de Nevillac, lent him, at his departure from thence, fifty thousand Crowns; The Duke enforced to borrow money. and which more obliged the Duke (a thing I have often heard him speak of with great commendation of this Gentleman's proceeding) so generously, that he would not so much as accept a bond for his Security, but only a Memorandum of three or four Lines; so great a Confidence he had in the Duke's Integrity: Nor was he deceived, his money being punctually repaid at the appointed day. Things being thus ordered, The Duke departs from Angoul●sme. the Duke departed from Angoulesme the fifth day of june, the same year taking his way through Perigort towards Quercy; but there was no little contest betwixt his Honour and Affection in taking leave of his Duchess, whom her Virtue, and Fruitfulness, had rendered to him more dear than ever; and who on her part, as if she had foreseen this parting should be their last, as indeed it was, could by no means consent to this separation, though they were at last both of them constrained, to yield to the necessity, his Duty and Honour imposed upon him. There accrued no little advantage to his Majesty's Affairs, by this Armies taking the way of Quercy; for the Marquis de Themines, since Marshal of France▪ gave the Duke notice as he was upon his March, that the Forces the League had in Languedoc, under the command of the Duke de joyeuse, had besieged Villo●nur, which though a little Town, was nevertheless very considerable for its situation upon the River Tarn, and for its vicinity to Tholouse, being but four Leagues distant from thence. R●nies a Gentleman of great Valour, who had the command of that place, upon the first Alarm, had put himself, with about fifteen, or sixteen Gentlemen of his Friends, into it: but it had been impossible (having no body, but the Inhabitants to assist him) to have defended it long without relief, and that no body, but the Duke, was able to give him: Which Father Ange de joyeuse a Capuchin, the Duke's Brother-in-law, and then at Tholouse, fearing he would do, and having intelligence of the Duke's motion that way, he went, and met him upon his March, where he not only endeavoured to dissuade him from that Design; but also by all manner of Arguments to draw him over to the League: conjuring him by all the ties of Friendship, and by the most instant entreaties he could use, neither omitting the respect due to Religion, nor the obligations of Friendship, and Relation, to divert him from his purpose; but all in vain: for the Duke setting aside all those interests of Friendship, The Duke relieves Villemu●● and Alliance when they came in competition with the Duty he ought to his Prince, was deaf to all Arguments and Entreaties, and in spite of them, and him, advanced directly towards the place: But upon his Arrival, the Enemy, not being able to dispute it with him, immediately retir▪ d to Tholoze, giving the Duke, by that means, free liberty to fortify the Town; which he did so well, as soon after gave the King's Party opportunity to gain in that place a very signal Victory, by the death of the Duke de joyeuse himself, and the absolute defeat of his Army. But it was not in this occasion alone that the Duke's Arms were employed in that Country; for the power of the League being as considerable there, as in any Province of the Kingdom, their Designs were not limited to the reducing of Villemur only; they had moreover almost blocked up Montauban, which City (at that time reputed one of the best in France) was in great danger, if not speedily relieved, to be lost. On one side it was awed by Moissac, on another by the Castles of Monbeton, of Mauzac, and de la Court, besides many other little places fortified round about, by which the Garrison, and Inhabitants were so straightened, and kept in, that they were reduced to great extremity, and scarcity of all things. The D●ke relieves Mantaubon by the taking in several Castles from the League. This, the Duke being advertised of, and being also solicited by the Inhabitants, to free them from these troublesome Neighbours, he presently went about it, and to that purpose presented himself first before Moissac, which surrendering at the sight of the Cannon, he removed from thence before Mauzac, which did the same: but the other little places, not being so considerable, as that his presence was necessary to reduce them, he left that part of the work to the Sieurs de St. Megrin, and de Bonnovurier, Mareschals de Camp to his Army; himself, whilst his Forces were employed about those petty Erterprises, making a step into Gascony to Visit Madam de la Valette, his Mother, and to invite his Friends in that Country to go, and share with him in the Honour of serving his Majesty in Provence. By this little digression into Gascony, the Duke had an opportunity yet further, to reinforce himself with some particular Servants of his, with whom, having rejoined his Army, he found now nothing lest to do, that might impede his March; so that he proceeded without longer stay, on his Journey to Provence, where being arrived, and appearing with so gallant, and so numerous an Army, it gave no small reputation to his Majesty's Affairs; nor struck no small astonishment into the League: and, as he, in his experience very well knew, that this reputation was no ways to be kept up, but by some honourable Exploit, he undertook divers Sieges at his first Arrrival (notwithstanding the season of the year was far spent, it being now October) whereof that of Montauron was the first. The Siege of Montau●on. This City, though in its situation and strength incapable of any notable defence, was nevertheless by the Commanders, (who had eighteen foot Companies there, which the Duke of Savoy had put in, to entertain the Duke of Espe●non in his first heat) thought tenable enough, and that the number of their men, which were nine hundred resolute Soldiers, would supply the defects of the place; or that (at the worst) the Duke of Savoy, being so near, and in the head of an Army, they might defend themselves, till he should come to their Relief. This Garrison the Duke of Espernon at his Arrival presently summoned to a surrender, at the same time representing to them, that they were in a place, that could not possibly resist the Force of great Shot, the Houses of the City making up the greatest part of their Wall; and that they would do better not to put him to the trouble of bringing up his Artillery, than by doing it to oblige him to use them otherwise, than like Gentlemen, and Soldiers: To which they (defying him, and despising his Admonitions) returned this peremptory answer, That they had undertaken to defend that place, and would maintain it, or perish, and make it good with their lives to the last man; An Answer that quickly set the Duke to work, who immediately beleaguered the Town; where the Cannon having in a few days made a wider breach than was necessary, the besieged desired they might Capitulate. To whom the Duke sent word, There was now no Capitulation to be granted to them, that they had lost that privilege, and that he would not receive them upon other terms, than upon surrender to mercy; that they were best therefore to deliberate, whether they would run the fortune of an Assault, or presently submit to that Condition, it being the only, and final Favour they were to expect. Whilst these matters were in agitation, the Duke of Savoy, who had engaged these men in this desperate place, and knew, as well as any, the danger they were in, was advancing with three thousand Foot, and five hundred Light Horse to relieve them; which the Duke of Espernon was no sooner informed of, but that leaving a sufficient Force to maintain the Siege, he went out to meet him, and bravely offered him Battle: But the Savoyard, not daring to run so great a hazard, retired without any further attempt; so that the Besieged, being out of all hopes of Relief, were forced to surrender to the Duke's discretion, where their Insolence, and Rebellion received their due reward, and that in as high a degree, and with the greatest rigour, the Law of Arms does permit: whereby they were made miserable examples of the greatest cruelty. All the Captains found in the place, to the number of fourteen, The Duke of Esp●rnon's severity. were immediately hanged up, and five hundred common Soldiers sent to the Galleys at Taulon; the rest either escaped in the time of the Capitulation, or were ●lain, during the Siege: A severity that ought not to have been practised, upon our own Nation. But the Duke would by this give the Duke of Savoy to understand, that he, having violated the public Faith, and his League with the Kings of France, as he had done, he would have no fair Quarter with him, nor use him otherwise than as a mortal Enemy to the Crown, and Kingdom. After this Action, the Duke conceiving himself no less obliged to protect his Majesty's good Subjects, than to suppress his Enemies; his first care was to secure the Officers of the Parliament of Provence (such as had declared for the King from the beginning, and had retired themselves from Aix (the seat of Parliament) from the time the City had revolted to the Duke of Savoy) in some place of safety: For this purpose he could find no place so fit for strength, and conveniency as Manosque, where he seated them in great security, and honour. And that the time might not pass away without some show of Action, whilst the season would not give him leave smartly to follow the War; he in this dead time of the year, with a strong party of Horse scoured the Country all over the whole Province. Neither was this an unnecessary, or an unprofitable diligence, by which he confirmed those Cities, already declared for the King, in their duty; and also frighted those inclining to a Revolt into better Resolutions: But the greatest advantage he reaped by it was, that by this means, he informed himself, upon the particular places themselves, of the general estate of the whole Province; and moreover, kept his men in action, like a Captain that very well understood Order and Discipline to be the only things, that establish, and support an Army, and the pest of great Bodies to be sloth and liberty, which debauch Soldiers from their Duty, and have often been observed to dissolve, and disperse the greatest Armies, when the Soldier has been suffered to enrich himself by idleness, and licence, upon the plunder of his Quarters. He therefore provided for the subsistence of his men, by imposing Contributions upon the Province, which nevertheless was not done without the advice and consent of the Officers of Parliament; by whose Authority, as well as his own, he ordered a certain rate of all things in the Markets, and that at so indifferent a price, that the Commons found a greater convenience in the Quartering of Soldiers, than in being without; so quick a return they had for their Corn, and other Provisions, and so certain was their pay. To this the Assessments, designed to defray these Provisions, were so equally laid upon the whole Country, that no man could complain he was oppressed: nor was there any who did not find his advantage in this necessary evil. In fine, all things were settled so much to the general conveniency, and satisfaction of all, that I have an hundred times heard the Duke wish for such an establishment in Guienne: but the contagion was there already spread too far, and had taken too deep root, to admit so happy a reformation. By this prudent disposition of things, the Soldier found himself provided of his share of all things necessary where ever he came, according to the order prescribed: Neither was he to exact more upon pain of death; a penalty that without mercy followed the offence: by which severe Discipline, the King's Party, in those parts, were in a short time observed to be very much increased. The Duke, The Siege of Arles. solicitous to maintain this Reputation of the Royal Arms, by some notable enterprise, resolved to make an attempt upon the City of Arles; neither did he herein make an ill choice, it being one of the most considerable places of Provence, seated upon the Banks of Rosne, and inhabited by above three hundred Families of very good quality, who here made their ordinary residence; besides a vast number of Citizens, and inferior people. This City, like all others which are situated upon Navigable Rivers, and daily expect to be supplied with fresh Provisions, kept very little beforehand in store; which the Duke being well informed of, contented himself with shutting up the River only above, and below, and cutting off the Succours of the adjacent Country, by Quartering several Troops on both sides the River: by which means, without much trouble, or any considerable loss in a month, or five week's time, this strong City was reduced to a necessity of surrender, and to shake hands with the League, for whom they had hitherto been zealous to the highest degree. Arles surrendered. They came therefore to a Capitulation, in which the Duke was content to accept of thirty Hostages for their future good behaviour, and with that caution to ease them of the burden of a Garrison; which in truth at that time, before he was well settled in his Government, he could not well have spared, nor without manifest prejudice to his Majesties, and his own private Affairs. Nevertheless what good security soever the Duke thought he had taken to bind them to their Duty, the Inhabitants made no scruple afterwards, in the Revolt of the Cities of Provence, by their Rebellion to expose the lives of so many men of Quality, who had generously staked their persons for the good of their fellow Citizens, to the Duke's just indignation; though he by a clemency much more extraordinary, than the severity he had showed at Montauron, dismissed the Hostages to their own houses, without so much as putting them to ransom; which in an occasion of this nature is no usual Favour. After this success, the Duke yet undertook the Siege of Antibe, The S●ege of A●tibe. a place wonderfully well fortified, seated upon the Sea shore, and favoured with a very good Port; which the Duke of Savoy, since his last taking of it, to assure his possession, had so fortified, and manned, that he thought it impossible to be taken. The Duke of Espernon notwithstanding presented himself before it, where having summoned the Governor to a surrender, and his Trumpet being sent back with a scornful answer, he proceeded to a formal Siege, advancing by T●enches, raising of Batteries, and duly observing whatever the Method, and Discipline of War prescribe in the most difficult attempts. The Town was defended for a while, but the Governor in the end retired into his Fo●t, where he thought he should be in a condition to make the Duke spend his time, and consume his Army unprofitably, and to no purpose. This place had besides its own strength, A●bigné. and advantageous situation, this further convenience, that every night, by the Duke of Savoy's order, a Galley set out from Nice, that brought all the refr●shments to the besieged, they could desire, carried away their Sick, and Wounded, brought them in fresh Soldiers, and provided all things necessary for them; which so continual Succour, and seasonable Supplies, swelled the Governor with an opinion, that the Duke could never force him: Neither was the Duke displeased at his confidence, hoping that this security of his would at one time or another contribute to the success of his Design. He therefore continued his approaches, and tried all ways imaginable to effect his enterprise; when at last his Cannon having battered the Curtain in a place not much frequented, he perceived, that those within kept no guard there; by which he believed they had not observed that breach, and immediately resolved to make his advantage of that negligence. To this purpose therefore he sent a Sergeant to discover the breach, who accordingly having gone in, and returned by a hole big enough for a man to pass at his ●ase, he made his report to the Duke, that there was so little order in the place, that no one so much as thought of repairing that Breach, and that there was no Guard at all kept there. Upon this intelligence the Duke resolved, that an Assault should the next morning be made, on that side the Fortress; which, that it might the better succeed, a general Assault was to be made show of, that the Defendants, being every where employed, whilst they were deluded by false Alarms, fi●ty good men, chosen for the purpose, seconded by an hundred more, and that hundred by a greater number, might creep up to the Curtain, and slip in at the Breach; a Design that took effect: In the execution of which, the Alarm having surprised the Governor in Bed, and he running out in his Nightgown, and Slippers▪ to see what was the matter, Antiae taken by Assault. was in that posture taken, as the Fort itself was by Assault. And here, though by the Law of Arms all things were at the conquerors discretion, the Duke nevertheless proceeding in that moderate way he had taken up, after his severity at Montauron, absolutely forbade all unnecessary slaughter, contenting himself with detaining the Governor, and some of his Officers, prisoners. The Duke of Savoy, who had made this place his chiefest Arsenal, had furnished it so well with Artillery, that the Duke there found thirty brass Pieces, of which fourteen were Royal Culverines', or Bastards, with great store of Ammunition, which did him no little service in the prosecution of that War, against the Duke of Savoy himself. The Galley from Nice failed not the next night to come according to her custom; and, if it had been thought of, to have answered her Signal by the usual countersign, had infallibly been taken with the place: but in the heat of the Victory, no body having remembered it, she retired safe to Nice, those who were in her, by the omission of the Signal, and by the noise and confusion they heard in the Town, concluding the Fort, and all, to be certainly taken. From Antibe the Duke went to Cans, The Surrender of Cannes. which had revolted after the Death of Mounsieur de la Valette, a very good Port Town, which nevertheless surrendered at the first Summons: So that hunting, and every where unkennelling the Sav●yards, at this successful rate, who had possessed themselves of most of the best Cities of Provence, he gave Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres, who was newly entered into Savoy, and who was deputed for that Service by the Treaty, made a little before betwixt Mounsieur de la Valette, and the forementioned Princes of Italy, great opportunity to make a notable progress into that Dukedom. Neither was it by these diversions alone that he favoured l'Esdiguiers invasion of Savoy, but by a more important assistance: for when the Duke of Savoy (driven out of Provence on the one side by the Duke of Espernon, and called home on the other to the defence of his own Dukedom, by the dangerous progress l' Esdiguieres had there already made) returned upon him with all the Forces he had; doubtless Mounsieur l' Esdiguieres had been in apparent danger of some notable Defeat, if at his request, and in so urgent a necessity, Mounsieur de Tho●. the Duke of Espernon had not assisted him with twelve hundred Foot, and three hundred Horse; w●ich he sent him under the command of the Chavalier de Buous, and to make the obligation the greater, had not also procured him from the Constable (with whom the Duke had a very great interest) almost as many more Forces, by which he was not only rescued from the present danger, but likewise put into a capacity of attempting greater things than he had yet done. A courtesy very ill requited, as we shall see in the following Revolutions of Provence; the Duke having afterwards no such enemy as he, whom he had so seasonably assisted, in a time of the greatest necessity and danger. The success that hitherto had attended the Duke, Anno 1593. gave so great a reputation to the Royal Arms, and had so discountenanced the Enemy, that there scarce remained a place in the whole Province, tha● durst shut their Gates against him: So that after the Duke of Savoy was retired (as you have heard) into his own Country, the Duke had leisure, The Duke reduces several revolted Towns. and without much difficulty, to recover Frejus, Cicutat, Cisteron, St. Tropes, with many other important places that had revolted after the death of Mounsieur de la Val●tte, and to make himself Master of all Provence; Aix, and Marselles, only excepted. These two were the Capital Cities of the Province, the first considerable for its circuit, and the seat of Parliament established there; and the other, for its greatness also, and for the number of Inhabitants; but principally for the Port, reputed one of the best upon the Mediterranean Sea. These two Cities so far forgot themselves, their Duty, and Allegiance, that after the death of Henry the III. (animated by an indiscreet zeal to Religion, which was ever the Leaguers Pretence, to abuse the simplicity of the people) they rather chose to create an Usurper in the person of the Duke of Savoy, and to submit themselves to his invasive Government, than to acknowledge, and obey their own lawful, and natural Prince. At the instigation therefore of the Countess de Saut, of the Count de Carces, and some others of Quality in the Country, who were fierce for the League, they sent a Deputation to this Duke, as far as Turin; where, by the mouths of two Commissioners of Parliament, and many other Officers, and in the name of the people, they made him a voluntary tender of the Principality of the County of Provence. Whereupon the Duke, in acknowledgement of so free, and unexpected an offer, had not only received them into, and promised them his own protection; but likewise that of the King of Spain his Father-in-law, coming himself in person to take possession of his new Province, where he had, almost in all places, been received with all the honour and applause he could possibly expect, or desire. An act becoming a giddy and rebellious people; who coming afterwards to recollect themselves, to consider what they had done, and how great a fault they had committed against their Faith and Duty, were yet resolved to persist in their Rebellion, and by taking measure of their own offence, apprehending no possibility of pardon, determined to rely upon their own strength; and creating courage out of despair, were resolute to suffer the utmost extremities, rather than to recede from what they had so infamously, and immaturely done. All which, although it was very well known to the Duke of Espernon, and likewise what resistance was to be expected, from men made desperate by their own Crimes: yet had he the courage to make an attempt upon these two great Cities, The D●ke makes an attempt first upon Aix, a●d after upon Marse●●es. if possible, to reduce them to their obedience, which, had Fortune contributed any thing to the greatness, and bravery of the Design, had certainly taken a happy effect. The Duke having, upon mature deliberation, resolved upon these two Erterprises, would begin with that of Aix, as appearing the easier to be accomplished, Aix wanting those Succours by Sea, which Marselles, upon occasion, was certain to have: But his Forces, being too few to form a regular Siege, against so great a City, Forts built against Aix. he was fain to supply that defect by erecting many Forts against it; which, shutting up the Avenues, were, notwithstanding his want of men, sufficient to block up the City. Betwixt these Forts, in a place of advantage, he caused a Grand to be erected, that is to say, a greater Fort, after the form of a new City, opposite to, and within a Musquet-shot of the old; where the greatest part of his Infantry were bestowed with great convenience, and from whence the Duke could so perfectly discover, whatever could be practised against him by the Enemy, that it was impossible so to surprise him, but that he would be ever ready to relieve any of his Quarters with great facility, should any thing be attempted against them. The Cavalry, that could by no means subsist in the same place, were disposed into several Garrisons, some nearer, some further off, according as there was convenience of Quarters, of which those under the command of Chastelliers, du Passage, de Buous, and de Ramefort were the nearest, where they wanted no opportunities of signalizing their Vigilancy, and Valour: An order so admirably established, as in time reduced the City of Aix, to such extremities, that they must certainly have fallen into the Duke's hands, had not the Inhabitants declared a resolution of submitting themselves to none, but the King; where notwithstanding the Duke was the only Author of their submission, as he was of all other advantages the King obtained in Provence, though still the artifice of his Enemies so screened his merits from his Majesty's observation, that he received very little thanks for his labour. The Duke began to build his Fort in june 1593. The Count de Carces near allied to the Duke of Mayenne (being Son by a former Husband to the Duchess his Wi●e) commanded in the City, where the Inhabitants under his command, backed by some Foot Companies belonging to the Duke of Savoy, which yet remained in that Country, were so brisk, as, at the Duke's first sitting down, by frequent Sallies to disturb his Building; The En●my endeavours by frequent sallies to hinder the Duke's Works. but were ever beaten back with so great loss, that they were at last content to sit still, and suffer what they found they were not able to oppose. And here I find myself upon a Scene of Honour, where the best Pen might be worthily employed: where notwithstanding, should I make particular mention of all the Skirmishes, Combats, and brave actions that happened upon this occasion, I should fall into the error, which of all others I most pretend to shun, and trouble my Reader with a long, and perhaps a tedious Narrative; though some of them are of so shining a Reputation, as can, by no means, be passed over in silence. Whilst the Duke therefore was very busy about raising his Fort, the Count de Carces, who would try all possible ways to hinder that work, sallied out of the Town at broad noonday with 400 Gentlemen, of which number was the Count de Suze, Bezaudun, Camp-Mareschal, S. Marcelin, and Reglanette, with many more Gentlemen of Quality, who followed by 2000 men, what of the Inhabitants, and what of the Companies in Garrison, went with a design to overthrow the Works already begun, and if possible to compel the Duke to retire. A Design, that as it was brave in itself, so was the time wherein it should be executed as prudently chosen; A great sally made by the besieged for at so unexpected an hour most part of the Duke's Soldiers were either sleeping in their Huts, or gone abroad to Forage so that the Duke had very few about him: Neither, if the Infantry were in such disorder, were the Horse in a greater readiness, which constrained the Duke, who had mounted at the first noise of the Alarm, being able to get but very few together, with those few to expose himself to withstand the first fury of the Enemy. Chastelier (whom we have already begun to call the Baron d' Ars) hearing in his Quarters a noise, and uproar, such as is usually occasioned by tumultuous Sallies, with the Sieur de Buous, were the first, who with their Troops came in to the Duke's succour, whom, as soon as come, he commanded to charge the Enemy; whilst himself, who had soon rallied all who were in a condition to fight, following them close at the heels, fell so furiously into the Body of the Assailants as made all give way before him. The Count de Carces, seeing his men so roughly handled, endeavoured to recover an Hospital in the midway, betwixt the Fort, and the City, with an intent there to rally his men, and to make good the place: but the Duke falling in pellmell amongst them, forced him to continue his flight to the very Graft of the City, where many of his men were slain; by which ill success the Enemy having lost above 400 men, they were for the future better advised, than to make any more such sallies, and suffered the Duke, in great security, to continue his work under their noses. Whilst every one thought the Duke wholly intent upon this Design of Aix, and that men's minds were suspended in expectation of the event of that enterprise, he conceived there was an advantage to be made of this general belief, that seemed to falicitate an attempt upon Marselles itself; which, as it was very improbable by open force to take any good effect, so was it to be carried on with great prudence, and secrecy, to make it succeed: He therefore gave private Instructions to all such Commanders as he intended to make use of in this Enterprise, to make ready 3000 chosen Foot, and 400 Light Horse, An attempt upon Marselles. as also to prepare three Petards, with which in the beginning of a very dark night, he silently rose from his Quarters, marching his men the direct Road to Marselles. He had not as yet discovered his Design to any, when being advanced about half a League on his way, and thinking it now high time to put his Friends out of suspense, who knew nothing whither they were to go, he called all the Chief Officers of his Party about him, and in a short Harangue, told them, That if he had not sooner discovered his Design unto them, it was not for any diffidence he had of their fidelity, which was already sufficiently known unto him; that after the many testimonies they had, upon all occasions, given him, of their Worth, and Valour, he had more reason to seek opportunities wherein he might manifest his gratitude, than to expect any further proof from them: but that as secrecy was the great promoter of all Erterprises of the nature of this, wherein he now intended to employ them, he would not, should any disaster happen, that the least colour of blame should reflect upon any of them; but much rather be wholly imputed to Fortune: but nevertheless all things being so well ordered, as he conceived they were, there was no doubt to be made of a successful issue: That he therefore conjured them resolutely to undertake an action of the greatest advantage to the King, to his Majesty's Affairs, and to their own particular benefit, and honour, that could possibly be proposed: That every one there knew Marselles to be one of the most important Cities, whether considered in the commodity of its Haven, or in its vicinity to Foreign Countries, in the whole Kingdom: That this City reduced by the King of Spain's promises, and the Duke of Savoy's together, had already put herself into their protection; and persisting in her obstinacy, was ready to open her Gates to Strangers, to receive their Garrisons, and to give away her liberty to them, after having violated her Faith, and Duty to her lawful Sovereign: That should strangers once get entire possession of that City, it would be lost for ever, and that there would be no hopes ever to drive them from so advantageous a post, what attempts soever could be made, against a place so strong, and so easy to be relieved: That next to the public concern he considered the reducing of this City as a certain and firm establishment of his own interest in Provence; and that they themselves ought to look upon it as a pledge, whereby that fair, and rich Province would be assured unto them, and that would give them an entire authority over the people, who after so brave an exploit, would no more be able to vie Merit, or Valour with them, as they had formerly done: That such as had undertaken Erterprises of this nature were wont to animate their companions with hopes of Booty; but that for his part he should take a contrary way: That it was not his intent to ruin Provence, nor the City of Marselles, but to preserve both the one, and the other for the King, to establish himself there in order to his Majesty's Service, and to procure for them other advantages, and by other means suiting to their great merit, and the service they had performed: That this City once taken there could be no more fear of wanting provisions for the Army, the conveniency of the Port bringing in all things necessary in great abundance, that the evil-affectedness of the people would for the future be able to produce nothing to their prejudice, they having in their own hands either the Keys of the Province to let in all necessary Succours, or otherwise the Chains that would tie them fast to their duty: That above all things therefore he most earnestly desired them to restrain the insolence of the Soldier, whom notwithstanding he did not thereby intent to hinder of the benefit they might justly make of the Inhabitants Estates, which were already forfeited to them by by their Rebellion, and of which they should soon be possessed by the Victory: but that he desired they might be fairly divided amongst them, that they might the longer enjoy what they got, and not lose, and destroy the spoil, as it otfen falls out in the sack, and plunder of great Cities: That he would not upon this occasion suggest unto them the remembrance of their accustomed Valour, that he knew by good experience such exhortations were altogether unnecessary to them in bold, and dangerous attempts; and that he only conjured them to follow his example now, as hitherto they had followed his Person, and Fortune. The Duke, having thus prepared his Friends for the Enterprise, continued on his way; when, being come within sight of the place, he himself, with those that had charge of the Petards, advanced up to the Gate: Of these the first Petard played to as good effect, as was to be expected, having made a hole in the Gate wide enough for a man easily to get through; which, though made wider by the second, yet did not the Gate fall down, being supported by a great iron Bar behind: The Duke therefore called for the third Petard, but in vain; no Petard being to be heard of, no more than the man to whose trust it was committed; which made them try to break the Bar with Axes, that they might have the passage more free to relieve some of their men, who were already got in by the hole of the Gate: But the Inhabitants, roused at the first noise of the Petards, running to their Arms, made a stout opposition; where, having but few to deal withal, the Assailants were with great ease beaten back, and the Gate as suddenly Barricadoed up. It is not to be imagined how infinitely the Duke was afflicted at this ill success, and the more, because he thought he had made himself, as it were, Master of the event by the prudent conduct of his Design; though he has since thought himself happy in failing of his purpose (so much should men suspect their own desires in the choice of things that concern the conduct of their lives) it being to be feared, that had the Duke been established in the power t●e winning of this City would have seated him in, and received those affronts, and that ill usage from Court, he afterwards did in the revolutions of Provence, the sense of those injuries might have prompted him to do things no ways suiting with his Duty, as we shall see he was soon after tempted to do. I do much wonder that none of our Historians have so much as mentioned this Enterprise, who have some of them been very particular about many others of the Duke's of much less importance; whose omission of this has engaged me to insist longer upon it, than otherwise I should have done; that so brave an Action might not be buried in oblivion: of which the bare Project could not have been meditated by a mean courage, nor the Design carried on so far by an ordinary prudence. The Duke, The D●ke returns to Aix. being retired to his Fort very much discontented at his evil success, would revenge himself of that disgrace by new, and brisker attempts upon the City of Aix: Wherefore having intelligence that the Inhabitants already began to feel themselves straightened for want of Victuals, he, to take from them all future hopes of supply, immediately fell to destroying all the Fruits, and Corn of the Country round about; and, not content to do them this mischief without, played so many Canonshot into the Town, that not a man durst appear in the streets, or abide in the upper rooms of their houses: But the besieged, ingenious in their Revenge, contrived a way to pay him back some of his Balls by a Counter-battery from the great Tower of the Church of Notre dame; a Pile of great note, and fame, as well for its exceeding height, as for the excellency of its Architecture, and Beauty. To the top therefore of this Tower, they made shift to crane up two Culverines', and had a Cannoneer so expert, as not only levelled them right against the Fort, but even against the Duke's own Tent within it, where he made the strangest shot, that perhaps ever flew from such an Engine. This Cannoneer, under the protection of some little Truce (of which there happen many in such Sieges, either for the carrying off their Dead, or some other occasion) had, unknown, crept into the Fort, and had there diligently observed every part of the Duke's Quarter: He had also discovered that the Duke every afternoon used to play at Cards in the Parlour of his Tent, and had observed so much as the place where his Chair was constantly set. Having thus informed himself of all these circumstances, he returned to the City, where, after he had levelled his two Guns to his own desire, he was so confident of his skill, as to offer odds, that in one of two shots he was about to make, he would either kill the Duke of Espernon, or very much endanger his life; when immediately giving fire, he proved in part as good as his word, the shot lighting directly into the place, to which it had been by his eye before directed. The Duke was at this time playing at Primero, The Duke's miraculous escape. and set betwixt two Gentlemen, one called le Po●y; the others name I could not learn, who were both of them beaten to pieces, one over, and the other under the Duke; who by an incredible vigilancy of Fortune, being at that instant bowed down upon the Table, to draw the money he had newly won upon a rest, escaped that fatal blow; yet though he escaped death, it was not without two great wounds, one by a piece of one of the poor Gentleman's Bones, that pierced deep into his Belly; and the other, by another piece of a Bone, in his hip; of both which he carried the marks along with him to his Grave. Those of the Town who were soon aware of the lucky hit their Cannoneer had made, believing the effect of it to be greater, than indeed it was, would not let slip an opportunity, wherein they conceived something might be executed to their own advantage: wherefore they immediately sent out St. Romans, one of their Mareschals de Camp, with an hundred and fifty Light Horse at one Gate, The Inhabitants of Aix, imagining the Duke slain, make another sally. and Bezaudun with the like number at another, to try, if in the confusion they heard in the Fort something might not be attempted with success, who, had they found a fit advantage, were to have been seconded by the entire Forces of the City; but the Duke, notwithstanding the pain of his Wounds, omitting nothing of his usual care, was no sooner taken up from the ground, where the sho● had beaten him down, than he commanded every one to stand to his Arms; by which means the Enemy, whose design it was to have come upon the Surprise, seeing the Duke's Forces ready to receive them, retired without fight, being soon undeceived in their false hopes, both of the Duke's death, and of the Defeat of his Army. The Duke's Wounds, which every one at first judged to be mortal, made his Surgeons resolve upon removing him out of the noise, and tumult of the Fort, into a Farm hard by; a place which to them seemed to be very secure from any practice of the Enemy: But this opinion, instead of giving him that quiet, and repose they kindly intended, had once more like to have cost him his life; The Duke in a new danger. for the besieged, who watched all opportunities of making continual attempts upon the Duke's person, having observed that the place to which he was retired, although covered by the Fort, was nevertheless at a good distance from his Camp, and only guarded by a small party of Horse, resolved to try, either to take him alive, or at least to kill him in his Quarters. To this purpose therefore, sallying out of the Town with 400 of their best Horse, they furiously set upon the Duke's Horse-Guard; who were all presently cut to pieces, and Camseque who commanded them laid dead upon the place. D' Ars, whose duty it was to relieve them coming fortunately in upon their Defeat, renewed the Fight, where he so bravely withstood the Enemy's fury, that after his Brother Ceré, had been wounded and maimed with infinite Blows, and himself beaten from his Horse, and remounted by one of his Compagnions', he gave du Passage, one of the Duke's Mareschals de Camp, time to come in to his succour; by whose assistance the Enemy was at last forced to retire, leaving many of their men dead upon the place, as the Baron d' Ars in this conflict lost the most part of his Troop. This Canonshot which at the little distance of 200 paces had only wounded the Duke, was not so favourable to the Duchess his Wife, whom it killed outright at the distance of 200 Leagues. This Lady had been brought to bed (as has been said before) this same year 1593. of Lewis, since Cardinal de la Valette) whom the grief for her Husband's absence (which was nothing diminished by the course of time) had still so far kept back from the recovery of her former strength, after her lying in; that what was only a little indisposition at first, being much increased by her melancholy, grew to such a distemper, as made her Friends at last begin to apprehend a mortal consequence from her disconsolate life. To divert this ill humour therefore, they often persuaded her to go abroad, sometimes to Church, sometimes on Visits; when being gone out one day to hear Mass, at her return she espied one of the Duke's Footmen, who, unknown to him, had been, by some of his Officers dispatched away to Angoulesme, on purpose to prevent any false rumours, that might there be spread concerning the Duke's accident, and so discreetly to acquaint the Duchess with what had happened, that she might not unseasonably be surprised with the news of his mischance; an honest, and a prudent care in them, though her destiny rendered all these precautions fruitless, and vain: for she had no sooner cast her eye on the fellow, who, being but newly arrived, had as yet spoke to none, but that she called him to her, suddenly demanding of him her Letters from the Duke: to whom, the poor Lackey surprised, and daunted at her demand, innocently related that the Duke was wounded, and by a Canonshot: But, as if that word had been the shot itself, the Duchess sunk down in a swoon, as one, that, apprehending a Cannon shot could be no less than mortal, would not survive him she concluded to be dead, and who was far dearer to her, than her own life. In which condition she was presently taken up by her people, and carried home; where all possible means was used to bring her to herself, as at last she was; though it was only to make her more sensible of death, which followed the ninth day after she had heard the unhappy news. Before her Death she made a Will, The Death of the Duchess of Espernon. wherein she bequeathed whatever was in her gift to the Duke her Husband; to whom, recommending her Children, as the common pledges of their mutual affection, she conjured him, for their sakes, never to marry again. Thus died this young, and excellent Lady, in the six and twentieth Year of her Age, after having manifested an indifferency for life, becoming her masculine Courage, and Resignation unto Death, worthy her great Piety, and Virtue. The Sieur du-Masses, Lieutenant for the King under the Duke in that Government, dispatched a Courier to the Duke, to acquaint him with his loss, as also with the Duchess her dying request unto him; who, after having given public testimonies of his affliction, than which nothing could be greater, he vowed to observe what she expected from his fidelity to the last hour of his Life: A promise that he as faithfully observed, though in the space of fifty years, that he survived this excellent Lady, he was offered many and great advantageous matches, which he still refused; ever professing that the respect he bore to his dead Ladies last request, did, and should withhold him from embracing a new Wife, and f●om embarquing in a new Fortune. Fortune had hitherto so favoured the Duke in almost all his Erterprises, Anno 1594. that his Affairs had been carried on with great prosperity and success, and the Provisions he had drawn from the Province, or bought with his own money, had kept his Army in so good Discipline, The Provencials Revolt from the Duke. and Obedience, that the Provencials had tasted very little of the incommodities of War: Yet wanted there not some unquiet Spirits, who, enemies to the people's peace, as envious of the Duke's good Fortune, endeavoured by all imaginable ways to debauch from him the respect, and good will he had by his noble carriage acquired from the greater part of the Country, and from the better sort of men, persuading them, that his severe and hasty humour proceeded from a purpose he had to usurp an absolute Authority over them; and, rendering his best intentions so suspected to the people, as made them at last refuse to pay their accustomed Taxes. It was by so much the easier to corrupt these undiscerning spirits, by how much a certain emulation has ever been observed to be betwixt the Provencials and Gascons, as seems to have been hereditary, if not natural, to those two people: So that the Provencials not being able to endure the dominion of those with whom they had ever disputed the prize of Glory, and Valour, were easily tempted to shake off the yoke that either was, or was pretended to be imposed upon them: After therefore (as has been said) they had denied the Duke those Contributions, which, until then, they had willingly paid, most of the Soldiers of the Country who were in his Army retired themselves, and some of the chief Nobility pretended to favour at Court by accusing him of inordinate Ambition; though all his endeavour to make himself considerable in Provence, was only in order to his Majesty's Service. The Duke seeing things in this ill condition, would by force have reduced them to their former posture: but this remedy (which was by no means proper for the constitution of that people) ripping up the memory of the severe punishments he had in such cases inflicted upon several men in divers places, served only to make them desperate in their disobedience, and to incense them to the last degree. Thus did all those, who had manifested an animosity against the Duke, begin to apprehend falling into his power, amongst which the Leaguers were in the greatest fear; who, as their obstinate Rebellion had made their fault much greater, than theirs, who like Soldiers had defended Montauron, so did they fear a worse punishment, if worse could be, than had been inflicted upon them. They saw their City of Aix reduced to the last extremity; neither would those within stay till they could come to their Relief. The Count de Carces, a particular Enemy to the Duke (besides the hatred that diversity of interest does usually beget) above all things dreaded to fall into his hands: so that Friends, and Enemies, those who pretended to be Royalists, and Leaguers conspiring together to hinder the Duke's further advancement, he saw, almost in a moment, all Provence in Mutiny, and Insurrection. The King had already publicly embraced the Catholic Religion, King Henry the FOUR turns Roman Catholic. of which he had made open profession at St. Dennis, the five and twentieth day of july this same year: whose Conversion having taken away all manner of pretence from such as had declared they forsook his Majesty's Service upon no other account, than the Interest of Religion; the Inhabitants of Aix conceived they could now no longer continue in their Rebellion, without manifesting to all the world that they were swayed by other considerations, than those they had already declared; to which the Count de Carces (making use of this time, and occasion) adding his persuasions, one while representing to them their Duty to their Prince, and another the severity they were to expect from the Duke of Espernon, animated, as he must of necessity be, by the hatred they had in this Siege expressed against his Person, he at last prevailed with them to send away speedily to the King, to assure his Majesty of their Fidelity and Obedience. Mounsieur de Thou. This was the first thing that discovered a disunion in the League: of which, though the Duke of Mayenne highly complained to the Count de Carces, reproaching him with weakness, and charging him with all the miscarriages that should after happen to their Faction; yet was he deaf to his reproaches, and the fear of falling into the Duke's hands, as he was upon the point to do (the City of Aix, not being able longer to hold out) being more prevalent upon him, than the respect of his Alliance, he resolutely persisted in his first Design. But the Count de Carces was not satisfied with hindering the Duke from making himself Master of the City of Aix only, the hatred he implacably bore him proceeding yet further, and to contrivances of more dangerous consequence against him. There was none who did not believe the King had a jealousy of the Duke's Designs; amongst whom, the Count de Carces, Designs o● the Count de Carces against the Duke. who understood it better than the rest, easily persuaded himself that his Majesty would not suffer the Duke to increase his Reputation, and Power in Provence, by the taking of Aix, one of the most important places of that Province: And he further knew the Duke would as hardly consent to have his Conquest, so near effected, forestalled, and the prey snatched out of his hands: So that in this diversity of pretensions, he doubted not, but that the King's aversion to the Duke, as also his mistrust of him, would be infinitely increased; which in the end succeeded as he had foreseen, and projected. The Estates of the Country, assembled at Aix, appointed Deputies to go make a tender to the King of the obedience of their City, provided his Majesty would please to protect them against the Duke of Espernon, whose power, they said, was grown formidable, and his insolence not to be endured. 'Tis true, he had acted vigorously against them, but they would not say, That had he proceeded with greater moderation, they would ever have returned to their obedience, or departed from the Faction, whose interest they had so precipitously, and rebelliously embraced. The Deputies found it no hard matter to obtain from the King what they desired, Anno 1595. as to the acceptation of their City, which his Majesty was very glad should return into his obedience: but for what concerned the Duke of Espernon, against whom their deputation was chiefly directed, they could nothing prevail at this time; not that they failed on their parts with their utmost endeavour, and eloquence, to render his Actions, and fidelity suspected, to set the King's heart more, and more against him: But whether it were that his Majesty would not give credit to so partial, and so passionate accusers; or (which is more likely) that in the present posture of his Affairs, not yet well settled, he thought it not convenient to disoblige the Duke to such a degree; he would by no means gratify them in that part of their deputation, that pointed at the Duke's removal from his Government. He saw him powerful in the Country, supported with great Relations, and possessed of many strong holds; in which condition it had been dangerous to provoke him to the height: wherefore he thought it best to choose a mean betwixt these extremes, and to give the Deputies some satisfaction, without touching the Duke's Authority in Provence, excepting in the City of Aix only; which, at the Deputies request his Majesty would not absolutely leave at his discretion. His Majesty's Conversion had as yet produced no great advantage to, nor no great alteration in his Affairs, saving that he had thereby assured many good Catholics to his Service, who before were a little distracted in their Duty, and suspended betwixt Loyalty and Religion: But the League still remained in the same vigour, and the Spaniards hopes were yet as great as ever to carry the Election of their Infanta to the Crown, in the approaching Assembly of the counterfeit Estates of the League at Paris. All propositions of Accommodation with the Duke of Mayenne had proved ineffectual, who was the more inflexible to Peace, by how much his Kindred, and Confederates (the Count de Carces excepted) continued firm in their union, which also of itself was not very likely soon to dissolve, where there were so many pretenders to the Crown, to which five, or six of the Family at once aspired. In this conjuncture of Affairs, the King willing to make much of those few Servants h● had, and principally of the Duke, that he might win time to order him at a better advantage, when the State should be settled in a better condition, wholly referred all differences depending betwixt the Duke, and the Provencials, to the Constable de Montmoren●y's Arbitration: A man of all others, the most ●it to accommodate those Differences, who being a near Ally, and a passionate Friend to the Duke, and his Interests, could no ways stand suspected to him; and who his Majesty knew would be well liked of by the Provencials: a people the Constable by bordering upon them had had many opportunities several ways to oblige. Neither did his Majesty altogether ●o trust to the Referree he had in public honoured with that Office, but that he at the same time sent private instructions to Mounsieur l' Esd●guieres, and to Colonel Alphonso d' Ornano, The King sends secret Orders to l' Esdiguieres, and Colonel Alphonso d' Ornano. to have an eye to the Duke's Actions; and in case they saw him obstinate to the taking the City of Aix, or that the Constable should in his Arbitration be partial to him, that then they should openly undertake the protection of that people, and by all means assure to his Majesty the possession of that City. Yet were not these orders, how secretly soever delivered, so closely carried, but that the Duke had immediate knowledge thereof; at which unexpected unkindness being infinitely surprised, and wounded to the quick, to see his Services, and good Intentions rewarded by so apparent a mistrust, he took up Resolutions, which though I shall by no means pretend to justify, yet that the condition, and misfortune of the time may something serve to excuse: There was scarce a great man of that Age that was not of opinion a man might lawfully defend his own Fortune, even against his Prince, an error with which the Duke also, having been prepossessed, and therein, by a number of ill examples, confirmed, he was resolved not to refer the Controversy about Aix, nor the interest he had in Provence to arbitration; but to maintain himself in that Interest, and Authority, with all the Force, and Power he had: which made l' Esdiguieres, who was soon informed how little the Duke was disposed to submit to the King's order, after having conferred with Signior Alphonso, and concluded about the course they were to take, to retire into Dauphiné, there to prepare himself to pass over with all expedition, and with all the Force he could make into Provence. Whilst these little contests in Provence had been thus carried on, which had taken up some time, the King's Affairs about his own Person were advanced into a much better condition: The Deputies of Provence had been dispatched to Court in january, at which time the League being at their height, his Majesty thought it not convenient to give the Duke any public discontent: but from that time three months were now elapsed (for this happened at the end of April) in which time the King had found a way to possess himself of the City of Paris. The possession of this great and populous City had drawn many others along with it into his Majesty's Obedience, and divers persons of great quality had followed the examples of those Cities: the Spaniard now was possessed of few, or no Towns in the Kingdom, and the League was so strangely declined, as to be only now almost supported by the single Family of Lorain, which was itself also upon the point to disunite; so that the King being no longer necessitated to dissemble, began now to require of the Duke a more absolute obedience, than hitherto he had done; when having raised him many enemies in the Country, and appointed l' Esdiguieres, and Ornano with great Forces to make head against him, he did not now so much fear his revolt, as formerly; nor consequently so much care to disoblige him. The Duke, who by the commotions of the people, by his Majesty's positive command, and by the preparations that were made against him, very well saw what he was to expect, would, notwithstanding how great soever his danger seemed to be, rather choose to perish in Provence in the defence of his Honour, and Command, The Duke is resolute to maintain himself in his Government. than to go to Court, there to expose himself to the malicious Offices of his Enemies. He very well saw the best he was there to expect, was to be stripped of his Government; to which he conceived he had a better Title, than to any other member of his Fortune. He had, in the time of his Favour, purged that Province of the Factions of the League, and the Reformed Religion; he had since maintained it against the Duke of Savoy, and the League combined together: It had cost him his Brother's Life, much of his own Blood, and many of his Friends, and Servants: so that what propositions soever could be made unto him, he intended never to quit claim to his title there, and stood resolute to bury himself in Provence, rather than by leaving it, to satisfy his Enemy's longing, who were hourly importunate with his Majesty to remove him thence. In which resolution being every day more and more confirmed, he gave the Constable (who as I have said was to mediate the differences betwixt the Provencials, and him) plainly to understand his determination; entreating him at the same time not to take it ill, if he did not submit a thing to Arbitration, which he could by no means ever consent to part withal. Neither was it any hard matter for him to satisfy the Constable who was infinitely affectionate to his person, and who had much rather have had him for his Neighbour in Provence, than any other; a consideration that perhaps especially moved the King to call the Duke from that Government; The King resolves to remove the D●ke from the Government of Provence. his Majesty not conceiving it convenient, that two persons so intimate, and of so great Reputation as they both were, should possess two so considerable, and so near neighbouring Provinces. Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres observing how little the Duke was inclined to an Accommodation, and suspecting that the Constable forbore to press him to it, only to give the Duke more time to make himself Master of Aix, began to march with three thousand five hundred Foot, and eight or nine hundred Horse towards Provence, Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres en●ers with an Army into Provence, against the Duke. and by the way was reinforced with some Troops that had served the League under the command of the Count de Carces, and who were exceeding glad to be employed against the Duke. Lafin (since famous for having been the Instrument of the Marshal de Birons Ruin) happened to be at this time in Provence, who, having some command in the Country, and having frequently conversed with the Duke about the management of Affairs, had a great Ambition to have the honour of composing these Differences: wherefore knowing Mounsieur de l● Esdiguieres to be upon his March, he went out to meet him; to whom he undertook, provided he would advance no further, to persuade the Duke absolutely to submit to the Constable's determination: But Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres, supposing that to show himself with his Forces upon the Frontiers of his Government, would sooner incline the Duke to that resolution, advanced as far as the Banks of the River Durance, which separates Provence from Dauphiné; where what he designed to hasten an Accommodation, he soon saw served only to put things into a worse condition, and to make the Rupture wider than before. There had been of old a certain emulation betwixt these two great men, and their Virtue having begot in each of them a great esteem for the other, they had long, and equally desired an occasion, wherein they might make a decisive trial of themselves, to see which by his merit could get the start in the race of Honour, and stand fairest in the world's Opinion: A noble, and virtuous jealousy of one another's Reputation; yet was there at this time something of feud in the case, the Duke complaining that he had not received from Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres the return, nor acknowledgement he expected, for the good Offices he had done him in the business of Savoy; to which were also added the Difference in Religion, and the Diversity of Interest, things that were never observed to promote Accommodations, nor to unite the wills, and inclinations of men: by all which, the Duke being animated against Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres, perhaps more than he should have been against any other, he had no sooner notice of his motion, than taking his approach for a defiance, he would let him see, that he was neither astonished at his Reputation, nor daunted with the Forces he brought along with him; and therefore immediately arose from his Fort of Aix; The Duke goes out to meet Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres. where nor daring, as it was not fit, to leave his Quarters weakly guarded, he took the Field with only 3000 Foot, though in Horse he was equal to Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres, and with these small Forces bravely faced ●im; who having already passed the River, there was so little to part them, as reduced them both to almost a necessity of fight. In this little Battle therefore the Duke advanced to begin the charge, which though it was of no great continuance, ended nevertheless with the loss of many men on both sides, and wherein the Duke showed himself no ways inferior to his Adversary either in Courage, or Conduct, which is all I shall say, that I may not appear interested, and partial. All the Historians who make mention of this Action do say, that the two Armies retreated without any considerable advantage on either side, that in truth the Duke of Espernon carried away many prisoners of eminent Quality; but that Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres remained Master of the Field; by which report they seem to give him the advantage of the day. Mounsieur de Thou writes to that purpose, and so does d' Avila; though it be nothing strange in the last, who, excepting in things, that merely concern the Affairs at Court, does, as to the rest, only translate the other, and wholly follows his relation in what concerns the business of the Provinces of the Kingdom. As to Mounsieur de Videl who has writ the life of the Constable l' Esdiguieres exceedingly well, and paid to the memory of a good Master the gratitude of a passionately affectionate and faithful Servant; I must commend him for writing to his Benefactors advantage in an occasion wherein he might with great truth do his memory honour: but to make a right judgement of this action, it will be convenient to relate the circumstances of it, after which it will be easier to conclude, to which side the Victory inclined. Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres, A true account of the Action. having passed the River Durance, took up his Quarters at Ourgon, and the circumjacent Villages, where the fertility of the Country abundantly provided for him: but the Duke on the contrary, who came to meet him, being constrained to Quarter in a very ill Country, as at Eguiere, Sennas', Lambescq, and other places thereabouts, his men suffered great want, and inconvenience; A consideration that besides the promptness of his nature, made him eage● to come to the trial of Arms: In which resolution advancing still towards the Enemy, he at last discovered him, standing in a place of singular advantage behind a great Ditch, which the torrent of Land floods had worn, and hollowed into the form of a regular entrenchment. L' Esdiguieres at the Duke's first appearance immediately drew up into Battalia behind the Ditch, sending out his Vanguard only to fight, wherein he had indeed disposed his best men, under the command of his Nephew Morges, in whose company (to his own misfortune) was Bezaudun, who had formerly been Marshal de Camp for the League in Provence. The Duke, seeing this Vanguard come up with a countenance to fight, made his also advance to meet them; which he would himself in person lead up, as he did, and made so gallant, and so fortunate a charge, that after a short, but brisk dispute, himself bravely fight at the head of his men, they totally routed the party, and drove Morges wounded into the very Ditch, that parted the two main Bodies, killed a great many men (as he also lost some) and carried away very many Prisoners, without leaving so much as one of his own men in the Enemy's hands: Yet had Mounsieur l' Esdiguieres the patience all this while to see his men beaten, and trodden under foot, without once offering to come out of his Trench; or, though he made some light skirmishes about the skirts of the Ditch, without expressing any inclination to a total engagement; A coldness that the Duke very well observing, and satisfied with his own success, which he had infinitely hazarded, should he have made any further attempt upon the Enemy in a place of so great advantage, contented himself with only facing some hours in the Field, to try if l' Esdiguieres had any mind to repair his loss; but to no purpose, he still keeping the ●ame station, and being by no provocation to be tempted, out of the advantage of his Post. And this is the truth of what passed at this occasion, as I received it from honourable, and not to be suspected, testimony, who were present at the engagement, and who impartially related the story: though the sequel itself makes it plain enough; for had Mounsieur l' Esdiguieres had the least imaginable advantage, is it to be supposed that he would have suffered the Duke to have carried away so many, and so considerable Prisoners before his face, as the Historians themselves confess to be taken in this Battle? No doubtless! neither was it such a triumph for him to remain Master of the Field, the Duke never intending to stay upon the place of Battle; the ill Quarters he had been enforced to take up withal, upon his March, in a very unfruitful Country, not permitting him to stay long there without he intended to destroy his men: to which consideration was also added, that he was in danger of losing his Fort at Aix, left but slenderly guarded, by drawing so many men from thence upon this occasion; and therefore it especially concerned him not longer to expose a place of that importance, which was indeed the main cause that made him to return, but not retreat. Amongst the Prisoners taken at this Battle was the Marshal de Camp Bezaudun, whom I named but now; a Gentleman for his Parts and Courage of high repute amongst those of his own Faction: but he would yet make himself more remarkable, by professing, and that in public, an implacable hatred to the Duke's Person; neither were words sufficient to express his Malice, nor did he think it enough that he had by divers calumnies bespattered the Duke's Honour, The Duke's Victory fatal to Bezaudun. unless he made his injuries more public, by printing several Libels, of which he declared himself to be the Author, which indeed, was one thing that had cherished in the Duke an animosity against him: but there was yet another by which he was more justly provoked, and of which, those who have condemned the Duke, for causing him to be, as they say, unhandsomely slain, have made no mention. I think it therefore very fit to insert it here, to vindicate the Duke from the aspersion has been unjustly cast upon him, about this Gentleman's death. Bezaudun, formerly in some engagement had the fortune to take a Gentleman Prisoner, whose name was D' Estampes, a man for whom the Duke had an exceeding kindness, and whom in the beginning of his restraint Bezaudun had used with great civility; but suspecting soon after, and perhaps upon too light grounds, that his Prisoner had not observed a due regard to the honour of his house, he forthwith resolved to take a severe revenge: To which purpose causing himself to be carried in a Chair into the Marketplace of Aix, being unable to walk by reason of some Wounds he had received, he there caused his Prisoner to be brought before him; where having demanded of him, in the presence of a great many people, whom the novelty of the action had assembled together, if he complained of his usage, D' Estampes made answer, that he was so far from complaining, that he had highly commended it, and should do so as long as he had life. You should not then have given me cause to complain of you, says Bezaudun, and withal cried, kill him; which inhuman Sentence was scarce pronounced, but that the poor Gentleman was, by some Bezaudun had brought along for that purpose, immediately run through, and through, and laid dead upon the place. This barbarous act, that possessed with horror all such as beheld it, being soon brought to the Duke's ear, he then made a vow, that if ever the Murderer fell into his hands he should receive the same measure: And such was Bezaudun's ill fortune, to be presented to the Duke in a time when the murder of his Friend was yet fresh in his memory; for the Prisoners taken in the Battle, being immediately, and upon the place brought before him, and amongst the rest Bezaudun, completely armed, with his Beaver down; and the Duke ask (as he had of the rest) who he was, the Prisoner himself made answer, that he was Bezaudun; at which the Duke turning aside his head, as loathing the sight of a man so odious to him, and against whom he had so often published an implacable hatred, could not forbear to express some dissatisfaction with those who had received him to Quarter: whereupon one of them, without more express order, discharged a Pistol in his head, by which he was laid upon the ground; the second was discharged by a Brother-in-law of his own, and both mortal. Thus have you the truth of this business; which, had it been carried with less cruelty, had doubtless been more to be commended, though the many offences and injuries the Duke had received being duly considered, it may in some sort pretend to an excuse; especially the fact having been committed by no order from the Duke, but by Servants of his, who conceived it would be an acceptable service to him: Neither is it to be denied, but that the War has produced many other actions of this nature, wherein as great severity has been practised upon far less provocation, The Duke after this Battle perceiving l' Esdiguier●s to be palpably favoured by almost all who had formerly stood for the League in Provence, (many of them having listed themselves under this Huguenot Captain) as also by those who were affectionate to the King, seeing an Army likewise on foot against him twice as numerous as his own, and not knowing in whom he might confide, even his own Friends, and Servants being startled, to see the King's Authority, and name made use of against them; began now to see that, to keep those few friends, and places he had left, from revolting from him, it was absolutely necessary to submit to an Accommodation: and to this he was the rather induced by the necessity he saw of abandoning his Fort of Aix, it being impossible for him to keep that, without putting the other places he held in the Province to manifest hazard, his Forces being too few to defend them all against so many enemies, The Duke at last is necessitated to an Accommodation. as were conspired to his ruin. He therefore at last harkened to Lafin, who from the beginning had made himself an importunate Mediator for an Accommodation, and in conclusion wholly referred himself to the Constable's award; by whose determination, which was delivered in june, the Duke was obliged to give up the Fort of Aix (the main thing in contest) into the hands of Lafin himself, by whom it was to be kept with 400 men, to be sent out of Languedoc, until it should please his Majesty further to signify his Royal Pleasure, as to the maintaining or slighting of that Fort, that in the mean time there should be a general suspension of Arms in Provence, during which all things should continue in the same posture they then were. The Duke submitting absolutely, and without reserve, to this Decree, accordingly delivered up the Fort of Aix unto Lafin, who entered into it with the appointed number of men: but whether it were through the Officers foul play in their Musters, or that the treachery of Lafin himself (of both which the Duke complained) made him neglect to keep his Garrison in its full appointment, so it was that in a few days they were reduced to half their number; neither does Mounsieur l' Esdiguieres stick to confess, that he himself had a hand in the business, that he had privately supplied the Fort with Soldiers of his own, who still were to run away by his private order. In the mean time the Duke of Espernon, under the assurance of this Truce, lived in great security, and believing that nothing was to be suspected to the prejudice of a Treaty, argued, and concluded as it were in the presence of all men, took this opportunity, a little to divert, and repose himself, after the continual action he had been turmoiled in since his first arrival in Provence, and to that purpose took a Journey into Languedoc, either as he himself pretended to make a visit to the Constable; The Duke goes over to Languedoc. or, as it was said by others, upon an amorous account to visit a Lady he had an acquaintance withal in that Country: but whatever was the occasion, the absence of their Leader, together with his example, made most of his Soldiers to take the same liberty, rambling every one a several way: an advantage that Mounsieur l' Esdiguieres very well knew how to manage; neither did he neglect it, though what he did would have been interpreted breach of faith, had less than the King's command stepped in to excuse it. In this Journey to Languedoc, there happened a very remarkable quarrel betwixt two Officers of the Duke's Army, A remarkable Duel betwixt two of the Duke's Captains. who went along to attend him; the one was Lioux, a Gascon, the other St. Andiol a Provencial, both of them Captains of Horse, and equal in quality, and esteem; though in this occasion the chance of Arms showed itself partial to St. Andiol's side. These two Gentlemen upon some slight dispute, having agreed to fight, went out of the Town together, to end their difference; where St. Andiol being the stronger man, after some wounds given, and received on both sides, closing with his Enemy, tripped up his heels, disarmed him, and made him ask his life; which being done, he was so far from the insolence of a conqueror, that, desiring no other triumph than his own private satisfaction, he restored Lioux his Sword upon the place, with all the compliment, and civility usual amongst men of honour upon such occasions. But how modest soever St. Andiol was in his Victory, the business could not be so secretly carried (they returning both bloody from the Field) that their friends took not notice of what they had been about, who as soon informed the Duke thereof; desiring withal, that he would interpose his Authority to make them friends: But the Duke, out of respect to the Constable would transfer that good office to him, who as readily undertook it, and who having his two Sons in Law the Count de Auvergne (since Duke of Angoulesme, and the Duke de Vantadour in the house with him, sent for them, and the Duke of Espernon, to be present at the reconciliation, Saint Andiol was the first called in, who, being examined what had passed betwixt Lioux and him, made answer, That it was true, some little dispute had happened betwixt them, which had obliged him to seek the satisfaction of a Cavalier; but that it was already determined, without any advantage on the one side, or the other, that he was satisfied that he must ever declare Lioux to be a very brave Gentleman, and that he was his Friend, and humble Servant. After this Declaration, every one concluded it would be a matter of no great difficulty to reconcile them, and expected Lioux would as readily embrace his adversaries friendship, as he had frankly offered his, Saint Andiol being reputed one of the bravest Gentlemen in the Army. He therefore was next called in, and that rather to hear himself commended upon Saint Andiol's testimony of his Valour, than to be questioned about a thing, of the truth whereof they thought themselves already sufficiently informed. They therefore, upon his coming in, told him, that Saint Andiol had given an account of what had passed betwixt them, that he had assured them, they parted upon equal terms, that he was his Friend and Servant, and that therefore nothing now remained, but that they should embrace, and be good friends. To which Lioux made answer, That before they proceeded so far, there must be a truer relation given of the issue of their dispute, than, for as much as he yet heard, he could consent unto. An answer that surprised the whole company, who feared it might beget a new quarrel; when Lioux continuing his discourse, declared how every thing had truly passed; acknowledging that he owed his life to his enemy's courtesy; but complaining withal, that Saint Andiol should make so light of his Victory, as to deprive himself of the due honour of it; yet magnifying his noble behaviour towards him after so ingenuous a manner, that having by his frank, and generous confession wiped off all disesteem, that usually (how brave soever) cleaves to the losing side, he won himself, by his handsome carriage, as great a reputation, as if he had been more fortunate, and shared in the glory of a victory had been obtained in single dispute over his own person. From the time that the Fort of Aix had been delivered into Lafin's hands, Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres had retired himself into the City, where he had been received with all the reputation, and respect due to the Deliverer of a people, as they looked upon him to be, and where, whilst he lay watching all occasions wherein he might weaken the Duke's power, or lessen his repute (which he called executing his Majestices' Orders, and advancing his Service) he had intelligence of the slender, and careless Guard was kept by Lafin in the Fort of Aix, as also in many other places, which as yet were in the Duke's possession: The Fort of Aix surprised by Mounsieur l' Esdiguieres. wherefore making use of this negligence, and pretending some of the Duke's people had broken the Truce (in having (as he said) taken some of his prisoners) he took the Field upon the sixth of july, and without resistance took the Fort of Aix, and favouring the revolt of Frejus, St. Paul, Troy, Mirabel, and Cans, gave the Inhabitants of all those City's opportunity, to drive out the Duke's Garrisons, and to withdraw themselves wholly from his Party, and Obedience. As for the Fort of Aix, it was no sooner in Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres hands, but that he delivered it up to the discretion of the Inhabitants, who were so diligent in the demolishing of it, The Fort of Aix demolished. that in two days time there scarce remained any footsteps of a work the Duke's whole Army had for three months together, with great, and continual labour, been industrious to raise. Toulon soon after followed the revolt of the other forenamed places, Many other places revolt from the Duke. which was, of all others, a loss of the greatest importance to the Duke. Esgarrebaques was Governor of the place, a man that had long served in that employment, both under Mounsieur de la Valette, and under the Duke himself in great esteem of Courage, and Fidelity: but at last the alliance he had contracted with the House of Souliés, a Family that were nothing kind to the Duke's Interests, having given his Adversaries, or rather his Envyers a pretence to render him suspected to the Duke, he, to secure the place, and to keep Esgarrebaques within the bounds of his duty, caused a Citadel to be drawn out, and to be begun in his own presence, wherein he placed Signac, the Governors Capital, and Mortal Enemy, with a sufficient Garrison both to secure the Citadel, and to awe the City: But Esgarrebaques, either really provoked by this ill usage, or else in this declining condition of the Duke's Affairs, willing to disengage himself from his Service, making that his pretence, so soon as the Duke's back was turned, assaulted Signac in his new Citadel; where, the Fortifications being imperfect, and the access open, and easy on all sides, he without much opposition took the Governor prisoner, and made himself master of the place; putting himself immediately after into Mounsieur l' Esdiguieres protection, which, in the Language of the Country, was to submit himself to the King. The Duke having intelligence of these disorders, of which his own absence had chiefly been the cause, upon the first report thereof left Languedoc, and made all the haste he could into Provence, to apply, if possible, some remedy in this untoward posture of Affairs; though all he could do at his return, was only to stop the Gangreen from going further, The Duke returns into Provence. and to keep the Province from a general revolt: yet either not believing, or not seeming to believe, that his Majesty's Order was in any of these transactions, he began to prepare himself to recover by force of Arms, what by treachery and surprise had been taken from him, when finding his Friends and Followers startled, and wavering at the very sound of the Royal Name, which his Enemies had made use of in all their designs, he thought it necessary, before he fell to action first to undeceive them, and to clear that error. In an eloquent Speech therefore he briefly laid before them, The signal Services both his Brother and himself had done for the King in the conservation of that Province, and that in the greatest confusion of the Kingdom, and at the lowest ebb of his Majesty's Affairs; the Obedience he had manifested to all his Majesty's Orders, and Commands, how severe soever they had been, and how prejudicial soever to his own private Fortune. That as an evidence of his Duty, and submission to his Majesty's Royal Pleasure, he had but lately surrendered the Fort of Aix, that is to say, had divested himself of the possession of that fair City; the Conquest of which, was, by their Valours made certain to him. That notwithstanding so many, and so recent testimonies of his Loyalty and Obedience, with which he knew his Majesty to be very well satisfied, his Enemies still shrouding their malice under the shadow of the Royal Name, the better to effect their own designs, had debauched, and reduced from him most of the places he had lately been possessed of. That this affront reflected upon them, indifferently with himself, since it had been with their Blood, together with his Brothers, and his own, that those conquests had been dearly bought. That therefore the injury being equal both to him, and them, he hoped they would assist to revenge them, and to maintain his Fortune; which, as he owed it in part to their Valour, so did he not so passionately desire its support for any interest of his own, as to have means thereby to show himself grateful to those who had been constant, and faithful to him, in all the disgraces he had fallen into, and in all the attempts had been practised against him. His Friends being by this short speech reassured and confirmed in their Fidelity and Obedience, and having thereupon expressed as great a Devotion to his Service, as he could expect from men who had long been affectionate to him; he forthwith took the Field to go seek out l' Esdiguieres: but he, after he had delivered Aix from the Fort, that had so long kept them in subjection, and cleared the neighbouring Campagne by the revolt he had procured of the foremention'd places, retired into his Government of Dauphiné, without engaging himself further at this time in the Affairs of Provence; by whose retreat, the Duke, having none left to oppose his designs, seemed to be now in a condition not only to redeem his late losses, but also to make a new, and a further progress into the Country, than he yet had done; and doubtless he had done so, had things continued in this posture: but something new, and unforeseen fell out, which gave the last blow to the ruin of his Affairs. The Duke of Guise at last undeceived, and better read in the Spanish artifice, which had so long abused him with vain proposions of Marriage with their Infanta so soon as they could procure his Election to the Crown, and perceiving also the declining condition of the League, which every day went less in reputation, was in the end, with his Brothers returned into the King's Obedience: to whom his Majesty (hoping the revolt of a man of his Authority, and Condition from his Enemy's Party, would draw the greatest part of those who had set up their rest upon the Fortune of the Duke his Father, over to his own) had granted very advantageous conditions; and be●ides the Cities of Rheims, Chalons, Rocroy, St. Di●ier, Guise, and other places, which had formerly been settled upon his Father, and his Uncles, conferred particularly the Government of Provence upon him. The Duke of Guise made Governor of Provence. The Government of Champagne had formerly been in the possession of the late Duke; but his Majesty, having since his advancement to the Crown, gratified the Duke of Nevers with that Office, he rather chose to dispossess the Duke of Espernon, who by a thousand calumnies had been rendered suspected to him, than to disoblige the Duke of Nevers, whom himself had settled in that trust. Neither was the Duke of Guise unsatisfied with the exchange, who (besides that it was in itself at least equal with the other) had, by this mutation a great opportunity, under the shadow of the Royal Authority, to depress one of the most powerful, and professed enemies of his House, and Name: so that well pleased with his new Employment, he only waited his Majesty's order to begin his Journey into Provence, and by assistance of the Royal Arms to put himself into possession of his new, and well liked of charge: But his Majesty who had much rather by little and little to have withdrawn the Duke of Espernon from thence, than to kindle a new War in that Country, and so soon again to put a Sword into the Duke of Guise's hand, who was so lately returned into his obedience, had first tried the way of negotiation (as you have heard) and after made use of Arms under the conduct of Mounsieur l' Esdiguieres; by which various ways having found he could neither reduce the Duke by reason, nor so depress him by force, but that he was still in a condition there long to subsist, he at last took a resolution to put an end to the work, and to effect that by fine force, which he saw was neither by Treaty, nor by indifferent Forces to be brought about. His Majesty had in the beginning of this year proclaimed a War with the King of Spain, which notwithstanding, before he would begin, or advance into the Enemy's Country, he would first settle his own Affairs at home, and visit some parts of his Kingdom, which as yet he had never seen since they were reduced to his Obedience, by his presence to encourage and confirm them in their duty to him; of which the City of Lions was one, and thither it was, that his Majesty, after having chased the Duke of Mayenne out of Burgundy, repaired, and where he arrived in September, 1595. To this place Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres being also come to kiss his Majesty's Hand, and to give him an account of the Affairs of Provence, he was thither followed by the Deputies of that Parliament, and of some other Cities of that Province, in hopes that under his countenance, and Interest at Court, their complaints against the Duke of Espernon would be the better heard, by which his Majesty being tired, vexed at the continuations of these troubles, and animated against the Duke by the reiterated ill Offices of his enemies, fearing also that the ill usage the Duke had received from them, might during his rupture with Spain, provoke him to join with the Spaniard, so as to receive them into those Garrisons he held in Provence, he then took up that final resolution to suppress him by Force, and by Arms to reduce him to his Duty. Of this War the Duke of Guise, The Duke of Guise, and Mounsieur l' Esdiguieres go against the D●ke of Espernon. as Governor of Provence, was to have the conduct, whom nevertheless his Majesty judging too young to manage, without the assistance of some more experienced Captain (especially having to do with the Duke of Espernon) he made choice of Mounsieur l' Esdiguieres for that purpose, by the title of Lieutenant General in Provence, under the Duke of Guise. Neither could his Majesty have made choice of two Captains more animated against the Enemy they were to undertake, the first being prompted on, besides the interest of his establishment in that Province, by the antiquated and irreconcilable hatred of his Family, the other by his jealousy already mentioned, and by the conscience of those recent injuries the Duke had received at his hands. And here, though every one might reasonably conclude that this torrent of Arms was likely to overwhelm the Duke beyond all possible evasion, or recovery, yet was his courage, and assurance no less eminent in this, than it had been in other occasions of this nature. 'Tis true that he had discreetly endeavoured to divert it, by going to present himself before the King at Lions; where he doubted not to clear those Accusations his Enemies had so falsely contrived, and so maliciously preferred against him: But such was his ill fortune, that he met intelligence upon the way, which assured him his Majesty was suddenly, and unexpectedly called thence into Picardy, by the inroads the Condé de Fuentes had made into that Province, and by the danger the City of Cambray was in, which at this time was closely besieged by the Spanish Forces: So that he was constrained to return back into Provence, not without extreme affliction to see his Majesty so positively bend to his ruin, with this hope nevertheless, that time would at last justify his intentions, especially if he could in the interim maintain his Affairs in any tolerable condition: a consideration that made him resolute to defend his declining fortune more vigorously than ever; The Duke resolute to stand upon his de●ence. yet not with any design to do any thing contrary to his Majesty's Service, but with an intent, if things came to the last push, rather to make a voluntary surrender of his Government into his Majesties own hands▪ (as he afterwards did) than to suffer himself tamely to be stripped of it, by his mortal, and implacable Enemies. The Army designed against him entered into Provence in November 1595. where the Duke had Friends, and strong Holds enough to have held them long in play, had they, to whose fidelity he had entrusted the chiefest of his Castles and Towns observed the Faith they had sworn unto him: but their revolt soon made him understand, the influence of the Royal Name, and how unhappy a thing it is, to have that appear against a man, how innocent soever his intentions may be, and how well soever disposed to his Prince's Service: for the Duke of Guise, and Mounsieur de l' Esdiguieres no sooner appeared in Provence, but that there was a contest amongst the Duke's greatest Confidents, who should first go over to them. Amongst these the Sieurs de Buous Brothers, the men of all others in that Country to whom the Duke had given the highest testimonies of Honour, The Duke abandoned by most of his friends. and Friendship, were the first who forsook him, and who, besides the prejudice they did him by their ill example, carried over with them the two Regiments they commanded in his Army, which was no little blow to his Affairs in a time when it was no easy matter for him to raise new Forces. The next in order that followed this virtuous example was Ramefort, one who had been of longest acquaintance, and intimacy with the Duke, and whom he in his time of favour had obliged by many benefits, and had since in Provence committed Cisteron, one of the chiefest places he held there to his trust. This man nevertheless no sooner knew the Duke of Guise to be come into the Country, but that he sent to treat with him about the surrender of the place, upon condition that he should still contitinue Governor there for the King. Peyroles did the same for his Garrison of Riez, he continuing still Governor of the place, to be held, and maintained for the time to come, in his Majesty's name, as Cisteron was by Ramefort. The loss of these two places having infinitely surprised the Duke of Espernon, who by this carriage plainly saw how little assurance he could promise to himself from the rest of his Friends, he began to apprehend an universal Revolt; The Duke of Espernon enters into a general mistrust of all his followers. and in this apprehension, scarce knowing any more in whom he might confide, or whom he might reasonably suspect, he chiefly began to mistrust the fidelity of Mesplés the Governor of Tropés, one of the principal places that remained in his power, and in which upon the worst of accidents he thought to find his chiefest refuge, and safety. This Gentleman a Bearnois by Birth, and a man of singular Valour, had, by his gallant behaviour in several occasions, wrought himself much into the King's opinion, and esteem; from whence the Duke apprehending (perhaps too lightly) that possibly he might quit his Interests, to be allured over to his Enemy's side by the sound of the Royal Name, he resolved to remove him from that command, as he presently did; and that, as he conceived, without any injury, or offence, having done it without noise, or giving the least evidence that his Faith was any way suspected to him: but Mesplés (perhaps glad of so good a pretence to abandon the Duke, whose Affairs he saw daily declining) taking his unjust suspicion for the highest injury, and the removing him from his Government for the greatest Affront and Indignity he could possibly receive, resented both at so high a rate, that from that time forwards he became one of his most violent and implacable enemies. He went upon the very instant to seek out the Duke of Guise, where being arrived, he immediately put himself into his Service, and having long commanded in St. Tropés, and at leisure considered all the weaknesses of the place, advised the Duke presently to besiege it, assuring him that it would infallibly be taken; which the Duke giving credit to, immediately ordered him Men, and Cannon, to force the place, whilst he himself went upon the enterprise of Marselles, which he likewise brought to a fortunate issue. This Design upon St. Tropés had like to have occasioned betwixt these two Dukes a memorable engagement; for the Duke of Espernon not being able to suffer such a place to be lost, without endeavouring at least to relieve it, had suddenly gathered together all the Forces he could make thereabouts to that purpose; but all those amounting to no more, than about some 300. Light Horse, 60. of his Guards, and betwixt four or five hundred Foot, he was like to do no great execution; yet was he resolute, notwithstanding the infinite danger, to have made a brave attempt; when those about him, seeing that only the desperate condition of his Affairs prompted him to that precipitous resolution, not only dissuaded him from his purpose; but in a manner constrained him to think of making his retreat: In which also the danger was exceeding great; for St. Tropés being but four Leagues distant from Marselles, whilst Mesplés was busy about this petty Siege, the Duke of Guise had made himself Master of that great, and populous City; where, having a good Army at his Devotion, and receiving intelligence from Mesplés, that the Duke of Espernon was with a very inconsiderable Party about St. Tropés, he made with all possible diligence to find him out, and to fight him. As the Duke of Guise was advancing with this Design, the Duke of Espernon was upon his Retreat, which (that craggy and mountainous Country affording him no other passage) he was forced to make by the same way, by which the Duke of Guise was coming against him. The Duke of Espernon's Forlorn-Hope was that day led by St. Andr●e, who, so soon as he discovered the Enemy, gave the Duke present notice thereof; who, not so much as dreaming of any such Encounter, was a little surprised, and in some perplexity, what course he had best to take. His design before was to have refreshed his men in the Village Du Val; but that being now possessed by the Duke of Guise, and he not being in a condition to dislodge him, who was much stronger than himself, he was forced to lay aside his thoughts of repose, and to think of a speedy retreat. Neither was this without great difficulty to be effected, there being no place near he expected should receive him, and the Enemy being already in sight. In which general confusion and astonishment, a Soldier of the Country who was then with the Duke, advised him to retire towards Berjau, undertaking himself at the same time, to be his Guide. Berjau was a little Town in the Duke's possession, but it was four long Leagues from the place where they than were, and the River Argence was betwixt them and it, which was no where passable but at Pont de Carces, the Lord of which was no friend to the Duke, as may be gathered from what has gone before: Yet was the Soldiers proposition nevertheless embraced (for in extreme necessities and dangers, the first Counsels whatever they be are commonly accepted) the Guide therefore put himself in the Front, and the Duke followed after, leaving the Baron d' Ars, and Miran to bring up the Rear. In the mean time the Duke of Guise advertised, by the Avant-Coureurs of his Army, that the Duke of Espernon was so near, made all the haste he could to overtake him; which notwithstanding he could not so suddenly do, but that the Duke had already passed the River without difficulty, or danger, which the Duke of Guise perceiving, and attempting to follow after, that he might engage him before he could put his men into order, A Skirmish betwixt the Duke of Guise, and the Duke of Espernon. was received on the Duke's part by a counterfeit charge, which was put so briskly home, that the Duke of Guise's Forces, who were not half got over the Bridge, astonished at so unexpected a resistance, fell foul upon one another, in which confusion above thirty Troopers threw themselves headlong for fear into the River, and were there drowned, some also were slain; and certainly had the Duke engaged with all his Forces, he had put Mounsieur de Guise into a very great disorder: but he conceiving he had nothing more to do, than to make good his own retreat, thought it sufficient by charging, and amusing the Enemy's Van, to win time for those few Foot he had to get the start; wherein if the Duke committed an oversight, Mounsieur de Guise committed afterwards a greater; when after this little skirmish, having without opposition marched over the rest of his Army, it had been no hard matter for him, had he made any haste, to have overtaken the Duke, who marched no faster than a trot; whilst following leisurely after, without pressing him to fight, he gave him leave to make his retreat in great security without the loss of any, save some few of his worst mounted men. Thus the Duke of Espernon lost at once both the Town of St. Tropés, which was a very good one, and the Governor, who was a Gentleman of great worth and merit; the one by the prevailing Arms of▪ his Enemies, and the other perhaps by his own fault: he was at least condemned by his Friends, and Servants, for entering upon too light grounds into a jealousy of this Gentleman's faith: And certainly if ever we should make head against our diffidences, and mistrusts, it ought chiefly to be, when we most labour under affliction and disgrace; every thing at those times being suspected to us, and our judgements, weakened by grief and disaster, being then most apt to be imposed upon by the lightest impressions. After the taking in of these places, the Duke of Guise, l' Esdiguieres, the Count de Carces, and the other Chiefs of the Enemy's Army retired themselves to Aix, there to deliberate about the Affairs of Provence, and of the means by which they were to work the Duke of Espernon's absolute, and final ruin. He had at this time upon his hands at once the Duke of Savoy, All things averse to the Duke in Provence. the Duke of Guise, the League, l' Esdiguieres, Ornano, the Provencials, and (which was of more dangerous consequence than all these known, and declared Enemies) his own Friends and Followers were wavering and uncertain to him: yet, as if all these, who were all men of great quality, and many of them of great interest, and reputation in the Country, had been too few to do his business, a wretched Fellow, bred from the Lees of the common people, obscure, and of no name till then, would likewise put his helping hand to the work; who alone, and contemptible, as he was, put the Duke into more manifest danger of his life, than so many, and so powerful enemies armed, and confederated to his ruin, as yet had ever done. His name was Bartholomew Bigne. a native of the forementioned Village du Val, and a near neighbour to Brignoles; whither the Duke having retired himself after the loss of the beforementioned places, and having there assembled all his Forces together, to make head against whatever new attempts might be preparing against him; A Plot against the Duke of Espernon's life. this cursed Villain, who had never received any particular injury from the Duke, but merely prompted on by the malignity of his own nature, and a national hatred against him, having long deliberated by what way he might infallibly destroy the Duke, bethought himself at last of this impious, and abominable mischief. He shut up in two Chests three Quintals of Powder, A Quintal is an hundred weight. to purchase which he had laid out all the money he had, or could procure; and having observed the place where the Duke usually kneeled at Mass in the Church of Brignoles, he entreated the Curate thereof to give him leave to bring the two Chests into his Church, wherein he pretended he had locked up the best of his Goods, to preserve them from the hands of the Soldier: which the Curate readily promised him he should, provided he might first search them, to see what they contained: but Bigne finding that to be a condition, that by no means suited with his Design, left off the Curate, and seeing some other way was to be found out to bring his purpose to pass, fell to hammering out new projects; which were the less hard for him to contrive, by how much the same evil spirit, who had suggested to him the heart, and boldness to meditate so great a wickedness, was now also ready to prompt his invention, and to instruct him how to execute his execrable purpose by a new way, where his first design had failed. Out of hopes then of effecting his business in the Church, he by the means of the Mistress of the House where the Duke lay, and with whom Bigne had been formerly acquainted, wriggles himself into the company of the Duke's Baker, and in discourse offers him three Sacks of Corn to sell, where betwixt them the Bargain was soon struck up, and that being done, the Traitor losing no time, the next day brings his three Sacks to the Duke's Lodgings, about the time he was to come from Mass, and to go to dinner, and sets them in a little place under the Chamber where the Duke used to eat. Where after he had disposed them as he thought most conveniently for the execution they were to do, he goes to seek out the Baker to come look upon his Bargain. In every one of these Sacks he had put an hundred pound of powder, with only a little Corn at the mouth to serve for show, that if by chance the first Sack that was opened should fail of its effect, no discovery might be made of the Treason; but that they might go to the next. Amongst the powder in every Sack he had conveyed the wheel-lock of a Pistol, ready wound up, and tied to the string of the Sack, after such a manner, that it was impossible to open any one without pulling down the spring that was fastened to the Cord, and giving fire to the powder; the three Sacks also were set so near to one another, that any one of them taking fire, the others would also blow up, and so the three Quintals of Powder must infallibly play at once. Things being thus ordered, Bigne waits near to the Duke's Lodging, until he was come in, and had the patience to stay till he saw him set down to dinner; when having him now in the Trap, and that the Duke, as he thought, could not possibly escape, he then went to seek out the Baker, to make him at once the Traitor, and the betrayed, and the innocent instrument of his own, and his Master's ruin. The poor Baker was not hard to be found, at a time of the day when usually all the Duke's domestics met together; so that having presently met him, Bigne goes along with him to the Mistress of the house, desiring her to open the door where the Corn stood; which she accordingly doing, and he seeing things now brought to that pass, that the effect was, as it were inevitable, himself insensibly, and unobserved slips out of the House, and got into the Fields, making with all diligence for Aix. The Baker in the mean time, with two young fellows that belonged to him in his Office, went to visit the Sacks, where going to untie the first, he had scarce touched the string, but he was immediately consumed by the devouring flame: Neither did his men escape any better; and the violence of the powder was so great, that it blew up the floor where the Duke sat● at dinner, with the story above it, the roof of the house only remaining firm. All those who were above with the Duke, were blown up to the roof, and thence tumbling headlong to the foundation, were many of them crushed to pieces under the ruins, the Duke only by a miracle of Fortune remaining still sitting, and upright in the midst of this subversion; for his Chair being placed upon a great Beam that butted upon the Chimney of the Chamber, and the fire not having force enough to blow up that, which at both ends was strongly fastened into the Wall, The Duke's wondered escape. the flame only burnt his hair, and his beard, without any further harm to his person. That which hindered the powder from doing greater execution, and from blowing up the whole house, as in all probability it was like to do, was, that the Windows being all open, the flame found a passage that way, and by that lost much of its force within; otherwise the house, and all within, had certainly been tossed into the Air, and consumed in a moment. Bigne, who from without the Town had seen his mine play, believing the effect to be infallibly such, as he had proposed to himself, ran in all haste to Aix to carry the news of the Duke of Espernon's certain death to the Duke of Guise; to whom withal he declared at large the whole circumstance of his design, not without the amazement and horror of all that heard him, that any man could be guilty of so barbarous and inhuman a fact. As for the Duke of Espernon, he was a man so well prepared beforehand against all the accidents of fortune, that he soon recovered the astonishment this surprise had put him into; and doubting it might be a stratagem of the Enemy in the disorder, and confusion, that must necessarily attend so sudden a mischief, to make himself Master of the place, made all the Soldiers he had in the Town immediately to repair to their Arms; whilst himself mounted on Horseback, and attended by some Gentlemen his friends, went to visit the several Posts of the City, to see that all was quiet there: where having found all things right within, and that nothing of suspicion appeared from without, it must of necessity be concluded that the mischief arose, and that the Conspiracy must have been made within the Walls of his own Lodgings. Diligent search was there therefore presently made, and the woman of the house examined, who ingenuously confessed the bargain about the Corn betwixt Bigne and the Baker by her means: whereupon they desired to see the place where the Sacks had been set, but there was neither Sacks, nor the men who had opened them to be seen, the fire having so consumed them, that scarcely their bones could be found. They then sent to Bigne's house, who was fled, and his house left void, his Goods and Family being removed to Aix the night before: So that no further doubt being to be made of the Author of the Fact, the Duke's heart began to be at rest; which before was a little unquiet with the suspicion, that some of his own people might have had a hand in the Plot. Some who have made reflections upon the Duke's life, and the many Accidents by which it had often been brought into extreme danger (which were at least as many as any other great man's of his time) have sometimes drawn the several hazards he has run, Reflections upon the several dangers of the Duke of Espernon's life. into comparison with one another, as he himself amongst his private friends (so pleasant is the memory of dangers past) upon occasion delighted to do; though he ever declared the conspiracy of Angoulesme, to be the greatest peril he had ever been in; next to which he placed that of Corbie, where he confessed his fear to have been much greater, than in the former, though the business never arrived at that degree of danger, that was manifest in the other accidents of his life. As for the precipice of Lions, the Canonshot before Aix, and the Mine of Brignoles but now mentioned, though he acknowledged his danger in all those to have been extreme, and that in all appearance, it was hardly possible he could escape; yet the suddenness of them took away the sense, and his good fortune, opportunely interposing betwixt him and those mortal accidents, prevented his apprehension, and gave him no time to fear; whereas in the other two, he had had leisure to see his approaching ruin, and death coming upon him in all his ugly shapes, especially in the business of Angoulesme, which he could not consider as one, but a concatenation of many, and those mortal dangers, that succeeded one another for above forty hours together. At this very time, Anno 1596. and in the height of these untoward occurrences, Mounsieur d' Ossat, since Cardinal (a person equally to be commended for the integrity of his life, and the excellency of his learning) writ very bitter things to the prejudice of the Duke's Loyalty and Honour; which, though by the care of some of the Duke's Friends, they were suppressed in the first impression of his Book; yet having since been added in a particular sheet, The Duke of Espernon traduced by the Cardinal d' Oss●t. I think myself obliged not to suffer the public to be imposed upon by so gross calumnies, and that it is my duty to interpose the truth in the Duke's defence. This Prelate then, after having writ favourably enough to the King concerning the Duke, in his Letter of the 22. of December, 1594. that having given Pope Clement the VIII. an account of all things his Majesty had given him in charge concerning Mounsieur de Guise, and the Government of Provence, his Holiness sighing, replied, And what will they do with the Duke of Espernon? In another Letter notwithstanding to Secretary Villeroy, bearing date the 17. of january, 1596, writes thus, Marselles puts me in mind of the Duke of Espernon, concerning whom they write from Lions, that after the taking of Cisteron, he has sent to the King to make a tender of his submission, and obedience: but they do not know that at the same time he he sent to Turin to the Duke of Savoy, and to Milan to the Constable of Castille, of whom he had obtained 6000. Crowns, that is to say, 5000. down, with which his Agents buy Horses, and Arms at Milan, and 55000 more by Bill of Exchange to be returned at Genoa; which is said to be two months advance of 30000. Crowns a month, given him by the Crown of Spain, for being a good Frenchman, as he writes into these parts, he will be so long as he has life, causing it to be reported that the money he receives at Milan is money of his own, that he has there in Bank; as if even to have a Bank of money in a Town belonging to the King of Spain, and to think it there secure, were not a sign of no very good Frenchman. There has been a rumour in these parts for some days that he has promised Boulogne to the Spaniard, etc. Thus writes the Cardinal d' Ossat, with many other things of the like injurious nature. The Duke of Espernon saw all these invectives as soon almost as they appeared in Print, and though in his own nature he was a man not much inclined to Books; yet the quality of the Author having given a great reputation to this, he had a great desire to see it, when, having it brought before him, and the place being turned unto wherein he himself was concerned, it could not be perceived that he was at all moved at the many reproaches he there found against him: but on the contrary was so moderate and calm as to say, That he could by no means blame the Cardinal d' Ossat for what he had written; and that being employed, as he was, by the King in the most weighty Affairs of the Court of Rome, he had done no more, than his duty in giving his Majesty a faithful account of what ever was reported to him: That he knew very well many others at the same time talked of him at the same rate, some out of spleen, and others perhaps out of a belief the common bruit his Enemies had spread amongst the people had begot in them: but that neither the one nor the other said true. That indeed the King of Spain, the Duke of Savoy, and the Duke of Mayenne (measuring his discontents by the provocations he had received) had all of them often sent to him, the first to offer him his protection, and the two last their friendship and alliance. That he had been solicited by a Religious of the Order of St. Francis on the behalf of the King of Spain, by a woman of quality, the world believed had a great interest in him, from the Duke of Savoy, and by the Abbot of Cornac, since Abbot of Ville-Loin, a man of great dexterity, and prudence, from the Duke of Mayenne: but he dedeclared, and bound it with an Oath, that he had never harkened to any such practice; That in truth, seeing himself pressed by his own particular enemies under the King's Authority, and in his name, and that alone he could not long be able to make a head against them, he had sometimes been in suspense what he should do; and a little tempted by the advantageous conditions these Princes had offered to him: but that notwithstanding his Fidelity, and Duty, had ever so stoutly opposed his Interest, and Passion, that he rather chose to surrender his Right to the Government of Provence, and (which was far more insupportable unto him) to quit the Field to his Enemies, than to make a longer resistance, by joining himself with Parties, and Factions, contrary to his Majesty's Service, and Interest. All which in the end he made so evident, that I cannot but admire, after so manifest a justification by his Actions, any body could be so unjust, as to tax him with any intelligence with Spain. To fortify which so odious a Calumny, they ought at least to have proved, that he had received from thence, or by their means, some kind of Assistance in his Affairs; by whom had he been secretly favoured, would they have husbanded their favour so ill, 〈◊〉 not to have drawn from him some effectual acknowledgement, and return, by the giving up some one at least of those places in his custody into their hands? The same Cardinal says that he had promised them Boulogne, though it was plain enough afterwards, how far he was from any such purpose; that he had received money from Spain, and that he pretended for his excuse, it came out of his own Bank at Milan, where himself had before laid it up; and that the one, and the other were almost equally criminal: which were it true, no one could deny it to be a Crime. But to answer to this point, I would fain know what he did contrary to his Majesty's Service, after he received this money; and whether he was afterwards observed to favour that Faction more than before? No, it was so much otherwise, that almost at the very same time the Cardinal sent this intelligence against him, he went in person to the King, where he put himself into his Majesty's hands, without Article, or Reservation, to be absolutely at his disposal. Would the Spaniard have been thus tamely cheated of his money, without speaking, had he parted with such a Sum? would he not have published to all the world the Duke's infidelity, and unhandsome carriage? and would he not at least have seized upon that Bank, the Cardinal d' Ossat writes of at Milan, for his reimbursement? Others have further added, that the Duke had a design to take this opportunity of the Kingdom's distraction, to make himself a Sovereign Prince in Provence: but let any one consider, whether after having conceived so unjust, and so unruly an ambition, he would not betimes, and before he had proceeded to matter of Fact, Other Calumnies against the Duke. have fortified himself by a correspondency, and intelligence with Foreign Princes, to have justified his usurpation? or whether, in common discretion, he would not have confederated himself with those Factions at home that already braved the lawful Authority? Yet is it most true, and it was evident to all the world, that instead of doing the one, or the other, he fought with all the power he had, and maintained the sharpest War he could possibly maintain, both against the Duke of Savoy, though backed with the Spanish Forces, and also against the League, of itself sufficient to have amazed man of less conduct and resolution. It is very true, that he would fain have kept, and maintained his Government of Provence against all pretenders, had it stood with the King's good liking; and that he was the longer before he could persuade himself to give it up, hoping at some time or other, that his Majesty reflecting upon his Services, might think him as worthy as any of that Command: but at last, finding his expectation vain, and all he could do, or say, ineffectual to the procuring of his Royal Consent, he rather chose to quit claim to a Title his Majesty would not be prevailed with to approve, than by a longer obstinacy to oppo●● his Master's pleasure to the prejudice of his own duty. Some who can endure no truths, but such as are couched in the worst Characters, and that call all things flattery, which are not offence, may perhaps think me too zealous in the Duke's justification: but let such, before they too liberally determine, examine the Arguments I have used in his behalf, whether there be in them any thing forced, or uneasy to an unbyased judgement, or whether any thing can be contradicted in all I have said. It has been an observation (almost to a rule) that the lives of great Favourites have ever been the objects of the hatred, and envy of their own times; an injustice that descending upon the Duke, not only in the usual forms of Calumny, but in an extraordinary stile, and with greater demonstrations of malice to him, and his reputation, than to any other of this, or of almost any other time before him, I thought it a duty to truth, to him, and to posterity (now that time has laid open the falsity of those slanders, that have been published against him) to discover the true causes, and reasons why he so long persisted in the defence of his Government; and as far as I am able, at least to rescue those actions from obloquy, which all disinterested, and worthy men will, upon mature deliberation, think worthy of all commendation and honour. A design, which as I have impartially undertaken, so have I not herein made use of my own Arguments but only made a faithful report of what I have learned from the most unsuspected testimony, gathered out of the best Historians, or received from the Duke's own mouth, who must of necessity know the truth as well as any, and much better than those who writ at random of affairs: Neither do I apprehend why, what he himself reported for the justification of those actions which were so unhappily interpreted should not be of as good authority for him, as what was published to his prejudice by men who were profestly haters of his Person, and apparently emulous of his Name, and Fortune. The Duke of Espernon, The Duke of Espernon, rejecting all offers from Savoy, Spain, and the Duke of Mayenne submits himself to the King. having (as has been said) rejected all propositions made him by those who were enemies to the King, would accept of no other protection, than what he expected from his Majesty's Justice, and Bounty, however incensed against him. In which resolution having set up his rest, he dispatched away Guez his principal Secretary to the King, to carry him an assurance of his Fidelity, and Obedience; who being arrived at Court, was presented to his Majesty by the Marquis de Roquelaure; a man who in the Duke's severest persecution, and when the tongue of calumny was most bitter against him, had ever preserved for him a most entire, and constant Friendship, and who had made no difficulty in his Majesty's greatest Passions (a time of all other the most dangerous to dispute with Princes) to justify, and undertake for his Friend's integrity, and to uphold his interest with an admirable, and never enough to be commended constancy. Guez then was by him no sooner brought into the King's presence, than his Majesty with a stern look presently told him, that if himself to whom he was sent had no greater a kindness for him, than his Master had, who had sent him, he should that hour cause his head to be struck from his shoulders, and that he much wondered a man of sense, as he was, durst come to him from the Duke of Espernon, whom he himself knew very well to hold intelligence with his Enemies: To which Guez, who was very well assured of the contrary, replied, that he would willingly submit to the punishment his Majesty was pleased to threaten, if the Duke was guilty of those things whereof he stood accused: and that he came to his Majesty on the behalf of a Loyal Subject, his most humble, and faithful Servant, who had rather chosen to depend upon his Majesty's Grace, and Favour, and to throw himself at his feet without condition, than to accept of the most advantageous offers, could by his Majesty's Enemies be proposed unto him. After which the King having asked him if he might rely upon his word, and Guez having by many protestations confirmed, what he before had said, his Majesty resolved to receive the Duke into his favour, and a few days after dispatched away Mounsieur de Roquelaure himself, the Duke's most intimate Friend, to give him assurance, that he might with all freedom come to Court, where from his Majesty he should receive all the satisfaction he could expect, or desire, The Duke, without insisting upon greater precaution, or other security, than what he found in his own Conscience, took his journey to Court, and that with so absolute a confidence in his Majesty's Royal Word, that he would not so much as open the Letters Mounsieur de Roquelaure brought him from the King; but at his arrival restored them to his Majesty, sealed up as they were sent: by which generous behaviour, excuses, and reasons having given his Majesty full satisfaction in all things, he received him into an honourable degree of Favour, The Duke of Espernon received into Favour. and soon after gave him the Government of the higher, and lower Limousin, in recompense of that of Provence: A charge in truth that held no proportion with the other; but that nevertheless bordering upon Xaintonge, Angoumois, and the Country of Aulins, which the Duke already had, lay very convenient for him; and besides, by being newly conferred upon him, gave the world to see, that his Majesty did not look upon him as a Rebel. The King gave him moreover 100000 Crowns to defray part of the expense he had been at in Provence; by which his Majesty seemed to acknowledge it had been there well employed, and it was assigned him upon the Convoy of Bourdeaux. Thus did the Duke quit all his pretences in Provence, and remained at Court with the King. I could here speak of the enterprise of Marselles without danger of digression, it having been executed by the Duke of Guise, whilst the Duke of Espernon was yet in Provence, and the rather because the Sieges of St. Tropés, and Oriol, which were then in his possession, served much to palliate the Duke of Guise's Design: but having no need to seek elsewhere, than in the particular actions of the Duke of Espernon himself, to swell the bulk of my History, I shall, how great and shining soever that action was, forbear to make a further mention of it; the Historians of that time having given accounts of it at large. And yet, whilst I omit the main thing so pertinent to my Story, I cannot forbear to mention a remarkable circumstance, which I have from a very good hand, and that I doubt not will be acceptable to my Reader, though it be utterly from the matter of my Subject. After the Duke of Guise had put an end to his enterprise, A digression upon a remarkable passage. a success of the greatest glory to himself, and importance to the State, that could possibly have happened at that time; he thought it but reasonable to enjoy the fruits of his Victory, by giving himself a vacation from the hardships of War, to the softer delights of Liberty and Ease; which made him seek out all the Diversions the Town could afford, that any way suited with the appetite of his youth and pleasure. The chiefest of which was the frequentation of a Gentlewoman in the City, of but moderate beauty, but of so admirable a wit, as gave her, for a distinction of excellency above the other women of the City, the name of the Marselles. This Lady had formerly been a Mistress of the Duke of Espernon's, and was at this time highly courted by the Duke of Guise, with whom the Duke being one night very pleasant in her Lodging, they there contrived a piece of mirth, which in the issue very much failed their expectation. Grillon Campmaster to the Regiment of Guards, a Gentleman of Provence, was reputed one of the bravest men of his time, and with good reason, the signal testimonies he had in a thousand occasions given of his Valour approaching nearer to the vanity of a Romance, than to the truth of serious History. This Gentleman, after the recovery of Marselles, was dismissed from the King to the Duke of Guise to be assisting to him in his reputation, advice, and valour, for the conservation of that place: for his Majesty well knowing what a longing, and watchful eye his Enemies had upon that City, and himself also being very tender of so important a place, would spare no cost, not omit no care to preserve i● safe, from any designs without, or within by violence, or practice. The Duke of G●ise then in the height of his mirth calling to mind that Grillon was ordinarily called * The man without fear. l' homme sans peur, thinking it not impossible to show the world he was capable of the Passion of fear as well as other men, and to make him lose that name, with some other young men of his own gay humour about him, contrived to have an Alarm suddenly given under Grillon's window, as if the Enemy had entered the Town, and at the same time causing two Horses to be brought to the door of his Lodging, runs himself up stairs into his Chamber, where with a counterfeited distraction he hastily told him that all was lost, that the Enemy had made himself Master of the Port, and of the City, that they had forced the Guards, dispersed and beaten all that could make head against him; and that no more resistance being to be made, he thought it better to retire, than to add to their Enemy's Victory by their own Ruin: that therefore he was come to call him out, that they might make their retreat together; to which purpose two Horses waited ready at the door of his Lodging, and that he desired him to make haste, lest they should be surprised by the Enemy before they could find means to escape. Grillon, though he had been fast asleep at the beginning of this false Alarm, and was yet scarce awake when the Duke of Guise told him this story; yet, without being at all surprised, he called for his clothes, and his Arms, saying withal, that too easy credit was not to be given to reports in the tumult, and confusion of Alarms; but, that should the intelligence prove true, it were far more honourable to die with their Swords in their hands, than to survive the loss of such a City: which being all the Duke of Guise could get from him, he not being to be persuaded out of that resolution, they went together out of the Chamber; when being in the middle of the stairs, the Duke being able to hold no longer, burst out into laughter: by which Gr●llon understanding the Raillery, with a furious countenance grasping the Duke by the Arm, and rapping out a terrible Oath, the usual preface to all his discourses, he said, Young man, never make it your sport to try the Courage of a man of Honour; for by the Death, hadst thou made in me a discovery of fear, or surprise, I would have stabhed my Dagger into thy heart; and so returned back into his Chamber, without more words. This Story which I have from a very good hand, a person of Quality, who had it from the Duke of Guise●s own mouth, I thought too remarkable to be overslipt: Neither do I think Grillon to be less esteemed for this ●ally of fury, which appears however to be wrapped up in very good sense, than in the constancy of his courage, that would not consent he should retire from, or outlive the loss of so important a City. And since I have spoken of the blasphemies that were so frequent in his mouth, I shall tell you what I have heard the Duke of Espernon say, who had him long under his command; which is, that many years before his death, though he had a perfect strength and vigour in all his other parts, he had nevertheless so great a weakness in his tongue, that he could not articulate, or bring out one word that any body could understand. God b●ing doubtless pleased by a manifest judgement to punish him in that part, which by so many Oaths and Blasphemies had so often offended against his Divine Honour, and most Holy Name. The end of the First Part. THE HISTORY OF THE LIFE OF THE Duke of ESPERNON, THE GREAT FAVOURITE OF FRANCE. ENGLISHED BY CHARLES COTTON, Esq The Second Part. Nihil est aptius ad delectationem Lectoris, quam temporum varietates, fortunaeque vicissitudines: quae etsi nobis optabiles in experiendo non fuerunt, in legendo tamen erunt jucundae. Cic. Epist. 12. l. 5. LONDON, Printed for Henry Brome, MDCLXX. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. THE SECOND PART. The Fifth Book. THE Duke of Espernon, having (as before is said) taken his leave of Provence, in the company of the Marquis of Roquelaure, soon after presented himself before his Majesty at Paris, who was then but newly returned from his Voyage of Picardy: The posture of Affairs at the Duke of Espernon's arrival at Court. an expedition wherein he had met with very various success, Fortune having played with both hands in the distribution of Honour and Disgrace. She had indeed showed herself favourable to him in the Enterprise of la Fere, a place, that being one of the most important upon the Frontier, and having by the League been put into the Spaniards hands, had been so Fortified and Victualled by the new Possessors, that the King judging it not to be recovered by fine force, without the manifest loss of an infinite number of good men, thought it better to straighten it at a distance, by blocking up, and building Forts upon all the Avenues, by which it could any way be supplied, or relieved, than to hazard his men by a nearer and more regular Siege; a way, that doubtless was the safest, and most likely in the end to succeed: but as no Counsels are so perfect, as to point out the certain event of things, this way of proceeding proved so slow, as gave the Enemy in the interim time and opportunity to bring about other designs of such importance, as made the King sick of the success of his own enterprise, even before it took effect. Albert Archduke, and also Cardinal of Austria, was now newly entered upon the Government of the hereditary Countries of Flanders, from whence the King of Spain had lately called home the ●ondé de Fuentes; ● Prince, that stirred 〈◊〉 by the emulation of this Predecessor's exploits (who the year before had won ●rom France le Catelet, Dourlens, and Cambray) had put on a resolution to do things, that should as far outshine the Conde's less achievements, as he himself, in Birth, and Quality was superior to him in Name, and Person: wher●fore▪ at his entering upon h●s command, having found the King set down before la Fere, he thought he could not give a more glorious beginning to his administration, than by force or policy to defeat that his Majesty's design. An undertaking which for the difficulty and danger thereof, was every way worthy the greatness of his mind; for the King having foreseen the Spaniard would infallibly attempt a relief, had forgot nothing that might serve to frustrate their endeavours. His Forces were great, his works about the place complete, and perfect, and almost all the most experienced Captains of his Kingdom were come in from all parts, to attend his Majesty's Person, and to signalise themselves in so brave an occasion: all which being very well known to the Cardinal of Austria, he durst not (notwithstanding his earnest desire to relieve that 〈◊〉) engage his Army in▪ so dangerous an attempt, but rather harkened to the Counsels of such as more warily advised to raise that 〈◊〉▪ by an attempt upon some other place of a greater, or no 〈◊〉 ●●portance. Amongst the many opinions that were delivered in the Cardinal's Council about this Affair, the ill Fortune of France would have the counsel of a Frenchman to prevail; that by the procurement of one of her own Sons, this Kingdom might receive the greatest dishonour it could possibly sustain. And this was the advice of Rhosne a Gentleman born in Champagne upon the Frontiers of Lorain, one, who having in the infancy of the League devoted himself to the Duke of Guise, and done him many signal services in his life; after his death persevering in the evil cause he had before embraced, had put himself under the Duke of Mayenne, and so far his too violent zeal to Religion; or the error of his judgement (which might be deluded amongst the rest) were rather to be excused, and pitied, than his carriage absolutely to be condemned: but after the Duke of Mayenne was reduced to reason, and had given up his cause, his yet engaging himself with the King's most implacable enemies made it manifest to all, that his turbulent spirit would stick at no mischief he could any ways effect against his Prince and Country. This man then discrediting in the Cardinal's Council all the diversions had been there proposed, as by making an attempt upon St. Quintin, Montreville, Boulogne, or Guise, gave advice to fall upon Calais, at the same time offering himself to be the man that would undertake, and accomplish the design. A proposition of so high, A design upon Calais. and generous a nature, that the Cardinal's ambition, which was bend ●pon some noble achievement, being fired thereby, he was afterwards deaf to all other Counsels, and so wholly bend upon an enterprise so suitable to the greatness of his mind, that without further delay he gave immediate order to dispose all things for the execution of that design. To which end his Army was forthwith drawn into the Field, and there divided into three several bodies, to amuse the King, and to keep him in doubt of the course he intended to steer: a policy not very necessary to the concealment of his design, it being impossible any one could imagine he durst so much as meditate the thoughts of an enterprise, which, to all men's astonishment, he so suddenly effected, that the King had no sooner intelligence of his motion, but that withal news was brought him of the loss of the place. Bidossan Governor of Calais, surprised with so unexpected a Siege, was in a few days reduced to so great an extremity, that he was forced to dispatch a Post to the King, to acquaint his Majesty with the Articles of his capitulation, which was to make a positive surrender, if within six days he was not relieved: at which unhappy, and unexpected news, his Majesty being beyond all expression afflicted, he advanced with all diligence as far as Boulogne, in hope that the convenient vicinity of that place would give him some opportunity or other to send in some relief to the besieged before the time of limitation should expire: neither did he fail to try all possible ways by which he conceived it might be done; but all in vain, the contrary winds by Sea, and the Enemy's vigilancy by Land still frustrating what ever endeavour he could use: when one sole Servant of the Duke of Espernon's had the good hap beyond all humane expectation to put himself into the place, Fortune being (it should seem) resolved by the performance of one of his Servants to confer upon the Master, though absent, A remarkable action of Campag●●●. the honour of the bravest exploit that passed upon this occasion. The man whose resolution was so eminent in this affair, was commonly called the black * Or younger Brother. Cadet, a Gentleman of the house of Campagnol, who bravely undertook, and as bravely performed the Action. His elder Brother by the Duke's Favour, was preferred to be Captain of a Company in the Regiment of Guards, and his own Lieutenant in the Government of Boulogne, as this also had a Company in the Regiment of Picardy, with which he had likewise been gratified by the Duke's Bounty. This Gentleman no sooner received intelligence of the Enemy's motion towards Calais, but that he immediately repaired to his Brother at Boulogne, where he was at his Majesty's arrival there, and where his courage not permitting him to sit still in so general a consternation, as appeared in all persons about the King, he made a voluntary offer of himself to pass through the Enemy's Guards into the Town of Calais, with any number of men his Majesty would please to commit to his charge, or to perish in the attempt. The valour of the man was so well tried, and known, that the King doubted not in the least of his performance to the utmost of what could by man be done: but the danger was such, * Cardinal Bentiv●g●●o De Thou. that his Majesty was very unwilling to expose so brave a Gentleman to so manifest a ruin; yet such was his importunity, and the occasion of such importance, that at last three hundred men only were assigned him, with which, by the favour of the night, and his own good conduct, he arrived safe at Calais, without the loss of so much as any one man; so that certainly had he carried a more considerable number of men, the Town had been saved: but as the case than stood the must content himself with the honour of his own bravery, without reaping any other benefit from the success of his attempt. The term of six days being expired, the Enemy sent to summon the Town to a surrender, according to the Articles of Capitulation betwixt them; to which summons they had no other return than this, that the besieged were now acquit of their promise, and that they had received a relief; an answer at which R●osne being more enraged than the Archduke himself, he presently caused the Cannon to play with greater fury, than at any time before during the Siege; when a sufficient breach being made, he prepared the Army for a general assault. The assault was accordingly given, in the beginning of which Bedossan being slain, Campagnol took upon him his Authority, and Command, giving the Enemy after two hours sharp fight a brave, and notable repulse which notwithstanding the breach was so wide as was impossible long to be defended, by so few men as he had left; which made the Enemy by frequent Messages often put him in mind of what he himself knew as well as they, by representing to him the desperate condition the place was in, and his own inevitable ruin should be longer persist in his defence; offering him at the same time conditions of Honour, and Advantage if he would deliver up the Town: but all to no purpose, he had not put himself into that place with so much hazard of his life to depart thence in so great security: the assault therefore was again renewed, and the Enemy again beaten back: but coming up the third time with greater fury than ever before, and bringing up still fresh Companies to succeed those who were beaten off, Campagnol's men were in fine overcome by numbers, and constrained to retire; a thing their Captain scorned to do, who, though alone and abandoned by all, still fought with the same courage, and vigour, when his resistance, how brave soever, being too weak to stop the torrent of a victorious crowd, he was at last rather overwhelmed than overcome, and by a multitude taken prisoner: with this resemblance nevertheless betwixt his honour and disgrace, that, as he had appeared single in the defence of the Town, so was he also alone in his imprisonment, the Enemy killing all that fled before them without humanity, or respect of persons, excepting of his, who had so undauntedly stood alone in his defence, wherein his Virtue was his refuge. D' Avila attributes this Action to the Sieur de Matelet, whom he qualifies Governor of Foix, although Cardinal Bentivoglio in his description of this Siege, Mounsieur de Thou, and D' Aubigné make no mention of any such man. Yet it is true that Matelet had so great a share in the business, as ought not to be passed over without its due report of honour; for the King having commanded him with an hundred Gentlemen of his Court to cut his way through the Enemy's Army during the heat of the Assault, and to put himself into the Town, it was no fault of his that his Majesty failed of his desire: he did what was by valour to be done, though he was not so fortunate as to perform his Majesty's command; neither was the Enemy's Army so thin, but that they had men enough to maintain the Assault, and at the same time to intercept such petty succours as those: so that those hundred Gentlemen were almost all cut to pieces with very little resistance; a panic fear having made them blind to their own safety, and honour, excepting Matelet, who bravely fight as fortunately escaped. Thus was Calais lost, the King himself in a manner looking on; after which Guines and Ham were carried without resistance: successes with which Rhosne being yet unsatisfied, he had moreover the confidence to undertake the Siege of Ardres, which the same day that la Fere was surrendered to the King, surrendered also to him; as if he had been in fee with Fortune, and that she had been obliged to give him all the respite was necessary for the execution of his Designs: for in effect, the same day that concluded the Cardinal's Conquests, had in all probability determined of his honour, and put a ruinous period to all his Affairs, had his successes gone on with never so little a slower pace. The King in the whole course of his life, Anno 1597. was never perhaps more astonished, and afflicted, than at these disgraces; and his great spirit was prone enough to prompt him on to an immediate revenge, by obstinately settling himself to the recovery of the Places he had lately lost, since the Cardinal's sudden retreat had put him out of all possibility of fight: but his prudence laying before him the difficulty of the enterprise, he rather chose to give his Army some refreshment, which had been tired out with the tedious Siege of la Fere, than anew to expose them to other dangers, and such as were like enough to be the ruin of them all. Wherefore having distributed them into the most commodious quarters upon the Frontier, to be in readiness against the next fair season, he left the Marshal de Byron to command them, with order upon the first opportunity, to enter into the Enemy's Country, and to make them feel his Majesty's Arms, whilst himself retired to Paris, to consult with his Subjects, about the means he was to pursue in the vindication of his own, and the Nations honour, for the Attempts the Enemy had made upon his Crown, and Kingdom. The King being come to Paris, and either not expecting, or not finding that readiness, or ability he expected in his own people; who having been harrass'd, and impoverished with past mischiefs, were now very unfit to supply him with money, proportionable to the greatness of his designs: he saw he must of necessity have recourse to Strangers, his ancient Confederates, and Allies: to which purpose he dispatched away Ambassadors to Elizabeth Queen of England, to the States of Holland, and to some Princes of Germany; during which Negotiations, the Pope, who from the month of September, 1595. had given the King Absolution in the persons of Messieurs du Perron, and d' Ossat, his Majesty's Agents at Rome, desiring now to see an effectual re-establishment of the Catholic Religion in France, and a reformation of such abuses as were crept into the Church, during the disorders of the Kingdom, resolved upon sending a Legate at this time, to appoint what was necessary to be done for his entire satisfaction. The Pope sends his Legate into France. Neither was this the only, though the principal end of this dispatch, this good, and holy Pope having further a design to set on foot a Treaty of Accommodation betwixt the two Crowns; conceiving he did not fully discharge the Duty of the Common Father of Christians, if, after having given repose to the King's Conscience, he did not also procure a good, and lasting Peace, betwixt two the greatest Princes of the Holy Church. To this good end Cardinal de Medicis the Pope's Legate failed not, according to his Instructions, so soon as he arrived in France, to offer some propositions of Reconciliation betwixt the two Crowns; which, though well received by the King, yet did they not hinder him from making his preparations for a smart, and vindictive War: he had (as has been said) renewed his Alliances with his Confederates, and had further called an Assembly of several the most intelligent persons of his Kingdom, by their joint advice to find out the most easy, and indifferent ways of raising money upon his people for the prosecution of the War; which Assembly, by reason of the Plague which was that year exceeding rise in Paris, being not conveniently there to be Assembled, his Majesty transferred it to Rouen, An Assembly at Rouen. where they opened their Session in October, and continued it to the beginning of the ensuing year. The Duke of Espernon had the honour to attend his Majesty in this Voyage, and was also made privy to whatsoever passed in the Assembly, where many grave directions were proposed for the Reformation of several Abuses that were practised in all parts of the Kingdom; but very little satisfaction to the King concerning money, which was the main design in calling that Assembly, rather than reformation of abuses: which notwithstanding his Majesty wounded with the grief of his losses, what by husbanding his Revenue, what by lessening his Expense, by augmentations upon his Farms, and other extraordinary ways made shift to get up such a stock, as was enough to set a powerful Army on foot, and such a one as should be sufficient to repair all his former disgraces. After the dissolution of this Assembly, his Majesty retiring himself for some indisposition into the Air of the Country, the Duke of Espernon conceived he could not take a fitter opportunity than this, to ask leave to go look after his own particular Affairs, and to settle his Governments in a posture of Security, and Obedience; a request no sooner made to the King, but that he gave his free consent, dismissing the Duke with all demonstration of respect and kindness; and than it was that his Patent was sealed for the Government of Limousin, instead of Provence, and dated at Folembray, a house of Pleasure, to which his Majesty had retired himself to provide for his health at greater liberty and ease. With this new Commission the Duke then departed from Court towards Angoulesme, where his Children were bred, which he had scarce seen since their Birth, especially the youngest whom he had never seen; a motive of itself sufficient for a longer Journey: but neither the repose the Duke intended to take, nor the vacation his Majesty intended to give, were of any long continuance; for he was scarce arrived at Angoulesme, when he received a Dispatch under the Kings own hand (his Majesty not at all thinking it below his Greatness, that his Nobility should receive the Honour of his Commands immediately from himself) wherein he acquainted him with the surprisal of Amiens, as also of his resolution suddenly to sit down before it, for the recovery of so important a place: at the same time conjuring him to make all possible haste to come, and serve him in so glorious an occasion. I shall not here enlarge myself in a relation of this surprise, it being an action that made so much noise at that time, and that gave to great a reputation to * He is called by jean de Serres, He●n●nl 〈◊〉. Hernando-Telles Portocarrero, who was the contriver and executor of it, that there is scarce any Historian of our own, or any other Nation, who has not particularly insisted upon this, above any other enterprise of the like nature; wherein they all agree that it was a design the best contrived, the braveliest carried on, and the most fortunately performed of any whatever of that kind. The nearness of this place to Paris, it being but three little days journey from thence, having alarmed the Parisians to such a degree, that they thought the Spaniard already at their Gates, begat such clamours, and public complaints amongst the people, that every one made very bold with the Royal Name, accusing the King, as if he had held intelligence with the Enemy, and as if he alone were the Author of this mischance: so that as if his Majesty had not been sufficiently afflicted with the loss of this City (which more concerned him, than them all) he must also endure the unjust reproaches of his Subjects; the little respite he had taken for the recovery of his health, passing, in minds prepossessed with fear, for supineness, and sloth; and his love to the Duchess of Beaufort giving every one occasion to censure, and condemn his Passions, by which, they said, he lay buried in negligence, and pleasure, whilst the Enemy was in action, taking, and surprising his best Towns, and Cities. It was therefore necessary for the King without further delay to betake himself again to Arms, and that (equally stirred up by his own immediate danger, and the clamours of his people) he should abandon the care of his health, to go expose his life to the hazards of War and Sickness. It was upon the tenth day of March, that Amiens had been surprised, upon notice whereof, his Majesty without loss of time, had writ to the Marshal de Byron, (who (as has been said) he had left upon the Frontier) that he should with all expedition, gather the Army together, and to sit down before Amiens to begin the Siege. A command that could not have been sent to a more diligent, a braver, or more able Soldier; and one, who so well knew how to manage such Engines, and provisions of War, as the King (who himself was advanced as far as Corbie) had taken care to send him; that his Majesty a● his arrival before the place found nothing wanting, or undone, he could at a distance have desired; or have ordered himself, had he been there in person. A diligence his Majesty did highly, and publicly commend, giving the Marshal a very noble Character for the progress he had made in his works, and approaches, which could not have been performed by any with greater care, courage, and conduct, according to all the Rules and Discipline of War. Neither is it to be denied, but that Byron served the King as bravely, as is to be imagined upon this occasion: wherein he also knew well enough, if not too well, his own merit; his brave Service in this, and other occasions having raised him to that degree of presumption, and insolence, that he afterwards, by his saucy reproaches to the King his Master, deprived himself of those Honours, and Rewards, his Valour might otherwise, with great justice have expected; and his vanity converting those actions, which modestly carried would have been his immortal glory, into the instruments of his disgrace, and ruin: of which in its due place I shall give a more full account, as also of every circumstance that helped to precipitate him into those misfortunes whereinto he afterwards fell: and that because his Interests went, for many years' hand in hand, with those of the Duke of Espernon, they two being linked together in an extraordinary strict League of Affection, and Friendship. The King during his abode at Corbie, having taken care to send such numbers of men, as the Marshal de Byron stood in need of for carrying on the Siege, returned back to Paris, there to take order about Artillery for the Leaguer, and money for the support of his Army; when all things being ready in june, his Majesty accompanied with the Duke of Montpensier, the Count de Soissons, the Constable de Montmorency, the Duke of Mayenne, the Prince of joinville, and many other Lords of great quality, advanced himself to the Siege. Cardinal Bentivoglio, who is very exact in the description of this Leaguer, has, amongst the rest, named the Duke of Espernon for one of those who attended his Majesty in this expedition: a mistake I do not so much wonder at in him, who of necessity must take many things upon trust, as I do at d'Avila, who says the same thing, and yet pretends to have been present, and wounded at this Siege; when it is most certain the Duke was not there. I would not willingly deprive him of any honour is his due; neither would I attribute to him contrary to the known truth, things wherein he had no share: but the truth is, the Duke was so long in making his preparation, and would come in so handsome an equipage to the Army, that it was two days after the surrender of the place, before he came up to the King: The Duke of Espernon comes to the King at Amiens. perhaps one of the worst occurrences, and that did him the greatest prejudice of any that befell him in his whole life; it being certain, that if, in this expedition, he had by greater diligence expressed to his Majesty the real Passion he had for his Service, he had so blotted out of his memory, all former jealousies, and discontents, that no ill office could ever after have done him harm: whereas his Enemies took now occasion to possess the King, that he had either stayed to expect the issue of this Siege, to make his own use of such disorders in the State, as must necessarily attend any ill success; or that (at the best) he had a mind the Royal Affairs should fall into the last necessity, by that means to put a greater value upon his own Service: So that although he arrived very seasonably for the recruit of the Royal Army, very much tired, and worn out with the length of the Siege, and that he brought along with him 300. Horse, an hundred and fifty Harquebusiers on horseback, and four Regiments of Foot, as well equipt as men could be: yet was not his reception such, as he had good reason to expect, his zeal to the Service having made him lose the honour of the Service itself. It was nevertheless but two days after the King's entry into Amiens, that the Duke came up to the Army; by which it appears he did not in his Government lie expecting the event of the Siege, having been a month upon his March; neither did he long lie idle after he was come, for ambitious by some notable Action to make amends for his former default, A surprise designed upon Arras. he meditated a surprise upon Arras; an enterprise that having been communicated to Marshal Byron, the manner of it was soon concluded on betwixt them, and as soon consented to by the King, who by his own presence would favour the success. His Majesty after the surrender of Amiens stayed no longer there than was requisite for the ceremony of his entry, but put himself immediately in pursuit of the Enemy; to let them see, that notwithstanding he had been so drained of men, he was yet strong enough to remove the Scene of War to their own doors; when, being advanced with his Army as far as Arras, the Duke of Espernon took those Forces he had brought, and advanced to give a Scalado to a Fort, that was a little separated from the main wall of the City; which he assaulted with such vigour and bravery in his own person, that his men encouraged by his example soon made themselves masters of the place. A success that gave the Inhabitants, and Garrison of Arras so great an Alarm, that they all ran to that side to beat the Duke back, and to secure that part of their Walls; where betwixt them the conflict grew so hot, that the Marshal de Byron, who was at the same time to Petard one of the Gates of the City, had all leisure to perform it, without any danger from the Curtain. And accordingly his first Petard played, and to so good effect, that it laid all flat, which shut up the Raveline: The second beat down the Drawbridge, and carried away the bottom of the Portcullis itself, though by the Petards being fixed too low, the perpendicular Bars remained yet long enough to defend the passage, when the third Petard being brought up (which doubtless had it played, had put an end to the Dispute) and the Engineer just ready to give fire, he was from the top of the Gate taken upon the head with a stone; by which blow Man and Engine were both beaten headlong into the Ditch: an accident by which they were put to look out for another, but in vain. there being never another to be found. In the mean time the Duke of Espernon, who was still fight with the Enemy, had no little to do to make head against the Forces of so great, and populous a City; which nevertheless he bravely did until the Marshal de Byron sending him word of his misfortune, desired him to retire, as himself was constrained to do for want of a fourth Petard. Aubigné is the man, 〈◊〉. of all our Historians that makes mention of this Enterprise, where he adds one thing that is very remarkable, and very true, and that is, that the Marshal enraged to the last degree, at the miscarriage of so brave a design, went up and down cursing, and swearing, and railing at the King before all the Army, and almost to his own face, that he had made him fail in the conquest of so important a place for want of a Petard, accusing him of Avarice, where his Honour and Safety were concerned; whilst he was prodigiously Profuse in the entertainment of his Mistresses, and in the procurements of his own desires: Language, that, how indiscreetly soever spoken, was maliciously enough soon conveyed to the King's ear, and which I have heard the Duke say, perhaps sowed the first seeds of hatred in his Majesty's heart against him: Neither did the Duke fail, like a true friend, to conjure him into a better government of his passion, left his wild tongue might at some time or other, be the instrument of his own ruin; although whatever power he might have with him in other things, (as with a man that still mindful of the Duke's past obligations, when his favour had given him many opportunities to express his affection to him, was much at his devotion) yet could he never so govern the unbridled fierceness of his 〈◊〉; but that he would break often out into extravagancies of that kind. As the surprisal of Amiens had suspended all propositions of Peace, Anno 1598. that had before been preferred by the Pope's Legate, so did the retaking of it (almost of course) set them again on foot; for the Spaniard seeing he had not been able to keep a place of that importance when he had it in his hands, and apprehending by that, the King's Power (which had been sufficiently manifested at this Siege) would now extend itself into their own Territories, to the danger of their strongest, and best Towns, of themselves renewed the interrupted Treaty of Peace; in order whereunto, the Deputies of both Crowns being met at Veruins, it was there, to their common satisfaction happily concluded. That which I observe to be most remarkable in this Peace, is, that the King, what necessity soever there was upon him of regulating the disorders of his own Kingdom, which were many (a thing never to be well done in the confusions of War) would notwithstanding never consent his Deputies should meet to Treat, till first the King of Spain had given him assurance, that all the places had been taken from him in this last War should be restored: His Majesty choosing rather to expose his Person, and Kingdom to the uncertain event of another War, than that his Crown should suffer the lest prejudice by a Treaty of Peace; 〈◊〉 although he had hitherto been the loser, yet did ●is courage 〈◊〉 him hope so well of his Fortune, as to believe he should in the end bring her over to his own side. So brisk an Article as this at first dash, and before the King would proceed to any further Treaty, it is to be supposed would startle the Spanish Gravity, and must reasonably meet with great difficulty, as it did in the Councils of War, and Privy Council of Spain, it being evident that, in this demand, the King would impose upon them who were the Conquerors the same conditions he should have done, had they been already overcome, which made it suffer a long Debate, though at last it was condescended to; The peace concluded 〈◊〉 Veruins. and that being granted, no other difficulties were likely to arise: so that this happy Peace was Concluded, and Signed by the Commissioners on both sides, the second of May 1598. By the Articles of this Treaty the King was to restore the County of Charolois, to the King of Spain, to be by him held of the Crown of France; who in exchange restored the Towns of Calais, Ardres, Monthulin, Dourlens, lafoy Capelle, and le Catelet in Picardy, and Blavet in Britanny: which Articles were Ratified, and Signed by his Majesty the eleventh of june; who in gaiety of humour, at so happy a conclusion, told the Duke of Espernon, That with one dash of his Pen he had done greater things, than he could of a long time have performed with the best Swords of his Kingdom. This Peace was no sooner concluded, but that the Court put on a Face far different from that wherewith it had appeared when shaded, and overcast, with the tumult and trouble of War and Business: nothing now was to be seen, but State, and Lustre; nor was any thing now thought on, but Feasting, and Mirth, which also was much added to, by the celebration of several Marriages, which were at this time consummate betwixt some persons of the greatest quality of the Kingdom: The Marriage of the Duke of Montpensur with Katherine de joyeuse, now Duchess of Guise, and Niece to the Duke of Espernon. For Katherine the King's only Sister was Married to the Duke of Bar, Son to the Duke of Lorain; and Henry of Bourbon Duke of Montpensier Married Katherine de ●oyeuse, with many other Marriages betwixt Persons of great Quality, that were also solemnised at the same time: but it not being my design to meddle with those wherein the Duke of Espernon was not immediately concerned, I shall only insist upon that of the Duke of Montpensier who contracting himself to so near a Relation of the Duke's, that he, in a manner supplied the place of a Father to her, it will be necessary I should say something of the reasons, and conclusion of this particular Match. The King since the Duke's return from Provence, had never exceeded to him the favour of mere justice; he had, it is true, left him free in the enjoyment of his Offices, his Estate, and Degree, without doing him any the least injury in any thing that was his just, and immediate right: But as to the rest, his Majesty not being able to forget his formentioned discontents against him, he thought he did him a signal favour, in that he forbore to do him any public disgrace. In this condition, the Duke, who saw himself seated at Court in a station far inferior to that wherein he had formerly been, suffered not a little in his own bosom from the King's coldness, and indifferency to him: yet concealing his discontent with the true respect he ought to pay his Prince, and Master, he avoided, at least, all occasions (the only refuge of a suspected Minister) that might any way bring him into a greater disgrace: Yet even in this condition his fortune would not forsake him, who, when all other means seemed to be lost, that could probably restore him to any degree of his former prosperity, sprung him a new tide to his stranded greatness, and such an one, as not only lifted him off those sands wherein he was like to sink, and perish, but raised him again to such a reputation, as was no little support to his declining name, and power. Kat●arine de joyeuse (whom I have already named) was only Daughter and Heir to the Count de Bouchage, and Katherine de Nogaret, and de la Valette, the Duke of Espernon's Sister; a young Lady, that besides the advantages of her Birth, and Beauty, was also Mi●tr●●● of very great possessions, having to her paternal Estate added that of the great Favourite the Duke of joyeuse, as she also was in expectation of that of the Cardinal de joyeuse her Uncle; which reckoned altogether must needs make up so vast an estate, as must without dispute, entitle her the greatest Fortune of France. The Duke of Montpensier likewise, as born a Prince of the Blood, was also in high consideration, wherein the advantage of his Fortune concurred with the eminency of his Birth, he having alone a greater Revenue, than all the other Princes of the Blood: to which his Valour, Liberality, and Courtesy, with other good qualities he was Master of, had raised him to a very great esteem with the King, and made him no less a Favourite to the People: so that he was not only the Aim and Ambition of the best Matches of France; but stood also in the prospect of some Foreign Princes: Amongst these the Duke of Lorain proceeded so far, as to offer him his Daughter (who was afterwards Married to the Duke of Cleve's) with eight hundred thousand Crowns to her Dowry: a proposition that, being debated in the Duke of Montpensier's Council, was very much liked of by some of his Servants, who advised him to prefer this Match to the other Inheretrix of the House of joyeuse; the fortune of the last, being part of it yet depending; whereas the offers of the Duke of Lorain being present, and effectual, would very much advance his Affairs, and establish his greatness at great liberty and ease. I have been informed, and that by a person of Quality, who was consulted about this business, that one main reason which induced this Prince to prefer Madam●iselle de joyeuse before the other, was the consideration of the Duke of Esperno●, because in marrying her, he conceived he should at the same time espouse her Uncle's Interests; from whose Authority he promised to himself greater assistance, and support, than from any other Peer of the Kingdom. A consideration that, prevailing above all other with the Duke of Montpensier, disposed him determinately to resolve upon this Match, to which, by a particular li●ing, he was before inclined. Wherefore having without further deliberation caused it, by some Friends of his, to be proposed to the Duke of Espernon, the motion was by him, who took it for a great honour, received with all imaginable respect, and as readily consented to; by which the Duke being encouraged, proceeded further to move it to the King himself; not without some apprehension nevertheless, that the aversion his Majesty daily discovered to the Duke might raise some difficulties at the first overture of his design, though his fear proved vain: for his Majesty seeing it would be a Match of considerable advantage to his Kinsman, and in his heart acknowledging the Duke of Espernon to be a Subject of great merit, though, for some private discontents, not very acceptable to himself, was not unwilling to oblige both the one, and the other, by giving his free consent. By this Marriage the Duke of Espernon's Affairs were not a little improved, and if, on the one side, he (by the consideration of his desert) had preferred his Niece before the Daughter of a Sovereign Prince; she on the other side, by a very good return was acquit of that obligation, by introducing her Uncle into the relation and support of a great Prince of the Blood, by whose means he was soon after honoured with a very near alliance to the Royal Family. The Feasting, Anno 1599 and other entertainments of the Court, did not so wholly take up the King, that his Majesty was not nevertheless very intent upon his Affairs, he had a mind to see an end of the Treaty with Savoy, which was not yet dispatched, though it had been comprised in the Peace concluded betwixt the two Crowns at Veruins: The Duke of Savoy had desired some respite to consider before he would Seal; which having been granted to him, and he not being able to persuade himself to the restitution of those places he had, contrary to the public Faith, surprised during the disorders of the State, as by the Articles of the Treaty he had been obliged to do: he had no mind, to put a thing to Arbitration he was certain that way never to obtain, and that he was likewise resolved never to part withal. The Pope whom himself had named Arbiter of all differences betwixt the King, and him, was so far disobliged by the diffidence he had manifested of his equal judgement (which the Duke had cunningly published to that end) that his Holiness had excused himself from intermeddling any more betwixt them; a thing that having fallen out according to the Duke of Savoy's hearts desire, he resolved now upon a Journey into France, to try if by his submissions to the King, his dexterity with his Ministers, or his liberalities in his Court, he could not procure, or purchase that, to which he could with no show of equity otherwise pretend: but all his policy proved vain, and his hopes were deluded, as they were like to be in a Court where the King himself was alone the greatest, and wisest part of the Council; he must first corrupt him, or at least very much deceive him, before he could persuade him to consent to any thing prejudicial to his Crown, and Honour. The Duke of Savoy then, being able to effect nothing by artifice, resolved at last upon returning into his own Dukedom: yet, that his Journey might not be altogether without fruit, he first caused the Marshal de Byron to be dealt withal, a man whom he conceived his many discontents had laid open to his temptation; and him he first tasted by Lafin, the same who had made himself a Mediator betwixt the Duke of Espernon and l'Esdiguieres in Provence, The Duke of Savoy begins to practice with the Marshal de Byron. and who therein had abused them both. This fellow of a turbulent unquiet Spirit, and one of those who had rather be doing mischief, than not to be doing at all, was of late wriggled into the Duke of Savoy's Favour, and had tasted of his bounty; by which he was qualified to offer from the Duke one of his Daughters to the Marshal de Byron in Marriage, and with her several Signories to be held in Sovereignty, with the assistance of the Forces both of Spain, and Savoy, to maintain him in Burgundy: A Province contiguous to their own Territories. Allurements so fitted to Birons ambitious and mutinous nature, that he lent a willing ear to those dangerous propositions, and, as some have believed, engaged himself without much Ceremony in the Treason, which proved at last his dishonour and ruin. This practice with Byron was the only thing the Duke of Savoy, with all his policy, effected in France: which nevertheless he thought to be of such moment, as made him afterwards refuse to give the King that satisfaction he had promised, and so to build upon the confidence of Biron's revolt, that having, before his departure from Paris, engaged either to surrender to his Majesty the Marquisate of Saluzzo, or la Bresse, with other Dominions at his own choice in lieu thereof, and within three months' time to perform it; he had now no more regard to his word: neither would do the one nor the other, which obliged the King to seek that satisfaction by force of Arms, he could by no other means obtain, as he evidently saw by the delays and equivocations of this subtle Prince. His Majesty had before he resolved upon this expedition been sufficiently informed of what means had been used to corrupt the Marshal de Byron: but whether it were that he really believed the Marshal had been deaf to all such propositions; or that by the testimony of an entire confidence in his Loyalty this generous Prince would oblige a Subject to continue firm in his duty, who by his brave Service had deserved so well of the Crown, and to look back into his error, before he was gone too far; he gave him the Command of an Army against the Duke of Savoy himself, with orders to enter by the way of his own Government of Burgundy into Bress; in which employment Byron so well concealed his practice, and so smartly pursued the War, that no action of his confessed, the least intelligence with the Enemy. L'Esdiguieres also, who at the same time entered by the way of Dauphiné into Savoy, by his Valour, and conduct made so considerable advances into that Duchy, that betwixt them in few days all the Territories the Savoyard possessed on this side the Alps, were overrun by the Royal Arms, except Montmelian, which was not but by Siege to be reduced. It was in this occasion of Montmelian that the Duke of Esperpernon did the King a very signal service: A place reputed so strong, and that had been so fortified, and furnished, with all provisions of War by the Duke of Savoy, that he was nothing startled at his other losses, as supposing this City to be an inexpugnable Bulwark against whatever could be attempted against him. A confidence wherein he found himself very much mistaken; for the Duke of Espernon having the command of one quarter at this Siege, as Byron and L' Esdiguieres had of the other two, whilst they were on all hands busy in their approaches, found opportunity sometimes to confer with the Count de Brandis Governor of the place, interviews, that being frequent, and allowed by the King, wrought at last so good an effect, that the Governor promised to surrender the City to the King, if within a month the Duke of Savoy did not raise the Siege. A Capitulation of that dangerous importance to the Duke that he laboured by all possible ways, during the limited term to persuade the Governor into a better resolution, and had so wrought upon him, what by entreaty, promises, and threats, that he was grown infinitely wavering, and uncertain what to do; which notwithstanding the Duke of Espernon who had drawn the first plot of this great design, happily brought it to perfection in the end; he absolutely confirmed by his persuasion the anxious Count in the terms of his first Treaty, and thereupon received new Hostages from him: by which dexterity he rendered himself the principal, and most effectual instrument of his Majesty's victories in that Country, as also of the Peace which immediately followed the Surrender of this important City. Whilst the King's Designs succeeded at this fortunate rate in this little Dukedom, the Princes of Italy apprehending, that after the ruin of the Duke of Savoy, the sweetness, and facility of that Conquest would tempt the King to advance further into the Country to seek new Victories, were instant with the Pope to interpose his Authority with the King, to dispose his Majesty to accept of satisfaction from the Duke of Savoy for what had passed, that an Accommodation might ensue: to which his Holiness being inclined, both by his own interests (which could by no means admit of a War in Italy) and by the importunity of the Princes of the Country, The Cardinal Aldobrandino sent by the Pope into France. he dispatched away Cardinal Aldobrandino his own Nephew to the King, to be in his name the Mediator of this Peace, as the Cardinal de Medicis had been before of that which had been concluded with Spain. Never Prince came from that Country in a prouder Equipage, nor with a more honourable train, than did this Cardinal; a Magnificence to which his Majesty being willing to hold proportion, both in regard to his own greatness, as also to express thereby a greater respect to the Pope (to whom he was highly obliged) in the person of a Kinsman so near, and dear unto him, he made choice of the Duke of Espernon, amongst all the other Grandees of his Court, to be the man should receive him; and that because he both knew him to be a person very acceptable to the Holy Sea, as also one who knew as well how to behave himself for his Master's honour, as any whoever, that was about his person. Neither did the Duke deceive his Majesty in his choice; he received the Cardinal at the head of the Army, which before had been drawn up into Battalia for that purpose, accompanied with the most sprightly and gay Nobility, and Gentry of the Court, conducting him with infinite demonstrations of Honour, and Respect through the several divisions, until he brought him into the presence of the King himself; and though I must tell you by the way, that the Duke's imperious, and haughty humour was naturally very averse to the humility of Compliment, and the submission of excessive Civilities; yet when such an occasion as this obliged him to it; no man of his time could perform such a Ceremony with a better grace: and doubtless, if at ordinary times he would have been more liberal of his courtesy, and have added that to those other excellent qualities, which made him admired by all, he might have acquired thereby what Friends and Servants he had pleased. Soon after the Legat's arrival the Peace of Savoy was concluded, The Peace with Savoy concluded. wherein a Prince, whose interest it was to recover his own Dominions almost entirely overrun by the King's Victorious Arms, was now to redeem his own with what he had surreptitiously, and contrary to the public Faith snatched from the King, during the disorders of his Kingdom, and which his Majesty was now also ready to force from him, as he had already done the greatest part of his own hereditary Territories in pursuit of that Quarrel: So that the Duke of Savoy bought his Peace at a cheap rate through the Pope's timely mediation, and all things were accommodated that were in dispute betwixt the King, and him: although his Majesty, who very well knew what little trust was to be reposed in the Faith of this Prince (a man that would never keep his word when it was for his advantage to break it) would by no means be persuaded to withdraw his Army out of his Dukedom, till first the Articles of the Treaty were performed. But it neither suiting with decency, nor the dignity of his Majesty's Royal Person himself to attend the execution of a thing already concluded, he returned into France, leaving the command of his Army to the Count de Soissons, offering at the same time the command of Lieutenant General to the Duke of Espernon who excused himself; having taken up a resolution never to serve under less than the Person of a King; as hitherto he had never done, nor ever after did in the whole course of his life. The Duke of Espernon leaves the Court to go into Angoumois, and goes into Guienne. He therefore went back with the King, whom he attended as far as Grenoble; from whence when his Majesty departed for Lions to consummate his Marriage, he at the same time took his leave to return again into his Governments of Xaintonge and Angoumois. The Duke's journey into that Country gave him opportunity to pass over into Gascony to view the Progress of his Building there, Anno 1600. of which he had laid the foundation at Cadillac in the year 1598. For the King, after he had concluded the Peace with Spain, from that time forwards, not only wholly bend his own thoughts to the Embellishment of his Kingdom (in which his principal design was first to Build his Houses, and to Beautify Paris with many great and noble Structures; for at this time the Buildings of the Lovure, Fountain-bleau, and other Royal Palaces were begun; as also the designs of the Pontneuf, the Place Royal, with other proud and stately AEdifices were continued) but would likewise that other men should fall in love with the same humour; and whether it were that his Majesty had a mind his greatest Subjects should by his example employ themselves in the same designs, or that he intended (as some have supposed) insensibly to drain their purses by this chargeable employment; fearing perhaps that too great abundance of wealth might make them more apt to entertain thoughts, and practices, that might discompose the calm of Peace his Kingdom was now settled in: but so it was, that for one or both these reasons, he engaged the greatest part of his Nobility, whom he knew to be moneyed men, in vast designs of this kind: amongst whom his Majesty conceiving the Duke of Espernon to be one the most at his ease, he was so importunate with him, as to cause a plot for Cadillac to be designed in his own Presence, ordered the charge of the whole to be cast up, and made one of his own Architects to undertake for an hundred thousand Crowns to begin, and perfect the work; upon which assurance the Duke (as has been said) in the year 1598. began the foundation; conceiving that such a sum, as that, he might without inconvenience spare to gratify his Master's humour; though time afterwards gave him to understand how hard a thing it is to contain a man's self within a determinate charge, after he has once set his hand to so tempting a work as Building: this Pile, before it was finished, having cost him above two millions of Livres. 'Tis very true, (and which seldom happens to undertakers of such vast designs) that with this infinite expense, he brought the greatest, and most stately pile of Building (the Royal Houses excepted) in France, very near to perfection, the whole body of the Building being perfected before his death, and nothing, save some few Ornaments left to finish; neither had he left those to his Successors, had not the disgrace of being withdrawn from his Government, which still afflicted him, diverted his thoughts from the sole care of that design. The Duke (as has been said) being come into Guienne to take a view of his Building, A dispute betwixt the the Duke and the Mareschald' Ornane. arrived at the City of Bourdeaux in the beginning of August, where he found the Marshal d' Ornano, but newly there established Lieutenant for the King by the decease of the Marshal de Matignon, who died of an Apoplexy, and where their old Animosities, though great, were nevertheless on both sides so well dissembled, as not to hinder a mutual Civility betwixt them, no more than these civilities could hinder past jealousies from breaking out upon the first occasion into a new and open rupture. This Marshal though an Alien born, had yet by his Valour and Fidelity acquired so great a reputation in France, as in the Reign of Henry the III. to be a great confident to that Prince; to whom the Duke of Espernon having been a principal Favourite, it is nothing strange, that a man of inferior credit should envy another in a higher degree of Favour: neither if the Marshal were prepossessed with this antiquated jealousy, was the Duke on his part insensible of the recent traverses he had in Provence received from him; the greatest part of the disgraces he had met with in that Country having been laid in his way by the opposition of l' Esdiguieres, and him: all which put together, it may easily be imagined were likely to beget no very good blood between them. To this the Marshal, a man of an imperious, and haughty temper, and who only under a forced smoothness concealed a natural arrogance, could with no patience endure a Superior; an humour that made him with great anxiety look upon the Honours, which at the Duke's arrival at Bordeaux, he received from the Parliament, with the other Orders of the City, and which were also continued to him by the Nobility at Cadillac, who from all parts came in to do him Honour: But if his impatience were great before, it was raised up to the height, when he knew the Duke (who well informed of his dissatisfaction, to make it yet more) had invited all the Nobility, and Gentry of the Country to Bourdeaux to a public running at the Ring; a solemnity that being there to be kept where he was in Supreme Command, the Duke knew would much more nettle, and afflict him. It is very true, that the Duke might have forborn this Bravado to a man, whom he knew to be so tender of his Honour, as the Marshal d' Ornano was; and perhaps it was not well done to offer that to another, he himself would never have endured from any man living in a place where he had commanded in Chief: but having once engaged in the business, his great spirit (whatever might succeed) would by no means give him leave to desist, especially when he knew the Marshal was resolved by open force to oppose him. This was that, which made what was before only a private discontent, to break out into open quarrel, which grew so high that the Marshal addressed himself to the Parliament; where, in the presence of them all, he complained what a commotion the Duke went about to stir up amongst the people, to the prejudice, as he pretended, of his Majesty's Affairs; acquainting them at the same time with his resolution to make his Garrison stand to their Arms, to play his Cannon, and in fine to do what in him lay, with all the power, and authority he had to break that appointment, and to drive the Duke from the City. This declaration from a man of his furious spirit, as it very much troubled the whole Assembly, so it gave the first Precedent D' Affis (one of the greatest men that Society ever had since its first institution, and a particular friend of the Duke's, having by him in his times of favour been raised to that dignity) occasion to make use of his Eloquence in the best Arguments he could contrive to dissuade the Marshal from that determination; but all in vain, he had already given out his orders, and summoned the Gentry to come in to his assistance, though not a man, save only one called Ruat, would appear: a thing, which though perfectly true, appears almost incredible, that a Governor of so great Authority and Repute should be able to procure no more than one single man, to serve him against the Duke of Espernon in his own Government. Neither were the people better disposed, than the Nobility and Gentry, to take Arms against the Duke; all men on the contrary, of any note, both within, and without the City, so manifestly appearing for him, that the Governor was forced to arm his Garrison of Corpse's, and to call his Company of Gens-d'Armes out of their Country Quarters into the Town, which were yet apparently too weak to execute the Marshal's design. And this was in effect the main cause that hindered things from proceeding into a greater disorder, the Duke, satisfied with the advantage every one plainly saw he had over his Enemy, being the more easily inclined to the Parliaments solicitations; who had sent their second Precedent Nesmond to him, to entreat he would not persist in his first resolution: at whose instance, and being loath to disturb the Peace of his Country, as also to expose the great number of Gentlemen of Quality, who were about him against a Garrison in his own particular quarrel, and having a greater inclination to decide it in his own person (when it might be done with less noise and tumult) with the Marshal man to man, he was content to let things rest, till a fitter opportunity, and quietly departed the City to his own house. In this Journey to Cadillac he was accompanied with Precedent Nesmond, a Gentleman of great merit, and his particular friend (for whom after the death of Precedent D' Affis he obtained the Dignity of first Precedent during the Regency of the Queen Mother) with many other Principal Members of that Parliament and City; whither he was no sooner come, but that the Gentry of the Higher Gascony, at the report of this Quarrel, flocked to him in so great a number, that scarce any occasion could have happened, wherein his interest in that Country could have been more manifestly seen. And here the Duke, environed with so many of his Friends, passed his time in that jollity and mirth, and appeared so little concerned at any thing that had passed betwixt the Marshal d' Ornano and him, as made every one certainly believe all had been absolutely forgot: where, after having spent some days, and his company being retired to their own houses, he himself also departed to go visit his paternal estate, and from thence to Tholouse. From hence it was, that whilst every one thought him more intent upon his recreations, than mindful of his quarrel, he dispatched away a Page of his called Talanges, who continued long after in his Service, to the Marshal d' Ornano with a Challenge, which I will here present my Reader word for word, as I transcribed it from the original draught under the Duke's own hand; wherein, though there be no studied stile, there is nevertheless something of a natural, and easy bluntness, that methinks sounds better, than if it had been couched with greater care and art: the words are these. Sir, I make no doubt, but that, when the toy took you to commit the action, and to make the bustle you did against me at Bourdeaux, the last of August, you did then believe, knowing me for such, as the men of Honour of this Kingdom know me to be, that that Carriage of yours must needs give me a just desire to talk with you, as indeed I passionately do, and that after the manner commonly practised by men of honour of my Profession; which is the reason I have sent this Page on purpose to let you know, that I am going to Court, where I shall wait four months in expectation, either by return of this Bearer, or by what other honourable way you shall think fit, of an assignment from you, of a day, and place where I may have the happiness to embrace you in your Shirt, with the Arms of a Cavalier, which are a Sword, and Poignard: that I may there let you see it is not in the power of a Corpse to affront a Gentleman of France, who remains yours to serve you as much as by the courtesy you have showed to him he stands obliged. From Tholouse the 7th. of September. Signed, I. Lewis de la Valette. And in a Postscript, I do assure you upon my Faith, that no one living knows a syllable of what I have written to you, not the Page himself; and I do believe you to be so much a man of Honour, as to carry it with the same secrecy. The Page arrived in a disguise at Bourdeaux, where he found opportunity to deliver his Letter, and, without being discovered by any, returned to seek out his Master at Paris: but the Mareschals action had made such a noise, that (what secrecy soever could be used) it was hardly possible, but it must come to the King's knowledge; and accordingly at the Duke's arrival at Court, his Majesty questioned him about it, when, although the Duke made a show of being wholly unconcerned, yet his Majesty having had intelligence, by other hands, than either by the Duke, or any of his people of the Challenge that had passed, positively commanded him to engage his word that things should proceed no further; promising him withal, that he should have all satisfaction he could himself in Honour desire: a thing the Duke in obedience to his Master's absolute pleasure could by no means refuse; though by some Libels that came out after in the Mareschals name, he was infinitely exasperated, and desired nothing more, than to come to the decision of Arms. The Marshal was soon after summoned to Court, Anno 1601. where being arrived, and his Majesty having heard both parties concerning the occasion of their Quarrel, ordered for the Duke this satisfaction: which Writing I found in the same bundle with the Challenge. That which was said by the Marshal d' Ornano in the presence of the King, to the Duke of Espernon. My Lord, To explain myself, The King reconciles the Duke and the Marshal. and to satisfy you concerning what lately passed at Bourdeaux, I shall in the first place assure you, that I never knew, or esteemed you for other, than his Majesty's most faithful Subject, and Servant; that such I ever have, and ever shall declare you to be. It is very true that a jealousy, some flying rumours, which I too easily believed, possessed me withal, made me do things, which having found those reports altogether false, I have since been very much afflicted at, I never having any intention to offend you; and I could wish I had given a great deal I had never done them: I do therefore entreat you to excuse me, and to believe me to be your Friend, and one that has a desire to do you Service. As for the Manifesto, I am so far from approving any such thing, that I never so much as saw it, never caused it to be writ; and ever have, and do now disown the man that did it. This was that which was said in the presence of the King by the Duke of Espernon to the Marshal d' Ornano. Sir, Since the King is pleased to think what you have said to be a sufficient satisfaction, that you entreat me to forget what is past, and desire my friendship, I rest satisfied; and shall be, as I have been heretofore your friend to serve you. At St. Germane en Say the 25. of March, 1601. Signed Henry, and below Potier. It was not without many difficulties that matters were thus composed betwixt them, the Duke desiring something more for his satisfaction, and the Marshal on his part ill digesting the distinction the King had made betwixt to serve you, and to do you service: but that which touched him most to the quick was, that his Majesty by one of the conditions of Accommodation, gave the Duke, liberty when ever he thought fit, to call together the same Assembly in Bourdeaux, which had begot the former dispute; commanding the Marshal not to oppose it: A Licence without which the Duke conceived his affront could not be wiped off. And accordingly he some time after returned to Bourdeaux, to have made use of his Privilege, though it was then also interrupted by an accident, of which in its due place we shall give a further account. This satisfaction the King ordered for the Duke, though very sufficient of itself, was not however the only testimony his Majesty gave him of his Royal Bounty and Justice in this occasion; for the offence having been public, his Majesty thought fit that beside the satisfaction had been given in private, the Marshal should moreover pay the Duke some public civilities, to evidence an absolute disowning of the Act: it was therefore ordered, that the Duke going to Loches, as it was determined he should do, (I believe for that purpose) the Marshal, who at the same time was upon his Journey into his Government, should give him a visit by the way, as he did●; by whom the King writ a very obliging Letter to the Duke, wherein he commanded him to entertain the Marshal as His Friend; a command that was also on the Duke's part so punctually obeyed, that the visit was passed over with great civility on both sides: wherein the justice of this generous, and excellent Prince was eminently manifest, who would use a man at this obliging rate, that had no share in his Royal Favour. Not long after this Accommodation, the 11th. of September the same year, the Court was wholly possessed with the joy all good Frenchmen were full of, for the Birth of the young Dolphin, whom we have since seen live a long and a glorious Reign, under the name of Lewis the XIII, The birth of the Dolphin, afterwards Lewis the XIII. of all other, a blessing of the greatest importance that could at that time possibly have happened to the King, and Kingdom: in him all pretence of past disturbances being determined, as the public Peace seemed to be for ever secured. There was now no mutinous Subject, nor no ambitious Neighbour, who seeing themselves fallen from their unjust, and imaginary pretensions to the Crown, did not covet the favour, and friendship of a Prince so apparently favoured by the care of Heaven: but if on that side the Duke with other virtuous Subjects of his condition, was in a high rapture of joy, there happened to him soon after great occasions of affliction, that involved him in no few, not no little inconveniencies, which befell him by the discovery of the Conspiracy of the Marshal Byron, that came to light in the beginning of the ensuing year; wherein we shall notwithstanding see, that although this business begat him trouble, and disgrace in the beginning, yet it brought him honour and satisfaction in the end: having given him opportunity at once to express his constant affection to his friend, and his inviolate Fidelity to the King his Master. I have already made mention of the great friendship that was contracted betwixt the Duke, Anno 1602. and the Marshal Byron, one of the most constant, The Conspiracy of Marshal Byron, and the Duke's carriage in that business. and sincere I have known, their interests ever being one, and the same, and their affections so united in all things, that nothing was a secret betwixt them, if not in what concerned the interest of the King and Kingdom: but as to concerns of that nature, what confidence soever the Marshal had in the Duke's friendship it is certain, he had ever so great a respect to his fidelity, and did believe him so impossible to be debauched from his duty, that he never communicated to him the least syllable of any thought he had conceived to the prejudice of the one, or the other: though it is to be wished, for the preservation of so brave a man he had done it, because then the Duke would doubtless have persuaded him into better resolutions. The King, who was very well acquainted with all his designs, would himself sometimes talk to him in terms easy enough to be understood, on purpose to make him come to himself, to see his error, and to reconcile himself sincerely to a Prince, who proceeded with that tenderness towards him, and who was pleased in his behalf to moderate the absolute Authority, the knowledge of his Crime, and his own Royal Power gave him over his Life, and Fortune; but that would not reclaim him: That way then failing, and his Majesty's obliging language to him wanting force to make that impression upon his obstinate spirit, he could have desired, his Majesty tried yet further to overcome him by testimonies of confidence in his Loyalty, and to divert him from criminal thoughts by conferring upon him his employments of Trust, and Honour; amongst which that of Ambassador into England was one. The King being in Picardy, received a Compliment from Elizabeth Queen of England, wherein she earnestly solicited the King for an interview betwixt them, at any place he himself would appoint; a request that his Majesty not thinking it convenient to gratify her in, he dispatched away to her the Marshal Byron, as it were his second self, to make his excuse, and to Treat with her with all freedom of their most private Affairs. An employment wherein Byron received extraordinary Honours, as also several cautions from this prudent Princess, enough to have diverted him from his evil designs, had not his destiny already blinded his judgement, and rendered him incapable of counsel. She often laid before him the recent, and sad example of the late Earl of Essex; she represented unto him what a Subject aught to apprehend even from the greatness of his own Service, and Merit, if his Ambition was not moderated by prudence, and whether it were that she had had some inkling (as many have believed) of Biron's designs, or that she only intended by such discourses to justify the execution of that unfortunate Earl, she laid before him a perfect image of his own unhappy destiny; though all was lost to a man obstinately bend to his own ruin. This Queen also having heard of the strict friendship betwixt the Marshal, and the Duke of Espernon, desired him at parting to tell the Duke from her, that if, of his three Sons (which she owned for her Kinsmen, and Princes of her Kingdom) he would send her one, she should gladly receive him upon his account; and that the world might see the esteem she had of the Father's Merit, would not deprive his Posterity of that place in her Kingdom, which was due to the House of Candale; wherein she had only one condition to make, which was, that the Duke should give way, that a Son of his so sent, should be bred up in her Religion; the only one she could by any means suffer in her Kingdom: A Compliment that the Duke thinking himself obliged to take notice of, he presented her Majesty with his most humble thanks for the Honour she was pleased to do him, and his Family in so gracious an offer; but that he should ever prefer any Fortune or Condition his Children could attain unto in France, making profession of the Catholic Religion, before any advantages could derive to them in a belief contrary to his own. The Marshal, at his return from England puffed up more than ever with the vanity of his Ambition, and big with the Idea of those imaginary Principalities, the Spaniard, and the Duke of Savoy had baited their practices withal to catch him, could now no longer contain himself within the simple meditation of his Treason, but began to deal with some persons of Quality in the Kingdom, and endeavoured to raise a commotion in Perigort, where the best part of his Estate, his Relations, and chiefest Friendships lay: amongst whom the Duke de Bovillion is said to be invited into his party to introduce those of the Reformed Religion into that Country: Intelligence whereof being brought to the King, his Majesty concerned at the importance of the thing, and justly provoked at the Mareschals ingratitude, immediately took the Field, with a resolution to stifle these disorders in their birth; when considering with himself, that if he should fail of securing the Head of the Faction, whatever he could do besides, would signify nothing to the remedy of the disease, and that whilst he should be upon his March, his own promptitude and vigilancy would but serve to alarm Subjects already made jealous by the conscience of their own Crimes; he broke off his intended expedition, and returned back again to Fountain-bleau, from whence he had before departed: and where being settled, he wholly bend his thoughts how to get the Marshal into his power; who being in Burgundy (the neighbourhood of that Province to Savoy favouring his designs) did at great ease maintain his Correspondence with the Confederate Princes. Neither was this a thing to be effected without great conduct, that a person of his merit and reputation might not be driven to the last extremities of despair. His Majesty therefore, that he might effect his design without noise, spoke upon all occasions in public, very much to the Mareschals advantage; nor was that all, he gave him moreover a very honourable, Bir●n in this Journey betwixt Dijon and Montbelli●rd, was for four hours together in private Conference with Wattevile the Duke of Savoy's Age●t. D▪ Serres, page 978. and a very important Commission, to go renew an Alliance with the Swiss: an Affair wherein, though many difficulties arose, yet the King who would by no means have Byron baffled in his Negotiation, by sending a million of Livers along with him, put him into a condition of making all things succeed according to his Majesties own desire. This was the last Service this Marshal performed for the Crown, wherein he acquitted himself very much to his Honour, and wherein the reputation of his Valour prevailed much upon that warlike People; it has been said his dexterity did no less. And here I shall insert by the way, that those who have believed the Marshal to have no more in his conduct, than the mere brutality of a rough humourous Soldier, were not at all acquainted with him: he was read to a sufficient knowledge of Latin, and Greek Letters; and when ever he would make use of his Judgement and Eloquence, whether in Negotiations, or Councils, in War or Affairs of State, he ever expressed himself to be a man of no common qualities. His Majesty had thought by these testimonies of his trust, the Marshal would have been allured to Court, to have given an account of the good success of his Negotiation; where he hoped, without further trouble, he might easily secure his Person; but with what gentle language soever the King could flatter his vanity, it was impossible to persuade him into that Journey, so many Accusers, and Witnesses of his Gild he found in his own Conscience against him. His Majesty therefore not being able to bring about his design by this way, and unwilling to live any longer in the apprehensions he had been put into by the Marshal's practice, resolved at last by a manifest disobedience to extract from him a confession of his fault, which should either give him a reasonable colour to proceed against the Marshal as a Criminal, and a Rebel; or otherwise oblige him to come, and deliver himself into his hands. He therefore first dispatched away to him the Sieur d' Escures, Quartermaster-General of his Armies; a man very acceptable to the Marshal, and in great credit with him, for having long served under his Command, and immediately after Precedent janin, who also by his wisdom, and experience had won so great an esteem with the foresaid Marshal, that he would seldom undertake any business of any great moment without first consulting this politic Minister. These two were sent with express Orders to represent to Byron part of the ill Offices had been done him to the King; to which they added, That all the endeavour of his best Friends could not so justify his actions to the King, that his Majesty had not his fidelity in suspicion, until he should receive his justification from his own mouth: that since only himself could defend himself from Calumny, there was nothing to be deliberated of in the case, and that he must suddenly resolve, either to give an account of his actions to the King, or declare himself his Majesty's open Enemy, maintain an impudent War against his Prince, and have himself and his Posterity branded with the durtiest and most hateful of all Crimes, to wit, a Traitor to his Benefactor, King, and Country, that he had to do with a Prince, whose Clemency was so well known to none, as to himself, who had his great Services fresh in his memory, who expected no less from his Courage and Fidelity for the time to come, and whose interest it was as much to preserve him (knowing, as his Majesty very well did, the utility of his Service) as it was to preserve himself, whose authority was to be maintained, and established by men of his Conduct and Valour. Remonstrances from men he loved, and esteemed, by which Byron was so encouraged, and believing that Lafin had said nothing against him (as he had often, and falsely assured him) that he resolved upon going to Court; in order whereunto he presently set forth, taking the Road of Paris in the Company of Precedent janin only, d' Escures having been sent away before to carry news of his coming. The strict, and inviolate Friendship that all the world knew to be betwixt the Duke, and the Marshal, soon rendered the first suspected of having a hand in the other's designs; neither was the Duke ignorant that his Enemies laboured with all the Artifice they had, to involve him in his Friend's Treason; but how perfect soever he was in their malicious practice, and how clearly soever he foresaw the dangerous consequences were likely to attend a business of this nature, he was resolute nevertheless, with a generosity hardly to be paralleled in so critical an occasion, to be no ways wanting to his friend: wherefore having notice that the Marshal was drawing near to Paris, and that a caution, which would now come too late to divert him from coming to the King (a thing he would by no means have advised him from) might perhaps awake his judgement, and make him appeal to his Majesty's mercy, he sent the Sieur du Plessis Baussonniere, a man in whom he had an absolute confidence, to meet him upon the way. This Gentleman had put himself into the Duke's dependence in his younger years, and having left his Studies, wherein he had made a considerable progress, had followed, and served him in Provence, commanding the Regiment of Pernes his Brother in-law, all the while the Duke was there in action; after which, during the whole time of the Duke's life, which was very long, he was by him continually employed in his greatest, and most important Affairs; in which he ever gave so good an account of his Conduct, and Fidelity, that there was scarce any Gentleman of his time in a higher reputation for Valour, Prudence, and Integrity; insomuch that I have often heard the Duke say, if he were to corrupt le Plessis, he should be to seek on which side to assault him, his soul was so bravely fortified throughout. This le Plessis, according to his Master's order, puts himself upon his way to go meet the Marshal: but as his Errand could not but be dangerous both for the Master, and the Servant, the one, and the other sufficiently knowing the violent suspicion the King had of the Marshal's proceeding; so did he endeavour with all imaginable caution, if possible, to entertain him alone. I have often heard him tell the story, and do very well remember every circumstance, which put altogether will make this appear an affair of the greatest difficulty, and the best carried on, that perhaps you shall meet with in the Duke's whole History; and wherein the generous spirit an innocent Servant, and the Clemency and Justice of a good Master, will as evidently appear. Le Plessis, perceiving the Marshal's Equipage coming at a pretty distance, lighted at a Barn a little wide of the Highway, where, having with him one of the Duke's Footmen without a Livery, he commanded him to call the first of the Marshal's that appeared upon the Road; which he having done, and le Plessis being not unknown to the fellow, he sent him to tell his Master in his ear, that le Plessis stayed to speak with him a word or two in private. The Footman accordingly delivered his Message, whereupon Byron straggling from his company upon some pretence or other, came to the place where le Plessis stood to expect him, and where without being observed by any, he had all liberty to discourse at leisure. Le Plessis had in charge to tell him, That the Journey he was now upon to the King required his most serious deliberation, and that he was now in good earnest to reflect upon his own condition: That if he came with a confidence, some possibly might have possessed him withal, that Lafin had not spoken to the King, he was abused: That the Duke of Espernon did not know what had passed betwixt Lafin and him; neither did he desire to inform himself: but that he might be assured, that whatever he had done, or negotiated with him, or by him, was every tittle discovered to the King; acquainting him with the several times and places, and how oft Lafin had been in private Conference with him: That he was herein to be advised by his own Conscience, and to rely upon his Majesty's Grace, and Bounty, if he conceived there was any thing that might justly be condemned in his former Actions; there being much better to be hoped for, from his Majesty's Clemency, and noble nature, than from the secrecy of what had passed betwixt Lafin and him. This obliging and prudent advice, which ought to have been received by the Marshal with so much the greater tenderness, by how much it was preferred with the infinite hazard of him that sent it, did on the contrary put him into so great a rage, that I have heard le Plessis say, he never in his life saw any thing in so extravagant a fury. Byron asked him first of all, If the Duke of Espernon esteemed him for other, than an honest man? To whom du Plessis having replied, That had he had any other opinion of him, he would not have persisted in his Friendship so long; he proceeded to tell him, That he was come to give the lie, and to be the death of all those, who durst blemish his Actions: That he was the same the Duke of Espernon and he Plessis himself had ever known him to be: That for what concerned him, Mounsieur d' Espernon might set his heart at rest. And then clapping his hand upon his Sword, after a hundred wild postures, he further told du Plessis, That if any one durst make an attempt upon his Person, he would make more arms and heads fly, than would stand before him: So that instead of making use of his Friend's caution, and good advice, he continued his way in his first obstinacy, and the same night arrived at Fountainbleau. At his arrival the King spoke to him of the business himself, gently admonishing him withal to make an ingenuous confession of his fault: a thing he was so far from being persuaded to do, that he seemed discontented and angry at the motion. Soon after he went to Paris, and dined at the Hostel d' Espernon, when the King returning the same day from Fountain-bleau, the Duke and he went together in the afternoon to the Lovure, to attend his Majesty; who having notice of their coming went to the Window, through the glass to observe their carriage, and countenance; which a friend of the Duke's, who was then with the King, gave the Duke timely caution of, to the end he might comport himself so, as that his Majesty might not by any behaviour of his be fortified in those evil impressions, with which he had before by his Enemies been prepossessed: though the Duke carried himself quite contrary to his advice; and being more and more confirmed, in the testimony of a good Conscience, and full of a just and generous indignation to see his Fidelity suspected, walked with his face erect, and his eyes fixed upon the Window where he knew the King stood: A carriage the King very well observed, as he made others about him to do also. They were no sooner come both of them into his Majesty's Chamber, who as yet had expressed no public dissatisfaction with Byron (as being still in hope to regain him, and to have an occasion to pardon him by the confession of his fault) but that he presently made a Match at Tennis, wherein the King and the Count de Soissons were to play against the Duke of Espernon, and the Marshal: and upon this occasion it was that the Historians of that time make the Duke say, as a piece of wit, speaking to the Marshal, That he played well, but that he made his matches ill; as if by those words, which may admit of a double interpretation, he would obliquely condemn Biron's designs, which never came into his thought; it being his custom when ever he talked with the Marshal about that business, not to do it in such ambiguous terms; nor so out of season, but seriously and plainly, and in a secrecy, the safest for him he would advise. He several times represented to him the ill Offices he had received, he confirmed to him the same thing he had sent him word of before concerning Lafin, conjuring him not to rely upon his Faith, which would certainly deceive him: But these second admonitions were as fruitless as the first; and the King seeing that he could neither by himself, nor by the Count de Soissons, the Mareschals intimate Friend, who had dealt with him by his Majesty's absolute command, and in his name, reclaim this obstinate spirit, nor make him reconcile himself to his duty, by acknowledging his offence; he gave him over at last to the rigour of Law, and Justice, who punished his Crime, by the forfeiture of his Head. Whilst they were drawing up the Marshal's Charge, his Majesty well informed of le Plessis Envoy (it being a thing hard to be kept secret, in an Affair where all things were so narrowly observed) referred the intelligence to the deliberation of his Council. The Cabinet Council at that time consisted of the Count de Soissons, de Sillery Keeper of the Seal, Sully superintendent of the Exchequer, Precedent janin, Bellieure, and Villeroy: In which Assembly divers conjectures being set on foot, to fortify the jealousies his Majesty had been persuaded into against the Duke, it was by the major part voted necessary to secure his person, or at least to make sure of le Plessis, and to put him to the wrack, that from a confession extorted from him sufficient evidence might be drawn to convince his Master: A result so approved by all, that the King was himself almost the only man that opposed those two propositions. He told them that as for the Duke, a man of his quality was never to be arrested, unless to be condemned, that as yet there was nothing but suspicion, and conjectures against him; which should they prove idle, and vain, he was never after to repose any trust in a man, so undeservedly, and so unjustly offended: That for le Plessis he was no more to be meddled withal than the other, without giving a manifest distaste to his Master: That if one of them were to be secured, he should rather begin with the Master, than the Servant; because the confinement of the last would be an equal injury to the other; but that the effect would by no means be the same, being the Duke, if he knew himself guilty, would by the seizing of le Plessis be forwarned to make his escape: That he was therefore of opinion to expect if in the Trial of Marshal Byron, nothing would come to light that might justly bring the Duke in question, which if there did, and that he should be found a Complice, there was no place he could fly to so remote, where his arm would not be long enough to reach him. If the King had intelligence of le Plessis' Envoy to the Marshal Byron, the Duke was no less faithfully informed of what had passed in the Cabinet Council concerning him; by which he understood that le Plessis Journey was not so great a secret, as it had been convenient for both their safeties it had been, which made him consult with le Plessis what was best to be done in so dangerous an occasion. The Duke was not secure, the King would continue so constant in his favour, that his Majesty might not at another Council be overruled into other resolutions, and persuaded at last to put le Plessis to the question; a doubt that made him think it expedient he should retire; that he being gone, no evidence might appear against him, he having been alone entrusted with the secret of this Affair: but le Plessis, who very well foresaw his flight, though it might procure his own particular safety, would certainly be his Master's ruin, could by no means consent to the motion. He rather chose to run the hazard of the Wrack, (which he was ready to undergo, and of which, I have heard him say, he had already the terrors in his imagination) than to expose the Life, and Honour of his Master, which, after so strong a presumption, as his withdrawing himself must of necessity give, would be in an apparent danger. He therefore humbly entreated the Duke not to concern himself at the thought of any thing that threatened him; assuring him withal, that as he had done nothing contrary to his Majesty's Service, so all the Wracks and Tortures in the world could never force him to say any thing contrary to the truth. Settled then in this resolution, from which I do believe nothing upon earth could have removed him, his wit suggested to him an expedient, by which in the end he secured both his Master's Person and his own. He advised the Duke to prevent his Majesty by an ingenuous confession of the truth, and to tell him himself what he had done: for as the King could not imagine that the Duke could have had any notice of that secret, it being improbable, the result of a Council held but that morning, and consisting of men of so approved Fidelity and Trust, could be so suddenly revealed; so was it not to be believed, that the Duke's voluntary discovery of what he had done, could pass in his Majesty's opinion for a premeditated thing. The Duke approving of this advice, put it as speedily into execution; and the King intending to hunt in the afternoon, he mounted on horseback, as he used to do, to attend him; where having followed and observed his Majesty's motion with an extraordinary diligence, that he might find an opportunity for his purpose, they light by chance into a solitary place, into which his Majesty being insensibly straggled from the gross of his Train, there were very few left about him. And here it was that the King turning towards the Duke, fell upon the Discover of Marshal Byron, who was now in the heat of his Trial, complaining how ill he had used him, and how ungrateful a man he was: To which the Duke replied, That as a Relation, and a Friend to the Marshal, he could not without great affliction see so evident testimonies of his guilt, that he had been at first very unwilling to believe he could be guilty of so foul a Crime: but that now it did so manifestly appear, he could not think any punishment enough to chastise so foul an Offence: To whom the King having returned, What, it seems than you know nothing of the business? The Duke made answer, Sir, I knew so little of it, that at his coming to this Town, I sent le Plessis to meet him, and to welcome him to Court, which I should never have done, had I thought him guilty. At which words, which touched the King to the quick, his Majesty set spurs to his Horse, with an extravagance not very natural to him, but which that unexpected answer had put him into: when having taken a Career, and turning again to the Duke, with a countenance that sufficiently expressed that he was angry at a discovery he had no mind should have come from the Duke's own mouth. It seems then, said he, you sent to Marshal Byron without my knowledge? To whom the Duke replied again, That he did not conceive it necessary to ask his majesty's leave to send a mere Compliment to his Friend: That seeing him come without a Guard, or any apparent marks of disgrace, and his Majesty treating him with the same favour he used to do, he had on his part used him at the same rate he had ever done: That it had been a custom long observed betwixt them, that which of them soever had been any time absent from Court, was at his return by some Servant of trust informed by the other of all the little passages had happened during his absence: That it was true, he had in this occasion continued this custom: That he humbly besought his Majesty to believe nothing more particular had passed betwixt them, and that he had rather die, than once conceive a thought to the prejudice of his Majesty's Service, or his own duty: That he hoped the event would more clearly evidence the integrity of his actions; but that nevertheless he thought it fit to give his Majesty that security in hand. The King being well satisfied with the Duke's Reasons, but much more with the Confidence he perceived him to repose in his Justice, and his own Innocency, all jealousies, that before had been infused into him, to the prejudice of the Duke's Fidelity, and Honour, vanished away, and he with the greatest care and assiduity, was more than ever about his Majesty's Person. His Children (which a little before he had brought to Court) had order to continue about the young Dolphin's Person, to be as it were Hostages of their Father's Innocence, and the Marshal's Trial being at last over, all Witnesses and Parties examined, and heard without the least mention of the Duke of Espernon's name in all their practice, his Majesty was not a little satisfied with himself, that he had carried things with that moderation towards the Duke upon this occasion. This untoward business was soon after seconded by another, which, though of far less dangerous consequence, bega● the Duke nevertheless as much trouble as the first. The Duke as he was ever very circumspect in his duty, to preserve his Fidelity entire to the King, so was he no less solicitous to maintain himself in all advantages deriving to him as particles of any of his Commands. That of Colonel therefore having been conferred upon him by Henry III. with extraordinary privileges, as by his Patent does appear, he could not endure the least violation of his Interest; but with a stiffness (that doubtless would have offended a less equitable Prince, than that under whom he had the honour to serve) was ever obstinate to maintain every punctilio of his right. One of the greatest, and of the greatest Honour that was annexed to this Command, was the power he had to name the Campmaster to the Regiment of Guards when ever that place should be void; and it happened now that Grillon, who had been possessed of this Command before the Duke was created Colonel, was fail'n into infirmities, that rendered him incapable of his Charge: Yet had his former Services been such as made it very reasonable he should however make his best advantage of it, as his Majesty was content he should; but having a singular, and a very just respect for the Marshal de l' Esdiguieres, and a very great affection for his Son-in-law Crequy, he intended the latter, having first compounded with Grillon, should be preferred to that Command, intending perhaps hereby, as much to clip the wings of the Duke's Authority, which he had as Colonel over the Regiment of Guards, as altogether to oblige Crequy. The Duke, advertised of his Majesty's purpose, could not forbear giving out aloud, that he would never consent to it, and the King on the contrary was resolved his pleasure should prevail: But in the end after many oppositions (which this good Prince was pleased to endure from a Servant) the Duke, who had never discovered his mind to the King, but by the mediation of others, was resolved to deliver it to his Majesty with his own mouth, as accordingly he did; representing to him with a liberty (which to his Subjects was none of the least felicities of his happy Reign) the Justice of his Cause. All which, notwithstanding his reasons, could not so prevail upon his Majesty's temper, but that he remained as firm as ever in his first resolution. Which the Duke seeing, and conceiving he could not consent to his Majesty's desire, without going less in the dignity of his place, he rather chose to absent himself from Court, than to be compelled by an express, and positive command to do a thing so much to the prejudice of his Authority, and Honour; and accordingly very much dissatisfied, retired himself to Angoulesme. The King, who was not yet totally cured of a jealousy, still kept awake by the practices, the remainder of Biron's Faction (not quiet extinct) yet kept on foot in his Kingdom, gave manifest signs of discontent at the Duke's departure; and as he knew the alliance the Duke of Montpensier had contracted with his Family, by his Match, had begot a strict friendship betwixt them, so was it to him especially that he spoke of it with the greatest freedom, and in terms (not without threats) of the highest indignation. This Prince, who concerned himself as much at the Duke's Interest, as his own, dispatched away to him in great diligence the Sieur de la Chetardie, in whom he had an especial confidence, to let him understand the King's displeasure, and to remonstrate to him the danger he would expose himself unto, should he longer persist in opposition to his Majesty's pleasure, who would herein be absolutely obeyed: A caution by which the Duke plainly seeing he was reduced to a necessity either to bow, or break; he indeed chose the latter, though not without high complaints of the injustice was done him, which were neither so modest, nor so private, that they were not soon carried to the King's ear: And though so stubborn an opposition in the Duke might reasonably enough have more exasperated the King against him, yet such was the noble nature of this great Prince, that it would not suffer him long to bear in mind the memory of his offence; for the Duke had no sooner given his consent to Crequy's admission, but that his Majesty commanded him the first thing he did, to take a Journey a hundred Leagues from Paris, to see his Colonel, to take his Oath betwixt his hands, to obtain his hand to his Commission, and to receive his Order for his admission into his place: Civilities by which although the King endeavoured to give the Duke all satisfaction; yet could they not so far reconcile him, but that at Crequy's arrival, he made him wait a whole day together at his Chamber door, and expect some days after before he would receive his Oath, or Sign his Commission: And although he was himself very sensible that so many manifest aversions were sufficient to beget new distastes in the King against him; yet was he not so much master of himself, nor had so much command over his own Nature; but that he must put those affronts upon Crequy, or rather upon the King, who made this business his own. By these disputes (which in another time might have turned very much to the Duke's prejudice) he got nevertheless this advantage, that the King to satisfy him for the future in the interests of his Command, made a kind of agreement with him (if a largess from a Master to his Servant may be so called) which was, That his Majesty would indeed really, and effectually reserve to himself the nomination of Campmaster to the Regiment of Guards; Mounsieur Crequy made Campmaster to the Regiment of Guards. as also to the other old Regiments: but with this condition, that the Colonel should swear them, that they should be conceived to have their admission from him, without which they were not to be received into the employment: That his Majesty having provided for one Company in the Regiment of Guards, he was content the Duke should in turn do the same for the next at his own appointment: That of all the Foot Companies of the other Regiments, new and old, the Duke when ever any should be vacant, should have the naming of the Captains to the King to fill them up; and that no Captain soever, whether of the Regiment of Guards, or any other Regiment should be admitted into, or established in his Command till first his Commission was Signed by the Colonel: But for what concerned those Offices, that depended upon the Duke's Command, as Lieutenants, Ensigns, Colonel-Ensigns, Sergeants, and Serjeant-Majors, Marshals, Provost-martials', Quarter-Masters, and other Officers, that he should place and displace them by his sole Authority, without any order from the King, or his Majesty's taking any notice thereof. According to which Agreement the Duke proceeded so regularly, and undisturbed in the Privileges of his Command, that there was never after, during this King's Reign, the least Dispute betwixt them, saveing once, that the King thinking it fit to add two Companies more to his Regiment of Guards, and having appointed their Captains, the Duke interposed his Majesty's Royal Promise, humbly beseeching him to do him right: an Argument so powerful to this equitable Prince, that of two Captains he had named, he only provided for one, which was the Sieur de la Courbe, who had but the second Company neither: the first being given to the Sieur de Bourdet by the Duke's Recommendation, whose turn it was to name the first vacant Company: yet did not the business pass without some dispute, though at last the King was pleased rather to give way to his Servant's just desires, than to fail in the least Article of his Word. I shall here add (since I am upon this discourse of the Office of Colonel) a thing that time has sufficiently justified to all France, which is, that the Duke was so exceeding cautious in the dispensation of Commands, whether merely depending upon his own Authority, or in his nomination only, that his Majesty would often say, he never had better Foot Officers, than those of the Duke's preferring. And in truth the French Infantry, whilst the Duke was permitted to execute his charge, were kept in so good order, that perhaps no Militia in Europe were better Disciplined, nor better Officered than they; a truth to this hour confirmed by an infinite number of persons yet living, who have commanded under him, and who were witnesses of his conduct. To which I shall further add, and to his great commendation, a thing not to be contradicted; which is, that he neither directly, nor indirectly ever made the least benefit of any Command he disposed of, which I think had they been set to sale would, in the long course of his life, have amounted to above two Millions of Gold, after the rate they are sold now adays. And I do very well remember, that towards his latter end, when he saw the selling of Offices began to grow in fashion, he did all he could, and that the condition of the time would permit, to oppose it; representing to the King, with very convincing Arguments, what a prejudice such an abuse would be to his Service; although in the end seeing he could not prevail with the Council to alter that toleration, he also gave some of his own Servants, though very few, leave to make money of the Offices he had conferred upon them: but I am certain, that for his own particular, he never converted any the least employment to his own profit: A thing perhaps such as thought him solicitous of his own Interest, will hardly be persuaded to believe, as indeed he was inclined to the saving side, and wary enough when it was fit for him to be so: but never, upon any occasion where his Honour was concerned, that ever taking with him the upperhand of all other considerations. The business of Crequy, how troublesome, and how hard soever to digest, was not yet the last of the same nature the Duke was to wrestle withal in this years' revolution, another following immediately after; which, as it nearer concerned him, pierced deeper to the quick: neither had it so happy an issue as the first. The Duke having in the year 1582. been by King Henry the III. established in the Government of Metz, he conferred the Lieutenancy of the City and Country upon Moncassin his Kinsman, and the Command of the Citadel upon Sobole: but in process of time, which happened in the year 1585. having withdrawn Moncassin from this employment to continue about his own person: Sobole, whom he had bred a Page, and in whom he had an entire confidence, was by his bounty raised to that degree, that he conferred upon him the command of the City, and Country, together with that of the Citadel also; which was effectually one of the bravest entertainments in France, Metz being at that time the most considerable place of the Kingdom, and the noblest member of the Duke's Command. In the Year 1594. the King undertook the Siege of Laon, to which, as to an occasion wherein he expected to meet with great difficulties, he invited many of his Servants of the neighbouring Provinces. Amongst these Sobole was one, who by the Authothority the Duke had given him in Metz, having got a great interest in the Country, might with great facility raise a considerable party of Horse, as he did, and at the Head of sixscore Light-Horse, very well appointed, and fourscore Carabins, went to serve his Majesty at this Siege. The King received him with great demonstrations of favour, and not being well satisfied with the Duke of Espernon, who being at that time in Provence, where he did not behave himself to his Majesty's liking, after he had, as he conceived, cut him out work enough there, he took occasion to raise him greater difficulties about Metz, by lessening the Authority he had till that time ever had over Sobole. And to that purpose after he had reduced Laon to his obedience, and about to dismiss those Auxiliaries who had come in to serve him in that Action, his Majesty sent Sobole word, That after so great a satisfaction as he had received from his Services, he was as well disposed to gratify him as he himself could desire; which nevertheless the present condition of his Affairs not permitting him to do, at so honourable a rate, as he could wish, it was for him to look out for something he had a mind to, which should be as readily conferred upon him. Those who had order to make this overture to Sobole, were further entrusted to represent unto him, That being Governor of Metz merely by the Duke's toleration, he was subject upon the first capricio to be removed; after which from the honourable condition wherein he had lived for many years, he would find himself reduced to a very moderate fortune: That though he could be assured the Duke's humour would continue constant to him, yet ought the declining posture of his Affairs in Provence to give him a reasonable Alarm: That all things in that Country were so averse to him, it was all the Duke could do to keep his head above water; and that his Affairs coming to an absolute ruin, as they evidently declined he would be in danger to be left in Metz, without any support, or any colourable claim, either to command, or recompense: That the King conceiving a Gentleman of his Valour and Merit, worthy a more certain fortune, did voluntary offer to make him his own Lieutenant, in the Government of the Place and Country, under the Duke; whose Authority being kept inviolate, he could have no just reason to reproach him; for seeking to establish his own Fortune, without doing any prejudice to his. It was no hard matter to persuade Sobole into a thing he believed would settle his Affairs so much to his advantage; so that he greedily swallowed the bait, and receiving a new Commission from the King, retired very well satisfied with his Majesty's bounty into his Government: But as the first step into a fault, makes men subject to stumble into another, after having once failed in his Faith, he had now no more regard to his Duty; and conceiving he had good title for the future to Lord it over the Inhabitants of Metz, with greater Authority than he had formerly done; he grew insolent to the last degree. Complaints whereof were soon brought to the Duke; where to him they accused Sobole, for having raised money upon them by his own private Authority, and to have committed many other insolences against them. The Duke was at this time disengaged from the trouble of his Affairs in Provence, and the residence he had since that time made at Court having informed him of Sobole's deportment, he was questionless possessed with an indignation proportionable to the offence: but he very well foresaw, that the King, who had in design raised Sobole against him, would doubtless uphold him, and justify his own Commission; so that he durst by no means act any thing in public against him, not go about by open force to displace him: but on the contrary dissembled as much as in him lay, both the knowledge, and the trouble of his fault; and when continually importuned by reiterated complaints from the Inhabitants of Metz, (a people he ever had in great consideration) he only admonished him to behave himself with greater moderation towards them: but Sobole was deaf to all those admonitions, and so far from slackening his hand, that on the contrary, to render the Duke's good Offices fruitless to them, he contrived with himself to accuse many of the principal among them to the King, for having (as he said) endeavoured to betray the Town, and Citadel of Metz to Count Mansfield, Governor of Luxenbourg, for the King of Spain: Which he did, to the end that his Majesty being prepossessed with so black an accusation, no one, not so much as the Duke himself might dare to speak in their behalf. The business was very strictly examined, and in the end discovered to be a mere calumny, which made all the world conclude it had been inundated by Sobole in spite to deprive the Inhabitants of their Lives and Estates: a malice so notorious, that the Duke could no longer endure a people, whom he loved, and had ever protected, should be so ill used by a man he himself had appointed to govern, but not to destroy them: Which made him openly undertake their protection against Sobole's violence, against whom the hatred the people had conceived, having provoked them into arms, they besieged him in the Citadel; a thing the Duke was not sorry for, hoping this would counsel the King to remove him, and that he being out, the place could be supplied by none, from whom he might not promise to himself better things than from Sobole. What the Duke had so prudently foreseen, Anno 1603. fell out exactly, as he imagined it would; for the King alarmed at the danger of so important a place (it being very much to be feared his ill neighbours would take the advantage of the evil intelligence betwixt the Governor and the people, to seize the Town, resolved to go thither in person; and accordingly with the Queen, and all the Court set forward in the beginning of the year 1603. A journey in which the Duke of Espernon was too much concerned to stay behind; and in the issue whereof Sobole was deposed from his Government with a pardon for all that was passed; which his ill carriage had made the reward of his Service, and all the recompense he received for so brave a Command. After his departure his Majesty resolved himself to dispose of his places; a thing wherein the Duke of Espernon's interest did most of all consist, who till that time had ever had the disposition of all Offices inferior to his own in that Government; and by that means had been absolute over the City: but his Authority being suspected to the King, who would have no other than his own acknowledged in his Kingdom, his Majesty gave the Duke to understand, that Sobole having resigned unto him his Lieutenancy to the Government of the City, and Citadel of Metz, and the Messin Country, which his Majesty had formerly seated him in, he was now resolved to settle men of Condition, and approved Fidelity in his room, always reserving (which his Majesty would by no means diminish) for the Duke his Authority in the place; that in order thereunto he had cast his eye upon the two Brothers les Sieurs de Montigny, and d' Arquien; to the first of which he would give his Lieutenancy to the City, and Country; and to the other the command of the Citadel: but that the one and the other should render him an obedience equal to his own person. The Duke, having well enough foreseen how things would be, had nothing to oppose against his Majesty's Royal Pleasure; but without contradiction gave way to necessity, and with patience (the only remedy remained) was content to expect some happy opportunity that might re-establish him in the possession of a place so important to his fortune, and whereof he saw himself at present absolutely deprived. During his Majesty's abode at Metz, the Provincial of the Fathers Jesuits was by the Duke of Espernon presented to him; where the proposition preferred by the Provincial for the re-establishment of his fraternity in France, was so promoted by the Duke's mediation, that it was concluded on to his great satisfaction. Neither was this the first good office the Duke had done them, nor the sole testimony he had given of his affection, and respect to that Society; he having ever been one of their most constant, and most powerful Protectors in the time of their persecution, as he was one of their principal benefactors after their re-establishment. Metz, that ever till then had made many, and almost invincible difficulties of ever admitting them into their Corporation, received them upon the Duke's single account, as he also procured their admission into Angoulesme before he left that Government: Their College of Xaints has no other foundation than what he bestowed upon it of four thousand Livers a year in two fair Benefices, which put all together have rendered him one of the principal Benefactors of that Society, by the acknowledgement, and testimony of the most ancient, and most eminent men of the Order. The variety of accidents, The state of Affairs at Court during the Peace. and business that had befallen the King in these last years, were yet too few to take him wholly up, he still found leisure enough for his delights; and although he himself took a particular account of all. Affairs, and was ever the main director in all things; yet his abilities (which nothing was too big for) rendered him so excellent at dispatch, that he still made way for his vacation and pleasure. The Peace concluded with all his Neighbours, and his domestic troubles extinguished, either by the punishment of the offenders, or by the excess of his own clemency, gave him now sufficient leisure to look after the reformation of such abuses as were crept into the state during the licence of War; an employment which, how becoming soever his Royal care, and how profitable soever to the Kingdom, took up but a very inconsiderable part of his time, the rest being dedicated to the Chase, to play, and to the diversions of Love: entertainments that (as the passions, and humours of Princes (who are the great examples of their people) do easily insinuate themselve●●nto their Subjects Affections, or at least their imitation) were grown so much in fashion at Court, that there was scarce any talk of any other thing; and if they had, during this Voyage to Metz, suffered a little intermission, they were, at the return of the Court to Paris, more than ever set on foot. It has been believed, that though the King in his hunting, and his Mistresses altogether followed the proclivity of his own nature; yet that for what concerned play, he had in that as much design at least, as inclination. I have already told you, that his Majesty having set down the bringing low the great men of his Kingdom by imperceptible ways, to render them more obedient, for a Maxim of State, had put them upon the humour of Building, to drain their purses: and doubtless his engaging them in play, was in order to the same design: amongst whom the Duke of Espernon, who already felt the smart of the first, and that very well understood his Majesty's meaning in the latter, refused not nevertheless to make one for his Master's satisfaction: but if he did it at first merely out of compliance, his ill fortune at last made it become his revenge, and inclined him so passionately to it, that he found himself in the end engaged in so extraordinary losses, as were no little inconvenience to him. His Majesty would often do him the honour to play at his house, ever inviting him to all his Matches: And whether he retired to Zamet, or to any other place to evade the tumult of Majesty and Greatness, the Duke of Espernon was always the first invited; so that although he was not in favour, he was nevertheless in great esteem: of which one of the most signal testimonies he could receive, was the honour the King did him in permitting him to enter the Lovure in his Coach; a favour till this time reserved only for the Princes of the Blood, exclusively to all other persons of the Kingdom, the Duke being the first that unlocked this Privilege for the Dukes, and Peers, though he enjoyed it alone during the King's life; his Majesty, though o●ten importuned by others of the same quality, for the same honour, never consenting to have it drawn into example. 'Tis true, that after the King's death, the Queen Regent, to accommodate herself to the time, was content to abate much of the Royal State, and allowed the Dukes, and Peers, and Officers of the Crown, the same Privilege: but the respect to the Duke's person was that which first procured them that indulgence. A famous Gamester called Pimentel, The story of Pimentel. an Italian, came at this time into France, whose dexterity in gulling the Court was such▪ that I cannot forbear to mention him in this place. 'Tis said, and it is perfectly true, that this Cavalier hearing what an humour of play reigned at the French Court, caused great number of false Dice to be made, of which he himself only knew the high, and the low runners, hiring men to carry them into France, where after they had bought up, and conveyed away all that were in Paris, he supplied all the Shops with his own: By which means having subjected the spirit of Play, and tied the hands of Fortune, he arrived at last in France; where insinuating himself into the Court, he was by some of his own Nation, who had great interest there, soon brought acquainted with the King. Some have believed his Majesty understood the man well enough, and was content to admit him for a Gamester, the better to bring about his own design of impoverishing the Lords of his Court, whose Riches grew suspected to him. The Duke of Espernon was one from whom he drew the most considerable sums; who after having got all his ready money, and many of his Jewels, he moreover won of him a piece of Ambergris, to the value of 20000. Crowns, the greatest that ever was seen in Europe; and which the Republic of Venice, to whom it was after sold, preserve to this day in their Treasure for a great rarity. The Duke had not long been Master of it; a Country fellow that had found it upon the Coast of Medoc, having but a little before brought it to him, as a thing due to the House of Candale; of which the Duke was now the head. This Ancient and illustrious Family, are possessors of many goodly Manors in Guienne, and principally in the Country of Medoc, with as ample privileges as belong to any of the greatest Territories of the Kingdom; of which one of the most honourable is that of the Admiralty, which might also have been one of the most profitable, had the Duke when the Spanish Carricks suffered Shipwreck upon that Coast in the year 1627.▪ been countenanced in his right; which, however at that time set aside, derives to him nevertheless from a Title of above 300. years standing, to all the wracks that should happen any where within the extent of above fifty Leagues upon the Coast that bounds this Territory. But how just soever his claim might be, it was impossible for him to justify his title against the Power, that then under his Majesty's name exercised a more than Sovereign Authority. The Sea of Medoc, one of the most tempestuous of the Ocean, famous for Shipwrecks, and for that reason called La Mer Sauvage, or the wild Sea, hath usually in stormy weather cast up Ambergris, and the best in the world, upon that Coast; a truth I can with confidence aver, after having been an eye-witness of the difference betwixt that, and the other which was brought from the Indies in the Carricks. The people of the Country, by the profit invited to this search, never fail, after a storm to rake all along the Shoar for this Commodity, wherein they have often very good fortune; I having seen in my time a piece, which though much less than that I have already mentioned, weighed above twenty pound, and was valued at above 20000. Livers, found by a Country fellow in the year 1625. wherein he did all he could to cheat the Lord of his due; to whom two thirds of the thing found does of right belong, and the third to the finder, if he make a faithful discovery: but this fellow's fraud being found out, the Duke was by justice favoured in his claim, and made master of the whole. Whilst the Duke on the one hand lost his Money and Jewels at play, his liberality at the same time acquired a Treasure sufficient to recompense those losses, and that was the friendship of Messire Philip Cospean, The advancement of Philip Cospean Bishop of Lizieux by the Duke of Espernon's means. first Bishop of Air, afterwards of Nantes, and lastly of Lizieux, where a few years since he died in as high a reputation of Sanctity and Learning, as any Prelate of his time. This good Bishop was at this time a young man, newly arrived from Mons in Hainault, where he was born; who having run through his course of Study at Louvain, under the tuition of justus Lipsius, with great applause, had assurance enough to trust himself upon the great Theatre of Europe, and resolved upon a Journey to Paris: Thither being come, he first undertook the Education of Messieurs de Ramboüillet, and du Fargis, Pupils worthy of so excellent a Tutor; when from private Precepts, proceeding to public Lectures, he became Philosophy Reader, which he so admirably performed, that he soon eclipsed the Reputation of the most famous Doctors of his time. Le Plessis Baussonniere, who in the profession of Arms retained yet a great inclination to Learning, being invited by Cospean's Reputation to his Lectures, a particular friendship was soon contracted betwixt them; under the privilege of which Le Plessis importuned Cospean to leave the Schools, and to mount the Pulpit, encouraging his modesty with the applause he might infallibly promise to himself from the equity and opinion of all judicious men. With much ado Cospean was at last overcome by his Friends persuasions, so that he preached, and in a short time got so high a repute, that le Plessis made no difficulty to invite the Duke his Master to hear a stranger preach, that had no name at Court. The Duke went the first time to hear him upon le Plessis account, where being highly satisfied with the Eloquence of this new Orator, he afterwards drew most of the Court to hear him, where Cospean outstripping the expectation of all his Auditories, arrived in a short space to such a degree of Reputation, that he became the model of quaint Preaching; and doubtless by this stranger Eloquence first mounted the Pulpit in France. The Duke of Espernon, not content only to countenance the Reputation of so deserving a man, would further by his bounty advance a Virtue, that he had first brought into the light; wherefore the Bishopric of Aire having been some time vacant by the decease of Francis de Foix, and the Candale, and this Dignity being at his dispose, he preferred the Merit of his Friend, to the consideration and respect of many men of Quality, his Relations; and unknown to Cospean, dispatched his Mandamus to the Bishopric, procured Bulls from Rome at his own Charge, and gave him Furniture and Equipage necessary for the support of his Dignity, which would otherwise have been very chargeable to him. A bounty this good Prelate would often mention to me in the story of his Life, with the greatest acknowledgement; and never was man more grateful for a Benefit, than he made it appear he was for this all the days of his life. Neither if he, upon all occasions, highly magnified the Duke's Liberality, was the Duke less satisfied with his good Fortune, that had given him so happy an opportunity to oblige so excellent a man; from whom, I have often heard him declare, he received more assistance in his Affairs, more sweetness, and satisfaction in his conversation, and more comfort in his afflictions, than from all the advantages he had derived from Fortune besides, during the whole course of his long life. All these things passed during the calm the Court at this time lived in, a tranquillity wherein the King, who by the sole reputation of his name kept all things quiet abroad, and who had very little to do at home, began seriously to think of improving his Revenue, and of filling his Treasure; his great, and noble courage suggesting to him generous designs enough of employing it one day to the glory of his own name, and to the advantage of his Crown and Kingdom. A time wherein the presence of his great Ministers being not very necessary at Court, where all things were carried on by his Majesties own particular conduct, every man had leisure to look after his own private affairs. It was after the foremention'd transactions that happened in the Years 1602. and 1603. Anno 1604. that the Duke of Espernon, willing to share in the liberty of the time, departed in the latter end of the last into his Governments of Xaintonge, and Angoumois; where bearing still in mind the affront offered him by the Marshal d' Ornano, A ne● quarrel like to rise betwixt the Duke o● Espernon▪ and the Marshal d' Ornano. and thinking himself not clear in his Reputation, unless he returned again to Bourdeaux to renew the match had before by the Mareschals morosity been broken off, he went again to Bourdeaux in the beginning of the year 1604. to make ready for a Carnaval; to which he had invited a far greater number of Nobility, and Gentry than before, and where the preparation for Masques, Running at the Ring, Balls, and Feasting, were made with great pomp, and vast expense. But the Marshal, notwithstanding the Orders he had received from the King, conceiving this business, what gloss soever might be put upon it, would be interpreted to his disgrace, and would pass in the opinions of men at honour for a Bravado, and an affront to him in his Government, could by no means persuade himself to digest it, which made him very important with the King, that his Majesty would please to absolve him from so injurious a condition; a thing the King (who had him in great esteem) would as willingly have done: But his Royal Word being already passed to the Duke, whom he knew to be as obstinate as the other, in things wherein his Honour was concerned, and not knowing how at once to satisfy two so different humours, matters were in all appearance going into as ill terms as at first, when an accident fell out that soon took the Duke off all thoughts of that Solemnity. The Duchess of Bar the King's only Sister, happened to die at this time which gave the King occasion to write to the Duke of Espernon, that he assured himself all such good Subjects and Servants, as he was, would rather lament with him for the loss of so dear a Relation, than to think of Mirth and public Solemnities of Joy, at so unseasonable a time; a command so much the easier for the Duke to obey, by how much he himself had particular reason to be really afflicted at the death of that excellent Lady. So that by this accident the Marshal d' Ornano saw himself disengaged from one of the greatest extremities he had ever found himself involved in, it having been otherwise necessary for him, either absolutely to disobey the King, which he could not have done without incurring his disgrace, or patiently to submit to an affront he himself had declared to be the greatest he could possibly receive; and that ('tis said) he was resolved to have avoided by laying down his Commission: such as were most perfect in his passionate nature being confident, had it come to the push, he would certainly have ransomed himself from that submission at the price of his Fortune. The Duke continued some time after this in Guienne, and from thence returned into Angoumois, where he spent the remainder of the year, without being called thence upon any public occasion. All things (as has been said) were quiet, and the King seemed to be wholly taken up, with the care of husbanding and filling his Exchequer; wherein though some believed him to be merely carried on by a natural inclination to the love of money; yet his designs which a few years after disclosed themselves gave the world an account, that there was more of design than avarice in the exact care he took to moderate the excessive expense had by his predecessor been introduced into the Kingdom. The Duke of Espernon nevertheless could have wished his Majesty had been more open handed to the Garrisons in his Government, those of Angoulesme, and Xaintes being so ill paid that they could hardly subsist; which putting him into an apprehension, that those places (become now as it were Frontier Towns, since those of the Reformed Religion had made a kind of separation in the State, of which Rochel seemed to be the Metropolitan City) might be lost in his hands, he continually represented to the King the danger those Cities were in, but without being regarded at all; which made him in the beginning of the ensuing year resolve upon a Journey to Court, to try, if in person, and by word of mouth he could not prevail more, than by continual importunities in writing he had hitherto done: where being arrived, and presenting himself before the King, his Majesty ased him in what condition he had left his Governments? to whom the Duke replied, That they could not possibly be in a worse; the necessity of the Soldiery in Garrison being so great that he durst not undertake for the security of those places committed to his charge. To which the King having made answer, That they were used as others were: The Duke (who very well knew the difference his Majesty made betwixt his Catholic Garrisons, and the neighbouring places possessed by those of the Reformed Religion) took the liberty to tell him, that those who had so informed his Majesty had given him a very ill account of his Affairs, the Garrisons of those of the Religion, who perhaps were armed to the prejudice of his Service, being nothing in Arrear, whilst the Catholics who were firm in their obedience, were ready to perish for want of pay. The King nettled at so tart a reply, and angry that the Duke should give him so public a reproach in the discovery of a truth, he had a mind, for many reasons, should have been concealed, suffered himself to be so far transported by his passion, that he could not forbear to tell the Duke, He was perverse, and importunate: That he sought all occasions to displease him: That he would have done him a greater kindness to have kept still at the distance he was at, than to come into his presence only to offend him; and for the close of all, that he had long observed he did not love him. To which the Duke without being thunderstruck at the King's anger, which might perhaps have surprised another man, less confident of his Fidelity than he, insisting upon the last words, answered coldly, but after a serious manner, Sir, your Majesty has not a more faithful Subject than myself in your Kingdom, and I had rather die, than do any thing contrary to the least particle of my duty: A bold answer from the Duke to the King, well received, and turned to his advantage. But Sir, for what concerns friendship, your Majesty knows very well, that is a thing not to be acquired but by Friendship. At so bold, and generous an answer, there was none who was not astonished at the Duke's freedom, and that was not ready to condemn his rashness; though the King himself, who knew how to put a just value upon great actions, and how to interpret language of this nature, was of a more favourable opinion, and gave no reply: but on the contrary, reflecting upon what the Duke had said, converted his indignation into esteem; and interpreting what others thought temerity, for an effect of honest liberty, proceeding from a good conscience, resolved to make himself beloved, by the way the Duke had laid him down, and from that time forward began to use him much better, than he had ever done. Neither was the Duke wanting on his part, but perceiving his Majesty's good disposition towards him, and adding the spur of affection to what he had formerly performed upon the mere account of duty, he at last obtained so great a share in his Majesty's favour, and good opinion, that before his death he received as many testimonies of his Royal good Will and Confidence, Anno 1605. as any other person of his condition whatsoever in the Kingdom. This confidence began soon after to appear, The Duke's expedition into Limousin. by the command the King was pleased to give the Duke over the Horse and Foot he sent into Limousin; when tired out with the continual disorders, the excess of his clemency begat every day in his Kingdom, he was resolved to take order once for all, and by a severe and exemplary punishment to quiet the Rebellion some of Mounsieur de Boüillons Servants openly maintained after his departure out of the Kingdom in Perigord, Quercy, and Limousin. The Marshal de Boüillon was seized of many very fair possessions, and had many Friends and Servants in those Provinces; where the Nobility, Gentry, and Commons being also naturally inclined to Arms, it was no hard matter to persuade them into commotion. The King had been given to understand, that under the pretence of seeking protection only from the Protestant Princes of Germany, and the Swiss Cantons; the Marshal endeavoured to interest them in the Quarrel of those of the Religion in France, by possessing them (as it was said) that since the King's Conversion, their usage was far different from what it had formerly been, and the liberty of Conscience far more restrained, than it used to be. Neither did his Majesty doubt, but that all of his opinion in his Kingdom, would easily be induced to follow the Duke of Boüillon's discontent, who had acquired an absolute reputation among them. He farther saw that many Catholics made no scruple to join with him, to the end they might re-enjoy the licence of War, which would by no means be allowed them in the better times of Peace: He knew that great sums of money were distributed for the raising of men; which money was suspected to come from Spain, from whence all the intestine broils of his Kingdom had ever been countenanced, and promoted. Evil dispositions, that being all joined together, were sufficient to produce great disorders in the State, and to reduce the King in spite of his heart to the necessity of a Civil War. His Majesty therefore thinking it very convenient to prevent all these disorders, and to suffocate them in their Birth, resolved to go in person to Limousin, either by his Presence to appease, or by his Authority to suppress the begun Commotions: but to dispose them to their obedience if possible before his arrival, to chastise some Offenders without drawing the Odium immediately upon himself, and to reduce every one to his Duty; he ordered the Duke of Espernon to go before with six Companies only of his Regiment of Guards, and four Troops of Horse; not doubting but with this little Body, together with the Duke's Interest (which was very considerable in those parts, of which some places were under his own Government) he would be able to give a better account of his Expedition, than another perhaps could do with greater Forces. And to the end that his Justice might accompany his Arms, he joined to the Duke jean jaques de Mesmes Signior de Roissy, Master of Requests, with Commission of Oyer and Terminer to sit upon the Life, and Death of the Offenders. This was he so famous for his Integrity, and Valour, that was afterwards Doyen to the Council of State, where, though the esteem every one had of his Virtue was very great; yet was it no more, than was due to his merit; although afterwards in the progress of a long life, he had this honour added to the rest he enjoyed, to see his name illustrated by a noble Posterity; not any man scarce of his condition in the Kingdom having supplied the State with so great and able Ministers. The Duke having taken his leave of the King, advanced into Limousin; where he would have Crequy Campmaster to the Regiment of Guards to command in person the Forces he took along with him, and where the most turbulent spirits, at his unexpected arrival (which by his diligence had almost got the start of any intelligence of his coming) medi●ated nothing less than their defence; some of the most advised fearing to have to do with the Duke, or de Roissy, appealed to his Majesty's mercy, and by the acknowledgement of their offence, obtained their Pardon; others retired themselves to the Duke de Boüillon to Sedan, the most imprudent, or the most unfortunate only falling into the hands of Justice. Of which five or six suffered death, though many others were punished by more moderate ways: so that before the King's arrival at Lymoges, all those Countries, that before breathed nothing but Sedition and Disorder, were now so calm and still, that his Majesty had nothing to do, but by his Clemency to settle Rebels, newly reclaimed from their Disobedience, in their Duty, and to reward his faithful Subjects, by the demonstrations of his Grace and Favour. The end of the Fifth Book. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. The Sixth Book. THE Affairs of Limousin, that had taken up the Duke of Espernon the whole year, having been composed with the facility you have heard, A dispute betwixt the Duke of Espernon and the Duke of Guise. the King returned again to Paris, attended by the Duke, who had now nothing left to do behind. The antiquated enmity, that so many years had been nourished betwixt the House of Guise and him, continued still, which was ready to discover itself upon every light occasion, and almost as oft as they met to come to a bustle betwixt them: In all which disputes, the Duke (notwithstanding that that Illustrious Family, by the greatness of their Birth, and by their Offices in the State, by their vast possessions in the Kingdom, and above all by the great number of generous Princes of which it was composed, as also by the potency of their Alliances, made up a great part of the Court) would never give them the least ground, but ever sustained their power with great Spirit, and Vigour; neither did he want such a number of Relations, and Servants, as might secure him from the apprehension of the greatness of any. He had sometime before this had a brisk dispute with the Duke of Guise, the King being at Lions, which proceeded so far, that the Duke of Espernon by the hands of la Pierre, one of the Duke's Gentlemen, received a Challenge from him, though the Quarrel had been so public, and the Duke of Guise was so narrowly watched by his Friends, that he could not get out into the Field; wherein the Duke of Espernon was better served by his, who permitted him to go out of the City with Gohas, whom he took with him for his second: but being called back by the King's Command, who would himself compose their difference, that Quarrel was soon at an end. There happened at this time another, betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and the Prince of joinville, Another quarrel betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and the Prince of joinville. now Duke of Cheureuse, and Brother to the Duke of Guise; for this Prince having stayed the Coach of a Woman of Quality at the outer Gate of the Lovure, one night that the King had appointed a great Dancing at Court, and the Duke coming out, with the Duke of Montensier to go home, the Lady's Coach so stopped the Gate, that the Duke's could not possibly pass; wherefore he commanded the Coachman to make way: But the Duke of Cheureuse, who was leaned upon one of the Boots of the Coach, on the dark side where he could not be perceived, commanded the Coachman not to stir, seeking (as it was plain enough) out of youthful bravery, an occasion to quarrel: nor did the Duke fail to give him as good a one, as he could desire; for not being able longer to endure the insolency of so base a fellow, he cudgelled the Coachman so well, that he forced him at last to give back. The Prince de joinville, who perhaps forbore out of respect to the Duke of Montpensier, appeared not at all in the business at that time; but in the morning sent the Gentleman of his Horse, le Comté by name, to question the Duke about it: The Duke was yet in his bed, and asleep when the Gentleman came, but being waked by the Groom of his Chamber, who never refused admittance to any, he sent for him to his bedside; where being come, the Gentleman told him that he was sent by the Prince of joinville his Master, to know, if when he beat the Coachman over night, he did it to affront him? To which the Duke returning no answer, but only ask him where his Master was? and the other having answered that he stayed at the foot of Montmartre with a good Horse, and a good Sword to expect him, he, without more words leaped out of his Bed, dressed himself in the Gentleman's presence, and having led him into his Armoury, took out thence two Swords of equal length; whereof he gave him the choice; by which time the Master of his own Horse, being also come to him they went all three together to the place. Being there come, the Duke found the Prince de joinville ready to receive him, their Swords were already drawn, and they were just going to't; when the Prince, who had his face towards Paris, ●eeing a Party of ●orse coming that way, and suspecting it was with an intent to prevent them, showed them to the Duke, telling him withal that they must spur to gain the Bois de Boulogne, and without more words turned his Horse that way. The Duke, who by the distance of those he saw, conceived they had yet time enough to end their dispute before they could come in to interrupt them, had a great mind, without going further, to have dispatched the business there: but being necessitated to follow the Prince, who was already upon the gallop towards the Wood, he spurred after, though they could not make such haste, but that they were interrupted before they could come there, and by their Friends carried back to the City. Where the King, having notice of their Quarrel, commanded them both to the Lovure, and there took up the business, making them embrace in his presence, and promise to be good friends. That which was most remarkable on the Duke's side in this occasion was, that the number of those who declared themselves of his Party was so great, that they took up all the space betwixt the Roll, to the Lovure; whilst the Duke of joinville was only countenanced by those of his own Relation, whose interest in Paris was at this time very much declined, from what it had formerly been in the life of the Duke his Father. Although the residence of this great City was very pleasing to the King, Anno 1606. yet could not the delights that entertained him there, detain his Majesty from visiting all parts of his Kingdom, where he conceived his presence to be necessary for the advancement of his Affairs. We saw him the last year in Limousin, The King makes an● expedition to Se●n, wherein the command of t●e Vanguard is committed to the Duke of Espernon. and this invited him into Champagne, and as far as Sedan, to reduce the Duke of Boüillon to his duty. This Duke keeping himself still at a distance from the Court, and refractory to several Summons his Majesty had sent him to make his appearance, and by justifying himself to obtain his favour, it was plain that his refusing to come, was a contempt to the Sovereign Authority, and that therefore his Majesty in the vindication of his own honour, was obliged to chastise him. Neither did he longer defer, for that purpose to make his preparation for a Journey to Sedan. In this expedition the Duke of Espernon, whom the King began now much better to relish, and whose admirable care, and vigilancy, upon all occasions, gave his Majesty infinite satisfaction, had the command of the Vanguard committed to him, and had matters proceeded to the necessity of a Siege, was designed for one of the most important Quarters against the Town: but the Duke of Boüillon having at last shut himself up in the place, and not willing to pull upon himself the utmost effects of the King's indignation, had recourse to his mercy; and by his submissions, together with the Queen's intercession (who ordinarily accompanied the King in all his Motions) obtained of his Majesty an indemnity for all things past, upon the most favourable terms he could himself expect, or desire. Whereupon he received the King into the City the seventh of April 1606. with a Garrison of 300. men, which by the condition of the Accommodation were to remain four years in the Castle; during which time his Majesty would make trial of this new Convert's perseverance in his duty: but that long space was, by his Majesty's favour, reduced to a few months, the bounty of this generous Prince ever contracting the term of men's disgraces; his displeasure being short lived, and of no continuance; but his noble nature being ever constant to oblige all his Subjects. Though the following year was passed over without any disturbance in the Kingdom; Anno 1607. yet did his Majesty's Name, and Reputation give him opportunity, and by his Authority, Power, to compose one of the most dangerous differences, that could possibly have happened amongst Christian Princes, and that was the falling out betwixt the Pope Paul the V. and the Republic of Venice: a disorder, that had it not in time been taken up, would infallibly have involved all Christendom in the Quarrel, and it is infinitely to be feared, have given the Turk opportunity in so great a confusion to have made a formidable advance into the very heart of Europe. A danger that his Majesty (than whom none was clearer sighted) very well foresaw, and (retaining a grateful memory of the obligations he had received, both from the Holy Sea, and that Republic at his advancement to the Crown) as soon undertook to interpose betwixt those two powerful adversaries. The business was carried on by the mediation of the Cardinal de joyeuse, and Cardinal Perron; wherein the one, and the other proceeding according to his Majesty's wise direction, their endeavours were at last crowned with success, and all things concluded to the satisfaction of both parties, but chiefly to the Honour of France; which now appeared to be the Arbiter of all the Estates of Europe. And indeed in those times all things in a manner were swayed by his Majesty's will; his desire being almost a rule to all Princes in all Affairs: Neither was there in the whole world a Kingdom to be found more glorious, more flourishing, or more happy, than that of France, during the Reign of this mighty Prince. Yet could not all this reputation abroad secure him from afflictions at home; neither could his greatness and bounty exempt him from the power of Death; who first exercising his cruelty upon some of his Family, discharged in the end his whole rage and fury upon his own person. The precedent year had ravished from him one of the Princes his Children, and this deprived him of the Duke of Montp●nsier his Cousin; The de●th of the Duke of Montp●nsier. a Prince for whom his Majesty had as great a kindness, as for any whatsoever of his Blood, as he made it appear by the true sorrow he manifested for his death: but the Duke of Espernon was afflicted beyond all expression. I have already given an account of the Alliance betwixt these two, and of the particular Friendship that Alliance begot, I shall now further say, they were inseparable in their conversation, their Interests went ever hand in hand with one another, and it will be hard to find a Friendship so pure, and constant betwixt two private persons, as they ever preserved entire, in the corruptions and revolutions of the Court. Neither could the friendship of a Prince of his extraction and virtue be otherwise than of great importance to the Duke; whose prosperity and advancement had procured him so much envy, and consequently so many enemies: yet was he constrained to submit to the inevitable necessity of death, and to bear with patience a loss for which there was no other remedy. This accident was yet followed by another the ensuing year, Anno 1608. at which the Duke was almost equally afflicted: Pere Ange de joyeuse, Father-in-law to the Duke of Montpensier, had been returned into the Order of Fathers Capuchins from the year 1599 from which time he had continued in the austerity of his Canon with so great zeal and sanctity, that he was become a precedent of Virtue, and Holy Living to all the Religious Men of his Order: Yet did he not (when returning to the observation of his Vow, he threw off all worldly vanities, and desires) banish from his breast those true affections which Nature and Reason had planted in his heart: but on the contrary had ever in his greatest retirement cherished the Duke's friendship, as if he had been his true Brother in Blood, as he was in Alliance and Affection. Neither was the Duke on his part less sedulous to improve so virtuous an Interest, ever honouring, and loving him, even in his penitential Sackcloth, at as high a rate, as when he lived in the greatest Lustre, in the most honourable employments; and applying himself with greater diligence to the Interests of his House, and to the advancement of his Daughter, than when he himself lived upon the great Theatre of the busy world: so that in different capacities of living, their friendship continued still one, and the same, till death came to cut the knot, The death of Pere Ange de joyeuse the Duke's Brother-in-law. which along had power to dissolve it. This Holy man died at Rivoly in Piedmont, in his return from Rome, in great reputation of Sanctity and Virtue, which has since by time been made more manifest to all. The following year affords so little considerable to be said of the Duke of Espernon in particular (the Court being at this time wrapped in so great a calm and security, Anno 1609. that there is nothing of moment to be reported of any save the King himself) that it might well enough be passed over in silence: But having hitherto found out something or other to record in the foregoing years, I had rather travel, not out of my subject only, but also out of the affairs of the Kingdom, than to omit the most glorious proof his Majesty could possibly give of his Authority with all the Princes, and States of Christendom in the conclusion of the Truce betwixt the Crown of Spain, and the States of the United Provinces. This great affair had been fruitlessly proposed almost from the very first bustle of Arms in that Country; neither had endeavours been wanting even in the heat of the most bloody executions (that the fury of War has perhaps produced in any part of Europe) for the effecting of so good a work,, Treaties of Accommodation having every year, during those troubles been constantly by some or other set on foot: but the animosity of Factions, the difference of Religions, and the variety of Events, that had ever kept Affairs on both sides as it were in-equal balance, had so exasperated the minds of men, that scarce any proposition of Peace would be endured. A work, it seems, reserved to be an additional Ray to the King's Glory, The Truce betwixt Spain and Holland concluded by the King's mediation. whose reputation only could cut the knot of all those difficulties. Spain had great need of Peace, which having often, without interessing the King in the Affair, sought in vain, he was in fine constrained to apply himself to him to procure it, and wholly to submit all things to his Arbitration. A task the King (very well satisfied with so high, and public an acknowledgement of his power) as readily undertook, and to that purpose dispatched away Precedent janin, and the Sieur de R●issy, to manage the Work: by whose prudent conduct, fortified by their Master's Reputation, they effected that by the weight of Authority, which perhaps their dexterity (how great soever) without great labour and expense of much time, could not otherwise have brought to pass. So that things were reduced to the point the parties concerned could themselves desire; from whence followed an universal Peace amongst all Christian Princes. It was into this tranquille condition, that the Affairs of Europe were first to be wrought, Anno 1610. before the King could begin to form it into the new mould he had long designed; for this great Prince, born to reconcile Monarchy and Justice, being unable to endure the proud Authority, with which the Crown of Spain lorded it over all her Neighbours, and more impatient that by the expansion of his Empire the Spaniard should reap advantages, which he conceived were more justly due to his Birth, and Valour, he resolved to clip the wings of this soaring greatness, to make him give back those Territories he usurped from his Neighbours, to restore the Republics their ancient liberty, and finally to reduce his power to the limits of his primitive possession. This in short is all that can be said of the King's designs, and all that such as conceived they penetrated deepest into his most private thoughts, could possibly divine; it being most certain that he discovered the bottom of his design to none, which had it been communicated to any, the Duke of Espernon would doubtless in this conjuncture have participated of the trust: The King makes great preparation for War. but as this great Prince would execute all things in his own person, so did he here reserve to himself the secret of his resolutions; insomuch that though his Army was all ready drawn into the Field, that he himself was immediately to come up to them, and that in all probability there would be sudden action; yet durst no one venture positively to determine whither that preparation was directed, or who was to feel the first edge of his Arms: neither shall I presume to deliver these conjectures for truth, nor suffer my curiosity to transgress the bounds this mighty Prince in his wisdom prescribed even to the most faithful Ministers of his Kingdom. This brave and laudable ambition having long possessed his generous heart, he had from the first Idea of his design wisely laid up for the means to effect it, that it might succeed to his glory: and to that end, from the time peace was first settled in his Kingdom, had been gathering, and had now got together a prodigious Treasure: His Artillery and Ammunitions were all ready, and in equipage fit to execute his vast designs. France was able to furnish him with an infinite number of old Soldiers; neither, in the fair weather he had been so solicitous to maintain at home, had he forgot to take a particular care of breeding so many brave Captains, and good Soldiers in the Low-Country-Wars, as were sufficient, in a very short time, to bring such raw men as should be raised, into very good discipline. Besides the Forces of his own Kingdom, he had made a League with all the neighbouring Princes: The Duke of Savoy, the Republic of Venice, the Duke of Florence, and almost all the Princes of Italy, the Prince of Orange, and most of the Princes of Germany, with the Hanse-Towns of the Empire were engaged to join with him: And the King of England had made great preparation in favour of his designs; so that in all appearance, what, and how great soever these designs might be, they were very likely to succeed. Nothing then being wanting, but a pretence to give colour to his action, the death of the Dukes of Cléves, soon supplied him with one as good as he could desire; for after his death, the succession to his Dukedom being pretended to by all his Brothers-in-law, who were five, the Marquis of Brandebourg, the Duke of N●whourg, the Count Palatine, the Duke of Deux Ponts, and the Marquis of Burgau; all these Princes agreed to appeal to the King, and to stand to his Arbitration: but whilst they were pleading their titles in the Court of France, the Emperor (pretending all vacant Jurisdictions to be Fiefs of the Empire, and that for want of Heirs Males, he had right to seize them in trust) had there established the Archduke Leopold his Cousin, as his Deputy and Governor, for, and under him: in order to which delegation the Archduke had already, by the assistance of the Austrian Forces, possessed himself of the best part of the Duchy by the taking of juliers; notwithstanding that the King had publicly declared, he desired things might remain suspended, till every man's Title was examined, and the true Heir could be known. And this was in effect, all the reason could be given for this mighty preparation, though an Army consisting of forty thousand French Foot, ten thousand Swiss, ten thousand Horse, and fifty pieces of Cannon, with their Equipage; together with the Levies the confederate Princes were still, on all hands preparing to join with him; giving all the world to understand, that so great Forces were designed for some other end, than only for the Accommodation of a particular Quarrel, all men were in suspense, and in great expectation of what the event would be. The Army then being in the Field, and the King ready to depart from Paris, his Majesty would yet first take so good order to secure the interior Peace of his Kingdom, that he might not, when at a great distance, and in the heat of his Erterprises, be called back by Domestic troubles: A consideration that made him determine to devolve his Royal Power to the Queen, and to cause her to be declared Regent in his absence; and knowing that how good soever her intentions were, and how sincere soever her administration might be; yet that the sovereign Authority he left her invested withal, would require the Fidelity, Courage, and Prudence of some great and experienced Minister to support it, he cast his eye upon the Duke of Espernon, to confer upon him that great Trust and Honour. In this resolution therefore, having one day called for the Duke, and causing him to come into his Closet, where he was then with the Queen alone; the Duke was not a little surprised at the favourable, and obliging Character, his Majesty was then pleased to give of him to the Queen, on so unexpected an occasion. He told her, That being upon the point to go out of the Kingdom, the Government whereof he had, during his absence, committed to her care, he had considered how necessary it would be for her to have a faithful Servant about her person, upon all occurrences that might happen, and, in occasions where the modesty of her Sex would not permit her to act in her own person, to be assisting to her with his Wisdom, and Valour: That having to that end severally weighed the abilities of all the chief Officers of his Crown, he had found none, in whom the qualities necessary for so great an employment, were more eminent than in the person of the Duke of * De Serres says the King intended to leave the Constable, and the Chancellor in tha● trust. Espernon there present: That having had a long experience of his Fidelity, Wisdom, and Valour, he had determined to deprive himself of his Service, though infinitely necessary to him in the prosecution of his designs, and to send him back to her upon the first sally of his Arms. That she might repose an entire and perfect confidence in him, as he himself also did, who knew him to be a man of approved Fidelity, and Honour: That he was going to execute designs, wherein he was likely to meet with many difficulties, and perhaps some danger; but that whatever should happen, he desired her to rest secure in the Duke's vigilancy, and care, for which he would undertake both to himself and to her. After which, turning to the Duke, he told him, That he did not require from him any confirmation by new promises, of those things whereof he had assured the Queen in his behalf: That he had had so many proofs of his Virtue, in the integrity of his former Actions, it was not now to be suspected, that he conjured him by the esteem, and affection he had for him, to justify his expectation, to serve the Queen, and the Princes his Children, with the same Fidelity he had served him, and to promise to himself for his reward, all the acknowledgement he could reasonably expect from a grateful Prince, and a good Master. The Duke a little out of countenance at what the King had said in his favour, made answer in few words, That he did humbly acknowledge his obligation to his Majesty for so high a Character, and for the unexpected Honour he was pleased to confer upon him, which in the nature of it was far above all others, he had till then received from his Royal bounty; and that if he had a thousand lives he would willingly lay them all at his feet to express his gratitude for so signal a favour: That he did humbly beseech their Majesties to retain that favourable opinion of him, and to conclude him the most unworthy of all their Subjects, and the worst of all men, if he ever failed in the least part of his Duty. After this the King told him he could not leave him at present with the Queen, having occasion for him to command the Vanguard of his Army, till the Prince of Orange should come up to him, for whom he had reserved that employment. A thing the Duke knew before, as also that the King intended him the honour of that important command in the mean time: But the election of his person in that great employment of sitting at the Helm, did not a little displease, and increase the envy of many of the greatest men of the Kingdom, who had long looked a squint upon the Duke's Prosperity and Favour; though his Majesty, having maturely, and upon very good grounds proceeded to that choice, was not for any consideration, or by any arguments whatsoever to be dissuaded from that resolution. I know not how some, who envy the Duke's name, and memory, may entertain a relation so much to his advantage; though were I put to prove the truth of what I report, I could bring a great many persons of Honour, and Quality to attest it; the Queen Mother, in the first Letter she writ to the King after her escape from Blois, makes particular mention of it; than whom no one could be better informed in this Affair, and has also several times since declared by word of mouth, what she then published in writing: neither was it a secret at that time, no more than I hope it will be suspected in this, where so many persons are living of Reputation enough to give it Authority, should it be contradicted by any, who perhaps are not so well informed. The King having, as has been said, taken order to secure all things that were likely in his absence, to disturb the peace of his Kingdom, prepared himself to be gone: The Queen had been Crowned at St. Dennis the thirteenth of May, and her entry into Paris was designed to have been, on Sunday the sixteenth, and on the seventeenth his Majesty intended, without further delay, to set out towards the Army. Nothing was now to be seen in Paris, but great preparations of joy, and triumph, to honour the remaining Ceremony of the Queen's Coronation; nothing but demonstrations of the King's Magnificence, and of the felicity of his Reign, himself being most diligent in giving the Orders necessary for the state of that Solemnity; when this Great and Illustrious Prince, the terror of his Enemies, and the love and delight of his people, going abroad upon the fourteenth of the same month, to view the preparation of those Magnificences, was in a stop he 〈◊〉 upon the way in the street de la Ferronnerie, by Saint Innocents' Church, The Death of Henry the FOUR with three stabs of a Villain's Knife, laid dead in his Coach. The Duke of Espernon had the honour to be seated by the King in the hinder part of the Coach, upon whom his Majesty was leaning to whisper something in his ear; the Duke of Monbazon, with the Marshal de la Vardin, was in one of the Boo●s, * Who were the Marshal de Roquelaure, the Marquis de la Force, the Sieur de Liencourt, and the Marquis de Mire●eau. and other persons of great Quality took up the rest: at the first stab the King cried out, I am hurt; at which the Duke of Espernon, who saw the next blow coming, holding up his arm to divert it, received part of it in the * De S●rres says by a mistake the Duke of Monbazon ●eceiv'd the ●●ab in the right sleeve of his Doublet. sleeve of his Doublet, that was struck through, though the King's Destiny would not suffer him to receive it all; nor permit, that at the peril of his own life, he should save that of his Master, as with all his soul he would have done. The cursed Parricide proceeded yet to a third stab, of which the two last were mortal, and with the second the King tumbled dead upon the Duke, who received him in his Arms, his blood boiling in great quantities out of his mouth. After this execrable act, the cursed Assassinate was soon discovered, against whom those who attended the King, and amongst them Saint Michael, one of his Gentlemen in ordinary, prompted by a just fury, had already drawn his Sword to dispatch him; when the Duke, call to mind, how much those Gentlemen had been condemned who killed jaques Clement upon the Murder of Henry the III. by whose imprudent zeal, a further discovery from the wretches own mouth of the Authors of that abominable Treason, was prevented, he cried out to Saint Michael, and to the Footmen, who had drawn their Swords to the same purpose, to hold, and upon pain of death not to kill him, but only to seize kiss person, that he might be delivered into the hands of justice.. A caution that served not a little to the vindication of an infinite number of worthy men; on whom, without all doubt, the various Factions that after broke out in the Kingdom, would according to their several Animosities, have laid the blame of that detested Fact, to serve for a pretence to their Insurrection. The Duke having given this first order, commanded the Coach man to turn back to the Lovure, and having spied in the King's Train, the Marquis de Monferrant his particular Friend and Servant, he entreated him to go before, and from him to command the Foot Companies that were upon the Guard before the Lovure, to stand immediately to their Arms, and to secure all the Gates, to prevent any disorder in the King's Household: In the execution of which command, and in the distraction the sight of so horrid, and so unexpected an accident might reasonably put him into, Monferrant met the Chancellor de Sillery, then going to Council in the Lovure; who ask him the reason of that hurly burly, and of the Soldiers running to their Arms, Monferrant told him the King was dead; at which the Chancellor amazed, and in suspense how to believe it, grasping him by the arm, and saying how's that Mounsieur de Monferrant! do you know what you say? the Coach arrived with the Curtains drawn, out of which the King without any motion was carried up in a Cloak, and laid upon the Bed in his Wardrobe. The Duke, The Duke of Espernon's signal services to the State after the Death of the King. after he had paid this last Office to his dead Master, though surprised to the degree may be imagined at so tragical an accident, was not long nevertheless, before he recollected himself; when considering that the greatest testimony he could give of his gratitude to his dead Prince, was to serve those he had left to succeed him, he began to pay the Queen those services, he had but a few days before in the King's Closet engaged himself to perform; though the Orders he there received were not intended to have been executed so soon, nor upon so fatal an occasion. The rumout of the King's death had already spread itself, not only throughout the Lovure, but also over all Paris; at which the Queen, being beyond all imagination afflicted, and dissolving herself into tears, without any other thought, than how to humour, and satisfy her own grief; the Duke of Espernon came into her Chamber, and after some expressions of sorrow, which as a true Frenchman, a good Subject, and an obliged Servant he could not forbear for the loss of so good a Master, he there told her: That he did not come to her Majesty in hope to stop the current of her tears, the cause of her sorrow being too great to admit of any present consolation; but that she would ever have leisure enough to weep, when perhaps she might not always have opportunity to provide for the Fortune of her Children, and the Safety of the Kingdom, which in effect were one, and the same thing: That her Majesty might better judge than any, what envy the King's prosperity had drawn upon him, from all the neighbouring Princes; and how much it was to be feared lest his own Servants, no longer now restrained by the presence of this great Prince, might in hope of novelty be debauched from their duty, if some good, and prudent order, for the settlement of Affairs, were not suddenly taken: That to keep things in the quiet posture they then were, her Majesty must speedily, and in the first place, secure the Domestic Peace of the Kingdom, by continuing Pa●is in the serenity, and calm of obedience, it than was: That the single strength of the Kingdom, if united, and in good intelligence within itself, was of itself sufficient to frustrate the designs of any that should attempt any thing against the Crown of France: That for his own part, who had taken upon him the boldness to give her Majesty this first advice, he there from his heart made her an humble tender of his Life, his Fortune, and his Friends to do her Service; that therefore she was only to command, what she would please should be done, and that he would perish, or cause her Royal will to be obeyed. The Queen awaked by so prudent a Counsel, and fortified by the resolution of so generous, and so considerable a Subject, told him: That she wholly reserred all things to his Vigilancy, and Conduct, to be ordered, as he should in his wisdom think most fit; wherein she recommended to his Fidelity, the care of her Children, much more than any concern of her own, and that she should rest very well satisfied with whatever he should do, knowing as she very well did, his prudence, and affection to be equally so great, that nothing was to be added to them. The Duke without losing more time, went immediately out of the Lovure; where the first thing he did in order to the Queen's commands, was to bid the Officers of the Regiment of Guards, to put their men suddenly into Arms. This great body consisting of four thousand effective men, and those of the best, and the best Disciplined in Europe, did not a little awe the Parisians, from leaping over the bounds of their Duty: a strength that as it was absolutely at the Duke's command, so did he upon this occasion know so well, how to dispose it into the most convenient Quarters of the Town, that without all doubt, it was by virtue of those Forces, he secured the peace of that Seditious City, and kept the multitude from tumult and insurrection. Arquien, whom (as has been said) the King had put into the Citadel of Metz, in the year 1604. was Lieutenant Colonel to the Regiment of Guards, and consequently in the absence of Crequy, who was Campmaster to the said Regiment (and who was already gone up to the Army, with the greatest part of the Nobility of the Court) was under the Authority of the Duke to command it. Him therefore the Duke speedily sent for to have given him orders, but he was no where to be found; for from the instant that the King's death was certain, imagining the Duke would infallibly take the advantage of the time, and his own Authority, to remove him from Metz, he had taken post to put himself into the Citadel, hoping there he should be able to maintain his ground: But the Duke who in the care of public affairs, did not altogether neglect his own, which his Affection and Fidelity to the Crown, rendered one, and the same with the other, judged by Arquiens absence what his design might be, dispatched Mun de Sarlaboust Captain to one of the Companies of the Guards, immediately after him, if possible to prevent him, or at least to follow him so close, that he might arrive at Metz before Arquien could have time to practise any thing to his disadvantage. The Duke had in Metz, besides the ordinary Garrison of eight Companies (of which he had composed a Regiment, called the Old Garrison) two Companies of the Regiment of Guards commanded by Tilladet, and Fromigieres, since Grand Prior of Tholouze; all which were so absolutely at his devotion, and their Captains so linked to his Interests, their Fortunes wholly depending upon his Favour, as they had been raised by his bounty, that not a man of them but was ready upon all occasions to be absolutely commanded by him. To this he was confident of the Inhabitants good affection towards him, who by the moderation of his Government, and by the protection with which he had sheltered them from Sobole's Insolence, were wholly acquired unto him: which interests, joined together, made the Duke confident he should not want Forces sufficient to hinder Arquien from being received into the Citadel, if Mun could get thither before him; or even there to force him, should he happen to put himself into it, before his Orders could arrive. And indeed all things succeeded to his desire, as shall in its due place be declared. But we must first return to Paris, which at this time was the Scene of the most, and the most important Affairs. The Regiment of Guards being in the absence of Arquien drawn together by Saint Coulombe, What ways the Duke proceeded in to cause the Queen Mother to be declared Regent. the eldest Captain, the Duke sent them order to advance; which being done, he appointed part thereof for the Guard of the Lovure, with the Regiment of Swiss which he (extending the Authority the Queen had given him, as French Guards over that Nation also) had likewise commanded into Arms: The other part were disposed upon the Pontneuf towards la rüe Dauphine, and upon the principal avenues that lead to the Convent des Augustins. He further entreated Mounsieur de Liancourt Governor of Paris speedily to assemble the * O● Lord Mayor of Paris. Prevos● des marchand's, and the * Sheriff's Eschevins in the * 〈…〉 Hostel de Ville offering him withal a sufficient Guard to secure them; as accordingly he he sent five hundred of the Regiment of Guards, under the command of Captain Dnoüet who remained there two days together upon Duty. These Orders being given, the Duke himself mounted on Horseback, went towards the Pontneuf to go to the Cloistre Nostre dame, there to confer with Precedent Seguier, without whose advice he resolved to proceed no further. This man whose integrity, judgement, and affection, the Duke had in equal esteem, had ever even in the time of his Favour, and in the greatest difficulties of his Affairs, been with his Counsel assisting to him; neither didt he Duke at this time, or since, resolve almost upon any thing (whether of general, or particular concern) without first communicating the business to him, and consulting his Advice. There was at this time none of the Princes of the Blood at Court, for the Prince of Cond● had some time before the King's death retired into Flanders, and was at this time at Milan; and the Count de Soissons was at his house at Champigny; so that no body being at Court considerable enough to make a party, the Duke at his going out of the Lovure, found almost all the Lords, and Gentlemen, who were then in Paris (and whom the suddenness and great concern of that bloody Accident had assembled together) at the Gate ready to attend him. Being upon the way with this great Train, he had not gone far before he met with the Duke of Guise, whom he found also very well accompanied, though with a Train far inferior to his own. These two Dukes, nor their Families, were not as yet so well united (the paternal hatred having been rather fomented by the quarrels the Duke had lately had with both the Sons, notwithstanding his Majesty's endeavour to reconcile them) but that there was greater expectation this meeting should beget some new disorder, than that men so disunited betwixt themselves should concur so suddenly, and happily in the public Service; insomuch that their followers on both sides seemed only to expect a signal from their Leaders to fall to blows: when the Duke of Guise, having with great civility saluted the Duke, asked him how that sad misfortune had happened? to whom the Duke in short related the manner of the King's death, with what had after passed betwixt the Queen and him, and the Order he was by her Majesty's Command going to take to prevent any tumult in the City: Whereupon the Duke of Guise ask him, if there were not something for him to do in the Queen's Service also? the Duke replied, That since he asked his advice, he conceived he might do both the Queen and the Kingdom a signal Service, by only showing himself in the streets of Paris: Th●t the people awed within their duty, by the presence of a man of his condition, would be less apt to be seduced into commotion; and that by the calm which would by that means be preserved in the City, they might doubtless more effectually proceed to the establishment of such good orders, as would for the future secure the peace of the whole Kingdom. A counsel the Duke of Guise as readily followed, and the good Fortune of France, having upon the instant extiguished all particular Animosities, betwixt these two great Persons, so as to make them, beyond all expectation, join in the common Service of the State. This happy union, and concurrence was of no little importance to the conservation of the Peace in that mutinous City. The Duke after continued his way to the President's House, to whom having communicated his designs, he found them to be generally approved by him; insomuch that before they parted it was concluded betwixt them, that that very day, and as soon as it was possible, the Parliament should be entreated to Assemble: the management of which being undertaken by the Precedent, the Duke went in the mean time to provide for the rest. He began with the Hostel de Ville, The Duke goes to the Hostel de Ville: where having found the Prevost des marchand's, the Eschevins, and Burgesses met together, after he had first given them an account in brief of the sad Accident had happened, he proceeded to exhort them, To confirm to his Majesty's Successors the Love and Obedience they had paid to him during his happy Reign. He told them that by persevering in their Duty, they might secure their own Lives, and Estates, which would otherwise be certainly exposed to the violence and licence of Seditious men: That the least disorder of this nature, that should happen in the City, would put the whole Kingdom into Confusion: That he therefore entreated them to cause all their Gates to be shut, to the end that no one might be permitted, either to go out, or to come in, who were either thought able, or likely, to breed any disturbance in the public peace, to give order to the Capains of the Train'dbands to have their Companies in readiness upon any occasion might happen, and to walk themselves the round of the City, the better by their Presence and Authority to keep every one in his Duty. He further gave them notice, that he had already caused the Regiment of Guards both French, and Swiss, to stand to their Arms, on purpose to suppress those who should first make the least show of Insurrection; but that he hoped their wisdoms would prevent a confusion, which would not so easily be composed, if once grown to a head, as it might be suppressed in the beginning. A Remonstrance, that, being delivered with great plainness, and vigour, wrought so good an effect, that all the Magistrates unanimously engaged to do their utmost endeavours for the conservation of the public Peace; as they accordingly did: which was none of the weakest links that curbed the headstrong multitude of that unruly City. From the Hostel de Ville, The Duke goes to the Augustins, where he advises the Parliament to declare the Queen Regent. the Duke went to the Augustins, where that Session of Parliament had by the King been appointed to be kept; the Palace having been before furnished, for the Ceremony of the Queen's Coronation, and where by the diligence of Precedent Segnier, he found them already Assembled. The Regiment of Guards had already possessed themselves of the Pontneuf, and stood in order all along the Rüe Dauphine, to guard, according to the Duke's command, all the passes round about the Convent des Augustins; a precaution, which though by the Duke merely intended for the Parliaments security, was nevertheless misinterpreted by some to be rather designed to compel them to execute his own particular Counsels, than that every man at greater liberty might have freedom to deliver his own Opinion; neither were the most prudent, and best disposed sorry (as has been said) that the world should conceive there was some necessity upon them of a speedy resolution in the present juncture of Affairs, forasmuch also as some, who were prepossessed in their judgements, would be obliged to concur with them, and disappointed, either from opposing, or deferring to declare the Queen Mother Regent during the King's Minority, which was the only thing then to be debated. The Duke being come into the Hall where the Parliament was set with his Sword in his hand, though not drawn, and in some disorder both in his clothes, and Countenance, began his Speech with some excuses; For appearing in that honourable Assembly in so undecent a posture; after which he told them that his Sword was yet in the Scabbard (his own words) but that if before he went thence there was not order taken, for the security of the City, and Kingdom, by declaring the Queen Regent, he foresaw (to his great grief) he must be compelled to draw it against the Enemies of the Crown, and to fill the City with Blood, and Confusion: That he knew there were some amongst them who would ask respite to deliberate upon the things proposed; but that he must tell them beforehand, nothing was so dangerous as delay: That in many great occurrences it was wisdom, not to be too precipitous, and to proceed slowly, and by degrees to a final determination; but that here it was quite otherwise, it being necessary in this Crisis of Affairs to cut off all difficulties, and immediately to resolve upon the thing propounded: That what might to day be concluded without danger, could not be done to morrow without Blood and Slaughter; and indeed what pretence could any man have to ask respi●e in this case? what was required of them out of the rule of Equity, and nature? To whom was the King's Fortune more properly to be entrusted, than to her who brought him into the world, or to whose care the safety of the Kingdom, than to her, who for the space of ten years, had with the late King been a Coadjutrix in raising it to that degree of height, and reputation, wherein it now stood. He told them that the Queen was a Princess for whom his Majesty from the hour of his Marriage had never had any reservation in his most weighty and most secret Affairs: That he had made her his Companion in all his Expeditions: That he had already deputed the Regency of the Kingdom during his absence into her hands; a preordination after which he could not believe any one would dare to contradict the Judgement of a Prince so great in himself, and so solicitous of the good and welfare of his Kingdom: That therefore the most effectual means to preserve the Peace and Tranquillity wherein France had been happy many years, was to concur in the King's Judgement, and to justify his Election: That the discontents, which governed in the minds of many men of very eminent condition, were very well known to all: That those persons (it might easily be believed) wanted no adherents: That the impatient humour of the French, in hopes to make their advantage of any disorder in the State, would be apt to create more Mutineers, if things were not settled in due season: That there was no time so fruitful in Sedition, nor so proper for mischief, as when mutinous spirits were in suspense whom to obey: That if ever this evil disposition was to be feared it was chiefly now, when all the Forces of the Kingdom were on foot: That they would doubtless soon be practised on all hands; so that if by the prudence of that Assembly such temptations were not prevented, those noble Troops designed for the enlargement of the Borders of France, and for the glory of the French name, would by an unhappy, and a sad revolution be seen to employ their Arms to the ruin of their own Country: That they were therefore to take time whilst things remained yet inviolate, and capable of the best impressions, to mould them into the best form, which depended upon their immediate Election: That he had put the Regiment of Guards, all the King's Servants, and his own particular Friends into Arms, that they might at convenient liberty, and security deliberate of what he then proposed that he knew very well what he now advised them to, was without Precedent; but that he hoped an Act of so great utility and importance to the public good, would one day obtain the Authority of Example, and add to the Dignity and Reputation of that Honourable Body; a privilege, by so much the more their due, by how much they had never till then possessed it: That they did not need to apprehend herein their Authority should be prostituted to Arbitration, or be disputed by any; but that, how high and generous soever their results might be, they should infallibly be executed, and that he, and all his Friends were ready to lose their lives, or to cause them to be inviolably obeyed. The Duke's Oration being ended, the whole Assembly remained in a profound silence, and being equally astonished at the Accident had happened, and surprised at the Proposition was made, not a man on the sudden, durst either by word, or action express his thoughts: only Precedent Harlay in few words Gave the Duke thanks for the affection he had manifested to the Service of the Kingdom, and to the Honour of that Assembly; exhorting him to persevere in a passion so worthy of his Virtue, and so becoming the place and honour he possessed amongst them. Whereupon the Duke perceiving their silence still to continue, and unwilling to give them occasion to complain that by his presence he had extorted from them a resolution contrary to their sense and opinion, he retired himself: But at his departure, that they might understand there was something of necessity in the case, he told them aloud, That what he had propounded was the best course they could take, and that they were therefore absolutely, and suddenly to resolve upon it. Upon which last words the Sieur de la Guesle the Attorney General taking hold, began in a short Speech to break the Ice, by representing to the Assembly, That though what had been propounded by the Duke of Espernon, seemed by the respect wherewith it had been delivered to be a thing wherein they were free to determine; yet that what he had last said employed a kind of necessity: but a necessity by so much the more, just, and honourable, by how much the Peace of the Kingdom would not only be secured thereby; but also a great advantage to their Body would certainly accrue: That it was therefore in his opinion better immediately, and voluntarily to declare the Regency to be in the Queen, than to stay till their consent should be wrested from them upon compulsion, and perhaps in a season, when they should have no thanks for their labour. Which being said, the whole Assembly forthwith concluded upon the business, by that Act not only securing the Peace of the Kingdom, but also introducing a great example to pitch upon the same, and an equally salutiferous resolution in our days, when out great Queen Anne of Austria was settled in the Regency, by virtue of the same Election. I have often heard the Duke discourse of this Transaction, The reasons that moved the Duke to press the Queen Mother should be declared Regent. wherein though he acknowledged his proceeding to be by an unusual, and something an irregular way; Yet that the Queen's Regency being as yet not authorized by the Suffrages of any of the Princes of the Blood (whose arrival also should it have been expected, would probably have put all things into Confusion) he thought it necessary to have it ratified by the consent of the people: That to procure their consents, there was no way so plausible and consonant to Law, as therein to interest all the Parliaments of France, by prevailing with that of Paris, whose whose Act would be a kind of Warranty to the rest: That should they have stayed the coming of the Count de Soissons, he would by his presence infallibly have swayed all things, according to his inclination: That the Prince of Condé coming after would have been impatient at his younger Brother's getting the start of him in an Affair where the priority of Vote in the Election was in him: by which means the variety of their interests not permitting them to concur in an Act, wherein each of them would be ambitious to precede, a fraction betwixt them must of necessity ensue: That for that reason he had used all diligence in pressing the Parliament to a speedy resolution in favour of the Queen. In the carrying on of which Affair, it is in my opinion something hard to determine, whether the Stars of France, or the Duke's Prudence did most prevail: It is not to be denied but that both the one and the other contributed very much to the happy performance of this great work: But it is likewise most certain that the business had never been so fortunately effected, if the Duke had less prudently foreseen what was likely to ensue, or had proceeded with less diligence and vigour to the establishment of this Election, to the general benefit of the Kingdom: wherein if he performed a signal Service to the State, he did no less for the Prince, who would have met with no little impediments to his rising greatness, had he at his return, found the Count de Soissons settled, as it were a Copartner in the Government, by being possessed of some of the most important Employments of the Kingdom. Thus was this business carried on, France being, from the highest step of her Glory, precipitated into the greatest extreme of her Misfortune; and the King's Triumphs being in a moment overcast with the Funeral Black of his Obsequies: but the re-establishment of the State, overthrown by so great, and so tragic a Revolution, and the public happiness in an instant secured without one drop of Blood; was it not an afternoons work of the Duke of Espernon? and can so great a success without injustice, be attributed to any thing but to his prudent Conduct? In the Narrative whereof I have not added one syllable more than the truth: and doubtless there are many yet alive that can justify all I have said. I know very well that the Historians of that time have not mentioned all the particularities I have, as material to my purpose, insisted upon, and that those who have been most exact have recorded but very few in their Relations; which is in part the reason why I have more willingly enlarged myself in this discourse, that I might impartially render, what is so justly due to Truth, and Virtue. The sad accident of the King's Death was so suddenly spread all over Europe, The return of the Count de Soissons to Court. that it seemed, as if his person, raised to the highest pitch of Honour to which man can arrive, had fallen in the sight of all the world. The Prince of Condé, who (as has been said) resided then at Milan, received the first news of it from the Condé de Fuentes, which was immediately after confirmed by a Courier dispatched purposely to him from the Queen Regent, to invite him back into France. The Count de Soissons, who was but two little days journey from Paris, was much sooner informed, and at the same instant in all diligence repaired thither, to see what this accident might produce; where he arrived the sixteenth of May, two days only after the King's Death; but late enough notwithstanding to find all things dispatched to his hand. So that matters being already concluded, the Queen's Authority established, the Parliament, People, Soldiery, and whole City settled in their Duty, and nothing lest for him to do, but to approve what was already done (and which he could no ways hope to overthrow, had he disliked it) he was fain whether sincerely, or otherwise to concur in the Election, and thereupon went to present himself to the Queen, where he assured her Majesty of his Faith and absolute Obedience. The Count at his arrival at Court, observing the Duke of Espernon to be seated in that degree of Favour and Reputation, to which by his signal, and recent Services to the Queen, he might justly pretend, he forthwith resolved to contract a strict connexion with him, as accordingly by making him a tender of his Friendship and assistance against all whomsoever, he endeavoured to do: neither did he do it but upon very good consideration; for foreseeing that the Prince of Condé returning to Court (as he soon after did) would infallibly take upon him the preeminence, and degree due to his Quality, and Birth, he would by that means labour so to establish himself before his arrival, that it should not be in the Prince's Power to shake him. To which end he could pitch upon none so proper to support his Interest, as the Duke of Espernon, who was, at that time, the most considerable person in the Kingdom. The Queen had appointed him Lodgings in the Lovure, not conceiving herself secure (as she was pleased to say) but under his Vigilancy and Valour; all dispatches were communicated to him; his Orders and Advice were in all things followed and observed, so that would he have stretched his Authority to the utmost, or had he been ambitious of favour, he might doubtless with great facility have made himself sole Master of Affairs: but so far was he from desiring to appear necessary (though effectually so) to the excluding those who had right to the Council, that on the contrary he entreated the Queen to call, and admit into it, all such as either by the privilege of their Birth, or by the repute of their capacities, might reasonably pretend to that Honour; coveting no greater advantage, than to have a concurrence with worthy men for the public Safety; and seeing he could not, without drawing great envy upon himself, possess alone that preeminence in the Administration, to which the King had designed him, he was content with the rest to share that part, which could not equitably be denied to his approved Fidelity and Wisdom. Though the Count de Soissons had the forementioned reasons to seek the Duke of Espernon's friendship, he had yet therein a further and a more important design, and that was by the Duke's assistance to procure a Match betwixt Madamoiselle ●de Montpen●ier the Duke's Niece, and his own Son Lewis of Bourbon, since Count de Soissons: neither was the Duke so ill read in this Prince's intention, that he did not very well perceive at what part he took his aim, which made him, though he received the offer of his friendship with the respect due to a Prince of the Blood, nevertheless accept it with such a gravity, and reservation as should no ways engage him to any partiality in his favour, nor in the least restrain the liberty of his proceeding in that concern. A coldness that so much disgusted the Count de Soissens, who expected a greater complacency and freedom from him, that his affection so violently begun, was not likely long to last. The first opposition he met with in the Duke to his desires, was in the proposal he made him to give way that he might cause the Duke of Sully to be stabbed in the Lovure. He was their common Enemy, and the sole cause of all the trouble had befallen this Prince, and of his retirement from Court, wherein the inury he had received was such, that although the King had laid upon him his positive command to be reconciled, he had notwithstanding rather chosen to abandon the Court, than to do it. The Duke had also received from the Duke of Sully (a great Creature of the late King's) all the ill Offices could possibly have been done by the most implacable Enemy; which being not unknown to the Count de Soissons, he doubted not to have met an Animosity in the Duke against him as great as his own, and to have found him as prompt to his revenge: but he was deceived, the Duke excusing himself by telling the Count he could by no means permit so great a violence to be offered in the King's Palace; beseeching him to consider, that the Guards which he had the honour to command, being principally designed to preserve the respect due to his Majesty's Person, and Presence inviolate; and such as it ought to be, he should commit an irreparable offence to his Duty, should he consent to favour an act of so dangerous Example. An answer at which the Count, a man of a furious, and choleric temper, was infinitely moved; yet his interest not permitting him to break with the Duke, he for that time with an extraordinary patience made the best shift he could to dissemble his discontent. During these transactions at Court, there was something passed also at Metz, wherein the Duke was no little concerned: you have already heard how Arquien, Lieutenant Colonel to the Regiment of Guards, had immediately upon the King's Death taken post to retire himself into the Citadel, of which he was Governor, af●●● whom the Duke had sent Mun, to spoil his Design; so that Mun, who was much the younger man, having posted in great diligence, overtook him some six Stages short of Metz; where he found him so bruised with riding, that he was scarce in a condition to perform the rest of his Journey: When Arquien who saw himself likely to be prevented, and in danger to be denied admittance into Metz, by the Duke's Servants, plainly told Mun, That he made no doubt, but that his Journey was occasioned by a just suspicion the Duke had conceived of his sudden departure without his Order, and Command; that therein he must needs confess he had been to blame; but that he had been prompted to that diligence by a jealousy the Duke might perhaps have detained him by force in Paris, with an intent to deprive him of his command in the Citadel: That he therefore had undertaken that journey simply, and for no other end, than to keep his possession of that place, which was the most considerable member of his Fortune, and the only reward of his Service, but with no design to disserve the Duke: That he was his Servant; neither did he desire to govern so much as in the Citadel, but under his Authority, and Command: That for a testimony of his Candour, and good intention herein, he promised Mun, if he would slack his diligence, and let them go together, not to enter the Citadel, till first he should by the consent of the Duke's own Creatures be permitted so to do, submitting moreover, till it should be by them determined, that the Garrison there should be divided betwixt them. A proposition that Mun conceiving to be as fair as the Duke could himself desire, he condescended to the condition, and accordingly in his company performed the rest of the Journey, arriving both together at the City. Where being come, they immediately assembled the Duke's Friends and Servants, which were Tilladet, and Fromigieres' Captains of the two Companies of the Guards, who were in Garrison at Metz, and Momas Campmaster to the old Garrison; amongst whom it was concluded, that Tilladet the elder Captain should with an hundred men only of his Company enter the Citadel, till the Duke's further pleasure could be known: a number that to the Duke's Friends seemed sufficient to make good their Quarter, should Arquien intend any thing but fair; as Arquien thought his would be able to maintain his Authority, and to overpower the other, should the Duke be obstinately bend to exclude him absolutely from his Command. Things then being thus concluded, Arquien, whilst yet in the City, sent order to his Lieutenant to receive Tilladet into the Citadel, with such Soldiers as he should bring alon● with him, not naming any number, as not suspecting any foul play; a negligence which the Duke's Servants making use of to his advantage, they caused above fifty more, and those the best men they could choose out of all the Companies, to be added to the hundred, that by Article were to be admitted; who being all without any difficulty received into the Citadel it soon appeared Arquien's was not the strongest Party, and that the advantage he had in number (his Garrison consisting of two hundred men) being balanced by the quality of the Soldiers, Tilladet was rather in a condition to give, than to receive the Law from him. Arquien having thus, by an excess of faithful dealing, performed his promise, went himself last of all into the Citadel, where he was no sooner come, but that his Lieutenant at the first word told him he was no longer Master of the place; to whom Arquien having replied, that an hundred men could not dispute his Authority there, the Lieutenant gave him to understand, that almost twice so many were already got in, which he had not dared but to receive, not knowing the precise number of those he was to admit; at which Arquien, now sensible of the oversight he had committed, was so enraged that he would presently revenge himself upon Tilladet, and was ready to fall on, Tilladet also on his part preparing for the Encounter; when the Friends of both parties, who were in the City, came in at the first noise of the disorder. At their first coming they found the Gates of the Citadel shut; but being opened in the end to such as pretended to endeavour an Accommodation, it was with much ado concluded, that for Arquiens satisfaction, Tilladet, to whom he chiefly laid the blame, as contriver of the Treachery, and Surprise, should depart the place; but that those Soldiers, already entered, should continue there, The Duke of Espernon's Authority re-established in Metz. and that Fromigieres should come in to command them. Thus ended this dispute, and thus was the Duke of Espernon's absolute Authority, though with some trouble, re-established in Metz, which from the time of Sobole's dereliction, until now, he had altogether lost. Fromigieres being received into the Citadel was still more and more fortified by new Soldiers, which the Duke's friends continually slipped in from the City; so that Arquien seeing himself in a lost condition, and also stung with the conscience of his own fault, he returned in all haste back to Paris, at once to beg the Duke of Espernon's pardon, and to implore the Queen Regent's Justice. Where being come, and finding the Duke inflexible to his submissions, and positively resolute to hold what he had, seeing he was to expect no good account from him, he thought fit, as his last refuge to appeal to the Queen. Neither did he want interest at Court to support, and countenance his cause, where besides de Montigny his Brother (a man of great merit and esteem, and afterwards Marshal of France) he had many Relations, and Friends, together with the Duke's Enemies, who could not, without great heartburning, see him re-settled in so considerable a command. Of this number were the Lords of the House of Guise, and their Family, who made up a great part of the Court, and who being all averse to the Duke's greatness, endeavoured by possessing the Queen, that the action of Metz was an intolerable affront to her Authority, to make her restore Arquien to his Command. They represented to her that this was an Affair by the late King conceived to be of such importance to the State, that his Majesty had made no difficulty to make a Journey thither in person, and on purpose to retrieve this place out of the Duke of Espernon's hands: That his Fidelity ought at this time to be much the rather suspected, by how much his Ambition was more inordinate, and less easy to be cured: That having, under pretence of some trivial Services to her Majesty in the beginning of her Administration, committed a violence of this high nature, he made it plain that his sole aim was in this new face of Affairs to establish his own particular greatness: and that, instead of endeavouring to continue Subjects in their Duty, by the example of a Subjects Obedience, he had himself committed the greatest insolence imaginable against the Sovereign Power, by dispossessing one of the most ancient and faithful Servants of the Crown, from a place wherein he had served, without the least blemish, or reproach. It is certain that the Queen, how well satisfied soever with the Duke of Espernon, was notwithstanding something staggered in her resolution at this Remonstrance: but the Duke having also given his reasons, and represented to her of what importance it was to have his Majesty's Authority in the City and Citadel of Metz, conjoined in one man, that the emulation of two Governors might not produce mutiny, such as would endanger the introducing of Foreign Power into the place; with how long, and with what Fidelity he had served his Kings in that Government, the Authority being united in his Person; he found the Queen so well disposed to accept of his justification, that she was absolutely satisfied: so that from that time forward, nothing was more thought of in that business, save only how to content Arquien, in finding out for him some other command, that might hold proportion with that Employment. In the transaction of this Affair, Fortune, as upon other occasions, would needs interest herself to appear in the Duke's Favour. De Vic Governor of Calais was one of the principal Mediators in this difference, who on the one side making profession of great respect to the Duke's Service, and on the other of a strict friendship with Arquien, laboured with extraordinary passion, and diligence to satisfy both parties in their pretence, and had brought matters to so good an issue, that nothing remained to their mutual satisfaction, save only to find out a Government for Arquien, equal to that whereof he was now divested: but there was none at this time vacant of equal value, which was the only knot in the Affair. At last this poor Gentleman proved both the Mediator, and the price of their Accommodation, who had acted so vigorously in the Treaty, that, with posting to and again in the most violent heats of Summer, he was surprised with a Pleurisy; whereof in six days he died. With his Government Arquien was recompensed, who after that quit claim to the Citadel of Metz, leaving the Duke absolute Master of it, as before; a possession he afterwards kept, till that a few years before his death he demised it in favour of Cardinal de la Valette his Son. Amidst these many important Affairs, the Duke was not unmindful of his particular Duties; whereof one, and to which he conceived himself most particularly obliged, was to manifest his gratitude to Henry the III. his Master, and Benefactor. He had formerly after his death attended his Body to Compiegne, where the misfortunes of War, and the confusion of Affairs, not permitting at that time a performance of his Funeral Rites; and the Queen now resolving to begin the Regency with those of the late King, he humbly begged of her to give him leave to make use of that opportunity for the interment of Henry the III. wherein her Majesty, doing an Act worthy her Piety, would add little or nothing to the expense she was already resolved to make. The Queen readily consented to his request; so that the Duke, accompanied with a great number of Lords and Gentlemen, went to fetch the Body from Compiegne, from whence he conveyed it to St. Denis, where it was deposited in the ancient Sepulchre of the Kings of France. Neither was this the sole testimony the Duke gave of his gratitude to his old Master, the Records of his Bounty and Favour being so impressed in his memory, that they perished not, but in his Grave, where all things are buried in Oblivion. A little before his death, causing a Marble Pillar, one of the most celebrated pieces of Architecture of these late times, to be carried, and set up in the Church of St. Clou; wherein he was so curious, as to make it be wrought in his own House, and almost in his own sight; his design being to found a Revenue of a thousand Livers yearly for the Service of the Chapel where it was erected; which was also adorned with Pictures, and paved with Marble at his own charge: but some difficulties arising about the settlement of that Foundation, which could not be cleared before his death, the thing (to his great grief) remained imperfect. The Ceremony of these Obsequies, The Prince of Condé returns to Court, where he appears displeased at the Duke of Espernon. performed in the end of june, was immediately followed by the return of the Prince of Condé to Court, where he arrived in july, and where all the men of condition contended who should give him the greatest testimonies of joy for his return. Amongst whom, although the Duke of Espernon was none of the latest, yet was he not the best received. The Duke of Sully, who had great need of this Prince's Protection, had prevented others in the possession of his Favour, and conceiving he should make himself more acceptable by rendering the affection of other Grandees suspected to him; he had (amongst others) pointed out the Duke of Espernon for one of those of whom he had most reason to complain. An ill Office, that having at first preferred in general terms, he afterwards pursued by particular circumstance, telling the Prince that the Duke had doubled the Guards of the Lovure at his arrival, and put all the King's Family into Arms, as they had been to defend it against a common Enemy. Which impression the Prince was more apt to receive, by how much he believed, that the Duke being already in a great degree of Favour with the Queen, and very intimate with the Count de Soissons, must needs be jealous of his return, which he could not consider, but as a great power directly opposite to all his concerns; which made him at the first interview receive him, not only with apparent coldness, but also, not able to dissemble his dissatisfaction, reproach him for having endeavoured to possess the Queen with some suspicions to his prejudice. The Duke, surprised at so unexpected an entertainment and so groundless a reproach (he having altered nothing in the usual Guards that had been kept in the Lovure since the King's Death) and nettled with the sense of so injurious an Office, gave aloud the Lie to all those who had branded him with so false a Calumny. Yet would not this public and generous profession of the truth so satisfy and appease the Prince, that there was not still some remains of discontent in his mind against the Duke. He did not think him so affectionate to him, as to the Count de Soissons; and seeing him advanced to that height of Reputation with the Queen, could not expect he should be favourable to him, in the design he had to assume that place in Court, and to share that Authority in the management of Affairs, which were due to his Birth and Greatness. So that here the Court was divided, the Prince of Condé having his Faction, and the Count of Soissons his, amongst whom the Duke of Espernon was the chief, and most considerable member. Yet did not this diversity of Interests produce any sudden ill effect, The state of Affairs at Court, during the Queen's Regency. the Princes paying a due respect to the Queen, and being by her admitted into the debate of Affairs, though the most important were carried on by other hands. The Cabinet Council at this time consisted of the Duke of Espernon, the Chancellor de Sillery, Precedent janin, and Mounsieur de Villeroy; wherein the Duke's Vote had the greatest sway, and his Opinions did usually prevail; by whom it being conceived necessary for the honour of the Nation, and the memory of the late King to pursue the Enterprise of juliers, which had been the pretence of his Majesty's Arms, he propounded, and got it to be concluded that the Marshal de la Chasire, with an Army of 10000 Foot, and 1200. Horse, should be sent to assist the interested Princes in the restitution of this Place. The issue of which expedition was as successful as could be wished; the places possessed by the Archduke Leopold were restored into the hands of the Marquis of Brandebourg, and the Duke of Newbourg; so that Affairs on that side remained in as good a forwardness as could be desired to be shortly composed (as they were) to the satisfaction of the Germane Princes. As in the occasion we spoke of last things were carried on for the honour, so was it no less necessary for the safety of the Kingdom to give some satisfaction, and assurance to those of the Reformed Religion in the beginning of this new Reign; it being very much to be feared this Faction (which at this time was very powerful) pretending a violation of the Edicts formerly published in their toleration, might run into insurrection, to the ruin of the public peace. Wherein the Duke was of opinion to prevent either the real jealousy, or else the evil intentions of those who were likely to breed any Commotion, by Declarations to confirm the ancient Edicts granted in their favour. It is very true, that he had no kindness for their Religion; but he thought it nevertheless unfit to violate the public Faith, where what he did then for reason of State, he has ever since observed in his own particular administration; so that though an enemy to new opinions, he was notwithstanding ever very solicitous to maintain the professors of them within his Governments in peace, and safety; and it has been observed, that although at Metz the best Families of the City were of that persuasion, that they abounded in Xaintongue, and Angoumois, and that Guienne was not free, it could never be perceived, that he made any distinction betwixt them and other the King's Subjects, except where he found them refractory and disobedient to his Commands. These precautions, so seasonably applied in this turn of State, secured the Peace of the Kingdom both within, and without to so fortunate a degree, that a more happy Government could not possibly have been wished. Which certainly if we consider the great number of discontents within, before the King's death, the distastes many persons of great Quality had taken, who breathed nothing but revenge, with the Ambition that reigns in all Courts able to overthrow the surest foundations, is infinitely to be wondered at. To which may be added the envy of neighbouring Princes, who could not without anxiety, and apprehension suffer the height of prosperity to which France was already advanced; together with the Artifices of such as usually in the troubles of a State seek to repair the ruins of their own desperate Fortunes: all which evil dispositions could not, according to humane imagination have found a more favourable juncture, than during a Regency, to have produced their fatal effects; and yet never was France at greater peace within itself, nor more respected of her Neighbours, than in all the whole time of the Queen's administration. Wherein though I dare not, I confess, attribute the whole reputation of the good Government to the Duke of Espernon alone (who having called the most prudent and experienced Ministers of the latter Reign into his Councils, they ought also to share in the praise) yet can I not in equity deny him the first place of Honour, he having (without dispute, the greatest Authority, and consequently having ever carried the greatest sway in the results of the most important Affairs. This Power and Reputation being the ordinary objects of envy even amongst men of equal condition, Anno 1611. it is no wonder if the Princes of the Blood were jealous of the Duke of Espernon's greatness; The beginning of the Prince's discontent. who (as they said) unknown to them disposed the greatest Affairs of the Kingdom, wherein they particulary complained, that he had persuaded the Queen to resolve upon a match, betwixt the King and the Infanta of Spain; a thing which in his Minority was not to be done without the consent of the Princes of the Blood, by reason of the interest which, by virtue of their proximity, they had in his Majesty's Person. But the Duke was so well read in their Privileges, that it is not to be supposed he could commit so great an error; and he had divers times proposed this Marriage to them, for the most honourable, and most advantageous match could be found out for the King in all Europe: although the Princes who began to suffer themselves to be led away by the persuasions of those who could no longer contain themselves within those bounds, which the virtue of Peace prescribed to their Ambition, had ever opposed that proposition, and would never consent unto it. The Duke nevertheless, as if he had foreseen the happiness would accrue to the State by this Alliance, ceased not continually to fortify the Queen Mother in the resolution she had taken to pursue that Treaty, and to bring it to a conclusion; which, because it was carried on without their consents, they pretended it to be without their knowledge: and this was all the ground of their complaint. In this point the Count de Soissons concurred with the Prince of Condé; he was already broken off with the Duke of Espernon, Anno 1612. and that to such a degree, that he appeared now more implacable in his hatred, than he had before seemed violent in his love. I have already said, that amongst the reasons which induced him to seek the Duke's friendship, the chiefest was the Marriage of Madamoiselle de Montpensier with the Prince his Son: A Princess, who had been so far honoured by the late King, that he had cast his eye upon her for a Match betwixt her, and the Duke of Orleans, his second Son, and had spoke to the Duke of Espernon to that purpose; so that it cannot appear strange in him, if after being prepossessed with the hope of so glorious a fortune for his Niece, and so great an honour to his whole Family he could not easily condescend to the Count's motion, wherein nevertheless he excused himself with all imaginable Civility and Respect: But this Prince, of a hot and violent nature, taking for injury the least contradiction to his will, was so highly transported with fury at this refusal, that there was no extreme to which he would not hurry his revenge, publicly threatening to assault the Duke in the Streets, in the Lovure, nay in his own House. Thus do we see the Duke at once oppressed with the open hatred of two of the Princes of the Blood; upon which occasion, although he very well understood the deference due to their persons, and upon that account declared he would ever give them way, and retire before them; yet did he not conceive it convenient to have the same respect, and consideration for such as under their countenance and protection should make any attempts upon him. And it was in this occurrence, that the Reputation and interest he had at Court did most evidently appear; so many persons, who by his bounty he had obliged (principally in the dispensation of those offices depended upon his own of Colonel) so many others who expected their advancement from him, so many Lords of great Quality, who either by Relation or Friendship were united to him; and so many others out of the sole regard of his Virtue flocking about his Person, that he has often been seen in the streets of Paris with seven or eight hundred Gentlemen waiting upon him: And I have heard many of very good quality, who in those times declared themselves his Friends and Servants, affirm, that when he has gone on foot to the Lovure, as he would sometimes purposely do, his attendance, marching in order, have taken up all the space betwixt the Hostel d' Espernon, and the Court, which is at least 2000 paces; insomuch that the Van of his Train has reached the Barriers of the Lovure, before almost the Rear was out of his own Gates. Which (how strange soever it may appear) is nothing more than truth; as an infinite number of persons yet living can witness. Neither was the Queen (who had great interest in the preservation of a man had merited so highly from her) sorry to see him in so good a posture, conceiving it of no little moment to her service, to have a person at Court able to make a Power, that might otherwise have been turned against her, and her Authority: and indeed it was upon him she principally relied, as the chief of all her Servants, and the most considerable person of her Party. The Queen made this most manifestly appear in a very remarkable occasion that happened at this time; The favours the Duke received from the Queen upon the feuds betwixt him and t●e Princes. of which take here the true story. The Baron de la Chastagneraye after the Service he had so fortunately done the Queen in recovering her out of the River Seine, at the passage of the Port de Neully (relations of which you will find at large in many of our French Histories) had been gratified for that action with the command of Captain of her Majesty's Guard, and was moreover very graciously received by the Queen; advantages that creating him much envy, either her Majesty's Favour, or his own Spirit, or both, engaged him in many Disputes with several persons of the most eminent condition at Court; amongst which he had principally one with Mounsieur le Grand Escuyer, since Duke the Bellegarde; wherein his passion one day transporting him so far, as to speak unhandsomely of him in the Queen's presence, and before the Duke of Espernon who was his Cousin German, the Duke conceived himself obliged to say something in the behalf of so near a Relation, and thereupon gave la Chastagneraye some smart reply, which he, unable to endure, as briskly returned upon the Duke himself; who withheld by the reverence of the place, said to him only this, That her Majesty's presence which had encouraged him to that offensive language, tied his hands, and obliged him from taking any further notice of it; resolving within himself to let the Quarrel alone at that time, and to call him to an account at fitter leisure: but the Queen both to satisfy the Duke of Espernon, and to do herself right, lafoy Chastagneraye having violated the respect due to her Person and Presence, committed him immediately to the Bastile; from whence though he was the next day enlarged, yet the sense of his disgrace having wounded him to the quick, the common bruit went that he would revenge himself upon the Duke's person, and that he was countenanced in that resolution by the protection of the Princes. A thing which above all other men he was the most fit to undertake, both for his courage which was very well known; and also having the command of the Queen's Guards, he had better opportunity than any to execute his design, and to practice upon the Duke in the very Lovure itself, than in any other place, who never went accompanied in her Majesty's presence, as he did in all other places. The first intimation of this design the Duke received from the Queens own mouth, who, by a favour never before, or since granted to any, permitted him to take a number of select Soldiers in his own Livery for the Guard of his Person, to attend him in all places, so much as into the Lovure itself; which favour was highly improved to him, when for his greater security, she moreover gave way that he should choose some Gentlemen of Quality of his most confident Friends to enter with him armed, even into her own Cabinet. Those whom the Duke made choice of for this purpose were Chetin, Brother to the Marshal de St. Geran, Sawe-baeuf, Bonneval, the Count de Maillé, Castelbaiart, and Marillac, all men of approved Valour: a Grace which though it gave great jealousy and distaste to the Princes and Grandees of the Court, who were the Duke's Adversaries, her Majesty thought it fit notwithstanding, to give him leave to defend his own life against whomsoever would make any attempt against it. Amongst these many and great disputes wherein the Duke saw himself involved, The Education of the Duke's three Sons. he forgot not the care of his children's Education; whom he brought up to the most laborious Exercises, and for whom after a foundation of Letters, not only of a bare knowledge in the Latin Tongue, but in the Principles of Philosophy also, he took care to provide the greatest man, without contradiction, in Europe, for the Exercises of the Body, especially that of Riding, which was the Sieur de la Bro●e formerly in the Constable de Montmorencies entertainment; after whose Death, the Duke gained him to himself by so great Benefits, that he gave him at one clap ten thousand Crowns in Gold, with an Annuity of a thousand Crowns issuing out of the Hostel de Ville of Paris, the most certain Revenue at that time in France: Neither did he here limit his Bounties. Under this Gentleman's excellent Discipline, his two eldest Sons arrived to such a perfection in their exercises, that no young Lords of their condition in the Kingdom went before them. When they had acquired as much by precept as seemed necessary, he conceived it time they should establish that knowledge by experience, and by observing the manners and ways of living of other Countries; to which purpose having put them into an Equipage suiting their quality, he sent them into Germany, to the end that by the different Governments of the several little Republics of which the vast body of that Empire is composed, they might be better enabled to judge of good and evil customs, and extract a more certain knowledge for their own future conduct in the Employments to which they were by him designed. They arrived in that Country in a very troublesome time, when all ways were very difficult, and unsafe; but the illustrious name of the Father, in greater repute in any part of Europe, than in France itself (present virtues being for the most part less considered) did not only open all ways, and secure all passes to them; but made them also received with great respect, and honoured with many civilities, and favours by all the Princes, and Republics of both parties. After having stayed some time in Germany, and visited at leisure the Cities, and most eminent places there, they went from thence into Italy; where they made a considerable stay, and where for the greatest part they made their residence at Rome, continuing still their Exercises; from whence they went to visit the most eminent Cities of that sweetest part of Europe; where having made an acquaintance with most of the Princes and Lords of that Nation, they returned into France. Whilst the two eldest were thus forming their minds and bodies to such qualities as were either necessary, or at least becoming their condition; Lewis the youngest of the three, designed for the Church, was with no less care brought up in the knowledge of Letters; whom so soon as the Duke his Father conceived to be of a fit age, he sent him to La Flesche to the College of the Father Jesuits, where the discipline requisite for the profession he was to take upon him, was in very great repute. He there continued several years, and came not thence till he had first run through all the degrees, by which men climb to the highest pitch of knowledge; and in effect, when he was called thence to come to Court, he had made so happy a progress, that Cardinal Perron, a great friend of his Fathers, having been by him entreated to discourse with his Son, had an exceeding great opinion of him, and believed him likely to make one of the greatest men of that age, if he proceeded in his profession with a diligence proportionable to the great parts wherewith he entered into it. The three Brothers arriving almost all at the same time at Court, the Duke their Father began to think of establishing the greatness of his Family upon the surest foundation; and thereupon considered each of them by himself, for the dividing his Estate amongst them: wherein though they were all embellished with so many excellent qualities, that it could hardly be discerned which had the greatest merit; yet the Duke having designed to confer his own name upon the second, that consideration inclined him a little more to him than the other two. By Article at his Marriage with Margaret de Foix, Countess of Candale, his eldest Son was to carry the name of Foix, and to inherit his Mother's Estate, cleared, and augmented by the Duke's money: and his own name was also so great, what by the virtue of his Ancestors, and what by his own, that he would not leave him on whom it was conferred, inferior either in Reputation, or Estate to any whomsoever of his condition, in the Kingdom. He had already by his Service obtained from the Queen Regent the Reversion of all his Offices; viz. of that of Colonel General of the Infantry of France; of first Gentleman of the Bedchamber, an Office he had ever kept since his first Favour; of Governor of the City, and Citadel of Metz and of the Messin Country; of the Provinces, Cities, and Castles of Xaintes, and Angoulesme; of the City and Government of Rochel, the Country of Aulins, with the higher and lower Limousin; of the City, Castle, and Territory of Boulogne, and of the City, Country, and Castle of Loches: all which he at this time thus divided amongst his three Sons. To his eldest, the Count of Candale, he assigned in present (causing him forthwith to be admitted into it) the Office of first Gentleman of the Bedchamber, with the Governments of Angoumois, Xaintonge, Aulins, and Limousin in Remainder; to which he added the whole Estate of the House of Candale, amounting to above fourscore thousand Livers yearly revenue in goodly Lordships; as also the Duchy of Espernon, with the Earldom of Montfort, together with other Lands arising to above fifty thousand Crowns a year: to which the Duke having obtained an assurance of a Marshal's Staff for this Son, so soon as a more mature age and experience should render him capable of that Employment, he conceived that a high Spirit, as his was, aught to rest very well satisfied with so fair a Fortune. To the Marquis de la Valette, his second Son, he assigned his Office of Colonel, and the Government of Metz in reversion, with the rest of his Estate whether hereditary or purchased; which made up a Revenue equal to the first, together with his share of the Rents, and personal Estate. For his third Son also he provided to the value of fifty thousand Crowns a year at least in Church preferments; of which he was not content only to put him into present possession, but gave him moreover a years Revenue advance, that he might have wherewithal to maintain a port suitable to his condition: to which he further added the survivancy of the Government of Boulogne, and Loches, with the Office of chief Almoner to the King, which was a leading step to that of great Almoner of France. In this distribution of his Fortune, the Duke's paternal care and liberality, might (a man would have thought) have amply satisfied the most aspiring Ambitions, and the most avaricious Natures; neither could the two youngest enough magnify the bounty of so good a Father, who by his Industry, and his Blood had raised them to such a height of Riches and Honour: but some malevolent Spirits, enemies to the peace and happiness of the eldest, by a violence upon his nature, persuaded him he had not been kindly used in this partition; that therein his younger Brother had the best, and most solid Employments assigned to him; whereof * Mea●●ng that 〈◊〉 Colone●. one was a Command of itself sufficient to oblige all the Gentlemen of France, together with a Frontier much more considerable, than the best Province of the Kingdom; whereas what was consigned to him, was only an Office of little value, and no great repute at Court, with the expectation of a Marshal's Staff, considerable 'twas true, but a great way off; and that for his Governments, they lay so in the heart of the Kingdom, that his Authority would be very little, or nothing at all; by which means making him at first undervalue the benefits he had received, they so debauched his gratitude at last, as to make him publicly complain of his Father's proceeding, and to despise all he had, seeing he had not all he desired. The Duke, advertised of his Sons discontent, laboured all he could to reclaim him, and make him see his error, which he afterwards did; neither could any thing be more grateful, and obedient, than he ever carried himself, so oft as he suffered himself to be governed by his own natural inclination. Even before the King's death, the Fortune and Greatness of the Father, with the merit, and Riches of the Sons, had rendered their Alliances so considerable, that there were few persons of great Quality at Court, who had not been offered to the Duke in Marriage with them; but amongst the several Matches proposed for the Count de Candale, his eldest Son, the Duke preferred that with the Duchess of Haluin, Grandchild to the Duke of Haluin, and Daughter to the Marquis de Megnelay, The Marriage of the Count d● 〈◊〉 the Duk●●eldest Son. the inheritrix of a rich and illustrious Family, before all the rest, Whereupon a Marriage betwixt them shortly ensued, though discontents soon after arising, grew at last to that height, that in a few years they came to an absolute separation. Those who had the power to sow division in the Marriagebed, had the same to persuade the Count de Candale into an open breach with the Duke his Father; the grief whereof (the most sensible of any he had ever met with in the whole course of his life) as it was the cause of infinite others, which befell him afterwards, had like to have brought him to his Grave. Yet did the Duke (as if he had already foreseen what did after fall out) all an indulgent Father could possibly do, to reconcile himself to his Son, and his Son to his Duty: wherein though Le Plessis (the usual mediator of all differences in that Family) did as much as could be expected from an extraordinary prudence, and a sincere affection, it proved all to no effect; the Count either unable to support the injury he believed had been done him in the partition of the Offices, or not well enduring the presence of a Father, he was conscious to himself he had not kindly used, being resolved by a voluntary Exile, to seek some repose for his troubled mind. He determined therefore to forsake France, but the end of his Travel was not simply for diversion; neither could he satisfy himself with the mere exercise of some Virtues only to be practised in the obscurity of retirement, and in the privacy of a Closet; it was by painful, and perilous actions, and by exposing his life to the uncertain event of great Erterprises, that he would qualify and sweeten his discontents. Spurred on therefore by this generous resolution, he took the second time the way of Italy, where arriving at the Court of the great Duke of Tuscany, at a time when he was equipping some Galleys for the Levant, he entreated that Prince to permit him with his friends to put himself aboard those Vessels. There had not any person of his condition, for many years, gone out of the Kingdom with so honourable a Train of Gentlemen, and those in so handsome an Equipage, as the Count did; having above fifty Gentlemen of good quality in his company, whom either their respect to the Father, or the esteem of his own person, had prevailed upon to run the same fortune with him: Loziere, de Themines, Monberaut, Calonges, Magnas, the two Brothers de la Tour, Villandry, Cipierre, Vernegue, Monplaisir, de Vic, la Boissiere, with many other Gentlemen of note, were of this number; when the Duke his Father, how afflicted soever at his resolution, yet unwilling he should be exposed to so infinite, and almost inevitable dangers, without some prudent and faithful person to stand by him in all hazards, permitted Le Plessis likewise, who had been very useful to him in his former Travels, to attend him in this sally also; not doubting but he would by his conduct be as serviceable to him in his military undertake, as he had formerly been by his dexterity in other Affairs. The Duke of Florence having consented that the Count de Candale with his Companions should embark in his Galleys, they coursed up and down the Coasts of the Levant, performing some exploits by Sea, The Count de Candale's Voyage into the Levant. and making some attempts by Land, and always with good success: but the particular design of this expedition being upon the Fortress of Aglimant, the most important of all Caramania, they were to steer their course that way, and to prepare themselves to assault it. This Fortress, favoured by a good Harbour, was man'd with six hundred Turks, and moreover furnished with Artillery, Ammunition, and all things necessary for its defence; which, as it lay exposed to the inroads of the Christians, those who had the Guard of it, were so vigilant to its preservation, that there could be no hope of effecting any thing by surprise. Neither could the Admiral of the Tuscan Galleys (Signior Enguerrany by name) who was to answer for any miscarriage in the Enterprise, resolve to hazard an attempt, in which he evidently saw so many, and almost invincible difficulties: but the Count de Candale, having generously desired the greatest danger might be conferred upon him, and his, his noble resolution cut off all disputes, and the assault was forthwith concluded. If in the proposition of this Enterprise the Count had evidenced the bravery of his Spirit, he made it in the execution more manifestly appear. Don Pedro Medici of the Duke's own Family, having resolved to make one in this Voyage, would do the Count de Candale the Honour to fight in his Squadron, which having had the precedency in landing, had the same deference continued to them throughout the whole Action; which so succeeded to the Count's glory, that after a stout resistance he forced the place by Petards, and took it; yet not without the loss of some Christians, whereof some Gentlemen of Quality in his own Squadron there lost their lives. Pedro Medici was himself desperately wounded, Le Plessis more slightly; as also Monberaut, and some others: but Villandry, la Boissiere, and Vernegue were laid dead upon the place A loss however soon recompensed by that of the Turks, who had above 300. men slain in the Fight, with two hundred and fifty of them made slaves, as two hundred and forty Christians were set free: So that the Florentine General having seized of all the spoil, the Count de Candale contented himself with the bare Honour of the Victory. The Fortress was set on fire, and in a short space totally consumed; the chiefest the ●urk had upon that Frontier, and that served as a Port to being but five League's distance thence. This action carried on with so great prudence, and performed with so admirable Valour, was crowned with an universal applause: So that the Count de Candale returned into France loaded with Glory and Praise, and Le Plessis having whilst he was abroad sweetened his temper, and given him a better taste of his Father's Affection, at his return home, he also returned into his Duty and filial Obedience; which made the Duke with an excess of joy receive him with open arms into his bosom; a reunion that continuing some years, the Count lived at Court in great Honour, and as high Reputation as any Gentleman of his condition in the Kingdom. At this time there likewise● happened an absolute and perfect reconciliation betwixt the Duke and the House of Guise; for as the refusal of the Marriage of Madamoiselle de Montpensier had lost him the Count de Soissons friendship, so did the consummation of that of the Duchess of Montpensier her Mother with the Duke of Guise, acquire him that of that Duke, and all his Family. This great Alliance in the revolutions, that after happened, was of no little importance to the Duke of Espernon. The favour of Concino Concini Marquis d' Encre began at this time to show itself, and to appear out of the conceal●dness, and obscurity, where it had till now lain hid, and to raise itself to such a prodigious stature, as drew upon the Marquis the envy of the whole Court. I do not here pretend to speak of the Birth of this Favour, nor of the degrees by which it rose to that excessive height, to which it was so suddenly advanced. I shall only say that this Marquis, finding himself too weak to bear the great weight of Envy with which he found himself oppressed, sought the friendship and support of the Duke of Espernon; who he knew was alone sufficient to protect him against all the rest, and to whom, how ambitious soever he might be in his own nature, he made no difficulty to submit. He had in the spring of his favour received several good Offices from him, in acknowledgement of which, or to interest the Duke further in his preservation, he caused the Marriage of his only Daughter with the Marquis de la Valette the Duke's second Son, to be proposed unto him; offering with her in Dowry the Office of Constable for the Duke himself, so soon as the King should come out of his Minority, of which the time was near at hand; and for the Marquis, Money and Offices, as much, and as many as they could expect by the means, and through the mediation of a Favourite, who, through his Wife, possessed an absolute Empire over the Queen Regent's will. Would the Duke have taken the advice of many of his Servants, he had not perhaps, as he did, rejected this proposal▪ but he would never suffer himself to be overcome, either by the importunity of his Friends, or the consideration of his own peculiar interest, The Marshal d' Encre seeks the Duke of Espernon's Alliance, and is rejected. as to that motion; insomuch that instead of receiving so advantageous offers with some show of civility and respect, he failed little of rejecting them with injury, and contempt, as he did with great disdain: nay he expressed great offence, and unkindness against those who pressed him to it. An obstinacy that I have often heard condemned by some, who believed the Duke had never fallen into those disorders, whereinto he saw himself afterwards plunged by the Marquis d' increases excessive favour, had he made himself Moderator, that is Master of Affairs, as he might with great ease have done: but as he would pretend to no favour himself, so could he endure no other Favourites; insomuch that he would rather make it his business to pull this down, than by his interest to serve himself in doing his own work. Though by this repulse the Marquis d' Encre (upon whom all things depended at that time) was infinitely cooled towards the Duke; yet did he not manifest any disgust at all: The Duke was so necessary at Court, the Queen could not be without him; he had propounded, and caused the Match with Spain to be resolved upon, contrary to the opinion of the Princes of the Blood, and divers others of great condition, who followed their interests; yet could not the business be carried on to the Queen satisfaction, if he did not remain at Court, to fortify such in their first resolution, as otherwise might perhaps be taken off by the consideration of the great power of those, who so stiffly opposed it. It was therefore necessary to make use of him in this occasion for the accomplishment of what had been first propounded by him: and in the end the conditions of the two Marriages having been mutually accepted of in both Courts, there was great demonstration of joy in both Kingdoms, France particularly pouring out itself in magnificences to a degree almost of profusion, could too much gratitude have been expressed for a blessing that has already produced so much happiness, and that is likely to bring much more to the Kingdom. Whilst the Court was busy about the preparation for these solemnities, the Prince of Condé, and the Count de Soissons, suddenly withdrew from Court; whose retirement, together with some discontent those of the Religion made show of at the same time, gave great apprehension, that matters were likely to come to a speedy rupture: but the wisdom of the Queen's Council having applied seasonable remedies to this disorder, if they did not absolutely take away the effect of what they feared, they at least deferred deferred it; so that the public Peace was for this time secured. The Queen caused the Princes to be treated with, who were at last content to return to Court, and to sign the conditions of the Marriage; and those of the Religion, having by this little disorder procured some inconsiderable concessions, referred to a fitter opportunity the design they had to interrupt the main work, which they conceived would be infinitely prejudicial to their Interest, and Safety. I cannot in this place forbear another digression from my Subject, Anno 1613. to speak of the acquisition the Duke made at this time of one of the principal Servants he ever had in his Family, and one whose merit made him afterwards very eminent at Court, where he obtained no little Favour and Esteem with the King himself; and this was the Sieur de Marsillac, a Gentleman of as great valour, and as graceful a presence as any whatsoever of his time. This man had formerly had a dependence upon Balagny (called the Brave of the Court) whom Balagny had taken out of the Regiment of Guards, where he trailed a Pike, to put him upon one of the boldest, and most honourable Actions a Gentleman of his condition could possibly undertake, A Challenge carried by Marsillac from Balagni to the Duke of Eguillon. and that was to carry a Challenge to the Duke of Eguillon, since Duke of Mayenne. This business happened in the Reign of Henry the great, who did not condemn him for it; and, though it was the first of this nature that perhaps had ever been known in France, gave notwithstanding the Duke of Mayenne his Father no satisfaction therein, what complaints soever he could make. I have heard Marsillac himself tell the story: He adventured a poor younger Brother as he was, to go execute his Commission even in the Duke d' Eguillon's own Bedchamber, whose generosity and freedom he could never sufficiently commend, he doing him the honour to go out with him alone to give his friend satisfaction, without other caution, than his own bare word, though he could by no means prevail with him, to let him be further concerned in the Quarrel, being resolute to end the dispute without a Second; the only thing whereof he could complain in the Duke's behaviour towards him; though he gave him at the same time as much reason, to magnify the extraordinary, and noble care he took to conceal the action from the Duke of Mayenne his Father's knowledge. He was in the house when the Challenge was brought, and has often been heard to say, that had he known his temerity, he would have caused Marsillac to have been tossed out of the Windows, to have taught him what it was to bring a Message of that nature to a Prince, from a private Gentleman: and doubtless he would have been as good as his word, he was so highly incensed at the affront; which perhaps served for an example shortly after to the Baron of Luz, in his challenge to the Chevalier de Guise. As for Marsillac after the death of Balagny (who was killed in a Quarrel) being entertained into the Duke of Espernon's Service, he obtained under him in the command of his Guard, which he bestowed upon him, so high a reputation, and esteem, that he was at last desired by the King; where his Majesty gave him a Company in his own Guards, and his deserts were infallibly raising him to a much higher fortune, if at the same time the King expressed the greatest esteem and affection for him, he had not at the Siege of Privas received a Musquet-shot in his head, which as it determined his hopes, was also the reward of all his Service. We here with a new year enter upon a new disorder, Anno 1614 of which the immoderate greatness of Conchini was either the effectual, or at least the pretended cause; New disorders in the Kingdom. and doubtless his favour and insolence were raised to that excess, as rendered him intolerable; either of which are sufficiently odious in whomsoever they happen to befound; but being united in him, pulled upon him the hatred, or ●nvy of all sorts of men. The most part of the great ones seeing themselves excluded from all knowledge of Affairs (neither is it possible to satisfy all who will pretend to that privilege) cast their eyes upon the Prince of Condé, to interest him in their discontents; and the Huguenot Faction not being able without great jealousy to see the Marriage accomplished, was no less ready than those Grandees to break into open arms: The one and the other then being in such a disposition, had jointly by the negotiation of the Duke of Boüillon recourse to the Prince of Condé, persuading him to oppose himself to Conchini's greatness, to demand punishment for those evils of which he had been the cause, and a Reformation in the State; the old and common pretence of all such as would infest the public peace. The Prince had ever since the death of the Count de Soissons been in high consideration, not only by reason of his quality as first, but also as it were sole Prince of the Blood; to which his admirable endowments rendered him no less conspicuous, than did the preeminence of his Birth: He was knowing, dexterous, and intelligent in all sorts of business, beyond what could be expected from his age: notwithstanding all which great qualities, something yet being wanting, that some conceived was required in a person of his eminent condition, they had not allowed him that share in the management of Affairs he either merited, or at least desired; an injury that he very much resneting, and moreover animated by the persuasions not of the Duke de Boüillon only, but also by the Dukes of Longueville, Mayenne, Nevers, and Luxe●bourg, who had every one a particular pretext for his defection, made him suddenly depart from Court, and retire himself to Mezieres in Champagne, from whence, should he be smartly laid to, he might conveniently retreat to Sedan. To this place he was followed by all the other discontented Lords: as for the Duke of Vendosme, who had likewise promised to do the same, not being able to get clear of the Court so soon as he intended (having been detained prisoner in a Chamber of the Lovure) he nevertheless finding means to deceive his Guards, escaped soon after to his Government of Bretagne, where he did what he could to fortify the Faction by the interest he had in that Province. This great number of discontents put the Court into strange disorder, the old Ministers of State, who had seen nothing of a Civil War for many years, apprehending this would certainly involve the Kingdom in a desperate confusion: but the Duke of Espernon having considered that the Princes for the most part had neither money, nor credit at home, nor no intelligence abroad, few places to retire unto, and fewer friends amongst the people, whom the serenity of the present Government had rendered very well satisfied with their condition, was of a quite contrary opinion. The Duke 〈…〉. He therefore advised the Queen Regent to cause them by the Regiments of French, and Swiss Guards, with such Horse as were ready at hand to be suddenly pur●●●d; assuring her, that if the King would please to put himself into the head of this little Body, he might with the greatest ease imaginable, and without resistance suppress a faction that had inconsiderately engaged in a Rebellion without other ground than the mere instigation of some mutinous spirits, and no other support at all. Not followed, to the great disadvantage of the Royal Affairs. It was the same advice he had formerly given Henry the III. in the time of his favour, and in the first commotions of the League; which not having then been harkened to, had cost the King and the whole Kingdom so dear: but the same Counsel had here the same success, the wisdom of the Ministers of State could not give ear to an advice, wherein they apprehended so great a danger; so that for want of having observed what the presence of a King does in a Kingdom, where the respect to the Sovereign Authority has ever been so inviolate, as that it seems to be a quality inherent to that people, they lost the most favourable opportunity to have secured the present peace, and to have prevented the mischiefs that ensued, could possibly have been wished. An oversight that the Prince of Condé very well observing, as I have heard him say himself, he of that observation (as we shall see hereafter) made a great advantage for the King's Service in the Queen Mother's Affairs. The advice of taking Arms being thus rejected, the Duke of Espernon refused to have any hand in the ensuing Treaty, wherein he saw they were to purchase a Peace he neither thought honourable, nor likely long to continue. It was nevertheless soon concluded, and the Princes having at this time found no disposition in the people to follow the humour of their private discontents; nor being able of themselves to raise any considerable force, made no great difficulty of selling a Peace, they would undoubtedly, have bought at any price, had they once been made to feel the smart of War. But for this they had great sums of money, that furnished them for another Rebellion, with some other conditions, as that there should be a Convocation of the Estates General for regulating such disorders as (they said) were introduced into the Kingdom. And this was that called the Peace of Saint Menehou, according to the Articles of which, there followed after a Convocation of the Estates, but not till the Declaration of the King's Majority had first been ratified in the Parliament of Paris; that Act having been thought convenient to precede the Assembly, to the end that whatever they should there conclude, might be more authentic, and admit of no dispute for the time to come. During this Session of the Estates, and in the sight as it were of all France, which in the persons of their Deputies seemed to be then present at Paris, the Duke did an action which made a great bustle, and noise in the beginning; but that in the issue, through the high consideration and esteem of his Authority and Virtue, was passed over well enough. I have already said, when speaking of the erection of the Duke's command of Colonel General in Title of an Office of the Crown, that the King annexed thereto a Sovereign Justice, or Court Martial over all the French Infantry. In any difference betwixt Soldier and Soldier, the Duke, together with the Officers of that Body to which the Soldier did belong, was absolute and sovereign Judge of the Offence; but if the difference happened to be betwixt a Soldier and a Citizen, there he was to call some Officers of Justice, together with the Officers of the Regiment to assist him. Rules that, being entered amongst the Statutes of the Crown, are at this day part of the Law, as they make up the most noble part of that brave command. It happened that at this time, two Soldiers of the Regiment of Guards fight a Duel in the Pré-au-Clercs, a place within the Jurisdiction of the Abbey of Saint Germans, the one being slain, the other was taken, and delivered into the hands of the Prevost of Saint Germans, who detained him in the Prison belonging to the Abbey. Whereupon the Duke conceiving this had been ignorantly done by the Officer, who perhaps might not know how far in this case his Authority did extend, sent the Prevost-Martial of the Regiment to the Bailiff to make him understand the right the Duke had to demand his Prisoner, and withal civilly to entreat him to deliver him up, that he might be brought to his Trial: But this entreaty was answered with a surly and positive denial, which being, in the terms it was delivered, carried back to the Duke, made him infinitely impatient, that the Laws established in favour of his command, should suffer so great a contempt: neither could he on the other side submit to pursue all the due Forms, by which he was by order of Law and Justice to retrieve his man. Thinking it therefore the most expedite way to make use of his own Authority in the case, he commanded the Lieutenant of the Company of which the Prisoner was, to take a Squadron along with him, and by fair means or foul to bring him away; which was accordingly executed: and upon a second refusal the Prison of Saint Germans broke open, and the Soldier carried away to be punished according to the rigour of the Law, but by those nevertheless who were his proper and natural Judges. Hereupon the Bailiff goes to the Parliament to complain of the contempt had been offered to the Court by a violence upon their inferior Officers: upon which complaint, and an Indictment Viva voce preferred by the Bailiff himself; the Parliament issued out a Warrant to apprehend the Lieutenant for executing his Colonel's Order, with a Citation of personal appearance against the Colonel himself: A proceeding, that as it could not certainly be approved by all, surprised and nettled the Duke to the last degree. He complained of it to the King, representing at the same time his reasons to justify the Act, and not being able to support the contempt he conceived was cast upon his person, by a body he had ever honoured, and sometimes obliged, he would give the world an account it was no easy matter to serve a Process upon him. That from the Parliament had been granted out the sixteenth of November, and on the ninteenth the Duke went thither in person, accompanied with five, or six hundred Gentlemen, besides whom there also crowded as many more young Soldiers of the Regiment of Guards into the Palace; insomuch that all the Base-Court, Galleries, and the very Hall itself was full of them. The Duke pretended he went to present himself in obedience to the Process had been issued out against him, though no one could believe he went in such a posture with any intent of submission: So that the Parliament advertized of his coming with so great a Train, and not knowing his design, nor to what his passion might transport him, suddenly adjourned, retiring every man his own way before their usual time. As it is hard to govern a confused, and unruly multitude, a sort of young hare-brained fellows, who attended the Duke, offered some indignities, and affronts to some of the inferior Officers of the Court; and being most of them in Boots, purposely entangled their Spurs in the Ushers, and Proctors Gowns, thinking thereby the more to oblige the Duke, as they appeared more sensible of his offence. An insolence that infinitely aggravated the business, which without that had been foul enough of itself. A great complaint whereof was made against the Duke, as responsible for all that happened at the Palace, every one believing that, in the design he had to brave the Parliament, all things were done by his order, which had passed in his presence. If the Duke had manifested a resentment of the injury he had received from the Parliament, the Parliament expressed no less for what the Duke had done to the contempt of their Dignity; yet did they make no complaint thereof to the King; but remaining in a profound silence (the truest sign of a violent affliction) ordered a cessation of Justice, with a determinate resolution never to meet again, till first a public and solemn reparation should be made. This business, proceeding to such a height, put the King and Queen into a very great confusion; they thought it neither convenient nor safe in this juncture of Affairs, which seemed to threaten some sudden mischief, to disoblige the Duke of Espernon; neither did they think it an easy matter to persuade him to pay the Parliament any great submissions; who, on the other side, would in such a case as this accept of no ordinary satisfaction. At last the King sent the Duke de Vantadour to the Palace, to tell the Parliament from him, That by their Body his person being represented, all the injury they pretended to have received from the Duke of Espernon reflected immediately upon him: That his Majesty also took it to himself, to whom it did belong, to vindicate his own Honour, which he should be sufficiently able to do without any necessity upon them of espousing his Quarrel: but that because the business had made some noise, that might perhaps have given some offence to the public, he therefore desired they should receive a public satisfaction, and such a one as should satisfy the world of the great respect he had to Justice. That in order thereunto it was his pleasure the Prisoner should be returned to the same place from whence he had been taken, and by the same person by whom he had been fetched away; and as for what concerned the Duke, who protested he had no intention to offend the Parliament in what he had done, he should be desired in his own person to make the same protestation before them. Things being thus ordered, the Duke of Espernon the nine and twentieth of the same month went to the Palace; when, though with no extraordinary Train about his person, so many nevertheless of his Friends had conveyed themselves into the Palace, as were sufficient to make head against his Enemies, should they, by taking advantage of the place, or by pretending to do a right to the Assembly, have attempted any thing against him. Being come into the great Chamber, and having taken his accustomed seat, he, speaking with his hat on, in few words Remonstrated: That having never had other intent, than to pay all due respect to an Assembly in which he had had the honour for many years to have some place, he could not but admire they should interpret what was an effect of that due honour and respect, for a premeditated offence: That he was not altogether so unthrifty of his own Interest, as to offer an injury to them, which he could not but know would rebound upon himself: That he had, for two and thirty years past, been a Member of that Honourable Body; during all which time there had not been perhaps a man of his condition, more passionate for their Service, than himself in the Kingdom: That he had set down amongst the good fortunes of his life, the opportunity he had happily met withal of expressing his good Affection to the Dignity of that Assembly, when after the death of Henry the Great, of Glorious Memory, he had first advised them to make use of their own Authority in providing for the Regency of the Kingdom: That he had tendered them his Service upon that occasion, which had not been altogether ineffectual to the putting them in possession of a privilege which would doubtless be taken notice of in ages yet to come: That if any indiscreet persons had made use of his name, either for the pretence of their insolences, or in the prosecution of their own private revenge, he seriously demanded their Justice, as the person most concerned in the offence: That he very well knew his enemies would lay hold of that occasion, to make him appear in all the fault; but that he did humbly beseech them to judge more favourably of his intentions, and that all things past might be forgot (concluding his speech with these very words) That he di● entreat to be excused, if in a rude and unpolished discourse, he had not given that satisfaction he could have wished to their Learned Ears, who having been all his life a Captain of Foot, had ever made it more his study to do, than to speak well. To which the first Precedent Verdun, after having gathered the Votes of the Assembly, returned this Answer: That since the King was graciously pleased to incline more to Clemency than Rigour, the Court by his Majesty's express Command, and in consideration of his many brave Services, as also willing to make the best interpretation of what had passed, accepted of his excuse; hoping thereby for the future, to engage both himself and his Sons to pay those Services to the King and Kingdom to which they were in gratitude obliged; and to that Court the Honour and respect was due unto them. Of which he never after failed; neither at the hour of his death, was there any person of his condition in the Kingdom, who had more friends than he in that honourable Assembly, nor that had more reason upon several occasions to magnify their Justice. The end of the Sixth Book. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. The Seventh Book. SOon after the forementioned dispute betwixt the Parliament, Anno 1615. and the Duke, the Assembly of Estates broke up; which, instead of the happy Reformation was expected to ensue, was immediately followed by a War; upon which the Council (after having long wavered in the uncertainty of the Peace so lately and so dearly bought) saw it necessary at last to resolve. The Commotion of the Princes to hinder the Marriage with Spain. The discontents of the Prince of Condé was again the cause of this, as it had been of the late Commotion; and those discontents again founded upon the greatness of Conchini, now advanced to the honour of Marshal of France. The Marshal therefore finding the Prince had conceived an implacable animosity against him, and very well foreseeing, that unless he freed himself from the difficulties he would eternally strew in his way, he could never raise himself to that pitch of greatness, to which he did aspire; he resolved to come to a public Rupture with him, and to remove him from the King's Presence by a War that should for a sufficient time secure himself from those obstacles he was otherwise certain to receive from so powerful an Enemy. The Prince was already retired in great discontent from Court; having as before, taken the way of Champagne, that he might be near Sedan, his surest refuge, should he be overmatched by the Royal Power: where after Conchini had long amused him with the hope of some advantageous Accommodation he at one blow cut him off that expectation, by causing a Summons to be sent him to be in readiness to attend the King in his Progress into Guienne, whither his Majesty was resolved shortly to take a Journey for the consummation of his Marriage; an Affair that having ever been opposed by the Prince, he very well understood the meaning of that Summons, and now plainly saw how he was to trust in the strength of his own Arms. He had ever since the last breach been so solicitous to continue his intelligence, and to maintain the League he had contracted with the Lords of his Party the precedent year, that it was no hard matter for him to engage them in this n●w Quarrel: the Dukes of Longu●ville, Mayenne, Vendosme, and Nevers declared highly in his favour, and the Duke of Boüillon (whose interest carried the whole Huguenot Faction along with it) did the same; so that all things were apparently disposed for an intestine War, in all the best Provinces of the Kingdom. So many discontented persons, and those so considerable in themselves, put the Court into no little disorder; the King's Journey in order to his Marriage had been resolved upon, and the time with the Spanish Agents concluded; which was every where so publicly known, that the Honour of the King and the Queen Mother was not a little concerned in the consummation of a thing, to which they were so solemnly engaged: but there was scarce any who durst undertake to overcome the difficulties were prepared to hinder that great Affair. For after the retirement of all the forenamed Princes, there was not any remained at Court, except the Dukes of Guise and Espernon, who were capable of serving the King in so dangerous an occasion; and of these the Duke of Guise, though in show well enough with the Queen, stood nevertheless so suspected to her, that she durst not trust an Army in his hands, lest by joining with the discontented Princes (whereof the greater part were his Kindred, or nearly allied to him) his Majesty's Person might be left wholly to their discretion; and although she had not the same jealousy of the Duke of Espernon (no body doubting his Fidelity) yet could not that command be conferred upon him, without giving offence to the Duke of Guise. In this anxiety then how she might satisfy them both, the Duke of Espernon went one day to attend the Queen, where he made it his humble request to her Majesty, The Du●e of Espernon's Service upon this occasion. she would not in the least consider his particular satisfaction in this occurrence: Telling her he should ever be very well satisfied, provided their Majesties were served as they ought to be: That he did hope they would, and that he was doing something in order to securing their Journey so far as Bourdeaux; wherein he nevertheless pretended to no other Command, than barely to ride in the head of those Friends, which he should make ready for that Service: That perhaps a greater Authority might give distaste to some, who at this time were by no means to be disobliged: That for what concerned the Princes, a good Army interposed betwixt them, and Paris, under the command of some man of Quality and Experience would be sufficient: and that for any thing could be apprehended from those of the Religion, whose greatest strength were in Poitou, Xaintongue, and Rochel upon the way to Bourdeaux, he himself would undertake; his Governments in those parts giving him sufficient power so to do. The Queen Mother, by this assurance being confirmed in her first design, ● told the Duke that she absolutely resigned the King's Person, and her own to his care and protection; that she therefore desired him to order all things, as should seem to him the most convenient, as she absolutely left them to his Valour and Wisdom: A Commission the Duke had no sooner received, but that seeing himself authorized so to do, he caused the King's departure the seventeenth of August to be proclaimed, persuading the Queen to confer the Command of the Army which was to attend the Prince's motion upon the Marshal de Bois-Dauphin; advising her Majesty further, and in the first place to provide for the security of Paris, that the Prince's Servants, who had great Authority in the City, might raise no commotion there in their Majesty's absence. After therefore that had been taken order for, by the securing of some eminent and suspected persons, the Court departed from Paris, happily arriving in a few days at Poitiers: and had not Madam the King's Sister fallen sick of the Small Pox delayed their Journey, their Majesties had been upon their return before the Princes could have got their Forces together; but that unhappy accident, having constrained them to stay near two months at Poitiers, gave their Enemy's leisure to put them into great apprehensions: which was also the only harm they received from this insurrection. At the same City of Poitiers there happened another disorder at this time, wherein had not the Duke of Espernon, who was principally concerned in the Affair, rendered himself unusually tractable, another obstacle to that Progress had infallibly ensued. The Duke of Guise, from the time of his Marriage with the Duchess of Montpensier, had pretended to the Wardship of Mademoiselle her Daughter; who was Inheritrix to such a Fortune, as might reasonably induce any man to covet the management of so brave an Estate, which nevertheless he could not obtain, without the consent of the Duke who was great Uncle to the young Princess: and he, having very good reason to believe the Duke of Guise did in this claim, more consider his own interest, than that of the Duchess of Montpensier his Niece, would never gratify him in that particular. But the Duke of Guise conceiving his Service to be altogether necessary at this time, took this opportunity to importune the Queen, either to cause the Duke of Espernon to satisfy him in this point, or to give him leave to retire. Whereupon the Queen spoke of it to the Duke, whom she found very averse to any such motion; he humbly entreating her Majesty to dispose absolutely of all his own concerns, but not to command him to neglect his Niece's interests: though in the end, the Queen, who could promise to herself no good issue of that Journey, without a good intelligence betwixt these two great persons, so far prevailed upon the Duke, that he was content to satisfy the Duke of Guise; by which means their friendship upon the point for ever to be dissolved, upon this little occasion, grew greater and more firm than ever. As it had been no hard matter to foresee how advantageous the long Sickness of Madam, and their Majesties stay at Poitiers would be to the designs of those of the Religion, and others who were engaged in the Prince's Quarrel: So had the Duke of Espernon omitted nothing that might any way serve to divert the dangerous effects of that untoward accident. And herein he had been especially solicitous to put his Governments of Xaintonge, and Angoumois into a posture fit for his Majesty's Service, upon that the security of that Voyage chiefly depending. To this purpose therefore he had sent thither the Duke of Candale, his eldest Son (already established in the succession of those Governments) to keep them in Obedience: Nevertheless what he did for so good an end, succeeded otherwise than he expected, news being brought him, that this Son had entertained resolutions much contrary to his own, and having suffered himself to be misled by certain ungoverned passions, was fallen off from his duty to embrace new Counsels, and to follow new Designs. Whether it were the sense of this miscarriage in his Son (which also occasioned a new, and a wider breach betwixt them) or the apprehension of being by this means made incapable of performing his word with the King and Queen, that put his mind into that disorder whereinto he soon after fell; so it was that he fell sick of so violent a grief, as every one expected would carry him to his grave. Things nevertheless succeeded in his Government according to what he had undertaken; their Majesties after the recovery of Madam, having left Poitiers, proceeded in great security to Angoulesme; neither there, nor in any other place throughout the whole Journey meeting with any impediment at all. But the Duke wounded to the soul with the violent sorrow● of his Sons untoward carriage was now no longer able to bear it out; but having conveyed their Majesties to the utmost bounds of his Government (that is to say out of all danger, they there entering upon Guienne, where the way was clear to Bourdeaux) fell suddenly into so great a weakness, that he was carried back for dead to Angoulesme: The Duke of Espernon falls desperately sick. He lay above forty hours (a very extraordinary thing) without speech, pulse, or any kind of motion; insomuch that not a person about him, but concluded him absolutely dead: but at last his Spirits, which had been so long overcome with grief, and his strength weakened by a very long abstinence, being stirred up by a glass of Water (his ordinary and best Remedy, and which he ever made use of in all distempers) he began a little to come to himself, with so great an astonishment nevertheless, that he continued a great while without any kind of knowledge; his sighs, which were the issue of his grief, being the only evidence almost he gave that he was yet alive. Yet could he not, in this great and total neglect of himself, forget the care of his Master's Affairs, he being no sooner returned to a new life, but that he dispatched away the Marquis de la Valette, who had continued about him, during his Sickness, to attend the King, and Queen; that the Friends he had engaged in this Voyage, having himself as it were present with them, in the person of so dear a part of himself, might continue more diligent in their duty. The Duke had the honour, during this Sickness, to be visited by several persons sent purposely by the King and Queen to see him, by whom he received very obliging Letters, under their Majesties own hands; and when something recovered, others of the same stile and kindness. Mounsieur de Villeroy also, after their old animosities, being become his very great friend, writ very often to him; wherein he still gave him an account of all Affairs, conjuring him to make all the haste he could to Court, where he said his Presence and Service was never more necessary than at this time. Two of which Letters I have seen, bearing date the twentieth, and four and twentieth, of October 1615. Not that the Duke was nevertheless upon so good terms at Court, as he had formerly been: neither did those Letters imply any such thing, it being hardly to be expected he could be in any eminent degree of favour with the Queen Mother (upon whom, at that time, all things depended) being out with the Marshal d' Encre, whose Wife had so strange an ascendent over her Majesty's inclinations; but that his Service could, in this juncture, by no means be spared: neither did he, how evidently soever he saw his favour decline, fail, out of that consideration, in any part of his Duty, being resolute rather to perish, than that their Majesties should suffer the least inconvenience. So soon therefore as he was able to Travel, he went to Bourdeaux, where he arrived the twelfth day of November, and a few days after attended the King to Castres', a little Village upon the great Road from Bayonne to that City; where the King would t●e first time see the Queen his Spouse, and where the Duke, who was very perfect in the Spanish Tongue, had the honour to entertain her at the Boot of her Coach, whilst his Majesty, in a crowd of some young Lords and Gentlemen on Horseback passed by incognito to view her. The young Queen, Queen Anne of Austria arrives at Bourdeaux. arriving at Bourdeaux the 25th. of November, found the Court in a very great Alarm at the news of the Princes being advanced on this side the River Loire; whose Forces being by this time united, and moreover reinforced with some Foreign Troops, were likely to make their Majesty's return to Paris very difficult, and dangerous. An occasion wherein the Duke of Espernon's Services were again of very great moment, who, during his abode at Angoulesme, after his recovery, had made many Levies, which were all ready at Ville-Bois; a recruit that consisting of 5000. Foot, and 400. Light Horse, and joined to the Forces their Majesties already had, absolutely secured their return through the Countries of Xaintonge, and Poictou, possessed by those of the Religion, and without any difficulty made good their way to Poitiers, and so to Tours, notwithstanding whatever the Princes could do to oppose them. In this return of the King to Paris, the Duke of Guise was made General of the Army, which had hitherto served under the Marshal de Bois-Dauphin, and the Duke of Espernon had also the absolute Authority of their Majesties Conduct conferred upon him; who, for fear of distasting the Duke of Guise would never till then pretend to any command: an undertaking wherein he so acquitted himself, as might give him reasonable expectation of a grateful return: But who can promise to himself any fruits of his services, especially at Court, where the best are usually rewarded with hatred, or envy? nor had the Duke's a better acknowledgement, when having performed all that could be expected from a Loyal Subject, and a brave Gentleman, and that their Majesties by his vigilancy and valour were once settled in safety, there was nothing more thought of, than how to revenge the Marshal d' Encre, even at the price of so good, and so faithful a Servant. The first evidence the Duke met withal of any manifest disgrace, The beginning of the Duke of Espernon's disgrace. was upon the occasion of a vacancy that happened in the Company of la Courbe, one of the Captains in the Regiment of Guards: a Gentleman that having served long, and with great Reputation in that Command, and happening to die in this Journey; and his Son a young and hopeful Cavalier, having before his Father's death been admitted Ensign to that Company, the Duke, who had been a great lover of the Father (whose brave and late Services seemed likewise to plead in behalf of the Son) had moved their Majesties in his Favour, that that Command might be conferred upon him. Since the death of the late King, nor of long before, had the Duke ever appeared zealous in any request he had not, without any great difficulty, obtained; neither had he less, but more reason now, than ever to expect the same favour, his recent Services having been of that importance to the King's Affairs: all which nevertheless being either not regarded, or forgot; and the design had before been concluded to disoblige him, prevailing above the merits of the Father, the pretenders Right, and the Duke's Interest who interceded for him, lafoy Besne, Lieutenant to the same Company, was preferred before young la Courbe, how displeased soever the Duke seemed to be at that Election. Yet did he not resent this ill usage so high as to leave the Court, satisfying himself at present with manifesting his discontents bymany and public complaints, though in vain, the Court now no more caring to offend him: but on the contrary taking this occasion to exclude him from the Council, where his candid, and unbyass'd opinions did nothing relish with such as would have all things give way to their own private interests (and doubtless had he at this time in the least bandied with his enemies, they would immediately have attempted upon his person) that the Marshal d' Encre, and his Wife might by so powerful an opposes be no longer traversed in their designs. The Duke's Affairs were in this posture, when their Majesty's having first recovered Poitiers, and afterwards Chastellerant (where the Peace concluded at Loudun was signed) arrived in the end at Tours; neither did the Duke there fail, how ill soever he saw himself entertained, continually to pay all due reverence to the Queen, when coming one day into her Chamber with a great many other Lords and Gentlemen, one of the beams that supported the floor suddenly broke; insomuch that all that side of the Room fell down with a sudden ruin, overwhelming all those that stood upon it, to their exceeding great peril. Many persons of very eminent quality were engaged in the danger of this fall, amongst whom the Count de Soissons, then very young, was one, as also the Duke Bassompierre, The Du●e in great danger. Villeroy, and some others: The Duke being always very well attended, his Servants suddenly leaped into the midst of the ruins, to relieve him, where, though himself was dangerously engaged, and very much hurt in several places, especially in one shoulder, he nevertheless called out to his Friends to run and save the Count, himself also assisting as much as in him ●ay to disengage him from the rubbish, and to put him out of danger by the Window of a low Parlour; being much more solicitous of this Prince's safety than his own: who, being by his own, and his Servants diligence secured, he afterwards disengaged himself from the ruins, and wounded, as has been said, was conveyed to his own Lodgings. The Queen Mother, who, by good fortune had escaped the danger (that part of the Chamber where she sat, being supported by the more faithful strength of the other Beam that remained entire) sent very graciously to visit all the persons of Quality, who had received any hurt by this accident, the Duke only (who was designed for the worst usage) excepted. It is not to be doubted, but that the Duke must needs highly resent so manifest a preterition, by which he evidently perceived they intended to make him sensible of his disgrace; so that fearing, should he continue at Court after so clear a testimony of disfavour, something of a ruder nature might be put upon him, he forthwith resolved to retire himself, as he did, but with high and public complaints of the injustice was done him, and of the unworthy recompense he received for all his Service. He spent two days before his departure in visiting, and taking leave of his friends, forbearing nevertheless that Ceremony to all he conceived not to be such, in what degree of favour soever they might be at Court; he either having never understood, or having never been willing to learn those mean Court Maxims that oblige men to dissemble their resentments, and to give thanks for injuries received: declaring on the contrary to all the world, that he went away with the dissatisfaction an honest man ought to have for the loss of his time, and service. Notwithstanding at last, taking his leave of their Majesties, he was by the King and Queen very civilly dismissed, The Duke of Espernon retires from Court. though the Queen Mother received his last compliments with the usual coldness she had already begun to discover upon several occasions. After this manner the Duke retired back to Angoulesme, his old, and ordinary refuge, in all his disgraces, whilst their Majesties continued their Journey to Paris, where they arrived in june; and whither the Prince of Condé also (imagining he had by the Treaty. of Loudon established his Affairs in so sure a condition, that it was not in the power of event to work any alteration to his disadvantage) came presently after; but he soon found that nothing is more unstable, than a power, how great soever, that depends merely upon its own strength, the sole name of a King (though a Child, and the public administration managed by a man hateful to all) being sufficient to arrest him in the very arms of all his Confederates, The Prince of Condé confined. and even in the City of Paris, where he believed his person, through the affections of the people in greater security, than in any other place of the Kingdom. All the Princes, and Lords, not only those then present at Court, and who had engaged with the Prince in the late commotions, but also all the rest of their party, astonished at so extraordinary a proceeding, and believing that after an example like this, neither respect of persons, nor any security in general was to be expected, they suddenly retired from Court; to whom the rest almost as suddenly reunited themselves for their common safety. The Marshal, who thought that by securing the Head of the Faction, he had likewise secured himself from the danger of the rest, was infinitely surprised when he saw them now united in more formidable numbers than before, and that the Lords of the House of Guise also absented themselves upon this occasion; wherein nevertheless he had this hope, that so many persons of equal quality would not long agree together, especially if pressed home by the Royal Arms: An opinion that made him resolve to set immediately such Forces on foot, as should be sufficient to encounter, and suppress them in several places at once. Neither did he care to reduce any by Treaty, save only the Duke of Guise, conceiving an Accommodation with him would be more easily effected, than with any of the other, by how much he had ever observed a greater moderation in him, and his Brothers towards himself, than the rest; to which likewise the complacency the Duke had ever manifested for the Queen in other occasions, gave him greater assurance of a flexibility in him to her Majesty's desires in this, and that without much difficulty a good intelligence might be established betwixt them; as there afterwards was, the Guises, having received caution for their security, being content to return to Court. This little negotiation being so happily dispatched, The Marshal d' Encre takes arms against the, Prince of Condé's Partisans. the Marshal immediately betook himself to Arms, and so vigorously, that in a very few days, three great Armies were set on foot, whereof one was sent against the Duke of Mayenne, who was retired to Soissons; another against the Duke of Nevers in Champagne; and the third against the Duchess of Nevers, who with a generosity (something extraordinary in her delicate Sex) was resolute to defend the Duchy of Nivernois, which was the Inheritance of the Duke her Husband. In this disorder of Affairs, Anno 1616. the Duke of Espernon, apprehending that the hatred the Marshal had conceived against him, was no less than that he manifested against the rest, and that he would infallibly fall upon him, so soon as he had dispatched with them, he had no mind to be surprised, nor to suffer himself tamely to be oppressed; considering therefore that alone he should not long be able to resist the power of the King, whose name his enemy had usurped in all his Affairs, he addressed himself to the Duke of Montmorency, to engage him in his Quarrel; by whose mediation he made no doubt to draw over l' Esdiguieres also. The Duke knew those two to be no better satisfied with the present Government than himself; who, although they were not openly persecuted as he was, yet the example of the other persons of the same condition, making them reasonably to apprehend for themselves, what they already saw others suffer; he doubted not, but that without much difficulty they would be persuaded to embrace the union; neither was he mistaken herein, the Duke of Montmorency, as also l' Esdiguieres, absolutely engaging with him. So that these three Confederates, having opportunity to concur in the work, through the mediation, and by the assistance of several powerful friends the Duke had in Guienne, nothing could hinder them from uniting, in so necessary a defence, and so just a Quarrel. The Duke, Anno 1617. notwithstanding he had thus wisely played his game, and that he was certain to receive very great assistance from his Confederates, did nevertheless very well understand, that as he was nearest to the approaching danger, so it would be very necessary for him to put himself soon into a posture of defence, that the Marshal might not surprise him. His thoughts therefore were fully intent upon the resolution of Arms; but he wanted not only a cause, but even a pretence to colour his preparation; without which only to go about it, was to make himself Criminal in the highest degree: neither (the Court Minion being absolutely his enemy) could he reasonably hope, either for a Commission from thence for the raising of men in the King's name, and at his expense; or so much as to be permitted to do it at his own charge. In this straight and anxiety, what course to take, the Rochellers gave him as fair a pretence, as he could possibly desire, to do that under the vail of Duty, and Obligation, which he could not otherwise have undertaken, The Duke of Espernon's pretence for the taking of Arms. without incurring the highest censure. They had at this time surprised a little Castle, near to their City, and situate upon the Sea-coast, called Rochefort; an enterprise condemned by all the world for the most senseless, and unadvised, that could possibly have been undertaken, to begin a War by an action of so little importance, in a time when themselves, and their whole party were privileged by so absolute, and inviolate a Peace. The Duke, who had been at so great a loss before, and that could not then have wished for a more specious pretence, it may easily be imagined was very ready to lay hold of this occasion now; neither did he fail herein to aggravate the misdemeanour to the height: but repeating all the Accusations he had formerly preferred against the Ambition, and Infidelity of those of the Reformed Religion, and particularly against those of Rochel, he of them drew up a kind of Manifesto, which he caused to be published in all parts of the Kingdom. In this Declaration he forgot not to reckon up the several insurrections those of that Faction had broke into, to make their advantage of every disorder, had at any time happened in the Kingdom, notwithstanding all satisfaction had been given them by the inviolate observation of several Edicts granted in their favour: That they had been observed for many years to call together Assemblies in Rochel, without either his Majesty's Order, or Royal Assent; from which such unjust and unreasonable Propositions, and demands were usually sent to the King, as made it appear they did not Treat with his Majesty in the quality of Subjects, but like Free-States that were nothing allied to his Sovereign Power: That by such a behaviour it was plain enough, the City was arrived to the utmost degree of Licence, and that the Rochellers could never satisfy their Ambition, till they had introduced a popular Government amongst them: That if hitherto his Majesty's Council had (contrary to his Judgement, and Advice) winked at the progress of so dangerous a design; that nevertheless he, to whom the Government of their City was entrusted, and who therefore was more concerned, than any other to keep such in their obedience, as were committed to his care, was resolved to chastise their insolence; which he nothing doubted, but by the assistance of his own friends he should be able to do, and to make them know they had hitherto been only strong in the weakness of our own Counsels. This had in truth ever been his saying, and the effects made it appear he had made a right judgement; so that under this pretence he took Arms; which, as it was coloured by a design that immediately pointed at his Majesty's Service, so did he not scruple to make use of the King's money in the Levies he made upon this occasion. With these sums, though very small, and some money of his own, he raised four Regiments of Foot, consisting of above four thousand five hundred men, and betwixt five and six hundred Horse; to which were added sixscore Guards on Horseback in his own Livery: a force, which though not very considerable for their number, were yet such as he conceived sufficient to keep the Field against any he had a mind to offend. The Rochellers (who formerly had by many injuries highly incensed the Duke) no sooner saw him resolved, and ready to advance in a posture of War, even to the Gates of their City, but they began now to examine their Forces, which they had not so well considered before the danger, and which the more they examined, the weaker they found them to be: This City the Capital of a powerful Faction, and that had so often disputed the King's Authority, enriched by an extraordinary Traffic, and confederated with all the Protestant Princes of Europe, finding itself in so weak a condition, that it could not in this necessity muster 2000 men, to sally out of their Walls; utterly without Horse, or the least assistance from any of their Confederates and Friends: So that converting their usual Rhodomantades, and Menaces into the most submiss terms of Humble Supplication, addressing themselves by their Deputies to the King, they humbly, and with all importunity besought his Majesty to interpose his Royal Authority betwixt the Duke of Espernon and them, that he might not commence a War against them. Had the Rochellers made this confession of their weakness at another time, it would doubtless have very well pleased the Council; and 'tis likely the Duke of Espernon would have been countenanced in his design, to the end that City might have been made to know, what they were one day to apprehend from their Prince's indignation: but the Marshal d' Encre unable to endure that his Capital Enemy should be in Arms, and consequently in a posture fit to frustrate the design he had long projected of his ruin, made the Council resolve to dispatch away Boissize, one of the Council of State, to the Duke with a positive command to lay down his Arms. Boissize at his arrival found the Duke with his Forces, quartered at Surgeres, but four Leagues only distant from Rochel, and ready to march up to the City; neither did he fail with all the Rhetoric he had to dissuade him from that resolution: Representing to him the danger of what he was about, lest the noise of the enterprise in hand should alarm the whole Huguenot Party, whom the King would by no means should be provoked; and in which case, of a particular Quarrel, he would be the cause of a general War. With which commands from the King, and Queen, he moreover mixed menaces of their highest indignation, should he disobey; with many promises on the contrary of all satisfaction from the Court, and the Rochellers if he would desist; all which, wanting force to divert him from his purpose, the Duke gave order in the presence of Boissize to sound to Horse, and nettled to the last degree, at the difficulties he saw strewed in the way of his designs, marched directly towards Rochel. Boissize seeing his endeavours altogether ineffectual, and that the Duke was obstinate in his first determination, after having highly protested against his proceeding, went, and put himself into the Town, giving the Inhabitants thereby to understand, that their Majesties had no hand in the Duke's Enterprise, that it was absolutely contrary to their order, and that therefore they were at full liberty to arm themselves for their own defence. But this consent, though it warranted their Arms, gave them nevertheless no other power, so that they were to suffer whatever the Duke was pleased to inflict upon them: He quartered his men in their best Farms, made his approaches up to the very Gates of their City, and defeated some who (under the protection of their Counterscape) attempted to oppose him; till in the end, after having maintained his Army, for almost a month, at their charge, and that his fury was a little abated by that little revenge he had taken in some inconveniencies he had put them to, he grew more flexible to a new Order he received from Court, and was at last content to let them alone. It was by Vignoles, that the Duke received this last Command, a man for many years, well known, and highly esteemed by him, which rendered the Duke more flexible to a Treaty with him, than the other; from whose mouth having received his Majesty's pleasure, he made answer; That having now made a discovery to the whole Kingdom of the Rochellers weakness, the dis-union of their Faction, and with how much ease they were to be reclaimed when ever his Majesty should think fit, he was content to let them rest in peace: but that, if the King had pleased, he might at this time have punished their insolence, as it was in his power easy to do, he could without much trouble have done his Majesty a very important Service; but he saw (to his great affliction) his Enemies, who were prevalent with his Majesty, envied him the honour of this Action; but that he must however give place to their malice in obedience to his Royal pleasure, though in a thing very prejudicial to his Majesties own peculiar Interest: That therefore he would retire so soon as the Rochellers should surrender the Castle of Rochefort into his Majesty's hands and; that after that act of their Obedience, having no other particular concern, he had nothing more to desire of his Majesty for his own private satisfaction, than that his Majesty would please to assert, and avow what he had only undertaken for his Service in the past occasion. Which being accordingly in another dispatch brought him by Vignoles, and all those who had assisted, and served him in this occasion comprised, he rose from before Rochel; dismissing his Army nevertheless in such sort that most of the Commanders (most of them having relation to him) might be ready upon the least warning to reunite in the same equipage as before. What the Duke had expressed to Vignoles of his discontents by word of mouth, did not nevertheless save him the labour of writing to Court in such a style, as manifested he still retained the honest liberty his great spirit had ever suggested to him, during the Reigns of his two former Masters. He therefore sent a Letter to the King, in the beginning whereof having excused himself in that he had not paid so prompt an Obedience to their Majesty's first Orders, delivered by Boissize, and given reasons for it, that directly pointed at the Honour of the King himself, which as he said he conceived to be very much concerned in the business of Rochel, he continued in these words: I have hitherto, Sir, preserved my Hands clean, my Conscience uncorrupt, my Reputation entire, and my Fidelity without reproach; I have never conspired but to do you Service, neither do I find myself guilty of the least thought disconsonant to the Duty I owe to your Majesty, and your Crown: And although I am not used with that Equity, nor rewarded with that Gratitude, that (without presumption) I conceive I have deserved, and that every day I find something attempted upon my Offices, by the diminution, and cutting off their just, and lawful privileges (which were ever preserved inviolate to me during the Reign of the late King your Father) yet nothing, Sir, can prevail with me above my Duty: neither is there any so ill usage, nor so sensible unkindness, that can hinder me from persevering to do well, being resolved to the last hour of my life to conquer whatever just resentments I may have, and to forget all those injuries, for which I can obtain no satisfaction, but at the public expense. A resolution, Sir, in which I am infinitely fortified, by the firm belief I have, that all the disgraces I receive, and all the foul play is continually practised against me, proceed from no disaffection your Majesty has conceived against my person. I know, Sir, that being naturally quick sighted, to distinguish betwixt your false Servants and your true, you have ever honoured me with your favour: But I have this obligation to those who are enemies to your Crown, that they have, upon all occasions discovered themselves to be particularly so to me; and have endeavoured by their artifice, to represent things otherwise to your Majesty, than they really are, to restrain the liberty of your own Royal disposition, from obeying the natural inclination you have to love, and cherish good men; that as much as in them lies, they may alienate your Majesty's good opinion from such, as by their long and faithful Services have deserved the best room in your heart. I hope, Sir, nevertheless, that truth will one day prevail in your Royal Breast over those little Arts, and that your Majesty will then be pleased to distinguish your true and faithful Servants from such, as Authorized by your Name and presence, oppress your People, invade your own Authority, and continually disturb your Majesty's Peace by their inordinate and unruly Ambition. From Surgere the 25. of Feb. 1617. I have the rather inserted the express words of this Letter, that you may see after what manner the Duke took his disgrace, and how he behaved himself towards his Enemies, notwithstanding they carried the whole favour, and sway of the Court: the Marescbal d'Encre being manifestly pointed at in this dispatch. We have since lived in a time, when to speak our discontents so plain, and loud, would perhaps have been out of season: but in that wherein the Duke writ this Letter, men were at least permitted to complain; and oftentimes those complaints procured a relief, to such, as like the Duke, had the spirit, and power to accompany those complaints, with the effects of a vigorous resentment. After this manner ended the Enterprise of Rochel, which gave some jeering companions of that party, occasion to say, for a piece of wit, whatd ' Aubigne has recorded since, That the Duke of Espernon was come to make h●● Entry before Roch●ll●: though it has been thought this entry before gave the King from that time forward to understand, it might also be made within, and that the Enterprise was not above his power to effect. We have since seen him bring about that glorious design; and it is certain that this action brought that present benefit along with it, What advantage accrued to the King, by the Duke of Espernon's Enterprise upon Roch●le. that the Council ever after looked with greater contempt upon the Huguenot Party, and the strength of the Rochellers, than before: They now discovered the weakness of these by the dis-union of all the rest, and from thence judged aright, that it being impossible for the separate Forces of this Faction without great difficu●y suddenly to unite for their common defence, one party might be suppressed in one Province, before any of the rest could put themselves in a posture in another to relieve them. This opinion (that in the sequel proved true) made the Council the bolder by their Arrest of the 23 of june, 1617. to order the restitution of the Church Lands in Bearne; an Affair that had for three years together been depending in the Council, and so long fruitlessly solicited by the Deputies of the Clergy of France. Not that the Council did not conceive it very just, but they looked upon it as a thing so highly important to the peace of the Kingdom, that they durst never till now give them that satisfaction. But the Duke's Enterprise cut off all difficulties, by which the Rochellers having been constrained publicly to confess their own weakness, it was conceived the King's presence would have as much Authority in Bearne, as the Duke's had had in the Country of Aunis. I have heard several persons of Quality, and those men of employment at that time (as Mounsieur de Roussy and others) say, that the Service the Duke did the Kingdom in this very occasion, was never duly considered, he having thereby first discovered the weakness of the Huguenot Party, and perhaps chalked out the way to their extirpation. The Duke of Espernon having openly declared himself an enemy to the Marshal d' Encre, and already made some preparation in order to 〈◊〉 defence of his Person, and Fortune, many persons who were afraid of persecution fled to him, settling themselves at A●g●ulesme under his protection: Amongst whom Bulion, at that time a Counsellor of State, and since Sur-Intendant of the Finances, was one; where he long continued in the Duke's Family, and who ever after retained a grateful memory of that obligation, as he had good reason to do, the Duke receiving him into his Arms in so critical a time, as he was threatened with no less than death, had he fallen into the Marshal's power. Guron, who was likewise another of the proscribed, with many others, came to seek the same refuge; all whom the Duke made no difficulty to receive into his protection. The Duke having (as has been said) settled the Friends he had in his Governments in such a readiness, as upon any occasion to make head against his Enemy, took a Journey into Guienne, his native Country, in that great Province to get together what numbers of Friends and Soldiers he could, for the better defence of his Fortune; in which Voyage he increased his Forces to such a degree, that being all joined together, they were able to make up a Body of 8000. Foot, and 1200. Horse. The extremity he knew the Duke of Mayenne to be reduced unto in Soissons, and the Duke of Nevers in the places whereunto he had retired, made him very well see, that the Torrent would suddenly break in upon himself: notwithstanding how reasonable soever his apprehensions were, and how necessary soever to put himself with the soon into a posture of defence, it might be, he could not however forbear to prefer the last Duty he owed to a good, and vertuhus Mother, before his own particular preservation. This Lady having been dead from the year 1610. in an exceeding old age, and lamented by the Duke, as if she had been more immaturely ravished from him, he had ever had a great desire to pay her memory the last office of her Obsequies: But the great and important Affairs, which had detained him at Court having hitherto frustrated that pious design, he no sooner now found himself in this little interval of repose, The Duke makes a great Funeral for his Mother. but that he resolved without further delay to satisfy that Obligation: Assembling therefore together at his paternal House of Caumont above 300. Gentlemen of Quality of his Relations and Friends, he there by a magnificent expense, manifested his gratitude to a person so near and dear unto him. The Ceremony of this Funeral was no sooner performed, but that the Duke departed from Caumont to Bourdeaux, and from thence was also upon the point to return into Angoumois, there to draw all his Forces together, with a resolution to defend himself to the last, and rather to die with his Sword in his hand, than to suffer himself tamely to be oppressed; when by le Chalart, Secretary to the Marshal de Roquelaure, his intimate friend, he received intelligence of the death of the Marshal d' Encre. The death of the Marshal d' Encre, slain by a shot in the L●uvr●● This Marshal's death happened the 24. of April, 1617. and the news by an extraordinary diligence came the 27. to the Duke; which how welcome it was to a man who saw himself delivered from so powerful and so implacable an Enemy may easily be imagined. He had very well foreseen, that with the assistance of all his Confederates and friends, he could not long be able to resist the Power and Authority of the King; with both which his enemy would have been armed against him: and on the other side, the King himself being by this execution become, as it were, the revenger of his particular wrongs, all his past actions would be justified in the exemplary punishment his Majesty had inflicted upon the person of Conchini. In this excess of joy he departed from Bourdeaux to Angoulesme, The Duke of Espernon goes to Court. and from thence soon after to Court, there to make a new tender of his Fidelity and Obedience to the King, and to try in this new face of Affairs, what foundation he could lay to his own future peace. He was in this Journey attended by his two younger Sons, (his own misfortune, and miscarriages having banished the eldest from his favour, and presence, ever since his Majesty's Voyage to Angoulesme) and at his arrival received by the King with all the demonstration of favour and affection, he could possibly expect, or desire: to which Luines the new Favourite (willing to be supported in his rising greatness by so powerful a friend) highly sought, and importuned his friendship, which also by some good Offices he endeavoured to acquire. One of the things the Duke was most earnest with him for, and that Luines did most faithfully promise was a Cardinal's Hat for the Archbishop of Tholouse his youngest Son, at the first promotion: as for himself he was at the very first restored to the full, and absolute Function of all his employments, having satisfaction given for all the retrenchments had been made upon his offices, and commands, or any of their perquisits and rights, and in fine stood in a very good degree of favour. Yet did not this continue long, and whether it were the too prodigious favour of Luines, (grown up on a sudden to a greater height, than that of the Marshal d' Encre had ever been) that stirred up the Duke's old aversion he had ever had for Court Minion's; or that his own private emulators, by their ill Offices had rendered his humour suspected to Luines: but the Duke soon perceived him to be quite another man from what he had been at first: At which causeless alteration, being highly nettled, and preferring (according to his custom) a free, and professed enmity, before a faint, and dissembled friendship, he inveighed publicly, and highly against the new Favourite; by which means, and by cohering with other persons of condition, no better satisfied than himself with Luine's promotion, he drew upon himself alone the hatred, and jealousy that ought to have been common to them all. The first thing the Duke de Luines did to disoblige him, Anno 1618. was the breaking his word, who contrary to what he had promised, and made him expect, concerning the Cardinal's Hat in favour of his Son, A Rupture betwixt the Duke of Espernon and the Duke de L●●nes. had preferred Mounsieur de Retts Bishop of Paris, and openly assisted him in the pursuit of that dignity: To which was added, that they began afresh to entrench upon his command of Colonel, some Foot employments having been disposed without the Duke's consent; by which being further exasperated, he highly complained to some of the chief Ministers: amongst whom Mounsieur du Vair * Or Lord Keeper. Garde des Sceaux, one of the greatest Authority, having given him no satisfaction, but on the contrary new matter of discontent, he was not long before he took an occasion to let him see how sensible he was of the offence. It was upon Easter-day in the year 1618. and in the Church of St. german de l' Auxerrois, that the Duke took occasion to quarrel with him. The Dukes and Peers who were then at▪ Court offended at the place the Guard des Sceaux du Vair▪ not only in the Council, but also in all other both public and private Assemblies, would assume above them, had generally addressed themselves to the Duke of Espernon, as to the eldest of their Order, to interest him in their discontent. It was also suspected that the Chancellor Syllery, (ill digesting that a man so inferior to him in Dignity, should usurp upon him in State) was willing enough to promote a business of this nature against him; and that being upon very good terms (as he had ever been) with the Duke of Espernon, he had also helped to blow the fire. However it was, or by whose suggestion soever it first came into the Duke's head, little persuasion would serve turn to make him passionately undertake a business, wherein he conceived his own Honour and Dignity to be so much concerned. It was therefore resolved betwixt the Duke of Moutmorency (of all others the most incensed against du Vair) the Dukes de Monbazon, de Retz, d' Vsez and some others of the same quality, that he should be affronted upon the first occasion, should he again offer to take place above them. Wherein though it was a business of danger enough, to affront a Minister so powerful by the favour of his Prince, and so violent in his own nature, the Duke of Espernon nevertheless made no difficulty to undertake it; not having (it should seem) consented to the first proposal, with an intent to leave the execution of it to any other, than himself. Upon Easter day therefore (as has been said) the King and all the Court being in Ceremony at Saint german de l' Auxerrois, and the Guard des Sceaux having, according to his custom, taken his place above all the Dukes and Peers, the Duke of Espernon violently pulled him from his seat, and compelled him to retire. It may easily be supposed an action of this kind could not pass without some untoward language; neither were those words thrown away upon a man insensible of offence; the Guard des Sceaux going immediately out of the Church, and expecting with great impatience the end of the Ceremony, that he might complain to the Duke de Luines of the affront he had received: Wherein nevertheless he did not reflect upon what had passed, as an injury merely respecting his own person, But as a Party, and a Faction formed, and made in the Court, by the Duke of Espernon, who had seduced all the Dukes and Peers under the colour of an imaginary pretence, to interest them in his own private discontents: That this ambitious spirit so long enured to Government, and Command, thought himself deprived of his lawful possession, if removed from the absolute sway of the most important Affairs: That it was through the sides of a Guard des Sceaux, that the fortune of the Favourite was levelled at; and that it was only a trial, by attempting upon his creatures, what opposition they were to expect when they should immediately fall upon his own person: That it therefore highly imported him, whilst he had power to do it, betimes to secure an enemy, that would not spare him, if he once got him into his hands. An advice that made so much the deeper impression upon the Duke de Luines, by how much he was before well enough satisfied of the Duke of Espernon's hatred so highly manifested, by what he had publicly declared against him. He therefore went immediately with the Guard des Sceaux to the King; where being come, he insisted not much upon the scuffle betwixt the Duke and du Vair, endeavouring on the contrary all he could to disguise that action from looking like a particular Quarrel; but qualified it with the name of the most impudent and audacious practice that could possibly be introduced into a State, that a Duke of Espernon in the face, and presence, and in defiance of his King▪ should dare to make a combination with persons of the greatest quality in the Kingdom, to affront the Royal Authority. The King was so highly incensed at a Remonstrance preferred to him by two persons in whom he had so entire a confidence, that immediately, and without reserving to himself so much as the liberty to consider the interest he himself particularly had in the Duke of Espernons ruin, or to call to memory the long and faithful Services he had paid to the Crown, he in this case absolutely resigned over his own Authority to them; insomuch that at that very time (● 'tis said) it was resolved upon to arrest him. Nothing then remained but a fit opportunity to effect their design, The King resolves to Arre●● the D●ke of Espernon. which it was also● requisite should be such, as might seem ●o warrant the success of the Enterprise, it being very unsafe ●o offend a man of his spirit by halves; who having power, places, friends, and money to improve all those to the be●●, and withal a very high discontent upon him, might do more mischief tha● any other person whatever of his condition in ●rance To which may be added that from the time of his dispute with Mou●●sieur du Vair, the Dukes and Peers at Court were scarcely ever absent from him, especially the Duke of Montmo●●ncy, who was no 〈◊〉 dear to him (not only out of respect to the alliance betwixt them, but also by the particular love he bore him, and the esteem he had for him) than one of his own Children, was inseparably with him: They eat, went to Court, and made all their visits together, the Duke's two Sons also continually attending upon him; so that it was no easy matter to attempt four persons of their courage (and who were not without many Friends, and Servants of great Fidelity and Valour to serve them upon all occasions) at once. To all which, the Regiment of Guards were so made up of the Duke's Creatures, that he seemed to be stronger in the King's own Palace than at home: to avoid all which difficulties it was concluded to surround him by night in his own House, and to seize upon his Person. If the Duke had many, and those powerful Adversaries, his virtue had on the other side acquired him so many Friends, and some of those so careful of him upon this occasion, that he had timely notice of the design in hand, some say by the Princess of County, others by the Chancellor de Syll●ry; but by what means soever it● came to his knowledge, upon the first r●mou● of it (which (as it did here) commonly foreruns a more certain intelligence) he had taken a resolution to withdraw himself, to defeat the effects of what was threatened, and contrived against him: wherein though he was so far cautious as to prevent the intended mischief; yet could he not forbear so unseasonable an ostentation of the little fear he had in a place where so much was to be apprehended; as doubtloss prompted his enemies sooner to push loom to the intended business. He was for five or six days together continually seen riding through the streets of Paris with so extraordinary a Train, under colour of taking leave of several of his friends, and acquaintance, that those who had before premeditated his ruin, interpreting all for contumacy, and done on purpose to brave them, resolved in the end upon a positive night, wherein with four Companies of Swiss to surprise him in his own house, and to carry him away. All which the Duke being likewise informed of from so good a hand, The D●ke of Espernon leaves the Court. as that the intelligence was no ways to be suspected, he presently put himself upon his preparation, to make his best use of that advice. This caution therefore being sent him upon the sixth of May at night, and the surprisal being designed the night following, he had so little time to lose, that he immediately dispersed Tickets to all his most assured Friends, and Servants to be in a readiness by break of day to mount to Horse; according to which appointment, he found above 300▪ ready at the precise hour to attend him, who after having convoyed him to his House of Fontenay in Brie (where they conceived him lodged in a place of safety) most of them retired to follow their own affairs. This retirement of the Duke's being but ten little Leagues from Paris was so far from frustrating the design of his surprise, that on the contrary it made the business seem more likely to succeed: the Duke de Luines therefore having considered, that in this solitude he would have far fewer friends about him, than in Paris, the former order was only one day deferred, and the Swiss commanded to march away the day following, being the 8. of May, together with some Brigades of Cuirassiers, and Light-Horse to invest Fontenay. But the same persons who had given the Duke the first intelligence, being no less vigilant of his preservation now than before, gave him also as seasonable notice of this, as of the other design; giving him to understand that his danger was not yet over, and that it concerned him with all diligence to convey his person into some place of greater safety: Which advice having made the Duke resolve to get again to Horse, so soon as all the Family had supped, and that every one thought of retiring to his rest, he (having in the mean time with great secrecy provided all things necessary for a tedious journey) commanded his Trumpets to sound to Horse; his necessity enforcing him so to do at that unseasonable hour, (though he was certain to undergo all the inconveniencies of a very dark, The Duke takes his way towards Metz. and turbulent night) to get clear of the manifest, and approaching danger; at that time therefore he set out towards Metz, the place to which at his departure from Paris he had taken a resolution to retire. By break of day the Duke, and all his company, arrived at Sezanne in Brie, where both himself, and the Horse that were with him, were so weary, the rain, the dirt, and all other incommodities of an ill journey having equally toiled out, and dejected horse and man, that he had a great desire, and very great need there to stay, and take some repose; though his Servants, conceiving him to be yet in danger, were so importunate with him, that they got him to mount again, making him to continue on horseback all that day, and the night following; when arriving the next day at Montmirel, he found himself so weary, and spent, with riding, watching, and the indisposition of Age, which now began to grow upon him, that he was ready to faint; but being laid upon a bed, and refreshed by sleep, he soon found himself well enough to proceed in his journey, though with nothing so much precipitation as before. Through so many traverses and difficulties it was, that the Duke of Espernon waded to the foundation of the most glorious Act of his life, and which, in my opinion, aught to be placed on the highest Pyramid of his Fame; I mean the Queen Mother's escape from Blois: The Treaty● for the Queen Mother's escape from Bloi● set on foo● at this time. of which the treaty began soon after the Duke's coming to Metz, where he arrived about the 20. of the same month of May, having departed the 6th. from Paris. And then it was that the Duke de Luines highly, and openly declared himself an enemy to the Duke, giving his friends plainly to understand, he could in no wise repute them to be his, if they did not totally abandon the Duke's interest; offering them at the same time his favour and protection, if they would do it, and thundering out great threats against such as would not embrace his Quarrel: wherein the constancy of the Duke's friends is highly to be commended; who notwithstanding the greatness of the Favourite they had to deal withal, the great promises wherewith he endeavoured to allure them, and the implacable hatred he publicly professed against their Friend, and Master, would scarce any one of them be debauched from the fidelity they had professed; whereas some on the contrary were so generous as to carry him intelligence of Luines his proceeding so far as Metz, and of the offers he had made to withdraw them from the Service, and Friendship they had promised, and sworn unto him. The Duke very well judging by what had passed at Court before his departure thence, and by the continuation of those practices since, that his enemies intended to give the last blow to his ruin, began anew to consider of the means to defend himself. He was very confident they would never offer to attempt any thing against him by open force in Metz, neither would they be easily induced to provoke him to the utmost extreme, the consequence being of two dangerous importance: but doubted wisely withal, that no artifice would be spared, nor no covert practice unattempted against him which were by so much the more dangerous, by how much a man is oftentimes surprised with the effect, before he is aware of the cause. There were in the City divers ill affected and seditious persons, whom he could never disgust, and whom Luines failed not to deal withal to put in for a Party in Metz, who being in themselves of too little authority for any thing of that kind, their malice converted to Spies upon the Duke's Actions, to send continual intelligence to Court, whether false, or true, and by their Artifice possessed the Duke de Luines with jealousies, and fears, about things that were altogether uncertain, and vain. To make therefore a better discovery of the truth, and to the end he might penetrate with more certainty into the Duke of Espernon's intentions, Favier a Counsellor of State, and a man of great sagacity in Affairs, was sent away under the shadow of a Commission, to reside sometime in Metz, and to try if by his dexterity he could better guests at the Duke's designs; though all those endeavours were equally fruitless to the Favourite, who had to do with a man not easy to be pried into, nor surprised. After Favier's return to Court, there happened so pleasant a thing at Metz, as I hope, though mixed amongst more serious Affairs, will not much importune my Reader, and that was this: The Duke de Luines continually expressing a great desire to have constant intelligence of what was done at Metz, A pleasant Story. and few being willing to undertake a thing the Duke's severe humour made appear so full of difficulty, and danger, one fellow, a Courtier, and who thought by such an undertaking to advance himself highly into favour, made a voluntary, and brisk tender of himself for that employment, offering publicly to go to Metz, and there to serve (as he said) Mounsieur de Luines, against the Duke of Espernon: Which generous offer of his was as kindly received, and as readily accepted; so that with good store of Crowns in his pocket to defray his journey, he was presently dispatched away upon that design; yet not so soon, but that before his departure from Paris, the Duke had notice of what a Mounsieur was coming to brave him in his own Government. In a few days my Gentleman arrives at the Gates of Metz, where at his first coming he was made to undergo all the severities usually observed in Frontier Towns; they made him dance attendance a good while at the Gate, where after having been sufficiently abused, hissed, and hooted at, he was by four Soldiers of the Garrison conducted to his Inn, who (it may be imagined) were not commanded to use him with overmuch respect. But if this first part of his entertainment surprised him, he was much more, when his Host coming to him at night, demanded his Name, Surname, Country, Quality, and Age, with many other interrogatories, as if he had been upon the * Selette, that for which we have no word, because no such thing; it signifying a low stool, on which Criminals in France are placed to be examined. Selette. From all, or most of these questions, he for some time defended himself, till being threatened if he would not answer, to be proceeded against as a Spy, he was at last constrained to do it; when as his answers came from him, he saw them recorded in a great Book (ordered for that purpose amongst other ancient rules established for the defence of the place) though he conceived that under the protection of the Royal Name, which he had ready to produce, he ought to have been dispensed from that Ceremony. He was scarce recovered from his first astonishment, when he saw four of the Duke's Guards (at that time called les Simons, a name very famous at Court) entering his Chamber. Their first Compliments (it may be supposed) were none of the most obliging: neither did they long forbear to tell the new come Gallant, That they were ordered by the Duke their Master, to have an eye upon his actions: That the Duke very well knew upon what pretence he came to Metz, but that the true cause of his coming was to him much better known, which was to do a disservice to the King, to observe the weaknesses of the place, and to give intelligence thereof to his Majesty's enemies: That therefore they were not to leave him, and that they very well knew how to prevent him from executing his malicious designs: That in the mean time it would concern him to have a care how he behaved himself, since no mercy was to be expected, if the least thing was discovered in him contrary to his Majesty's Service. At this declaration the poor man was put into a most terrible fear, he knew the Duke's Authority to be absolute in Metz, and that whatever he should determine, though it should reach to his life, and under what pretence soever it might be, would infallibly be executed upon him: Whereupon he asked his Guards if there were no possibility of safety for him? to which they replied, that doubtless yes, provided he attempted nothing against the Crown. After which they entertained him with stories of how many they had Bastinadoed at Paris, and after what manner the Duke used to chastise several foolhardy fellows, who had imprudently attempted upon his Honour. If he went out of one Chamber into another, they were continually at his heels, and if ●e went to sleep, they lay down by him; never ceasing day nor night to afflict him: insomuch that after having two days endured this usage, such a terror seized him at last, that he fell down at his Guards feet; weeping, praying, and conjuring them to assure the Duke that he was his most humble Servant, that he acknowledged his fault, begged his pardon, and did humbly entreat he would give him leave to depart the City. At which, though his Guards seemed to comfort and assure him, advising him not to fear, and protesting that the interest of his Majesty's Service only excepted, they were there to no other end, than to do him Service: yet were all their consolations vain, so invincible a fear had possessed him, and so wholly was he taken up with the desire to escape from the danger, whereinto he saw he had so precipitously engaged himself. The Duke, after he had a few days made himself merry with mortifying his Gull, let him at last depart; who, as he had been before at Metz, became afterwards the Fable of the Court. Yet did not the Duke spend his time altogether in diversion, having serious business enough to take up his thoughts with something of more concern, and those were the Affairs of the Queen Mother. This Princess after the death of the Marshal d' Encre; having been constrained to leave the Court (where Luines could not suffer a person of her Authority, and offended to the degree she had been, to reside) had the Castle of Blois appointed by the King for her retreat. To which place accordingly the Queen, (in this change of her Fortune, being allowed to keep very few of her Servants about her) departed with a very slender Train. The Bishop of Luçon since Cardinal of Richelieu) who had been Secretary of State during the favour of the Marshal d' Encre, was one of those who followed her in her disgrace, as Chanteloube also was another: but the Abbot Rucellary and Italian, and very affectionate to her Service, was, as a person altogether unnecessary about her Majesty, sent back into one of his Abbeys: neither did the Bishop of Luçon remain long without another Order of the same kind, by which he was first obliged to reside in his own Diocese, and soon after to retire into Avignon. The Queen Mother, The Queen Mother attempts to recover her liberty. from the time of her departure from Court, had meditated nothing so much, as how to recover her lost Authority, and to overthrow that of the new Favourites; wherein, though she had communicated something to Messieurs de Luçon, de Rucellay, and the C●anteloube, men of the greatest Fidelity and Conduct about her: and though they had taken some pains for her satisfaction, yet could they discover no possibility of effecting her Designs: Neither were they permitted long to consider of the means, the entire confidence the Queen was discovered to repose in them, being suspected at Court, having soon procured the banishment of the two first (as has been said before) of which that of Luçon had rendered him utterly uncapable of all manner of correspondence with her: But Rucellay a man of great courage, vivacity, and ambition, having for some time concealed himself about Blois, and having from time to time in disguise taken opportunity to consult with the Queen, was (after having rejected several propositions) at last of opinion, that she should address herself to the Duke of Boüillon, to try, if with the party of those of the Religion, who were absolutely at his dispose, he might be induced to declare himself of her side, and to attempt something in her favour. The Queen being very well pleased with this proposition, The Queen 〈◊〉 her 〈◊〉 to the D●ke of 〈◊〉 Rucellay as cheerfully undertook to make the first overture of it to the Duke of Boüillon at Sedan. I have often heard this Abbot (during five, or six weeks that I was continually with him in order to the Queen Mother's dispatches, which all passed through his hands after her escape) tell the whole story of this negotiation; so that I am able to say something of my own knowledge, bot● as to the qualities of his person, and the circumstances of that Treaty, which perhaps will not be altogether unpleasant to my Reader. Rucellay then was a Gentleman of Florence, A Character of Rucellay. descended from a Father, who by the Correspondence he had maintained with Za●et, Bandiny, Cenamy, and some other active men of that Nation (who in those times played their game so wisely, as to keep in with all parties of the Kingdom) had made himself a Fortune in France. Amongst other advantages he had there made to himself, he had got the possession of several Abbeys, arising in all to a Revenue of above ten thousand Crowns a year; amongst which that of Signy in Champagne not far from Sedan was most considerable. His eldest Son (which was he of whom I am now speaking) as most eldest Sons of the best Families of Itlay (that education making them capable of the greatest Dignities of the Court of Rome) was bred up to the Church: neither had he been wanting in his industry to acquire all those qualities that were most likely to recommend him to the highest Preferment. He had studied much, and particularly been diligent to learn to speak, and write accurately in his own Language; wherein he succeeded so well, that his own fine parts, together with the plentiful Fortune he was Master of (he having no less in Secular Revenue, than in Spiritual Entertainment) procured him so great a Reputation in the Court of Rome, that he there obtained the Office of * Clerc de Id Cham●re, a kind of Secretary. Clerk of the Chamber. Pope Paul the Fifth, under whose Papacy he was there admitted, looked upon him with a very gracious eye, and though a young man, entrusted his discretion with many secrets of State, not seldom making use of his Pen in Affairs of greatest importance; and often saying, by way of favour, that he discovered something in him of Signior de la Casa his great Uncle. All which favours having possessed the Cardinal-Nephews with a great jealousy towards Rucellay (as himself said) or he perhaps having failed on his part, in a fit complacency to oblige them, he was by them persecuted to that degree, that he was forced to quit the Court of Rome, and to retire into France. A good part of his Estate lay in that Country, the Marshal d' Encre a Florentine, as he was, commanded all there, and those of his own Nation having ever been well received in that Kingdom, it appeared he could not make choice of a safer, nor a more honourable retreat. He was thirty years of age, or thereabouts when he arrived in France, where he was at first very kindly received by the Marshal d' Encre, and soon after in great esteem with the whole Court, where with twenty thousand Crowns a year, that he had coming in, he lived in so extraordinary a degree of splendour, as equalled, if not outwent the greatest Nobility of the Kingdom: no Table was so neatly served, nor so plentifully furnished, as his; no man more nobly, nor more handsomely attended than he; to which the presents he continually made of all the Curiosities wherewith Italy so abounds, as by her overflow to oblige all other Nations, were so many, and so considerable, as that single way of expense seemed alone to exceed his Revenue. Neither did he win less upon the Ladies by his liberalities, and extraordinary fine fashion, than he did upon the men by his more considerable qualities; insomuch that he obtained the favour and applause of all. And although the Marshal d' Encre had not as yet fixed him in any settled employment in the management of Affairs, yet was he with him in so eminent a degree of favour, as was a fair step (in the height the Court Favourite then stood) to the greatest Offices of the Kingdom. The death of the Marshal therefore, as it had put a period to all Rucellay's future hopes, so did it possess him with such a grief, as was not to be comforted, but by the last effects of an implacable animosity he had conceived against those who had been the instruments of his ruin: And this spirit of Revenge it was that prompted him to be one of those who animated the Queen against the new Favourites; though such Counsels were not necessary to her, who of herself was sensible enough; the particular injuries she had received, having already incensed her to such a height, that she was very easily disposed to employ him in a Treaty with the Duke de Boüillon, on her behalf. In this Journey Rucellay was to undergo much trouble, and very great danger, he never daring to Travel, but by night, and in disguise for the most part alone, and always without any Equipage; for how circumspect soever he had been in his intelligencies to the Queen, he could not however send them in so secret a manner, but that, she being continually, and narrowly watched on all sides by spies set over her by Luines to that purpose, some of his practices had been discovered: insomuch that I have heard him say, he had notice given him, that several of his Pictures were sent to the Magistrates, and other inferior Officers, that they might know, and apprehend him in any of their respective Jurisdictions. Yet could not all these difficulties fright him from undertaking this Negotiation, and if he had before given several testimonies of his wit, and bravery upon other occasions, he manifested no less in this of the constancy of his Courage, his Wisdom, and Fidelity, which were very eminent, and of great use in the conduct of this Affair. The main thing he apprehended in this undertaking was the infirmity of his own tender, and delicate constitution; who whilst he had lived in the calms of peace, the delights of Rome, or the effeminacies of the Courts of France, had ever been so impatient of the Sun, and Evenings Dew, Heat, and Cold, that the least intemperance of the Air would usually cause strange alterations in his health; which notwithstanding he was no sooner in Action, but that he found those little inconveniencies left behind, as if he had had no leisure to be sick. Whether it were that the Favourites only guessed at the Queen Mother's discontents, by the offence they had given her, or that they had some more certain knowledge thereof, than mere conjecture, they were however very vigilant to frustrate her Designs: To which purpose soon after her Majesty's arrival at Blois, and the Banishment of the Bishop of Luçon, they had sent to her Mounsieur de Roissy, under colour of a Council for the management of her Affairs. A man that in truth at another season would have been acceptable enough: but in this juncture of time, and preferred to her by her enemies, could not but stand highly suspected to her. Neither had he without great reluctancy taken upon him an employment of that nature; the principal end of his Commission being, as it was, to discover the Queen's practices and designs; though neither his unwillingness could excuse him from going, nor all his art and observation hinder the Queen from conferring sometimes in private with those of her Servants in whose fidelity she reposed the greatest trust, when he was there. Of which Luines being advertised, and willing not only to give himself some present repose, but also to live in greater security for the time to come, he resolved to take Religion into his assistance, and by a principle of conscience to engage the Queen in an absolute dependence on his Majesty's good will, and pleasure. To this end therefore he would exact from her an Oath in the presence of God, and his Holy Angels (the very words of the Declaration she was to make) That she neither now had, The extraordinary precaution of the Duke de Luines, to make himself sure of the Queen Mother, fruitless. nor for the time to come would entertain other thought, and desire than what should tend to the prosperity, and advancement of the King's majesty's affairs: That she would, so long as she had life, pay all the Duty and Obedience to his Majesty due, as to her Sovereign Lord, and absolutely resign her Will into his Royal power: That she would have no correspondence neither within, nor without the Kingdom in any thing whatsoever to the prejudice of his Service, his Crown, and Dignity; but did, and would disown all persons of what quality, or condition soever, that in her name should contrive any practice, or conspiracy, contrary to his Majesty's pleasure: That she would moreover discover all Propositions and Addresses inconsistent with his Service, together with the persons themselves so addressing, and proposing, should any be so inconsiderate, as to offer any such thing; and impeach, and make known whoever should be so evilly affected; and that she would never desire to return to Court, till the King should be pleased to order her so to do. Which protestation was accordingly made betwixt the hands of Father Arnoux a Jesuit Confessor in ordinary to the King, who had been expressly dispatched to the Queen to receive it. Wherein we may discover the short-sightedness of humane Wisdom; when this great Minister, thinking by this expedient to settle himself in the security he so much desired, engaged himself (even by his own precaution) in new, and greater difficulties than before. For as on the one side Luines thought, that, through the persuasions of the King's Confessor, he had captivated the Queen under the Empire of Religion, she on the other side, satisfied to the contrary by Father Suffran her own Chaplain, and of the same Society, conceived she did not violate her Oath, by attempting all ways to recover her freedom; insomuch that making use of her enemy's credulity, she pursued her business at greater convenience, than otherwise she could have done. Neither was this the only benefit she received by this declaration; another signal advantage arising thence, which was a very gracious Letter under the King's own hand; wherein, to manifest how absolute a confidence he reposed in her Word, and Oath, he gave her leave to go whither she pleased within his Kingdom: which Letter served afterwards as a pretence for her going from Blois, as we shall see when we come to speak of that Affair. Whilst at Blois the Court Agents were thus diligent to cheat themselves, Rucellay was arrived safe at Sedan; where he had acquainted the Duke de Boüillon with his Commission, and wherein he failed not with his best Rhetoric to induce him to undertake the Queen's deliverance. But the Duke, R●cellary arrives at Sedan, and treats with the Duke of Boüillon, who refuses to engage in the business. who had no mind to stir from Sedan, where he thought himself so secure, who was already wearied out with his late troubles, who in the conduct of those troubles had run so great a hazard of his life, and liberty, and who likewise foresaw many great, and almost invincible difficulties in the business proposed, would by no means be persuaded to engage in that Affair. Contented therefore to serve the Queen Mother with his advice, instead of that real assistance was expected from him, he gave Rucellay this answer, That being old, and infirm, as he was, well satisfied with his present condition, and upon so good terms at Court, as to apprehend no ill usage from thence, it would be a great indiscretion in him to deprive himself of the peace he now enjoyed, by engaging in a new Quarrel, full of trouble and danger: That he was notwithstanding the Queen Mothers most humble Servant, of which truth the best testimony he could at present give, was to point out to her Majesty a Neighbour of his, a man of a vigorous Constitution, though in a declining age, Wise, Valiant, Rich, Strong in a posterity of men capable of great things, that was withal possessed of many very considerable places, both in the Heart, and upon the Frontiers of the Kingdom; and (which was more to be considered than all) who was so nettled with the ill usage he had received at Court, that there was no doubt to be made, but he would readily embrace any overture, that would direct him to a just revenge. In the conclusion of which Character he named to him the Duke of Espernon. Rucellay was not so ill read in Affairs, The Duke of Boüillon advises the Queen Mother to treat with the Duke of Espernon. but that he very well knew the person the Duke of Boüillon had proposed, was of all other the most likely to do the Queen's business: but besides that he had no order to address himself to the Duke of Espernon, there had moreover in the time of his being at Court, some difference happened betwixt the Marquis de Roilhac, the Duke's Nephew, and himself; wherein the Duke's Authority having protected Roilhac, Rucellay had not received that satisfaction, he might otherwise reasonably have expected, for injuries of no ordinary kind. These injuries therefore, being still fresh in his memory, made him very averse to any Treaty with the Duke: neither was he ignorant how ill the Queen had used him, at his departure from Court, after the many, and great Services, that during her Regency she had received at his hands, which altogether put him into a very great confusion. All these considerations nevertheless laid aside, either out of the desire he had to serve the Queen, or to be revenged of the Favourites, or to re-establish himself at Court, which he hoped would put on a new face in the change of the Queen's Fortune, he dispatched away to her with all diligence to acquaint her how the Duke of Boüillon had excused himself, and of the advice he had given concerning the Duke of Espernon, that he might thereupon receive her Majesties further Command. This posting to and fro took up so much time, that the Queen's Letters of Credit to the Duke of Espernon could not come to Rucellay's hands, till towards the latter end of july, nor he send them to the Duke till the month following; I say send them, Rucellay having no mind to sound the Foard himself, nor to make the first overtures of that Treaty in his own person, for the foremention'd reasons. He therefore employed herein one Vincentio Ludovici, a man in whom he reposed an absolute trust, Rucellay sends Vincentio Lud●vici to the Duke of Espern●n. and one, who having formerly been chief Secretary to the Marshal d' Encre, after a long, and very severe imprisonment he had suffered since the death of his Master, had retired himself to Signy, and put himself into Rucellay's protection. Where living in expectation of some considerable employment, Rucellay proposed this negotiation to him, who as readily undertook it; and having received full instructions, together with the Queen's Letters of Credence, came to Metz, where at the Moors-Head he took up his Inn, and from thence sent to le Plessis (whom all the world knew to be the man in greatest trust about the Duke) to entreat him that he would take the pains to come see one of his old acquaintance, without further discovering himself. I have heard le Plessis say, that by this Compliment he presently guessed what the business might be, that brought this man, whoever he was, to Town; yet would he not appear upon this first Summons: but having a Valet de Chambre in his dependence, that he had bred from a Boy, in whom he durst confide, and of whose dexterity, and discretion, he had often made trial upon several occasions, he commanded him to go to the Moors-Head, to see who it was desired to speak with him, and to observe if it were a face he had formerly seen, or one that was altogether a stranger to him. This man's name was Cadillac, which I insert here, because we shall shortly find him a principal Agent in this Affair. Cadillac accordingly comes to the Inn, where his eye had soon found out his man; he observed him, spoke to him, and by his accent soon discovered him to be a stranger, of which he presently carried back a report to his Master; giving him withal a description of his person. Le Plessis confirmed by this account in his former opinion, would by no means confer with him till he had first acquainted the Duke: but having received his Order, takes his way towards the Inn. Thither being come in the confusion, and hurry that usually happens in those houses of public entertainment, he soon found out the man he sought for, runs to him, and embraces him, as if they had been the greatest friends in the world, though they had never seen one another before, enquiring of him aloud of their friends in Xaintonge, where this stranger had never been; who, nevertheless very well understanding le Plessis meaning, delivered him the services of several persons they neither of them both knew: after which le Plessis drawing him aside, and entering into more particular conference with him, received from his mouth the first overtures of his Treaty, which he also undertook to carry back to the Duke. No sooner therefore was he parted from Vincentio, but that he went to find out the Duke at the Haute Pierre (the place where the Governors of Metz ordinarily reside) where he gave him an account of the stranger's business; together with the humble request he made to be admitted to a further Conference with his own person. Whereupon the Duke called for his two Sons, the Marquis de la Valette, and the Archbishop of Tholouze, since Cardinal de la Valette (it appearing very reasonable they should participate of the Counsel, who were to have so great a share in the execution of the design) where amongst them it was concluded, that the Duke should the next day give audience to this Envoy in the Abbey of St. Vincent in Metz, belonging to the Archbishop of Tholouze. According to which determination the stranger was early the next morning conducted thither, by the foresaid Cadillac; whither the Duke coming presently after, under colour of a visit to the Abbot, he went to seek out Vincentio in the Chamber before appointed for him, where he gave him his first audience in the presence of le Plessis only, The Duke of Espernon receives a Letter from the Queen Mother, by Vincentio Lud●vici. and where Vincentio delivered him a Letter from the Queen Mother that contained these words. Cousin, I entreat you not to doubt the Fidelity of the person that shall deliver you this Letter, but to believe whatever he shall tell you; leaving it however to your own choice, either to return your answer by him, or by any other you shall think fit, to the earnest request he shall make you in my behalf: promising you withal that he shall propose nothing to you contrary in the least to the Service of the King my Son, who shall himself one day give you thanks for the assistance you shall now give me in this occasion, wherein you may also oblige me whilst I live to be Your very good Cousin, Marie. From Blois this 18th. of july, 1618. This Letter being read, and the Duke having asked the Bearer what he had more to say, He represented to him the many and signal Services he had formerly performed for the Queen, first in promoting her Interest when she was declared Regent, and afterwards throughout the whole course of her Administration: telling him withal how infinitely her Majesty was afflicted: That she had not acknowledged those Services at so just a rate, as the quality of them did truly deserve: That nevertheless she having showed herself ready to gratify him in several things of some importance to him, she doubted not, but that a generous heart, as his was, would be apt to record those testimonies of her Favour and Affection to him, than some little discontents, that could not so justly be imputed to her, as to the necessity of the time, and the occurrences that imposed them: That he very well knew the late King her Lord, and Husband had a few days before his death (as if he had foreseen the persecution was preparing against her) recommended her Interests to his care and protection, wherein he had already in part so worthily performed the Trust that great Prince had reposed in his Virtue, that she had reason to believe he would continue to oblige her for ever: That she was now reduced to such a condition by the violence of her Enemies; as after being deprived of her liberty, to think herself in great peril of her life: That the King her Son, though his constraint was less apparent, was not himself however exempt from the tyranny they exercised upon her person: That it was in his power to redeem them both from the slavery they were in; wherein, although she doubted not, but that the King would one day acknowledge a Service of this nature to such a degree, as the importance of it would justly deserve; she in the mean time would notwithstanding take all the obligation upon herself, and engage to make him see the effects of such a gratitude, as he might reasonably expect from a Princess, who conceived herself obliged to his generosity for her liberty, And hearkens to the Proposition. and her life. The Duke having made answer to this discourse in such terms of submission, and respect, as befitted a Subject to a Princess of her condition, the Mother of his King, and one from whom, amongst some little unkindnesses he had received many benefits, and signal favours, proceeded without more ceremony to the negotiation; in the progress whereof, Vincentio in the Queen's name promised so many men, and places, and such sums of money, proposing withal so great and so advantageous conditions for the Duke, as made him conceive the proposition worth the thinking of, and to promise him in a few days a positive answer. He was no sooner therefore parted from Vincentio, but that he sent for his Sons to deliberate with them about this Affair, in whom he met with young spirits, full of heat, and courage, that presently advised him confidently to embrace that motion, wherein they said there was no question to be made, but that the issue would be glorious for him, advantageous to the State, and easy to be effected in itself, through the concurrence he would certainly find in most of the great men of the Kingdom, who were apparently dissatisfied with the present Government, which was also no extraordinary thing in the best, and most happy Reigns. The Duke on the contrary by a long experience become more circumspect could not suffer himself so easily to be overcome; but considering he was about to expose his Life and Fortune, his Children, Friends, B●t without engaging himself at this time. and Family for a Princess who had not at other times been over mindful of his former Services, he had some reason to fear he should receive no better an acknowledgement of this, than he had done of the rest. Besides he knew very well that he should no sooner appear in Arms in order to the design in hand, but that the King's whole Power, and his Person would immediately be upon him; and seeing no visible Forces sufficient to resist that Torrent, he could not clear his mind from those apprehensions wherewith it was involved. He represented therefore to his Sons, that all those Confederates they seemed to rely upon, should they join in the Quarrel, would most of them vanish at the very sound of the Royal Name: That the most discontented of them would be reconciled to their Duty by the least satisfactions should be given them, and that then he alone should do the work of all the other great men of the Kingdom, at the price of his own particular ruin. So that after having again and again considered of this proposal, he could not persuade himself to condescend to the importunities of his Sons, and le Plessis, who was present at this deliberation, all they could say being able to prevail no further upon him at that time, than that Vincentio might in his name assure the Queen, he had a passionate desire to serve her, provided it would please her Majesty to enable him so to do, by letting him know what persons of quality she had won over to her party, with what sums of money she could make for carrying on the War, until when he humbly desired he might reserve to himself the liberty of his promise, with an assurance of his Secrecy and Fidelity in the mean time. Vincentio, after having stayed eight days at Metz, went back with this answer to Rucellay, who with great impatience expected his return; and who having received this account of the business, thought they had done enough at this first push, in prevailing with the Duke to hearken only to the proposal: neither did he doubt, but that the difficulties he had represented, though very rational in themselves, would in the end be overcome by the success of those things, whereof the Duke, before he would give a determinate answer, desired to be assured. He therefore in all haste signified to the Queen the Duke's disposition to serve her, assuring her withal of the Duke de Boüillon's Concurrence with the Duke of Espernon, provided the last would undertake the Service. Whereupon her Majesty, secure of her Interest with the Dukes of Guise, and Montmorency, and many other persons of great quality; and nothing fearing also, but she should be able to raise a great mass of money, what by borrowing, what upon her Jewels, and what by the Revenue of those Provinces would be engaged with her, sent the same Vincentio a month after to the Duke, to give him full assurance of all things he desired. Upon which second dispatch, the Duke conceiving he might confide in the Queen's word, engaged himself (though not without some reluctancy) to declare openly in her Quarrel, dismissing his little Ambassador with a much better account, than before, and delivering him a cipher for his future Correspondence with the Queen; after which, and a particular answer to the Letter her Majesty had honoured him with by Vincentio the first time, he launched so far into the Affair, that it was afterwards impossible for him to retire. Rucellay having pumped the whole secret of this Negotiation out of Vincentio, Rucellay takes himself the Treaty in hand. and having no mind he should carry away the Reputation of an Affair of that importance, and so successfully begun, resolved for the time to come to undertake the Treaty himself, and laying aside his former aversions, with all other respects (which he likewise conceived were not of so high a nature, as aught to stand in competition with the Affair in hand) would treat with the Duke in his own person. In order whereunto he advanced as far as Pont a Moulins, a little Village about a League distance from Metz; either unwilling, or not daring to venture himself in the City, till he first knew how the Duke was disposed to receive him. From this place therefore he immediately sent away for Cadillac (the same le Plessis had sent the first time to Vincentio) not doubting but he would be the first should be sent to discover who he was▪ Cadillac thus sent for by he knew not whom, would not go out to him without first receiving his Master's Order, nor his Master give it him, till he himself had first received an Order from the Duke: Neither could the Duke suddenly consent to this intelligence, who, although he did not know the stranger to be Rucellay, yet suspecting him to be some new Negotiator, and unwilling to have so many entrusted with a business, upon the secrecy whereof depended his Life and Fortune, he wavered long before he would give way to an interview betwixt le Plessis, and this new Agent. He was at last notwithstanding content he should go: but if he had at first made some difficulty of allowing this Conference, before he knew Rucellay to be the man he was to confer withal, he was so out of all patience when he knew the secret was committed to an Italian, his enemy, and disobliged by him, that he was many times upon the point to have recalled his word, and absolutely to give over the design. Le Plessis was then forced to return back to Rucellay with a very unsatisfactory answer; who, without being much out of countenance at this repulse (the Duke refusing to admit him into the Treaty) or the seeing the civility he had advanced so far towards a reconciliation rejected, told le Plessis coldly, That since the Duke had a mind to do the business without him, he might, if he pleased, in good time proceed; but that in the mean time he was to understand, that it was to him the Queen had entrusted the secret of that Affair, and not to the other, who had hitherto appeared in it, who was but his substitute, and by him sent to make the first overtures to the Duke, presuming his own person might not be so acceptable to him; but that he had seen the Duke of Boüillon, and treated with him: That Vincentio had given him an account of all he had done at Metz, and had delivered a cipher to him: That he knew very well that he le Plessis in the Canting of that cipher was called Floze, the Duke by another name, and his Sons by others. After which explanation he desired him to consider whether a man so well informed in, and able ot give so good an account of the business, was fit to be laid aside: That he could not but wonder the Duke of Espernon should continue to use him so ill, who had never given him any offence; but on the contrary had been highly offended by him, and his; that having so many and just inducements to revenge those injuries, he had now sufficient means to do it, were not his honour far dearer, than his ill usage was sensible to him: but that he would tread all those considerations under foot, to preserve his Fidelity to the Queen his Mistress, provided he should not be urged on to the last extremes. This Declaration, though something high from an Enemy, and very rough from a man that pretended he came to Treat, carried nevertheless so much sting with it, and threatened so much to the ruin of the design in hand, that the Duke saw it necessary either to admit him into the Council, or to dispatch him out of the way: the latter of which being too cruel for him to consent unto, and on the other side it appearing of better advantage to treat with a man of the Quality Rucellay was, than with Vincentio, who could do nothing, but as he received Orders from him; the Duke resolved upon the first: So that Rucellay being upon these terms admitted into the negotiation, Rucellay with much difficulty admitted into the Treaty. he came by night to Metz, and in disguise (as he always went) was conducted to the Haute Pierre, where he had a Chamber made ready for him in the Duke's own Lodgings; out of which he never stirred for a whole month togethers Being there received, he had Cadillac appointed to attend him, as also one of the Duke's own Valet's de Chambre, whom he knew was to be trusted, ordered to bring him all necessaries from the Kitchen, and other Offices, without any bodies being able to guests who this person might be, that was so carefully, and diligently attended. The Duke went almost every day to see him, his Sons very often, and le Plessis ofter than them all; by which regular visits in the Duke, and by the great care was taken to seek out the best water (for Rucellay drank nothing else, and was very delicate in that) it was suspected some Woman of Pleasure was kept private in the house: A suspicion that perhaps contributed something to his better concealment, and to the restraint of a further curiosity in such▪ as possibly otherwise would have been more inquisitive into the truth of the business, had they not entertained this mistake for the truth itself. Resolutions taken betwixt the D●ke of Espernon and Rucellay. During this time of Rucellay's stay at Metz, things were fully concluded amongst them; where above all things, it was though necessary, that a strict League should be contracted betwixt the two Dukes of Espernon, and Boüillon, that things might the better succeed. There had indeed some former Jealousies happened to the discomposure of these two great men, but such as had rather begot a coldness, than any disaffection betwixt them; which Rucellay undertook to reconcile, as by the assistance of the Viscount de Sardiny (a very particular Servant to the Duke of Boüillon, and a man absolutely devoted to the Queen) he afterwards did, though it wrought not that good effect, was expected from it, as shall in its due place be made to appear. The Queen having heard no news of Rucellay, during his abode at Metz, though she had taken care to send to him, and in such an impatience to know how her Affairs succeeded, as may be imagined in the condition she then was, writ a Letter to the Duke in a borrowed hand (I think Chanteloube's, he being then the only man of trust about her) and in a ●ustian style; the Queen here taking upon her the quality of a Merchant's Wife of Sauerne, absent from her Husband: of which these were the words. Sir, since the Sieur Artus (meaning Rucellay) parted hence to seek you out, I have heard no news either of him, or you; which so much afflicts me, that I must entreat you to write to me by this bearer, who I am told by a friend of mine will soon be back, he being to ride post upon some business of a Gentleman's, whose name I have forgot. If no accident have befallen Sieur Artus, he is much to blame to leave me so long in suspense, without giving me some account, whether he have paid you the money I delivered him, or no; which though it be no great sum, I should be very sorry you had not received. Oblige me therefore so far, as to send me word what the matter is, as also of the state of your health, which I wish may be such, as you yourself desire. I forgot to tell you that the Armourer (meaning the Duke de Luines) with whom we have the business you know of, has sought to me for an Agreement; though I know not what to say to it without my Husband's advice, for whom I have so much respect, as to do nothing, but what he shall think fit: if he refer it to me to do what I think best, I shall make no agreement with him. The judges, who are to determine our controversy, will, I doubt, not very well understand who has the wrong, and that our cause is good; God also being always for the right, I hope we shall have as good an issue as we can desire. I shall tro●●le you no further, than to conjure you to write me word, when I may hope to be so happy as to see you; if your Affairs would permit, I could wish you were ready to begin your journey to morrow: however I shall refer that to your discretion, humbly entreating you to believe, that I shall honour you all the days of my life, as I ought to do, and shall pray to God to keep you in his Holy Protection, and preserve you as long in health as I desire. Sir, Your humble, and very obedient Wife, and Servant, Signed X. It appears by this Letter, that Affairs were now in a very good forwardness, some money having been sent by the Queen to Metz, which, Money sent to Metz by the Queen. as it was the most important place of her Party, and wherein the Duke had resolved to leave the Marquis de la Valette his Son, he would not he should be left without some money in his greatest necessity to assist him. He very well foresaw that after the Queen's escape he should be the first assaulted, and exposed (as he afterwards was) to the fury of the Royal Arms, and that upon the preservation of Metz depended, in part, the life of the whole Action: but of how great moment soever this place might be to the design in hand, the sums nevertheless were very moderate, that were there left for its defence, arising to no more in all, than an hundred thousand Crowns, carried thither by Wagon from Sauerne; of which sum Vincentio received an hundred thousand Livers for the use of the Duke of Boüillon, who was to take Arms in favour of the Queen, a part of the remainder only being left at Metz, for the raising of men necessary for the defence of the Town, and to buy Ammunition. The Duke having found by this money coming in, The Duke resolves to go serve the Queen. some, though very little effect of those promises, had been made him by the Queen, did from thence conclude her Servants had provided so carefully for the rest, that nothing would be wanting of all those things whereof they had given him before so ample assurance: In which belief he set himself wholly upon his preparation to be gone; of which also having given notice to the Queen, her Majesty, whose condition was much worse than his, to quicken his haste, sent him another Letter in the same Canting style. Sir, I shall make use of Magurin's, A second Letter from the Queen in the same style with the first. one of our Factor's Pen (meaning Chan●eloube) to let you know, that I was never more overjoyed in my life, than when I received the Letter you did me the honour to send; wherein you give me assurance of your constant love, which is so great a comfort to me, that what affliction soever God shall be pleased to lay upon me, I shall notwithstanding rejoice in this, that my Husband loves me, and that I shall shortly have the happiness to see him. Neither do I doubt of his affection, who has so good a soul, that I know he can never forget her, who in this world most honours and loves him; and that so soon as he has settled all our Affairs where he now is, he will come to take order about those we have in these parts, which praised be God, are already in a very hopeful way. But I am in great pain to know the place where you are pleased I shall expect you; for if you think it better that I go to our own house, than to stay longer here, send me word, and I shall do what possibly I can to overcome the incommodities of the season to obey you; but if it should fall out that I cannot stir from hence, write me word how I may meet you upon the way; and provided I be not put to rise too early, I shall do wonders. I expect therefore your Commands, which I shall faithfully observe, beseeching you to give me your instruction concerning all our other Affairs, that I may do nothing may turn to our prejudice; it being impossible I should ever fail in obeying whatever Commands you will lay upon Your humble, and very obedient Wife, and Servant. And in a Postscript, This shall be the last Letter I shall write, wherefore I conjure you to remember to give me notice of your setting out, that accordingly I may prepare myself G. G. And for the Superscription, as upon that before, A Monsieur, Monsieur Fabert, being at this present at Sauerne. This Letter, which, betwixt persons so well read in one another's designs, might with great ease be explained, was by the Duke presently put into deliberation; first, that a day might be resolved upon for his departure, and next that something might be concluded about the order was to be observed in going to receive the Queen. To this Consultation the Duke's two Sons, Rucellay, and le Plessis, were only admitted, where (as it usually falls out) the nearer they approached to the execution of their design, Some difficulties arise about the execution of the design. the harder it seemed to be effected. From the time the Duke had first engaged his word to the Queen, he had been very instant at Court, to obtain liberty to go into his Governments of Xaintonge and Angoumois, very well foreseeing, that without such a formal leave, he should meet difficulties enough in the very Journey itself, had he had no design to favour the Queen's escape; but the more importunate he had been to procure that Licence, the more obstinate he had found them to be in the denial. They looked upon him, as it were mewed up in Metz, and were resolved to keep him in a manner a prisoner to his own Government, in that remote part of the Kingdom. So that the Duke in despair of procuring that privilege, and seeing that under the colour of some very inconsiderable excuses, the King had a mind to make his presence at Metz appear altogether necessary to his Service, he sent his Majesty a very full Remonstrance of the urgency of his Affairs in those parts, with a repeated supplication, that he would please to permit him to go: Not that he expected a better success in this than in his former applications, he had lost that hope: but by this new Address to lull the Duke de Luines asleep, who ought in reason to believe, that this reiterated importunity presupposed an expectation in the Duke to prevail in his request; and that consequently he would not depart from Metz, till that were first obtained. This Letter was writ by the Sieur de Balzac, and is, in my opinion one of the best pieces has flowed from his admirable Pen; which notwithstanding I have not inserted here, forasmuch as the Reader may find it printed amongst the rest of his excellent Works. By this Letter it was, The D●ke of Espernon's preparation, and the policy he made use of to cover his design. that, whilst he was making preparation for his departure, the Duke endeavoured to conceal his Design; wherein his policy was of infinite use, and this that follows of no less. He had a mind to send away before his Stable of managed Horses, consisting of thirty, what Gennets, and Barbs, the finest, and best in France, and equipage he had ever been very curious to maintain, as he continued to the last hour of his life. These horses that had been very unfit to travel such Journeys, as he must of necessity take, had they stayed to go along with him, and that could not in the mean time be conveyed out of Metz, without much notice taken, to hinder that observation, and to delude such as were too clear-sighted, and too prying into all his actions, the Duke caused, for fifteen days together, bridled, saddled, and in all their equipage as they had been to go a long Journey, to be led out at several Gates of the City: wherein though it was given out by the Grooms, as done only to air them, left they should become useless by standing continually still; yet for a few of the first days they were seen to go out in that manner, no body believed other than that they were the Duke's forerunners, who intended himself soon after to follow. An opinion that made the people crowd in multitudes to gaze upon the sight, every one certainly concluding at first, what was effectually the Duke's real design: but in the end, seeing them, after a walk of four or five hours, continually brought back at night, and that which at first surprised them by its novelty, being grown familiar by the continuation of it, even the most penetratingly inquisitive begun to grow weary of their suspicion, letting them at last pass to and again without any regard at all. And then it was that the Duke commanded the Sieur de Campels the Gentleman of his Horse, who, till that time had been as ignorant as the rest, at his next ordinary sally, to ride clear away, and to go to a House near Sanserra, and upon the Banks of the River Loire, called Rezé, belonging to le Puigeolet his Lieutenant in the Regiment of Champagne, there to expect him● which was accordingly performed without the least notice taken, or any noise at all. This part being thus performed, le Liege, Major to Rembure's Regiment, a Gentleman very expert in the Geographical Cart, and an excellent Quartermaster for the lodging of an Army, came back to Metz, whom the Duke had sent a few days before to discover all the ways, by which he was to pass into Angoumo●s; by whose extraordinary diligence, the way was already chalked out, and divided into Journeys, the Fords all sounded, and the whole thing exactly drawn into a Map. After all which precautions, the Duke still living at Metz, as if he never had design to part from thence, and having concluded with his Sons, Rucellay, and le Plessis the day of his setting out to be the 22. of january the ensuing year, all things were thenceforward prepared with the greatest secre●ie, and diligence imaginable, to be ready against the time to come. The Queen Mother had, as you have heard, signified in her last dispatch, that she was in hope she might convey her person to any place the Duke should think fit to name, thinking that the Letter she had received from the King (after the Protestation she had made to Father Arnoux) would privilege her so to do, she having full liberty given her therein to go whither she pleased into any part of the Kingdom: but because that it was probable the design of that Letter was rather to comfort her in her solitude, and to swee●en her captivity, than intended to give her absolute liberty to dispose of her person; it was moreover thought impossible so to order the time, that she could at a certain and punctual hour transfer herself to a place where she might be free to dispose of herself at her own choice: Especially considering that all those who were about her, the major part at least, were Servants made, and corrupted by the Court Minion. Which sole difficulty appearing invincible, it was at last resolved, that, to avoid all suspicion, her Majesty should not stir from Blois, Anno 1619. but that the Duke, or some other trusty person by him appointed should advance thither, to receive, and convey her first to Loches, The Archbishop of Tholouze, afterwards Cardinal de la Valette, departs from Metz before the Duke his 〈◊〉. and from thence to Angoulesme. This resolution being taken, the Archbishop of Tholouze, attended only by his own ordinary Train, parted from Metz eight days before the Duke his Father, to go into Angoumois. The pretence of this Journey was to try to raise money upon their Territories in those parts for their better support, they having not (as was pretended) wherewithal to defray their necessary expense, the Duke's Offices being now no longer paid him since his dispute with the Guard des Sceaux; though indeed the true cause of his going was to confirm the Servants the Duke had in his Governments there in their Duty, and to secure the strong Holds he had in Xaintonge and Angoumois, by a seasonable prevention of any practice from Court. There was also at the same time a dispatch sent to the Queen Mother, to acquaint her with their resolutions, that she might make herself ready against the day prefixed; the charge whereof Rucellay having taken upon himself, he entrusted it to a young fellow whose name was Lorme, one whom he had bred up of a Page, and by whom he had in truth been very faithfully served at Court, in some affairs of no ordinary nature; though in this, and in the most critical time for the ruin of the Enterprise in hand, he played fowl, and stumbled into the foulest Treachery in the world. He had often been employed to and fro upon this occasion, wherein he had ever acquitted himself with great sincerity and discretion: but now, though he had not penetrated into the depth of the design, yet guessing by the secrecy had been enjoined him, that it must necessarily be of very great importance, what recompenses soever he had been promised by his Master, he chose rather by his infidelity to obtain them, than by a virtuous action to deserve them. Instead therefore of going to Blois, and from thence to Confolant in Angoumois (where he was ordered to expect the Duke, after he should be dismissed by the Queen, from whom he was to bring an account of the precise day of her escape) he went directly to Paris, where he addressed himself to some of the Duke de Luines his Servants, to be by them presented to their Master; to whom he said, provided he might be secured of a good reward, he would discover something of more than common concern. The whole design in great danger to be ruined, through the infidelity of one of Ruc●llay's Servants. To this desperate pass was the state of Affairs reduced, when Fortune by a strange and unexpected accident set the Machine again on work upon its own proper Base. Those to whom Lorme had applied himself for admission to Luines, looking upon him as an Impostor, either made no mention of him to the Duke at all, or, if they did, represented him for such a fellow, as they themselves took him to be, making him wait at the Gates for three whole days together, without giving him either admittance, or answer. In the interval of which three days le Buisson, a Counsellor in the Parliament of Paris, heard by chance that Lorme, Rucellay's man was in Town; which he had from one of his own people, who, being of Lormes acquaintance, had met him accidentally in the street. At which intelligence le Buisson (a man passionately devoted to the Queen Mother, privy to her designs, and an affectionate Servant of the Duke of Espernon's, by reason of a Brother of his, a Lieutenant in the Regiment of Guards, who was one of the Duke's domestics, being infinitely surprised; forasmuch as Lorme had at other times ever been directed immediately to him, and not being able to comprehend the cause of this alteration, began presently to suspect there was some knavery in the wind. He therefore presently took order to have my companion narrowly watched, and was by his spies as faithfully informed of his being continually seen waiting at the Duke de Luines his Gate; by which discovery judging aright at what he was about, and foreseeing what mischief the sight of those Letters, he knew he had about him, would produce, he undertook a dangerous, but a very necessary act, and that indeed proved the safety of the whole design. By a supposititious hand, one that took upon him to be a Servant to the Duke de Luines, he caused five hundred crowns to be paid down to Lorme by virtue of which he retrieved the Packet out of his hands, disposing so of Lorme himself, that he was never seen or heard of after; by which means this great design in the greatest danger imaginable to be discovered, and lost, was again restored to its former condition. The Duke, who as yet was totally ignorant of Lormes treachery, and▪ who knew nothing of it of above a month after, put himself in the mean time upon his Journey; the order whereof at his setting out, and which he also continued during the whole Voyage, The D●ke's prudent conduct in the manner of his departure from Metz. I shall here present you. Wherein we shall observe so admirable a conduct, that we cannot forbear (notwithstanding the Duke's modesty) who ever gave Fortune too great a share in all his performances) to attribute the whole success of this enterprise immediately to his own prudence. No body knew of his resolution, till the night before his departure, when all the Gates of the City being shut, which at Metz (as at all other Frontier Towns) was commonly betimes, he commanded every one to make ready for their departure the next morning. He had some time before this caused eight thousand Pistols (his whole stock at that time) to be sowed up in Girdles of Leather (which were all found in his Trunks at his death in the same condition they were at his departure from Metz) such as a man might, without much trouble, wear about him, which he distributed to fifteen Gentlemen of his Family (whom he knew to be the most faithful, and that were the best mounted) to take care of, with orders to follow him wherever he went, should any cross accident befall him in the way. His Jewels also, which were locked up in a little iron Chest, and carried in a Male, was committed to a Valet de Chambre of approved fidelity, who had likewise order not to stir from his person. He had fifty Gentlemen only in his company, every one armed with a Case of Pistols, and a Carabine, forty Guards, with each one a Musket, and a case of Pistols, fifteen Sumpter Mules, the ordinary Officers of his Household, with several common Servants. With this Troop amounting in all not to above an hundred good Horse (and that would have been too little had he gone upon the account of a private quarrel only) the Duke of Espernon adventured upon a Journey, contrary to the King's express Order, from one extremity of the Kingdom to another, and thence to return back again into the very heart of the same Kingdom, there to assist the Queen Mother; resolved (contrary to the King's will) to make her escape from a place, to which she had been, by his Majesty in the nature of a Prison, confined; and without certainly knowing by whom he was to be assisted in his design, undertook to change the face of a mighty State, so quiet, and so united within itself, as that it seemed impossible either at home or abroad to be threatened with the least danger, or trouble: Wherein, if the attempt was bold, we shall find the execution no less worthy to be admired. He must alone make an end of what he had alone begun, his good Fortune, it seems, to his Glory, ordering it so, that not one great man of the Kingdom (either envying, or astonished at so daring a design) would be drawn to embark in an action the honour and success whereof could derive to none but the Duke of Espernon: Memoires de Monsieur de Rohan. So that they were content to let him bustle it out alone, whilst themselves sat idle spectators of this haughty and noble Enterprise; though it was certainly reported, and believed, that many of them had engaged themselves to the Queen to serve her upon this occasion. The Duke having thus ordered his little Train, and not being able to separate himself from the Marquis de la Valette his most beloved Son, without taking his leave, he called him aside, where embracing him with the tenderness of an affectionate Father, he told him; That the greatest testimony he could possibly give him of his Affection and Esteem, was (as he now did) to commit to his Vigilancy, and Valour the Custody of Metz, it being the principal member of his Fortune; and to the conservation of which he ought to be the more awake, as it concerned himself much more than it did him, who having but a short time to live, could expect but a few years' possession: That he might assure himself, he should with the soon be beleaguered with all the Forces the King could make; and that no better was to be expected from the Inhabitants, how well affected soever they might pretend to be; to oppose both which, much prudence and constancy would be required: That upon the success of the Action, wherein they were now engaged, depended not only their Fortunes, but their Reputations also; which if it succeeded well, they should be loaded with Honour; but if otherwise, be looked upon as Criminals, and Traitors: That therefore they were to put on a Resolution rather to die, than to fall into that disgrace; but that it was much better to live, and to overcome, as his heart assured him they should honourably, and fortunately do. By which few words the Marquis, being confirmed in the generous resolution he before had taken, humbly besought the Duke his Father to be confident he would never do any thing unworthy his own Birth, or his expectation; when his tears having stopped all further expression, he by that tenderness gave a much better testimony of his courage than otherwise, and at a greater liberty of speech, his own modesty would perhaps have permitted him to do. The Duke was no sooner parted from his Son, The Duke goes out of Metz. but that he presently went to Horse to begin his Journey, it being Monday the two and twentieth of january, as had been before appointed. The Gates of the City had not been opened since the evening before, and then only that by which the Duke was to sally; which was also shut again so soon as he (who would himself be the last man) was gone out: Neither of three days after his departure was any one opened at all, the Duke having moreover (lest any Tickets might be thrown over the Walls, or any persons let down, who might carry intelligence of his motion to Court) left order with Paul, Lieutenant to a Company of Carabines, belonging to the Garrison of Metz, night and day to scour the Road to Paris, and to intercept, and stop all that should travel that way; a precaution of so good use, that the last news the Court received of the Duke of Espernon's departure, came from Metz, so well had all the Avenues been guarded on that side. The Duke, being now out of the City, pursued his way with great diligence, taking as long Journeys as the heaviness of his Sumpter-Mules would permit, which, though they tied him to one stage a day, yet was that stage always nine or ten Leagues at least; and his good Fortune was such, that at this season, commonly the most turbulent of all the year, the weather was so exceedingly favourable and fair, that there fell not one drop of rain all the way; insomuch that he not only could foard all the Rivers, but mounting every morning so soon as the Sun was up, both he and all his company rid without their Cloaks all the day long, as it had been the warmest time in Summer. The fourth day after his departure from Metz, he passed by the Trenches of Dijon, where the Duke of Bellegarde his Cousin being Governor both of the Castle, and Province, and having the Sieur de Mun his Lieutenant in the Castle, the Duke sent for him, who being it seems at that time out of the way, Fouqueroles Ensign to the Duke's Lifeguard came out in his stead to receive the Duke's commands. Of whom the Duke having enquired of the Duke his Master, he entreated him, so soon as he should write, to present his Service to him, and to acquaint him with his motion, but that nevertheless that compliment required no such haste, that he was obliged to do it otherwise, than by the ordinary way of the Messenger (the Packet Office being at that time not erected in France) as he desired he would not do; adding withal, that having been starved out of Metz, he was constrained to go into Xaintonge, and Angoumois to live there upon his own Estate: Wherein, though Fouqueroles promised to obey his Orders, yet he was not so good as his word, he dispatching away an express Currier the next morning to the Duke de Bellegarde, to acquaint him with the Duke's motion; by which means it was that the King had the first intelligence of his departure from Metz, though it was not before he had been eight days upon the Road, and that it was now too late to stop him. It is not to be imagined how strangely this news alarmed the whole Court, The news of the Duke of Espernon's motion carried to Court. the King openly saying, that he ever thought if the Duke of Espernon could not obtain the leave he desired, he would infallibly take it: but the Duke de Luines, conceiving that (in all probability) the Duke would never have done such a thing without some design, thought fit to try if he could not effect that by fair means, he saw was not to be done by foul; and to that end dispatched away le Maine (otherwise called (Chabans) to the Duke, with a Letter from the King to Authorise his Voyage, together with all assurance of satisfaction in his Affairs, as also a particular compliment, that he would accept of his Service, and that all things passed might be no more remembered betwixt them. Which Envoy we shall in due time find upon his way. Dijon being passed, the Duke continued his Journey without intermission, baiting, or staying near the great Towns, till he had passed the River Loire at Port de Vichi; from whence he sent a new dispatch to the King, to give him notice of his Voyage into Xaintonge, and Angoumois; where he had (as he said) no other design, than to live under his Majesty's obedience. With this dispatch Baussonniere Nephew to le Plessis, (a Gentleman of as good Parts, and as much Valour, as any other of his time) was sent away to Paris, where at his arrival he was very well received; but happening to be still at Court, soliciting an answer to his dispatch, when the news was brought of the Queen Mother's escape, he ran a very great hazard of his life, his head being often brought into debate, that in his person they might punish the high Offence done to the King by the Duke his Master. Two days Journey short of this Port de Vichi, the Duke's Quarter-Masters (who always carried Rucellay along with them in disguise, and who, the better to conceal him, used him with no other respect, An Encounter by the way. than as a Comrade) discovered two Parties of Horse standing in a Field, a little distance from them, which at the first sight they apprehended to be two Troops, where of mention had been made to the Duke, one of Light-Horse belonging to the Queen, and another of Carabines commanded by Arnout; which he had been informed were disposed in Garrison near this part of the River (out of an opinion had for some time been entertained at Court, that the Duke (whether his Majesty would consent or no) would infallibly undertake this Journey into G●ienne) to obstruct his passage. And indeed those Troops had wai●ed some time thereabouts; but whether it were that they had accidentally only been Quartered there, or that they had been tired out with expecting, or that the coming of the Duke's great Horses towards Sanserra, (for they were now marched that way) had made them alter their design: but so it was that the Duke received not the least impediment from them. His people notwithstanding, something surprised at the sight of these two Troops, returned upon the spur to give the Duke notice of what they had seen; at which intelligence, as at a thing that required some consideration, he made a little halt, when immediately with a cheerful and confident countenance, he said to those who were with him. We are now come too far my Masters, to return back again, we must either thorough, or die. Which being said whilst he was drawing up to charge, he sent to discover who they were; when having word back, that they were two Gentlemen, who, being at Suits, had raised men on both sides to take possession of a House in dispute betwixt them, he continued on his way, this being the only Alarm he received throughout the whole Journey. But almost in the same place, Another Encounter with the Duke of Guise, missed b●t a few ho●rs. at least at the Pass of Briare, which is not far from it, the Duke missed very little of an Encounter of far greater importance; which was that with the Duke of Guise, who was retiring, dissatisfied enough with the Court, into his Government of Provence. Neither had he been gone above two hours before the Duke arrived at this Pass: whereas had he had the fortune to have come a little sooner, the Duke of Guise would doubtless have had much ado to persuade the Court, that so pat an Encounter had not been before complotted betwixt them. A jealousy that the known friendship betwixt the Duke and him would have rendered so plausible to all, that the Duke of Guise, not seeing a possibility of jnstifying himself against so violent a presumption, could hardly have avoided engaging on the Queen's Party, seeing he must inevitably stand highly suspected to the other; though the Duke of Espernon concluding him absolutely engaged in the same design, did not much care to send after him, for fear of giving the Court too great a discovery before Affairs were yet ripe: So that by this means, and from the very business itself, wherein he was thought to be so deeply concerned, as perhaps he was, the Duke of Guise took occasion to make his own Game at Court, and to reconcile himself to the King, and the Favourites, he sending thither, sealed up, as he received them from the Queen, the Packets wherein she made her application to him, to engage him in her designs. The twentieth day after the Duke's departure from Metz, he arrived at Confolant in Angoumois; where his Son, the Archbishop of Tholouze, together with the Sieur d' Ambleville, the King's Lieutenant in the Province, and the Duke's most faithful friend, and about three hundred Gentlemen more, came to wait upon him. And here it was that the Duke was infinitely astonished and surprised; he had all the way expected to find Lorme there, with the Queen's instructions about the manner of her escape: but his treachery (as yet unknown to the Duke) having turned him quite another way, gave the Duke reason to believe, either that the Queen Mother had altered her resolution, The Duke and his party in a great confusion. or that otherwise she had been betrayed, and that the whole design had been discovered: The one or the other of which had been equally ruinous to him, who must either way be certainly exposed single, and naked to his enemy's discretion. And as one mischief never comes alone, it fell out, that in the heighr of this confusion, he was assaulted by another of no less moment, and that consequently added very much to the perplexity he was in before. The man of the house where Rucellay, and le Plessis lay, was one of the * Or Cuirassiers. Gend'arme of the King's own Troop, whose name was Betison. This man discoursing with Cadillac le Plessis' Servant about the Affairs of the time (the common talk of that kind of people) innocently told him, amongst other things, that there was a bruit in the Country, as if the Duke were come to carry away the Queen Mother from Blois. It could never be found out from whence this rumour should arise, for it was so great a secret in the Duke's own Family, that the very persons who were continually employed in it, had not the least inkling thereof. Insomuch that Cadillac, who was himself as ignorant as the rest, told his Master this story for a ridiculous thing: but le Plessis, who took it after another manner, and that on the contrary was astonished to the last degree, that an affair which had been carried on with the greatest secrecy imaginable, should become the discourse of the people, went immediately to acquaint Rucellay with what he had heard; who being no less surprised, than he, they went both together to the Duke, who was yet the most amazed of the three, and who by this was still more confirmed in his former belief, that he was abandoned, and betrayed, wherein also the appearances were so great, that his opinion was not indeed much to be contradicted. Le Plessis, who had waded very deep into this Affair, could by no means persuade himself that the Queen had any ways altered her resolution, yet did he not know what to say to her silence; He saw his Master's Enterprise was no more a secret, and that consequently he could not, without eminent danger make a longer stay at Confolant, his residence in that little place giving too manifest evidence of some secret design. The consideration whereof made him resolve generously to expose himself to search out the truth of the business, and to clear those doubts the Duke was in at the hazard of his own life. Le Plessis takes a journey to discover how Affairs stood. In the close of the evening therefore he departed from Confolant upon his own Horses, to go take post at Chastelloraut, and from thence to Loches; where, as he passed by he was to make sure of la Iliere, Governor of that place under the Duke of Espernon. This Gentleman, however faithful, and affectionate to the Duke his Master and Benefactor, was nevertheless at the first proposal very much surprised with the greatness of this design, and to such a degree that he could not on the sudden prevail upon himself to embark in an Affair, wherein he discovered so eminent, and inevitable danger: Insomuch that le Plessis not being able to overcome his apprehensions, and aversions, at this first Conference, durst proceed no further in his Journey, it being above all things necessary to make sure of Loches. In the interim he saw he lost a great deal of time, and the Queen he knew, if she continued in her first resolution, must needs be in great anxiety, and suspense. He had moreover great reason to believe that the news of the Duke's Voyage was by this time arrived at Court, and that then all possible diligence would be used (whatever they might be) to prevent his designs. In which perplexity, not daring to depart from Loches, without having first made Iliere firm to their purpose; or at least till the Archbishop of Tholouze (who was to follow presently after him) should come to secure the place, that being designed for the Queen's first retreat, he found a necessity upon him of committing the secret of this great and important Affair to Cadillac's fidelity and discretion: Calling him therefore to him, entreating, and conjuring him to be faithful, with great promises of reward, he delivered him Letters for the Queen, with two or three words to the Count de Brenne, that he might by his favour be admitted to her Majesty's presence. The Count had hitherto, 'tis true, been entrusted with no syllable of the design; but le Plessis knew him to be very faithful to the Queen his Mistress, and that they had usually applied themselves to him to obtain Access, for several private Messengers that had been sent to her Majesty about this Affair. Cadillac acquitted himself very well in his dispatch, he came to Blois, presented his Letter to the Count de Brenne, and was by him that very night presented to the Queen, who entertained him some time alone in her Cabinet; and who after having heard the humble request he made in his Master's behalf, that her Majesty would please to send some trusty person to Montis (a post stage distant only from Blois) with whom he might the next day confidently confer. She made answer that she had no soul about her whom she durst trust; but that he should immediately back to le Plessis, to tell him from her, that without staying at Montis, he should come on as far as the Suburbs of Blois, where at the little Moor he should hear further from her. Cadillac accordingly returned, riding all night back again towards his Master, to acquaint him with the Queen's desire, whom at his arrival at Montis, he found got thither before him: Lafoy lliere (who had never faltered in his duty, and whom the fear of his Master's safety, rather than any consideration of his own, had made a little shy at first) being upon better deliberation now resolute to run the Duke's fortune, having it should seem set le Plessis at liberty to pursue his Journey: wherein nevertheless he light upon an Encounter by the way, that had again almost overthrown the whole design; and that had certainly done it, had he not by his dexterity, and the vivacity of his judgement, managed it in such sort, as to make it in the end contribute much to the good success of the Affair in hand. You have already heard that upon the first intelligence the Court received of the Duke of Espernon's departure from Metz, An unexpected and important Encounter upon the way. Luines had dispatched away le Maine to him with an approbation of his Journey from the King; and it now fell out that this Gentleman in pursuance of that dispatch, happened to meet le Plessis upon the Road betwixt Ambois, and Blois; an Encounter that did not a little surprise le Plessis, who knew him to be a subtle man, and no very good friend to the Duke, by whom he conceived he had not been so well used, as he deserved to be. Neither was there any possibility of passing by him unknown, they had been too long acquainted at Court for that; and it was much to be feared, lest the meeting of le Plessis upon this Road might make le Maine penetrate into the truth of his design, and consequently endeavour to obstruct it. In this apprehension, I have heard le Plessis say, That he was once in mind to have killed him; though considering that an act of that nature was likely to draw after it consequences that might utterly overthrow the Affair he had in hand, he quickly altered that resolution; conceiving it therefore better not to avoid his Encounter, he went cheerfully up to him, where after he had some time entertained him with great demonstrations of intimacy, and friendship, he so ordered the matter, that he (without discovering the true intent of his own) got out of le Maine the business of his Journey, which was, that he was sent by the King, and the Duke de Luines to the Duke of Espernon, to let him know that his Majesty was very well satisfied with his expedition, and that Luines desired to be his Servant. In order whereunto, having further enquired of le Plessis where he might find the Duke, he made answer, that certainly at Angoulesme, where he arrived two days before he came from thence. After this manner did le Plessis disengage himself from this dangerous encounter, diverting le Maine from the way to Loches, whither before he was going, to go inquire upon the Post Road some more certain news of the Duke: Whereas had he held on his way, and met him at Loches, as infallibly he had, the Queen's Affairs had yet been in very great danger, le Maine returning in all diligence to Court, having had leisure enough to give Luines time, either to prevent the Queen Mother's escape, or at least to have taken her upon the way, had she been gone from thence, Loches being but one days Journey Post from Paris. This untoward accident thus shuffled off, L● Plessis coming to Blois, is secretly admitted into the Queen's Chamber. and le Plessis being informed by Cadillac of the Queen Mother's order for him to come into the Suburbs of Blois, he failed not to execute her commands; where he was no sooner arrived, but that the Count de Brenne's Steward came to seek him, to guide him to the Castle, and to lodge him in the Anti-Chambre of the Count his Master. Night therefore being come, he was accordingly by him conducted thither, when, so soon as every body was retired, and the Queen left at liberty, and alone, she sent for him into her Chamber, to consult with him what remained to be done; where after he had in few words given her an account of the long, and dangerous Voyage his Master had undertaken, out of the sole, and passionate desire he had to serve her, and that she had acknowledged that obligation in the handsomest manner she could by words express, le Plessis proceeded to represent to her Majesty the many dangers that attended this delay, remonstrating to her: That it was now a great while since the Duke's departure from Metz: That he had already waited four or five days in a Village, in expectation of her Majesty's Commands in order to her escape: That the true design of the Duke's Journey (though he believed it had no other ground than mere suspicion) was already become the common discourse of the people: That he had met le Maine going towards the Duke, upon the intelligence had already been carried to Court of his departure from Metz; and that therefore it was very requisite her Majesty should make immediate use of the present occasion, which perhaps might in two days be irrecoverably lost. To which the Queen made answer: That she was of his opinion, and that therefore they were then instantly to resolve upon the order, and the the means of her escape. Whereunto le Plessis having replied, That that depended chiefly upon some man of Trust: The Queen made answer again: That she had not one about her (Chanteloube the only man of all her domestics, to whom she had entrusted the secret of that Affair, being dispatched away to the Princes, and Lords, which she either conceived already were, or soon would be engaged in her Quarrel) in whom she durst confide. Whereupon, le Plessis conceiving there might be something of the humour of her Sex, or Nation, in so general a distrust, of his own accord proposed to her the Count de Brenne; who, he said, had sufficiently manifested his fidelity in those Services he had already performed. A proposition the Queen did not seem absolutely to reject, saying (which are her own very words), That 'twas true she believed the Count to be a man of honour, but that notwithstanding she thought him very young for the conduct of so important an Affair. Which scruple being satisfied by le Plessis, undertaking to make him capable enough; and seeing it was necessary to trust some one of the Queen's domestics, he thought a man of his condition, her Majesty's Gentleman of the Horse, and Brother to the Marquis de Money, a most passionate Servant of hers, was the most proper of all others to be made use of in this occasion. And accordingly, though it was then very far in far in the night, went immediately to talk with him about it; to whom (after he had felt his pulse a while, and found him very ready to undertake any thing for her Majesty's Service ● he at last declared the resolution had been taken, to deliver the Queen Mother out of her captivity: a design, that he told him was to be executed by a person of very great quality, concealing however the Duke of Espernon's name) who had drawn great Forces together in his Government, to favour her Majesty's retreat; and in conclusion, that therefore he was the very next day to take order for Ladders, to get the Coaches ready, and to lay in fresh Horses, with all the secrecy he in his own discretion should think fit, to the end that the night following without further delay her Majesty might be restored to her former Freedom. Not forgetting withal to recommend to his consideration, what he might expect from the gratitude of a Mistress, restored again to the whole sway of Affairs, her due Authority, and Greatness; besides the honour he would infallibly acquire to himself in so glorious an occasion. The Count thus prepared and instructed, Preparation for the Queen's escape. accordingly made provision of all things necessary for the design; and le Plessis himself remaining concealed in the Queen's Cabinet (either to be, as it were, a Hostage for his Master's fidelity, or to be present with his directions in the execution of the design) sent Cadillac only back to the Archbishop of Tholouze, to acquaint him with the Queen's readiness, the night following to make her escape. The Archbishop, who was to part from Confolans immediately after le Plessis, had order to advance no further than Loches (that place being designed for the Queen's first reception) only to clear the Road in order thereunto: but le Plessis by Cadillac entreated him to advance as far as Montrichart, which was half way betwixt Blois and Loches; assuring him that the Queen would infallibly come thither the night following, which happened to be the 22. of Feb. an exact month to a day after the Duke's departure from Metz. Cadillac therefore posted with extraordinary diligence back again to Loches to meet the Archbishop there; where being come, he found not only the Son, but the Father also, entering together the Suburbs of the City. The reason of which was, that though it had been at first resolved, the Son should go before with twenty or thirty Gentlemen only, to make the less noise, and give the less suspicion; yet could not the Duke his Father, when it came to'●, consent to let him go so slenderly attended, where he apprehended the peril to be so manifest, and great. He knew not, in the anxiety and doubt wherewith he was involved, what to think of the Queen's silence, of whom he had hitherto heard no news at all, to which the rumour that was already spread abroad of his real design, having more increased his apprehension, nature would not permit him to expose his Son to so great an adventure, choosing much rather to run the whole hazard together with him, than that he alone should tempt the danger, whilst himself lay idle and secure. Cadillac, The Duke of 〈◊〉 hears from the Queen. having discovered them at distance, spurred up to them, transported with joy of the good news he brought; where he gave them a full relation of what had passed betwixt the Queen, and himself, and of what he had in Commission from his Master, together with her Majesty's readiness to depart, and the secrecy that had hither to been preserved in the Queen's Household: but he could give them no account, why they had heard nothing from her Majesty at Confolans, she having denied to le Plessis that Lorm● had ever been with her, as it was too true; or that she had ever heard ● syllable from the Duke, since his departure from Metz, which she said had put her into no little fear. And here I cannot but wonder at the infirmities of men, and the ●isproportion we may sometimes observe in the bravest and most heroic minds. The Duke of Espernon had for six months together been continually projecting this design, had foreseen all the accidents could happen, was come from Metz for no other end, an● had wished for nothing more than to see things at the pass they now were: notwithstanding all which he was strangely astonished at this news, and the immediate sight of the object representing to his imagination at once, what ● he had only considered by particulars before, he seemed to stagger in his resolution whether he should proceed any further or no in an Enterprise, the last Act whereof could only crown all the rest, and secure him for what was already done. He made Cadillac repeat above an hundred times in less than half an hour, what the Queen, and what his Master had said, with what he had himself observed: when suddenly, and of himself, grown generously resolute in his first design, he commanded Cadillac to return immediately to le Plessis, and to assure him, that the night following, the Archbishop his Son with fifty Light-Horse should infallibly be ready at Montrichart, and that the next day after himself would follow with the rest of his party, to receive the Queen, and to secure her retreat, should any thing upon the way be attempted against her. The end of the Seventh Book. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. The Eighth Book. IF the Duke had on his part been alarmed with these jealousies and mistrusts, The Queen prepares for her escape. the Queen's Servants on the other side were in no less diffidence and fear. These were upon this occasion reduced to a very contemptible number; wherein I cannot but admire, that in so plentiful a fortune, as this Princess was Mistress of (notwithstanding her disgrace) there was so little fidelity to be found amongst her people, that she durst entrust the secret of this Affair to but four of her domestics only. Of these the Count de Brenne was the chief, the others were Measure, and du Lion * Exempts des Guards are old Soldiers of the Royal Guards, who as a recompense for their long Services are privileged and exempt from Duty, Taxes, and Imposts, common to the rest of the people. Exempts of her Guards, and Katherine one of the women of her Chamber, an Italian, and exceeding faithful. These being all strangers to le Plessis (and the Duke of Espernon being not as yet declared undertaker of the Enterprise) disputed very stiffly against her Majesty's resolution, as being very unwilling to consent she should commit her safety to persons altogether unknown. The debate whereof was very hot in the Queen's Closet, whilst in the mean time her Cabinets were packing up with her choicest Jewels, where though they could not very well approve of the thing, yet had they not however neglected to fix the Ladders; and Cadillac who had set out of Loches by eight of the clock that evening, was got betwixt twelve and one, upon the Bridge of Blois, to give the last blow to the design. He was here stayed by the Count de Brenne's Gentleman of his Horse, and one of the Queen's Footmen, who had been to convey the Coach out of Town, and who had orders to suffer one Currier only to pass; which, though this were the man intended in that direction, yet would they not permit him to pass upon his own word, but would themselves go along with him to the Castle, though he had taken so exact observation before of the way from without the City, to the Ladders that he served for a guide to those, who pretended to conduct him. In the heat therefore of this diligence, he was not long ere he recovered the first Ladder, by which having mounted the Terrace, he went to the second, which from the Terrace lead up to the Queen's Closet Window, by which she was to come out. Being got up to the Window, which he found shut, he there heard the noise the Queen's Servants made in their Debate; who were not yet to be persuaded out of the apprehensions they had conceived of her Majesty's person, and safety. Which first fears had been infinitely augmented, by the recovery of the Packet entrusted to Lorme, and retrieved by le Büisson, which the Queen had but that very night, and almost at the same instant received: by which, though they were satisfied the treachery had failed of its effect, that knowledge was nevertheless so far from making them secure, that on the contrary it awaked their jealousy, and by rendering them more apprehensive of others which they doubted might succeed, made them more circumspect than before: Wherein though the Queen appea●'d the least surprised, yet did she not think it as yet convenient to discover the person who was to assist her in this escape. Whilst they were in this suspense, Cadillac knocked at the Window, who brought news that would satisfy all their doubts. The Window was presently opened to Floze his man (that being the phrase) who was no sooner within the Cabinet, but that transported with joy, to see things so well prepared, he threw himself at her Majesty's feet, telling her, that now all things were in as good a posture, as her Majesty could herself desire; that Monsieur d' Espernon was at Loches, Monsieur de Tholouze at Montrichart, and with them three hundred Gentlemen ready to serve, and attend her Majesty, whithersoever she should be pleased to go. This was the first time the Duke of Espernon had been mentioned in all this Affair, whose name was no sooner heard by the Queen's domestics, but that it cleared them of their former apprehensions, no one after that once offering to oppose their Mistress' resolution. They making no doubt, but that a man whose wisdom and power were so generally known, had taken order for all things necessary for the Queens, and his own particular safety. Here then was a sudden change of faces, not a person in the Cabinet, who discovered not alacrity and satisfaction in their looks; especially the Queen, who without losing more time, herself gathering up her Gown, that she might at better convenience get out of the Window, The Queen goes out of the window of her Cab●●et. gave the Count de Brenne her hand, who went out before her, her Majesty following next, le Plessis the third, and after him all the rest. The Queen had found so much difficulty, and trouble in this first descent, that she had no mind to make use of the Ladder, to go down from the Platform into the street of the Suburb, choosing rather (the earth being mouldered down in many places, by reason the Terrace was not yet faced with stone) to sit upon a Cloak, which being leisurely drawn down, conveyed her to the bottom with very great ease. The rest, either by the same way, or by the Ladder suddenly followed, when the Queen being immediately taken by the arms by the Count de Brenne, and le Plessis. as they were leading her along the Suburbs, they chanced to meet some of her own Officers; who seeing a woman led betwixt two without a Torch, concluded her to be a Wench; which she hearing, said laughing to le Plessis, They take me for a good one. Yet did not these encounters hinder them from suddenly recovering the Bridge, where they were to take Coach; but being come where they expected to find it, there was no Coach to be seen, nor any body left to tell them which way 'twas gone. So that here they were in a new disorder. The Queen knew not what to think of her people, nor le Plessis what to imagine of the thing: they began to suspect one another, and (as it happens in all dangerous occasions) every one was so intent upon their own particular concern, that no one had reserved so much judgement as to advise what was best to be done. In this general jealousy, and consternation, comes one of the Queen's Footmen, to guide them to the Coach; which they had conveyed into a little blind lane out of the way, that it might not be taken notice of by such as should have occasion to go over the Bridge. This fear then being then blown over, all past jealousies and apprehensions now vanished, and were forgot. The Queen put herself into the Coach, with the Count de Brenne, le Plessis, and Katherine, the rest had all Horses ready to mount; the Queen's Cabinets also were all thrown into the Coach, one excepted, which by oversight was left upon the place; but being missed, before they had gone two hundred paces, was sent back for, and found; and it was worth the labour, having in it Jewels, to the value of above an hundred thousand Crowns. And this was the last alarm. They went out of the Suburbs, the Torches were lighted, and the Queen held on her Journey towards Montrichart, without any further adventure worth repeating. It hath already been said, that the Archbishop of Tholouze had taken with him fifty Gentlemen to advance as far as Montr●chart, to secure that little Town; of which party Rucellay was one. They had over night possessed themselves of the Gates, to be Masters of the Bridge, which affords passage over the River, that almost environs the Town; neither were they ordered to stir from thence: but le ●lessis, fearing the Queen should meet any accident, or receive any fright by the way, dispatched again Cadillac in all diligence to the Archbishop, to give him notice of her Majesty's coming; and withal to desire him to send out twelve, or fifteen Gentlemen to meet her for her further assurance: which was presently done, and Rucellay would needs command the Troop, whilst the Archbishop stayed behind to guard the Pass; which, should it have been obstructed, would infallibly have overthrown the whole design. Not long after Rucellay's departure, The Queen Mother is received by the Duke of Espernon. the Queen arrived at Montrichart, where she was complemented by the Archbishop, and whence (staying no longer there, than fresh Horses could be put into the Harness) she continued her Journey towards Loches, better attended than hitherto she had been. About a League on this side the City, she was met by the Duke of Espernon, with a hundred and fifty Horse (what Gentlemen, and what of his own Guards) he having dismissed most of the Gentry, as not necessary upon this occasion. At this meeting the Queen delivered the most passionate expressions of Obligation, together with the largest promises of a grateful return, a Princess of her condition could possibly make to a Servant who had so highly merited from her; which the Duke having received with all becoming respect, he was by the Queen commanded to come into the Coach; where being seated, she began to tell him of Lorme's● treachery, of which till this instant he knew nothing; proceeding to acquaint him with greater liberty, than by Letter before she durst do, with her designs; naming to him the persons she conceived she had won over to her party, and giving him hopes of several things which notwithstanding succeeded not according to her expectation. The Queen's escape had been carried with that secrecy, that not a soul in the Castle had perceived it; so that it was far in the morning, when the domestics appointed for the Service of her Majesty's person (seeing themselves not called to their ordinary employments, and not knowing what to think of so profound a sleep) resolved to venture into the Queen's Chamber: Where being entered, and not seeing the Queen, they looked for Katherine, who likewise was no where to be found. Every one therefore being amazed at so strange a Solitude, they sought, and called, but all in vain: neither could they imagine which way they could be gone; the Ladders, by which the Queen had gone down, having been thrown into the River, the better to conceal the manner of her escape. At last having been some time in suspense, they had some news of the Queen's motion, which begot a new astonishment amongst them, though proceeding from several motives. The most faithful and affectionate were glad she had recovered her liberty; whereas those who had been corrupted by the Favourite (which were very many) fearing on the one side they should stand suspected at Court, to have been assisting to the Queen in her design, and on the other, lest her Majesty (well informed of their infidelity) should punish the● according to their desert, knew not which way to turn, nor what to do. Whilst they were in this confusion, her Majesty writ to the Marquis de Guercheville her Lady of Honour, to let her and the rest of her women know of her arrival at Loches; The Queen Mother arrives at L●ches. where she would stay two days to expect them, and where both they, and her other Servants, who had a mind to come to her should be welcome, excepting five and forty, or fifty which (as suspected to her) she gave order should be turned away; withal that such as could not come time enough to Loches, might find her at Angoulesme, whither she was designed to go. The Queen no sooner saw herself at full liberty, but that she began to meditate of the means to defend herself from the Favourite's persecution, which in all probability was likely to be violent enough; The Queen begins to fall to her business, and in the first place endeavours to justify her escape. as also to give the Duke the best colour she could, to justify what he had done. To this purpose therefore she delivered him the original of the Letter the King had sent her under his own hand; whereby she was permitted to go whither she would, into any part of the Kingdom: Which Letter she also accompanied with another from herself to the Duke, a few days antedated, and after the time of his arrival at Confolans; wherein she entreated his assistance in the prosecution of her design. By which means the Duke was cleared of the imputation the Court laid to his charge, that he had taken away the Queen by force, and against her will; which had been a crime as well towards the Mother, as the Son. The two Letters were these. The King's Letter to the Queen under his own hand. Madam, Having understood you have an intention to visit some Religious places, I am infinitely satisfied with the news, and shall be much more, if for the future you would resolve to stir, and travel more abroad, than hitherto you have done; as I conceive it may conduce much to your health, which is exceeding dear unto me. If my Affairs would permit, I would with all my heart accompany you in my own person, as I shall do with my Letters to the places where you go; to the end you may be received, respected, and honoured equally to myself, who am, more than can be expressed, Madam, Your most humble, and obedient Son Lovis. From Paris this last of October 1618. The Queen Mother's Letter to the Duke of Espernon, delivered to him with the former. Cousin, I stand obliged to represent to the King my Son, the general Discontents of his people at the ill management of his Affairs, and the troubles, which by reason of his Nobilities being absent from him, I apprehend will ensue, to the prejudice of his Crown and Kingdom. A duty, which as all good men inform me it is particularly mine, I resolve to perform, though I were certain to lose thereby that little remains to me both of liberty, and life. Both which you may secure by permitting me to this effect to retire myself first to Loches, and then to Angoulesme, and by assisting me in my way with your company, and advice: wherein if neither the necessity, nor the justice of my intentions can prevail upon you; yet the reading this enclosed from the King my Son ought to do it: by which you will see he permits me to to travel whither I think fit, expressing a desire that his Subjects should, in all places where I go, pay me all honour, and respect equal to his own person: though I intent to make no other use of it, than what shall be consistent with the good of his own Service. Which, being performed, I do promise, and protest ●nto you, that when his own good nature shall be as free, as my word is now, he himself shall thank you for the assistance you have given me in an occasion so important to him, and his own particular Affairs. The rest I will commit to the fidelity of this bearer, that is, as to the time and manner of my removal, wherein I conjure you not to fail: without nevertheless enjoining you, either secrecy, or care, which your own wisdom will inform you to be very requisite: Only I shall tell you, that by this you will eternally oblige me to you and yours. So praying God to inspire you with this good deliberation, and to give you all the satisfaction I desire. I rest, Your very good Cousin, Marie. From Blois the 14. of February, 1619. This Letter of Rucellay's style (who now (although a stranger) undertook nevertheless to serve the Queen in the nature of a Secretary) being dispatched, it was necessary they should think also of writing to the King, to give his Majesty notice of the Queen's removal, and of the design she had to retire herself to Angoulesme: In which Letter she represented, The Queen Mother's Letter to King. The ill usage she had for some time suffered at Blois, doubtless without his Majesty's intention; but through the sole Tyranny of some about his person, who exercised no less Authority over his Majesties own Royal disposition; whose insolence, and cruelty descending from her upon most of the great men of the Nation, she had very great reason to fear, that so many men of quality being discontented, and those discontents concurring with the dissatisfaction of the people, oppressed by all sorts of violence, would, in the end, be the ruin of his Kingdom. That therefore she had put herself into liberty, that she might at greater convenience represent to his Majesty matters of so high importance to him, and his Affairs; and had chosen to retire herself into the Duke of Espernon's Governments, by so much the rather, by how much his fidelity, and good affection to the Crown, had never suffered the least dispute: That the late King her Lord, and Husband, out of the testimonies he had received of his Virtue, and Integrity, had, but a few days before his death, advised her to repose her confidence in him, above all other great Ministers of the Kingdom, and that therefore she conceived she could not err in following the advice of so mighty a Prince, and in committing herself to the conduct of so faithful a Servant. From Loches the 25th. of Feb. 1619. The King had no sooner received this Letter, but that the Favourites began to study an answer; which, though it were in show respective enough to the Queen, The King's answer to the Queen Mother. was yet full of threats towards the Duke. Wherein after his Majesty had expressed to the Queen his astonishment at the violence the Duke of Espernon had committed upon her person, he went on with great heat to declare: That of all others he could never have suspected an offence of that nature, believing there had not been that man in the world, who, in a profound and inviolate peace, had had the impudence (which were the express terms of the Letter) not only to execute, but even to meditate a resolution to attempt upon the liberty of the Mother of his King. From whence his Majesty proceeding to menaces of the most severe, and exemplary punishment, he in the end justified those about his person from the ill usage whereof she complained; as having been done by his own order, and that with as much favour and respect as any Son of a much inferior Birth, could pay to a Mother: declaring withal, that he was resolved to take Arms, thereby to put her in full possession of that liberty, her enemies had taken from her; and to cause the honour, and respect to be paid her which was due to her person. The rest was committed to the Count de Bethune, The Count de Bethune sent to the Queen to tre●t with her. who was sent away with this dispatch, and who was to reside with the Queen to treat with her about an Accommodation; a Treaty his Majesty immediately set on foot, not thinking it fit, till that way had first been tried, to commence a War, wherein the Queen his Mother would be head of the adverse party: A respect that did not long continue. Whilst Bethune with this Commission took the way to Angoulesme, the Queen Mother, who departed from Loches the same day that she sent her Letter to Court, The Queen prepares for a War. was there arrived. It was upon the first of March, 1619. that she entered the City; where she was no sooner come, but that she dispatched away to all parts, to dispose those who had promised to engage in her quarrel, to declare now in her favour. Most of the Grandees of the Kingdom were at this time retired from Court, and almost all dissatisfied with the present Government; yet whether it were (as I have said) that seeing the Duke of Espernon had already so engrossed the entire honour of the Action, they could not in reason expect to share with him, who had alone executed the most glorious, and dangerous part of the design; The whole burden whereof falls upon the Duke of ●spernon. or that they had been taken off by the Favourites promises (who in this juncture had not neglected to prevent the effect of their discontents) however it was, they were glad to do their own work at the Duke's expense, and as they had had no hand in the action, would not in the least appear in the Queen's behalf. The Duke of Espernon therefore▪ with such Friends, and Servants as he had, must alone stand the brunt of the Royal Arms, and undergo the utmost effect of his Majesty's indignation. The Queen 'tis true granted out several Commissions, and disbursed some money, not considerable, for Levies; all which, though it signified little to the work, yet had she betwixt five and six thousand foot, and betwixt eight and nine hundred Horse, that were raised in the Duke's Governments by his own interest. He had from the beginning of the Queen's Regency made provision of Arms for ten thousand Foot, and six hundred Horse, which were now taken out, and of so great use, that could the Friends he had in Guienne have assisted him according to their affections, he had upon his own account raised a very considerable Army: But the Duke of Mayenne, who was Governor of that Province, having in this occasion been prepossessed by the Favourite, (by whom the command of the Army that was to go against the Queen, was conferred upon him) it was not likely he should suffer those Troops to go out of his Government, which were to be employed against him; yet did not the Duke fail however of a very considerable succour from thence; so great an affection, and esteem they had for him in that Country: the Marquis de Montferrant, and Foncaude Brothers, the Count de Calonges, and some other Gentlemen of quality, all considerations laid apart, exposing themselves freely to the persecutions of the Court, and the displeasure of a powerful Governor, to pay that duty they owed, and had sworn to the Duke of Espernon, though having opportunity to draw away their men by Files only, and that with great difficulty and danger, they could not serve him so effectually as they desired. Is the Queen found herself thus weak in the place where she was in person, her party was in no better a condition in other parts of the Kingdom. The Duke of Boüillon himself, of whom the Marquis de la Valette thought himself secure, refu●ing so much, as to declare for the Queen, who having long expected what the first success of Arms, and the issue of the Queen's Declarations would be, and seeing neither the one, nor the other (which novelty often renders vigorous, and considerable) had produced any signal effect; he was content to sit neuter and to attend the event: by whose example, some other persons of condition, who had engaged to take Arms in Champagne, picardy, and the neighbouring Provinces, and that had been made to believe the Duke of Boüillon would head them, refused likewise to stir, all the most zealous, and affectionate to the Queen's Service could do, being to come in in their own persons, which signified no great matter. Of which number were the Marquis de Môny, Breauté, Bourbonne, Bethancourt, and some others. The Marquis de Themines came in also of another side, though the Marshal his Father was on the contrary party; but it was only to command the Queen's Guards, of which he was Captain; so that in effect the whole weight of the business lay still upon the Duke of Espernon. The Favourites were in a far better condition, The Favourites powerfully arm themselves. who after they had on all sides prepossessed the minds of the great ones, and perverted the inclinations they might have had in favour of the Queen Mother, had powerfully armed themselves, rather indeed against the Duke than her. The Duke of Mayenne was in the head of ten thousand Foot, and twelve hundred Horse (for the most part, old Soldiers) ready to enter into Angoumois. The Count de Schomberg, the King's Lieutenant under the Duke in Limousin, had received order to make Levies, to impede those the Duke was making in that Country; which having done, he soon employed them in an Enterprise of greater noise, than moment, though very disadvantageous to the Queen's Interest. The Abbey d' Vzerche in Limousin stood for the Queen, where some of her party had fortified themselves; and the Count de Schomberg sat down before it; whereof the Duke of Espernon having intelligence, he went in all haste to relieve them. His diligence herein was notwithstanding fruitless, for the playing of a * A fire Engine covered with Leather like unto, but much bigger than a Salsisse having put them out of all possible defence, they were forced to surrender before he came. Neither was the place any thing considerable, though, in the beginning of a War the first successes being of great importance, the Duke would willingly have prevented this disaster; which, seeing he could not come time enough to do, he set himself to repair that little loss, by some signal advantage, The Duke of Mayenne enters with his Army into Angoum●is. he might with great facility have obtained over the Count, when he received intelligence from the Queen, of the Duke of Mayenne's being entered with his Army into Angoumois. Which Army, though it was indeed a good one, and the coming of it very well foreseen; yet its greatness being made more formidable by report, it is not imagined to what a degree the Queen, and those about her were terrified with its approach. The Duke had taken along with him for this expedition of Limousin but very few Forces; but the life and soul of the Queen's party consisting in his person, and experience, her Majesty dispatched away to him Post after Post, with so much importunity, that he was in the end constrained to quit all his designs in Limousin, to return back to Angoulesme. Before the Duke's return, the Archbishop of Tholouze, his Son, who had stayed behind to command those Forces, had been left with the Queen, having intelligence of the Duke of Mayenne's motion towards Cognac, was jealous he might attempt something upon that little Town, the situation whereof rendered it very considerable, there being a stone Bridge over the River Charente: though otherwise very weak in itself, and without any fortification at all. All which notwithstanding the Archbishop, with two thousand men, went, and put himself into it with a resolution either to preserve it, or die. So that the Duke of Mayenne, advancing to view it, was entertained with so brisk a charge, that he had no hope of doing any good upon men so well prepared for their defence. Not therefore to waste time to no purpose, he went on, and took up his quarters at Chasteu-Neuf within three Leagues of Angoulesme; where the Duke of Espernon being now returned, presented himself, and his Forces, to oppose him; so disposing them into places of most advantage, that the Duke of Mayenne could make no further progress into the Country: He made indeed some light Skirmishes, but such as won no great reputation to the one side, or the other, whilst the Peace was in Treating by the Count de Bethune. It was doubtless by no ordinary conduct, that the Duke of Espernon, with so few Forces as he had about him kept so considerable an Army as the King's in play, and to manage the several sorts of people he had with him, with that dexterity as to keep them from Mutiny, and Disorder: Such as have been engaged in parties where the Royal Name has been opposed against them, and who have commanded men, who have had no less to apprehend from the Sword of Justice, than from those of the Enemy, will easily conceive, the Duke had never greater use of his Prudence, and Valour, than upon this occasion; it being certain, that had his Authority sussered by the least accident of that kind, he had infallibly been deserted by the greatest part, and consequently exposed to his enemy's discretion. If the King's Forces were thus powerful in Angoumois against the Duke, The Duke of Nevers with a great Army against the Marquis de la Valette at Metz. they were every whit as considerable in the Messin Country, against the Marquis de la Valette. The Duke of Nevers had there an Army, nothing inferior to that of the Duke of Mayenne; to which outward Force he had also added secret practices within the City, and the Inhabitants whose affections were warped with the fortune of the Duke's Family (which every one believed to be so depressed, as never to rise again) were not the least part of the enemy's power. In which extremity (which could hardly be greater) the Marquis de la Valette having reinforced his Garrison, The Marquis de la Valette defends Metz, which was faithful to him, with some Levies that came to him out of Lorraine (where he found very good Friends) he so secured the place, that the Duke of Nevers from that time forwards lost all hopes of doing any good upon it. It is not to be believed what good effects the conservation of Metz, And by that preserves the whole Party. by the vigilancy and bravery of the Marquis de la Valette, produced to the advantage of the Queen Mother's Affairs, which was no sooner perceived impossible to be taken from the Duke, but that they began to think it unsafe to urge him to the last necessity, lest an extreme despair might prompt him to desperate resolutions; The Peace concluded. so that the Court began now to be more facile, and flexible to the conclusion of a Peace; the resolution whereof had hitherto been so highly debated, and in so great suspense. The Treaty of this Peace received, it may be imagined, many difficulties, and delays, when the Count de Bethune, having opened the first proposals in the beginning of March, things were not fully concluded at the end of May. He had with his Commission received express instructions, by all means if possible to persuade the Queen Mother to exclude the Duke of Espernon from the Articles of that Accommodation, with power, that being granted, to promise her all the satisfaction she could herself desire; wherein I have often heard the Duke highly commend not only the Queen's constancy, The Queen Mother's generous proceeding, as also the Count de Bethune's. who would never hearken to that proposition, but the Count de Bethune's generosity also, who being himself a man of great worth, and honour, could never countenance so unhandsome an advice. But what one of the King's Ministers, commanded, and authorised by him, and importuned by the Duke's enemies, was ashamed to insist upon, was nevertheless with great eagerness pursued by a person he had very highly obliged. It is of Rucellay I speak, who ambitious, and puffed up with a vain opinion of himself, and the Services he had performed for the Queen, was impatient, that any one should rival him in the Queen's favour, or take the freedom to oppose his Counsels: And it will be imagined by such as have considered the former passages of the Duke's life, he was not of an humour to be justled, either in the one, or the other by a man upon all accounts so inferior to him. This disparity therefore both in their persons, and judgements, which at first begot a coldness only in the Duke (who was very unwilling (having loved, and esteemed Rucellay at a very particular rate) to withdraw his friendship totally from him) proceeded at last (as it commonly falls out in such cases) to a final and absolute rupture betwixt them. It was at this time, and upon this occasion, that I withdrew myself from Rucellay. Le Plessis, thereunto moved by the old affection he had born my Father, had taken me from my studies, to place me with this man, in hopes that one time or another I might by his favour be introduced into the Queen's Family; A breach betwixt the Duke and Rucellay. but finding that after this breach I was become suspected to him, and that he looked upon me, as one of the Duke's creatures, for having only been born in his Government, and recommended to him by one of his domestics, I acquainted le Plessis with my discontent, and the desire I had to withdraw myself from his Service; who approving my resolution, and speaking of me to the Duke, he was thereupon pleased to receive me into his dependence, from whom I never after parted till his death; nothing but that inevitable necessity having the power to separate me from him, which was not however till after three and twenty years, without intermission, I had the honour to live in his Service. I shall therefore henceforward be able to speak more regularly, than hitherto I have done, of the Duke, and his Affairs, as having been an eye-witness of the rest; though I can almost with the same certainty aver the truth of what I have already delivered, the testimony of so many famous Authors, and what I received from persons of great repute, now living, who have been assisting to me in this undertaking, having no less authority with me, than what I have seen with my own eyes, and collected out of my own observation. The Duke was informed by the Queen Mother herself of the importunity wherewith Rucellay had pressed her to seize upon the Castle of Angoulesme, demonstrating to her at the same time with how great facility it might be effected. Her Majesty went sometimes to walk in the Park belonging to the Castle, where being admitted, as she ever was, without the least scruple, or distrust, she might, he said, without the least opposition, thrust out the Baron d' Anton, the Duke's Nephew, and under his Authority Governor of the place; which being done, she would, he told her, be Mistress of the Duke's Fortune; whereas one might now (with much more reason, than at Blois) declare her a Prisoner, being as she was at the discretion of her Vassal: Endeavouring moreover to render the Duke odious to her, by making his free humour, and some complaints (the non-performance of some things, had been promised by the Queen, had perhaps extorted from him) appear like affronts, and indignities to her Person, and Honour. But the Queen (as has been said) nobly rejecting so unhandsome a proposition, herself gave the first intimation of it to the Duke; who incensed, as he had just cause, at a practice so foul, and an advice so pernicious to his Affairs, from that time forwards forbore any more, either to speak to, or to treat with Rucellay; though he could by no means consent his Servants, and particularly Marsillac the Captain of his Guard, should revenge the injury by any outrage upon Rucellay's person, which he absolutely, and expressly forbade, as to my knowledge it was high time. In the heat of these disorders in the Queen's Court, The Bishop of Lucon since Cardinal de Richelie● comes to Ang●ulesme. and in the greatest difficulty of Affairs, the Bishop of Luçon, afterwards Cardinal Richelieu, came to Angoulesme; neither could he possibly have arrived in a better time for himself: The Queen Mother was grown weary of Rucellay's violent Counsels, and was moreover dissatisfied with some undecent liberties he had taken in her presence; to which the Duke of Espernon was also highly animated against him, desiring nothing more, than his removal, or at least some notable disgrace; and to all this the Treaty of Accommodation was then upon the point to be concluded; so that the Bishop of Luçon coming at so opportune a season, could not fail of thanks on all sides, both from the King, and Queen, how little soever he contributed to the work, and in the mean time of being infallibly well received at the Queen Mothers Court. Which in my opinion was a pretty criticism in his good fortune, and from whence he, in the revolution of time, derived all those other advantages, that preferred him at last to that ●eight of greatness, to which he afterwards arrived. At his coming he first alighted at the Duke's lodgings, protesting he would not enter the City, till he were first satisfied, whether, or no, it stood with his good liking; and afterwards entreating he would please to give him leave to make his first Addresses to the Queen in his Company. He was by the Duke (for ● myself was present at their meeting) received with the greatest freedom, and friendship, he could possibly expect or desire; and soon after they went together to the Queen's Lodgings, where her Majesty was at that time persuaded by the Duke to give him her Seal, which till then she had entrusted to none, and to admit him the first in her Council, which accordingly was the next day performed. Rucellay nettled to the quick, The reason of Rucellay's retiring from A●goulesme. that a new comer should in one day be possessed of what he could not by so many signal Services obtain, and impatient, that he at so great ease should reap the fruits of all his care and pains, from that time forwards began to think of retiring himself from the Queen's Court, to go put himself into the King's. Yet was it not without highly complaining of the ill usage he had received; nor perhaps without repenting his carriage towards the Duke, who had been his very good friend, so long as he behaved himself civilly to him. A resolution that being known to the Queen (however herself at that time in great distress for money) she sent to present him with thirty thousand Crowns, as an acknowledgement of the pains he had taken in her behalf; though he seeming to be more offended at that than all the rest, that the Queen should think any one could set a price upon his Services, scornfully refused it, and went to put himself into the Duke de Luines his protection; where he was by that Favourite at first received with great civility and respect, and afterwards into a very eminent degree of favour, and trust, both as to private, and public Affairs. The Marquis de Môny, Rucellay's intimate friend, had some days before preceded him in this defection; the occasion of whose discontent was, that he had not obtained the Government of Angers, which had been granted to the Bishop of Luçon, for his Brother Richelieu Campmaster to the Regiment of Piedmont, at the Duke's Recommendation, who was as solicitous of all the interests of that Family, as his own. The departure of these two Gentlemen, Several borders in the Queen Mothers Court. both of them of so great consideration in the Queen Mother's Court, soon begot very great disorders there; which (as his profession more exposed him to his enemy's revenge, than that of the Bishop his Brother did him) fell wholly at last upon Richelieu. The Marquis de Themines, a very intimate friend of Rucellays (though as ill satisfied as the rest) could not however leave the Queen's Court, as being tied there by the obligation of his Command: A consideration that forcing him to continue there, he would nevertheless let his absent friend see, how much he interested himself in his disgrace, by quarrelling with those he conceived had most contributed to it: Wherein his malice must of necessity be directed against the Bishop of Luçon, and those of his party. Neither did the excessive favours they all received from the Queen, a little add to the jealousy, and envy of her other Domestics, and Servants, they having alone obtained all the Governments of Anjou, granted to the Queen in this Accommodation; neither indeed was any thing granted, but to them, or at their request, who alone absolutely disposed of all Affairs. Themines therefore, having resolved to take upon himself the revenge of all the rest, took occasion to require an explanation from Richelieu of some things, of very little moment, which in the heat of the Debate (as it commonly falls out) grew at last to an absolute quarrel betwixt them: Wherein having several times been prevented from fight, sometimes by the friends of the one party, and sometimes of the other, one day the Marquis de Themines mounted upon a little pad Nag met Richelieu in the open street; whereupon alighting from his Horse, they talked together, but not long before their Swords were out; when the Marquis stooping to get under Richelieu's Sword, which was longer than his, received a thrust, which running all along his back, ripped up the skin only; whilst at the same time he ran Richelieu quite through the heart, Richelieu slain by the Marquis de Themines. who fell stone dead upon the place, without being able to utter one word. I happened (amongst some others) accidentally to be a spectator of this Duel; by which unfortunace thrust, how many future Offices and Commands were made vacant? and what might not this unhappy man have pretended to, and expected from the infinite power of a Brother, so affectionate to him, had he lived to see him in that height of greatness to which he afterwards arrived? Some days before this accident the Peace had been concluded to both their Majesty's mutual satisfaction; The conditions of the Peace. wherein the Queen (as has been said) had granted to her the Government of Anjou, with the Castles of Angers, Chinon, Pont de Cé, with the other places of that Province, being promised withal that she should see the King (as she did) and from his Majesties own mouth be assured, that when ever she pleased, she might go to Court. As for the Duke of Espernon, after having received a ratification from the Queen of those Services he had done for her, he at last sued out his Pardon from the King, the only Pardon he ever stood in need of in all his life; as having never (excepting here in the Queen Mother's quarrel) had a hand in any commotion whatsoever. Both he and the Marquis his Son were restored to all their Estates, Offices, and Honours, in the same condition they were before the War, one thing only excepted which he could by no means obtain, and that was the Citadel of Xaintes; which, that it might not be put into an enemy's hand, he was forced to consent it should be demolished. During the time of this Treaty, the Council had generally been held in the Duke's Lodgings, where the Bishop of Luçon was ever very diligent: he came continually to the Duke's Table, waiting very often in the Parlour, and in his Bedchamber, his vacancies, and leisure, an assiduity, and respect that promised for the future, an inviolate love and friendship; the Duke also on his part was infinitely obliging to him, espousing all his Interests, and declaring himself upon all occasions, highly partial, and affectionate to him: notwithstanding all which, we shall in time see so strange an alteration in them both, and so antarctic to those good dispositions betwixt them, as will sufficiently inform us▪ how little dependence there is upon the humours of men, when an inconsiderate passion, a little interest, or (which is more light than either) a mere jealousy, has power in a moment to overthrow the greatest and most inviolate friendship. Whilst this Treaty was in agitation, there happened yet another untoward accident, though no great matter was made of it, and that was this. A little before the conclusion of the Treaty, A conspiracy against the Queen Mother at Angoulesme discovered. a Powdermaker of Limousin came, and made an offer of his person to such, as he very well knew were enemies both to the Queen, and the Duke of Espernon, undertaking to insinuate himself into the Castle of Angoulesme, and to fire the Powder in the Magazine; the quantity whereof was so great, as must infallibly have blown up the whole Town, with the Castle, and have reduced them both to ashes: Which fellow, though taken in the manner, and upon the point to execute his cursed determination, had nevertheless no greater punishment for his crime, than bare imprisonment, and that of a few days only, the Queen, it should seem, desiring no other satisfaction, than that of having escaped the danger, nor permitting he should so much as be put to the * viz. The Wrack. Question, that she might not be obliged to an animosity against those who had either suggested to him the thought, or encouraged him in the execution of so damnable a design: So that the Treaty received no interruption by this practice, Bethune by his dexterity, and prudence, bringing it in the end to a happy conclusion. All things therefore being resolved upon, the King (desiring that those assurances, had been given to the Queen his Mother by his Agent, should be further confirmed to her by some person of eminent condition and Authority, sent to her on his behalf) dispatched away the Cardinal de la Rochefoucault, whom he knew to be a man of great conduct, and exceedingly acceptable to her. The Duke, beginning from this time forward to live after the rate of a man reconciled to his Prince, would do all the Honour he could to his Ministers; and therefore treated the Cardinal, and Bethune with a magnificence that tasted nothing of the incommodities of the late War: The Duke de Luines also desirous to regain the Queen's favour, The Queen Mother complemen●ed from Court. And the Duke of Espernon. and to satisfy her that he intended for the future really to become her Servant, sent to her Brantes his younger Brother, and since Duke of Luxembourg, to assure her thereof; by whom he also sent very civil, and obliging Letters to the Duke of Espernon: to which the Marriage that was celebrated at this time betwixt the Prince of Piedmont since Duke of Savoy, and Madam Christina of France, having given this Prince, together with Prince Thomas his Brother, occasion also to come pay their respects to the Queen; her Court seemed, in that little place, little inferior to the Kings at Paris. The change of her fortune invited moreover every day new Servants over to her, every one now appearing as zealous to obtain her favour, as they had before been shy, and cold in embracing her interest, and engaging in her quarrel. Upon which occasion the Duke of Espernon, though very much incommodated with the expense of this War (maintained almost throughout at his cost, and by his interest) endeavoured nevertheless all he could to turn the best side outward, pouring out himself in so many magnificences, The Duke of Espernon's magnificence. as perhaps he never had, in his most flourishing condition, so fair an opportunity of showing the greatness of his mind, and fortune. After having lodged the Princes of Savoy in the Palace belonging to the Bishop of Angoulesme, furnished throughout with his own rich Hangings, embossed with Silver and Gold, he entertained them with the pleasure of hunting a Stag, presenting them with two very beautiful Coursers, he had supplied them with for that Chase. After which he treated them three several times with so much splendour, and magnificence, that it could hardly have been greater at Paris. The Tables which were forty times covered, were at every covering served with five several Courses; neither was the profusion less at the entertainment of the Cardinal de la Rochefoucault, and Brantes, wherein if the excess made the Duke's liberality highly esteemed, it gave no less reputation to that little Country, which could of itself furnish all sorts of provision in so great abundance. It was not by the Cardinal de la Rochefoucault alone that the Queen Mother was complemented from the King, and assured of his good inclinations, and affection to her; Luines who had a desire so soon as was possible to allure her from Angoulesme, sending moreover thither le Pere Berulle, at that time General of the Congregation of the Oratory, and since Cardinal, to settle her mind in a full confidence, and security. This Father, a man of great Virtue, and no less Capacity, was very acceptable to the Queen, and in no less esteem with the Duke; to whom he had another quality of itself sufficient to commend him, which was his near relation to Precedent Seguier, the Duke's most intimate friend. After this person had disposed the Queen, so soon as she could, to come to the King, he afterwards treated at great liberty, and freedom with the Duke in the behalf of the Favourite, from whom he delivered him other Letters full of affectionate expressions; promising him withal in his name all sorts of good Offices, and Service; to which the Duke having answered with the same civility, the Queen was in all appearance likely to be very secure, and the Duke very well used for the time to come, whose discontents, as they had been the occasion of the War, their satisfaction ought in all probability to have settled the Peace of the Kingdom; though notwithstanding this fair outside of Affairs we shall see things fall out quite contrary in the ensuing year. But to go on with the Subject in hand, The Duke of Espernon sends a dispatch to the King by the Archbishop of Tholouze. the Duke, seeing all things now perfectly reconciled, conceived it very fit for him to write to the King, to excuse what was passed; which he accordingly did, and indeed in terms of very great submission, and respect, though nevertheless far from any meanness, or so much as any acknowledgement of the least offence: Wherein he represented to his Majesty, that having obeyed the Queen his Mother, whom he had ever known passionately solicitous of the Kingdom's prosperity, he never so much as imagined, that the reverence he should pay to a person so nearly related to him could be reputed for a Crime: That although in the very act of taking Arms (to which he found himself obliged by an inevitable necessity) he might possibly have given his Majesty some distaste, he nevertheless conceived he had by his behaviour therein so amply justified his good intention, that no impression ought to remain in his Royal Breast, but what should be to his advantage: That he could confidently say, that without so much as ever reflecting upon his own grievances, and disgrace, he had governed his passion from resolutions that might evidently enough have succeeded; wherein he had sufficiently manifested the Reverence he bore to his Majesty's Name, and Arms, though in the hands of his own particular enemies: That he called all good Frenchmen to the test, whether ever his own interest, or animosity had transported him to any action contrary to his duty; and whether he had not ever preserved his fidelity unspotted, and pure, during all the disorders of this Kingdom: That he had now remaining but a short time to live, and that he should himself conclude he had already lived too long, could he find himself guilty of the least thought contrary to his Majesty's Service, and his own Duty: That his Conscience being clear in that particular, he demanded no other recompense for his Services passed, than only a little repose in his old age; expecting an occasion wherein he might honourably die for his Majesty's Service: which was the conclusion of his Letter. Dated at Angoulesme the 7th. of june, 1619. The Archbishop of Tholouze his Son was dismissed away with this dispatch, who had also another Letter for the Duke de Luines, in answer to those the Duke had received before. The Queen in the mean time was preparing for her departure, but her equipage being not to be made ready so soon as was desired at Court, where she was with great impatience expected, the Duke de Monbazon, Father-in-law to Luines, had yet time to come kiss her Majesty's hands, which was nevertheless, by giving her new and greater assurances of all the good usage she could desire, to press her with the soon to part from Angoulesme, The Queen Mother departs from Angoulesme to go towards the King. and to separate herself from the Duke. In the beginning of August therefore, according to the Favourites desire, she departed from Angoulesme; in which Voyage the Duke only attended her to the borders of his own Government, not caring to engage himself nearer to a Court, to which he was so lately reconciled; where the Queen at his taking leave, after many gracious expressions of the infinite obligation she had to him, The Queens parting with the Duke, her compliments, and Present. presented him with a Ring of very great value; together with a request that he would continually wear it for her sake, as he did almost to his death: This Ring was a Diamond cut into a heart, and is at this day reputed one of the finest and cleanest for its size in France; and this was all the Recompense he received for his Service he had done the Queen, and for above two hundred thousand Crowns he was out of purse upon that account, which nevertheless was more than he expected in the condition she then was; having proposed to himself in the undertaking no other acknowledgement, and reward, than the honour to serve her effectually, and well upon this occasion. The Queen after her departure from Angoumois, arrived in a few days at Cousieres in Touraine, a house belonging to the Duke of Monbazon; where Luines (accompanied (like a Favourite) with many persons of very great quality) came first to wait upon her, complementing her with the greatest civility, and respect imaginable, as he was also very graciously received. And here the Queen, who had no mind to be kept any longer at a distance from the King her Son, endeavoured with Luines (and that with all the insinuation, and artifice her haughty and imperious nature would permit) to remove those difficulties, which, as they had been the causes of their former separation, were most likely to oppose their concurrence now. The next day after her arrival, The King and Queen Mother come to an interview. the King with all his Royal household came also to Cousieres, where at their first interview there was nothing but mutual manifestations of great affection, and tenderness on both sides: from whence their Majesties went the same day to Tours, where for some days they continued together; but in the end, after all this dissembled kindness, the King returning towards Paris, left the Queen more dissatisfied to see herself obliged to go to Angers, after so many assurances that had been given her she should no more depart from Court, From whence she departs dissatisfied. than she had been before pleased with these demonstrations of Honour and Respect, wherewith they had endeavoured to deceive her credulity, and to flatter her sincere intention. From thenceforward therefore she so far resented Loins his ill usage, The Queen Mother disposed to a new War. as to meditate a revenge, and how by a second War to procure, what by this first Peace, she saw, she could not obtain; neither was the Bishop of Luçon (become now absolute with her) sorry to see her so disposed: He considered, that whilst his Mistress remained thus excluded from Court, her power being so small, his could not consequently be very great; a consideration that made this aspiring spirit, who already had proposed to himself no less than the Government of the Kingdom, suffer, if possible, with greater impatience, than the Queen herself, those obstacles that he saw were opposed to the level of his haughty Ambition, and vast designs. Animated therefore with these reflections, he began to labour a good intelligence betwixt such, as he knew were dissatisfied with the present Government, to reunite them in the Queen's Interest, as discontented as they: Neither was it any hard matter to win many over to her side, the happy issue the Duke of Espernon had single, and alone, procured to this Princess' Affairs, having got him so great a reputation, that the major part of the great ones of the Kingdom made no great difficulty of engaging in a cause, they had seen so easily, and by so little means to succeed. Of this number was the Count de Soissons, and the Countess his Mother, the Dukes of Longueville, and Vandosme, the Grand Prior of France, the Dukes of Mayenne, and Retz, with many other Princes, and Lords of very eminent condition. Had the Duke of Espernon not been concerned in the first business, he could never have been drawn into this; so many confederates of almost equal quality, giving him to apprehend more from their ill intelligence betwixt one another, than he could reasonably hope from their union: but the Queen, who reposed her chiefest confidence in him, who had already made trial of his Service, and found it so successful to her, did so ply him with reiterated favours, and entreaties, that he could not handsomely avoid engaging in her behalf. Neither had he so long stood off, that he had fewer particular grievances than the rest; but having engaged his Faith to the Duke de Luines, it would have been almost impossible to have persuaded him to break his word, had not Luines himself given the first example: and on that side it was, that the Queen assaulted the Duke, by representing to him the non-performances of those things had been promised, and that as it had been principally through his assistance she had obtained all that had been granted to her, she expected he should see the Articles of the Treaty fulfilled; endeavouring to persuade him, that his own honour was no less interested therein, than her satisfaction. And that he might the better taste her reasons, she failed not to prepossess him with all sorts of civilities, and favour, honouring him with some presents, whereof one was a very fine Watch, set all over with Diamonds, and very curiously wrought; which she accompanied with a Letter as kind, as could possibly be writ upon such an occasion, wherein, amongst other obliging expressions she told him: That the Diamonds, wherewith it was embellished, were not more firm than her affection, and that he might assure himself the Services she had received from his generosity, should ofter come into her memory, than the hand of that Watch should point out hours every day: To which words (which were, it seems, the way of writing at that time, and none of my invention) I have neither added, nor diminished: But by this compliment, and several other testimonies of affection, and esteem, the Queen having awaked the passion the Duke had to give her always all satisfaction, The Queen Mother reengages the Duke of Espernon in her quarrel. she gave him consecutively a full account of her determination, of all the persons of quality she had made to her party, and of the powerful means she intended to make use of to reinstate herself in that degree of honour, which was due to her Person, and Dignity: Whereupon the Duke considering this second action, as dependent upon the first, solemnly engaged himself, and made an absolute promise, once more to serve her. If the Queen was thus diligent to form, Anno 1620. and redintegrate her party, Luines, on the other side, was no less industrious now, than he had been before, The Duke de Luin●s endeavours to gain him first by la Croix le Bleré. to break and disunite it. He very well knew the Queen to be discontent, which she had herself so publicly professed; that could be no secret: He was moreover informed, that most of the great persons in the Kingdom had engaged with her; and though he doubted not, but that the Duke of Espernon, from whom she had for the time passed received so many good Offices, continued still his ancient fidelity to her; yet would he notwithstanding feel his pulse by la Croix de Bleré, whom he dispatched away to him to that purpose. This Gentleman therefore comes to the Duke to Angoulesme, in the time of the Carnaval; where he found him taken up with entertainments, that nothing relished of the meditation of an approaching War, making merry with the Company of the Town, which at this Festival was increased with several Families of the neighbouring Gentry. La Croix, who would by all means make use of his dexterity, to sound the Duke's intention, met with a person in him, that was not easy to be pried into; so that the Duke, after having discoursed with him, in general terms, of the Queen Mother's Interests and Affairs; and having returned a civil answer to Luines his Compliment, dismissed his Ambassador, perfectly instructed of what he concealed from none, and of what he did not care Luines himself should know. The first Essay having given the Favourite no great satisfaction, who already saw, that Affairs began to grow hot, with the season; that the Count de Soissons, with the Countess his Mother, had left the Court, that the Duke of Mayenne had done the same, and that the Duke of Longueville, and the Brothers of Vandosme were already in their Government in actual Arms: He would therefore be no longer in suspense, what he was to expect from the Duke of Espernon, who of all others he had the greatest mind to withdraw from the Queen Mother's Interest; well enough foreseeing, that if the youth and inexperience of most of the other Lords were not governed by his prudence, they would be easy enough to deal withal. And afterwards by T●iras, He therefore dispatched away Toiras (since Marshal of France) to treat with him obout this Affair. The Duke was then at his house of Plassac in Xaintonge (since famous for his disgraces) making private Levies, by the assistance of his Friends; to whom he had given instructions to make sure of their own people, without nevertheless telling them what they were to be employed about, till his further order. Toiras had here in Commission to tell him: That the Duke de Luines, absolutely relying upon his friendship since their late reconciliation, could not give credit to some reports he had heard to the contrary; that since that time he had not ●ail'd the least in any of the good Offices the Duke had required at his hands; that all his Commands, Pensions, and Assignments of Offices, had been in part already paid, and should suddenly be fully discharged: That for the future he should be maintained in all their functions, and privileges more advantageously, than hitherto he had ever been: That if yet all this fair dealing was too little to satisfy him, let him but say what he would have, and that Monsieur de Luines would endeavour to procure it for him: That in the mean time he only conjured him to separate himself from the Queen Mother's Interest, with whom he had now no reasonable pretence to engage: That he had already served her so well, and so worthily acquitted himself of all he had undertaken in her behalf, as thereby to acquire the esteem, and commendation of even his greatest enemies: That therefore he ought not to expose a reputation, wherein he had no rival, to the hazard of being overthrown, and blemished by some sinister disgrace: That all things had been performed, had been promised the Queen in the Treaty of Angoulesme; but that nothing could satisfy some ambitious spirits about her, who doubtless possessed her, she was not well used, if not permitted to rule in Chief. The Duke having given Toiras' audience for two days together, without declaring himself, and having entertained him by intervals with showing him some Garden Instruments, an employment wherein he said he intended to pass away the remainder of his life, he at last drew him aside, where he told him: That he was too brave a Gentleman to be otherwise dealt withal, than with a free, and open heart: That in truth he had some reason in his own particular (whatever might be said to the contrary) to complain of not having received, both as to his own, and his friends concerns, that satisfaction, whereof they had been so amply assured; instancing in some things, and amongst others the refusal of a Cardinal's Hat for the Archbishop of Tholouze his Son: but that he called God to witness) his own Interest should never tempt him into Arms: That he very well knew the mischiefs, and disorders attended a Civil War, which he had ever had in great horror; but that the Queen Mother having done him the honour to command his assistance in her removal from Blois, and having further honoured him by making use of his person, and those of his friends for the recovery of her Dignity, the violation of those things had been granted to her, must necessarily reflect as much upon him, if not more, than upon her Majesty herself: That notwithstanding he demanded nothing in his own behalf, let them only contrive how to satisfy the Queen, and that being done, he promised Mounsieur de Luines to be his friend, and Servant as much, and as inviolably as any person in the world. But in vain. With this frank declaration he dismissed ●oiras, not however without entertaining a very good opinion of his person, and parts, which he discovered under a very profound silence▪ and reservation; I never, to my remembrance, having observed any man to speak so little as this Gentleman. After his departure, The Queen Mothers second War. the Duke having intelligence, that the rest who were engaged in the Queen's party were already in Arms, he followed their example, and brought his Troops also into the Field: but all their Forces being now on foot there was no little debate in the Queen's Council, how they should dispose of her Majesty's person. The Duke of Mayenne, who had a very good Army in Guienne, moved with great fervency, that she might retire herself into his Government, where he had gathered together above eighteen hundred effective men: but the Duke of Espernon understanding his design was to be Master of the Queen's person, the better at her expense, and the Lords of her Party to make his own conditions, would by no means allow of that proposition; neither had there been no jealousy in the case, could he have approved that counsel; he considered that the Queen Mother's absence, and departure from Angers in so critical a juncture, would be interpreted a flight, which would very much discredit her Affairs, and by which occasion, besides the loss of reputation (wherein commonly consists the event of War) she would infallibly lose all the Provinces betwixt the Rivers of Loire, and Garonne, which were now wholly at her devotion, and might be disputed a great while. For which reasons he concluded it much better, and more advantageous to the Queen's Service, to unite those Forces he had, with those of the Duke of Mayenne, and to march them away to Angers to join with the Queen, who being reinforced with five and twenty thousand men at least, that they were able to make up betwixt them, would be in a capacity to reduce the Duke de Luines to reason; which ought to be the true intent of their Arms, and not the particular Interests of particular men; who, as they had only taken them up in her name, were to use them only for her Service. Doubtless had this latter advice been received, the King's Army would have found enough to do: But the Bishop of Luçon, who had no mind to have persons of the Duke's condition, and capacity, so near the Queen, for fear of falling from the place he had in her confidence, and esteem, could by no means consent either that she should depart from Angers, or that the Duke of Espernon should go thither to her. The knowledge he had of the Duke's free and unbyass'd humour, made him apprehend, he should be by him sometimes contradicted in his opinions, and by that means be no more absolute Master of the Queen's Counsels: so that dextrously spinning out the time, without coming to any positive resolution, the Duke grew weary of these delays, and unwilling to let his Forces unprofitably moulder away in Xaintonge, and Angoumois (Countries that yet smarted with the last years War) he departed thence to quarter them more commodiously in Limousin, where better provision was to be made both for Horse and Man. Whilst in the Queen Mother's Council they consumed the time in debates, without resolving what to do, the King, on the other side by the Prince of Condé's advice, The Queen's affairs have ill success. put his deliberations into prompt execution. The Duke de Luines very well informed of the Queen Mother's discontents, after the interview at ●ours, and satisfied, that, after the offence he had there given her, he was no more to expect her favour, resolved to secure himself under this Prince's Protection; wherein he thought he was so much the more safe from the Queen's revenge, by how much the Prince had himself reason to complain of the ill usage he had received under her administration; during whose Regency, Conchini had clapped him up in prison; from whence Luines, presently after the King's coming to Paris, got him released: An obligation, which, as it was great in itself, was soon after repaid with as grateful a return. The Prince had found by his own experience, what an influence the Royal name has upon all parts of the Kingdom, very well remembering how easy it had been for his Majesty to have suppressed him, when he retired from Court to Soissons, whither had the King followed him in person, with no more than the Regiment of his Guards only, he had infallibly reduced him to a necessity, either of submitting to his mercy, or of leaving the Kingdom: out of which observation he advised the King, suddenly to mount to Horse, and to go in person to Caen, which was the nearest of the revolted Cities; wherein what the Prince had so judiciously foreseen, as happily succeeded, Caen surrendering almost without any resistance, Prudent, who commanded there for the Grand Prior Vandosme, delivering it up almost so soon as summoned into his Majesty's hands. This little success having frighted all the other places of Normandy, that made any countenance of revolt, into their Duty, his Majesty immediately departed thence, to advance towards Angers; when being met by some Troops upon the way, and by them his Regiments of the French and Swiss Guards being reinforced, he caused le Pont de Cé, to be assaulted in his own presence; where almost in a moment, and after a very light dispute, all the Queen's Forces ran away, leaving the pass to the Enemy: by which disaster those who were about the Queen's person saw the error they had committed, in not calling the Duke of Espernon to her succour; it being not to be doubted, but that had she had a Captain of his experience and valour, to command upon that occasion, he● interests would have been much better defended. The Queen, after this blow being in the fright may be imagined, was fit to reject no overtures of Peace. She had indeed before this engagement made some demands, and proposed some conditions; but after this baffle her Army had received, she was now to submit to what law the Conqueror would impose upon her: The Queen accepts a Peace without condi●ion. Wherein all those who had engaged in her Party were abandoned to the King's mercy; but as for herself, she was permitted to come to Court. And that was as much as the Bishop of Luçon desired, which gave some occasion to say, that he held intelligence, and had contracted with the enemy before he came, that he had opposed the uniting of her Forces, and diverted such as were capable of command from coming to serve her, as being beforehand assured to obtain the sole condition he aimed at; which being granted, he cared not to leave the rest of her Majesty's Servants to shift for themselves: but this I shall not take upon me to affirm, though it was the common discourse at that time. The Duke had notice by a Gentleman, the Queen Mother purposely dispatched away to him, of her Reconciliation with the King; who finding him at St. Clau a Frontier of Limousin, to which place he was advanced with his Forces, he presently thereupon, without staying a more express Order from Court, or so much as thinking of any Capitulation for himself, dismissed all his Troops; insomuch that the Currier who afterwards brought him an express from the King, The Duke of Espernon la●s down his Arms. to lay down his Arms, found that, out of an entire confidence in his Majesty's Royal Bounty, he had already prevented his command, and put himself into a posture of absolute dependence upon his Grace, and Favour. Neither did the Duke think this act of his own particular obedience enough, And the Marquis de la Valette, by the command of the Duke his Father. unless he further commanded the Marquis de la Valette his Son (who had never stirred from Metz) to do the same. Upon the breaking out of this second War, as in the first, he had been there invested with a very considerable Army; neither had they failed, as before, to stir up the Inhabitants (whose inclinations commonly change with the fortune of those that command them) to mutiny against him. Of which practice the Marquis having intelligence on all hands, that the people had a design upon his person, and that despising his weakness, (who to spare their purses, and to win their affections, had forbore to quarter any Soldiers upon them) they talked loud of opening their Gates, and letting the King's Army into the City; he was constrained by the truth, and importance of this advice, to deal with some Captains of the old Regiments of that very Army that came against him: In the old body of which Army there were very few Officers who were not the Duke his Father's Creatures, and who stood not obliged to him for their Fortune, and Commands; whereof some fifteen or twenty deserted the Royal Arms, to go serve him in this extremity of danger; some sending him in Squadrons by their Sergeants, and others bringing over their whole Companies: so that by an act of honourable gratitude (the example whereof is not nevertheless to be altogether approved) they brought him over in one night above fifteen hundred men of the best Soldiers in the Army. With this relief (seeing the Town upon the point of a total Revolt) he attempted, by disarming the Inhabitants, to secure his own Fortune, which he accordingly performed, and that without any notable violence; for having disposed his men into the most advantageous Posts of the City, he made Proclamation that at the beat of Drum, upon a penalty imposed, every one should bring their Arms into the Bishop's Palace; After having preserved Metz by disarming the Inhabitants. which order being given, he himself accompanied with some five and twenty or thirty Gentlemen, mounted on horseback to be ready in such places, where he had information, some bustle was like to be; a precaution that was not altogether necessary, the people being so daunted at his resolution, as with a stupid silence, and sheepish tameness, with a submission greater now, than their insolence had been before, quietly giving up their Arms; by which means they remained incapable of executing any mischief, at least if (as it was evident enough) they yet retained a will to do it. Yet would not the Duke of Espernon make any other advantage of this success, The Duke of Mayenne refuses to accept the Peace, and endeavours to engage the Duke, of Espernon in his discontents. than thereby the better to manifest to the King his submission, and the confidence he reposed in his Royal Goodness; resigning himself up wholly into his hands: but the Duke of Mayenne would not do so, who on the contrary fearing lest the Duke de Luines, whom he had highly provoked, having him at his mercy, should take some notable revenge of the injuries, he had done him, could not so soon resolve to lay down his Arms. He could much rather have been content to have possessed the Duke with the same apprehensions, and to have engaged him with him in some violent extreme, thereby to procure their own conditions: to which purpose he also sent to sound his inclination, and to represent to him their common danger, if they did not provide for the security of their lives, and fortunes, before they parted with their Swords out of their hands: but the Duke sent him word again, Who refuses to stir. That his resolution was already taken, and that as he had taken up arms for no particular interest of his own, so he had laid them down so soon as he knew the Queen was satisfied: That he hoped his Majesty's Clemency would easily extend itself to all his Subjects, who should not obstinately persist in their disobedience: That therefore he could give Monsieur de Mayenne no other advice, than that he had taken himself; which, though it should not succeed well with him, he had rather be ill used whilst he could justify himself innocent, than after having committed a fault that would render him criminal beyond all excuse. By which answer the Duke of Mayenne seeing he had set up his rest in this determination, and finding himself too weak alone to wrestle with the King's Name and Power, he was in the end fain to submit, and to return to his Duty: wherein nevertheless his Majesty, who knew after what manner both the one, and the other proceeded, as highly commended the Duke of Espernon, as he blamed the Duke of Mayenne. One would have said that this great disorder in the Queen Mother's Affairs, wherein so many persons, and those of so eminent condition were engaged, only happened to set a greater value, and lustre upon the Duke of Espernon's conduct. In the first War, alone, and unassisted by any, he so managed the few Forces he had, as without giving ground to his adversaries, he ever kept himself in a posture to resist them, and so as in the end to obtain reasonable Conditions, not only for the Queen, but also for himself, and his friends, without ever submitting to his enemy's discretion; whereas in this there was no reservation for any, insomuch that of all the great men who were engaged in this last business, there was not one who lay not open, and exposed to the utmost severity of the King's justice, had he been pleased to have proceeded against them. 'Tis true notwithstanding that his Majesty in his Clemency pardoned every one; but it was merely an effect of his own goodness, without any obligation upon him, either by writing, or the least promise at all. The King assured of the Duke of Espernon's obedience, and finding by his late signal advantages, how much his own presence had contributed to the success of his own Affairs, taking his measures from thence, what he might promise to himself by the same method in other occurrences, he resolved for the future to appear in his own Person upon all occasions of importance, the better thereby to establish his Royal Authority in all parts of his Kingdom. The King goes into Guienne and Bearne. The Affairs of Bearne therefore being of such a nature, as that his presence seemed to be very necessary there, he determined to move that way, and even to go over into it, if occasion should be. In order whereunto being advanced from P●ictou, as far as Xaintonge, he was pleased to permit that the Duke of Espernon should come to him to make his Apology for what had passed upon the borders of his own Government. His Majesty therefore was no sooner come to Chizay, but that the Duke de Be●legarde (who was very well at Court, and exceedingly solicitous of the Duke his Kinsman's Interest) came to see the Duke at Aunay, to assure him he might be very kindly received by the King. The Duke had never so much as desired any such security, so confident he had been in the King's bounty, and his own deportment; nevertheless confirmed in the hope of so gracious a reception, from so good a hand, they departed together from the Duke's Lodgings, The Duke of Espernon presents himself to the King, and asks his pardon. to go directly to the King's: Where the Duke was no sooner seen to enter, but all the Court flocked to the novelty; so that I have heard the Duke say, that seeing the crowd there was to observe his reception, and to hear what he would say for his excuse, he strained his voice much louder than he used to do, to satisfy the curiosity of the standers by; telling the King in few words: That he never thought it a disservice to his Majesty to serve the Queen his Mother; but that since he had been so unhappy, as to have incurred his Majesty's displeasure, he most humbly begged his Pardon; protesting that the Grace he should be pleased to grant him upon this occasion, should be the last of this nature he would ever ask of him, so long as he had life, there being no pretence, nor consideration whatsoever, that should ever have the power to separate him from any interest, wherein he should see his Majesty's name, and person engaged. A promise that he from that time forward inviolably observed, as we shall hereafter see. The Duke was kneeled down when he first began to speak, but the King raising him at the first word, and embracing him at the end of this short speech; his Majesty replied: That he was confident he would be as good as his word, And is very well received. receiving him with great demonstrations of favour, and esteem: When after having entertained him some time, his Majesty dismissed him that he might go visit the Duke de Luines; betwixt whom at their meeting there passed great civilities on both sides, with many assurances of reciprocal affection. And that very day the Duke executed his command of Colonel in the King's Lodgings, receiving orders from the King's own mouth to carry them to the Regiment of Guards. The next day his Majesty commanded him to go prepare his entry into St. jean d' Angely, a City in his Government, but held by those of the Religion, and into which he had never till now been received; so that he saw himself at the same time, not only restored to his old Commands, but also by a particular favour from his Majesty, authorised in places, where, as yet he had never been. The Duke was surprised at so extraordinary, and so unexpected favours but much more when he understood it was in part, through Rucellay's good Offices, that he received them; who though they had not parted very kindly (as you may have observed) could not nevertheless forbear upon all occasions to magnify the Duke's generosity and virtue, and to manifest the desire he had to be reconciled to his good opinion. Rucellay had great interest at Court, the Duke de Luines reposed ● great confidence in him, and was the rather inclined to credit all the good things he said of the Duke, by how much his testimony (upon the terms they then stood) was no ways to be suspected. The Duke anticipated by so many good Offices, was as careful to let Rucellay know how exceeding kindly he took them at his hands; so that from a violent feud, their hot spirits being reunited in a very particular friendship, the Duke received very great assistance from Rucellay, in an Affair wherein he was very highly concerned. And that was the re-establishment of those Captains, who had forfeited their Commands by putting themselves into Metz with the Marquis de la Valette. The Court could not suffer an act of that dangerous example to escape unpunished; and on the contrary the Duke pressed an oblivion of that Affair with greater fervency than he had ever done any concern of his own; wherein I have often heard him acknowledge his obligation to Rucellay, by whose solicitation he at last obtained his desire: Courbon, Reals, Verdelin, Boussonniere, and some others of very great merit were restored to their Commands, though it was but to deprive the Duke the sooner of so many worthy friends; who were scarce re-established in their Commands, when willing to make amends for the fault they had committed by some notable testimony of their fidelity, and valour upon the first occasion should present itself, they unfortunately perished in that brave design, leaving the Duke infinitely afflicted, that he could not oblige them, but to their ruin. From Xaintonge the King passed over into Guienne, wherein though his Majesty had no resolution of proceeding so far as Bearne; yet was it necessary he should advance to Bourdeaux, to dissolve the powerful Faction was formed in that Province in favour of the Duke of Mayenne, which had sufficiently discovered itself in the great Levies, and Provisions of War, The Duke receives a promise of his Majesty's coming to his house at Cadillas. that had there been made. In this Voyage the Duke had hopes of seeing his Majesty at his house of Cadillac, and indeed the Duke of Luines had promised him he should; a favour he ought so much the more to covet, as it would manifest to all the world his perfect reconciliation with the King his Master: So that he whom every one the year before concluded utterly lost in the Queen Mother's Affairs, seeing him now restored to a greater degree of reputation, and favour, than perhaps he had ever been, could not but admire his Conduct, and attribute as much to his Prudence, as his Fortune; which, it should seem, had only strewed those difficulties in his way, that they might by him be the more gloriously overcome. His Majesty con●nuing his way through Guienne, took occasion to call at Blaye; from whence he removed Lussan, Viscount de Aubeterre, to recompense him with the staff of a Marshal of France; placing Brantes (since Duke of Luxembourg in the right of his Wife) in his stead. Whilst these things were in doing, the Duke of Espernon (who attended his Majesty in this Voyage) took the opportunity to go prepare his house for his reception; Where he is magnificently entertained. wherein he ordered all things so admirably well, and with such magnificence, that his Majesty could hardly have been better entertained in any part of the Kingdom. The noble Furniture, wherewith this house did abound, was now all brought out: The King's Apartment hung round with Hangings embossed all over with Gold, as also ten Chambers more were furnished with the same, to which the Beds of Cloth of Gold and Embroidery were richly suited; neither was the delicacy, rarity, or plenty of provisions inferior to this outward Pomp. All the Favourites Ministers, and others of the greatest quality at Court, were commodiously lodged in this stately House, and the Provisionary Officers there found what was not elsewhere to be seen in the Kingdom; which was a vast series of Offices under ground, so large, and so well fitted with lights, that they were astonished at so prodigious an extent of Accommodations; which are indeed, if not the chiefest ornament, at least the greatest convenience of a Building. After his Majesty had ftaid two days at Cadillac, The King departs from Cadillac to go into Bearne. where his whole Court had been magnificently treated, he parted thence to continue his Journey towards Bearne. He was made to believe, that the Council of this little Country would think fit to submit to his Royal pleasure, without obliging him to perform that Voyage; to quicken which resolution his Majesty had passed the River of Garonne, which, though when on the other side he was advanced no more than a League only beyond Cadillac, he thought nevertheless he had done a great deal in passing so great a River with an Army, and all the equipage of his Court▪ The Ministers, who had a great aversion to this ugly journey, would have been very glad, that Affairs might have been concluded there without going any further: but in the end how averse soever they were to it, they must undergo the trouble. The King went thither, where his presence produced the same effect it had done in other places; he overran all this little Province, seizing as he passed of Navarrens, And reduces that Province to their obedience. the strongest place in it, as he did also of Ortez, and Olleron, principal Cities of that Country; he subverted all their ancient customs, restored the Bishop, and other ecclesiastics to their Estates, and Dignities; took away the administration of the Affairs of the Country from those of the Reformed Religion, and re-established his own Authority: but he left the Government of the Province in the hands of the Marquis de la Force since Marshal of France; who, impatient to see his Authority cut so short by these alterations, could hardly forbear till the King was got back to Paris, from reducing things again to the same posture they were in before. He was very confident that his Majesty, who had already tried the ill ways of Bearne, would never be advised by his Ministers to undertake a second Journey into that Country, for the resettlement of his Affairs. He knew that the Huguenot Faction were ready to find his Majesty enough to do nearer home, and did not believe, that without his immediate presence they could compel him to any thing he had not a mind to in his own Government, where his Authority was established not only by a long habitude he had there contracted; but much more by a passionate concurrence of the whole Body, and of all the Orders of the Province, who agreed with him in the same Religion. He therefore laboured all Winter to drive out the Garrisons of Ortez, Which nevertheless continue● but a short space. and Olleron; so that excepting Navarrens, that was kept by the Marquis de Poianne, whom the King had left Governor there, he overthrew whatever his Majesty had done, shuffling all things again into their former confusion. The Duke of Espernon passed away the same Winter in Guienne, and the greatest part thereof in the County of Esparre, which he had purchased from the Heirs of the late Marshal de M●tignon, a Territory in truth of great beauty, and vast extent; though the Revenue was but small, by reason the Estate was not well understood: to remedy which the Duke caused it to be surveyed in his own presence, a good husbandry, that was not unprofitable to him, though this Domestic advantage was not the only satisfaction he received in that Country. In the beginning of the ensuing year he there received news of the promotion of the Archbishop of Tholouze his Son to the Dignity of a Cardinal: Anno 1621. For as the refusal of this favour had caused the former breach betwixt him, The Archbishop of Tholouz●, made Cardinal. and the Duke de Luines, so did the Favourite conceive that the surest tye by which he could bind the Duke to his friendship, would be to procure him that Addition; wherein he was nothing deceived, it being impossible he could any way oblige him more. The Duke looked upon this, as the supreme height, and accomplishment of all the prosperities he had left to desire; he had already by his Merit, and Services, united a considerable number of the greatest Honours, and bravest Commands of the Kingdom in his own person, which he had moreover procured in survivance for his Posterity: so that nothing remained to render him fully satisfied with his Fortune, save only to obtain one of the chiefest Dignities of the Church for him he had designed to that profession. Yet was not this the sole testimony of favour, The Duke's expedition into Bear●●. the Duke received by this reconciliation with the Court Mignion; who being at a loss for some person of great Quality, and Reputation to reduce Bearne (which the Marquis de la Force had excited to new Commotions) to their Duty, and Obedience, and casting his eye upon the Duke of Espernon, as a disinterested person, and capable of the greatest undertaking, he proposed him to the King for this employment; who well approving of his choice, the charge of this expedition (wherein his Majesty seemed more than ordinarily concerned) was forthwith committed to his care. Neither, The Duke receives his Commission. if his Majesty conferred herein a signal honour upon the Duke, can it be denied, but that he made as fortunate a choice for himself, and for the advantage of his Affairs. The Duke received his Order at Cadillac by la Saludie, which was only in paper, without any assignation either of men, or money, wherewithal to begin the work, but a great clutter of Commissions, and dispatches only; so that the whole weight of the King's design leaned absolutely upon his Interest and Wisdom; which it was happy were so considerable, things had not else succeeded as they did: but the Duke had so great a desire to confirm the King in the good opinion he had already entertained of his Loyal Intentions, that there was nothing he would not attempt, to let his Majesty see, he was neither unworthy of this present Favour, nor unmindful of his former Grace, and Goodness. Having therefore wisely considered, that diligence must strike the greatest stroke in this Affair, and that should he give the Marquis de la Force leisure to gather together the Forces of the Huguenot Faction, who were already preparing to join in their common defence, he should engage himself in a long, and difficult War; he departed from Cadillac six days after he had received the King's Command. The Duke begins his Journey. The first day (accompanied only with the Servants of his own Family) he went to lie at Langon, another of his own Demesnes, from whence he proceeded without stay as far as Mont de Marsan, where he had appointed the Rendezvous for those he had invited to serve his Majesty upon this occasion. He had before he departed from his own house writ to divers persons in Guienne, and in his own Governments of Xaintonge, and Angoumois to join with him; of which so few failed to come in, that at the Rendezvous, a handsomer, nor a more numerous body of Gentlemen Volunteers to follow a Subject, and serving out of his own Government, has hardly been seen: A great number of Gentlemen come in to follow the Duke of Esp●rnon in this expedition. Insomuch that I have heard the Quarter-Masters say they had in their Muster-Roll at least fourteen hundred Gentlemen: by which it may be guessed, what a number of Attendants so many Masters must necessarily bring in with them. But that which is most remarkable herein, is, that most of these were of Guienne, where the Duke had nothing to do, and lived only in the quality of a private person; and that though the Duke of Mayenne (who could not without an eye of Envy see so many Forces drawn out of his Government to serve under any other than himself) did (it may be imagined) all he could to dissuade people from going in; the conflux was nevertheless so great, that it seemed the Province had sent all the brave Gentlemen it could make to attend the Duke in this expedition. And these were indeed almost all the Forces he had; neither had he so many Foot, as Gentlemen in his Army: 'Tis true that Campmaster Vignoles, who commanded some Troops in Guienne, had orders to bring them over to him; and that himself (as has been said) had Commissions in his hands, for the raising new Levies; but his diligence supplied the place of a good Army, by which he also effected more, than he could have done with greater preparations: all the other Forces he made use of, being only ten Companies of the Regiment of Picardy, that he found Quartered about Ortez: so that it is no less to be wondered at he should undertake so hard a task, with so small means to effect it, than that he did so gloriously bring about his design. The Marquis de la Force no sooner had intelligence that the Duke was coming against him, The Marquis de la Force sends to ●●vert the Duke ●●om com●ing into Bearne. but that (surprised to have an Enemy of his experience to deal withal, and much more at the diligence wherewith he saw him hasten to execute his Commission, by which he also saw his designs would be overthrown) he sent the Baron of Arros, To entreat him not to be too precipitous in the execution of the King's Commands, and to remonstrate to him, that he was ready to do whatever his Majesty should please to appoint: That he had already sent a dispatch to the King to that effect, and that he hoped the Court would be so satisfied with his submissions, as to spare him the trouble of a tedious Journey, his friends a great deal of inconvenience, and the people the disturbance, and oppression a War must of necessity bring upon them; adding withal the ancient friendship, and alliance betwixt them: To which the Duke (who was already advanced far on his way) returned answer: That having undertaken that Voyage upon no other account than his Majesty's command, he should be very ready to return upon the first orders he should receive: That except what concerned the interest of his Majesty's Service, he was Monsieur de la Force's Friend, and Servant: That he had not sought that employment against him, and that he should be exceeding glad to hear his Majesty was satisfied with his submissions: But that till than he should not delay a minute the execution of the Orders he had received; no consideration either of his own, his friends, or any other person under the Sun, being of force to divert him in the least from his Duty. This first Embassy having therefore taken no effect, it was soon seconded by another, of which one Charles the principal Minister of Bearne was the Bearer. This person, in the quality of a Deputy from the Country, was sent to represent to him the sterility of the Country, the poverty of the Inhabitants, and difficulty of the ways, and the resolution of the people to make a smart resistance, should they (who were at present in as good a disposition as could be desired) be urged to the last extremes: but the Duke having flatly told him, that the end of his expedition was to cause the King to be obeyed, and to chastise all those that should rebel against him: He was sent back very much astonished at so brisk a reply. The Marquis de la Force that perhaps expected no better a success from his deputations (having been well enough acquainted with the Duke of Espernon, to know he was not a man easy to be imposed upon) would therefore make what preparation he could to oppose him: but he found so general a fear, and astonishment among the people, that he evidently saw it was to hazard his own ruin, should he expect the Duke's coming into his Government. The sudden terror of the Bearnois. The Bearnois had no sooner heard the Duke's name, but that they gave themselves for lost; their haughty, and declared insolence, with which they had a few days before overthrown the King's Order, and trodden his Authority under foot, and their high Vaunts, that they would defend their Religion, and their Country's liberty to the last man, were converted into a Panic terror; so that on a sudden whole Cities were left desolate, men of the best quality among them, with their Wives, and Families, seeking their safety in their flight, out of a just apprehension of all the punishments an offended Prince might reasonably inflict upon a mutinous, and disobedient people. In this general consternation of the Bearnois the Duke drew near to Ortez, the first City in Rebellion he met upon his way; the Castle whereof was of itself very strong, and had of late been moreover fortified, and furnished with all necessaries of War, As also of the Soldiery. which also shut up the pass of the whole Country, and was of so advantageous a situation, as was very easy to be defended: but those within, what countenance soever they had before put on of a resolute defence, no sooner heard the Duke had sent for Cannon from Navarrens to force them, but they presently surrendered without staying till they could be brought up. This success was of no little importance to the Duke, who, had he met with much opposition in this first enterprise, having but ten Foot Companies wherewith to form a Siege, no Officers to serve his Artillery, little Ammunition, no Victual, Money, or any other means to subsist four days in a place; had been in great danger of being stopped from making any further progress into the Country. All which difficulties though he had beforehand very well considered, and foreseen, he would notwithstanding try the experiment, knowing very well, that in matters of War, all was not always to be expected from an enemy, he either could, or should do. And from this success he took his measures of what he might promise to himself in reducing the other Garrisons; nothing doubting from that time forwards, but he should bring all his other erterprises to an honourable and successful issue. As the business of Ortez had given the Duke very good hopes of his expedition, so it totally overthrew those of the Marquis de la Force, who no sooner had intelligence of the surrender of this place, but that he made haste to be gone, that he might not be hemmed in with the Duke's Forces; whilst the Duke on the other side, to make his advantage of the astonishment the Marquis his flight must of necessity leave the whole Country in, advanced with all diligence from Ortez to Olleron, where some fortifications had lately been made, which were also at his appearing deserted, without the least show of opposition. An unfortunate fellow, a Soldier, and a Provençal, had been the main director in this work, where he suffered himself to be surprised; so that the Duke, who was obliged to make some example, was not sorry this wretch should expiate for all the rest, as accordingly he did, being condemned by a Council of War, and hanged at his own Barricado, where the poor fellow at his death lamented the ill fortune he had to be born a Provençal; declaring he was sacrificed to the Duke's antiquated hatred to those of his Country, and that his Bitth was his greatest Crime, though it was nevertheless altogether untrue. After this there being neither judgement to be passed, nor execution to be done, The Duke quiets Bearne in a very short time. the Duke went to Nay, to Sallies, to Sauveterre, and lastly to Pau; where the fear of his severity, that had before frighted every one from his habitation, being converted into an absolute confidence in his Clemency, and Goodness, every one returned to his own home. The Cities, which at his coming had been almost totally deserted, were on a sudden re inhabited; insomuch that from that time forward all the Duke had to do, was only to receive the tenders, and protestations of their obedience, and to set down some Rules for their Civil Regiment; which was ordered with so much Justice, and Wisdom, or so fortunately at least, the equality of all things was so entirely preserved, and he took such care to reconcile the Interests of Religion (wherein the incompatibility had been so great before, and had with so much heat fomented their divisions) that both parties were satisfied with the equal shares he divided betwixt them in the public administration; since which time there has been no revolt, nor commotion in that Province, it having ever since continued in peace and obedience, under the Justice of the Duke's Discipline, which is there inviolately observed to this day. And all this was performed in less than three week's time, his Journey thither, his stay there, and his return thence, being in all not two months' expedition; neither did it cost the King twelve thousand Livers, And at very little expense. I having seen the Account of the Army, which did not in all arise to that little sum. 'Tis true withal that the Duke reckoned nothing upon his own account, contenting himself with causing some Officers to be paid, that at his instance had served upon this occasion. So that, by the influence of his own name only, he so settled this Province in his Majesty's obedience, that it is at this time, however the most remote, perhaps the most quiet, and obedient Member of his Kingdom. If the Duke was careful to keep his own hands clean, in what concerned the King's Interest, he was no less solicitous to keep others from embezzeling the Marquis de la Force's Goods; who had fled from Pau in so great haste, that he had left his Wardrobe, Cabinets, A generous act of the D●ke of Espern●n. and Papers at random; of all which the Duke took care to have an inventory taken, leaving them safe, sealed up in the custody of a person in whom he knew the Marquis reposed an entire trust: Which being done, he returned loaden with glory, and applause; but nothing enriched, either with the King's Money, or the Estates of the people, not so much as of any of those his Majesty had declared to be his enemies, and consequently were lawful prey. His Majesty thought the Duke to be most busy in the Affairs of Bearne, when he received news, The Duke of Espernon returns out of Bearne to the Siege of St. Ie●n de Angely. that he had already done his work, and was about to return. Neither could the Duke, knowing his Majesty was already grappled with those of the Religion, and had laid Siege to St. jean d' Angely, take any rest, till he had travelled from the remotest part of the Kingdom, to expose his life for his Service, in those occasions wherein he saw his Majesty's Person, and Honour so far engaged: The Leaguer had been near a month set down, when the Duke arrived, and the King's Forces were so much cooled in their first ardour, that in all appearance the enterprise was not over-suddenly to be effected; when the Duke's arrival very much changed the face of Affairs: Nor do I add this to attribute any thing to him, that is not justly his due; he has so much honour besides, I do not need to forge so small an addition to his Fame: neither on the other side, the thing being perfectly true, ought he to be deprived of any particle of his right. The Duke having at his arrival received from the King the applause due to his conduct in this expedition of Bearne, and a Declaration from his own mouth of his Majesty's high satisfaction, whereof he had before received very favourable testimonies in the several dispatches had been sent him: He humbly entreated his Majesty, that he might for the future have the honour to serve in his own Army, and attending upon his own Person; and that he would further be pleased, wherein his Majesty should vouchsafe to employ his Service, that he might have the privilege to receive his Commands immediately from his own mouth: a favour that he easily obtained. Now the reason why the Duke made this request, was, because a little before the King's departure from Paris, The King's great favour and justice to the Duke of Espernon, at his return from his expedition of Bearne. the Duke de Luines (as Favourite, not being satisfied with his Fortune, unless he raised it above all the other great men of the Kingdom) had made suit to be honoured with the Dignity of Constable of France: to arrive at which degree (which he might well foresee would create him much envy) having had occasion to make use of the Duke de l' Esdiguieres, he would manifest his Gratitude for the good Offices he had received at his hands upon that occasion, by dividing with him the Employments of this brave Command; wherein reserving to himself the honour and emoluments of the place: The Duke de l' Esdiguieres, under the Title of Marshal General de Camp, executed all the Functions, and trouble of it. The Duke of Espernon therefore, finding at his coming to this Siege so many Commanders in Chief, represented to his Majesty: That since he had first had the honour to be in Armies, he had never been commanded by any but the Kings his Masters, nor had ever received Orders, but from them: That therefore iin the age he now was, he should be very froward, and refractory, to lose that advantage, and to be subjected to the Marshal de l' Esdiguieres, whose worth, though he had in high honour and esteem, he believed nevertheless, that the Marshal himself would not pretend to be above him: That he was both an older General, an older Officer of the Crown, and of much longer standing, than the other, in all the Dignities to which they had both been advanced; and that therefore he assured himself his Majesty would not deprive him of a preeminence due to his age, whereunto the Kings his Predecessors had raised him, and wherein they had so long maintained him, which was the only thing he had to desire of his Majesty, that he might live satisfied in his Service. Neither did the King ●tick frankly to gratify him in his request, which was also allowed to be so reasonable by all, that even those whose interest it had been to dispute it, cheerfully acquiesced in his design. After this the Duke going to view the Leaguer, he especially stayed at that Post, where the Marquis de la Valette his Son (who had one of the approaches committed to his Conduct) commanded in Chief, and where not being able to contain himself within the discretion of a Superficial Survey, the present danger calling up his wont Valour, and the frost of old Age, not being of force to freeze his natural heat, he had no sooner spied in the Trenches one of the eldest Captains of the Regiment of Guards, but that calling him to him, he made him mount with him upon the Parapet, at open view of the Enemy, to consider the strength, and situation of the place with the order of the Siege. Those who were with him, were not a little troubled to see him without any necessity expose himself to so manifest a peril; neither did they fail (though they from the Town sufficiently showed him that, by the numerous Musquet-shot they made at him) to represent to him several times the danger he was in: but he, taking no notice of them that pressed him in vain to retire, continued still his discourse with the Captain, showing him here and there what he observed to be well, or ill disposed in the order of the Leaguer, with as much indifferency, as he had been in the securest place in the world: a piece of bravery, 'tis said, the old Soldier could have been well content to have been excused from; it being, as he conceived, very much out of season: when the Duke having told him in the end, that it was fit they should let the young people see, their white Beards were not to be frighted away with noise, he came down at last, to the astonishment of all in the Trenches, who saw the action, that he could carry it with that unconcernedness, and strange security, in so desperate a place. The Duke, having thus taken a view of the Town, The Duke of Espernon applye● himself to the S●ege. gave himself instructions for their further proceeding in their Works; which the Marquis his Son executed with so extraordinary diligence, that they had soon made their approaches to the very graft of the City, and had nothing left to do, but to open their Trench. We were in those times very raw in Sieges, and the way of opening a Trench was so new, that very few knew which way to go about that kind of Service; wherein the Duke highly manifested his courage and experience, and to such a degree, that all the rest, who had hitherto had the ordering of the Siege, seemed only Spectators of his conduct, all the other works either totally ceasing, or being but negligently carried on, and his only going forward; as indeed it was on that part that the Town was taken. Having therefore set a time for the opening the Trench, which was St. John's Eve, the Duke went that morning very early to the Trenches; and having the night before prepared all things ready for his design, and amongst other things given order to the Officers of the Artillery, to play their Cannon by break of day to beat down the defences of the City, he was by the noise of this Battery called up from his Quarters. The Enemy on the other side, having intelligence of what was intended against them, had prepared to make a resolute resistance; so that though the Cannon, which, from two Batteries raised upon the very edge of the Graft, had in two hours' time by near upon five hundred shot made great ruins in the Walls, yet had they not prevailed so far, but there were still two Flankers remaining, which cut the Duke off a great many very worthy men, as well of his own Domestic Servants, The Marquis de la Valette, receives a Musquet-shot before St. jean d●▪ A●gely. as others his very particular Friends The Marquis de la Valette (who shared with his Father in the glory of this action) was at the opening this Trench wounded by a Musquet-shot which broke his ankle bone all in pieces: Carbonnié Captain of the Guard to the late Duke de Byron, a man of great Valour, and a particular Servant of the Duke's by a Musquet-shot in the head was there slain: Brignemont the Gentleman of the Duke's Horse, and Brother to the Count de Maillé, received another in his thigh, of which he died a few hours after; as also many others were either slain outright, or dangerously wounded: which happened by an inconvenience for which there was no remedy, which was, that the Graft of the City being exceeding deep, the Trench could not be carried on so low, but that they were necessitated to leap from a great height into it; by which means most of those, who had thrown themselves into that danger, received this disadvantage, before the Ditch could be filled up with Bavins: but how great soever the danger was, the Duke never stirred from the mouth of the Trench, but stood open, and exposed, and in his Doublet only, till he had seen the Quarter made, which by l' Encheres, and le Roc two Aides the Camp, was at last brought to perfection; the last of which was slain in the attempt, the other came more happily off, though it was only soon after in a very handsome action, to meet the same misfortune. The day after, the Duke having renewed his Batteries, and by them made the two Flankers useless, which rendered that Post very unsafe; the besieged fell into so great a fear, that seeing our men already lodged at the foot of their Walls, and that the Miners were about to sap, St. jean de Angely surrendered. they sued to be admitted to Capitulation, attributing by common consent the whole honour of the Siege to the Duke of Espernon, as indeed by his conduct it was evidently two months advanced. For the rest, as the Duke had most contributed to the reducing this place, or because it was a member of his Government, or that his Authority was more absolute with the Soldier than any of the rest, or out of deference to his Command as Colonel, or out of the respect his age, and merit had acquired him above all others: upon some, or all these considerations it was so ordered, that he himself was the first man that entered into the Town. And happy it was for that poor City he did so; for some French and Swiss Foot, having got over the ruins of the Breach (whilst those within were intent about letting such as were appointed to enter into the Gates) were already upon the spoil, and principally busy about plundering the Minister's house, The Duke of Esp●rnon preserves the Town of St. jean de Angely from being sacked by the Soldier. which the Duke having notice of, he ran himself immediately to the place, where he caused all that had been taken away to be restored, drove away the rest from the other houses, and set all things in order; a care in him whereof I was a witness, and without which the King had had the dishonour to have seen his faith violated before his own eyes: but the Duke by this action made it plain, that if he knew how to conquer, he knew as well how to provide for the safety of those he had overcome. All the Commotions of those of the Religion having taken birth from the Rochellers obstinacy to continue the Assembly they had called together in their City, in defiance of the King's express Command, The Duke of Espernon's employment before R●ch●●le. and that they still continued to uphold to the prejudice of his Royal Authority; his Majesty's Council conceived it more than a little concerned his reputation, to make this mutinous people feel the smart, their contumacy, and disobedience had so highly deserved. The ill example of this City had so corrupted the other parts of the Kingdom, and had begot so many disturbances to the public peace, as had necessitated his Majesty in his own person to run up and down to so many several places to suppress them, that in the beginning he could never be at leisure to sit down before Rochel, the living source of all those mischiefs; as he did some years after, and that with a success posterity will hereafter look upon, as a prodigy of Fortune, and Conduct. But for an undertaking of that difficulty, and importance, it was necessary his Majesty should make choice of some Subject of great Valour, and approved Fidelity, and such a one as could no way be suspected to have intelligence, either with the Rochellers themselves, or any others of their party: qualities that appeared so eminent in the person of the Duke of Espernon, as that they seemed to be in him united to no other end, than to point him out for this Employment. To which may be added, that as being Governor of the Country of Aulnis, where Rochel stood, as also of the bordering Provinces of Xaintonge, and Angoumois; he could for a need upon the single account of his own Interest, and Authority, draw so great Forces from those places to his assistance, that his Majesty should not in the least be necessitated to slacken the vigour and progress of his other Victories, for any accident that could happen on that side. Upon these considerations his Majesty resolved to confer upon him the Command of the Army before Rochel, The Duke receives the command of the Army at Cognac. the dispatches whereof were Signed at Cognac the 4th of ●uly, and at the end of the same month, the Duke presented himself before Rochel; so diligent he was in the execution of his Charge. He had only four thousand Foot, and six hundred Horse, wherewithal to block up this great City, whereof the Regiment of Estissac (which soon after fell to the Count de Bury) of the old, but one of the least of the old Regiments, was one; the others were all new raised men, and commanded by le Chevalier de la Valette, Chasteliers, Barlot, Castelbayart, and Saint Geme. The Horse were indeed exceeding sprightly, and good, and those composed of the Company of the Queens Gens d' Arms, commanded by the Baron de Chantal. of that of the Camp Master to the Light-Horse, commanded by Viantais, of the Company of the Duke's Gens-d'Armes, and some other very good Troops. He had for Mareschaux de Camp, d' Auriac Cousin to the Duke de l' Esdiguieres, a Gentleman of great valour and experience, Byron Brother to the late Marshal of France, Sauve●oeuf, and le Massé, Lieutenant to the Company of Gens-d'Armes. The Duke finding he should stand in great need of an Intendant de justice to ease him in part of the trouble, He obtains of the King Monsieur d' A●try now Chancellor of France, for Int●ndant de justice in this expedition. and care of his command, he cast his eye upon Monsieur de Autry, Nephew to Precedent Seguier his very intimate friend, for that purpose, whom he recommended to the King, passionately beseeching his Majesty to invest him with that Employment: a person that we have since seen raised to the supreme Dignity of Chancellor of France; an Office that he does at this day discharge with so unblemished a repute, as is nothing inferior to the greatest men of those who have preceded him in that charge; though at this time he had been but lately admitted into the Council in the quality of Master of Requests. He had not long continued with the Duke, before he gave as favourable a Character of his worth, and merit, as could possibly belong to a man of his condition, judging him thence forward worthy, and capable of all the great preferments a man of his Robe, and Profession, could reasonably expect, or pretend unto. So soon as the Troops appointed for this Service could be drawn together, the Duke appointed the Rendezvous to be about Surgeres, a house belonging to the Baron de Montendre, which he took up for his own Quarter, and, without giving the Enemy further respite, brought them two days after before the City, to try if the Rochellers, who had had time enough to prepare themselves, would be so brave, as to receive him in the Field; though they contented themselves with bestowing upon him some Volleys of their great shot only (which did no body any hurt at all) without once offering to stir out of their Walls. At his return from this little piece of bravery, the Duke came to take up his Quarters in two great Burroughs, a quarter of a League distant from one another, The Duke of Espernon takes up his Quarters before Rochel. whereof that he made choice of for his own Post was called lafoy jarrie, and the other Croix-Chapeau, where he disposed the rest of his Army (as eldest Campmaster) under the command of d' Auriac. The distance of the Quarters from the City was a League, or thereabouts, far enough to discover the Enemy a great way, should he attempt to disturb him, and not so far neither as to leave him too much liberty of the Field. Having thus settled his Quarters, he began to plant Garrisons upon all the Avenues of the City, as well to keep the Enemy in, as also to cut off from them all Commerce with the adjacent Country: In such places as he found either Castles, or Churches he lodged them there, making shift elsewhere with Mills, and private houses. Which Garrisons in some places consisted of an hundred, in others of fifty men: but scarce any above an hundred. To these he gave particular instructions to take especial notice of all things within the observation of their own Quarter; to stop all such as would either offer to go into, or come out of the City; and to hinder the Enemy from gathering in their Harvests of Corn and Wine. The Foot being thus ordered, he caused the third part of the Cavalry to mount every day to Horse to scour the Field, even to the very Gates of Rochel: So that should any thing by chance pass by the Foot, it was almost impossible to escape the Horse: by which means those few Forces being carefully provided for, and so advantageously quartered, did in a few months so incommodate the Rochellers, that they found themselves absolutely deprived of all manner of Relief by Land; insomuch that had any Shipping at the same time been employed to block up the Channel, they could not, without all doubt, long have wrestled with those necessities they must have apparently fallen into: but this was a Victory too glorious to be reserved for any other than the King himself. Of all these little Garrisons (which (though they had drawn no lines of Communication) made shift nevertheless to make up the Circumvallation of the City) there was never any one forced by the Enemy: 'tis very true that they had attempted upon some of them, both by day, and by night: but the Duke having ever been seasonably alarmed, always came in time enough to relieve his own men, and to make the Enemy with loss to retire: Losses that were at last so frequent, and considerable, as that it is most certain they lost in several engagements, betwixt twelve, and fifteen hundred men: Whereof some of those Skirmishes had been so brisk, as that therein sometimes two, sometimes three hundred men were left dead upon the place; besides a great number of Citizens, and Officers of note taken Prisoners, whose Ransoms were very considerable. The Duke every week duly twice, sometimes thrice mounted on horseback in his own person to visit his Quarters; which could not be done, without coming very near the Town: and this commendation is due to the Rochellers, that they never saw the Duke's Horse approach their City, without sallying out to Skirmish: but it is also as true, that they never returned with the least advantage. They were sometimes so bold, as to attempt upon the Duke's own Quarters; but they were no more fortunate in assaulting, than when they were themselves assaulted. I shall not undertake a Narrative of all the several actions that passed in the beginning of this Siege, Several actions before Rochel, betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and the besieged. though very remarkable in themselves; forasmuch as they did not determine the business: There was one great engagement at la Moulinette, another at lafoy Font, another at Tadon, and so many others that the Duke, and the Marquis de la Valette his Son (who always made one upon all occasions) ran very often very great hazard of their lives. The first whereof had the brims of his Hat bored through with a Musquet-shot in one Encounter, and the truncheon he carried in his hand broke all to pieces with another Musquet-shot in another; the Marquis had one of his Stirrop●leathers carried away, and his Horse killed under him with such another shot: but the Enemy having in these Skirmishes lost a great number of their best men, and many of their Citizens (a loss at which they were more concerned, than for the Gentlemen of the best quality of their party) they at la●t resolved to make no more Sallies, contenting themselves for the future, with defending the circuit of their own Walls, and preserving their City from the practices and intelligence the Duke maintained with some of the Inhabitants; which was gone so far, that those he had dealt withal, were upon the point to deliver him up one of the Gates of the City; when upon several conjectures, the Magistrates having found out the truth at last, they exposed the parties (whom they called Traitors) to the violence of the people, by whom they were all torn to pieces. After the Rocbellers had taken a resolution no more to hazard their Forces in the Field, some active spirits in the City impatient of lying idle, and immured, laid several designs to go further off to make trial of their Valour: amongst whom lafoy Noüe was one of the first, and most eager, though not the most fortunate in the execution of his design. This Gentleman upon the intelligence he had received, that the Count de la Rochefoucaust was parted from his Government of Poictou, on purpose to come visit the Duke at lafoy jarrie, had laid himself in ambush in the Forest of Benon to surprise him; but the Duke advertized of his March by the Country people (who (to preserve their Houses from firing, and themselves from punishment) never failed diligently to inform of whatever they could discover of the Enemy's designs) sending out his Company of Gens-d'Armes, took lafoy Noüe in his own Ambuscado; where, after he had made all the resistance could be expected from a very gallant man, he was at last constrained to give way to his ill fortune, and to yield. He was therefore brought prisoner to the Duke, who for sometime entertained him in his Camp with all imaginable civility; giving him leave moreover upon his parole to go see his Mother in Poicto●: of which the King being informed, his Majesty gave the Duke to understand he was infinitely dissatisfied with that favourable proceeding towards a man, by whom he had been so often, and so highly offended; commanding withal that he should forthwith send him to the Prison belonging to the Parliament of Bourdeaux, that he might there be brought to his Trial. Lafoy Noüe in the mean time had surrendered his person to the Duke to disengage his word; whom the Duke (who could now no longer allow him the liberty of his Camp) sent away by two of his Guard to the Castle of Angoulesme. La Noüe in this condition, and advertised of the express and reiterated Orders the King had sent to the Duke, to use him no longer as a prisoner of War, but as a Criminal, and a Rebel, began to apprehend he should at last be delivered up into the hands of Justice indeed: and consequently thence forward began to think of making his escape; as in the end, either through the negligence, or connivance of his Keepers he did; by that means delivering the Duke from the perplexity he was in, either of offending the King by insisting too long against his Majesty's pleasure for this Gentleman's preservation, or of giving his consent and assistance to the ruin of a man of his condition, which he could very hardly have ever persuaded himself to do. Whilst the Duke lay before this place, The first propositions that were made to the Duke for the blocking up the Harbour of R●chelle. he had several propositions made to him, about the shutting up of the Haven; for such of his Majesty's Vessels as were commanded to lie in the mouth of this Channel, finding they were not able to hinder the entrance into it to any that had a mind to go in; some other way was to be tried to deprive the besieged of the benefit of this Pass. Pompeo Targone therefore, an Italian Engineer of great repute, and that had long served in the King of Spain's Armies in ●landers, was sent to view the disposition of the place, and to consider of the means by which the Port was to be rendered useless: In order whereunto having long considered the nature of the Channel, he propounded at last a Machine, which was an Estacade, or kind of floating Fort; though the Duke could never relish that proposition, always disputing it must be some solid body that could block up the mouth of this Harbour, and demonstrating withal which way it was to be done: The very same in truth they were at last fain to resolve upon, after having made a vain and fruitless trial of all the rest. I have yet by me a Copy of what he afterwards writ to the Duke of Angoulesme upon this very subject, when that Duke commanded before the place: So that I may confidently say, the Duke of Espernon, what by his own proper Forces (as in his first expedition before Rochel) what by his conduct of the King's (as upon this occasion) and what by his advice (as we shall hereafter see) did no little contribute to the glorious reducement of this place. The Duke did yet another thing before he quitted his Command, which was not a little conducing to this great success. The Isle of Maran was of so great importance to the execution of this Enterprise, that it has ever been thought, whilst the Rochellers should have it at their dispose, a thing almost impossible to take that City, The surprisal of the Isle of Maron by the Duke of Espernon. by reason of the communication this Island gave them with Poictou, from whence they might at great ease, and without any impediment at all, supply themselves at any time, with all sorts of Relief. The Baron de Chandolan, a man of great quality, and merit, who at this time showed himself very affectionate to the King's Service, was Governor of this Isle, but he was notwithstanding of the Rochellers Religion: so that the fidelity of a man, who having Religion for his pretence might, whenever he pleased, and without any blemish to his reputation, separate himself from his Majesty's interest, was not in reason altogether to be relied upon; and the Duke also feared lest he might be persuaded into a thing he might do with great security, and almost without reproach. He therefore took up a resolution to possess himself of this Isle, to prevent any inconvenience for the time to come; and having received his Majesty's command to do it by the best means he could contrive, he rose from his Quarters one of the coldest nights in Winter; a time when all the Ditches of the Island were frozen up, and which the Duke therefore chose, as it rendered his access more easy for the execution of his design. He therefore commanded some Foot Companies to steal over silently, and by single Files, who that very night possessed themselves of all the Avenues; and in the morning, having caused the Ice to be broken, that he might himself pass over with his Horse, he made himself Master of the Island without the least opposition: an action that nevertheless he undertook with great reluctancy, so great an affection and esteem he had for the Governor: but his Duty ever carried it with him above all considerations. The Chevalier de Valette was therefore established in this Isle, and very opportunely; for had not the Duke taken this course, and that the Rochellers who had a design to seize it, had once got footing there, great force, and vast expense must have been employed to remove them: but the Duke by this foresight saved the King that charge, and labour. Certainly never was War carried on at greater convenience for the Soldier, than in this Country, which by its situation, and vicinity to the Provinces of Poictou, Xaintonge, and Angoumois, lay so exceeding conveniently for the bringing in of all sorts of Provision, and other necessaries, that they were scarce to be had in greater abundance, or at cheaper rates in the best Cities of the Kingdom, than they were in the Camp continually to be sold; as also the people came in with their commodities with as great confidence, and security, as to the public and ordinary Markets: and they might do so, the least violence to any Higler, Sutler, or other Provisionary Person, being a crime so capital, as never escaped unpunished. By which we may judge how much the continuation of our civil dissensions has impaired the flourishing condition the Kingdom was then in, and how much the constitution of War by being grown older, is altered from what it used to be in those better times. Whilst the Duke thus bravely acquitted himself of his Command before Rochel, his Majesty had also with extraordinary vigour prosecuted his designs in Guienne; where he had compelled most of the places possessed by those of the Religion in that Province to submit to his Authority and Power. Of which he had reduced Bergerac, Saint Foy, Puimirol, Tournon, Monflanquin, The King's exploits in Guienne. with several others; besieged, and taken Clerac, and at last laid Siege to Montauban, though herein he had not been so successful, as in his other erterprises: so that the year ending with this variety of Events, his Majesty was constrained to return to Paris, to let the stormy quarter blow over, that he might in a more favourable season recommence the interrupted progress of his Arms. In his Majesty's return to Paris, a little paltry place situated upon the banks of the River Garonne, called Monhurt, had the impudence to stand out against the Royal Army; an insolence which though it received its due reward, proved notwithstanding fatal to the Duke de Luines, The death of the Duke de Luines. who by a burning Fever there ended his days: by whose decease both the place he possessed in the King's favour, as also the Office of Constable of France became void: The Duke of Mayenne had likewise a few days before left a vacancy in the principal Government of the Kingdom, which was that of Guienne, by a Musquet-shot he received in his head before Montauban; by the fall of which two great Ministers the King (as we shall hereafter see) had means to recompense the Services of the Duke of Espernon, and the Marshal de l' Esdiguieres, two of the eldest, and best deserving Servants of his Crown. The Winter was no sooner a little abated of its fury, but that those of the Religion, more elevated with the raising of the Siege of Montaubon, than they had been dejected with the loss of so many other places, as the King had taken from them, took the field to give his Majesty a new, and greater provocation than before. Of these Soubize was the first that fell in his Majesty's way, who having fortified himself in the Isle of Reé, and some other Islands of Poictou, thought the difficulty of their access would protect him from the Royal Power: but he soon found that all places are firm Land to Kings; when his Majesty overcoming all difficulties, that opposed his way, passed over the Marshes, and his own Fortifications within them, to fall upon him; where he gave him so notable a defeat, that he could not of a long time after recover that blow, nor put himself again into any tolerable posture of War. So soon as the Duke of Espernon had intelligence of the King's motion towards those Provinces, Anno 1622. where he had the honour to command, The Duke of Espernon goes to the King at Poitiers. he designed a Journey to his Majesty, to give him an account of those discoveries he had made whilst he lay before Rochel, that were of greatest importance to his design: a desire he had no sooner acquainted his Majesty withal, but that he gave him leave to come to him to Poitiers; where he accordingly arrived in the beginning of the year 1622. He could not possibly desire a more favourable reception, than his Majesty was here pleased to give him, who openly declared himself infinitely satisfied with his Service: neither indeed could it by any one have been performed with greater fidelity, or to better effect: so that the King being resolutely bend to punish the Rochellers disobedience, had a great desire, that the Duke should still pursue the Siege, as he had begun: But the Count de Soissons a young Prince of great courage and expectation, having been prompted by his friends to ask some employment, he was not handsomely to be denied any thing almost he could demand, every thing he would pretend to seeming justly due to his Birth, and merit. Amongst all the Commands of the Kingdom, that the Duke had before Rochel was, without all dispute, the most honourable; and the Duke had notice given him a few days after his return to his Camp, of the importunate suit the Count de Soissons made to have the Command of the Army under his charge conferred upon him; an intelligence that perhaps the informer presumed would have been very unwelcome to him: but if the Duke knew how to stand upon his punctilio, and to hold his own amongst his equals, he also better understood than any man of the Kingdom, what deference was due to the Princes of the Blood. He was therefore no sooner advertised of the Count's desire, but that he was himself the first man to second it; representing to his Majesty in his dispatches how much it stood him upon to favour the inclinations of this young Prince, that he might the sooner be made capable of performing those Services his Majesty was one day to expect from his Valour and Conduct. He also renewed the same instances by word of mouth, when his Majesty came a few days after out of Poictou into Xaintonge; though when all was done he himself would never be prevailed upon to serve any more in this Army under this new General. Monsieur d' Herbaut Secretary of State, his old and particular friend, was commanded by the King to speak to him about it, who represented to him: That his Majesty's intention herein, was not in the least to diminish his Authority in the Army, nor to cut him off in the least from the exercise of his Command: That if they took from him the vanity of a Title only, they added much more to his effectual power: That the Army being augmented by one half (as it was to be) there was no honourable exploit he might not be able to perform by such an addition of Forces, since with so few, as he had hitherto commanded, he had, to so glorious a pitch, advanced his Majesty's designs: That his Majesty intended all things should be ordered by his wisdom, and that this Prince's youth might be governed by his experience; to the end that under ●o excellent a Discipline, he might betimes be trained up to the profession of Arms. The Count also either of his own accord, or by the King's order sent him the same compliment at the same time; but the Duke persisting never to have dependence upon other than Kings (from whom he said, and from no other, all things by men of his condition, were to be expected) he humbly besought his Majesty to excuse him from this employment, entreating Monsieur d' Herbaut to tell the King from him: That he did not think himself Soldier enough to instruct this young Prince so well, as he ought to be; but that he likewise thought himself too old to begin to learn of any whomsoever. After the Duke had sent the King this answer by Monsieur d' Herbaut, and that he knew it had been well received, he went himself the same day to his Majesty, where he told him: That he could never enough commend the good resolution his Majesty had taken in the Count's favour: That he did with all his heart resign into his Majesty's hands those Forces he had done him the honour to entrust him withal, without diminution of number, and some increase of Reputation: That of all the other Services he had heretofore performed for his Majesty, and the Kings his Predecessors, in the long course of his life, he had ever expected his reward from their bounty, without importuning them with his demands: but that he should not do so here, being resolved to take upon him the boldness to make one request; which as it would neither incommodate his Majesty's Affairs, nor impair his treasure, he hoped would not be denied, and that was only, that his Majesty would give him leave to serve about his own person in the simple condition of a Volunteer: That his Governments of Xaintonge, and Angoumois, being secure, whilst an Army should lie before Rochel, his presence would be altogether unnecessary there; and that therefore he humbly begged he might partake of those dangers, to which his Majesty was about to expose his own person; and that though he was now grown old, he found he had nevertheless strength, and vigour enough remaining to die in some glorious day, with a Pike in his hand, at his Majesty's stirrup. Which being said, his Majesty embracing him in his arms, returned this answer: That he did very freely grant him that recompense, and that if he had many Servants on whom to bestow the like, and who knew so well how to make use of it, he should think himself a much greater Prince than he was: That notwithstanding he did not receive him in the quality of a Volunteer, as he desired, but that he might assure himself he would ever afford him such a place in his Armies, as that therewith he himself should be very well content. And accordingly his Majesty having a desing upon Royan, he dismissed the Duke with part of his Forces to begin the Siege. In this sort the Duke quitted his employment at the Siege of Rochel, The Duke of Espernon sent to lay Sie●e to R●yan. after having lain before it eight months complete: during which time the Army had received five Musters, and yet complained of being ill used; though I believe now adays they would be very well content to be so paid. The Duke being approached near Royan, mounted on Horseback to view the place. This Royan was a little City built upon a very high Rock by the Seaside, inaccessible on that side towards the Water; the height whereof breaking off the impetuosity of the Winds, at the foot of the precipice afforded a very secure Harbour to so many Vessels as it could contain. This Harbour was defended by an ancient Castle raised upon the eminence of the Rock, and in the midst of it a little way was levelled, that lead to the Harbour by one of the Gates of the City. On that side towards the Land the situation was more even; but there also so well fortified, that in the opinion of all who viewed it either before, or after the Siege, it was one of the most tenable places, for its circuit in France. To which it had moreover this advantage, that it was almost without danger to be defended; forasmuch as after their outworks should be taken (which could not be till after a long Siege) the convenience of the Sea, and the vicinity of Rochel, rendered their retreat at any time so easy, and so secure, that it was to be defended to the last extreme. The Baron de Saint Surin, a Huguenot, and a Gentleman of great quality, and valour, though very young, had in the beginning of these commotions surprised this place from lafoy Chesnaye, one of the King's Domestics of the same Religion; but infinitely zealous for his Majesty's Service: neither was he ignorant of the advantages of the place; he knew what reputation he might gain amongst those of his own party, and what recompense from the King himself, after a long and obstinate resistance: but lafoy Mote Saint Surin his Brother, the Count de Marennes his Brother-in-law, and Navailles his Cousin, having been taken prisoners at the Isle of Rheé, and the King threatening to deal with them after another manner than with ordinary prisoners of War, gave Saint Surin to understand, that upon his determination depended the safety of his Allies. The Duke of Espernon, who had instructions from the King to manage this Affair with Saint Surin, had to the King's menaces added so many advantageous propositions for the Governor in his own particular, as had altogether brought the business to that pass, that Saint Surin, who had a great respect for the Duke, of whom he was also very much esteemed, and entirely beloved, touched with a tenderness towards his friends, and moreover very ill satisfied with the ill usage men of his condition received from those of their own party (who were eternally exposed to the capricious humour of the most abject rabble of Rochel) had made him an absolute promise to surrender the place. The day was set, the hour concluded, and all things prepared for the execution, the King's Forces were advanced towards the Town to receive it, and the Duke's Guards appointed to guard the Gates of the City; when Saint Surin, more confident of his Garrison, than he ought to have been, made no difficulty to go out of the place to settle some Articles with the Duke he had not thought on before. ' ● is true he had left his Lieutenant, whom he had made firm to his own resolution, in the Castle; a Fort that rendered him absolutely Master of the City, having a back Gate by which the King's Forces might at any time be introduced, notwithstanding any endeavour of the City to hinder his design: but Favas, Saint Ravy, Moulines, and some other Gentlemen of Command, upon the rumour was spread at Rochel of this Treaty, ran thither in all diligence; where finding the Governor gone out, and his Lieutenant called l' Arnaudiere, being so senseless as to come open the draw Bridge of the Castle to talk with them in too great security, Saint Ravy, assisted by one Poyanne, gave him a Pistol-shot in the head, by which he was laid dead upon the place; which being done, they forthwith cried to Arms, when the City immediately revolting from Saint Surin, his own Garrison followed the same example; whereupon on a sudden such a noise was heard within, as sounded nothing of the expected surrender. The Duke in his approach to Royan had taken up his Quarters in a house called Saint Pierre de Royan, which was within Cannon shot of the City and before which was a little Green, which overlooking the City, had drawn thither a great number of persons to behold, as from a Scaffold, the surrender of this place. The Duke himself was there, where Monsieur d' Autry had been long discoursing with him, and they were still walking together; when this cloud of people having invited those within to levelly all the Iron, and Brass Pieces they had at that eminence, there was heard on a sudden, one shot overtaking another, a Volley of eighteen pieces of Ordnance, which all played into this little place. And certainly after an example like this all Canonshot are to be despised, when had they shot with a design to do no harm, they could hardly have been so exact in their aim, as to miss so great a crowd of people, yet was not any one touched; so that excepting the fear, that made some of the over-timorous lay themselves flat upon the ground, it proved matter of laughter to all the rest. The Duke was still talking, whilst the Cannon played from the City, with the same indifferency, as if there had been no noise at all; neither did he once break off his discourse, though the Bullets flew very thick about his ears: but the tumult being over, conceiving these to be no Volleys of Triumph, and that it was necessary, before the Enemy could have time to look about them, to take all possible advantage of this confusion; he caused his men to betake themselves to their Arms, himself immediately going down into the Suburbs; which though very well Barricadoed, was nevertheless by reason of their disorder ●o weakly guarded, that he carried it at the first assault, with little or no resistance: a thing that in many days, and without the loss of a great many good men, had he slipped this opportunity, he could not have done. Saint Surin surprised at so unexpected an alteration, and not being able almost to believe his own eyes, went down to demand the cause of this confusion; where all the answer he could get, was to bid him begun, his Soldiers yet retaining so much respect for his person, as not to shoot at him, though they would not receive him; and than it was that he saw the error his youth, and want of experience, had made him to commit. He therefore returned back to the Duke to justify himself, who more compassionate of his disgrace, than troubled at his own disappointment, received, and comforted him with great civility, and friendship; entertaining him in his own Quarters, and giving him opportunity by the Services he performed during this Siege, to wipe off the imputation of his ill conduct, and to give the world high proofs of his bravery, and valour. His good qualities after the War was over, and no more to do at home, carried him to seek his destiny in Holland, and by that means depriving France of one of the most accomplished Gentlemen to all purposes, and in all qualifications commendable in a man of his condition, of his time. As to this business, the Duke having undertaken his interests, against the ill offices of many who were emulous of his desert, not only prevailed with the King to accept his excuses, but as a recompense for the Passion he had observed in him to his Majesty's Service, moreover procured the enlargement of his friends; ordering it so, that his Piety was not rendered fruitless by his misfortune, and that what would have been punished in the person of another, was rewarded in him. The Suburbs of Royan being thus taken, they were now to proceed regularly in their approaches for the taking of the Town, wherein though the Duke had made choice of that part, where it was with greatest difficulty to be assaulted; yet did he ply his business so well, that a Mine was brought up under the Bastion he had undertaken. The King's Army in the mean time advanced to favour the Siege, when his Majesty coming after to view the Trenches, resolved at last upon an assault. The order therefore being given, and all things prepared for the design, the Marquis de la Valette put himself in the head of his men, seconded by the Guards of the Duke his Father, where he engaged himself so far in the danger, that he was buried up to the middle in a Countermine sprung by the besieged, and where he had run a great hazard of his life, had not Montigny the Gentleman of his Horse, a tall, and very strong man, helped to disengage him. The Guards that followed avoided the danger of the Mine, but they found nevertheless so smart an opposition at a work the besieged had cast up within the Bastion, that of five and forty, whereof that Company consisted, two only escaped without wounds. Fourteen were there slain outright, all the rest being hurt more or less; but the three Officers, Marsillac, la Roche, and Larcan, Brother to the Baron of Esclignac, who lead them on to the assault, were all so desperately wounded, that there was small hope of their recovery. The Baron de Mat●a, who had accompanied the Duke in this occasion, was slain upon the Bastion by a great shot, as also several Gentlemen of the Duke's household; but the rest, resolute to overcome all difficulties, lodged themselves at last in the Bastion. The Marshal de Vitry who was present at this assault, Royan taken, to the Duke of Espernon's great ●onour. and who in this, as in all other occasions signalised himself with extraordinary valour, gave them the glory of this performance, principally the Chevalier de la Valette, who did wonders in his own person, from the beginning to the end of the action. Thus by the Duke's admirable conduct, and the valour of his followers this Siege was brought to an end in fewer weeks, than months would have been allowed him, had he carried it on with less prudence, or resolution. In this, as it oft falls out upon other occasions of this nature, so strange Wounds Strange Wounds. were observed, as, their cures defeating all the rules of Art, passed for miraculous. One of the Soldiers of the Duke's Guards called Faure received a Canonshot in his Belly, which passed quite through, leaving an orifice bigger than a Hat Crown; so that the Surgeons could not imagine, though it were possible the Bowels should remain unoffended that nature could have supplied so wide a breach, which notwithstanding she did; and to that perfection, that the party found himself, as well as before. Another of the same condition called Rameé, and of the same place (they being both Natives of St. jean de Angely) received a Musquet-shot, which entering at his mouth, came out of the nape of his neck, who was also perfectly cured: which two extravagant wounds being reported to the King, his Majesty took them both into his own particular dependence, saying those were men that could not die, though they afterwards both ended their days in his Service. This place being reduced to the King's obedience, The march of the King's Army into Guienne, and their progress there. there remained nothing more in Xaintonge worthy his Majesty's Arms, so that he was at liberty to advance with all his Forces into Guienne. The Prince of Condé had been sent thither before with the Vanguard of the Army; where at his Majesty's arrival he found Monravet taken by the Duke d' Elboeuf, and Themeins, after a long and obstinate resistance, surrendered to the same Duke. Saint Foy also, Clerac, le Mont de Marsan, with several other considerable places, were reduced to his obedience, by the Marquis de la Force, de Lusignan, and de Castelnau de Chalosse, who had taken them in; so that his Majesty finding little to do in Guienne, passed speedily thence into Languedoc. Negrepolisse, a little paltry ●own upon his way, was so impudent as to stand a Siege; but it was soon taken by assault; and St. Antonin having after a Siege surrendered to mercy, their temerity having put the King upon making some examples, the neighbouring places thought it convenient to fly to his Majesty's Clemency, to evade the trial of his victorious Arms. Whilst the King was taken up with these little exploits, the Duke of Espernon had taken opportunity to look into his own Domestic Affairs, the better to fit himself to follow, and serve his Majesty in his main expedition; which he had so dispatched, as to come before the King to Tholouze; who arriving there a few days after, the Army moved towards the higher Languedoc by the way of Ca●cassonne, Beziers, Narbonne, and other good Cities; and the seven and twentieth of August the whole Court arrived at la Verune, a little Town in Languedoc: where the Duke received the honour of a Patent for Governor, and his Majesty's Lieutenant General in Guienne, and for the particular Governments of Chasteau, Trumpet, as also of the City, and Citadel of Bergerac, with the City and Castle of Nerac, in lieu of his Governments of Angoumois, Xaintonge, Aulins, and Limousin. From the time of their being together at Tholouze, the Prince of Condé having converted the animosities he had conceived against the Duke, during the Regency of the Queen Mother into a particular esteem; he was the first man that thought of this Command in the Duke's favour: and though he had himself been Governor of that Province, yet thinking it no prejudice to his Birth and Dignity, to be succeeded by a man of his Merit, he first proposed him to the King. His Majesty understood as well as any the importance of this Command, and having a little before experimented in the person of the Duke of Mayenne, what a Governor of Guienne could do, when debauched from his Duty, had been at great debate with himself, upon whom to confer the honour of this great Employment. At the first mention notwithstanding of the Duke of Espernon, he very favourably gave his consent, and the constant testimonies he had always received of the Duke's fidelity seeming to be security for him for the time to come, he gave the Prince order to speak to him about it, and to let him know he had thoughts of conferring upon him the honour of that command. But all we who were of the Duke's Family, can witness there was not the same facility in the Duke to receive this favour, there had been in his Majesty to confer it: Not that he wanted ambition, ●or that his spirit did not prompt him with great confidence in himself to aspire to the highest employments: but this ambition also was not blind, and if on the one side he considered how great an honour it would be to succeed the late King Henry the great of happy memory, who had maintained himself in this Government, till he came to the Crown with other first Princes of the Blood, and to have his Authority raised to that height in his own native Country: he wisely weighed on the other side, that amongst so many advantages he should meet with much trouble, and many difficulties to balance the lustre of that Dignity, with many occurrences that he foresaw would be very cross and untoward. His present condition 'twas true was not so shining, but it was also more calm; and his Authority was so established in his own Governments, that there was none who was not acquainted with his Justice, and who from the Infancy of his Administration, had not paid so inviolate a respect to his person, that the reverence those Country's had for him, seemed to be a natural quality in the people committed to his charge. The Gentry and Populacy were equally obedient to him, and he lived amongst them as free from trouble, as envy: whereas in Guienne, where his Government would be shut up betwixt two Parliaments, he conceived that in the administration of his charge it would be almost impossible to avoid many disputes, with the members of the one or the other Body. Whilst he had only had to do with them in the quality of a friend, he had found them exceedingly obliging, and all the Gentry of the Province had ever paid him a very great respect: but he very much doubted whether in such a degree of Authority he could preserve the friendship, and affection of so many persons of quality as would be subjected to him. These reasons made him long deliberate upon this Affair, and he was often tempted to refuse it: but he was so importuned by his friends, and particularly by the Duke of Guise, who came to wait upon the King in Languedoc, that he at last resolved to embrace his Majesty's gracious offer: though I heard him say then, and he has often confirmed it since, that he would never have been persuaded to do it, had he not been before divested of the Citadel of Xaintes; assuring us, that could he have kept that in the condition he had once put it, he would not have exchanged those Governments he was already seized of, for any the best in France. Having therefore long deliberated before he could resolve, The Duke of Espernon receives his Patent for the Government of Guienne. he at last went to receive from the King's own hand his Patent for Governor of Guienne, dated from the Camp of la Verune the 27. of August 1622. the news whereof was no sooner spread abroad, but that all Guienne was as much overjoyed at their good Fortune, to be governed by a Lord of their own Country, and one that had already laid so many obligations upon it (there being few Families of the Gentry, that had not been enriched by his bounty) as the Provinces that saw themselves deprived of him, were afflicted, and disconsolate at his loss. A privation the miseries they afterwards endured made them very sensible of a long time after; though they have at last found a remedy in the person of the Marquis de Montauzier, the present Governor there; who by his generous, and prudent administration, after having procured them all the ease and comfort, the condition of the time will permit has either so confirmed them in, or so reduced them to their obedience to the King, as has secured them from many inconveniences, into which, by the ill example of their Neighbours, they would otherwise have been seduced. The Duke de l' Esdiguieres was at the same time promoted to the Office of Constable of France: A comparison betwixt the Dukes of Espernon and l' Esdiguieres, with some reflections upon the different ways of their advancement. and since Fortune seems to have made choice of these two Lords (the most eminent of their time) to manifest what she can do, when disposed to favour men of extraordinary merit, it will not perhaps be altogether impertinent to consider the several ways by which she raised them to that infinite pitch of Honour. They were indeed very different both in the one and the others promotion: In the advancement of the Duke de l' Esdiguieres, she was observed to proceed with order, leading him through all the degrees of his profession, and from the quality of a private Soldier, raising him step by step, in revolution of time to the Dignity of Constable of France. He had never been preferred from a less command to a greater, without having first been concluded worthy of it; wherein Envy (which has seldom been known to be reconciled to Virtue) never appeared his adversary; insomuch that he ever possessed all the advantages of the one, without once proving the malignity of the other, and by a favour particular to him alone, was so constantly fortunate, that his happiness was never traversed with the least disturbance. He never undertook any thing, how dangerous soever, where Fortune did not still smooth his way, and levelly all difficulties before him, to favour his success, even beyond his own expectation: and no less solicitous of his person, than partial to his Affairs, was ever so ready to defend him from the least mischance, that whatever he acquired of Greatness, Wealth, or Honour, scarce cost him so much as one drop of blood. It is in truth very much to rise by so honourable, and so easy a gradation, to such a place of greatness: but yet methinks it must appear more strange, as it is more rarely found, to see a young man at twenty years old raised to the highest pitch, to which Fortune, and Favour, when combined, could possibly advance him: That a man envied of every one, justled by all parties, abandoned by his own Benefactor, and persecuted by a mighty King his Successor, should keep himself still upright, against all those violent assaults. We have seen him wounded in several Engagements, blown up by Mines, and swallowed in Precipices; notwithstanding all which he overcame all difficulties by a vigorous resistance, triumphing at last over Envy itself: so that if the one obtained from the world a favourable opinion by his Conduct, the other forced it by his Vigour; constraining all France to confess, that those Offices, and Honours which at first had prevented his desert, fell at last very much short of his Virtue. Insomuch that if we find the one worthy of Esteem, the other is no less worthy of Admiration; if the one was promoted by ordinary means, the other rose to all his Advancements by extraordinary ways; if the one leisurely, and by degrees arrived at greatness, there was a kind of impetuosity in the promotion of the other; and yet his foot never slipped back: and if the one supported his Fortune erected upon sure Foundations, the other (which is very strange) even without any foundation at all, has raised his to that prodigious height, as to carry it almost out of sight. The Duke of Espernon, The Duke resolves to attend the King's person in his expeditions. though he had merited well enough from the Crown, to expect an acknowledgement like this wherewith the King thought fit to gratify his desert, did yet receive it rather as a new obligation for new, and greater Services, than as a recompense for what he had already done; and conceiving that those he should perform in his Majesties own view, would best manifest his Gratitude; he deferred till a fitter season, the taking possession of his new Government, that he might not loss such opportunities, as the War was likely to offer him whilst he should continue about the person of the King. He therefore attended his Majesty to Narbonne, where some overtures being set on foot by the Constable de l' Esdiguieres, and the Duke de Rohan in order to an Accommodation: he thought he might conveniently make use of the interval of this Treaty, for the accomplishment of a vow he he had formerly made to our Lady of Monserrat. The Duke's design was to go this Journey Incognito, to avoid the trouble of many compliments he was sure would be put upon him, if he should travel in his ordinary State, in all places through which he was to pass; and to that end had reduced his Train to a very small number, setting forwards almost so soon as he had taken leave of the King, that he might prevent any rumour of his motion: but he soon found it was far easier for him to reduce his attendance, than to obscure his reputation, which had already so far got the start of his preparation, and had so filled the neighbouring Kingdoms with the reverence of his name, The Duke of Espernon takes a Journey into Catalognia. that he was no sooner entered into the King of Spain's Dominions, but he was received in all places with infinite respect, and extraordinary honours. He was in this Voyage accompanied by the Marquis de Varennes (made Governor of Aiguemortes at his return) the Viscount de Fontrailles, the Count de Maillé, the Sieur de la Iliere Governor of Loches, six Gentlemen of his household, as many of his Guards, and a necessary number of Officers; yet could he not, with all his care to contract his Equipage, order it so, that he had not above fifty persons in his Train: so troublesome a thing is Greatness. He lay the first night at la Palm, a private house belonging to one of the Gentlemen who went along with him, and the next day passed close by the Castles of Laucate, and de Salses, two little Fortresses which at that time divided the Kingdoms of France, and Spain; by the distance of which from our Frontiers as they now stand, it may be seen how far our Conquests have extended the limits of our own Kingdom. Two days after he came to Perpignan. Here it was that the Duke first perceived how fruitless all his caution to conceal his person had been, The Duke's reception in all the Cities through which he passed. he finding at his arrival there the Garrison already drawn out to receive him; and the Governor so soon as he was alighted coming to his Lodging to kiss hands, and to offer him admittance into the Citadel; though the Duke making no other advantage of his Compliment, than in such a case he ought to do, after having returned his thanks in the most civil terms so obliging an invitation required, would still remain in the Town. He parted thence the next morning before day, it being necessary to avoid the excessive heats of the Country, and the season, to end his Journey by six of the clock in the morning, and to repose himself the rest of the day. And here he was likewise constrained, either for fear of wanting forage for Horse, or with less difficulty to pass the Mountains and Rocks, to leave his Horses, and to mount upon Mules. The Gates were set open for him at the appointed hour, and two Troops of the Garrison Horse were found ready to convoy him two Leagues from the City: he was moreover saluted by all the Artillery at his departure. A compliment so loud, as the adjacent Country being thereby given to understand, that so unusual an honour was not paid to a person of ordinary condition, he found at Stelrie, at Girone, at la Roque, and the other places through which he passed, that the Spanish pride hindered not their gravity from paying all due honour, and respect to Virtue. He came at last to Barcelona, where the Duke de Alcala Viceroy of Catalognia, so soon as he heard of his arrival, came in person to visit him, excusing himself in that he had not had timely notice of his coming, that he might have come out to meet him, and to receive him without the City, as he said, he had order from the King his Master to do. Being returned home, it was not long before he sent the Duke his Coach of Ceremony, drawn by six great and very beautiful Gennets, for him to go abroad, and take the Air. A sight at which the Duke (who had ever been, and who continued to his death a great lover of the Horses of Spain) was almost impatient, that so noble Creatures should be subdued to so mean a use: nevertheless (so great is the contagion of example, especially where the glory of emulation seems to be concerned) that he was afterwards himself the first who showed such another set of Horses in France; he being a few years after, very often observed in the Cours at Paris in a very rich Coach, drawn by six dapple-Gray Spanish Horses; to which I could add that it was in the company of Ladies too, and that at the age of threescore and ten, he was content to be seen playing the young man, upon the greatest Theatre of Europe. He stayed two whole days at Barcelona, during which time he viewed at leisure the greatness, and beauty of the City. The Viceroy invited him to his Palace, where he had assembled the best company of men to wait upon him, and the finest women in the Town to entertain him, which was a very extraordinary favour. This civility was moreover attended with a Ball, a Comedy, and a noble Banquet: and from hence the Viceroy carried him to the Cours, which extends itself in very great length upon the Seashore, and where we could not but wonder at the delicacy of that people, the Ghing of all the Galleys in the Harbour being drawn out every night to water this Cours, which is above two thousand paces long. We at first thought it an extraordinary thing, done only in favour of the Duke: but we were soon dispossessed of that error, when we understood that the Inhabitants, to defend themselves from the dust, and to qualify the excessive ardours of the Sun, had imposed this new task as an addition to the other intolerable labours of their miserable slaves. From Barcelona the D●ke went at last to Monserrat, where he continued three days entire at his Devotion, not without admiring the excellent Oeconomy observed in this Abbey, where there are ordinarily above two thousand five hundred persons provided for every day; for which all the provisions so much as wood, and water must be fetched a great way off upon Mules, the Rock being so dry, and unfruitful, as neither to afford the one, nor the other of these, much less the other necessaries of life. The Duke presented the Abbey with many very rich, and noble Ornaments, adding to his Presents an Alms of five hundred Crowns of Gold, for three thousand Masses, and so returned into France. The Religious Governors of this Abbey never take any money for their Hospitality, which they in Charity bestow upon all Pilgrims indifferently of what condition soever for three days together: but they also never refuse how much soever any one is disposed to give for Masses. During the Duke's abode in this place, those of his followers who were nimblest of Foot, had the curiosity to climb the top of the Mountain to see the Hermitages, which, being thirteen in number, are situated upon the most inaccessible precipices of the Rock, and inhabited by so many devout persons, who subsist upon almost no other nourishment than Herbs, and Fruit. Though we met with great difficulty, and danger in this attempt, and had very much ado to satisfy our desires; we saw nevertheless, that one of the most unwieldy, and unready footed Animals, that is to say, a Mule went twice a week the same way, alone, and without being guided, to carry these good people their allowance, and could with great security set his four feet in very narrow paths, where we had much ado to dispose of our two; so great a privilege has Custom: but what we thought the most strange of all, was, to see Birds of all sorts, and of those kinds which with us are the most wild, and untractable, so familiar with these Holy men, as to peck meat out of their mouths, and suffer themselves to be handled, living in as great security with them, as amongst us those of more docile natures, which we have reclaimed, and made tame with the greatest diligence, and art. At his return from this Voyage, The D●ke of Espernon returns out of Catalognia the Duke found the Treaty absolutely broken off, and the King ready to sit down before Unel; an Enterprise wherein his Majesty was pleased to make use of the Duke's person, and particular Servants, as he did afterwards at the Siege of Somnieres, at both which Leaguers the Duke lost many Gentlemen of great Valour and Desert. Of which number P●igeolet a Captain in the Regiment of Guards, and who had but lately quitted a Lieutenancy in the Regiment of Piedmont, for this preferment, was one, as also Courbon, l' Enchere, Brouls, and some other Officers of name who depended upon him. These two places having given but a very little stop to the progress of the Royal Arms, The Siege of Montpelli●r. and his Majesty still pursuing the Chase of Victory, he resolved to lay Siege to Montpellier; a design of so high a nature, as required the condition of the place should be exactly▪ and maturely considered, before they ought to come to a determinate resolution. It had in one year been fortified to a miracle, even in the opinion of those who were best read in Fortification; which if it had not been, the defects of the place would notwithstanding have been sufficiently recompensed in the Valour of the Governor, that had been very considerable in an open Village. It was the Sieur de Calonges of whom I speak, a Gentleman equally to be esteemed for his wit, and bravery; qualities that made him looked upon so long, as he lived, for an extraordinary person in his own Province, whither he at last retired himself, as full of honour, as empty of ambition, to end his days, after having performed many signal Services for his Prince, by dying to expiate the glorious fault he committed against his Majesty in his gallant behaviour at this Siege. The Duke of Espernon having long been acquainted with this Gentleman's virtues, who had formerly out of his own affection tied himself to his Service, and even in his disgraces paid him a respect at Court above all other great men of the Kingdom, gave such a Character of him to the King, as proved too true in the revolution of this Siege. The Constable de l' Esdiguieres, by the prerogative of his place, having the principal command of the Army, would (with good Title) go to view the place, and the Duke, who disputed nothing with him, but who also received no more orders from him now he was Constable, than when he was only Marshal General de Camp, was also commanded by the King to do the same. The Constable went out first, accompanied with a strong party of Horse, as the Duke also was with some Gentlemen: but he forgot not to take his Guards along, who proved very serviceable to him, and also to the Constable in this occasion. The Duke of Espernon had not advanced far in order to his discovery, before he was fired upon by some Musqueteers of the City planted in the hedges, in which Volley the Count de Maillé who was talking with him, received a Musquet-shot in the face, which put him in great danger of his life: some others were also hurt, and the mischief would have been greater, had not the Duke commanded lafoy Roche the Lieutenant of his Guard with his Companies, to alight, and beat the Enemy from their Post; which he having without much difficulty performed, and the Duke conceiving that Monsieur de l' Esdiguieres would meet with the same entertainment, he dispatched away la Roche to do the same Service for him, if occasion should require. Neither could he have arrived in a better time, for the Constable having taken no Foot with him (as the Duke had very well observed) the Horse that attended him, at the rattle of the Musquet-shot, began to face about, the craggy, and difficult passes not permitting them to come up to charge the Enemy, who in great security fired very thick upon them; insomuch that the Constable, abandoned by his men, would perhaps have been himself obliged shamefully to retire, had not the Duke's Guards come opportunely in to clear his way. But meeting, after this little brush with no further opposition, he soon after joined himself with the Duke near Pont juvenel, where they both alighted, and where after the Duke had a little rallied him about his disorder, they continued a great while in consultation to consider a Plot of the place presented before them, and went afterwards together to the King's Quarter to make their report. Immediately upon their return, the King called a Council of War, to resolve upon the manner of carrying on the Siege, where the Duke did not only propose, but did moreover with many powerful Arguments maintain, that they were especially to possess themselves of the Hill Saint Denis; an eminence near the City, from whence the inside of all their Fortifications were so easily discovered, A prudent counsel of the Duke of Espernon, which, not being followed, cost the lives of a great many very brave men. that it was impossible (that post being well secured, and furnished with good Artillery) for the Enemy, either to go from the Town, to the defence of their outworks, or to remain secure within. But this prudent advice, that being followed had infallibly made the King, within fifteen days, master of the place, and saved the lives of as many persons of Quality, and Valour, as ever his Majesty lost in any one Enterprise of this kind, wa● contradicted by Chabans, the same that has been mentioned be●or● in the Queen Mother's Affair. This man had, during the time of the Duke de Luines his favour, obtained some employment at Court, where, being a man of sense, and very well read in the business of the ●ime, he had raised himself very considerable friends to support him: So that those who were enemies to the Duke (which were ever a very sufficient number) prompted Chabans to dispute his opinion in the Council, not considering the King's Service, and Interest, when they came in competition with the injury, and affront they intended against the Duke; which Chabans so effectually performed, as to cause a determination quite contrary to what the Duke had advised, to be resolved upon. A thing I observed the Duke at his return from the Council very much nettled at, and heard him give Chabans some very bitter language about it: but the oversight was already committed, and the more unhappily, by how much it was never to be repaired: of so great importance it is to husband the opportunities of War, where a moment's neglect draws after it an irreparable loss. Immediately upon the breaking up of the Council, they fell to work on all hands to advance the Siege. The Trenches were opened, when those within soon perceiving of how great importance the forementioned eminence was to their common conservation, they there cast up a little Work, and left some Soldiers to Guard it. Which Guard was no sooner planted there, but that our Commanders eyes being opened, they saw the error they had committed in not possessing themselves of that Post whilst it might have been done without any opposition. They therefore now resolved to force it, and succeeded in the attempt; for assaulting it by night, and the besieged not daring to sally out of the Town in the dark to relieve their men, they suffered it to be taken, the Guards giving our Soldiers leave to make themselves masters of their Works, almost without any resistance: But (as it often falls out) the facility of this little Victory having made our people as negligent to its conservation, as if it never aught more to be disputed with them, they took no care at all to perfect the Works, that to their hands had already been begun: Neither was this the sole oversight was committed in this Affair; for the Duke of Espernon (as true in his predictions, as unhappy in prevailing with these good counsels his long experience suggested to him) had advised that a sufficient Guard of Horse should be planted near to the Fort, to beat back any that should dare to sally out of the Town, to drive our men from their post. He knew very well that the enemy had few, or no Horse, and that therefore they durst not without infinite danger hazard their Foot to come to us, the space between being large enough to give our Cavalry room to come to charge, and to cut them in pieces before they could come to the Fort that we kept; and Calonge has since confessed to me, that had his counsel been followed, he should never have dared to sally out, it being not to be done without manifest ruin, and that consequently within ten days he must have been necessitated to a surrender: Another prudent advice of the Duke of Espernon's rejected. but this second advice was rejected as well as the first, through the opposition of some who cared not to overthrow the King's Affairs, provided they could thereby discredit the Duke's conduct, or traverse his designs. All these oversights of ours being taken notice of by Calonges, he would no longer defer to repossess himself of what had been taken from him; especially considering, that he could not otherwise preserve the place; to render therefore his action more illustrious by the light, and to put a greater infamy upon our confusion, he sallied out at high noon, at the head of five hundred Foot, seven and twenty Cuirassiers, fourteen Carabins, and two Trumpets: with which small party he fell so vigorously upon the Fort, that it was abandoned to him with little or no resistance. The noise of this sally at so unexpected an hour, and the place where the action was performed (by its height exposed to the view of the whole Army) soon called all the King's Forces to the relief of their Friends; insomuch that many Lords of very great quality, and a great number of Gentlemen, who happened to be at that time in the King's Lodgings, mounted upon little pad Nags, most of them without Boots, or other Arms than their Swords, to signalise their Valour in the sight of their Prince, who was himself spectator of the Action. Of these the Duke of Fronsac, a young Prince of great expectation was one, the Duke of Montmorency another, the Marquis de Bewron, Hocque●ot (Lieutenant of the Gendarmes to the Prince) Cambalet, Fabregues, with many other Gentlemen of note; of all which not one escaped, excepting the Duke of Montmorency; and he with two thrusts of a Pike in his Breast: so that this unfortunate succour serving only to augment our loss, and to condemn those who had contradicted the Duke's opinion▪ he received, to his great grief, a public reparation, which he could have been heartily glad to have failed of, rather than it should have been purchased at the price of so much noble Blood, and so notable a disadvantage to the Royal Arms. Le Plessis Baussonniere, Marshal de Batta●le of the King's Arms, bravely fight escaped in this first occasion, though he was therein desperately engaged: but he was not so fortunate in another that ●ollow'd soon after, at the storming a Halfmoon; where after having given his orders for the assault, and put himself (as his custom was) in the head of the Assailants, encouraging as well by his example as his voice those he led on to fight, he lost an eye by a Musquet-shot, which soon after occasioned the loss of his life. After so much blood spilt, the difficulties of the Siege daily increasing, the Duke de Rohan was glad to make use of a juncture, wherein his party had some little advantage, to procure a more favourable Peace; The Peace concluded before Montpelli●r. which was accordingly signed before Montpellier the 22 of October, 1622. and Calonges surrendered up the place into his Majesty's hands; who if he had by his Courage won himself a great reputation in the Siege, he obtained no less by his ingenuity in the handsome manner of his submission to the King. The day after the Peace was concluded, the King made his entry into the City, when after his Majesty had taken order for the defence of the Town, he took the way to Paris by Prov●●c●, Avignon, Dauphiné, and Lionnois; so that the Duke of Esp●●●on, who never parted from him in all this Journey, attended his Majesty into his old Government of Provence. There had formerly been (as you may have observed) various dispositions towards the Duke in that Country, as well friends as enemies; but time (which is the sovereign cure of all untoward passions) had reconciled them all by this time to one sense. All Animosities were now converted into a general esteem of his Virtue; insomuch that I have not observed him to have a greater reputation in any Province of the Kingdom, nor to be any where received with greater respect and applause. All mischiefs whether public or particular, occasioned by the former War, were buried in oblivion, and the people, after having seen the King, enquired aloud for the Duke of Espernon; which his Majesty taking notice of, failed not so often as he met a crowd upon the way, to show them the Duke they were so inquisitive after, and when ask them some pleasant questions, about their past disorders, even their former miseries were at this time turned into delight. The King at his departure out of Provence, The King returns towards Paris. passed by Avignon, where his Majesty was visited by the Duke of Savoy. This Prince seeing almost none of the old Court, save the Duke of Espernon (for whom he had ever had a very great esteem, though he had been notably disappointed by him in all his designs upon France, as has been said before) was particularly, and infinitely civil to him. He came very frequently to his Lodgings, ever carrying himself with great familiarity, and very obliging fashion, living in the King of France his Court with as much liberty and freedom, as he had been all the while in his own. His aspect, which was gracious, open, and full of Majesty, giving evidences (though under a very moderate stature) of the great and generous soul he was really master of. From Auignon his Majesty passed through Dauphiné, where arriving about the end of the year, he there found the Queens, who by his order were thither come to attend him. And here it was that the Duke of Espernon received a new honour in the person of the Marquis de la Valette his Son, The King comes to Lions, where the Marriage is celebrated betwixt the Duke de la Valette, and M●d●moiselle de Verneüil. and which he preferred, with good reason, before all the rest he had hitherto received from his Majesty's bounty. The King had a little before (as you have heard) honoured him with the Government of Guienne, had by his Grace and bounty established, and confirmed him in all the Offices, and Dignities, he had been invested withal, as the rewards of his Service: but now for the Crown of all his Favours, the King would yet honour him with his Alliance, and make him Father-in-law to Gabrielle a legitimated Daughter of France, one of his own natural Sisters, being Daughter to Henry the Great, by the Marquis de Verneüil, and half Sister to Monsieur de Metz. This young Princess exceeding fair, and as finely bred as any person of her condition in the Kingdom, had been the ambition of most of the great men of the Court: but the Duke of Espernon was preferred before all. The Queens had brought her along with them to Lions, and her inclination, as well as her duty, having tied her particularly to the Queen, the excellency of her Wit, and Nature, the most acceptable, the sweetest, and most accomplished of her time, having acquired her a very good share in this Princess affection, she stood doubtless at that time possessed of the highest place in her Majesty's favour. So many advantageous conditions, and so many admirable qualities having rendered this Lady one of the most considerable matches in France, his Majesty would yet make her overweight, by giving her himself two hundred thousand Crowns in Dowry; assigning her the County of Senlis (a Member of his Crown Lands) to enter upon for payment of part of the sum; to which the Marquis de Verneüil her Mother added a hundred thousand more. The Ceremony of this Marriage was performed in the Marquis de Saint-C●aumont's House, the King's Lieutenant in the Government of Lionnois; but the Magnificences at the Duke's own Lodgings, where the Feast was honoured with the presence of the King, both the Queens, and all the great persons of the Court. From such an illustrious Marriage what could be expected less than what we now see? a Son, and a Daughter Inheritors of their Mother's Virtue, and good Qualities, as imitators of the Fathers, and Grandfather's Bravery, and Wisdom; whose youth is in so great esteem with all the Court, that if the Courage, and Merit of the Son (which have already been signalised in many honourable occasions) have got him a reputation throughout all France; the Daughter (who was nothing inferior in all the qualities becoming her Sex) has obtained an equal share of opinion with all that knew her: but the world was unworthy to possess her long, and the Solitude she made choice of amongst the Carmelites has manifested to us, that nothing but God alone could be the object of so elevated a mind, and so devout a spirit. The end of the Second Part. THE HISTORY OF THE LIFE OF THE Duke of ESPERNON, THE GREAT FAVOURITE OF FRANCE. ENGLISHED BY CHARLES COTTON, Esq The Third Part. Vivos interdum Fortuna, saepe invidia, fatigat: ubi anima Naturae cessit, demptis obtrectationibus ipsa se Virtus, magis, magisque extollit. Sallust. de Rep. ord. Orat. 2. LONDON, Printed for Henry Brome, MDCLXX. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. THE THIRD PART. The Ninth Book. WE are now entering upon the third, Anno 1623. and last part of the life of the Duke of Espernon; and if in the preceding two you have met with great Actions, you will meet no fewer here, though perhaps not altogether so shining as the first. He had much to do, and no little to suffer; his Government of a vast extent, and fruitful in Novelty, would never suffer him to be long at rest; and the hatred of the great Minister Cardinal Richelieu gave him now occasion as amply to manifest his constancy, as he had before in more favourable occurrences manifested his other Virtues; as you shall see in the pursuit of his History. Soon after the accomplishment of the Marriage of his Son the Marquis de la Valette, their Majesties took their way towasds Paris; when the Duke of Espernon having left the new married couple, together with his Son the Cardinal de la Valette, to attend the Court, took his leave of the King, to retire into his own Government. In which Journey it was necessary for him to pass through Angoumois, The D●ke of Espernon, goes ●owards Guienne. to take order for the transportation of his Furniture, Arms, and Equipage, in the Castle of Angoulesme; which he had there in so great quantity, as required no little time, nor no few hands to remove them: though he found it a greater trouble to part with the Friends and Servants he had in that Country; it being hardly possible to see in any particular Family, upon the saddest occasion, so many real tears, as were shed by the people in general at this separation. From Angoulesme he went to Coignac, and from thence to Xaintes, which was yet one of the principal Cities of his Government, and where he had too dear a concern not to give her a visit before his departure. And this was Marguarite de Foix, Abbess of Xaintes, a Virgin illustrious for her Sanctity, and Virtue, and in so great a ●epute amongst the Sisters of her Order, tha● he ●example serves to this day for a Model to all those who aim at perfection in that way of devout living. The Duke, before he departed from this place, would first return an answer to a Letter he had received a few days before from Marc Antony de Gourgues, first Precedent of the Parliament of Bourdeaux. The Father of this man had had several very profitable employments under the Marshal de Matignon, The beginning of the ill intelligence betwixt the Duke, and the first Precedent de Go●rgues. in the time of his being the King's Lieutenant General in Guienne, which had enriched him so, as that he had provided very plentifully for his posterity; of which this Marc Antony being his eldest Son, he had by the help of the wealth his Father left him, advanced himself to some public employments, and being a man of notable wit, and understanding, his parts, together with his fortune, recommended him so as to be received into the Family of Seguieres, a Daughter of which he married, Sister to the Chancellor of France now being, who in those days went by the name of Autry; and in the end through the interest of his Wives Relations was preferred to the Dignity of first Precedent in his Country. This Gourgues in the time of his being at Court had made great professions of particular honour and service to the Duke of Espernon, who also either out of respect to his Allies, or to himself, had given him reciprocal testimonies of no ordinary affection: So that this kindness having passed beforehand betwixt them, the Duke expected that at his coming into his Government, he should meet with a sincere friend at the head of the most illustrious Body of the Province, whose mediation in occurrences, that might happen, would be able to qualify many little discontents, that the jealousy of Authority usually begets in great Commands: but at the sight of this first Letter he was of a contrary opinion, Which begets that betwixt the Duke and the Parliament. from which those divisions sprung betwixt him and the Parliament, that hardly ended, but with the Duke's death; though they were begun even before he was received into his Administration. The Letter of which I am speaking, after having treated of some Affairs of little importance, that respected the general concern of the Province, gave the Duke at last plainly to understand: That a difficulty having been started in the Parliament about the manner of his reception, they had determined to moderate the excessive honours had formerly been paid to the Sons of France, or the first Princes of the Blood, who had been Governors of the Province, in going to receive them in their Scarlet Robes; a punctilio that though it was true, it had been waved in deference to the Duke of Mayenne, it had nevertheless been done merely out of respect to the high favour wherein he was, when advanced to the Government of Guienne: but that at this time they were resolved to be more reserved. I never in my life saw the Duke more surprised, than at this news, who, jealous of his Honour and Dignity to the highest degree, would rather never have entered Bourdeaux, than to suffer the least diminution of what had been granted to the Duke of Mayenne. He therefore returned an answer to this Letter, dated the 27. of january 1623. wherein after having briefly answered what concerned the general Affairs, he insisted with great vehemency upon the denial of those honours had been paid to his Predecessor; telling him amongst other things: That if they had never appeared in their Scarlet Robes, but in honour of the Sons of France, or the Princes of the Blood, he so well understood the respect due to them, as they were in a capacity of succeeding to the Crown, as not to desire a new example in his favour; but that he had not the same consideration for others. The whole Letter being writ with his own hand, he commanded me to take a Copy of it, from whence I have taken the very words I present you here. The Duke, not yet satisfied with delivering his sense of this Affair in writing, would moreover dispatch away Constantin the controller of his House to Bourdeaux to communicate his resolution to several Members of that Parliament, who were his particular friends; wherein he succeeded according to his own desire, and his reception was concluded in the same form his Predecessors had been received, some of the Company totally disowning all the first Precedent had writ concerning this business: by which the Duke having just reason to believe him the Author of this scruple, he conceived he had a mind to oblige the Society at the price of his Friend's Honour: so that being offended to the last degree, that he should so much as bring a thing into dispute, that was his apparent due; he from thenceforward entertained very sinister impressions of his friendship: neither was it long before he made him sensible of it. Whilst these things were in agitation, The Duke arrives in Guienne. the Duke was still advancing towards Cadillac, where he intended at leisure, from the Parliaments proceedings to take his measures, what he was to do about his entry into Bourdeaux. He was here visited by all the Nobility of the Province, by several of the Parliament men in particular, and by an infinite conflux of Gentry, who came to attend him at his entry, which was concluded to be upon the last of February 1623. Whilst he here waited in expectation of the appointed day, he disposed of the Governments of those places committed to his charge; whereof that of Chasteau-Trompette was given to Plessis, Nerac to the Count de Maillé but Bergerac, which was a command of the greatest profit, and the most important place, was put into the hands of the Chevalier de la Valette, the Duke's natural Son, who by his bravery had infinitely gained upon his love and opinion. The King had besides these places, moreover assigned him two Regiments in constant pay, viz. That of the said Chevalier de la Valette, and that of Castelbayart, together with his Company of Gens-d'Armes; so that his Authority supported by these Forces, was much more considerable, than any of his Predecessors had ever been. The Duke, The Duke's reception at Bordea●x. having thus settled the Governments of these places, would now no longer defer his entry, but came to Frans, a house belonging to a private Gentleman, about half a League only distant from the City, and upon the Banks of the River Garonne; where the * Iura●s de Bourdeaux are the same with the Sheriff● in other City's Iurates of Bourdeaux came to receive him in a Boat they had prepared for that purpose. He was by them conveyed by water to a place called Port du Caillau, where he was met without the Gate, by all the Companies of the Town, excepting the Parliament, who in their Scarlet Robes received him at the entry of the City. I shall not here undertake to describe every circumstance of this Ceremony, nor the Magnificence, respect, or applause observable in the solemnity of this reception; it being sufficient to say, that therein nothing was omitted, or diminished of what had formerly been paid to his illustrious Predecessors, and that the old affection, both the City, and Province had for his Person, and Name, produced a greater, and more general joy at his arrival, than had amongst that great people been observed of many years before. There was only the Marshal de Themines, A difference betwixt the Duke, and the Marshal de Themines, the King's Lieutenant in Guienne. the King's Lieutenant in the Province, who neither paid him honour, nor civility, either by Letter, or Visit, a man, who although he had ever till this time had the Duke's person, and friendship in very high esteem; yet having been constituted the King's Lieutenant in that Province, sometime before the Duke was promoted to the Government, he could not without infinite impatience see himself absolutely deprived of all the functions of his Command. He knew very well the Duke would be so active on his part, that very little would be left for him to do; whereas he pretended this Lieutenancy had been conferred upon him with a promise, that if a Governor should happen to be set over him, it should be no other than a Prince of the Blood, who should never continue upon the place, and that consequently, by his absence, would leave him the absolute command of the Province: and in truth the Mareschals, de Matignon, and d' Ornano, had formerly enjoyed it after that manner: so that the seeing himself by this usage defeated of that expectation, was, as he himself declared, the subject of his discontent. The Duke was very much surprised at this proceeding; he had, as there was just cause, ever had the Marshal in very high esteem, and could have been glad he would by gentle means have been reconciled to his duty, that he might not have been obliged to make use of those remedies the authority of his Command put into his hands: which that he might not do, he consented that some who were friends to them both should treat with him about a better understanding betwixt them; he being unwilling, what provocation soever he had, to have recourse to violence: wherein perhaps he was more temperate, than ever in his life before: but in the end, seeing his patience served only to make the Marshal more obstinate in his unkindness, laying aside all those considerations that had hitherto withheld him, he would no longer defer to make him sensible of the difference betwixt a Governor and a Lieutenant of Guienne. He therefore began imperiously to cancel and overthrow all his Orders. A Consul of Again, who had been created so at his recommendation, was displaced by the Duke's command, for no other reason, but because he had been preferred at his request; such of the Gentry, or the People, as were known to be affectionate to the Marshal were certain to obtain little favour with the Governor: if any order was presented him signed by the Marshal, he would presently issue out another to supersede the first; whatever carried the name of Themines, was invalid, and whatever he owned as his act must signify nothing at all. And moreover to let him see he had the same Authority over him in his own particular Country, he had in other places; the Duke prepared himself to go to Cahors, whither the Marshal was retired, and accordingly went. The Marshal's House stood near this City, he was moreover invested with the * Or chief Jurisdiction. Seneschalsy of the Country, his chiefest Relations, Friends, and Acquaintance inhabited there: notwithstanding all which, at the Duke's arrival the Marshal quitted him the place, and retired to his own house; where seeing himself as it were shut up, without Reputation, without Authority, and almost without Friends, he began, though something with the latest, to see the error he had committed. He then plainly saw himself so overmatched, that he could not contend, but to his ruin; nor longer stand out to other purpose, than thereby to make the advantages of his Superior more manifestly appear; and than it was that he rendered himself more facile to his friends persuasions, who had before been fruitlessly importunate with him, to reconcile himself to his Duty, to acknowledge the Duke's Authority, and to seek his friendship. He therefore sent to the Duke to make an Apology for what had passed, and to let him know, that if he had hitherto failed of paying the respect due to his Quality, and Command, it had not proceeded from any dislike he had of his person, which he had in as high reverence, and esteem, as any man living; and that he should have looked upon it as a very great honour to obey him, had not the sweetness of some years' Authority wherein he had commanded in Chief, and the assurances had been given him he should do so still, blinded his Judgement from seeing his duty: That he did therefore beseech him, he might be permitted to come tender his excuses for what had passed, and to assure him of his obedience for the time to come. The Duke was very well pleased to find to this Lord, a man full of years, and honour, in so good a disposition; neither had he begun to justle him, till after having expected the return of his good humour with the extremest patience; so that he sent him word he should be infinitely glad to see him, An Accommodation betwixt the Duke and the Marshal Themines. and that he might be confident for the future of as civil usage, as he had hitherto found rough, and perverse dealing in the exercise of his Command. A day for their interview being agreed upon by their friends, the Duke would by no means suffer it to be in the Capital City of his Government, being unwilling to expose the Age, and Person of the Marshal to so public a satisfaction; but appointed it to be at Saint-Foy, whither he himself accordingly came, accompanied with many persons of Quality of the Province; thither the Marshal also came to wait upon him, when coming into the Duke's Lodgings, he received him without stirring out of his Chamber, for which he made his being surprised at Play his excuse. It had been concluded that the Marshal at their meeting should say (as he did) My Lord, I am your very humble Servant, and am come to give you an assurance that I am so, and that I shall be proud of any opportunity ●herein I may by a better testimony manifest it to you, and therein satisfy the King's Command, and my own Duty. To which the Duke returned for answer in as few words, which had also been set down in writing: Sir, you oblige me with your Friendship; you and I are both of us in a capacity of advancing his Majesty's Service in this Province; I shall gladly concur with you in any thing that may be conducing to it, and embrace any occasion wherein I may let you see, that I have ever had an esteem for your Valour, and Merit, and that I am your Servant. This first visit continued but very little longer, when the Marshal taking his leave, the Duke brought him only to the top of the stairss, without going any further, by which he would let him see, that he both understood his place, and knew how to keep it. The Marshal, having after this first compliment, continued two days at Saint-Foy in perfect intelligence with the Duke, at last frankly told him: That he had used him according to his desert; that he had made ●im know his duty; and that he took it for a greater honour to be subservient to him, than to any other person of France. And in truth he afterwards continued, both whilst he stayed in the Government, and when he was made Governor of Britain (which happened a few years after) to render him so much honour, and respect, and to give him so many testimonies of friendship, that I do not think the Duke had a truer friend in the Kingdom: Yet did not all this pass in the order it is here set down, there having been some years of interval, betwixt their coldness, and their reconciliation: But I chose rather to record these passages all together, than to disperse them into several pages of my History; conceiving such a division would more have entangled the thread of my discourse, than would have been recompensed by the order, in a more exact observation of the succession of time. This Quarrel with the Marshal de Themines was not yet composed, The Duke co●es to a● open rupture with the first Precedent. when the Duke (who had never enough to do) resolved to come to an open rupture with the first Precedent de Gourgues, without dissembling any longer his resentment of the ill Offices he had received at his hands. I have already given an account of the Injury, which was the Precedents proposing a diminution of Honours at the Duke's reception; a thing that, bearing with it a show of contempt, passed in the Duke's opinion for an irreparable offence. Neither could he forbear at his first visit, to give him some hints of his displeasure, nor from manifesting a little reservedness towards him: and (as heated spirits never want occasion of new offence) his passion making the lightest pretences, to pass for reason, and just causes, there soon after fell out new accidents, which animated the Duke against the first Precedent to the last degree. This man▪ subtle and dextrous as the best, very well foreseeing, that without the concurrence of his Brethren, he should never be able to withstand the power of the Duke he had so highly provoked, Who engages the company in ●is quarrel. began betimes to think of interesting his Fraternity in the Quarrel, to the end that under the protection of the whole Body, he might the better defend his own particular interest. Neither did he herein fail to use some artifice, which he managed so, that in putting finister interpretations upon the Duke's best intentions, he possessed the whole Company with a jealousy, that the Duke laboured to encroach upon the Authority of their Estate: A part wherein all Societies of men are so sensible, and tender, as that from the least shadows, the highest divisions are very frequently observed to arise. And here, though the Duke laboured to clear their suspicion, by laying the truth before them; yet the first impressions were so deep, and the Precedent knew so well how to manage their misapprehension, that it was impossible to dis-unite him from his Colleagues. The Duke exasperated, as he had just cause, at the misunderstanding Gourgues fomented betwixt the Parliament and him, would not give him altogether the advantage of an Aggressor; but speedily sought out all occasions to vex him, and to assault him both in his Reputation and Fortune. He was therefore by his order disputed with about some privileges, he pretended to, and usurped (as was said) to the prejudice of the City of Libourne, near unto which he had a dwelling house: but he gave him a more sensible blow, by prohibiting the Postmaster of Bourdeaux in his absence any more to carry the Couriers, that came through the City, to the first Precedents house, though for some time it had been their custom so to do; pretending that it was without any right at all, and that consequently he might by his Authority overthrow that custom, as a new thing, and that depended absolutely upon his Command. It is most certain, that had matters rested here, the Precedent would have received a notable affront; his most intimate friends having generally blamed him, for applying himself much more to Politic, than to Judicial Affairs, and for that by doing more, than he was concerned to do in the one, he left himself no leisure to perform what he was obliged to do in the other. The first Precedent being a crafty man, as has been said, dextrously taking hold of this occasion, as suddenly remonstrated to the Company: That if in this Affair, as in the other of Libourne, there had been nothing, but what pointed at his own private interest, he should not have been concerned in the least; but that it aimed directly at the honour, and dignity of the whole Body, of which he was much more tender, than of any concern of his own. That the dispatch of the Posts did no more respect him in particular, than the other Officers of Parliament, he having therein only the privilege of priority, without having any power limited to his person: That in his absence, he who was next in order in the Company, had the same right to examine the Couriers, to inquire of their new●, and ●o dismiss them: That therefore since the Injury was common to them all, and that the Duke made it manifest enough, he endeavoured to destroy the Authority of Parliament, it was necessary they should unanimously concur with him in the support of their own Dignity and Power: That if they did not vigorously oppose this first attempt upon them, they would see themselves insensibly deprived of all their Privileges; and that the Sovereign Authority, they were invested withal, would in the end be less considerable, than that of their subalternate Judges: That though in this Affair he was merely animated by the common interest, he nevertheless freely offered himself alone, to stand the shock of the Duke's utmost Indignation; wherein though he should perish, and be crushed under the weight of his Power, he should nevertheless be proud of so glorious a Fate, as to be sacrificed for the honour of that Assembly. It is not to be imagined how strange an impression this Harangue made upon the minds of this Fraternity, the whole body almost being thereby betrayed into the Animosity of their head, some few only of the eldest, and most affectionate to the Duke, endeavoured to qualify the heat of this dispute, but in vain; it being impossible for them to stop the violence of the Torrent: so that the Duke, who thought he had only one enemy to deal withal, found above an hundred raised up in mutiny against him. Nay their impatience was such, that they would not defer a moment the passing of an Act, at that very sitting, in opposition to the command he had given concerning the Couriers: it is indeed true, that there was after some propositions of Accommodation tendered: but after this Thunderclap from the Parliament, the Duke was deaf to all overtures of agreement, his invincible spirit, that had ever been inflexible in all the undertake of his life, suggesting to him, that it would be an eternal blemish to his honour, should he in the least moderate his first resentment, for all the great number of enemies that were declared against him. The beginnings of this Feud were so light, and trivial in themselves, that I should not have been so particular in the relation of them, had they not brought on those greater disputes, that since happened betwixt the Duke, and this Parliament: and this is so unwilling a Record, that I could heartily wish all that is further to be said of this Affair, might be totally razed out of the Duke's life, that the memory thereof might for ever be extinct. Neither the Parliament, nor he got any advantage by it: the public was the greatest loser, as it will ever fall out in such dissensions. The Duke of Espernon's mind was not so wholly taken up with these divisions, The Duke settles his Domestic Affairs. but that he had a care of the settlement of his own Domestic Affairs, which the Queen Mother's escape from Blois, the War that succeeded, the several expeditions he afterterwards undertook for the King's Service, and his chargeable Journeys whilst he attended the Court, had brought into very great disorder. He was at this time above seven hundred thousand Livers in debt, that he had taken up at Paris upon a Rent-Charge; which one of his Domestics, that had been brought up in his Family, undertook to acquit him of, showed him which way it was to be done, and performed what he had undetaken: and this was the forementioned Constantin, controller of his House; who as he could by no better way express his Gratitude to his Benefactor, than by doing him so important a piece of Service, he, without any visible diminution of the Duke's ordinary way of living, managed the business so, that his Master in a few years had the satisfaction of seeing himself disengaged from that prodigious Debt Which, as I have said, was effected without any other inconvenience than the retrenchment of some superfluous expenses only (which his distance from the Court (where he was resolved no more to reside) rendered altogether unnecessary. So great a blessing is an intelligent, and faithful Servant. But to establish the order which for the future was to be observed in reference to this work, the Duke was upon the matter obliged to make a Journey to Paris, to examine the Accounts of his Agents there; he therefore sent to the King to entreat his Majesty, whilst the peace of the Kingdom, and the good condition he had settled his Government in, rendered his presence less necessary there, to give him leave so to do. His request was easily granted, and he accordingly departed from Bourdeaux in the latter end of November 1623. The Duke of Esp●rnon goes to Court. and came to Paris about the end of December following. Some have supposed he did not so much desire this Journey, for any thing that concerned his Domestic Affairs, as to see if any benefit was to be made of the Queen Mother's good inclinations towards him, and to try the grateful return she made him to expect for the signal Services he had done her in the time of her disgrace. She was of late years become all in all at Court, and many of her Servants, that had not so well merited from her, as the Duke had done, had received very great rewards: but he could not perceive the same dispositions towards him, nor discover the gratitude she had promised him, when she was in the worst condition to express it: on the contrary, as if with her Fortune she had changed her Nature, and as if by being become happy, and powerful, she had been no more the same Princess the Duke had so well served, when she was under persecution, and had no power at all: she no more remembered him, she was obliged to have recompensed, by all sorts of benefit and favour. The Duke came to Paris so well attended, that of many years before, there had not been seen any person of his condition enter the City with so numerous a Train. Arrives at Paris. Many persons of very eminent quality went out as far as Chastre to meet him, and his coming was very remarkable by the solitude was observed in the Lovure, where there scarce remained any, save the King's own Domestic Servants: A thing his Majesty very well observed, and was nothing displeased at it: but on the contrary, having that day taken notice of some Gentlemen in the Presence, who had dependence upon the Duke, he merrily said to them, How comes it to pass you are not gone out to meet the Duke of Espernon? he'll talk with you for this when he comes. So ready his Majesty was to cause that honour to be paid him that was justly his due. He was received at his coming by the King, Anno 1624. and the Queens, with very great kindness; and falling to his business presently after his arrival, Mauroy a Councillor of State, and one of his Agents, a man of great virtue, and very good at business, gave him up his Accounts exactly just and right; but Valliech his old Secretary having employed some people under him, who had either been not very careful, or not very honest, A generous act of the Duke of Espernon. fell short above fifty thousand Livers, which this good Master frankly forgave him, his noble nature, it should seem, not being able to con●ent that even so great a fault as his negligence should ruin the Affairs of his own Family. All his Accounts, and the other Affairs that most required his presence at Paris, were in less than four months dispatched; so that towards the latter end of April he began to think of his return into Guienne. The Court was then at Compiegne, whither the Duke went to receive the King's Commands, supposing this should be the last leave he was to take; and not expecting that his Age, which was now very far advanced (he being at this time near upon threescore, and ten years old) would permit him to make another Journey eight years after, as he did in a marvellous health, and vigour. Whilst the Duke stayed at Compiegne, the King who would have been very glad to have the misunderstanding betwixt him and the Parliament composed, caused d' Herbaut, Secretary of State, to treat with him about it: wherein the Duke expressed himself very willing to an Accommodation, and so far as to consent to the Act about the Couriers, which was, in his own presence, by the Council determined in the Parliaments favour: He was moreover satisfied with the Order the King sent to suspend the Election of the More of Libourne (which was another main thing in dispute) till his return into the Province: But the first Precedent was not so well disposed to peace; he conceived this Accommodation would infinitely lessen the Authority he had got amongst his Brethren during these controversies; and therefore without any regard either to the King's Command, or the Duke's Order precipitated the Election of the More, whom the Duke found established at his arrival; from whence arose a new, and higher quarrel than before: So that if in truth the Duke was herein to be condemned for having in the beginning prosecuted things with too much heat, the Precedent cannot, in my opinion, be excused, for thus urging them to the last extremes, without ever yielding to such a reconciliation, as might, being timely applied, have prevented the ensuing mischiefs. The Duke having thus settled those of his Domestic Affairs, The Duke goes from Paris. that required his presence at Paris, and done his part to provide as well for the future quiet of his Government, departed first from Compiegne, and soon after from Paris to return into Guienne. He would in this Journey take Espernon in his way, that he might touch at Chartres, Cardinal Richelieu created chief Minister of State. in order to some Devotions. Whither Cartier, whom he had left at Court, to solicit his Affairs in the place of Valliech, dispatched an express Courier to him to let him know that Cardinal Richelieu was since his departure created prime Minister of State. I was present when the Duke received this news, at which he was the more surprised, forasmuch as he had discovered nothing of that design in the time of his being at Court; though he had been very frequent with the Queen Mother, who had also constrained herself to dissemble a little forced show of particularity, and confidence in him; by which he evidently saw he was not upon so good terms with her, as they had a mind to make him believe he was: he notwithstanding said no more at present but this: That the Cardinal was indeed a man of great dexterity; but that he would very much change the face of Affairs, should he long continue at the Helm. Upon the instant he, according to his custom, sent him a Compliment upon his new promotion, which doubtless was not very acceptable to the Cardinal, there being scarce any space left at the top of the Letter, and nothing more than, Your very humble Servant, subscribed at the bottom; a style that he continued a great while, and perhaps too long for the interest of his Affairs, though it was indeed no other than what he ever used to all other Cardinals. After having dispatched this Compliment, he continued his Journey towards Guienne; where he arrived in the beginning of july, and where the first thing he did after his arrival was to commit the pretended More of Libourne to prison, he having been advanced to that Magistracy in contempt of the King's Order. The first Precedent had herein his hearts desire; New differences betwixt the Duke of Espernon, and the Parliament of Bourdeaux. neither did he fail to make use of this occasion, to interest the whole Body in the affront, which he said was the greatest violence imaginable upon their Authority; a high Complaint whereof was immediately sent away to the Council. The King though very much dissatisfied with the first Precedent, would not nevertheless absolutely countenance the Duke in the Justice he had executed in his own behalf; but writ to him to set the Prisoner at liberty, though that Letter could not prevail, the Duke pretending to believe that this Command had been procured either at the importunity of some of the interested party, or negligently granted, as many times a Letter under the Privy Seal was not hard to obtain. But the Cardinal become now (as has been said) all powerful in Affairs, having undertaken to establish his Majesty's absolute Authority (which was in effect the establishment of his own● upon the contempt of this order, caused a positive sentence to be passed in the Council, bearing date the 12th. of August, wherein it was ordered: That the Prisoner should immediately be enlarged. The Card●nal Richelieu opposite to the Duke. By which magisterial proceeding, it was then believed, as it was very likely, that the Cardinal would exercise this severity towards the Duke, that his will might no more be disputed; not doubting but that after an example like this all the other great men of the Kingdom would acquiesce in his Commands. This Arrest was directed to the Chief Justice d' Autry, to cause it to be put into speedy execution, without so much as forbearing to hear any Reasons the Duke could represent to justify the demur he had given to his Majesty's first Order. His Sons who were at Court, and le Plessis (whom he had sent thither not long before upon several accounts) used their utmost endeavour, that the sending away of this Arrest, so highly prejudicial to the Duke's Honour, might be some time deferred; they were vehemently importunate with the Queen Mother, and the Cardinal to that purpose; but all to no effect, the Queen in so light, though nevertheless so sensible an Affair, totally abandoning the Duke's Interest, who had so passionately embraced hers in so important occasions, and the Cardinal being obstinate in his resolution, all the favour they could obtain in this business, was from d' Autry himself, who was persuaded not to produce the Order: but it was upon condition the Duke should enlarge the Prisoner, as he immediately did, and that too the Court would have him understand to be a special Grace. After this manner than they began to reward the Duke's, and his Sons Services, they gave them things of no moment, for the highest obligations, and most current pay: they were continually used at this rate, and it is not to be believed what prejudice these inconsiderable things were to the Duke's more important Affairs, nor what encouragement it gave little people frequently to offend him. It had therefore been to have been wished, either that he could have supported these affronts in his Administration, with a better temper, or totally have retired himself out of their way: but his great spirit that had never encountered any difficulty it had not overcome, was impatient to be resisted by men, who as they were single incapable of contesting with him, being embodied, would neither relent, nor obey. The Cardinal, stung no doubt, with the Conscience of having in so trivial a thing, disobliged a man, who had formerly been serviceable to him in so many important occasions, would make himself Mediator betwixt the Duke and the Parliament, and consequently dispatched away Guron to Bourdeaux for that end; with Instructions that jointly with d' Autry, he should labour an Accommodation betwixt them. By Guron the Cardinal writ to the Duke, that his Journey was absolutely upon his account, and in his favour, offering withal his Service in this, and in all other occasions: but these Compliments were accompanied with no marks of honour and respect, the Cardinal (doubtless nettled, at the little Ceremony the Duke had observed with him in his congratulatory Letter at his promotion to the Ministry) leaving by his example, but a very little space above the first line, and concluding his Letter with only Your affectionate Servant. Before Guron's arrival the difference had been already composed by the mediation of d' Autry: but the Duke touched to the quick at the ill usage he had received from Court, was not to be appeased with so light a satisfaction; and I have ever thought that the injury he apprehended upon this occasion, was perhaps the first, if not the only motive, that totally alienated his heart from the Cardinal's Interests, which (as you may have observed) he once had in as high consideration as his own. The Peace that had been concluded before Montpellier, Anno 1625. in the year 1622. had hitherto continued the Affairs of the Kingdom in some repose, and though those of the Reformed Religion expressed great dispositions to a new Commotion, there was as yet no manifest breach; so that men rather lived in expectation of fresh Alarms, than in any disorder of open War: When Soubize, by an attempt he made upon the King's Shipping at Blavet, began first to break the Ice. A new War. All the rest of the Party broke into Arms at the same time, and the Duke of Rohan, who had long been known to be the head of that Faction, infecting all parts of the Kingdom which were affectionate to his cause, with his discontents, stirred them into Insurrection, without ever moving from Sevenues, and without meeting the least contradiction▪ A promptitude in his Partisans so much the more to be wondered at, as he commanded a sort of people, whose obedience was only voluntary, and from which every one conceived himself to be dispensed by all, both Divine, and Humane Laws. Montauban was one of the Cities not only of Guienne, The Revolt of Montauban. but also of the whole Kingdom, that engaged the deepest in this Revolt, the Inhabitants whereof by having had a Siege raised from before their Walls, and by having baffled a Royal Army, even when animated by the presence of the King himself, being elevated to such a degree of Vanity, as to think themselves invincible, and their City a place not to be taken. A presumption that it was nevertheless very necessary should be corrected, and the people by some exemplary Punishment made sensible of their Crimes. It should seem that the Duke of Espernon was by his Destiny called into Guienne only for this end; he had formerly subdued the pride of Rochel: neither did the King doubt but that he would be as successful at Montauban, and that his Virtue (which had ever been fatal to the Capital Cities of those of the Religion) assisted by his powerful Arms, would also cause his Authority to be acknowledged and obeyed here, as it had done in other places. He sent order therefore to the Duke to take Arms, and to waste the Country all about Montauban; in order whereunto (though the King in his own judgement thought it an Enterprise of great difficulty) he notwithstanding allowed him no more than 3000. men, in three new raised Regiments, to wit, that of St. Croix, d' Ornano, Foncaude, and Maillé, wherewithal to effect it. He received a Command withal to make some Levies; his own Company of Gens-d'Armes, and four more of Light Horse were also drawn into the Field for this Expedition. With these Forces he departed from his House Cadillac, The Duke's Forces. to advance to Moissac, a little Town about four Leagues distant from Montauban, the appointed Rendezvous for the Volunteer-Troops, and Gentry; of the latter whereof, the number was so great, that there was an appearance of above six hundred Gentlemen. It was said that there had hardly been seen so great a conflux of Gentry, under any Governor, as frequently attended this, he having never any occasion to mount to Horse, for his Majesty's Service, that there was not more complaints of unkindness taken, that they had not been summoned to their Duty, than excuses made because they did not come. It will perhaps seem strange, that the Duke's humour inclined rather to austerity than sweetness should acquire him so many lovers, and friends; for certainly he was served out of affection, it being impossible that fear could ever have drawn after him so many free, and voluntary persons. Such as have before me reflected upon this observation, have conceived that this universal love was derived from his Justice, of all others the most popular virtue (as in truth the Duke was a man of most unblemished equity) or that it might proceed from the infinite number of Employments, Offices, and Benefits he had, dispersed throughout the whole Province of Guienne; wherein there were very few Families of any note, that stood not highly obliged, either immediately to him, or to his Interest for some signal favour. To which they have moreover added the generous disposition he had to do all good offices for his Friends, who although he was not apt to be familiar, was nevertheless very civil, constant in his friendships, and always the same; insomuch that one good word from his mouth, or one gracious undissembled look, prevailed more upon those who received those petty favours, than the larger promises, and more winning behaviour of some others, who in two days would no more know the very man, to whom they had so lately before vowed the Friendship of their whole lives. The Duke came to Moissac in june, and removed thence towards Montauban in the beginning of july, with a Commission equally extending as well into Languedoc, as Guienne, by reason that City, which is situated upon the Confines of both those Provinces, has a great part of its Territory lying in Languedoc. He took up his Quarters at Montleigh, and Castelsarrazin, from whence, as occasion served, The Country about Montauban laid waste. advancing with his Forces still nearer the City, he executed the King's Command wherever he went with so much vigour, and severity, that the footsteps of this expedition were to be seen a long time after. Yet was not this performed without great resistance, those of Montauban had had early intelligence of the preparations against them; neither had they neglected any thing that might conduce to the defence of their fruits, or to the support of the Reputation they had acquired in the preceding War. Besides the great number of warlike Inhabitants, they had within their City, they were moreover reinforced with a strong Garrison without, commanded by Montbrun, a Gentleman of great Quality in Dauphiné, and a man of very great Valour, sent thither for that purpose by the Duke of Rohan; to which they had also called in several of their Neighbours to their assistance; so that the Duke never approached their Walls (which notwithstanding he did almost every day) but that there followed very smart Engagements, with great loss of men on the Enemy's side: In some whereof there were left sometimes 200. sometimes more dead upon the place; wherein certainly the numerous Gentry, that attended the Duke in this expedition, were of infinite great use; for the place being environed almost on all sides with Plains of very large extent, Those of the Religion make a vigorous resistance. and the Enemy having many more, and much better Foot, than the Duke, had not those brave Troops of Horse continually repelled them, it had been to be feared, that Victory would not always have been so partial to the Royal side. The Duke perhaps never exposed his person more, than in these frequent Engagements; the precincts of the City were so great, that they required above a month's time totally to destroy their fruits, of all which time few days passed, as has been said, without an Encounter, and in all those Encounters the Duke was ever in person, at the head of his Troops, encouraging his men, not so much by his voice, as by his example. How great soever the faults of those of Montauban might be, it was not nevertheless without great reluctancy, that the Duke executed his Majesty's Order upon the fruits of the Country with so great severity, and certainly he must have had a very obdurate heart, that would not have been touched with compassion at the sight of so many lamentable objects, as were every where to be seen. I remember that from Pickqueros (a place famous for having been the King's Quarter during the Siege of Montauban, and from whence the whole Plain betwixt the River's Tarn, and Vaïran lay open to the view) so soon as the obscurity of the night gave colour to the Fire that had been kindled by day; one might see a thousand Fires at once: the Corn, Fruit-Trees, Vines, and Houses were the Aliments that nourished this Flame: a sadder sight I never saw; neither can I imagine that the horrors of War can be represented in a more dreadful form. Yet was not this severity altogether unprofitable, even to those upon whom it was inflicted; I having heard several of them since confess, that nothing so much disposed them to the acceptation of Peace, as this austere usage; and they were indeed the first that embraced it, and who served for a leading example to the other rebellious Cities of their Party to do the same. While the Duke was thus taken up at Montauban, Soubiz● endeavours to divert the Duke. Soubize thinking either to divert him from his Enterprise, or to make use of his absence, and the great number of Gentry, who were gone along with him, for the effecting some notable exploit in the lower Gascony, was landed with three thousand five hundred Foot, and some few Horse in the Country of M●doc. This little Country, which is almost all the Duke's, environs a great part of the Metropolis of Bourdeaux, extending itself to the very Gates of the City; many of the richest Inhabitants whereof having possessions there, and Soubize having a design to draw from the City a large Contribution, he threatened the Citizens to destroy their Houses and Fruits in the Country (of which he thought himself without contradiction the absolute Master) if they did not speedily ransom them with a very considerable Sum. As he himself pressed the City on the one side, he had of another caused Verger Malagnet a Gentleman of his party, to come ashore at a little point of Land, in the River of Bourdeaux, that divides the Rivers of Garonne, and Dordongne, called Bec-Dambez, hoping by that means to cut off the Commerce of those two Rivers from the City, and by straightening it both by Land, and by Water, the sooner to persuade the Inhabitants to give him his demand. This design (which was not ill projected, if it had been as well executed) alarmed both the Parliament, and the people to such a degree, that a greater confusion was hardly any where to be seen: they knew not which way to turn them for their defence; and though they had but too many Forces within themselves to defend their City from the threatened mischief, yet had they no mind to examine their own strength, that they might not be obliged to put them to the Test▪ In this extremity the first Precedent (though upon no very good terms with the Duke, notwithstanding the late Accommodation) made no difficulty to have recourse to him, to implore his Assistance, for this time laying aside all Animosities, and Aversions: but it was only to assume them again, when the Duke had delivered him from this fear, as will hereafter appear. At the first intelligence the Duke received of Soubize his landing in Medoc, though he could not himself leave the work he had begun, without infinite prejudice to the King's Service; yet would he not omit his care to the preservation of the principal City in his Government. He therefore in all haste dispatched away le Plessis to Bourdeaux, to advise with the Parliament what course was to be taken, for the relief of the City, and Country, against Soubize his attempts; giving him order withal to draw out part of the Garrison of Bergerac, and to raise new Forces within his own Territories, to serve himself withal upon this occasion; writing moreover to his Friends and Servants in the Country to join with him, and to Toiras who lay in the Isle of Ré; entreating him to advance with all the men he could conveniently draw out of the Regiment of Champagne, of which he had the Command. Instructions that were so well observed by le Plessis, and he so well seconded by the Parliament and juratts (who were very ready to concur in an Affair that so much concerned their common safety) that all things were in a short time put into a very good Posture: By which means the Duke, without suffering himself to be diverted from the employment he had before Montauban, not only frustrated the Enemy's design, but also extracted thence the opportunity of obtaining the honour of a second Victory. Soubize being shamefully repulsed, his Forces routed, the few that escaped the Victor's hands, and with much ado, recovered their Ships, leaving their Dead, Arms, Artillery, and Baggage, as infallible testimonies of a total Defeat. The War was carried on in all places, so much to the disadvanvantage of the Huguenot Party, that the principal Heads, and best Cities of their party apprehending a continuation of those evils they had already suffered, thought fit to sue to the King for Peace. Which was accordingly granted them; but upon conditions far different from those they were used to insist upon in former times; Rochel if self not being in this Treaty able to obtain, that they might be freed from the slavery of Fort-Loüis: but on the contrary, The Peace concluded. for an augmentation of their grief constrained by the Articles to admit of a Chief Justice set over them by the King, obliged to slight all their new Fortifications, to receive his Majesty with all due honour, and respect, so oft as he should please to honour them with his Presence, and to keep no more Ships of War in their Haven. The Rochellers would never have submitted to these hard Conditions, had not the other Cities of their party, and above all the rest Montauban positively declared they would no more expose themselves to those Miseries they had suffered in the burning up of their Country: so that if we will consider the Duke's conduct throughout the whole business, we shall find it more than a little conducing to the general Peace the King granted upon conditions so disadvantageous to his Huguenot Subjects. But this Peace, Anno 1626. to the acceleration of which the Duke had so highly contributed, begot a new War betwixt the Parliament and him; and upon this following account. The King's Declaration in favour of the Hugonots, was by his Majesty sent to the Duke to cause it to be published, with express order nevertheless not to do it till after those of Montauban had accepted the Grace in all due forms of Submission; which were the very words of the Dispatch, A new breach betwixt the Duke and the Parliament of Bourdeaux. dated the 18. of February, 1626. But the first Precedent having received a Copy of the same Declaration, without ever acquainting the Duke, who was come no further than Cadillac, caused the Peace to be openly proclaimed, and that with so much precipitation, that he would not forbear so long as till he could hear from Montauban, to know whether they had there accepted the Peace or no. This impatience the Duke could not but interpret purposely put on to affront him; 'tis true, that, had no unkindness passed betwixt him and the Precedent before, the business was of itself so light, that it might well enough have passed without any great notice taken: but the preceding Differences giving him to understand, that it must needs be done out of design, he not only complained of it to those Friends he had in the Parliament, but moreover writ about it to Court, and gave the Precedent plainly to understand, that he would no more suffer such Contempts. This proceeding of the first President's was by no means approved at Court; it was there looked upon as an occasion of noise and bustle, maliciously and unseasonably sought, and for which he received a little rebuke: but this spirit not much delighted with rest, having met with another that was never tired out either in War, or Business; it was almost necessary that successive differences should continually arise betwixt them. This at the last proceeded so far, Which grows to a very great height. that the public Peace was therein no little concerned: the Parliament passed many Acts, and the Duke as many Ordinances to contradict those Acts. From Acts, and Ordinances they proceeded to Invectives, and from words to some untoward effects. Some of the Precedents Servants were ill used, and himself threatened; whereupon the Palace was shut up, and a cessation of Justice decreed. The Duke's Friends and Servants feared to fall into the Parliaments hands, and those who were affectionate to the Parliament, were not well used by the Governor; many Decrees by reason of the dissension betwixt the two parties remained unexecuted, for not being justified by Power, which gives life to Justice. Such as were the most moderate, and best disposed of the Company, could not without great grief behold these confusions; but those were not the prevailing part: so that things being every day more and more exasperated, it was infinitely to be feared they would in the end shoot up to the last extreme, though they were already grown to a sufficient height. The King informed of this strange confusion, dispatched away Leon Brulart Leon Br●lart sent to Bourdeaux, to labour an Accommodation. (one of the Council of State, and a man who, having manifested his prudence in many great employments, had acquired himself a great reputation both within, and without the Kingdom) to oppose his Royal Authority to the Torrent of these disorders. This man arrived at Bourdeaux, in the month of june, and laboured with great sincerity, and diligence betwixt the parties till September following; but all in vain: Wherein he does not succeed. his dexterity that had unravelled many great intricacies, and overcome the greatest difficulties in his former employments, could not be so successful here, the Animosities were too great, and the parties too stiff to admit of any Reconciliation; yet did he well enough discover that the greatest aversions to it were not in the Duke, as he satisfied the Court at his return; to which both parties at last were forced to appeal, and to submit unto a severe, and definitive Determination, after they had rejected all rational, and moderate ways. This Quarrel was on both sides carried on with extraordinary heat, the first Precedent himself was deputed by the Parliament to maintain their cause before the Council; to whom Precedent du Bernett, a man of great esteem, and approved wisdom (and then thought very worthy, one day to possess the first place in that Company, as he afterwards did) was also joined. The Duke also on his part dispatched away first le Plessis, and after him Magnac his Kinsman; a Gentleman of great Courage, of an excellent Wit, and very great Learning. All these Deputies were several times heard in open Council, The business is referred to the Council, who make an Award prejudicial to both parties. where after having long, and with great reverence poured out themselves in eloquent Orations, a Regulation ensued, at which both parties were equally displeased. And then it was that all the world plainly saw, and chiefly those who were immediately concerned, that they were not sorry at Court at the continuation of these dissensions; and that the design being already laid to diminish all the Authorities of the Kingdom, to unite them in one single person, they were glad to see them insensibly put their own hands to their own destruction. These little disorders were not yet fully composed, A disorder at Court. when another of much greater importance began to disclose itself at Court, which occasioned the death of Chalais, and the imprisonment of the Duke, and the Grand Prior of Vandosme. They would also have involved the Duke de la Valette, who at this time retired to Metz, in this Affair; and to that end tempted him by la Louviere, the Confident of Chalais, to receive the Duke of Orleans into that City: but they had to do with a man so well fortified in his Duty to his Prince, that all la Louviere could obtain of the Duke was only a civil repulse in these terms: That the place was none of his: That he was only a substitute to the Duke his Father: That he was therefore to apply himself to him, and that for his part he should do whatever his Father would please to command him. He could not have served the King more faithfully, than by retaining this respect to the Duke his Father, whose principles he knew to be perfectly Loyal, and himself inseparably tied to his Majesty's Service; yet was not the Court satisfied with this proceeding: but the Duke, who had also been tampered withal from the same part, through the Negotiation of the Abbot d' Aubazine, by the candour of his deportment, so clearly justified their common intentions, that both the one and the other had all the satisfaction they could themselves desire. Yet was this satisfaction in words only, and the Duke was notwithstanding very ill used in several occasions; of which ill usage he could not forbear highly to complain: neither in his complaints were the Queen Mother, as powerful as she was, nor the Cardinal himself excepted: The hard measure he received under their Administration being so much the more sensible to him, by how much he had infinite reasons (as may be gathered out of the former passages) to expect they should have been altogether partial to his Interests: but though his great and advantageous services had been so lately performed, the memory of them was notwithstanding totally worn out, and the Cardinal was already exasperated, though by occasions of so little moment, as scarce ought to have been taken notice of: Neither doubtless would they have been, had he been in another condition: but as great Authorities are usually very tender, in the great height of State, and Power he then stood, they carried, in his opinion the quality of most high injuries, which thenceforward disposed his heart to those strange Animosities, which we shall see in time break out. After the death of Chalais, The Marriage betwixt the Monsieur and the Duchess of Montp●nsi●r. and the removal of such of the MonsieursMonsieurs Creatures, as were suspected by their evil Counsels to debauch his good Nature, and to alienate the affection he had to the King, and the prosperity of the Kingdom; it was no hard matter to dispose him to a Marriage with Madamoiselle Marie de Bourbon, Duchess of Montpensier. This match had been thought worthy of him by Henry the Great his Father, and the Duke of Espernon, who had the honour to be great Uncle to this Princess, prepossessed with the hopes of so great a Fortune for his Niece, and so great an honour both to himself, and his whole Family, had made no difficulty to expose himself to the hatred of the late Count de Soissons, in refusing him (as you may have observed before) this Lady in Marriage for Lewis his Son. And truly what rubs soever had happened in the way of this Match, the Duke notwithstanding never lost the hope, nor the ambition to see it one day brought to effect. It is not therefore to be doubted, but that the accomplishment of a thing by him so ardently coveted, must be highly pleasing to him. The first news he heard of the consummation of these Nuptials was by a Gentleman dispatched away purposely to him by Madam, the day after her Marriage, wherein the high Dignity, to which she was arrived, nothing hindered her from paying the Duke the respect that decency, and proximity exacted from her; she writ to him therefore with her own hand, and the express words of the Letter were these. Uncle, I doubt not but you will receive as much joy, and satisfaction, 〈◊〉 Letter to the D●ke of Espernon●● ●er great Uncle. as any person, at the happy accomplishment of my Marriage; the news whereof I would no longer delay to send you, assuring myself you will look upon it as a very great Honour, and good Fortune, to one who is so near and dear unto you. I think myself the more happy therein, as I hope to be in a better capacity of letting you see the great esteem I have ever had of your friendship, which I desire to preserve by manifesting how much I am, Uncle, Your very good Niece, Marie. From Nantes the 7 th'. of August, 1626. There was a strange and sudden alteration in Madam's style, before her Marriage it had used to be Monsieur my Uncle, and her Letters always ended with Your most humble, and most affectionate Servant: but one sole night had so raised her above her former condition (though very illustrious before) that there was now very little difference betwixt her style, and that used by the Queen, and Queen Mother; neither was the Duke, it may be supposed, displeased to be so used, and the advancement of so near a Relation, being in part his own; that which seemed a little to lessen him in this new way of writing, he conceived to be amply recompensed in the honour of this Alliance. The Duchess of Guise also accompanied this Letter of Madam her Daughter with another from herself; wherein she made an excuse for not having written to the Duke before the Marriage, as it had been her Duty to do: Telling him they had met with so many difficulties in the business, that she could never believe it would take effect, till she saw it absolutely done, which uncertainty had occasioned that neglect. The King presently after did him the same honour, as also the two Queens, the Monsieur himself, with the rest of his new, and illustrious Allies: but before he received the honour of these last Compliments, the Duke had sent the Count de Maillé to Court to prevent them, and with all humble respect to let them know, how infinitely satisfied he was, to see his Family, by his Majesty's Royal Bounty, raised to such an eminent degree of honour, as it was by this Marriage. The Peace of the Kingdom, Anno 1627. the success of the Marriage of Madam, and the news of the Duchess de la Vallette's being great with child, happening almost at the same time, had altogether so overcharged the Duke of Espernon with an excess of joy, that it must of necessity overflow: He would therefore communicate part of his own satisfaction to the public; and as all his Passions would ever break out after an extraordinary manner, so this of so excessive a joy, gave him a new occasion of showing the world the largeness of his heart. The Duke appoints a Tilting at Borde●ux. He therefore designed a Tilting at Bourdeaux, wherein instead of the vain, unprofitable, and fabulous representations that are usually exhibited upon such occasions, he would make the people with delight, and in security to see the various faces of War, and in the midst of peace would divert himself with the exercises of his own profession. To this entertainment he invited all the persons of Quality of both Sexes in the Province; and the Duke de la Val●tte came purposely from Metz, to supply the Duke his Father's place in all these noble exercises, wherein he acquitted himself so well, that he was not the least Ornament of that great Solemnity. As the expense of this Festival was exceeding great, the Assembly continuing for above fifteen days together; so Fortune would seem to contribute something to this profusion: but she did only seem to do it, when after having presented the Duke with Millions, and brought them almost to his own door, she rather chose to bury them in the Sea, than to make good what she had so fairly promised. It is of the wrack of the Carricks that I am about to speak, which happened at this time; and having had a Relation of so remarkable an accident from the Master's Mate, of that of those two great Vessels, The Shipwreck of the Portugal Carricks. which perished upon the Coast of Medoc, I ought not, I conceive to pass by so memorable a misfortune▪ and of which I am able to give so true an account. After the Conquest the King of Spain had made of the Kingdom of Portugal, the same Custom the Portugals had formerly paid to their natural Princes, for the Liberty of their East India Trade, devolved of course to the King of Spain: but with this condition nevertheless, that the Portugals should not be obliged to unlade their Merchandise in any other part of the Catholic King's Dominions, than that of Lisbon only, for a Mark of the ancient Right those of their Nation had ever had to that Traffic with the Indies. This privilege was the loss of those two Carricks; they had set sail from Goa the fourth of March, 1626. laden with Merchandise of very great price, as Diamonds, and other Stones; Ambergris, Besoar, Spices, Drugs, Silks, and other rarities both of the Indies, and the Kingdom of China, to the value of above two Millions and a half of Gold at least in either bottom. They had been manned out with above four hundred and fifty, what Mariners, and Soldiers, besides several Gentlemen, and other persons of condition, that either by the curiosity of Travail, or thirst of Gain, had been tempted into those remote parts of the world. All these together made up above six hundred persons, and one might indeed more properly have called these prodigious Hulks (which were each of them of two thousand Tun) floating Cities, rather than Ships built for Navigation; they having in them all sorts of Artisans, established Markets, Victuallers, and almost all sorts, and conditions of men, with the same policy, and civil Regiment, that is usually observed in the greatest, and most populous Cities. These two great Vessels that seemed to be Sovereigns of the Sea, and that despising any thing of a Storm, feared nothing but Quick sands, Fire, and Rocks, after a prosperous Voyage, were surprised in the Road of Lisbon with foul weather, and driven back to Coruna a very good Port, upon the Coast of Galicia in Spain. Where the storm continuing very long, the Captains of the Carricks were by those of the Town importuned to unlade their Goods in that Harbour, and no more to expose so great Riches acquired with so much peril, and pains, to the dangers of the Sea: but they were deaf to that motion, and on the contrary highly insisting upon their privilege, the King of Spain at last gave way to their obstinacy; commanding only the Admiral of the Portugal Navy, Don Manuel de Menezes, with six of the best Galleons of his Squadron to put to Sea, and to Convoy them safe to Lisbon, though this precaution only served to augment his loss. The Galleons came up to the Carricks, to which the Admiral gave express order, not to stir thence till a calmer season. But what good Counsel can prevent Mischance? the Carricks contrary to all order and advice, upon the first little Truce of the Tempest (which, as it often falls out at Sea, only retired to return with greater fury) weighed Anchor, and put out to Sea: but they had no sooner committed their Carricks to the mercy of the winds, but that they found themselves engaged in the greatest stress of weather, that perhaps has at any time been seen; and after a Tempest of two and twenty days, without any intermission, they came at last to suffer Shipwreck, one at Cap-Breton, near to Bayonne, and the other two days after upon the Coast of Medoc; in which exigent of Fortune the Galleons were so faithful to them, as to bear them company in ruin: so that three attending either Carack, the loss was equal in both places. The Duke received the first news of this accident from the Common Bruit, and that not till three days after it had happened; and indeed the rains that had fallen, during this tempestuous weather, had so overflowed the ways, that although this Coast be no more than ten or twelve Leagues distant from Bourdeaux only, it had been impossible sooner to have passed: but it is likewise true, that the Inhabitants of the Country, a barbarous and inhuman people (as generally Sea-borderers are) and inur'd to the spoil of Wracks, were not over hasty to acquaint the Duke's Officers with this, that they might not be disturbed whilst busy ravening after Booty. At last, and whilst preparing for the approaching solemnity, he heard of this misfortune, and that a great number of Spaniards, who delivered themselves for men of Quality, preserved out of a greater number that perished, were upon their way coming to implore his assistance; and accordingly the next day this miserable company, consisting of two hundred, or thereabouts, were seen to enter the City, in the lamentable plight may be imagined of men, that had been exposed to the fury of a Wrack. The Duke took care to lodge them in the City, furnished them with Victuals, took order for clothes for them, and relieved them with money; when being by some of them informed of the great Riches that was in the Carack he mounted to Horse to hinder the Pillage, and Disorder, which had already continued five or six days together without intermission; it was nevertheless impossible for him to get to the shore, the ways were so impassable; so that he was constrained to return back, to begin his Triumph. The Solemnity was begun, with a Skirmish of sixscore Cuirassieres, divided into two Troops, and armed Cap-a-pe; the next day they ran the Ring in the same Equipage they fought: after which they ran disarmed with Vizors, and afterwards ran at Tilt, for five or six days together, doing all the Exercises that are to be performed on Horseback. The Horse Exercises being gone through, they must now come to a representation of Foot Service, that the angry trade of War might be set forth in all its Forms. In a spacious place therefore, at one of the Extremities of the City, the Duke caused two regular Forts to be built, and fortified according to all the Maxims of Art. These Forts were manned with armed Soldiers to defend them, they were battered with Cannon, assaulted, and in the end taken, so much to the delight of the beholders, as made it appear, there can be no so dreadful Original, from whence pleasant Copies are not to be taken. The Combat of the Forts was followed by a noble Masque, and a Ball, and those by a Combat at Barriers, which concluded the Solemnity; the last Act of which was set out with infinite Expense, and very great Art. There were in it seven Entries, and all those ushered in with great Machine's, contrived by the principles of the several parties, who were all persons of eminent Quality. I shall not however undertake a description of all the remarkable passages therein, there having been then a collection taken of them that made up a Volume of itself, and I having no need to swell this with unnecessary relations. It was no little addition to the Duke's particular joy, The Duke de Cand●le the Duke of Espernon's eldest Son comes to t●e Solemnity. and to the general satisfaction of the whole Assembly, to find it honoured with the presence of the Duke de Candale, the Duke's eldest Son. It had now been ten years complete, that their common misfortune had caused a separation betwixt them; wherein though the Father had high causes of Discontent, yet had the gallant behaviour of the Son been such, and had so far prevailed upon his natural affection, that at this time without all doubt he had an equal share with his Brothers in the Duke's Favour. Neither indeed could the Heroic Son have better spent these years of his disgrace, who seeing he could not honourably live in his own Country, whilst outlawed in his Father's Favour, went to exercise his profession of Arms in Holland, at that time the most conspicuous Theatre of War in all Europe: He had not there long continued, before by his brave deportment he so far won the opinion of Count Maurice Prince of Orange (acknowledged by all the world to be one of the greatest Captains of his time) that he doubtless possessed the highest place in his confidence, and esteem. A short Truce being concluded in that Country, he went from thence to Venice, where he commanded some of the Venetian Militia in the Valtoline; and in process of time, having gained the favourable opinion of that Serene Republic, he was at last honoured with one of their principal Commands, and made General of all their Land-Forces; an Employment wherein he served upon so many brave occasions, as would deserve a particular History; when at last more ardently desired, than well used by France his native Country, he came to end his days in his own Prince's Service, and in the Command of one of his chiefest Armies. The Duke his Father, when sometimes speaking of him, would say, that he could hardly wish his Son had never done amiss, since he had done so glorious a Penance for his faults, and by so many Heroic Actions expiated the afflictions he had brought upon him. The arrival of this long absent Son, was not yet the utmost bound of the Duke's satisfaction; he received another at the same time, that touched his heart with a more sensible joy, than any thing that has been mentioned before: and doubtless it would have been greater now, than it was then, had God been pleased to have prolonged his life till these days, that he might have seen the fruits of the just expectation he had conceived at the Birth of as hopeful an Heir, as he could possibly have wished. I have already told you, that the news of his Daughter-in-law the Duchess de la Valette's being great with child, was one of the occasions that caused this Public rejoicing, and that Assembly was scarce broke up, when he received by a Courier, dispatched away for that purpose certain news of her being brought to bed of a Son: The Birth of the Duke of Candale, the Duke of Espernon's Grandchild. a Blessing he had more zealously begged of Almighty God, than any other thing in this world; and that he had the most reason to desire, that he might see his succession continued in a hopeful Heir: But as this was the richest Present, this young Princess could possibly make him, so it was (God knows) the last; she ten days only surviving the Birth, who being delivered upon the fourteenth of April, and dying the four and twentieth after, left her noble Husband a Widower, and all France her mourners. The Duke received this sad news as he was upon his return from Medoc, to which place the Wrack of the Carack had obliged him to make a second Journey, and where, now that the season gave him leave to come nearer to the Sea, we saw a most incredible thing; which was the Relics of this mighty Vessel, several pieces whereof were to be seen, for above a quarter of a League together, along the shore, and in so great number, that whoever had seen those floating Spoils, would rather have judged them the ruins of some demolished City, than the remains of one single Ship. The Duke with much ado recovered twelve great brass Pieces, that were buried in the Sands, which were also all that could be saved, of an hundred and eight, or ten, that were aboard, either the Carack, or the Galleons that Convoyed her. Upon his return from this short Journey, the Duke received intelligence of the Death of the Duchess de la Valette, The death of the Duchess de la Va●ette. at which, though his Affliction seemed to be so great, that nothing could be more, it was nevertheless exceeded by that of the Husband; who having stayed behind at Bourdeaux, during this Journey into Medoc, knew nothing of his misfortune, till the return of the Duke his Father: but then all the comfort they were capable of, was, their mutual Affliction, wherein, as a more just occasion of sorrow could not possibly arrive, so could it not possibly be expressed with more, or with more unfeigned tears. Upon this sad occasion both the Father, and the Son received many Compliments of Consolation from the whole Court, the King, the Queens, the Monsieur, and Madam, with all the other Princes, and Princesses; and almost all of any eminent condition at Court, manifested their interest in this dire misfortune. But they had scarce wiped off the tears for this first disaster, when it was succeeded by another of almost equal concern; for I remember that the Gentleman sent by the Monsieur, and Madam upon this consolatory Envoy, 〈…〉 was scarce departed from B●rdeaux, when they received the intelligence at once, of the happy delivery of Madam, and the deplorable accident of her death: an occasion by which they were obliged (to their great grief) to make a quick return of the Monsi●ur's Compliment, and to recommence a new shower of tears, even before the first storm was overblown. In this variety of good, and evil events but (as it usually falls out in the course of humane life) such as had more in them of evil than good, the Duke saw himself necessitated to engage in a Dispute with the Cardinal, and upon this occasion. The rumour that had been spread abroad of the infinite Riches the shipwrecked Carack carried in her, had allured the Cardinal, to put in that title to the spoil, New occasions of misunderstanding betwixt the Duke, and Cardinal Richeli●u about the wrack of the C●rrick. which he pretended his Office of Superintendent of the Navies (with which he had also confounded that of Admiral) gave him to all the wracks that should happen upon the Coasts of France. Wherein doubting nevertheless that the ordinary Officers he had established at Bourdeaux, as in all other parts and Havens of the Kingdom, would not be sufficient to justify his Claim against the Duke of Espernon, who was upon the place, and whom he knew to be a man, that would not easily be baffled out of his Right; he caused a Commission to be directed to one Fortia a young Master of Requests, The Cardinal's pretensions. that under the Authority of the Royal Name he might with greater facility obtain his own desires. This business was at first debated with great civility and moderation, and the Duke was very willing to satisfy the Commissioner of his Right, and Title, The Duke's Title. by showing him Evidences of above three hundred years standing, by which his Ancestors had ever been maintained in their Title to all the Wracks that happened upon the Coast of Medoc, exclusively not only to the Officers of the Admiralty, but even to the King himself: by whose predecessors it had been formerly demised in free gift to the Lords of Candale for ever. After which he moreover delivered him Copies of those Evidences, clearing to him by several Authentic Writings and Records, his ancient, and lawful Right; which he desired him to prefer to the Council, together with his Reasons, and the equity of his cause. But this was not the thing was desired at Court, and Fortia was blamed for having taken cognisance of the Duke's Title, and for having received Copies of his Deeds, as if he had a mind to bring a business to the issue of a Suit, and Trial, wherein they intended that Authority should stand for Law. Fortia therefore having received this check, would for the future endeavour by violence to repair, what he had by moderation, and respect to Equity overthrown; and to that end began to talk to the Duke in other terms, than he had used at first; wherein meeting with a Spirit that was not to be frighted with the menaces of the Court, the heat of their disputes grew at last to an open Quarrel betwixt them. Whereupon the Commissary, either unwilling, or not daring to have any more to do with the Duke, desired to be recalled, as he was; and it is not to be doubted at his return to the Cardinal failed not to lay all the evil success of his own ill carriage at the Duke's door, by whose ill offices the former discontents were not likely to be any thing qualified, much less appeased. The Duke had in the mean time dispatched away le Plessis to the King, to beseech his Majesty that he would please to send to the Parliament of Paris, to do him right in his lawful claim; giving him moreover instructions to go to the Cardinal, and in his name to conjure him to sue forth his Title, by such of his own Council as he should himself think fit; The Duke offers ●o 〈◊〉 to a reference, which is refused by the Cardinal. and that he for his part would willingly stand to their award: but the Duke's case was too clear for the Cardinal to submit his to reference. He had already seen his Title, which was such as he knew nothing but the Sovereign Authority could supersede, and that made him deaf to any thing of Arbitration. He chose therefore rather to continue his pretence under the protection of the Royal Name, and to that purpose procured Monsieur Servient, another Master of Requests, to be put into Commission to prosecute his Title in Fortia's stead; a man that by his dexterity and handsome carriage prevailed so far upon the Duke's inclination, and esteem, that he obtained that from him, and in a very few days, which the other had been constrained to give over, as a hopeless thing, and impossible to be effected. The Duke in fine condescended so far, Monsieur Servient employed in the business, who reconc●les the difference. as to consent that all the Goods saved from the Wrack, should be deposited in the hands of two sufficient Citizens; of which Goods there were seven or eight thousand little rough Diamonds, valued generally at forty or fifty * Sous, a penny, the Sous de Paris, or Sol Marque is penny ●arthing English. Sous a piece, some pieces of Ambergris, (or rather black Amber, for it was of that colour, and nothing near so good as ours) several Bezoar Stones, and some other Merchandise, of no great value; and this was all that was recovered of the rich lading of this prodigious Carrick, the rest being either buried in the Sea, or pilfered away by the Country people, though all put together was but a very small part of this mighty loss. Servient therefore by a gentle, and insensible violence, having (as has been said) won upon the Duke's inflexible temper, obtained all the satisfaction he could desire, and in exactly observing his Commission, acquired the Duke withal for his friend, performing therein what is only reserved for men of extraordinary Conduct, which was to reconcile so opposite Interests, and yet to disoblige neither party. The differences, thus moderated by the prudence of Servient, were soon totally hushed up by the noise of a War with England, which at this time unexpectedly broke out. The Duke of * 〈◊〉 my Author cal●'d the Duke de 〈◊〉 Buckingham, Favourite to Charles King of Great Britain, as (by an extraordinary privilege of Fortune) he had been before to King james his Father, was (as it was said) highly pressed by some of the House of Lords, of the Parliament of England to give an account of the Treasure, that (as they pretended) had been imbezzeld during the Reign of the late King: upon which occasion, the Severity natural to that Nation in such Inquisitions, making him justly to apprehend the issue of an Enquiry; wherein perhaps it had been impossible for any man living to have satisfied their Judgements, or their Malice; he chose rather to withdraw himself from the inconvenience of such a Trial, and to put himself into a posture of standing upon his own Guard, than to run the hazard of a Sentence that he could not expect should be favourable to him, from men that were envious of his Favour and Fortune: and this has been said to have been one motive to this Invasion. Another, and which was no less prevalent with the Duke (as some have delivered, who pretended to be very privy to his thoughts) was the jealousy he had of the Cardinal's greatness, of whom he had been so ill satisfied in a late Embassy into this Kingdom, Our English Authors, that as they must needs be better informed of the motives of this War, are likely better to inform us, give a far different account. Vide Bakers Chronicle. as thenceforward to conceive either so mortal a hatred to his Person, or at least so high an emulation of his Power, as it is believed by many prompted him to undertake this War with France; from whence it may be judged, how light the causes commonly are, that bring on the ruin of Nations, and the desolation of Kingdoms. But the better to persuade the English to approve of this expedition (it being no easy matter to raise money there for any preparation of this kind without the consent of the people) his pretence was to succour the Rochellers, that were infinitely oppressed, and the Protestant Party, which he said, since the last Peace, was very much weakened in France. Having with this pretext palliated either his Animosity, The English▪ land in the Isle of Ré. or his Ambition, with a Fleet consisting of a hundred and fifty Sail, upon which he had Shipped * Six thousand our Historians say. ten thousand men, he presented himself before the Isle of Ré in july 1627. This Enterprise, which in all probability was likely to be favoured with an Insurrection of those of the Reformed Religion at home (who were not depressed to that degree, but that they were yet very considerable) put the whole Court into a very great Alarm: wherein the Cardinal, who very well understood this affront, to be particularly directed against him, looked upon it as his own immediate concern: neither did he fail on his part of his utmost endeavour to frustrate his Adversaries Design, and to maintain himself in the advantages of his Prince's Favour. The Cardinal's Orders to oppose the English. He sent dispatches therefore to all parts of the Kingdom, for the raising of new Forces, and caused a Commission to be issued out to the Duke of Angoulesme, to call together such as were already on foot, with them to go to the defence of Fort-Loüis, built before Rochel, upon which it was likely the English would make their first attempt, and therein also to endeavour to curb Rochel itself, which yet retained a mutinous disposition, under a dissembled show of Obedience, and Duty. Le Plessis happened in this juncture of time to be at Court, whither (as has been said) he had been before dispatched by the Duke his Master to solicit his Interest about the Wrack of the Carack. This Gentleman was so generally esteemed by all both for his Valour, and his Experience in matters of War, and principally by the Cardinal (who had been a witness of his behaviour throughout the Queen Mother's Affairs, and had in those times contracted a strict League of Friendship with him) that he immediately applied himself to him in this urgent necessity; neither did he herein forget any promises that might induce him, or omit any endearments that might oblige him to render the Duke his Master favourable to his designs, and himself to accept of an Employment, upon this important occasion: Le Plessis the Duke of Espernon's Domestic Servant, has the command of a Regiment ●on●err'd upon him, upon this occasion. Assuring him withal, that no more mention should be made of the Carack, or of any other cross Affair he had been perplexed withal, and had now depending at Court. Upon this assurance Le Plessis departed from Court, provided with ten Commissions for the raising of a Regiment in his own name, and with all the civil Language, and fair Promises could be desired for the Duke his Master, whose assistance was exceedingly considerable, by reason of the short cut by Sea, betwixt Bourdeaux, and Rochel. Le Plessis arrived in Guienne in the beginning of August, where he first gave the Duke an account of his own Affairs, and afterwards acquainted him with the Commission he had received for himself; who was so assisting to him in the raising of his Regiment, that it was one of the first that was ready for this Service. The Duke no sooner saw Le Plessis Companies complete, but that he fell to making ready the Succours were required of him for the Fort of the Isle of Ré, already besieged by the English Forces, though I must confess it was (contrary to his custom in other occasions) exceeding slowly: not that he did not heartily desire to see Rochel reduced to the King's Obedience, but he could have been glad that the Cardinal, whom he had no reason to love, might have had no share in the honour of this great Enterprise; as if he had then foreseen that the addition of Reputation, and Greatness, he must infallibly derive from that success, would one day prove fatal to him. Yet in this distraction of thoughts he failed not nevertheless to prefer his Duty before all other respects, that regarded either his own Passion, or Interest; and in effect the great Succours that were drawn together upon Olome Sands, and by which the Isle was preserved, consisted principally of those Forces he sent away from Bourdeaux. Yet was not this the only thing wherein the Duke was highly serviceable upon this important occasion, Anno 1628. his instructions contributing as much at least to the taking of Rochel, as any other means whatsoever: for it was he, without all contradiction that gave the first advice for the bringing up a Causeway to block up the Harbour, and who rejected all the propositions of Pompeo Targone, as frivolous, and of no use; and indeed the success of those floating Forts, and Bridges contrived by this Italian Engineer, proving such, as the Duke had prophesied it would be, they were fain when all was done to follow his advice. A Copy of which advice I here present you, as it was written by his own hand to the Duke of Angoulesme, before the Cardinal came before Rochel; the Duke rather choosing (it should seem) to communicate his opinion to this Prince, than to any other of the Commanders of the King's Army, as he had his person in much greater esteem. SIR, I should have been glad of an occasion wherein by some signal Service, The Duke of Espernon's Letter of advice to the Duke of Angoulesme. rather than by fruitless, and ill couched words to have manifefested my Affection to you: But since my good Fortune will not so far gratify my ambition, I must content myself with what I have, and make it the business of these lines to give you an assurance of the great obligation you have conferred upon me in sending Captain Marsillac with the Relation of the Relief my Lord the Duke of Orleans has happily put into the Fort St. Martin. I doubt not, Sir, but your Wisdom has contributed much to this great performance; the success whereof makes me believe, that at his Majesty's arrival, the glory of chase the English shamefully out of his Kingdom, is assured, and consequently that of reducing Rochel to the last necessity of absolutely submitting to his obedience; for the design of blocking it upon the Landside by Forts, and Redoubts, with lines of communication, is an infallible course: it is indeed somewhat a tedious way, but in a year or two at most the place must inevitably fall into the King's hands, without loss of men, and less expense of money: but the Port must of necessity be shut up, which is not to be done, but by some solid materials; and whosoever will undertake to do it by a floating Bridge, will find himself mistaken, at least my opinion tells me so; for the impetuosity of the Winds, and the force of the Tides, will break whatever swims above water, there being no stability in floating bodies to resist them. Several other reasons might be given, which would be too long for a Letter; and besides it would be a great presumption in me to think my opinion ought to have any place amongst so many great, and prudent persons, as you are in the King's Army, etc. From Cadillac the 4 th'. of October 1628. The Duke of Angoulesme signified to him, how much he approved of his opinion, by the answer he sent him the 21. of the same month, in these terms. My Lord, The new assurances you are pleased to give me of your affection together with your prudent advice, The Duke of Angoulesme's answer. have given me an equal satisfaction, and desire, to pursue the course you conceive most conducing to the happy issue of the Enterprise in hand. I do assure you, I am absolutely of your opinion, and I think myself very fortunate in it: but the diversity of Judgements amongst us, producing variety of counsels, I fear may be ruinous to a design; the beginning whereof might otherwise promise a successful event, etc. And elsewhere he writes him word: That he submits to his advice, as to a thing that ought to stand for a Law, and a Rule; as well out of respect to the great Wisdom upon which all his opinions were grounded, as to the perfect knowledge he had of all things, that might prejudice, or advance the design of Rochel. And in truth from the year 1621. that he had been employed before this place, he had meditated nothing more, than how to reduce it into his Majesty's obedience. So that I have seen in his hands at one time thirty several designs for the shutting up of the Port. Pompeo Targone (as has been said) came thither at that time to view the place, and the Duke called in several other Engineers to advise about it: but in the end concluded upon the Causeway, as the only thing that could possibly block up the Channel. The sitting down before Rochel soon stirred the whole Huguenot party into Commotion; The Commotion of the whole Huguenot▪ Pa●ty. and although most of the other Cities of their Faction, utterly disclaimed having any hand in the English Invasion, and seemed to condemn Soubize for having called them in: yet was there not one of them nevertheless that in the conclusion did not join with them, or that refused to be involved in the ruin of that Rebellious City. It was impossible the root of this Faction could be so violently shaken, and the incorporate branches remain insensible of the motion: so that the extremest members thereof, foreseeing a certain, and general ruin in the fall of Rochel (which was, as it were, the body where the soul of their Interest did inhabit) they no sooner saw it threatened by these mighty preparations: but that the common safety made them concur in the common defence, and break into open Arms in all parts of the Kingdom. In Languedoc, the Sevennes, and Guienne they were excited by the instigation of the Duke of Rohan: Montauban followed the example of the rest, And of Montauban. and what Protestations soever the Inhabitants of that City had made to the Duke of Espernon, that they would continue firm in their duty, their destiny notwithstanding overruled all those temperate resolutions, and the hour was now come, that the King's Victories must (in spite of their own endeavours to oppose it) establish them in a happier degree of Peace, and Safety, than till this time they had ever enjoyed, even in the greatest prosperity of their Affairs. It was no fault of the Duke of Espernon's, that they did not obtain this benefit better cheap, and by better ways, and that they were not at once both happy, and innocent: he often by Letters put them in mind of their duty, and of the promises they had so faithfully made him, to continue firm therein, and, for a final testimony of the zeal he had to their preservation, sent to them one of the most powerful instruments he could possibly make choice of for so good a work. And this was Morin, a Councillor in the * Chambre de l' Edict, and Chambre Me-partie is all one, it being (as has been said elsewhere) a Court erected in favour of those of the Religion, consisting the one half of Catholics, and the other of those of their own party. The Prince of Condé made the Lieutenant General in Guienne, and some other adjoining Provinces. Chambre de l' Edict of Guienne, a man of admirable Wit, and great Eloquence, to persuade them to their own good, had they been capable to understand it; and one the Duke conceived the more proper for this employment, as being one of their own persuasion, who had born Arms amongst them with great Reputation and Valour, and who having upon very good considerations reconciled himself to this Duty, was the more fit to persuade them to do a thing, wherein he had himself been a leading example. So soon as these, and the rest of their Party had declared, the King seeing the War kindled in almost all the Provinces of his Kingdom, sent away the Prince of Condé into Languedoc, in the quality of Lieutenant General of his Armies, not only in Languedoc, and Guienne, but likewise in some other adjoining Provinces; to whom he also delivered two Commissions of Lieutenant Generals under him, for the Dukes of Montmorency, and Espernon. The latter of these had no sooner intelligence of the Prince's arrival at Tholouze, but that he immediately posted thither to pay him the respect due to a Prince of the Blood, and from his own mouth to receive his Majesty's Commands. He was there received by the Prince with all the tenderness, and manifestation of entire confidence he could possibly expect, or desire: but how kindly soever he took this entertainment, he could not nevertheless force his complacency so far as to accept of the Commission the Prince had to give him of Lieutenant General under his Command. He at first defended himself from it by several very civil, and respective excuses; telling him, amongst other things: That being his most humble Servant (and he was effectually so) no condition whatever could more subject him to his Commands, than the respect he had for his Quality and Person had already done, and that for any thing else, the power he had as Governor of Guienne, giving him of itself sufficient Authority to cause him to be obeyed in whatever he should please to command within that Province, he did not stand in need of any further Commission for that end. But at last (the Prince unwilling to understand his excuses, and still pressing him to receive it) the Duke with his usual liberty frankly told him: That from his youth till that time he had ever been honoured with such Commands immediately under the King's his Masters, without having ever accepted that quality under any other than themselves; and that he did therefore beseech him he would please to permit him in this last Act of his Life, to retain a privilege he had for so many years, and under so many glorious Masters enjoyed. After so candid a Declaration, the Prince would no more importune him; neither did he discover the least offence, or unkindness, at the Duke's refusal; which he had the more reason to be satisfied withal, as he very well knew he had formerly rejected the same Employment under the Count de Soissons. The Duke had no sooner taken leave of the Prince, but that he returned back in all diligence towards Bourdeaux, to take order for the raising of such Forces, as he was to set on foot. He had at present no more, than the same Regiments of Foot, and the same Troops of Horse, that had served before in the like occasion, and those the Marquis de Monferrat (whom he had lately made Lieutenant of his own Company of Gens d'armes) had order to draw into the field: but these small Forces were scarce ready when the Duke received intelligence that a little Town called Caussade, near to Montauban, had had the confidence to declare for the Huguenot Party. Upon this news the just apprehension he had, lest the other Cities of his Government, that were inclined this way, should follow this ill example; and lest in the end, instead of Montauban alone, he should find thirty good Cities opposed against him, made him hasten that way to chastise these first Rebels: but he was hardly there arrived, when he understood both by several Letters from the Prince, and by other pressing intelligence from the Court itself, that the Duke of Rohan had gathered together a considerable body of an Army in Sevennes, where he was still rallying so many other Forces of his Party, that of them he doubted not to make up such an Army, The Duke of Espernon opposes himself to the Duke of Rohan, who was moving with an Army to the relief of Rochel. as would be able by some notable attempt to divert the King from the Enterprise of Rochel. It was therefore necessary for him to strive with all his endeavour to obstruct his passage, wherein consisted the main concern of the whole Affair, and accordingly he went about it, though not without great reluctancy, that he should approach so near to Caussade, and not stay to besiege it: but on the other side he durst not do it, lest whilst he should be taken up with an Enterprise of so little importance, the Duke of Rohan might take that opportunity to execute his design. I heard many of his Servants murmur, that he was not more eager of this Siege, and he himself knew very well, that the Prince had writ something unhandsomely of him to the Court about it: but he was nothing moved at all that noise, and having good reason for what he did, nothing had power to alter his determination. Whilst he was thus vigilant about Montauban to obstruct the Duke of Rohan's passage, the Prince of Condé, who had made a very considerable progress in Languedoc, by the taking of Pamieres, Realmont, and several other places, resolved to pursue his Victories into Guienne. There was a little corner in the lower Roüergue, and bordering upon the Sevennes, that had never yet felt the power of the Royal Arms; it was therefore agreed upon betwixt the Prince and the Duke of Espernon, that the Army should advance that way, their design herein being, either to disunite this little Country from the Duke of Rohan's Interests, or at least by this Enterprise to divert him from the design he had of moving towards Rochel; it being very unlikely he should think of that, whilst the Cities of his party should be so dangerously engaged in the most advantageous Post he had upon any occasion to retire himself unto. The Prince of Condé who was very punctual in all his designs, The Prince of Condé lays Siege to St. Africa. at the appointed day, which was in the latter end of May, presented himself in sight of Vâbres, an Episcopal Sea, and almost the only Catholic City of all that Country; to whom the Duke also the next day joined himself with his Forces. Their design was suddenly to clap down before Saint Africa, a Town very considerable in those parts, and exceedingly well fortified: but the success of this Enterprise did by no means answer their expectation, they being after a very brisk assault, vigorously sustained by those within, constrained to raise the Siege; after which the Prince's Forces being very much decreased in the preceding Service, With ill success. and infinitely dejected with this repulse, as the Duke's also were, it was necessary to dispose them into several Garrisons to refresh them. It seemed as if this baffle at Saint Africa had happened for no other end, but to justify the Duke about the business of Caussade, wherein the miscarriage of the one caused his wisdom to be highly magnified for not having attempted the other; whereas before both the Court, and the whole Kingdom talked a little oddly of his proceeding; so ready is ill natured mankind to censure the bravest Spirits upon the least shadow of occasion, though after having performed in the sight of all the world innumerable actions that ought the least of them to defend the Author's name from Calumny, upon any accident of Fortune. The King lay at this time before Rochel, and le Plessis, who had served in the Isle of Ré at the defeat of the English with marvellous reputation, continued to serve with his Regiment at this Siege; where being upon the great Scene of Affairs, and hearing what was said of the Duke his Master, he failed not to let him know what censure the world passed upon him concerning the business of Caussade, and how he had been represented to the King: insomuch that the Duke finding it necessary to give his Majesty an account of what had passed upon this occasion, he dispatched away Monsieur Fabert, The Duke sent Monsieur Fabert to Court. who was then in his entertainment, to Court, to that effect. This Monsieur Fabert was a Gentleman of whose education the Duke had had so particular a care, that he had ever been either under his own eye, or with the Duke de la Valette his Son; and having observed in him, in a very green youth, great courage, and understanding, and an extraordinary assiduity, and application to matters of his profession; and thence conceiving the hopes of those rare fruits we now see, had ever honoured him (which was not ordinary with him to young people) with great demonstrations of particular favour and esteem. Fabert being arrived at Court, presently acquainted the King with the occasion of his coming, presenting with all his Letters of Credence to the Cardinal, wherein he acquitted himself so well, that his Majesty remained highly satisfied with the Duke's Conduct; and as touching the Cardinal, le Plessis, who had an old established familiarity with him, writ to the Duke in a Letter dated from Perigny the 24 th'. of September, 1628. in these terms: Before the arrival of Monsieur Fabert, there were various discourses of your proceeding at Caussade; wherein, though some were prompted by their malice, yet even the most moderate, and who spoke neither out of Envy, nor Disaffection, could not absolutely acquit your Reputation: but since his coming, all men unanimously applaud your Wisdom; insomuch that Cardinal Richelieu himself, who before in obscure language would sometimes give me private touches of reproach (to which I could return no other answer, than to entreat he would suspend his Judgement, till you writ to Court) has confessed to me since, that had you engaged in that Siege, Monsieur de Rohan had doubtless passed by, as he had promised the Rochellers; and that you had been so long in possession of well doing, that it was henceforward impossible for you to do amiss. After the raising of the Siege of Saint Africa, they were now to think of a second devastation of Montauban, and to make the innocent Country suffer for the Crimes of that rebellious City: to effect which, the Duke had only two Regiments remaining of three that he had raised; the third which was that of Saint Croix d' Ornano, having by the Prince been taken into the Body of his own Army: yet did he not for all this refuse to undertake this difficult Enterprise, which nevertheless I do verily believe he could never have been able to execute, without the assistance of a great number of gallant Gentlemen Volunteers, to whose Valour (as has been already said) he stood obliged for most of the Services he performed for the King in that Province. The business was therefore performed with very good success, not that the Enemy did not make a stout Opposition, and did not daily engage the Duke's small Forces: but it was ever to their own loss. Whilst matters went thus prosperously on, the continual toil wherewith the Duke had been exercised during this whole Campagne, had so overcome his spirits, that the fell dangerously sick at Castelsarrazin; The Duke of Espernon falls ●●ck. where, how importunate soever his Physician was with him to retire from the ill air of that Country, corrupted no doubt by the excessive heats, and the length of the War, which had there continued for almost five years together without intermission, he was notwithstanding obstinate to continue in his Camp, and would by no persuasions be drawn to forsake his Army. Neither, though his indisposition confined him to his bed, could it hinder his indefatigable mind from still working upon his business: he would have his people to bring him an hourly account of all that passed, and his Genius inspiring his followers with the same good Fortune had ever attended him in all his designs, he (even in the most violent height of his distemper) gave himself Order, the execution whereof made him ever victorious. But after having long struggled with his Disease, he must at last give way to its violence; and his strength by the agitation of his mind visibly impairing, made his Physician begin to apprehend a more dangerous issue of his distemper, than was at first suspected. They were therefore constrained whether he would or no to force him from his Camp, and to carry him aboard a Boat, in which he was conveyed upon the River Garonne, and the next day brought to his own House Cadillac; where he was scarcely arrived, The Duke recovers. but that the change of air produced a manifest alteration in his health, which in a few days was succeeded by a perfect recovery. The waste having been made about Montauban, it was still necessary to leave some Forces thereabouts, to hinder the excursions of those of the City; which Forces, though very few, were notwithstanding so conveniently disposed, that the Enemy could never make any advantage of their own numbers. The Marquis de Monferrant (who together with the Lieutenancy of the Duke's Gens d'armes, had at his recommendation moreover obtained the Office of Marshal de Camp) was left to command them; an employment wherein he so well discharged himself, as besides the honour he deserved for having with so few men bridled the Licence of so populous a City, he further acquired that of having kept those men in so admirable a Discipline, that there was never the least complaint made of any disorder, or the least insolence committed by any of his party. Whilst in Languedoc, and Guienne the King's Forces were taken up with these petty Erterprises, his Majesty in his own person continued to straighten Rochel both by Sea and Land; carrying on the Siege with so much vigour, and conduct, that after having made the besieged suffer extremities, far beyond what we read of with horror in the most senseless obstinacies of other desperate Cities; he at last reduced them to a necessity of submitting to his Royal Mercy. In which Surrender, Rochel surrendered to the King. though the wilful blindness wherewith the Rochellers had been so long possessed, had kept them from looking into their own miserable condition, till they had consumed not only all provisions fit for the use of man; but also all that the extremest hunger could compel the uncleanest creatures to convert to food: they yet found they had not exhausted the King's Royal goodness, who had enough left to pardon the miserable remains of those wretched people, the length, and sufferings of the Siege had yet left alive, preserving so those that had tried, and had not been able to effect their own destruction, and exercising his Clemency, upon such as had no compassion of themselves. To conclude he made himself Master of Rochel, that is to say, absolute King of France, which, till this City was reduced, he could not properly have been said to be. This glorious year was concluded by this happy Victory, Anno 1629. a success by which all the occasions of those civil discords, which the difference of Religions had hitherto almost continually fomented, were so totally rooted up, as gave us for the future leisure to prosecute our Foreign designs; wherein we have since been so fortunate, as by the success of our Arms to be secured of a firm, and last repose for the time to come, if we can continue this good union, and intelligence amongst ourselves; the breach whereof can alone encourage our Neighbours to attempt upon our Peace. The King being yet before Rochel, and the Town upon the point of Surrender, his resolution was absolutely bend upon reducing the remaining Cities of the Huguenot Party to the same obedience; in order whereunto his Majesty sent a Letter to the Duke of Espernon, to acquaint him with so much of his design as concerned the Province where he had the honour to Command; a Dispatch that was sent away by Servient, who was to be both the Bearer of this Missive, and the Interpreter of his Majesties further Intentions. The Employment this Gentleman had been upon into that Country the preceding year, about the business of the Carack, and the dexterity, and prudence he had discovered in the management of that Affair, had made him by the King thought worthy of, and sufficient for the Office of Intendant de la justice, & policy in Guienne, with which he was at this time invested: but that being such a Commission as is hardly to be executed in Provinces, that have Parliaments of their own, without entrenching upon, or at least, giving offence unto their Authority, soon begot a feud betwixt the Parliament of Bourdeaux and him; which grew at last to such a height, that Servient was fain to prefer a complaint to the Council of some affronts he had received from that Assembly; whereupon he had granted him a Sentence of Prohibition, together with a Citation of personal appearance against the first Precedent de Gourgues, and some other Members of that Court. They must therefore of necessity appear, and accordingly the first Precedent came in at the appointed time; where presenting himself before the King, to justify the proceeding that had occasioned this Citation, his reception was a little severe. The King, dissatisfied with him, as was said, upon other accounts, commanded him to speak kneeling; which the Precedent making some difficulty to do, as an unusual form▪ the King, rising from his seat, pulled him by the Robe to compel him to it. 'Tis said, that even in this very act, and the confusion the face of an incensed Prince might reasonably have put any man into, the Precedent immediately recollecting himself, spoke of the violence was offered to him, with an Efficacy, and Eloquence that astonished all that heard him, and that was so powerful, as to extract some gentle and satisfactory expressions even from the King himself: but this was also the last lightning of his Wit, and he seemed to have mustered all his Forces for this one piece of Service, ending his Life almost as soon as his Oration; who though of a contemptible stature, and an infirm constitution, but of a strange vivacity, and courage, was so wounded with the sense of the King's severity, that he was never after to be comforted; but retiring, already ●ick, The death of 〈◊〉 Chief Precedent de Gourgues. out of his Majesty's presence, died a very few days after. He had this obligation to the Duke of Espernons unkindness, that it discovered in him a great many excellent qualities, that would otherwise have been buried in his Ashes; for had he in truth had nothing more to do, than merely to have exercised the ordinary functions of his place, he would even in that capacity have met with concurrences enough to have disputed that honour with him: but having had opportunity to manifest his courage in so mighty, and dangerous a dispute, his Eloquence in so many Illustrious Assemblies, and his Zeal for the dignity, and honour of his Fraternity, in so many notable, and important occasions, has left behind him so fair a memory, that he does at this day pass, in the opinions of all that knew him, for one of the greatest men that ever presided in that Court. If the King's success in the reducing of Rochel gave a high reputation to the Royal Arms, the quick dispatch of that Siege was of no less utility to his other Affairs; for every one imagining this Victory would have cost as many years, as he was months about it, that opinion was so generally received, and concluded for so infallible a truth by all the neighbouring Princes, that there was hardly one, who had not proposed to himself some advantage, or other from this long diversion; either to the prejudice of his Majesty's Reputation, or to that of his Affairs. The King of Spain therefore, the King of England, the Dukes of Savoy, and Lorain, entered into a powerful League, that every one might make his benefit of this Civil War: Wherein Spain and Savoy doubted not, without any resistance, to possess themselves of the Territories of the Duke of Mantua, an Ally, and a Vassal to this Crown: The design of the English was not only to relieve and re-establish the remains of the Reformed Religion in France; but also to revenge themselves for the losses they had sustained in the business of the Isle of Ré, and the Duke of Lorain (an ambitious, and offended Prince) proposed to himself, and that without much difficulty, the usurpation of the three Bishoprics of Metz, Toul, and Verdun, which, as they were naturally members of it, would bring an equal addition of benefit, and honour to his own Dukedom. The last of the foremention'd Princes not daring to begin the quarrel, stayed expecting when the other Confederates should break the Ice, in the mean time concealing his designs under a dissembled show of Friendship; and the King of England, not well recovered of the late Blow, had no mind to declare without the concurrence of the Duke of Lorain: so that whilst these two Princes sat still in mutual expectation, which should lead the Field, the King of Spain, and the Duke of Savoy, falling smartly to work, Spain and Savoy invade Mantua. had by Arms so far advanced their designs, that they had already possessed themselves of most of the Duke of Mantua's Cities, and excepting Casal, and Mantua itself, were masters of the whole Duchy. The King, justly incensed at so great an injury offered to him in the person of his Ally, might reasonably enough have revenged himself by the same way, by which he had been offended; but retaining, it should seem, a greater respect for the Duke of Savoy, than he had done for him, he dispatched an Ambassador to him to complain That without denouncing of War, and to the violation of their former Treaties, he had taken Arms against a Prince, whom as an Ally he was obliged in honour to protect; advising him in the conclusion, either to restore things to the condition wherein he had found them, or to prepare himself to withstand the utmost power of his Arms, which he was resolved to employ for the vindication of his own Honour, and the protection of his Friends, and Allies. If the Duke of Savoy (a Prince truly great in all things) had not yet been more ambitious, than he was great, it had been no hard matter for him to have found out such a remedy, as might easily have prevented the ensuing War; but being big with the hope of taking Monferrat, he was not to be persuaded to give over an Enterprise, which he thought as good as certain to him. He could not imagine that the King's Army tired out, as it was, with the incommodities of a tedious Siege, could be in any condition of coming to trouble his designs; neither did he believe that the King himself, who had been exposed to the same inconveniences his Army had suffered, could be so soon able in his own person to undertake so troublesome a Journey▪ which being presupposed, nothing could have power to hinder his Affairs; so that endeavouring to hold his Majesty in hand, without giving his Ambassador any positive answer, or absolutely engaging his word, he still continued his Usurpation. The King impatient of this injury to his own person, and more of the injustice done to the Duke of Mantua, with a Resolution as generous in itself, as the execution proved glorious to his Name, concluded the following February, to cross the Alps, and through all the difficulties of Snow, and Ice, to force his way to the defence of his Honour, The King goes into Italy. which in Italy was so highly engaged. An Expedition that the Duke of Savoy finding he could not with all his dexterity prevent, he resolved by Arms to guard the Entry into his own Dukedom: and to that end he caused the passage of Suze (a pass nature herself had made inaccessible (if any thing could be so to Valour) to be strangely fortified: The Duke de la Valette forces le pas de Suze. but this strong Post the King made no difficulty to assault, in which Service the Duke de la Valette Colonel of the Foot, putting himself in the head of the Forlorn Hope, drawn out of the Regiment of Guards, first mounted the Enemy's Works, and showing himself as much Superior to his Followers in bravery, as he was in Command, in a few hours overcame all difficulties, both of Mountains, and men that opposed his way. The Duke of Savoy after this defeat, not knowing what to oppose against the King's victorious Arms, since his best Forces, when fortified in a Post of so great advantage, had not been able to withstand them, began to see his danger, and to perceive he had no way left but by an Accommodation to defend himself from manifest and apparent ruin; which made him sue to the King for Peace, and obtained it upon condition, the Duke should favour the passage of his Army to the relief of the Duke of Mantua so unjustly invaded: An Accommodation with Savoy being thus concluded, the Spaniard, who despaired of being able to make good his ground in the open Field, against an Army that had with so great facility forced the Duke of Savoy's people in their own Trenches, thought fit to accept of the same conditions; and accordingly not only rose from before Casal, but moreover restored all the places they had already taken in the Duke of Mantua's Dominions, wisely choosing rather to give way to the King's Fortune, than to run the hazard of a Battle, the event whereof they feared would be fatal to them: though this discretion only served to defer for a time the Victories heaven had destined for us over that insolent, and implacable Nation. Doubtless had the King pleased to have made use of this occasion, and the power he had to effect any design he would have undertaken, he might at this time with great facility have given the Spanish Forces such a blow, that they would not of many years after have been in any condition to have braved him again in Italy: but his Majesty, contenting himself with having rescued his Ally from the oppression of those two mighty Enemies, would not in his own person seem to violate that Equity and Justice he had travelled so far to defend. If the Foreign Princes had taken a wrong measure in the belief they had entertained of the length of the Siege of Rochel, the Duke of Rohan was no less mistaken in the Expedition of Italy; wherein he doubted not his Majesty would meet with so many great, and tedious difficulties, that he hoped himself (who was the soul of his whole Party) might in the mean time, and in the interval of the King's absence, infuse so much vigour into his declining cause, as that they would be in a condition for some time at least, to defend themselves. He had therefore taken Arms in the Sevennes, The Duke of 〈◊〉 takes Arms whilst the King is in Italy. and with the assistance of the Cities of Montauban, Nismes, Millaut, Castres', Privas, Vsetz, and some others, had got such a body of an Army together, as therewith he hoped to maintain himself in that little angle of the Kingdom, and either presently to obtain some advantageous conditions, or to expect a more favourable time for the reestablishment of his depressed party. In the mean time he treated secretly with Spain, from whence he had also obtained a promise of some supply of money: but the King, who had intelligence of his practice, returning with the same celerity out of Italy into France, in the most violent heats of Summer, with which he had passed out of France into Italy in the greatest extremity of Winter, presented himself before Privas (one of the Rebel Cities) in june, which also at his first coming he carried by assault: after which Aletz, another of the same principles, surrendered without any resistance. The Duke of Rohan, observing what a terror the taking of these two places had infused into his whole Faction; and knowing on the other side that a Peace with Italy, and England was already concluded, began to apprehend at last he should be totally deserted by all his Confederates, and Friends, and left alone to bear the shock of his Majesty's victorious Arms; which made him in time seriously to apply himself to his mercy, to avoid the severe effects of his Justice. One of the most powerful motives that induced him to sue for this Peace, was doubtless the blocking up of Monta●ban, and the waste that, now the third time by express order from the King, was made round about that City. The Duke of Rohan had placed his latest refuge in the strength of this place, and had ever hoped, whilst it could maintain itself in a condition to sustain a tedious Siege, that resistance would infallibly put him into a capacity of obtaining very good Conditions: but the King, who had foreseen this design, writ to the Prince of Condé to join himself with the Duke of Espernon (to whom he also writ at the same time to the same effect) to deprive Montauban, by destroying their Fruits, of all possibility of subsistence, and therein the Duke of Rohan of the assistance he promised to himself from thence in the last extremity of his declining Affairs. The Prince would himself be the bearer of this Dispatch, dated from Suze the 27 th'. of April, and accordingly arrived at Bourdeaux in the latter end of May; where betwixt him, and the Duke, all things were soon concluded on for the execution of his Majesty's Commands: an Enterprise, that although the Duke had neither competent Forces, nor other means wherewithal to perform it, that no order had been sent either for money to raise men, to furnish ammunitions of War, or to buy provisions for the support of the Army; his affection to the Service notwithstanding supplying all other defects, he soon put himself into a condition to second the Prince's desires; wherein he was indeed necessitated almost alone to undertake the business, how difficult soever he knew it to be: For the Prince being obliged by his Command to have an especial eye to the higher Languedoc, his presence was there very requisite, and almost continually required: but the Duke failed not, for any other consideration, according to his custom, to acquit himself very exactly of his share of the work. Whilst the Duke was in the heat of this execution, the Peace was concluded with the Duke of Rohan in july, which all the other Cities of his Faction likewise accepted, excepting Montauban which for some days stood out; not that they did not desire it equally with the rest, they had suffered too much, and were reduced to too necessitous a condition to oppose their own quiet: but the Duke (whatsoever those of Montauban could pretend) to wit, That having suffered so much by his Arms they could not consent to allow him the honour of having subdued them) very well understood that all those excuses were suggested to them by the Cardinal, who ambitious to have the honour of totally suppressing that party attributed to himself, did especially desire, that this City (which after the surrender of Rochel was become the Metropolis of the Faction) should be delivered up into his hands. He had therefore acquainted the principal of the Inhabitants, that it was from him alone they were to expect whatever advantages they could propose to themselves from this Accommodation, and that it would therefore concern them to reserve themselves entirely for him, to be the more worthy of his protection, from whence they might derive a greater support, than from all other powers upon earth. The Duke nettled at this usage, and unable in the interests of Honour to give place to any whomsoever, retired himself to his House Cadillac, with a resolution seeing the Cardinal would by his Authority ravish from him an honour, he had by his Services so highly deserved, not to pay him so much as the civility of a Visit in his Government, into which he was now coming, to take possession of Montauban, The Cardinal come; to Mont●ub●n. as if he had been the man had reduced it: But the Cardinal, whose design it was (as has been said) to engross to himself the whole reputation of this War, thought nothing would so much illustrate his Triumph, as to receive a Visit from the Duke of Espernon in one of the principal Cities of his own Government, and conceiving such a Compliment would pass in the opinion of all the world for an absolute testimony of an entire submission, he was infinitely desirous to have him won to that complacency; which being he could not handsomely try to do directly from himself, he caused him to be very highly importuned to that purpose, by some of the Duke's own peculiar friends, who were at that time about his person. These Gentlemen therefore, and amongst others particularly Marshal Bassompierre represented to the Duke, that all this time an interview betwixt the Cardinal and him was highly necessary to the good of his own Affairs, without which he could not possibly avoid giving a mortal Affront to a man become absolute at Court by the ruin of a Faction, which alone had hitherto served for an allay to the excess of his power. An advice that was so well seconded by le Plessis, who of all others had the greatest sway with the Duke, and fortified with so many powerful Arguments, that at last he resolved upon this Visit. Yet do I very well remember with how great reluctancy it was, and with how strange a violence upon his own humour, and haughty spirit, that he suffered himself to be overruled in this particular, and how unwillingly he set out towards Montauban. Though the Cardinal was very much pressed by his own Interests to go in all diligence after the King, who had taken the way to Paris immediately upon the conclusion of the Treaty, it is notwithstanding most certain, that he waited two whole days together the Duke's coming to Montauban; where when he came, he received him with extraordinary kindness, and respect, and though many things had passed upon leveral occasions that might reasonably enough beget ill blood betwixt them, The D●ke gives the Cardinal a vis●● at Montau●an 〈◊〉, and is very well received by him. the Cardinal by an excess of freedom, and civility, gave manifest testimonies, that he retained no memory of any former unkindness: but on the contrary protested, that he would value the Duke's friendship preferably to any other persons in the Kingdom, which was his own expression; and upon an intimation the Duke gave him, that he had occasion to make a Journey to Court, promised him, that so soon as he should see the King, he would procure him leave so to do; a thing, which with all the importunities he could make, the Duke had before not been able to obtain: Neither did the Cardinal limit his offers here, he assuring him moreover, that he would serve him in all things, and if he would give him leave, supply the place of a fourth Son to him, wherein he would contend with the other three, which should pay him the greatest honour, which were the express terms of his Compliment. The next day after his arrival, the Cardinal treated him in his own Lodgings, where he gave him the chief place of honour at the Table, notwithstanding the Duke of Montmorency was there present, omitting no civility that might beget a strict League of Friendship betwixt them: so that it is most certain, could the Duke have bowed a little, and discretly have husbanded these good dispositions, he might have improved them infinitely much to his own advantage: but according to his custom, either as if he hd repent the having done too much; or as if he had a mind to blot out what any one could lay to his charge for having condescended too low in this visit, by retaining a kind of a grum reservedness in the rest of his Actions, he overthrew in a moment all the good his friends expected he should reap from this complacency: insomuch that I have often heard le Plessis wish he had never advised him to it. After they were risen from the Table, the Duke being withdrawn to a Window in the Room where they had dined to entertain the Duke of Montpensier in private; the Cardinal, who had the Archbishop of Bourdeaux in very high consideration, came to present him to the Duke to reconcile him to him. This Pr●late had applied himself particularly to the Cardinal's Service, and by a great complacency in all things, having adapted himself to his humour, and by that means got into a high degree of favour with him, had entreated the Cardinal by his Interest to put him upon good terms with the Duke; there having since the Archbishop's advancement to that Dignity (which fell to him by the death of the Cardinal de Sourdis his Brother) some differences happened betwixt the Duke, and him, that had begot a little distance betwixt them. I was present at this Dinner (led thither by my curiosity as some others were) and (if it may be called one) consequently at this Reconciliation: When the Cardinal, who had already prepared the Duke for the busienss, and thought he had conquered his animosity, coming to him to the Window, where he stood, said to him these words, The Duke of Espernon gives Cardinal Richelieu new cause of oftense. My Lord, I here present you the Archbishop of Bourdeaux, who is resolved to be your Servant; and I therefore entreat you to be his friend upon my account: to which the Duke scornfully turning that way, coldly replied, My Lord the Archbishop and I know one another very well: After which, and a salute as cold as his compliment, he turned again without more Ceremony towards the Duke of Montpensier, and followed on his discourse. The Duke of Espernon had no friend, nor Servant there, that could not heartily have wished this action had passed after a more obliging fashion: but that was all could be got from him. It is not to be doubted but that this indifferency highly disobliged the Cardinal, Which is nevertheless dissembled by the Card●nal. who found by that he had not yet acquired so great an Empire over the Duke's haughty spirit, as by his great civilities he hoped he had gained upon him: he nevertheless retired into his Chamber without taking any more notice at all, and conquering his own passion, chose rather to attribute that odd carriage to the Duke's imperious humour (which he had practised so long, as to be well enough acquainted with it) than to lose the earnest he had already given towards the purchase of his friendship. He continued therefore to use him with the same respect he had hitherto done, and was yet so highly civil to him, that the next day when he departed from Montauban to go towards the Court, accompanied with the Duke of Montpensier, Marshal Bassompierre, and several other persons foe very great quality, that followed his Litter on Horseback; he was so highly respective to the Duke, that he would not offer to go into it, so long as the Duke stayed with him, which was nevertheless half a League at least from the City, but entertained him all the way on Horseback, though so soon as he took his leave he went into his Litter, without retaining the same respect to any of the rest. I cannot, before I proceed any further, omit an observation I made at the Entertainment, of which we are now speaking, and of which the several misfortunes of the most eminent persons there have often put me in mind. There was scarce any body at the Cardinal's Table, excepting the Dukes of Montmorency, and Espernon, the Marshal Bassompierre, and Marillac; three of which were the Cardinal's most intimate friends, and he would needs rank the fourth in that degree: from whence, if we consider what advantage, he amongst them all, that was the best used in succession of time, reaped from his friendship; we shall understand upon how tickle, and dangerous a point, all Court-favour depends. The Duke of Espernon was no sooner resolved upon a Journey to Court. The Duke acquaints the Prince of Condé with his resolution of going to Court. but that he would in the first place acquaint the Prince of Condé with his purpose, and therein consult his advice; the respect he bore to this Prince, and the confidence he reposed in his Friendship being such, as would not permit him to settle the least resolution, without making him privy to his design: wherein there was nothing of dissimulation, for he was effectually the Prince's Servant, and to such a degree, that it must have been a service of a very foul nature, he would not cheerfully have undertaken for him. He therefore dispatched away his Secretary to him, to acquaint him with his determination, and thereupon to beg his advice. The Prince was at this time at Rabastens in * A Country in Langu●d●●. Albigeois, where after the Secretary had delivered what was given him in charge from the Duke his Master, the Prince with great civility returned this answer: That he concerned himself very much in all the Duke's interests: That in another time, and during the favour of the Luines, he might have been capable of giving him such advice, as he durst have answered would have been serviceable to him, they having been men of so candid dispositions, as that their intentions might have been perfectly discovered; but that at present he was so totally in the dark, as to any understanding in the designs of those who were now at the Helm: That he durst not adventure to give the Duke any counsel, lest something might happen as prejudicial to his advice, as contrary to his desire; only he had very good intelligence that the Guard des Sceaux had been very busy, and inquisitive in making a collection of what Warrant● the Duke had issued out, for the subsistence of such Forces as had served in his Government: That indeed he could not tell to what end he had done it; but he could not imagine it would be to any good intent, and that therefore the Duke might, if he pleased, consider of it. With which uncertain answer the Secretary was dismissed. The Duke, who was very secure of his own innocency (and it is to be wished he had been as cautious, and moderate to his own good, as he was perfectly honest to the King) did not, for all this caution, desist from still earnestly soliciting his leave, which in the end, after the Cardinal's arrival at Court, he obtained, by a very favourable dispatch from the King himself to that effect. The Duke no sooner received this permission, but that he made all the haste he could to Court, The Duke of Espernon arrives at Court, and is very well received. to avoid the inconvenience of a Winter Journey; which he did by coming to Paris before All-Saints. At his arrival (as at other times) he was welcomed with a great number of persons of Quality, who came out to meet him, and to attend him to the Lovure; where he first alighted, and where he was by his Majesty much better received, than he expected, by reason of several ill offices he knew had been done him to the King. It was indeed chiefly to justify himself from those aspersions, that he had been so passionately importunate for leave to come to Court; and he had expressed so much in his Letters, which was perhaps the thing that made his permission so hard to obtain; Princes being commonly no better disposed to admit of excuses, than they are to make them. From the Lovure he went to wait upon the Cardinal, to whom he stood obliged, not only for his leave to come, but also for his Majesty's gracious reception now he was come, and was by him also received after a most infinitely obliging manner, the Cardinal still improving his civilities, and again making him a new tender of his service upon all occasions, as indeed from that time forward he began to distinguish him by his respect, from all other great persons of the Kingdom. Already either the multiplicity of business with which the Cardinal was continually taken up, Anno 1630. or the design he had to render his person more venerable, and more authoritative, by communicating it to few, had put him upon that stately way of living, that he was very rarely to be seen: insomuch that the Dukes, and Peers of France, the Officers of the Crown, the blue Garters, and whoever of the highest quality of the Kingdom, made no difficulty to wait below in the Hall, amongst a promiscuous crowd of Clients, and Suitors, the hours of his leisure, whether they came only to visit, or to speak with him about their Affairs: nay and were glad to go sometimes twice, sometimes more, before they could get access to his person: Extraordinary civilities of the Cardinal to the Duke of Espernon. But the Cardinal, who was well enough acquainted with the Duke's temper to know, that such a repulse would not need to fright him for ever coming again to see him, entreated him beforehand, never to give himself the trouble of coming to see him, without first giving him notice, that he might always be at liberty to receive him: a rule the Duke on his part so well observed, that he never came, but all the Gates were opened to him; his Coach admitted into the Court, and himself to all the freedom he could desire; when oftentimes persons of very great condition could hardly be admitted at the Wicket. It has however been believed that all these extraordinary civilities began at Montauban, and continued to this time, were not altogether without design. Some have thought that the Cardinal, who evidently perceived that the Queen Mother (who had suffered herself to be wrought upon by some ill offices had been done him in his absence) to be grown cold in her affection to him, would have been glad to have made the Duke his friend. He was powerful in himself, and much more in his Sons; so that being secured of their friendship (which the whole Court knew to be faithful and inviolate where they once took) he thought he could receive no so violent an assault of Fortune, he should not be able, whilst backed with so powerful a Family to withstand. There was great probability in this conjecture, and the Duke himself (as clear-sighted as any) was perhaps of the same opinion; but if on the one side the Cardinal courted the Duke's friendship for this reason, the Duke on the other side would by no means go directly opposite to the Queen Mother's inclinations. He had ever honoured her, though he had not always been well used by her; and, having ever imputed to the Cardinal himself the greatest part of those unkindnesses he had received from this Princess, was more dissatisfied with him, than the Queen Mother for the ill returns of his Service. But another reason which made him so reserved in the acceptation of this precipitous friendship, was the imperious superiority the Cardinal pretended to over all the other great men of the Kingdom; which the Duke could never allow him over himself to the degree that he desired, as still retaining a memory how much he had known him inferiors to him. All these considerations together rendered him less complacent, than could have been wished for the prosperity of his own Affairs: I shall not nevertheless herein take upon me to censure the Duke's conduct, nor attempt to pass so liberal a judgement upon a person I am, for so many respects, obliged to honour; though the event made it plain, that had he carried things otherwise, he had done better. In short the Duke was so much the more reserved to the Cardinal, than he expected he should be, that the ardour of his sudden affection cooling by degrees every day more and more, degenerated at last into a perfect hatred, and from thence to persecution, as we shall hereafter, in due order of time, and the occurrences of Affairs, make more evidently to appear. All things that had hitherto passed betwixt the Duke, and the Cardinal were well enough understood; and this good intelligence continued till the Cardinal's departure for Italy, the Duke being (as has been said) ever treated by him with extraordinary kindness, and respect far different from what he showed to all other persons of the same condition; yet could not the Duke (whose humour was impatient of any thing that touched him) sometimes forbear lashing out into very free expressions (giving the Cardinal thereby very often to understand, that he was not to expect any mean, or submiss toleration from him) of which I shall here present you one example. The Cardinal either presuming upon the authority of his favour with the King, or the affection he pretended to have for the Duke, took one day the libetry to give him some advice concerning his deportment; whereupon falling into discourse of his severe humour, and giving him counsel to correct it, he did it merrily in the Duke's own broad Gascon accent (from which, how long a habitude soever he had had at Court, he could never totally wean himself) which interweaving with some very civil expressions, he seriously desired him in the end not to take it ill, if he had made a little bold with him in imitating his own way of speaking: to which this untractable spirit (highly offended at a raillery something too familiar for his humour) briskly replied: A smart r●ply of the Duke of Espernon to the Cardina●. Why should I take that ill from you, which I suffer from Marais, who every day acts me in your presence? This Marais was one of the Grooms of the Chamber to the King, a pleasant fellow, and a Buffoon, that had a marvellous faculty of imitation, who by his faces, and tricks would make folks laugh; and when acting before the King, and the Cardinal, would make a bold with the Duke of Espernon, as other people. It cannot be imagined, but that without all doubt this comparison must needs displease the Cardinal; neither were the Duke's Servants, and Friends, to whom he related this passage at his coming home, much better satisfied with it: but the words were already out of his mouth, and were no more to be recalled. Every one apprehended this liberty would draw upon him the hatred of him that was all powerful at Court; yet did nothing at present appear: so that if the Cardinal was really distasted at it, he nevertheless deferred his revenge till a fitter season. And indeed he had at this time something else to do, New stirs at Court, occasioned by the discontents of the Queen Mother, and the Monsi●●r. than to stand upon a particular Quarrel with the Duke of Espernon, so many other Affairs of very high concern falling upon him at once, and at the same instant, that perhaps in his life he never had so hard a Game to play. The Queen Mother had long been very much dissatisfied with his proceeding; and her ill will, grown now to a greater degree than ever, she could no longer forbear to profess an open, and implacable hatred against him. She could not endure that a man who was her Creature, and raised by her bounty, should get the start of her in the confidence of the King her Son, wherein by all the reasons in the world she ought to be preferred, The Queen Mother professes an open hatred to the Cardinal. and that made her directly oppose all his Counsels, which how well soever they succeeded, she still found matter enough to render them suspected to the King, and to discredit them by sinister interpretations. So great a power as this hitherto entire, and fortified by all the considerations of duty, and nature, was not easily to be baffled by a Servant, and who had no other support, than the affection of his Master, of itself mutable and uncertain; so that the Cardinal seeing himself assaulted by so passionate, and so powerful an Enemy, might reasonably enough apprehend being crushed to nothing under the weight of her Authority, and Power: but as mischiefs seldom come alone, several Foreign troubles also concurred with this disorder at home: The Duke of Savoy was grown by this time sensible of the dishonourable peace he had concluded at Suze: to which the loss of Montferrat stuck mainly in his stomach: The War with Sav●y. He had reckoned himself sure of the conquest of this place, and indeed had not the King interposed, that Country had by this time been wholly in his possession: He had therefore more firmly than ever confederated himself with the House of Austria, to the end they might jointly invade the Duke of Mantua; the rumour of which preparation was already spread abroad, and they were already in Arms; in which condition this desolate Prince had no body to fly to for protection, save only the King of France. His interests, that could not without infamy be abandoned, put the Cardinal's Affairs into very great danger; who, as on the one side he very well knew that Court divisions, which are the issue of ease, and rest, are ordinarily smothered in employment, and of all other in that of War: So he also saw that this War being to be undertaken by his Counsels, to which the Queen Mother was directly opposite, he should become responsible for the event, and that the least disafter that should happen would infallibly be laid at his door. Yet, as if all these difficulties had been too few to perplex him, another of no less importance fell out at the same time, which was the discontent of the Monsieur, The Monsieur discontented. and his sudden retirement from Court; to which also another succeeded, and that was the Duke of Lorain's taking Arms, The Duke of Lor●in takes Arms▪ to join with the Emperor; who having a design to possess us with some jealousy of our Frontier of Lorain (thereby to give the Confederate Princes more leisure to make a Progress in Italy) seemed to threaten Metz, by advancing that way with his Army, and fortifying all the places upon that Frontier. In this conflux of untoward accidents, the Cardinal, The Cardinal● dexterity in composing these Affairs. though he could work nothing upon the implacable spirit of the Queen Mother, he found means nevertheless to appease the Monsieur, and to bring him back to Court, by obtaining for him from the King, whatever he could either for himself, or in the behalf of his friends, demand or desire. He sent moreover into Lorain to sound the Duke's intentions, who for this time dissembling his designs, protested he had taken Arms for no other end, than to serve the King, by opposing the Emperor's designs; who, he said, could attempt nothing upon his Country, that must not infallibly redound to the prejudice of France. So that by this means the Cardinal having either composed, diverted, or at least deferred part of those mischiefs that most immediately pressed upon him, he would himself undertake the expedition of Italy; whilst the King should totally reclaim the Monsieur his Brother, and satisfy all his discontents, by the performance of those things that had been promised to him. The Cardinal was no sooner arrived in Savoy, The Cardinal's expedition into Italy. but that he sent to feel the pulse of that Duke, whom finding still constant to his old State Maxims (which was by fair words, and large promises to amuse such, as were likely to hinder his designs, whilst he in the mean time was still intent upon his business) he fell so briskly to work, that having taken from him Pignerol, and some other strong places, the Savoyard was at last constrained to return again to his first Treaty. The King awaked by this good success of his Arms, and unwilling the glory they seemed to assure should derive to a Servant, resolved upon a Journey into Italy to command his Army in his own person; neither though the Cardinal was ambitious to the height, was he at this time sorry, he should come to eclipse his honour, since he must leave Paris to do it, where he knew all ill offices were perpetually done him. The interest of his conservation therefore prevailed here with the Cardinal over his insatiate thirst of Glory: but the Queen Mother stiffly opposed this Voyage, by representing to the King the interests of his health, and safety; to which she forgot not to add the Cardinal's inordinate ambition, The King resolves upon a Voyage into Italy. who she said cared not to expose both the one, and the other for his own particular vanity. But all these remonstrances proved in the end too weak to prevail; so that the appetite of Honour prevailing above all other considerations, and his Majesty being not to be stayed at home: the Queen Mother to give the Cardinal less time to re-establish himself with the King (who had after much importunityconsented at last to his banishment) was resolved to follow the King her Son to Lions, to try if she could, whilst he was in this good disposition, obtain the effects of his promise. The King then in April set forwards from Paris towards Italy, the glorious success of which second Expedition, making up one of the most illustrious parts of General History, it ought not to be contracted within the narrow bounds of a particular Life; wherein the Duke of Espernon having also had no share, I should not have waded so far as I have done into these secret Affairs of Court, had they not at last proceeded to involve him further therein, than he had himself intended to engage. Before the King's departure from Paris, the Duke especially solicitous of his Service within the Precincts of his own Government, entreated his Majesty to appoint him an Intendant de la justice; he having at his coming out of Guienne left there neither Lieutenant, nor Intendant in his absence to look after his Majesty's Affairs in that Province: a request that the King being very willing to grant, as it principally concerned himself, he gave the Duke liberty to choose whom he should think fit out of his Council. The Employment, being one of the greatest honour, was covered by several persons of very great desert; but the Duke preferring above all those who made suit for it, one of the Council, that perhaps lest dreamed of any such thing, entreated Monsieur de Verthamont Master of Requests to accept it. This person of approved honesty, and equal capacity, had, in several Employments of very great importance, given very good proofs both of the one, and the other: but these qualities how eminent soever, were yet accompanied with another that served no less to recommend him to the Duke's Election; and that was the great friendship betwixt him and Monsieur d' Autry, at that time Precedent Seguier, and since Guard des Sceaux, and Chancellor of France; with whose good conduct in the same Commission, the Duke had been so highly satisfied, that he desired nothing more, than one that would imitate his Virtue to succeed him: and he hoped to find in this Gentleman, what he had already proved in his Predecessor; neither was he deceived in his Judgement, he found his expectation answered to the full. And for ten years together that Verthamont served the King in the Duke's Government, he gave the Duke so many testimonies of his integrity, and virtue, and in return received from the Duke so high, and so just applause, that I dare be bold to affirm, there was never observed the least dissent, or contrariety betwixt them. The end of the Ninth Book. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. The Tenth Book. AT the same time that Verthamont departed for Guienne, the Duke of Espernon was preparing to go to Metz, there to expose his person for the defence of so important a place. A Journey to which he was continually pressed by the constant intelligence he received from thence, that the Emperor's Forces every day increased, that he was fortifying Moyenvic, a very considerable place near that City; Upon the bruit that the Imperialists designed an attempt upon Metz, the Duke of Espernon puts himself in●o the place▪ and that the Duke of Lorain (notwithstanding all his fair pretences) was certainly confederated with the House of Austria, to the prejudice of the Kingdom of France. The Duke de la Valette his Son had, by his Majesty's Command, been sent away befoe, upon the first jealousy the Court had conceived of the Emperors, and the Duke of Lorains designs: but the Duke, prudently considering, that a Frontier of so great importance could not be too carefully provided for, went with some of his friends to put himself into it, having moreover engaged several other persons of condition (who had stayed behind at Paris after the King's departure) if occasion were, to come, and join themselves with him, for the defence of the place: So that had it ever come to a Siege, the respect that several worthy men bore to the Duke's person would, without all doubt, have invited a great many persons of great quality, and approved valour, to serve in so honourable an occasion. But there happened to be no need of any such thing; and perhaps the presence of the Duke, and the prudent care he, together with the Duke his Son, took for the preservation of that City, made the Emperor alter his design, by putting him out of all hopes to effect it. The Duke arrived at Metz the first of May, The Duke of Espernon comes to Metz. where he was received with manifestations of an universal joy in the people, becoming their gratitude, and his own desert. In his way thither he had called to see the Marshal de Marillac, who as he was at this time (at least in outward appearance) in greatest repute with the Cardinal, so had he the principal charge of the Affairs of that Country committed to his care; wherein doubtless this unfortunate Gentleman laboured to his own ruin, and to the Sentence of Death that not long after passed upon him: He visits the Marshal de Marillac. for the Duke found him busy fortifying the Citadel of Verdun, preparing provisions, and other necessaries for the Army of Champagne, and performing several other Services, which after passed for Crimes, that were judged worthy of no less than Death. The Duke was by him received with all sorts of honour, and noble entertainment; to which the Marshal soon after added a visit at Metz, where they consulted long together of what was best to be done for the King's Service upon that Frontier, continuing ever after in a more strict correspondence than before. The Duke was no sooner arrived at Metz, The Duke's orders for the defence of Me●z. but that he forthwith fell to work about the repair of the old Fortifications of the City, and to the designing of new; he sent moreover to solicit the Duke of Orleans (left Regent during the King's absence) for a supply of some Ammunitions of War: but he had first sent a dispatch to the King to acquaint him with his motion towards the Frontier: with which his Majesty in his answer of the 23. of May declared himself to be highly satisfied; sending him word, That his being in those parts, would secure his fears for what concerned the safety of the whole Frontier of Lorain; exhorting him to continue his vigilancy, and care for the conservation of so importanct a place; assuring him withal of his good will, and affection, and of the esteem he had of his person, justly grounded upon his merit, and old Services for the Crown. Which were in part the express words of that Dispatch. In the mean time the rumour daily increasing that Wallest●in was advancing with his Army to waste the Country about Metz, and afterwards to block it up by Forts, and the Duke conceiving that the King would be so taken up in Savoy, that he could not come to relieve him, should he chance to be reduced to any great strait; he saw it was necessary for him to make use of his own Credit, Money, and Friends, therewithal to serve his Majesty upon this occasion. He writ therefore to the Cardinal de la Valette his Son, who was then with the King, to tell his Majesty, the Queen Mother, and the Cardinal, That foreseeing how hard a thing it would be for his Majesty in the heat of his Erterprises, to provide for the necessities of the place, and Frontier, where he had the honour to serve him, he frankly offered, The D●ke offers the King to raise an Army upon his own interest. if his Majesty would give him leave, upon his own credit, to raise and arm ten thousand Foot, and five hundred Horse for the defence of the City of Metz, and the Messine Country. An offer that the King, with high commendations of his worth, as freely accepted, writing him a very obliging Letter thereupon; and the Cardinal in his dispatch dated from St. jean de Morienne the 25 th'. of july, expressing himself thus: Which is accepted. As concerning the offer you have made the King, to advance money for the Levies you desire to set on foot, his Majesty looks upon it with such an eye of acknowledgement, as the quality of so generous an offer does justly deserve; knowing, as he does, the zeal you have to the success of his Affairs, and the power you have, as heretofore, to serve him for the time to come, The Duke to add effects to this promise, departed from Metz about the end of july, to return to Paris, there to raise money for his Levies, and to provide himself of such men of Command, as were willing to take employments upon this occasion; but the threats of the Imperialists by little, and little, vanishing at last to nothing, they satisfied themselves with having fortified Moyenvic, which was soon after taken, and demolished by the King's Army: and the Duke of Lorain, not daring at this time wholly to discover his evil intention, stayed to expect a fitter season, which also was not far off, wherein to do it; as he afterwards did, but with very ill success, as will in its due place appear. The Duke being thus returned to Paris, The Duke of Espernon returns to Paris. delivered of those apprehensions he had been possessed withal concerning Metz, and satisfied with his present conditon, sat still, calmly expecting, without any disquiet in his own particular concerns, the issue of the great Contests at this time on foot in the Court at Lions; where, it was said, the Queen Mother's animosity against the Cardinal was increased to such a degree, that in the greatest height of the King's sickness, which at this time was exceeding violent, she omitted no opportunity of incensing his Majesty against him, The King falls sick at Lions. as the sole author of his Disease; wherein her importunities were so great, as at last to obtain a solemn promise from the King, that so soon as the War of Italy was at an end, he would give her the satisfaction she desired, by removing this great Minister from the Administration of Affairs. Though the peril the Cardinal was now in, was very great, and that the Duke had continual intelligence of all that passed at Court, yet did he notwithstanding still continue towards him the same civility, and respect; he writ to him very often, and in truth so long as that great cloud of disgrace hung over his head, the Duke would have been really sorry, that it should have broke upon him: though he had by his dexterity no sooner cleared the sky of Favour, but that the Duke, who could not brook his excess of Authority, and Power, converted all his former complacency into testimonies of hatred; that failed very little, as we shall hereafter see, of rebounding back upon himself, to his own ruin. Which till it shall more plainly appear, I shall only say this by the way, that the Duke had doubtless a very great esteem for the Cardinal, never speaking of him, so much as in private, but with a Character of Honour, and respect; so that, had he not expected from his friends an over servile, and submiss regard, I do verily believe the Duke's friendship would have been constant, and inviolate to him: but a civility that went very far with the haughty humour of the one, appearing nothing to the excessive ambition of the other, the Cardinal enduring no equal, and the Duke hardly admitting of any superior; it was impossible so to compose things betwixt two so aspiring spirits, but that they would at last break out into an open feud. Whilst the Court at Lions was agitated with this Tempest of Division, of which we are now speaking, the Duke of Espernon in the greatest calm, and serenity of repose, enjoyed at Paris the honour, and applause, that his well known, and long continued virtue, had acquired to his person, and name; insomuch that, as his Coach passed through the streets, we had continually the pleasure of seeing the people flock together in crowds from all parts of the City to gaze upon him; considering with admiration so vigorous a health in so great an extremity of age, pursuing him with acclamations wherever he went; and the old hatred, that the former Factions had stirred up against him, being now converted into love, and esteem, gave us to understand, that envy is not always the concomitant of Virtue; but that there is a certain pitch, to which the one, being once arrived, is got clear out of sight of the other, which of a mean and earthy composition cannot shoot its darts so far as to reach the Station, where Supreme Virtue is enthroned. In this great, and undisturbed leisure, that the Duke enjoyed at Paris, he who was himself a great lover of Building, could find no better entertainment wherewithal to divert himself, than by going abroad to see the Houses, in and about the City, which were then erecting, with the magnificence that we now admire in our proud and stately Structures. Amongst others, going one day in very good company to the Hostel de Luxembourg, that the Queen Mother was then finishing, they entered the Gallery, where she had caused the manner of her escape from Blois (as the most remarkable passage of her life) to be painted in Story. One of the most apparent evidences the Duke could possibly receive, that that service of his was no more regarded, was, that he, who had been the sole Author of the whole Action, was no where represented in that painting, though so much as the very Footmen that opened the Boots of her Coach had not been omitted. He had heard before of this injustice that had been done him; but though it had touched him very near, had never manifested the least discontent: neither do I believe he would have said any thing upon this occasion, if the company who were with him, had not provoked him to it: But every one ask him questions of a thing whereof they knew he was able to give them the best account, at last some one freer than the rest, asked him how it came to pass that he was only left out of the story? to which the Duke modestly replied: A sudden answer of the Duke of Espersion to a very nice quest on. That he did not know who had done him that wrong; but that whoever they were that intended to disoblige him in it, had doubtless therein more offended the Queen, than him: That he was very certain (however excluded the story) that no one could condemn him for having any ways failed in the action, or in any thing he had undertaken for the Queen upon that occasion, his carriage of that business being too generally known for that; neither did he believe they would much magnify her, for having denied him so poor an acknowledgement. If the Duke was very well pleased to see himself in such a degree of reputation and esteem, A Famine in G●ienne. upon one of the most conspicuous Theatres of Europe; he was no less afflicted at the ill news he daily received from his Government, where their Corn Harvest had proved this year so thin, that thereupon a great, and deplorable Famine ensued throughout the whole Province of Guienne. Neither did the Duke fail in this exigent to try all possible ways to relieve them; for after having given order for the distribution of all the Grain that could be gathered in his own. Territories, he moreover dealt with some Merchants of Paris, who undertook, that provided they might have Commission from the King, out of Picardy, and Britanny, to make sufficient provision wherewithal to supply that Province. They had no sooner made this proposition to the Duke, but that he immediately dispatched away an express Courier to the King to obtain that leave, which was accordingly granted; upon the return of which dispatch those, who had so largely promised, did indeed perform something; but nothing near what they had made the Duke expect: so that nothing could so divert the Judgement Almighty God was pleased to inflict upon this delicate part of France; but that in less than six months' space above forty thousand persons miserably died for want of bread; a number that had in all probability yet been much greater, had the Duke's care to their preservation been less, by which the evil was at least moderated, though it could not be totally overcome. In the mean time the King's health was so miraculously restored at Lions, that his Majesty resolved to return back to Paris; during which Voyage 'tis said the Cardinal employed all manner of industry, and offered all sorts of submission to the Queen Mother to reconcile himself to her favour; but all in vain, she was still so implacably bend against him, that the Peace of Italy being already concluded, and consequently the time come wherein the King had promised her to remove the Cardinal, they were no sooner arrived at Paris, but that pursuing this Affair with the same vehemency she had begun, and so as if she had already foreseen all those evils she justly had to fear, she was importunately instant with the King for the accomplishment of his Royal Word. What repugnancy soever the King might have to deprive himself of a Servant he had found very useful to him in the management of his Affairs, yet the respect to a Mother, and the obligation of Nature had so prevailing a power over his own interest, and delight, that the Order was at last signed for the Cardinal's removal; when the King to avoid either the Ceremony, Cardinal Rich●lieu in disgrace. or Complaints of a Favourites farewel, returned upon that, and no other account to Versaille, from whence he was come but a few days before. Doubtless had the Queen Mother gone along with the King this little Journey, she had made herself absolute Mistress of Affairs, and there had been an end of the Cardinal: But she thinking the work already done, though she had but begun it (a common oversight) and out of that belief stopping short in the heat of her persecution, gave the Cardinal by that means leisure to re-establish himself with the King, and totally to subvert the power, that had been employed to his ruin. Yet was it not by his own prudence, and conduct, that he was thus suddenly restored, who on the contrary had set up his ●est, and was content to submit to his Fortune by withdrawing himself from Court; a resolution wherein he had been so precipitous, that he went the very evening of his disgrace to lie at Pointoise, from thence to continue his journey to Haure de Grace, the place he had made choice of for his retirement. His equipage was already prepared, already he was by the most of his friends (the first, and most ordinary effect of disgrace) slighted, and forsaken, and nothing but solitude remained in his House; when the Cardinal de la Valette, Cardinal Richeli●u restores himself with the King, by the advice of the Cardinal de la Valette. prompted by a design more generous in itself, than advantageous to, or perhaps expedient for the concerns of his own Family, rousing up the subdued spirit of his dejected Friend, made him by force of Arguments recollect himself, and see his error. He remonstrated to him, as it is sufficiently known to all the Kingdom (though so long as the Cardinal lived no one durft record it) That he could not assume a more dangerous resolution, than to think of retiring himself: That such as had once raised their fortunes to that height to which his was now arrived, had no steps left them by which again to descend: That he had no way to maintain himself in the height he then was, but by aspiring higher, that therein the way before him was honourable and secure; but that there was nothing but precipice behind him, which upon the least motion of retiring would give him such a fall, that he would never be able to rise again: That he deceived himself, if he thought his adversaries would satisfy themselves with what they had already done; it being plain that they must still apprehend the recovery of his power, which would be so much the more formidable to them, as he had been by them more justly provoked: That he was therefore to go boldly to the King, whilst the memory of his Services was yet recent, and whilst his enemies (blinded with their good success) had left a passage open to him, through which he might at great ease, and with great safety, travel to the ruin of their designs: That he would himself accompany him to run his share of the danger (if any could be) in the execution of what he did advise; and that having made him a promise of his friendship, he would preserve it inviolate to him in the one, and the other Fortune. What might not a friend have reasonably expected in acknowledgement of so prudent, and so generous a counsel, and that was crowned with so favourable a success? we shall nevertheless in a short time see a sad return of that seasonable kindness. Cardinal Richelieu fortified by this advice, The two Cardinals go together to the King to Versaille, where whilst the Queen Mother remains at Paris they overthrew all her designs. instead of taking his way towards Haure de Grace, went directly to Versaille, where addressing himself to the King, and being better acquainted than any with all the little Labyrinths of his Majesty's humour, he soon, by the charms of his Eloquence, overthrew whatever his Enemies thought they had established by more powerful ways. In the mean time the Queen Mother, dreaming of nothing less than so sudden a change, already reigned in Paris, behaving herself to all that came near her person like one who was now got to be the Sovereign Arbitress of all Affairs; no more caring either to improve, or retain her Interest with persons whose Service she conceived for the future unnecessary to the support of her Power. The Duke of Espernon happened (to his good Fortune) to be one of these, he had the day preceding the Thunderclap against the Cardinal, and of a long time before, received all kind of civil respect from this Queen; but after his dismission presenting himself before her as he used to do, she had so little regard for him, as before his face to hold discourse an hour together with people of far inferior quality, without so much as vouchsafing him one word. A neglect which if it was resented by the Duke (as it was to the last degree) it was notwithstanding of no little advantage to him: for the Cardinal, who knew how solicitous the Queen Mother had been to win him to her party before his disgrace, who was not ignorant of the strong connexion he had with the House of Guise, and above all of the great intimacy that was betwixt the Princess of Conty and him; and who had been moreover informed that the night preceding his disfavour, he had been long in secret Conference with the Marshal de Bassompierre one of his most passionate enemies, had from all these knowledges conceived a violent presumption, that the Duke must of necessity be deeply engaged in his enemy's interests, and designs. But the Queen's indifferency did in part justify him from that suspicion, An alteration in Affairs at Court. though some have believed that that alone would not have been sufficient absolutely to have cleared him from the Cardinal's jealousy, nor to have secured him from imprisonment at least, if the late merits of the Cardinal his Son had not rescued him from that danger. It was in truth very necessary some body else should have that care of him, he being so far from contributing in the least to his own preservation, that on the contrary after the face of Affairs was wholly changed, that the Queen Mother was fallen as well from her hopes, All people address themselves to the Cardinal. as her credit with the King, that the Princess of Conty was confined to her own House, that the Guard des Sceaux Marillac was under the same restraint, that Marshal Bassompierre was clapped up Prisoner in the Bast●le, and that an Order was granted out to call the Marshal Marill●c from the command of an Army to undergo an infamous Execution: In fine after the fatal day called la journée des Dupes had produced so many dire effects, that not only all the men of Quality, but almost all of any name at Court, went to visit the Cardinal, to dispossess him of the opinion, that they might have been any way inimical to him: Except the Duke of Espernon. the Duke of Espernon was perhaps the only man that would not go to see him, nor once offer to justify himself from the jealousy he might reasonably enough conceive of his disaffection, and that purposely the more to manifest it to him. He went 'tis true to Versaille, where he saw the King, and had the honour to talk with him; but he would never be prevailed upon to go into the Cardinal's Chamber, though very near the King's, to pay him the least civility, or respect. I saw le Plessis the same night infinitely afflicted at this carriage; this Gentleman who was very discreet, well versed in Affairs, and much more passionate for his Master's interests, than for any thing that concerned himself, had importuned him to give the Cardinal a Visit; but according to his custom, the more he represented to him the danger of not doing it, the more obstinate he was not to do it, his haughty, and undaunted spirit, rather choosing to transgress the Maxims of Policy, and Prudence▪ than those of Bravery and Honour. It is indeed true that he went two days after to see him, where the Cardinal knowing every tittle of what had passed) it may be imagined how he was received; though the Duke, without being concerned at his cold entertainment, said to those who spoke to him of it: That he had done as he ought to do; that every one did not understand the distinction that ought to be made betwixt the Master and the Servant; that those were respects so different in themselves, as they ought not to be slightly confounded; and that he was old enough to carry the authority of Example. Of all the means that can be proposed for the establishment of a prodigious power, Anno 1631. there is none so certain as attempts that are vainly made to suppress it; it appearing that whatever is imperfect in the one, does ever give increase to the other; neither can there be any so imprudent, or so dangerous a resolution, as to offend a great Minister by halves; since by making him sensible of the power he has to revenge himself, you give him at the same time a pretence to do it with some colour of Justice. It fell out so in the violent, but fruitless endeavours the Cardinal's Enemies made use of to work his ruin; by which being made to understand the interest he had in the King's bosom, and employing that interest under the sole pretence of retorting the injuries he had visibly received, he found his Majesty so much the more inclined to take his part, as he saw there was a kind of equity in the case: wherein he would not do his business by halves, as his enemies had done; but vigorously pressing them, who either had already fallen foul upon him, or who had yet the power to do it; he put himself by that means into a condition of living not only in security, The Cardinal falls foul upon his enemies. but also in repose for the time to come, by removing all such as were likely, either to molest his Peace, or to trouble his Affairs. As the Monsieur was the person whose power of all others (after having publicly declared himself his Enemy in his own House) the Cardinal had most cause to fear; no● sparing the Monsieur, so was he the first he took occasion to fright from Court, by causing him to be possessed, that his person was not there very secure: the Queen Mother nor the Queen Mother. also was by the same device persuaded to depart from Compeigne to retire into Flanders: So that these two being removed out of the way, and all the Queen's adherents being either clapped up in prison, or confined to their own Houses, nothing remained that could bring any obstacle to his designs, or stop the swing of his Fortune, that now sailed with all her Canvas a trip in the full Tide of Favour. The Duke of Espernon was yet at Court in the midst of this Tempest, who judging by the example of the wrack of these great Fortunes, what power the Cardinal would have over him, unless he did wholly submit himself to his pleasure, he chose rather calmly, and without disorder, to retire into his own Government, than to preserve himself by submitting to so unhandsome, and so dishonourable a compliance. He departed then from Paris in june 1631. to return into his Government of Guienne, The Duke of Espernon retires into his Government of Guienne, which he finds in a most deplorable condition. where being arrived he found that miserable Province in the most desolate condition that can possibly be imagined: the Famine had there been succeeded by a Plague; and if by his Wisdom, and good conduct, he had not delivered them from the third Judgement, which was that of the Sword, by keeping those Regiments quiet, that, after the Peace was concluded, had been sent thither to be refreshed, there had been an end of that pleasant part of France: but his good Discipline in restraining the licence of the unruly Soldiers, that were quartered in the Country; the good order he took for bringing in the relief of Corn; and the care he had, that he Magistrates, and Officers of Health, performed their duty in endeavouring to stop the progress of the Contagion in the City, were to so good effect; that without all doubt, both Bourdeaux, and the whole Province stand eternally obliged to his vigilancy and care. After having taken the best order he could for the preservation of the Capital City, he departed thence with a resolution to continue some time at his house Cadillac; but he could not make so long a stay there, as he intended. This little place being in a manner necessitated by its situation so near to Bourdeaux, and lying upon the same River, to have continual intercourse, and Commerce with the principal City, had thence caught the Infection, which, for ten or twelve days that the Duke made his abode there, made miserable havoc among them; yet was it only upon the Inhabitants of the Town, as if it had had a respect to his Family: insomuch that although he never refused to admit any of the people into his house, that he went himself frequently to visit the sick in their Cabins, and that so numerous a Train as his, could not long continue in so little a place, without having some communication with infected persons; yet was there (which was a kind of Miracle) a continual health throughout his whole Family. At last at the importunity of his Domestics, who were much more solicitous of him, than he was of himself, he resolved to leave the lower, and infected, to go seek out a better air, in the higher, and more healthful Gascony. The Duke goes into the higher Gascony. He went therefore first to Nerac, where he met intelligence of a Rebellion newly broken out at Saint-Afrique. This City, elevated to a strange degree of presumption, by having a Siege raised from before it, of which we have already spoken in the year 1628. received order at this time to quarter seven Foot Companies belonging to the Regiment of Phalsbourg, the same that has since long served by the name of the Regiment of Chamblay: upon the receipt of which Order, the Inhabitants had betaken themselves to open Arms, shut up their Gates, and denied entrance to those Companies. Neither was this all, they proceeded from words to some untoward effects, some Soldiers were killed from the Walls of the City; neither did these seditious people fail of their endeavours to engage Millant, and some other neighbouring Cities of their Religion, in the same Revolt: but the Duke having upon the first notice of this disorder presently transferred himself to Montauban, with a resolution to proceed further if occasion should require, by his presence, prevented further mischief, which otherwise might have grown up to something of greater importance. The Inhabitants of Saint-Afrique, seeing themselves left alone, The Duke of Espernon stops the progress of a new Rebellion by dismanteling several strong Cities of the Huguenot party. abandoned by all their old Confederates, and Friends, and moreover besieged by old Soldiers that had lodged themselves under their Walls, resolved in the end to open their Gates to the Garrison, as they accordingly did; giving the Duke thereby an opportunity, he would by no means let slip, of tying them for ever fast to their duty. Making a right use therefore of the astonishment, and consternation they were then in, he commanded the Inhabitants to be disarmed, and the Walls of their City to be demolished, according to the Articles of the last Peace granted to those of the Reformed Religion. Verthamont Intendant de la justice took upon him the charge of seeing it performed, who, together with his Office of Intendant, was moreover qualified with a Commission for the dismantling of several Cities of that Province, which had engaged with the Duke of Rohan in the late Commotion. So that the Walls of Millant, one of the strongest Holds of that Party, were soon seen levelled with the ground, as also those of Saint-Afrique, of Pont de Camarés, of Saint-Rome, Tarn, and several other places. Wherein so good order was taken, that there was no more fear this little Country, one of the hardest to be reclaimed in the whole Kingdom, and that had been likewise one of that last, that had returned to its obedience, should for the future commit any more offences, or be guilty of any new Commotion. The Inhabitants of Montauban cannot in this part of my story, without great injustice, be denied the due praise of behaving themselves exceedingly well upon this occasion; The Inhabitants of Montauban behave themselves very well upon this occasion. who no sooner heard the Duke designed to come into their Country, but that they dispatched away some of the chiefest amongst them, to beseech him, that he would honour their City with his presence. An invitation wherein some scruple might reasonably have been made, and would the Duke have been governed by the advice of many of his Servants, he had not perhaps so easily given up himself to the discretion of a people, that it had not been in his power sometimes to useso kindly as he desired. To this consideration the present juncture of Affairs, rendered their compliment much more suspected, Saint-Afrique (a Town of the Huguenot Party) was already revolted, and had solicited all the other Cities of the same Religion to concur with them in the maintenance (as they called it) of that little Liberty, they had left remaining; but the Duke by his generosity overcoming all these jealousies (sufficient of them-themselves to have made a loss daring man lose the opportunity of performing that Service for the King, he then did him) accepted their invitation, and went confidently to Montauban; where, if those of the Town had really any evil intention (which did nevertheless no ways appear) having by his presence dissolved that ill humour, he thereby rendered the mutinous designs of Saint-Afrique so inconsiderable, that they fell at last upon the heads of them, who had been the contrivers of the mischief. The Duke at first had intended to have continued for some time at Montauban, believing that the Commotion of Roüergue would not so soon have been appeased; but having by his prudent care composed things sooner than he expected, he in a few days found himself at liberty to go as far as the Frontier to the Baths at Banieres. The Duke goes to the Baths of Banieres. This Country, abounding with Gentry equally to any other of the Kingdom, had been the Nursery from whence Monsieur de la Valette his Father, the Admiral his Brother, and himself had continually drawn out most of the brave men with which they had so gloriously served their Kings, and maintained their own Fortunes; as it was also out of them, that he had constantly chosen most of his Officers for Foot Commands. The acknowledgement therefore of his former favours, being by no better way to be expressed, than by the great conflux of those he had obliged, they came to wait upon him in so great numbers, and so handsomely attended, that he could hardly have been better accompanied in any other part of his Government. They here passed away the time, as people usually do in the Bathing season, in all sorts of innocent Recreations, to which the good Company there had invited the Ladies, as well as the Gentlemen of the Country: when the Duke, after having bestowed more of his time upon his friends, than to the consultation of his own health (which at so great an age continued in a marvellous vigour) would return back towards the lower Gascony, to see the miserable condition of that part of the Province, still groaning under the same heavy judgements, wherewith at his first coming from Court he had found it afflicted. Whilst the Duke was preparing for his return, he received news of the Grace his second Son had received from the King, who had lately conferred upon him the honour of Duke, and Peer; The Marquis de la Valette takes his Oath for Duke and Peer of France. he had long before received his Patent for that Dignity, which has made me so often in the preceding discourse, give him that Title; but he had neither taken his Oath, nor assumed his place in Parliament till this time. The Territory of Ville-Bois settled upon him by the Duke his Father at his Marriage, was also honoured with the Title of a Duchy, by that means leaving its former denomination, to take that of its Lord, and Owner. That which rendered this new Dignity more remarkable was, that Cardinal Richelieu (at this time advanced to the greatest height a Subject can be capable of) would at the same Session be installed in the same degree of honour; so that they were both received together in Parliament, and both their Letters Patents the same day verified, and confirmed. The Duke, though at present ill enough dealt withal at Court, and inwardly not over-well satisfied with former passages, could not however, but acknowledge this for a favour; so that, once in his life accommodating himself to the time, he writ a Letter of Compliment to the Cardinal: to which he soon after returned an answer obliging enough; wherein, after he had replied to the Duke's civility concerning his Son's promotion, he proceeded to acquaint him that the Cardinal his youngest Son had been lately created Governor of Anjou. The Card●nal de la Val●tte made Governor of Anjou. A news at which the Duke was highly pleased: but as joy seldom arrives without some mixture of bitterness; this was soon followed by one of the most just, and most sensible afflictions that could almost arrive, which was the Death of le Plessis his beloved, and faithful Servant. This Gentleman, equally wise, and valiant, dextrous, and faithful, and who had all these qualities eminent in him, to a very conspicuous degree had been so happy, that the Services which had been acceptable to the Father, were no less pleasing to his Sons; insomuch that not one of them but was passionate for his advancement, and ambitious to contribute something to his Fortune; a thing he himself so little considered, that had he not met with Master's liberal in their own Natures, his deserts had been the worst rewarded of any man's of his time: but such was the acknowledgement they all paid to his merit, that the Cardinal de la Valette was no sooner provided of the Government of Anjou, but that he cast his eye upon le Plessis, to bestow upon him one of the best and principal Commands of that Province, which was that of the Castle of Angers. He had already that of Chasteau Trumpet of Bourdeaux; neither would the Duke consent to be totally deprived of his Service, all that he could condescend unto to satisfy his Son, being to share with him in this good Servant, and to give way that he should serve at the Castle of Angers, still keeping the command of Chasteau Trumpet. Le Plessis having therefore taken his leave of the Duke at Condom to go to take possession of his new Government stayed by the way to keep his Christmas at Bourdeaux, with an intention after the Holy days were passed, to continue his Journey to Angers: but his Devotion making him commit a violence upon his health, at this time something impaired, by an indisposition that began to grow upon him, his Disease increased to such a degree at midnight Mass, that the conclusion of his Prayers was almost the end of his Life. He went out of the Church seized with a Catarrh, The death of le Plessis Baussonniere the Duke's principal Servant. by which his breathing being stopped, and all sense and memory taken away, he was in a few hours totally suffocated. He could not certainly by a more Christian, nor a more easy death have finished a very excellent life: but the Duke of Espernon could not of a long time after be comforted for his loss; neither indeed could a greater almost have befallen him, he having scarce any other Servant left, that was allowed the liberty to tell his Master, what he conceived was best for the good of his Service: the Duke, who would never slacken the severe hand he ever held over all his Servants, not enduring that any of them should presume to advise him: this only by the prerogative of his Age, and approved Fidelity, was dispensed from that Law; a dispensation that he notwithstanding ever made use of with so great modesty, as to make it appear it was rather a Privilege granted by the Master's bounty, than any Empire usurped by the Servant over his Master's affections. The life of the Duke of Espernon, Anno 1632. and his particular actions, have so great a connexion with the public interest, that his story is no where to be long continued without putting the writer upon a necessity of interweaving something of the general concerns of the Kingdom; which obliges me in this place to resume the gross of Affairs, and with the year to enter into transactions of very great importance, wherein the Duke had so eminent a share that his greatest enemies, and such as were most emulous of his glory, cannot but do him that right as to confess that he struck the greatest stroke in the success of the Royal Arms. The Queen Mother and the Monsieur Troubles arise upon the retirement of the Queen Mother, and the Monsieur. being retired out of the Kingdom, it was not likely, but that two so great persons, being open, and professed enemies to the Cardinal (whom they had publicly declared to be the Author of their discontents) would do their utmost endeavours to make him feel the effects of their indignation: but it appearing that the King was in a manner obliged in honour to protect his Minister, and that he was not consequently to be assaulted without offending his Majesty himself, they were to expect a great, and vigorous opposition, to whatever attempts they should make upon the Cardinal's Fortune. These two discontented Princes therefore, well foreseeing this difficulty, willingly accepted the offers made them by the Emperor, the King of Spain, and the Duke of Lorain, to take Arms in their favour: but as it was impossible these separate Forces should unite, and move at the same time, whereas those of the King embodied, and acting by one sole authority, The Emperor, the King of Spain, and the Duke of Lorain, engage in their quarrel. could in a moment produce the effects of all their power: it was no hard matter for the Cardinal to frustrate the attempts of all these Foreign Princes, and to repel even upon them themselves, who were most active to destroy him, the designs they had projected for his ruin. If the Cardinal's wisdom was of great use to him (as questionless it was) upon this occasion, it must likewise be confessed that Fortune did no little contribute to his safety, who from the extremities of the North, raised him up a Prince, one of the most eminent, and great in all qualities both Military, and Civil, that latter ages have produced, and that was the great Gustavus Adolphus King of Sweden. This Prince (in truth inconsiderable enough, had not his single Person, and Valour in themselves, been worth the greatest Armies) undertook to invade Germany, and to assault the Emperor in the heart of his own Dominions; notwithstanding that this mighty Prince, who had already subdued all the powers that were opposite to him, possessed that Empire (composed of many Kingdoms) in a greater degree of Sovereignty, than any of his Predecessors, who had swayed that Sceptre for many Ages before him, had ever done. These difficulties, sufficient to have discouraged, and withheld the mightiest powers served only for Spurs to the ambition of this generous, and magnanimous Prince. He entered then into Germany, where at his coming he proclaimed liberty to all the Princes, and People; a great allurement indeed, but his large promises without some advantageous effects were not of force to draw many Partisans over to his side. He sought therefore with great eagerness an occasion wherein to make trial of his Arms, which he knew was the only way to win himself Reputation, and Friends; and the Emperor, who had no less Interest to stop the impetuosity of an Invader who came to brave him in the heart of his own Empire, opposed to this Torrent (and that under the command of the best, and most fortunate Leaders he had) his Army hitherto victorious over all the Forces they had met in the Field: but the glory of all those Victories served only to render that of the King of Sweden more illustrious, which he obtained over these conquerors at the Battle of Lipsick; by which great, and famous action, having rendered his name (till then almost unknown) formidable throughout the whole Empire, he ran from one extremity thereof to the other, almost without any resistance, at least without meeting any impediment that could stop his way. The Cardinal (as he had good reason) rendered himself very facile, and favourable to this Prince, who seemed to be come out of his Rocks, and Deserts for no other end save only to defend his quarrel. He assisted him therefore in the beginning with some few men, and a little money; which though not very considerable, the Swede nevertheless gave so important a diversion to the House of Austria, that having their hands more than full of their own Affairs, they were far from being in any capacity of traversing their Neighbour's designs. If the Emperor had enough to do at home, the King of Spain had no less need of all his Forces at the Siege of Mastrick; and the Duke of Lorain deprived of the support of these two great Princes, under whose shadow, and protection he had taken Arms, being of himself unable to withstand the King's Power, was necessitated (as he had done some time before) to fly to his Majesty's mercy. By the Treaty of Vic, concluded in the beginning of the year, he had delivered Marsal to the King by way of caution for the performance of his word; and for this second of Liverdune, he moreover assigned to him Stenay, jamets', and Clairmont; upon which good security his Majesty having granted him peace, he was constrained to observe it, though it was only not long after to break it: from whence ensued the loss of his whole Dukedom. The Monsieur seeing himself thus defeated of all hopes of any Foreign assistance, his Servants assayed to procure that for him at home, they saw was not elsewhere to be expected; to which end Letters from the Queen Mother, and himself were presented to the Parliament of Paris, to try if by that application they could interest that Assembly in their grievances, and inveigle the Parisians into a good opinion of their cause: but all in vain; they practised moreover several discontented persons, whose assistance consisting only of a very few men, was also of no great effect; the remains of the Huguenot party were likewise tampered withal; but besides that they were reduced to such a low condition, that they had greater need of some Potent Prince to protect them, than that they were in any capacity to repair the fortune of a great Prince declined; there was so good order taken to hold them in, in all parts of the Kingdom, that not a man amongst them durst once offer to stir. The Cardinal having from the beginning of the year foreseen, that the discontents of the Queen Mother, and the Monsieur exasperated, and fomented by strangers, would infallibly bring a War upon the Kingdom, had omitted no manner of precaution that might serve to frustrate their designs: he had caused the Kings standing Regiments both of Horse and Foot to be reinforced, had put sufficient Garrisons into all the important Cities, had by very severe prohibitions forestalled all such as were likely to engage with the Enemy; and those of the Religion, though already upon the matter subdued, being yet in some sor●, even in their impotency to be suspected, he had taken a particular care to make sure of them upon this occasion. What difficulties soever the punctual execution of these Orders had strewed in the way of the MonsieursMonsieurs designs, and notwithstanding that he saw himself abandoned by his Foreign friends, sufficiently taken up with their own particular Affairs, he thought nevertheless that the sole interest of the Duke of Montmorency, who was absolutely at his Devotion, would of itself enable him to execute his revenge for the injuries he had received. The Monsieur enters the Kingdom. Upon which assurance he entered the Kingdom in june, accompanied only with two thousand Horse, picked up of several Nations, and two thousand Foot, or thereabouts, taking his way through Burgundy, without making any discovery into what part of France he intended to retire: and then it was that the King's Orders, and dispatches were redoubled, and sent with great diligence into all parts of the Kingdom, to which it was probable those Forces would direct their March. They seemed principally to threaten either Languedoc, or Guienne; the Governors of which two Provinces having no great reason to be very well satisfied with the Court, the Cardinal did not well know what to think of them, nor what to promise to himself from their Fidelity in so critical a time. Of these the Duke of Montmorency, the more reason the Court had to be jealous of his behaviour, the more industrious he was (as guilty men usually are) to wipe off all shadow of suspicion they might justly conceive; insomuch that 'tis said he dispatched post after post to the King to give him assurance of his Loyalty; a thing that afterwards proved one of the most dangerous circumstances of his offence. The Duke of Espernon did not promise so much, and performed much more, he only sending the Sieur de Camp●ls, Gentleman of his Horse, to assure the King of his Fidelity, and was so punctual in the performance of his word, that he failed not in the least Article of his duty. After the Duke of Montmorency had kept the Court sufficiently in suspense of what he resolved to do, he at last declared himself by taking open arms in favour of the Monsieur; The Duke of Montmor●ncy declare● in favour of the Monsieur. who was now come into Languedoc, where he caused several Cities he had made firm for his purpose, to revolt, and moreover debauched many Gentlemen of very eminent quality, whom either the respect, and affection to his person, or the hope of change had allured over to his Party. If the Monsieurs designs, before the Duke of Montmorency declared in his Quarrel, had amused the whole Court, their astonishment was infinitely augmented, after he had betaken himself to Arms, who having immediately thereupon published several causes of his discontent, many at that time allowed them to be very just, though no one could approve the course he took to manifest his resentment. The news of his defection surprised the Duke of Espernon at Again, it surprised him indeed, who expected nothing less than to see himself engaged in a party contrary to the dearest friend he had in the world; The Duke of Espernon advances towards Languedoc. though that friendship, as all his other friendships had ever done, must here give place to his duty. Upon the first Orders therefore he received from the King, after the MonsieursMonsieurs entry into the Kingdom, he immediately departed from Cadillac, to advance into the centre of the Province, which was Again, to the end that from that prospect, he might observe what parts of his Government stood most in need of his presence. There was no dispute (the Duke of Montmorency having declared) but that he must of necessity advance towards Languedoc, to secure Montauban, that being the nearest City of importance to the revolted Province: but the difficulty was, how to do it so, that Montauban might not rather secure him, who had only his own Guards about his person, with ten Companies of the Regiment of P●alsbourg, that remained of twenty he had had in Guienne, the rest being a few days before sent away to join with the Marshal de Schomberg. The Marshal arriving in Languedoc, had sent to borrow these Forces of the Duke of Espernon, perhaps out of a design, rather to weaken him (of whose resolutions they were yet uncertain) than to strengthen himself; which though the Duke could at that time very ill have spared, who was to go to expose himself in a place, where he had great reason to suspect his own safety, yet would he not refuse the Marshal upon his first demand; by that freedom sufficiently manifesting with what integrity and candour he proceeded in the King's Interest. This proceeding, The Court in 〈◊〉 of the D●●e of Esp●rnon's resolutions. how frank and generous soever, could not nevertheless so satisfy the Court, that they were not yet in great anxiety, and suspense, what his resolution might be: the hereditary friendship, and strict alliance, betwixt the House of Montmorency, and him, were sufficiently known; neither were they ignorant that the tender, and passionate affection he had for the person of this Duke, was equal to that he had for his own Children▪ they knew moreover that two days before the Duke had declared, the Marchioness of Montferrant of the House of Montmorency, widow to the Baron de Montaut the Duke's Cousin German, and now Wife to one of the most intimate friends he had in the Province, had parted from the Duchess of Montmorency, to return into Guienne to her Husband who was then with the Duke of Espernon: so that this Lady, a woman capable of the greatest Affairs, above what is usual in persons of her Sex, there were few who did not conclude, she had been purposely sent by the Duke her Kinsman to labour an intelligence with the Duke his ally; though in truth there was no such thing. In fine, the good or ill success of Affairs depending without all doubt absolutely upon him, the Court had all the reason in the world to be in some fear of what his determination would be. All the Gentry of his Government were wavering, those of the Reformed Religion who had been constrained to accept of an incommodious Peace, in all appearance, waited only expecting a fit opportunity to begin a new War; thereby to obtain more advantageous conditions, than those that had been imposed upon them; and the people oppressed more than ordinary by new Taxes, desired nothing more than trouble, and confusion, which they conceived to be the best, and only remedy for their present calamities. These evil dispositions were not only in Guienne, but Angoumois also; Xaintonge, Limousin, and Poictou, panted with the same thirst of Innovation: so that in all these Provinces (where the Duke had long governed) they yet retained for him so great a love, and respect, that what resolution soever he had taken, would without contradiction have been followed by them for the best. Neither had he needed to have made any great ado, to procure a great deal of mischief; since by only sitting still, and conniving never so little at those who were ready for Commotion, he might have wrought matters into such a confusion, as would infallibly have put the Kingdom into very great disorder; and then the Marshal de Schomberg, shut up betwixt the Forces of Languedoc, and Guienne, would have been irrecoverably lost. But this good Frenchman, what aversion soever he might have to the Cardinal's immeasurable greatness, what affection soever for the Duke of Montmorency, or what advantage soever he might reasonably propose to himself from the alteration of Affairs (the face whereof he might doubtless have changed) he still preferred the Service of his Prince, and the good of his Country, before any particular Interest of his own, and remained unshaken in his duty, notwithstanding all the overtures had been made, and the importunities had been used to debauch him. The Duke acting with this sincerity and candour, thought it very requisite to confirm the King in the assurances he had formerly given his Majesty, of his fidelity, and truth, which he did by sending away the Count de Maillé to that effect: and proceeding from words to actions, after he was arrived at Montauban, his first care was speedily to dispatch away two Gentlemen throughout the whole Province, to summon in to him all the persons of quality, whom he had most reason to suspect. There were very few who did not promptly obey this Summons, which being delivered them by men of Repute, they could not make any excuse, that they had not received his Commands; and it was no hard matter for the Duke when he had them so near his person, to keep them there, and so narrowly to watch them, that they were not conveniently to be practised; by which means, besides this advantage, which was none of the most inconsiderable, he from this way of proceeding, derived another of exceeding great moment, which was insensibly, and as it were almost without design, to fortify himself in a City, where he was very weak, and the disposition whereof was as yet very uncertain. It is not to be believed how great an effect these prudent precautions produced to the security of Affairs, nor how much several persons were disabused thereby, who otherwise might have suffered themselves to have been deceived by false impressions of the Duke, and such as were utterly contrary to his intention: but his fidelity was so legible throughout the whole order of his conduct, and he gave so little hopes to those who were seditiously affected, of being to be tempted to embrace any disloyal motion, that in so great a disposition to evil, and in so favourable an occasion to do it, there was not one man of quality of Guienne, excepting Saint Croix d' Ornano, who was one of the MonsieursMonsieurs Domestic Servants, that went out of the Province to join with him; the Duke's good Example, and Exhortations, so containing all the rest within the bounds of their Duty, that the King had a very good issue of an Affair, his Majesty himself thought would not so easily have determined. It was after all these important services, that it was justly said of the Duke of Espernon, that In doing nothing ●e had done all; for in effect, without stirring from the place, without arming any other than his own Guards, without having spilt one drop of blood, or spent six pence of the King's money, he procured his Majesty, without danger, or expense, a Victory that settled the whole Kingdom in repose. The King, informed by the Duke's dispatches of the good order he had taken in his Government, by very gracious Letters (which the Count de Maillé brought back at his return) signified to him how highly he was satisfied with his conduct; The King writes very graciously, and the Cardinal very kindly to the Duke of Espernon in acknowledgement of his good Service. wherein, amongst other things, his Majesty acquainted him with his intention to leave Paris, and to take the way of Lions, there to command his Army in his own person (a thing the Council would never consent unto, till they were secure of the Duke's intentions) and the Cardinal, in his Letters bearing the same date with the King's, writ to him in these express terms: I shall content myself with giving you this assurance, that nothing can possibly be added to the infinite satisfaction his Majesty has received in the Zeal you have manifested to the good of his Service in the present occasion; and that I shall with great diligence seek all opportunities that may contribute to the desire I have to let you see, that no one is more really than myself, Your, etc. To these during the King's Expedition, he received several other Dispatches, of the same obliging style, which I forbear to copy here, that I may not importune my Reader, But how great soever the Duke's Merits and Services were, and how large soever the promises, that had been made him, the memory of those Services was notwithstanding so short lived, that even before the storm was well over, they sought an occasion to quarrel with him, thinking it, belike, better cheap to cavil at some little passages, (which ought rather to be imputed to his humour, than his intention) than to stand obliged to him for this Service. I should never have done should I undertake to relate all the particularities (though remarkable enough in themselves) or should I so much as insist upon the more eminently considerable passages that happened upon this occasion, which makes me omit many things, that perhaps would not be altogether unpleasant, The Engagement of Castelnaudary, wherein the Caunt de Moret was slain, and the Duke of Montmorency taken prisoner; from which disaster the ruin of the MonsieursMonsieurs party ensues. to come to the main business of all, which is the defeat of of the Duke of Montmorency, and his being taken prisoner. 'Tis well enough known after what manner this unfortunate Lord precipitously, and almost alone, engaged himself against a whole Army; a rashness by which he became the principal instrument of his enemy's Victory: insomuch that had he combined with them against himself, he could not more blindly, and wilfully have run upon his own destruction. He compelled the Marshal de Scomberg to fight against his intention, and to overcome him against his will; he had not, 'tis true full fifty men slain in this Engagement, which will yet appear a great number, considering that he had not above an hundred, that charged with him upon this occasion. The Count de Moret, a young Prince of great merit, and much greater expectation, was so unfortunate as to lose his life without the Trenches that separated the MonsieursMonsieurs Army from that of the Marshal; some other persons of quality ran also the same Fortune: but although this loss was small in respect to the number of men, the taking of the Duke of Montmorency made it nevertheless so highly considerable, that every one concluded the ruin of the whole party infallible. For the Monsieur having upon him reposed his whole confidence for the command of the Army, the Cities and Forces of Languedoc being wholly tied to his person, and interest, and all things absolutely depending upon him; he was no sooner taken, but that the Cities revolted, and the Army disbanded: so that in a few days the Monsieur saw himself so totally deserted, that what attempt soever he had a desire to make to rescue the Duke of Montmorency out of the enemy's hands, and yet to dispute the Victory, he had so few left wherewith to execute his desire, and those few so dejected with the late misfortune, that he was reduced to a necessity of relying upon the faith of a Treaty for the preservation of a Servant, who contrary to his order had lost himself. The Duke of Espernon advertised of this accident, by a dispatch from the Marshal de Scomberg, dated the second of September, which was the next day after the fight, was afflicted beyond expression at the Duke of Montmorency's misfortune. He gave him at the first for lost, and being very well acquainted with the severe Maxims of that time, together with the implacable hatred the great Minister had conceived against him, did forthwith conclude, that this first Offence would also be the last he was ever likely to commit. Yet not to fail upon this event in any of his respects, he wrote to the King to signify to his Majesty the joy he conceived for the prosperity of his Arms; he sent likewise the same Compliment to the Marshal de Scomberg, and to the Marquis de Brezé, who had behaved himself very gallantly upon this occasion: but he also manifested to the Duke of Montmorency, his great grief for his misfortune. It was by a Gentleman dispatched on purpose to that end (and before the liberty of receiving his friends addresses, was taken from him) that he sent to assure this Duke of whatever without reservation, The Duke of Espernon sends a Compliment to the Duke of Montmorency in Prison. he could expect from the passion, he had ever had, and was obliged ever to have for his Service. He did not write to him, but he writ to the Marshal de Scomberg, to entreat he would permit him to pay his friend in so great an extremity, what their mutual Affection exacted from his duty: a request in the granting whereof, the Marshal was so exceeding civil, as to cause the Duke's Gentleman (which was Naugas the Lieutenant of his Guards) to be forthwith conducted to the Duke of Montmorency's Chamber. Naugas had there full liberty to deliver all he had in charge from the Duke his Master; whereupon this unfortunate Lord, who had ever honoured the Duke, as if he had been his Father, touched with the sense of this seasonable manifestation of a Friendship, which he knew to be unfeigned, would needs upon the instant return an acknowledgement of the timely kindness, by a word in writing under his own hand, though very much weakened with ten great wounds, and roul'd up with Lints and Plasters. Wherein he briefly told him according to his ordinary way of writing, That he acknowledged himself infintely obliged for the favour he had done him: That he would not however in return offer him his * Not otherwise to be rendered without spoiling the sense. good Graces, which, at this time were none of the best (intimating thereby his wounded face) but that, if it should please God to restore him to his health, he would employ that, with his life in his Service. To which he added by word of mouth, several passionate expressions of the Affection he bore to the Duke; not then dreaming without doubt that he should so soon be deprived of all means whereby to make it appear. All which, being brought back by Naugas, only served to augment the Duke's Affliction, who was the more compassionate of his friend's condition, by how much he himself was ignorant of his own misfortune, and insensible of his danger. The news of this defeat having met the King at Lions, who with new Forces was following his other Armies, his Majesty no more doubted, but that all the MonsieursMonsieurs Party would suddenly dissolve, as in a few days it did; so that having nothing more to do, save only to settle what had been discomposed by the late Commotion, he moved with so great deliberation towards Tholouze, The Duke advances to Tholouze. that he arrived not there till the 22. of the month following. The Duke of Espernon in the mean time, seeing there was now nothing that could oblige him to make any longer stay either at Montauban, or upon the Frontier of Languedoc, went to the waters of Encausse, a journey he rather undertook to divert himself, whilst he waited in expectation of the King's coming, The Duke of Montmorency brought to Tholouze, and his Trial begun. than for any great business he had there in order to his health. The King being (as has been said) arrived at Tholouze the 22. of October, there was present order given for the bringing thither of the Duke of Montmorency, who accordingly arriving there, was, as soon as brought, committed into the custody of two Judges of the Parliament: a proceeding by which his Relations and Friends, being given to understand, that they aimed directly at his life, there was not one of them who was not ready to serve him, with the hazard of his own; but yet not one of them durst be so bold, as to speak for him to the King. His Majesty seemed to have bolted the door against all manner of intercession, by denying his pardon to the Monsieur, who had not (as it was said) signed the Articles of the Treaty upon any other account, save only to preserve him. The Princess of Condé was moreover forbidden to enter into Tholouze, by that means being rendered incapable of paying so beloved, and so noble a Brother any other duty than that of her fruitless sighs, and tears. In this general consternation, whilst the Cardinal de la Valette, was using his utmost interest, and endeavour with Cardinal Richelieu, the Duke of Espernon was no less importunate with the King, he being the only man that had the courage to speak directly in the behalf of the Duke of Montmorency, and to be the Orator of his other Friends, wherein if his success was not such, as he did heartily desire; yet ought he not in this place to be denied the testimony of his virtuous endeavour for the preservation of so precious a life. He addressed himself therefore boldly to the King, The Duke of Espernon intercedes for the Duke of Montmorency. when being kneeled down, with greater submission to prefer his most humble Suit, the King was pleased to raise him up, and to give him leave to say: That he did not throw himself at his Majesty's feet to justify the Duke of Montmorency in the least, nor by excuses to extenuate the greatness of his offence: That he did acknowledge him to be guilty, his Crime being too high, and manifest to admit of any excuse; but that if it were less, it would be less worthy of his Majesty's mercy: That that Virtue truly Royal, never appeared in so great lustre, as when employed upon great Subjects, and after great Offences: That his Majesty would hardly meet with another occasion, wherein it would be so conspicuously eminent, as in this, all Europe having at this time their eyes fixed upon him, to observe what he would please to determine of so illustrious a Head: That he was the bolder to sue to his Majesty for this pardon, by how much having in his own person, and upon almost the like occasion, received the same Grace from his Majesty's bounty, he flattered himself to be so happy as that his Majesty had never repent himself of that favour: That he was not the only person amongst his Servants, who stood obliged to his Clemency for the same benefit, but that Monsieur, the Cardinal de Richelieu was equally concerned: That they had both of them engaged in the Queen Mother's interest in a time when his Majesty's Royal Name was opposed against them, though they had therein no other intention, than to do him service; and that if in that juncture his Majesty had left them to the severity of Law and Justice, he had deprived himself of the great services of the one, and the gratitude of the other: That the youth of Monsieur de Montmorency deserved no less to be excused, than their good intentions: That his person being in his Majesty's power, he would be secured from doing any thing to the preujudice of his Service; but that his preservation might serve eternally to his glory: That he did humbly beseech his Majesty to consider, that the great name of Montmorency was now only surviving in his single person: That the merit of his Ancestors (who by a long succession extended their race almost to the first foundation of the French Monarchy) pleaded so highly for his Pardon, that one rash Act ought not to forfeit so brave a Gentleman to the severity of his Majesty's Justice. That if he should be so fortunate as to obtain a second life for his friend, he would with all his heart become his Security, that for the future it should never be employed, but in his Majesty's Service, and that his Blood should serve for no other use, than to wash away the Stain, and for ever to obliterate the memory of his Offence. The King with great patience, and without once offering to interrupt him, gave the Duke free liberty to continue his discourse to the end, seeming moreover to hearken to him with some kind of hopeful attention: but that favourable audience was also the only fruit of his address; for his Majesty having from the beginning of the Duke's Speech fixed his eyes upon the ground, never lifted them from thence so much as once to look upon the Duke who was speaking to him; neither when he had concluded did he answer him one word: by which silence the Duke perceiving the ruin of his friend to be absolutely decreed, he spoke again, and said, The Duke of Espernon not being able to prevail with the King in the behalf of he Duke of M●ntmorency begs leave to retire, and obtains it. Sir, since I am so unhappy as not to hope to obtain your Majesty's Pardon for Monsieur de Montmorency, I humbly beg leave that I may retire: When though the King had been dumb to the first, he found words to make answer to this last request, by telling him, Yes, you have free leave; neither do I intend myself to stay long in this City. Whereupon the Duke afflicted to the last degree, that he had been able to obtain nothing more (though indeed he had not expected much better success) presently withdrew himself to go wait upon the Princess of Condé in the Suburbs of Tholouze (to which place she was retired) there to condole with her their common misfortune. He found at his coming thither that Cardinal Richelieu was but newly parted thence, whose visit, by giving her no satisfaction, having put her into the last despair, the Duke's happened to be exceeding seasonable for the composing of her mind agitated with so violent a Passion. Though the Duke from that very day prepared himself for his departure, yet had he time enough before he went, totally to reject a proposition made to him on the Cardinal's behalf, presently after the King's arrival at Tholouze. He had caused the Duke to be treated withal to quit the Government of Metz in his favour; offering him in exchange the survivancy of that of Guienne, for the Duke de la Valette his Son, who was already seized of that of Metz in reverson. Bullion, newly created Sur-Intendant des Finances, was chosen by the Cardinal, as a person most acceptable to the Duke to make to him this Overture: a proposition at which the Duke, having served the King so well as he had done in the last occasion, was not a little surprised; and the rather because his Services having been of great ●●portance to the Cardinal's Fortune (which was much more struck at in the late Rebellion, than any thing that concerned either the King or the Kingdom) he had reason, besides the satisfaction the King had been pleased to manifest of his performance, to expect also a very grateful return from the Cardinal himself. It was the belief of many at that time, that the Cardinal's design was, to accommodate himself with the Bishopric of Metz, together with five or six great Abbeys in that City of above an hundred thousand Livers a year Revenue, besides the Bishopric which was worth twice as much, and to add thereunto the Government of the City, and Country, with those of the Cities and Citadels of I howl and Verdun; Cordinal Richeli●u's amoitio●s designs. to the end that by providing for himself so certain, and secure a retreat, he might in time be armed against all disgrace; to which others have added an opinion, that he had a project to reunite all the Provinces that had formerly been members of the Kingdom of Austratia in his own person, to hold them in the quality of a Sovereign Prince, whereof Lorain, and Alsatia, which were in his Majesty's possession, together with the three forenamed Bishoprics of Metz, Toul, and Verdun, made up the greatest part; it had been a matter of no great difficulty for the Cardinal to have possessed himself of this Estate, by any title he would have desired of the King: So that, if he ever had this thought, it is not to be wondered at, if he was sensibly offended that the Duke refused to treat and to comply with him in a thing, he had set his heart upon for the establishment of his Fortune. However it was, it is concluded by all, that this Affair made the Cardinal take up a resolution absolutely to break with the Duke of Espernon, whom he saw to be too stiff to stoop to his Authority, and looked upon as the only person of the Kingdom, who had either the power, or the spirit to mate his greatness. Wherein nevertheless though the Duke appeared to be very averse, yet did he not absolutely reject the Cardinal's proposal; but conceiving he did not offer enough, demanded moreover a Marshal's Staff for the Duke de Candale his eldest Son. This was a Dignity that could not indeed be denied to his merit, though it had never been laid in the balance against the Government of Metz: but if the Duke had a kindness for this Son, the Cardinal had no less aversion, who (it was said) having been wounded to the quick with some smart touches of the Duke de Candale's Wit (as pleasant a one indeed as any of his time, but withal as tart, as pleasant) he could by no means forget it, but would rather choose to leave a thing of so great importance to the establishment of his Fortune imperfect, than to be instrumental to the advancement of a person by whom he conceived himself so highly offended. Having therefore broke off with the Duke upon these terms, it is to be presumed, he only for the future waited an occasion, or at least a pretence wherewithal to colour his revenge. Wherein though the Duke's haughty humour was likely enough to furnish him with as good as he could desire, it appeared nevertheless that fortune (who will ever have a hand in all humane Affairs) seconding the Cardinal's passion, produced him one much sooner, than he expected. It was in truth, at this time, contrary to the Duke's intention, who, although he would not discover a weakness in condescending below his own Dignity, had no desire notwithstanding to provoke the Cardinal's Almighty power, by insisting upon any thing he might irreproachably do. After that, by the death of the Duke of Montmorency, the King thought he had absolutely appeased the storm in Languedoc, his Majesty thought of nothing more, than by the nearest way, and with a very slender train, of returning back to Paris. The Queen, who was attended by the Council, and all the Court, two days after the King's departure, began her Journey towards Bourdeaux, at greater conveniency to send away her equipage down the River Garonne, where being arrived, her Majesty was pleased to honour the Duke of Espernon so far, as to cross the River, to go see him in his House Cadillac. The Queen goes to Cadill●c. The Virtue, Generosity, and other excellent qualities this Queen was Mistress of, had acquired the Duke absolutely to her Service; who also in return, received infinite testimonies of her love and esteem; so that it is not to be doubted, but he was overjoyed to have so favourable an Opportunity, wherein to manifest, in some measure, his Gratitude for her Grace, and Favour. Nothing therefore was spared to that end, and the Duke, having a few days preceded her Majesty's coming, had made so plentiful provision of all things, and she was received at his House after so splendid a manner, that as on the one side it was impossible for him fully to satisfy his Duty, and Affection; so could he on the other very hardly have done more, than he did, or have added any thing to the Splendour, and Magnificence of this Entertainment. The Duke's ill Fortune would have it that Cardinal Richelieu came this Journey with the Queen; who since he had fortified Broüage to such a degree, that it is at this day reputed one of the strongest places in France, had never been there, and would now therefore for all the money he had laid out upon it (which was a vast Sum) give himself the satisfaction of taking a view of his Work. The Duke was not sorry for this Resolution; but on the contrary, no public unkindness having hitherto happened betwixt them, The Cardinal comes to Cadill●●, where he takes new offence at the Duke of Espernon. he invited the Cardinal to his House, hoping the good Entertainment he intended him there, might thaw the former Coldness: but it fell out quite otherwise, and two untoward Accidents that happened in this Journey making the discontents, which had so long been hatching in the Cardinal's Bosom, to disclose themselves, occasioned soon after the first Disorder the Duke had ever received in his Fortune. Of these Accidents the first was this. The Queen being to pass the River betwixt Cadillac, and Bourdeaux, to come to the House, the Duke had prepared Coaches ready to receive her Majesty, at her landing; giving order withal to some of his Servants to reserve one for the Cardinal, that he might have no cause to complain of any want of respect towards him: an Order nevertheless so ill observed, that the Queen first landing, and the Coaches designed for her Train proving too few to contain them all, they also made bold with that, which was intended for the Cardinal. The C●rdinal's first complaint. At the Queen's coming ashore, the Duke, having paid her the respect that was most justly due, by attending her Majesty to her apartment, that first duty performed, went back in all haste to receive the Cardinal upon the River, himself taking a Coach along with him for that purpose; but for all his diligence he came too late, meeting the Cardinal already advanced a pretty way towards the House on Foot; where, though the Duke made him all imaginable Excuses for the fault had been committed contrary to his Order; they were not nevertheless of force to dispossess him of the distaste he had taken, that he had not been so well used as he ought to be: so that though he received them with some show of satisfaction, his actions nevertheless sufficiently manifested his discontent, he being not to be persuaded to make use of the Coach the Duke had brought him; and although already seized with the beginning of a distemper, of which a few days after at Bourdeaux, he had like to have died, he was nevertheless obstinate to finish the remaining part of his way on foot, though with great trouble and inconvenience, till he came to the Lodgings that were made ready for him. This was the first cross accident the Duke met with upon this occasion, and in this every impartial Judge must of necessity acquit him. The second happened soon after at Bourdeaux, wherein, though it be true, that there was something more of the Duke's haughty humour, yet was his intention nevertheless infinitely wide of the sinister interpretations were put upon it. The Queen, having stayed two whole days at Cadillac, caused herself to be conveyed thence back to Bourdeaux, in order to the continuation of her Journey, where at the same time the Cardinal also arrived: but his Disease was by this time so much increased, that finding himself then in excessive pain, within a very few days they began to despair of his life; and in truth without the assistance of a Chirurgeon of Bourdeaux, he had then infallibly died of a suppression of Urine. The Cardinal's second complaint. Whilst he lay in this extremity, the Queen resolved upon leaving Bourdeaux, to advance towards Paris, by taking Rochel nevertheless in her way; a place she would by all means take this opportunity to see, as an eternal Monument of the King's Victory. The Duke very well understanding what respect was due to his Queen, and Mistress, whilst her Majesty stayed in the City, had caused his Guards to lay aside their Liveries, and Muskets; divesting himself moreover of all other Marks, and Functions of a Governor in her presence: but so soon as she was gone, and that he had had the honour to attend her to her Boat, he did not conceive himself obliged to retain the same respect for the Cardinal. He therefore immediately after the Queen's departure commanded his Guards again to put on their Cassocks, and to take their Arms; and very well attended, presented himself at the Cardinal's Lodgings, who continued yet very ill, though something better than before. Upon this occasion, that was interpreted for a premeditated Violence, which was only intended for a Civility, and Respect; and those of the Cardinal's Servants, who saw him come to the House so accompanied, ran to alarm their star, by telling him that the Duke of Espernon was coming to attempt something upon his person. Whereupon followed a Hubub throughout the whole Family, every one was aghast, and betook themselves confusedly to their Arms. In the mean time the Duke enters the House, where not knowing what to think of the general Disorder, and astonishment he observed in every face he met, he went on to the Cardinal's Chamber door, followed by very few (having forbidden his Guards to set so much as one foot upon the stairs) where after having enquired of the Cardinal's health, and having been answered, he was exceeding ill, and in such a condition that he entreated to be excused, he could not see him, he returned back in the same posture he came, there being neither more nor less in this Affair. This is indeed the naked truth of the Story: but it was not so represented to the Cardinal; those who were about him on the contrary to insinuate into his Favour, and to make him believe they had done him a notable piece of Service, assuring him that without their extraordinary care, and the good posture they had put themselves into to oppose the Duke, he had infallibly been lost. The Cardinal's animosity against the Duke of Espernon, fomented by the Archbishop of Bourdeaux. The Duke was afterwards informed, and had it from very good hands, that the Archbishop of Bourdeaux was one of those who possessed the Cardinal with this belief; so that the Duke, and he not having been (as you may have observed) very good friends before, an Office like this could not but incense him anew, and the more justly, by how much his Honour was therein so highly concerned. He was impatient to think they should represent him for a man that would harbour violent Designs against the person of a Cardinal, and a Priest; which certainly was the thing that most contributed to the great Disputes, that happened betwixt them the ensuing year; of which you will have a sudden account, and such a one as will take up a great part of this last Volume. The Duke who neither then, nor of some time after, knew any thing of the ill impressions the Cardinal had been possessed withal, continued to use him at the same rate he had begun; his Guards attended him wherever he moved; he never went abroad but extraordinarily well accompanied, and many Gentlemen of the Country, who had come in to him upon the Queen's arrival, still continuing about his person: The day that the Cardinal departed for Broüage, the Duke, thinking thereby to pay him a greater Civility, and respect, followed by his Guards, and Friends, conducted him to his Boat. By which new Compliment he so revived his former Apprehension, that some have since said, the Cardinal had a mind to make the world believe, he had avoided a very eminent danger, by escaping out of the Duke of Espernon's hands. The Duke could never persuade himself that the Cardinal could have any such apprehension, he being a man of too great judgement not to see, that had he had any design upon his person, nothing could have hindered him from the execution of that design. He had been, without dispute, the strongest in the Cardinal's Lodgings, when he took the first alarm, and during the whole time of his stay at Bourdeaux, the favour of the people being nothing inclined to him, his Domestics alone had not been able to have made any resistance against those of the Duke, especially fortified, as he was, by such a number of his Friends of the Province. It is therefore evident, that the Duke never had any intention to hurt him, forasmuch as he did not do it: but he had nevertheless an opinion, (and that opinion was grounded upon great probabilities) that the Cardina'ls ambitious spirit was offended to the last degree, that he had not paid the same respect to his Person, he had done to that of the Queen; and that, being he could not handsomely publish the true cause of his discontent, he had palliated it with this pretence, to have the more plausible colour of revenging himself upon the Duke, as upon an enemy, who had plotted against his life. The Cardinal was no sooner got to Broüage, The Cardinal arrives at Broüage. but that (whether it was the change of Air, or the joy to see himself in a place of safety that produced this good effect) his health began visibly to improve; when the Duke of Espernon, ignorant as yet of the ill impressions he had been possessed withal, concerning his former Visits, dispatched a Gentleman to him to inquire of his amendment. It was by the return of this Envoy, that he was acquainted with all the former story, of which the Cardinal de la Valette his Son, who had never departed from Cardinal Richelieu, during the whole time of his sickness, gave him a full account. This suspicion so lightly grounded, and so much contrary to his intention, did much more offend, than any way incline the Duke to offer anything in●his own justification: And although he very well foresaw that a jealousy of this nature, whether feigned, or true, threatened him with some great, and sudden mischief; it was nevertheless so far from rendering him more flexible, or more complacent, that he chose rather to expose himself to the worst effects of the Cardinal's unresisted power, than to recede in the least from his ordinary way of living. This Journey of the Cardinal's to Bourdeaux, Anno 1633. and the morosity of his distemper there, was not fatal to the Duke alone; the disgrace of the Guard des Sceaux, de Chast●au-Neuf, The disgrace of Chasteauneuf Garde des Sceaux. being (as has been said) resolved upon at the same time; the reasons of which disgrace are to this day a secret, though the thing itself was soon enough publicly known: for the Cardinal had no sooner seen the King, but that Chasteauneuf had Orders sent him to retire to Ruffee in Angoumois, who being upon his way in Obedience to that command, a second Order overtook him, by which he was carried away Prisoner to the Castle of Angoulesme. The Duke of Espernon, who stood highly obliged to this Gentleman's friendship, for several acts of Favour in his Affairs, and who had moreover his Virtue, and Integrity in very great esteem, was very much afflicted at his misfortune; yet did he even from the accident itself derive such a consolation, as served very much to sweeten his discontent. And that was the choice the King had made of Precedent Seguier, Precedent Seguier made Garde des Sceaux. on him to confer the Seal; one that was the Duke's intimate and very faithful Friend, and of whom from his first Employments, he had made so advantageous a judgement, that he conceived there was no advancement how high soever in his Profession, to which he might not justly pretend, if his Virtues once came to be sufficiently known. But if the Duke began the year, with so great an occasion of joy, Fortune, who never suffers the Affairs of this world to continue long in the same posture, did also not long defer to poison his content, by one of the rudest Assaults he had met withal in the whole course of his life; and since the Archbishop of Bourdeaux was the Instrument by which she wrought this disgrace, it will not be impertinent to give a brief account of that which kindled their first Divisions, and the ensuing causes, that occasioned this last Disorder. This Prelate, Brother to the Cardinal de Sourdis, had immediately upon the death of his elder Brother succeeded him in the Archbishopric of Bourdeaux, but not in the good intelligence had been betwixt the Duke of Espernon, The difference betwixt the D●ke of Espernon and the Archbishop of Bourdeaux. and him; not that the Duke had not this man's merit, which was very great, in high consideration also, he had Wit, Courage, Dexterity, and many other good qualities, which had formerly acquired his esteem: but the intimacy he had with Cardinal Richelieu, rendered his friendship so suspected to him, that he could not confide in a person, he saw engaged in so strict a League with another he did not love. As for the Cardinal de Sourdis, who had no such connexion, the Duke had ever lived with him in so perfect an Intelligence, as has rarely been observed, betwixt two persons of so eminent condition, to have been maintained so inviolate, and sincere: Yet was it not without the admiration of all that knew their Humours; they were both in the one, and the other haughty, and fierce, there was much of fire and ambition, in both their natures; and little would have served to have kindled a feud betwixt them: but perhaps knowing one another to be so Subject to Heat, they would not interfere, foreseeing that whoever should begin, would doubtless in his adversary meet with a vigorous Opposition. This Cardinal had formerly had great Disputes both with the Parliament, and the Governors of the Province, which Disputes had begot him much trouble; so that his more mature, and more temperate Age, having cooled the violent Ardours of his more ungoverned, and inconsiderate Youth, he began to relish the conveniency of Peace, choosing rather to busy himself about the well ordering of his Diocese (which he did equally with any Prelate of the Church, about laying Foundations of Monasteries, Hospitals, and other Actions of great Lustre, and Example, than to spend his Spirits, and consume his time in fruitless and unprofitable Quarrels. The Duke also on the other side, who had his share of Contention with the Parliament, found himself sufficiently perplexed with them, without drawing new inconveniencies upon him▪ by forcing a man of the Cardinal's condition to his Adversaries side; so that as to any thing else, these two Lords observing a great Correspondency in their Compliments, Visits, and all other Punctilios of mutual respect, this former consideration served not a little to the continuance of this good Intelligence betwixt them. In fine, whether it were their Interests, or the sole respect of their common Virtue, that begot this friendship they had for one another, it could hardly have been greater: but after the death of this Cardinal, his Brother having (as has been said) been promoted to that See, the Duke did not pay him the same Honour, he had done his elder Brother; who on the other side impatient of that distinction, joined himself with the Parliament, at this time high in contest with the Duke, and supporting the interests of that Assembly, with the Credit he had with the Cardinal (which was very great) procured some determinations in their favour, concerning the things so highly controverted betwixt the Duke, and them. In acknowledgement of these Obligations, the Parliament augmented in his Person the Honours that had usually been paid to his Predecessors, and the Duke on the contrary cut off some of those he had formerly paid even to him himself; an usage which the Archbishop publicly resenting, obliged the Duke (who never engaged in a quarrel, but to push it home) to be more obstinately bend, not to give him the least satisfaction in any of his complaints: So that he still persisted, not only to use him, as he had begun: but to this abatement of Ceremony, added moreover some disobliging effects. All this had preceded the Accommodation made at Cardinal Richelieu's being at Montauban; but this Reconciliation having satisfied neither the interested persons, nor him who had interposed to reconcile them, they rather remained in a disposition to do one another a Spite upon the first occasion that should present itself, than to live in the good Intelligence could have been wished for their common repose. Since that time the Duke had been advertised, that it was principally the Archbishop of Bourdeaux, who had exasperated the Cardinal against him, and who had rendered his Visit at Bourdeaux (when he went to see him, attended by his Guards) suspected to him. A thing that had offended him to the last degree, and he had publicly complained of that proceeding (for his Passions were never concealed) which was also reported to the Archbishop who was at this time obliged to come into his Diocese to make some Residence there. He departed therefore from Court, and took the way of Guienne. Some have believed that it was by the express Order of Cardinal Richelieu, that he undertook this Journey, who having upon the late distastes he had taken at the Duke, summoned all his old animosities to his remembrance, had sent the Archbishop of Bourdeaux, whom he knew the Duke did not love to brave him, his spirit being the better known to him, as he had made trial of it, upon other occasions, and found it bold, and capable of the highest resolutions. I shall not however take upon me here to interpose my judgement in any of these Transactions; I shall only report things true, and as they were, without disguise, hatred, or envy, any of which it would certainly very much misbecome me to retain after the Duke's death, whose desire it was they might be buried with him, that being one of the most express commands he gave his Family at the last hour of his Life. The Archbishop being upon his way towards Bourdeaux, turned a little out of the ordinary Road to go into a Territory belonging to his Bishopric, called Monravel; where being arrived, he was informed, that one of the Duke's Guards had been assisting in the execution of some Acts of Justice, wherein he was himself immediately concerned, and which would otherwise perhaps have met with some opposition. He would therefore take this occasion to send a Gentleman to the Duke, to return his thanks for so opportune a kindness: who having found the Duke at Berdeaux, The Archbishop of Bourdeaux sends to compliment the Duke of Espernon. told him from the Archbishop his Master, That he took the assistance one of his Guards had given some of his people to the support of his interests, and in the time of his absence for a singular favour, and obligation; and that he had therefore commanded him to come kiss his hands, and to return him his hearty thanks. Some have drawn a consequence from this way of proceeding, that the Archbishop did not come with any design to offend the Duke, it being unlikely, that had he had any such intention, he would have sent to him to have sought his friendship, by the acknowledgement of an obligation received. others (and perhaps too critically) have believed, that it was only artifice to make the Duke appear more in fault, and that the Archbishop, knowing the Duke's humour had made no difficulty in making this dissembled Application, to the end, that it being rejected, as he expected it should be, the Duke might be more universally condemned, even when being provoked, he should break out into just and necessary resentments. Whatever the design of this Compliment might be, it was very ill received, and so ill, that if the Archbishop had therein any clandestine end, to extract from it some new cause of offence, he could hardly better have succeeded. The Duke made answer to the Gentleman who came from the Archbishop, That thanks were neither necessary, nor due to a person, who had no design to oblige: That if any thing by his orders had been performed to his Master's advantage, it had been done upon no other account than the mere consideration of Justice, without any respect to his Friendship: and so dismissed him. The Duke observing all his people surprised at so slight, and so crude an answer, to satisfy them in some measure, told them, That they ought not to wonder if he had made a rude return to the Archbishops' Compliment: That it was without doubt no other than a feigned Civility in Monsieur de Bourdeaux, who he very well knew did not love him, to seek an advantage against him: That he would be glad under a colour of seeming Courtesy, to lay a weakness at his door, and to make the world believe, that he had first sought his Friendship: That had the Bishop sent to him by the way of a simple How d'ye only, he should have received his Visit with the respect due to a man of his condition; but having added terms of thanks, which presupposed a favour received, he would not the world should believe, that he had made the first application to a man he did not take to be his Friend. The Archbishop might very well judge by this first repulse, that he should have a very hard game to play with the Duke of Espernon, which made him hover very near a month about Bourdeaux, before he could resolve to enter the City. It is most certain, that in the mean time he sent to Court to acquaint the Cardinal with what had passed betwixt the Duke and him, and to receive Instructions from him, how he was to behave himself, if matters should grow to a greater height betwixt them. To which the Cardinal's answer was (as it was a few days after Published) that he assured him of a powerful Protection, and such a one as he had promised him before his departure; whereupon the Archbishop made no difficulty to engage in the Affair, to such a height, as even to be himself the Aggressor, as at the first dash, by giving the Duke very sensible, and very public Affronts, he manifestly appeared to be. The first was, when upon his arrival at the City, he did not find the Jurats (that is the Magistrates) upon the River, ready to receive him at his Landing; which he pretended to be a Ceremony due to his Place, and Dignity, as having formerly been paid him: but the Jurats, who declared to have sometimes done it only upon Courtesy, and without any intention to draw it into Example, would by no means consent, that what had been performed merely in the nature of a Civility, should become a Right. This therefore he would interpret for a heinous offence, not only from the Jurats, but also from the Duke, who he believed (with some reason) to have been the cause, that Honour had been denied him. So that without longer dissembling his Discontent, the Jurats' having deputed two of their Corporation to Harangue him so soon as he should be alighted at his own Palace, he answered them in these very words. Gentlemen, I have reason at my arrival to be satisfied with the people of Bourdeaux, who have behaved themselves civilly towards me; and I look upon it as a continuation of the good affection, they have formerly had for the late Cardinal de Sourdis my Brother: but I have reason to be dissatisfied with the Magistrates of your City, and cannot but believe, that if those, who put the words you have delivered me into your mouths, had given you leave to pay me the respect you ought to have done, you would have done it after the accustomed manner, and in the usual place: but by having made yourselves slaves to your Offices, and by having forfeited your Liberties in so doing, you have committed this neglect. I must needs think this proceeding would have been against the sense of the People, might they have been allowed the freedom of their Voices, and consequently can take nothing ill from them: and as to your particular, I shall also pardon you; forasmuch as I know what you have done, was by the Instigation of others, and not upon your own account. The Duke of Espernon was too evidently glanced at in this Discourse, to be insensible of the Injury was done him, and consequently sought nothing more than an occasion wherein to manifest his Resentment. It was nevertheless contrary to the advice of all the Friends and Servants he had about him, that he took up that Resolution; there being none of them who did not very well foresee, that having to do with a man of the Archbishop's condition, and upheld as he was, by the most powerful Protection of the Kingdom, he must of necessity put his Affairs into very great disorder. I would omit nothing of what passed upon this occasion, this being the first occurrence whereby the Duke's Fortune was really wounded; the others that had passed before had only rippled up the skin, and hitherto he had bravely overcome all the difficulties had been opposed against him. Since therefore the Scene is now to be changed, and that a new prospect of his Affairs will be presented to your view, it should not methinks be impertinent to repeat every Circumstance, that contributed to this Alteration: but on the other side I must, in being so particular, descend to such little things, as I fear will importune my Reader. I shall however do the best I can to avoid that inconvenience, by touching at every thing; but with so much brevity, as shall be no durable penance, even to those who are least delighted with such recitals. The Duke, nettled to the quick with the Archbishop's Speech to the Jurats, began rather by trifling Peccadillo's, than by downright Injury to manifest his resentment: for it must needs be confessed, that never man was more ingenious than he, to offend such as he did not love; so that he set all Engines on work, little Affronts, as well as high Abuses, and spared nothing that might any way contribute to his Revenge. Having therefore found the Archbishop so sensible of this first Assault, he persisted to wound him deeper by new and more legible Offences. He had in propriety, as Lord of the Manor of Puipaulin, the Royalty of the Clie of Bourdeaux (which is the Fishmarket there) so as that he might lawfully forbid the entrance thereinto to any, he had no mind to admit: He therefore commanded the Archbishop's Officers one Fish-day to be excluded, to the end they might be necessitated to take their Fish without the Bar, with the rest of the people. These men refused to receive it after that manner, and otherwise they could not have it; neither was the Duke content with doing this alone; but, knowing it would be brought in from other places, caused his Guards moreover to watch all the avenues to hinder it; by whom some were turned back, who would have done the Archbishop that Service, and in the end some of his own Domestics very roughtly handled. Upon this occasion it was, that the clandestine Animosities, they had hitherto in some measure smothered in their Bosoms, flamed out to an open Feud betwixt them; and from this beginning all the Disorders we shall hereafter see ensue, took their rise and being. The Archbishop by Public Declarations complained of the Violence had been offered to him by a sort of men set on purposely to do it, describing them by the name of the Russet Cassocks, which was the Duke's Livery; demanding of the Magistrate protection, and assistance to oppose them, and protesting to Retire with his Clergy, if they would not provide for his Safety. Whilst the Archbishop was thus busy to vindicate himself by Forms of Law, the Duke, conceiving it very unbecoming the Authority he had in the Province, to proceed by the same ways, would try to do his business by other means: He therefore commanded the Lieutenant of his Guards, the next day after the Archbishop had exhibited this injurious Bill, against his Guards, to go with all his Soldiers to present himself before him, and to ask of him, If amongst all those he knew any one man who was likely to commit an unhandsome action? The Lieutenant did as he was commanded, and waited near to the Archbishop Palace his return from the City; when seeing him come in his Coach, he presented himself to speak to him: It was about Dinner time, when the Archbishop seeing so many Soldiers attending the Lieutenant, and not imagining they could come after that manner for any civil end, he commanded his Coachman to drive on. The Lieutenant was still earnest with him, and (with his Hat nevertheless in his hand) beseeches the Archbishop he would be pleased to hear him; assuring him withal he had nothing to say, that could any way offend him: but all was in vain, the Coachman was still called to to drive on; when the Lieutenant fearing to lose the opportunity of executing what he had in charge (and having on the other side not much studied the * Siquis suadente Diabolo, etc. Canon, wherein so many persons by this Contest have since been made perfect) called in the end to one of his Companions to lay hold of the Reins, and to stop the Horses: which being accordingly done, the Archbishop came immediately out of his Coach, crying out there was violence offered to his person, and so retired himself into his house. The Duke, informed by the Lieutenant of his Guards how all things had passed, perceived by the manner of it, that the Archbishop had been put into a terrible fright; which was the only thing he had intended, and so turned the whole business into Mirth, and Laughter. But the Archbishop did not so; but having on the contrary the afternoon of that very same day, being the 29 th'. of October, summoned in all the Orders, and Societies of ecclesiastics in the City, he there exposed before them the open Violence he pretended had been offered to him, rendering the action as foul as he could possibly make it, and omitting nothing he thought would conduce to the interessing the whole Body of the Clergy in his Quarrel. Wherein he succeeded so well, that at the very instant most of the Assistants, fired by his Eloquence, concluded upon an Excommunication; some notwithstanding there were, more moderate than the rest, who a little allaying the fury of this first Sentence, persuaded them in the end to resolve upon a Deputation to the Duke, to complain to him of the ill usage their Prelate had received since his arrival, and therein chiefly of the in●olence committed by the Lieutenant of his Guards, and to demand his Justice. This Complaint was preferred to the Duke the 30 th'. of October, at which he was a little surprised; and now better considering what this Affair, by the interest all the ecclesiastics would take in it, might produce; would, it was conceived, have been glad that things might have continued in the same posture they then were, without running on into greater extremes; neither would he upon the sudden return any precise Answer. He therefore told the Canon, who had been deputed to him in the behalf of the whole Clergy: That the Speech he had made to him consisted of several Heads of great importance: That he was old, and his memory so ill, that it would be hard for him to remember all he had said: That he therefore desired he might have it in writing, and that then he would consider of it, and return his Answer in writing also. The Duke thought that during this respite he desired, the Archbishop would suspend the Publication of his Censures, and that in the mean time, what had passed might by the mediation of Friends, in some amicable Treaty be hushed, and taken up: but he did not in his Adversary meet with a spirit so flexible to an Accommodation, who on the contrary was so obstinately deaf to all overtures of Agreement, that upon All-Saints day he thundered out his Excommunication against the Lieutenant of the Guards, and all those who accompanied him, at the * The Prosnes are the Publilications of the Feasts, and Fasts of the Church, Banes of Matrimony, Excommunications, etc. Prosnes of all the Parish Churches of the City. Neither did he therein spare the person of the Duke himself, of whom in his Act he spoke in these terms: And although the Authors of this attempt be comprised in the same censures; nevertheless, Th● Archbishop pronounces a Sentence of Excommunication against the Lieutenant of the D●ke of Espernon's G●ard, and tacitly against the D●ke himself. considering ●ow many persons are obliged to frequent them for the Service of the King, and the good of the Province, we would not; neither will we make the same Declaration, and Denunciation against them: but reposing our trust in the mercy of Almighty God, who strikes the most obdurate hearts, and thence draws tears of saving Repentance, we have appointed, and ordained, and do hereby appoint, and ordain, Prayers of forty hours upon Sunday the 6 th'. of November in the Church of St. Michael of this City, to implore the assistance of the Divine Goodness for the Conversion of Sinners, etc. Given at Bourdeaux this Monday the last of October 1633. Here you have the first Action that passed betwixt these two great persons, which could not possibly have been pushed on by either side with greater heat, or violence, there being not a day, nay hardly a minute lost betwixt them; but all things hurried on with that vehemency, and precipitation, that whoever had observed the impetuosity wherewith these two Enemies ran against one another, might very well have foreseen, that the shock at their meeting, must of necessity bear one of them to the ground. This business made a mighty noise at Court, whither the Archbishop had writ in great diligence, and where the Cardinal interested himself in his cause, as it had been his own Affair: but, although he was from that time forward resolved to push things to the last extreme, and from this Quarrel to derive an occasion wherein to revenge himself of the Duke, for all his former discontents; he had nevertheless the Duke, and the Cardinal de la Valette, the Duke of Espernon's Sons in so high consideration, that he surrendered all his Animosity to the respect he had to them. He would therefore take a moderate course to compose this Disorder by an Accommodation; Cardinal Richeli●u endeavours an Accommod●t on betwixt them, the agitation whereof was committed to Villemontée, one of the Council of State, and Intendant de la justice in Poictou, Xaintonge, and Angoumois, a man of great esteem with the Cardinal, and the whole Council. This Gentleman therefore departed with this Commission, to transfer himself in all haste to Bourdeaux; but notwithstanding all the diligence he could use, the Animosity betwixt these two haughty Spirits was so great, as had, before he could arrive there, B●t in vain. shuffled matters into so strange a confusion, that it was utterly impossible to find out any way to compose them. The Duke of Espernon exasperated to the last degree, that the little respite he had so modestly desired, should be denied him, and to find that the Archbishop would not a little bend by his example; from that time forward excluded all thoughts of Reconciliation, and for the future only meditated how no settle his Conscience in repose, by paying the respect, and submission that was due to the Church. To this end therefore he called an Assembly of several Learned Divines in his own House, to consult about the Excommunication had been pronounced against the Lieutenant of his Guards, and implicitly against himself. In this Debate there were very few who did not conclude it altogether groundless; of particular Opinions therefore they drew up a Public Act, which being subscribed by all the Doctors, to the number of more than thirty, was published throughout the City, to the end, they said, that all Scandal and Scruple might be taken away, which the Archbishop's Excommunication might have raised, and begot in the minds of the people. But that which was designed for so good an end, produced, as we shall see, a very different effect. Amongst the Doctors, the Duke had Assembled, there were several Religious, and other ecclesiastics, who were under the Archbishop's Jurisdiction; this Prelate therefore being strangely incensed, to be abandoned by his own Party, in a Cause wherein the Church was so highly concerned, and impatient to have the Lie given him, by those very men, by whose advice (or the greatest part of them at least) he had Published his Censures, would once more call them together; his design therein being either to make them retract from what they had subscribed to in the Duke's favour, or to punish them for having submitted themselves to a Secular Power. He therefore cited them to appear before him, by the publication of an Ordinance, bearing date the 10 th'. day of November 1633. The Doctors, surprised at this citation, were very much afraid of their Metropolitan's Indignation, and some severe Chastisement, that would be inflicted on them. This apprehension made them fly to the Duke's Protection, who, to secure them, the same day issued out another Ordinance, wherein he prohibited all sorts of persons, of what quality, condition, or profession soever, to meet in an extraordinary Assembly, either in the Archbishop's Palace, or elsewhere, without his especial Licence; excepting nevertheless the Religious, and ecclesiastics immediately belonging to the Archbishop's Congregation, and whose Councils he customarily made use of, for the better ordering the Discipline of his Diocese. The Doctors, not yet believing themselves sufficiently secured by this Edict, entreated the Duke that he would moreover place the Archers of the Watch of the City upon all the Avenues, and Gates of the Archbishop's Palace, to hinder such as would pretend to obey the Bishop's Summons. A request the Duke as readily granted, conceiving himself so far obliged in honour to protect them, that whatsoever could be represented to him, to hinder that determination, the consequences whereof, were in all probability like to be exceedingly untoward, it was notwithstanding, impossible to divert him. The Archbishop had no sooner notice, that the Captain of the Watch, with his Archers, had planted himself at his Gates; but that immediately putting on his Pontifical Robes, and causing himself to be followed by some ecclesiastics, together with what people he had about him, he went on foot out of the House, crying out in the Streets as he passed along, To me my people, there is no more Liberty for the Church. In this posture he went to several Religious Houses of the City, gathering after him a great number of people (who ran from all parts to the Novelty) as he went along, and in the end returned back towards his own Palace, without effecting any thing more, or being able to raise any Commotion in the City. Whilst all these things were in doing, the Duke was at the Capuchins, in one of the remotest parts of the City, where having news brought him by two Precedents of the Parliament of what had passed, and of the danger there was, lest the Archbishop should stir up any Mutiny to the prejudice of the common Safety; he was at last by them entreated to interpose his Authority, and Wisdom, for the conservation of the Public Peace. In the heat therefore this sudden intelligence had put him into, the Duke speedily mounted his Coach, commanding they should drive that way he heard the Archbishop was gone. He had in company with him the Count de Maillé, and the Commendator de la justice, both of them men of very eminent Virtue, and in whom he had a particular confidence: but in this sudden passion their Counsels could by no means prevail. The Duke made his Coachman still drive on, and through all, till he came near the Archbishop's Palace, whither he heard he was upon his return, and where he overtook him. The Bishop thus overtaken, still continued on his pace, when the Duke having stayed him by the Arm, and demanded of him by what Authority he stirred up this Commotion in his Government, he was by the Archbishop interrupted, who cried out aloud, Strike Tyrant, thy blows will be to me Flowers, and Roses, thou art Excommunicated. In the heat of this bustle, the Duke catching him by the hand, lifted it up twice, or thrice, and set it against his Breast: but in the end, the Archbishop still provoking him with injurious Language, and with his Hat on, the Duke with a Cane he had in his hand, touched the Brim of his Hat, and thrust it off his head to the ground, telling him at the same time, he did not know the respect he ought him; but if the Reverence to his Profession did not restrain him, he would make him know it. Something worse might perhaps have passed, had not the Count de Maillé, and the Commendator de la justice interposed, who stepping in betwixt them, put an end to this untoward bustle, very much unbecoming both the one, and the other. After this action had thus passed, the Duke returned to his own House, and although he very well knew no good issue could attend it, manifested notwithstanding no show of apprehension, or repentance, discoursing of it with his Friends (who were more in suspense than he himself appeared to be, of what would be the event) as of a thing of an indifferent nature, and a just resentment of an Affair wherein his Honour was concerned. The Archbishop was no sooner disengaged from the Duke, but that he fortwith repaired to his Church, where he pronounced his Sentence of Excommunication, The Sentence of Excommunication pronounced against the D●ke of Espernon. both against him, and all those who had been in company with him, prohibiting Divine Service in all the Churches of the City, and also in that of Cadillac, by a public Act, I shall forbear to Copy in this place, that I may not importune my Reader. This first Spiritual Thunderbolt having been darted by the Archbishop, he had moreover recourse to the Temporal Authority, very well foreseeing, that if that did not justify the Blow he had already levelled at the Duke, it would be no very hard matter for him to evade it, and to frustrate any mortal effect by very pertinent, and powerful Reasons. He sent away a dispatch therefore to Court, wherein he gave Cardinal Richelieu an account of the Violence had been offered to him; at which the Cardinal was so highly incensed that nothing now had power to appease him. He therefore talked no more of attempting an Accommodation, Villemontée's Commission (who had been sent away upon their first difference to that purpose) was at an end, even before he could arrive at the place; so that nothing now was thought of, save how by the King's Authority to inquire into the Riots contained in the Archbishop's Complaint: and his Majesty as Protector, and eldest Son of the Church, was counselled by the Cardinal (particularly concerned in the Affair, by the interest of his profession, which he would render inviolable) to make a signal example of his Piety and Justice, in the Person of the Duke of Espernon. It is believed, that if the Duke had taken the same course, the Archbishop did, and had sent to Court in time to give his Reasons for what he had done, he had infinitely discredited his Adversaries Cause; but it was for some days impossible to prevail with him to do it. He still carried on the business with the same indifferency, saying to such as urged him to that course (with a generosity something out of season at this time) That he was not to give an account of his Actions to any, but the King himself, which he was ready to do whenever his Majesty should please to call him to it: That he very willingly gave the start to such, as were diffident either of themselves, or their Cause; and that he had done nothing, but what he ought to do, for the maintenance of the King's Authority entrusted with him. So that carrying himself at the same careless rate, it is not to be imagined how much he fortified his Enemy's side by his own negligence, nor how many advantages he gave him, which he would otherwise perhaps never have obtained, had not he himself contributed to them. In the end notwithstanding for fashion's sake, he dispatched away one of the Soldiers of his Guards to Court, but it was not of four days after the bustle; and then he did it after such a manner, as made it appear it was rather out of complacency to his Friends, who were importunate with him to that effect, than out of any respect to his own Interests. His Sons, who before this Courriers arrival knew not what to oppose to the Archbishop's Complaints, The Court 〈◊〉 with the Archbishop. had now something to say in their Father's behalf: but it was impossible for them to alter the Resolutions already taken, or to suspend the blow the King (who had his hand already up) was ready to discharge upon him. Whilst Affairs were debated with this heat at Court, they were carried on with no less violence at Bourdeaux. And the Parliament o● Bourdeaux also, who draw 〈◊〉 Information against him▪ The Parliament there had taken cognizance of the Quarrel, and though the Duke had several very good Friends in that Assembly, yet the number of those who were not so prevailing, and the news that came every day from Court, to the Duke's disadvantage, having given men's minds very ill impressions of the success of his Affairs; the Company could not be dissuaded from sending a Deputation to the Archbishop, to let him know how highly they interested themselves in his Offence, and to make him a tender of all the good Offices, they were capable to do him upon this occasion. After which, from Offers, going on to Effects, they began to fall to fall to work, about drawing up an Information against the Duke, and notwithstanding he made several Protestations to appeal from the Parliament, as a Court prohibited in all his Causes, nothing could stop the Torrent of their proceeding; but they would perfect what they had begun, as they did, and so exactly for the Court palate, that they would hear talk of no other Information. Villemontée, who had heard nothing before his departure of this last business, was gone, according to his Orders to Accommodate the first, and was by this time arrived at Bourdeaux. The Duke of Espernon knew him not, on the contrary he had been rendered suspected to him, by having been represented for a great Creature of the Cardinals, and that was consequently like to be very partial to the Archbishop's side; but the Duke, having at their first Conference, found him much more swayed by his Duty, than all other Respects, he made no difficulty to repose his entire Confidence in this man's Virtue, and to give him a full account of the whole action, to the end that he might draw up his answer in due Form of Law, The Duke Signs his Answer, wherein he gives a true Relation of ●he whole business. The Duke was so generous, as herein to cause every thing that had passed to be laid open at length, and without disguise; to which he would moreover add his Seal to confirm it; and although it was often represented to him, by very understanding men, that so ingenious a Confession was not necessary, in an occasion wherein he saw his Adversaries prosecute with so much heat, and that in this case, his single Confession would more prejudice his Cause, than the Depositions of all the Witnesses could be produced against him; yet those Remonstrances were not of force to dissuade him, he smartly replying: That he had not done an action to disavow it, and that whatever the issue might be, it would be much more supportable to him, than the shame of being reduced to the necessity of disowning any Act of his life. It was in truth upon this single confession of the Duke's, after the Parliaments Information had been sufficiently canvased, that the Cardinal pronounced the Excommunication to be valid, and right; and that the King was obliged both in Equity, and Honour, to repair the Injury committed by one of his Officers of that condition, against the Person, and Dignity of a Prelate, and the whole Church. The first reparation was a command the Duke received in a Dispatch from the King, to depart out of his Government, and to retire to his House of Plassac, which was in these words. Cousin, Having seen a Declaration of several Riots, whereof the Archbishop, and the Clergy of Bourdeaux highly complain to Us; We have thereupon thought fit to send you this Letter, The D●ke receives a Command from the King to depart out of his Government. which will be delivered you by the Sieur de Varennes, one of our Gentlemen in ordinary, to tell you, We desire that immediately upon sight hereof you retire to your House of Plassac, and there remain till our further Pleasure. We do also send to the Archbishop, to signify to him, that it is our desire he come to us, to the end we may be fully informed of the truth of what has passed; purposing in the mean time to send one of our Council, to our said City of Bourdeaux, to inquire into, and to bring Us thence a perfect Account of the business. The rest we refer to the said Sieur de Varennes to communicate to you, whom you are in all things to believe; praying God Cousin, etc. At St. german en Say this 18 th'. of November 1633. Signed Lovis, And below Philipeaux. The Duke of Espernon's Friends at Court, being informed of the severe contents of this Dispatch, were not a little in doubt after what manner he would receive it. They feared his great Spirit, full of those generous Maxims, which had for so many years, and in so many froward occurrences supported his Reputation, and Fortune, would with great difficulty submit to Laws, so different from what they had been in former times. Amongst these the Cardinal de la Valette (a man as well read in the Court, as any whatever of his time) upon this occasion laid aside the complacency of a Son, to assume the austerity of a faithful Adviser, and writ to him to this effect, That he did beseech him to look upon this Affair, as one of the greatest Difficulty and Importance he had met withal in the whole course of his life: That to avoid any inconveniences might befall him, he must immediately submit to the King's Pleasure, and Command, and refer the business wholly, and without reservation to the Cardinal, which was the only way to put a good end to this Dispute. Monsieur de Seguier Garde des Sceaux, the Duke's intimate friend, and a man that appeared more for his Interest, than the condition of the time seemed conveniently to permit, did the same, writing him word, That a prompt and absolute Obedience was the only way whereby a cause, his Enemies Favour rendered generally disapproved, might be brought to a successful issue; but that without that, it was utterly impossible for his Friends, and Servants, to do him those Offices were necessary for the bringing of matters to any tolerable conclusion. All the Duke's other Friends having confirmed the same thing, he evidently saw, that he must of necessity obey; yet was it not without an incredible violence upon his own Humour, and great Spirit. He had at other times resisted the greatest powers of the State, when armed against him with the King's Authority, and Forces, whereas now he saw himself reduced to submit to four lines of Paper; they made him indeed to depart out of his Government: And though it be true, that in these latter Times, the Royal Authority was raised to a more illustrious height, than formerly it had ever been; yet I do not know that any one has observed a greater example of his Power, than upon this occasion. All France acknowledged the Duke, for the eminent qualities he was master of, to be a man of the greatest Reputation of his Age; he was possessed of the greatest, and most important Governments of the Kingdom, powerful in Riches, Commands, Places, Servants, and much more in his Children. His three Sons had all of them great Offices, and great Employments, and yet with all these advantages he was not able to resist four words; and than it was, that he plainly saw a Subject had no way to support himself in his Fortune, and Reputation, but by Obedience; and that the Power of a King, managed as it ought to be, can meet no difficulties, nor impediments, it cannot easily master, and overcome. He had seen a time, when by making a show of Resolution, or Discontent, men had sometimes obtained part of what they desired, or at least defended themselves from what they had not a mind to do. Under the Reign of Henry the III, the diversity of Factions, which then divided the State, had so weakened the Authority of the Sovereign, that he durst scarce pretend to more than a voluntary Submission from his People: And Henry the Great his Successor, by an excess of Bounty and good Nature, had continued to do, what the other had been constrained to by inevitable Necessity. This Mighty Prince was of so noble a Disposition, that he would destroy none; so that, excepting the Marshal de Byron, who would have no compassion of himself, almost all the great men of the Kingdom, were either actually Rebels, or highly Disobedient, without ever feeling either the Sword, or so much as the Hand of Justice. The Regency of Queen Mary de Medici, was equally moderate, and gentle, and the Tempests that arose in her time, being appeased with money, men did not only offend securely, but made moreover a profit of their Crimes. The Mareschald' Encre tried to change those milder into rougher Maxims; but he lost himself in the practice of this premature severity. In the Ministry of the Duke de Luines, there was no more of violence, than in the preceding Reigns: the good success notwithstanding the Royal Arms, always had in all Erterprises, during the time of his favour, made it plain, that there was nothing his Majesty could not with great facility effect in his own Kingdom. He had with great ease suppressed the Queen Mother's Insurrection; he had invaded the Party of the Religion with very great success, wherein having found their weakness by their disunion amongst themselves, he was by that discovery encouraged to undertake their total ruin; and the Cardinal entering into the Ministry in so favourable a juncture of Affairs, pressed the declining Faction so home, that in a very short time he removed all Obstacles, which could any ways oppose the Royal Authority, or impede the establishment of his own. The Party of the Religion was totally suppressed, the House of Austria infinitely weakened; all the other Princes who were ill affected to the Crown, reduced to a necessity of complying with whatsoever was imposed upon them; and those of the Nobility who were so bold, as to oppose the King's will, had been so roughly handled, that not a man durst any more expose himself to the punishment they all knew would inevitably follow the least forfeiture of their Duty. It had been but of very late years, that this new form of Government had been introduced into the Kingdom, and the Duke was grown old in the practice of other Maxims: It is not then to be doubted, but that it must needs be with great repugnancy, and unwillingness, that he could Accommodate himself to a thing so unusual and severe; he did notwithstanding do it, and without delaying time, or spending any more than was requisite for the making of some few Visits, and taking leave of his Friends, he departed out of his Government, suspended from his Functions, Excommunicated from the Church, and reduced to the conversation of his own Domestics only. Though in a condition so different from what it had formerly been, and so contrary to his ordinary way of living, he could not but be very much afflicted, he nevertheless so well concealed his grief, that he was not observed to be either more melancholy, or dejected, than at other times; and he had so great a command over his own passions, as not to utter so much as one word unbecoming either his courage, or his piety, ever retaining in all things the devout Reverence due to the Holy Church. So oft as any one writ him word from Paris, that his Friends could have wished he had retained a greater moderation, and respect towards the person of a Prelate, he would still maintain, That in repelling an injury done to the Royal Power, he had done no more than it was his Duty to do: That the King himself might prostitute his Authority as he pleased; but that as for him who was obliged in his Majesty's Right to maintain all the Privileges of his Command; he neither could, nor aught to have done otherwise, than he did, and that he would ever do it, though he was thereby certain to forfeit, not only his Offices, and his Estate, but also his Life. So soon as the Duke was arrived at Plassac,, The Du●e comes to Plassac, where he observes his Excommunication. he began to observe his Excommunication, though he wanted not the advice of several very Learned Divines, who maintained it to be invalid, and unjust; wherein his submission appeared to all so much the more to be commended, in that he was willing to undergo the punishment of an Offence, he was not convinced he had committed. Thus banished to a Country House, where his only consolation should have been to have conversed with his God, even there also the doors of his Church were bolted against him; so that he assisted no more at Masses as he had formerly ever done; And submits to the Church. he moreover deprived himself of the participation of all the Sacraments: but he omitted nothing withal that might any ways serve to manifest his respect to the Holy Church, and her Ministers. He made all the Protestations that could be prevailing to the vindication of the integrity of his Obedience, and to that purpose sent away an express dispatch to Cardinal Bichi, the Pope's Nuntio in France; he sent also to Poitiers, where he knew the Archbishop of Bourdeaux had called together an Assembly of Prelates, to make the same Declarations; but it was all in vain: and it was decreed he should undergo all, and all the severest Forms of Penance, before he should receive his Absolution. But as the Spiritual Authority was not armed against him alone, and that it was not that (though he had it in the highest reverence) he had the greatest reason to apprehend; it was also necessary for him to employ his principal care, and endeavour, to divert the Fury of the Royal Power, which was already displayed against him. The D●ke sends a D●spatch to the King. To that effect therefore he dispatched away the Count de Maillé to the King, with instructions especially to solicit, that the Commissioners his Majesty had made him hope for in his Dispatch, might be sent away, that by the return of their Report, his Majesty might be fully informed of the truth of his Actions: but after the Information of the Parliament of Bourdeaux, which was altogether favourable to the Archbishop, the Court had no ear left open, either to his Prayers, or Complaints; and the Cardinal having solemnly espoused the Quarrel, and made it his own, was so far from permitting the Duke's Friends to dispute his Will with their best Arguments, and Reasons, that he would not so much as endure any one should dare to propose them. How great soever the Cardinal's passion was herein, or how great soever his Credit with the King, they were not however such as could hinder the Duke, and the Cardinal de la Valette from paying (with equal Generosity, and good Nature) the respect which by all sorts of Obligation, they so justly owed to the Duke their Father. The first of which had no sooner notice of the Dispute his Father had with the Archbishop, but that he departed from Metz, to come first to Court, there to observe the disposition of things, and from thence to go to Plassac, either to comfort the Duke his Father in his Affliction; or to give him his best advice in his Affairs. As for the Cardinal his Brother, what dependence soever he had at Court, he very often exposed all that Interest, to perform his Duty, and so far as to engage sometimes in so hot Disputes with the Cardinal Richelieu, that it was often believed, they would never again be so fully reconciled, that there would not still remain a Core in the bosom of the one or the other. So soon as the Archbishop had got his Information perfected, The Archbishop of Bourdeaux goes to Paris. and so well to his liking, that he conceived his proofs could admit of no Dispute, he departed from Bourdeaux to go to Paris. Plassac the place to which the Duke was retired, was in truth in his way, but not so, that he might not without any inconvenience have balked it; and all the world believed he would have been so civil to the Duke's Disgrace as to have done it: he did not nevertheless, but on the contrary, passed along by the Park Wall after so braving a manner, that he made the noise of his Equipage rattle against the very Walls of the Duke's House. And then indeed it was, that the Duke felt himself most sensibly wounded, and that this Bravado had like to have transported him to something that might have made the Archbishop's Cause better than it was, by offering to him some signal Violence. I was myself a witness how much ado he had to forbear; but his Friends and Servants representing to him the importance of the Action he was about, he in the end gave way to their Reason, though I do believe with the greatest violence he committed upon himself, and his great Spirit, throughout the whole progress of this troublesome Affair. The Archbishop was no sooner arrived at Court, Anno 1634. but that all the Prelates, who were then in Paris, assembled after an unusual manner, to deliberate amongst themselves what was best to be done in the bebalf of their Brother; which Convocation the Duke of Espernon had no sooner notice of; but continuing to do, as he had formerly done, he sent to them his Protestations of an absolute submission to the Holy Church. The Duke de la Valette therefore, who was returned back to Court, demanded Audience in the Assembly, in the name of the Duke his Father; which being granted, he there laid down his Reasons before them, with so much efficacy, and elocution, that of five and twenty Prelates who were there present, thirteen were of opinion to take upon them the quality of Judges, under the good pleasure of the Pope, and the King, the Duke having absolutely submitted himself to their Determination: but this resolution was not for the gust of the Court; by this way the business would have been too soon decided, and it was resolved the Duke should pay much dearer for his re-establishment in his Offices and Commands. The next day therefore what had been agreed upon the day before, was totally overthrown, and Messieurs the Prelates would by no means accept the high degree of Judges, the Duke had so submissively offered, but would humble themselves to the qualities of simple Parties only. They assembled then again at the Archbishop of Bourdeaux his Palace, and from thence sent a Deputation to the King, wherein the Archbishop of Arles was to speak for the rest. All that (they say) was observable in the Bishop's Oration, was only an excessive vehemency; in the heat whereof he made use of all the odious terms he could invent, to allure his Majesty's Indignation, and to possess him with the highest sense of the Duke's Misdemeanour. Upon which occasion it was that Caspian Bishop of Nantes, one of the greatest, and most virtuous Prelates of his time, cried out, That if it were possible for the Devil to submit himself to God Almighty, to such a degree as the Duke did, he would infallibly obtain pardon for all his Offences; and that notwithstanding the Church denied this Pardon to a Christian, who had ever served God and his Church. But neither this true Remonstrance, nor any other whatsoever that could be offered in the Duke's behalf, could produce any good effect to the composing of this Affair. He had very good intelligence of all the Severity was practised to his prejudice; for although the greatest Powers were declared against him, he had notwithstanding friends in the Assembly, that were swayed by no other consideration, save only the pure interest of Piety and Justice. Of this number were the Archbishops of Sens, and of Tholouze, the Bishop of Nantes; before mentioned, that of Man's, of Beauvais, and some others. These Prelates acknowledged by the whole Kingdom for men of great Merit, and Example, no sooner had intelligence of what the rest of their Order were contriving against the Duke, but that they came in all haste to Paris, to do him all the good Offices, the condition of the time would permit: but there was an over ruling power, that rendered all their endeavours fruitless; so that after having long sustained the Torrent of Authority, that opposed their Reason, they were constrained at last to give way to force, that ever gives the Law to the best Arguments. Upon the Complaints of the Clergy preferred to the King, by the mouth of the Archbishop of Arles, his Majesty commanded that the Informations of the Parliament of Bourdeaux should be put into the hands of Lauzon, Master of Requests, to make his Report. Villemontée, who was also at the same time at Court, was likewise ordered to give in his Answer; after which, and that the Depositions of the Witnesses, had been sufficiently canvased, the Cardinal, who was present at the Council, was of opinion, That upon the Duke's single Confession contained in his Answer, A Sentence against the Duke of Espernon. he ought to be reputed Excommunicate, and as so, that the King ought to declare him lapsed from all his Offices, and Dignities, till by virtue of his Absolution he should be reunited to the Church. Though the King's Sentences were by the Duke himself obeyed with all manner of submission; his Friends, and Servants nevertheless did not forbear, even in the face of the Court, with many powerful Arguments to move for his Quietus est; of which Arguments there were enough of themselves, to make an entire Volumn: but I have nothing to do to transcribe them here, both in regard they were of no advantage to the Duke at that time, and that his intention remains sufficiently justified, by his Respect, and Submissions to the Church. The Cardinal de la Valette failed not however to urge, and dispute those Reasons, as he had ever done; but not having been able to prevail, that the Clergy might themselves be Judges of his Father's Cause; nor that the King would please to take off the punishment he had imposed upon him, till after he should be absolved; The Duke was constrained to apply himself to the Court of Rome, first to obtain the repose of his Conscience, and after his Restauration to his Offices, and Commands. His Secretary was therefore dismissed from Plassac to go to Rome, The Duke sends a Dispatch to Rome to procure his Absolution. furnished with several Dispatches directed to several of the principal persons of that Court. The Duke's name, famous in all parts of Europe, was with his Holiness in very great esteem; he had had the honour to be acquainted with him in the time of his Nuntiature in France, and he was then reputed no ill Catholic. His Holiness therefore very graciously received his Submissions, and, contrary to the c●stom of that Court, where delays are very usual (chiefly when the Authority of the Apostolic See in any Debate of Consequence, is concerned) cutting off a great many of the tedious Forms, caused the Expeditions necessary for the Duke's satisfaction to be dispatched, and sent them away to Cardinal Bichi, his Nuntio in France. So that, had the Resolutions of the Court of Rome at that time had less dependence upon those of France, the Duke had from thence obtained a speedy, and full satisfaction. But so many rubs were on this side the Alps laid in the way, that four whole months were lapsed, before the Duke could receive his Absolution, which when it came, was no other neither than, Ad Reincidentiam, a term used by those who treat of such matters, when it is not a plenary Absolution. Who is it that, reading the progress of this Dispute, but must admire that a little Compliment ill received, and a few words ill interpreted, should grow to be one of the most important Affairs of two of the greatest Courts of Europe? I was very unwilling to have been so tedious in being so particular: but others having related it so as they knew would please the Great Ones of that time, who were no Friends to the Duke, I thought myself obliged to render here an account of things as they truly passed: which if it will not here absolutely excuse the Duke for being in his sudden passion too violently transported against an Ecclesiastical Person, it will at least serve to manifest the respect he bore to the Church, and to a Dignity he ever had in the highest Reverence, and Esteem. From this time forward the Duke's Affairs began to appear with a much better face at Court, The Duke's Affairs begin to discover a better face. his Sons having by their diligence, and discretion so moderated Cardinal Richelieu's heat, that nothing remained to do, save only how to contrive a durable Reconciliation, and from this breach (as it often falls out) to derive an occasion of inseparably uniting their two Families The Cardinal notwithstanding would first have his Will: he had (as has been said) in the Year 1632. desired that the Duke would demise his Government of Metz in his favour; wherein, having not met with that complacency he expected, he must now be satisfied. Neither would promises serve the turn, the laying down the Government of this place must also precede the Absolution, the Cardinal being by no means to be persuaded to consent, that the Duke should be allowed to be a Christian to God, and his Church, whilst he continued a Rebel to him. Yet was it not nevertheless at this time to make any private advantage of this Demission, he had altered that design; and the possession of Metz seeming to be superfluous, in the assurance he had of the King's Favour, which he thought he had absolutely acquired by the necessity of his Service, the sole end, he could in all appearance propose to himself herein, was, to let the world see, that no one was thenceforward to contend with him, and by an example of this nature to establish his Authority over all the other great men of the Kingdom. The place however only changed the hand without going out of the Family, it being transferred to the Cardinal de la Valette; An Alliance with the 〈…〉. as the Duke his Brother was made choice of by a Marriage wholly to piece up, what the late Disorders had disunited. And then it was that they began in good earnest to treat about a plenary Absolution, of the satisfactions were to be made to the Church, and other things that were of course to precede the Duke's Restauration to his Offices, and Commands. But before I proceed to the conclusion of this Affair, it will not I conceive be impertinent, to give an account of two passages, which will render the Duke's constancy, and generosity highly considerable, even in the greatest cloud of his Disgrace; the first whereof was this. In the time that the Court Persecutions were most violent against the Duke, many of his Enemies, both of the Parliament of Bourdeaux, and other parts of the Province, out of a vanity of Generosity, would needs offer themselves to be reconciled to him, believing that in such a time of affliction he would be more flexible to an Accommodation, and that seeing how many Enemies he had to deal withal, he would be glad to leslen their number; at least they doubted not but he would receive into his Favour, and good Opinion, those who in so malignant a Juncture should, out of the sole respect to his Person, and Virtue, offer their Service to him: but he on the contrary apprehending, that to appear facile to Reconciliations in a time of disgrace, would be interpreted weakness, and want of Spirit, sent them word, That he could not deny his Friendship to such as should desire it of him, in a time when he should be in a capacity to oblige them; but that he would never reconcile himself to receive any good Offices from any, who had not been his Friends. And he remained so constant to this resolution, that he was never to be persuaded to alter it, what prudent considerations soever could be laid before him to that effect. The other thing was a Proposition made to him by a Letter from Paris, writ by an unknown hand, Sealed with an unknown Seal, and without Superscription. In this Letter there was propounded to him an infallible way to cut off Cardinal Richelieu, his worst, and implacable Enemy, and bend to his ruin (which were the express terms of the Letter.) He who was the Author of this design delivered himself to be a Gentleman of Lorain, and an Engineer; who for this piece of Service would demand no more, but six hundred Pistols only, three hundred in hand, and the rest when he had done his business. The Duke had the very thought of so great a wickedness in the greatest horror, and detestation; and what cause soever of unkindness, or offence he might have against the Cardinal, he had his person notwithstanding in very great esteem; which had it been less, or that his Animosity had been greater, it is most certain, that he would never have chosen so base a way to his Revenge. He therefore burned the Letter without speaking a word of it to any, save one of his Domestics only, though the Proposition was thrice repeated. The Servant the Duke was pleased to entrust with this secret, observing with what obstinacy the Villain persevered in his damnable resolution, did very rightly judge, that it was not to the Duke alone he would discover his treacherous intent, well foreseeing he would say as much to all the great men of the Kingdom, that he thought to be discontented, and that in the end he would be trapped, as it fell out. That if then he should accuse the Duke to have harkened three times to his Proposition, without making any discovery of it, his silence in such a case might pass, in the Cardinal's Opinion, for a tacit consent. He was therefore of advice that the Duke should acquaint the Cardinal with it; but it was impossible to persuade him to that resolution, whilst he was in disgrace. He always professed that he would never consent to the death of an Enemy by so infamous a way: but that withal he would not give him that advantage, to persuade himself that he had invented this Artifice (he not being able to produce the Author) by that pitiful way to seek his Favour. The business then rested in this posture, till after the Duke's return to Bourdeaux, that he was restored to his Government; when the same person, persisting in the same wicked design, and importuning the Duke to accept his offer, without securely sleeping (which were his own words) under the dissembled show of a counterfeit Reconciliation, he then yielded to the advice of the Duke de la Valette his Son, who was now with him, and at his persuasion resolved in the end to send his Letters to the Cardinal de la Valette, to communicate them to Cardinal Richelieu. And they could not have been sent in a better time, for the same proposals that had been made to the Duke, having also been tendered to the Duchess of Lorain, she had discovered them to the Cardinal, who, being alarmed with the conformity of these Intelligences, set spies upon the actious of him that proposed them. He was therefore Arrested upon the marks he had given of himself in his Letters; neither was there any thing, how daring soever, that might not be expected from the temerity of this man. He was known to have been formerly a Servant to the Duke de la Valette, and for one of the most resolute fellows of his time; of which at his being taken he gave notable proof, having killed two men of seven that came to apprehend him, and dangerously wounded two more; but in the end, gored with Wounds, he was taken, and had life enough left to end his days upon a Gibbet. Some of these things having happened before the overtures of Agreement, we are now to continue the thread of our Discourse, where it was broke off before. The Alliance concluded with the Duke de la Valette. The Cardinal de la Valette therefore pursued the conclusion of this Treaty with great vigour, and so as that he had concluded the Marriage of the Duke de la Valette his Brother, with the eldest Daughter of the Marquis de Pont-Chasteau, a match that was to be the main tye of this Accommodation. This Lady, who was Niece to the Cardinal, and one of the best Families in Brittany, equally considerable, both for the rare Endowments of her Person, and the advantages of her Condition, was sought after by all the great men of the Court; but the Cardinal her Uncle, having long had a design to engage the Duke, and his, in the Interests of his own Fortune, and Greatness, preferred the Duke de la Valette above all other persons that pretended to her. So soon as this Affair, which put an end to all the rest with Honour, and cut off all difficulties whatever, was agreed upon, the Duke de la Valette, who had been sent for to Court to conclude it, returned back again to the Duke his Father, to ask his consent. The Duke gave it him 'tis true, but that also was all: and although this Match had been made for no other end, than merely to disengage him from those troubles wherewith he was involved, he would notwithstanding grant no more, than his complacency only, nothing more being to be obtained of his severe, and untractable humour, but a generous denial. He said, That he had esteem enough for the person, who was to enter into his Alliance, to gratify her with a good share of his Estate, which in due time he would also do; but that he had much rather continue in the posture he then was all the days of his life, than that it should be said he had redeemed himself by his money, or by Bribes been restored to his Command. What offence soever the Cardinal took at this disobliging carriage of the Duke, he proceeded notwithstanding to the accomplishment of the intended Match; which being done, he dispatched away the Abbot de Coursan, one of the ecclesiastics in his dependence, with Orders from the King to end all Differences. Wherein the Archbishop had order to give the Duke his Absolution, as the Duke also had his, about what he was to observe in the receiving of it. The Duke's Absolution resolved upon. The Cardinal had a desire that the Ceremony might have been performed in the Chapel of his Castle of Coutras, that his House might have been rendered famous by so memorable an action: but the Archbishop would never consent to have it done there; on the contrary obstinately insisting, that he would have it at the Gates of the Parish Church of that place, and in the face of all the people; wherein although Caspian at that time Bishop of Nantes, and the Esprüet▪ now Bishop of Saint Papoul, who were the Mediators of the Duke's Interests with the Archbishop, endeavoured all they could to conquer this resolution, it was all in vain. The Duke, who, for a nicety like that, would not defer the accomplishment of an Affair, which through so many difficulties had been brought on to the pass it then was, conquering his own humour, submitted in the end to all the Archbishop could desire. But it was withal an odd beginning of a Reconciliation, the two Parties before they parted from the place, being perhaps more dissatisfied with one another, than they had been before. The day for the Absolution being appointed, the Duke of Espernon, attended by the Duke de la Valette, and several persons of quality, went to Coutras; where being come, the Archbishop, who was already there, accompanied with his ecclesiastics, went first to the Church, where the Duke following after, and presenting himself before him, kneeled down upon a Velvet Cushion, laid ready for that purpose. In this posture, and in the presence of five Councillors of the Parliament of Bourdeaux, who were, by the King's Order to be assisting at this Ceremony, the Archbishop pronounced his Absolution in these words. Et Ego Autboritate Ecclesiae, The Absolution. & ●â quâ fungor, absolvo te vinculo Excommunicationis, quam incurristi; quia immunitatem Ecclefiae meae Metropolitanae perfregisti; manum armatam militum, ut me currumque meum in via sisterent, misisti; Statione dispositâ Palatium nostrum vallasti; jurisdictionem Ecclesiasticam violasti, eámque tibi arrogasti; Nos, Clerumque nostrum insignibus, & indignis contumeliis affecisti: In nomine Patris, & Filij, etc. Though the Duke was no great Latinist, he had nevertheless so much, as to understand many words of this Absolution, by which he observed, they were not according to the ordinary style of the Church; so that (as he afterwards said) he was once going to interrupt the Archbishop, as he was speaking: but being unwilling to do any thing that might either look like an Irreverence to the Church, or retard the satisfaction he hoped for, both as to his Conscience and Affairs after the business was done, he permitted him to proceed, choosing rather to pass for an indifferent Clerk, than to play the Doctor out of time, and to his own prejudice The Absolution being passed, there were mutual Visits to be paid, wherein the Duke in Obedience to the King's Order, began first, and went to give the Archbishop thanks for his Absolution; a civility that was soon returned by the Archbishop: but with so much coldness on both sides, that it was easy to judge this Reconciliation was likely to beget no very good intelligence betwixt them. In plain truth the Duke could not digest the Severities the Archbishop had made him undergo, which he interpreting to be done out of a premeditared design to provoke him to something that might either hinder, or de●er his Absolution, he was much more sensible of those public Manifestations of his ill will, than of any obligation for the involuntary Grace he had imparted to him. There ensued therefore, and that immediately upon the Absolution, high complaints on both sides; of which upon the instant great Relations were made, and whereof those of the Duke were justified by the testimony of the Abbot de Coursan, who, by seeing how hardly he had been dealt withal, was become altogether of his Party: But whilst these Remonstrances were upon their way to Court, the Duke, to divert himself, took a turn into his Territories of Angoumois, beginning now to make use of that liberty, which, by his Reconciliation to the Church, was once more his own. At his return from this little Journey, by an express Courier from Court, he received his Majesty's Orders to return into Guienne: neither could they have been couched in more obliging terms, there being therein not one syllable of any thing that had passed; and the King's Letter, without speaking of any re-establishment, which would have presupposed a former Suspension, containing only these words. Cousin, Having considered how much your presence may be necessary in my Province of Guienne▪ that you may have an eye to such Occurrences as may happen there, I have thought fit to write you this Letter, to let you know, that I desire, and shall be well pleased that you go thither, to the end you may there continue the Functions that belong to the Authority of your Command, as you have formerly done; and to take care that all things be continued in the good condition they ought to be▪ for the safety, and conservation of the said Province in my Obedience. Wherein being assured you will acquit yourself, with your accustomed vigilancy, and care, and resting secure in the absolute confidence, I have ever reposed in your Fidelity, and good Affection, I shall say no more, but only assure you of my Affection. Praying God, etc. From Saint german en Say this first of October, 1634. With this there were other Dispatches sent, directed, both to the first Precedent d' Agnesseau, that he might acquaint the Assembly with his Majesty's intention, and also to the Jurats of the City; which the Duke having sent away some days before his departure from Plassac, The Duke of Espern●● returns into Guienne. he himself followed soon after, and returned into his Government, more honoured, and esteemed, for having so handsomely disengaged himself from this troublesome Affair, than if it had never been. Men (as it usually happens) soon forgot all the Disgraces he had undergone, to consider how great his Credit must necessarily be; who of all the Great Persons of the Kingdom, whose Fortunes had been so rudely assaulted, alone kept himself upright, and entire, in spite of all his Enemies, or all they could contrive against him. All those, who had been unkind to him, sued to be reconciled to his Favour; and the Duke de la Valette, who would by no means leave him, till all things were absolutely settled to his own desire, became their Mediator; by that means re-establishing matters in so good a posture, that for the future there was more repose to be expected for the Duke his Father, than he had ever yet enjoyed, since he had first taken possession of the Government of Guienne. The End of the Tenth Book. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. The Eleventh Book. IT was not fortunate to the Duke alone, Anno 1635. but as much at least to the Province, and the whole Kingdom, that he was at this time restored to his Command; the first whereof, without his Valour, and Wisdom, had been in manifest danger, and the other embroiled in no contemptible disorders: but by his Prudence and generous Conduct, he brought them both so brave, and so reasonable a relief, that what we are now about to deliver, makes up no small part of the principal Actions of his Life. He was no sooner arrived in Guienne, The Seditions of Guienne, their birth and progress but that several Complaints were presented to him, of the Insolence some Officers who Farmed the Crown Revenues of that Province exercised over the King's Subjects. The people were no longer able to support their Exactions, and their Poverty, which is ordinarily accompanied with despair, had so stirred them up, that they were ready to rush into Arms▪ and to shuffle all things into confusion. The Duke could have been glad, the Court would have ordered some moderation in these Impositions to have prevented those mischiefs, which are usually the issue of general Discontent, and the certain effects of popular fury; and to that end had made so many several Remonstrances to the Council, and urged them so home, that what he did for a good, that as much respected the King's Service, as the Public Interest, was in the end so misinterpreted, as to turn to his own disgrace: Seeing therefore he could by his Prayers, and Importunities, prevail nothing with the Court, he was necessitated to make use of the Authority he had in the Province, to prevent a total Revolt, to which the generality of men were too visibly inclined. Wherein his conduct was guided by so admirable discretion, that what by convincing such by Reason, as were capable of it, by feeding such by Hopes, as would be satisfied with them, and threatening Punishment to those, who would be satisfied with neither, he for a long time continued all things in a pretty quiet condition. He practised these gentle and easy Remedies, during the course of a very troublesome Disease he had fallen into presently after his return from Plassac. His abode, and solitude in his House, together with the hard measure he had received, had not lighted upon a heart insensible of wrong; nor had committed no ordinary violence upon his generous spirit: and although, by a wonderful Victory over his own Passions, he had suppressed his discontent from breaking out to the discovery of those about him; it is notwithstanding to be believed, that the more he smothered his fire, the more it must of necessity burn him within, and discompose his natural Constitution. The D●ke of 〈◊〉 falls 〈◊〉. He suffered therefore by the heat of Urine so intolerable, and so unintermitted pains, as scarce gave him any truce of repose; in which Distemper, that which was most remarkable was, the Remedies they made use of for his Recovery; ●or of eighteen days together, that his Infirmity continued, he drank nothing but cold water, and of that so prodigious a quantity, that I do not think any stomach in the world, but his, could have digested so much crudity: He was moreover very often put into cold Baths; so that all the art, and industry of his Physicians was wholly employed to qualify the ebullient Blood of a young man of fourscore and four years old. He was scarcely delivered of his pain, when he was forced to attend the Affairs of his Government with greater diligence, and care than at any time before. The King, from the beginning of the year having taken a resolution to fall out with Spain, would not however engage in that War, before he had well, and particularly examined the condition and strength of his Kingdom; to be therefore well informed of the State of Guienne, the greatest, and best of all his other Provinces, he writ to the Duke in March, to send him a true account of what number of men he could for time of need draw out of his Government, and how many men of Command he might rely upon to bear Office in his Armies: to which the Duke returned Answer, that, although within eight months' time above eighteen thousand men had been sent out of the Province, as by the Muster Rolls annexed to his Dispatch, his Majesty might perceive; there might yet be a very great number raised, provided the Affections of the People were discreetly managed by some good usage; that his Majesty would also find a great many Gentlemen of Quality, An account of the Forces o● Gu●enne. and capable of Command, (of which he sent a List of above sixscore) but that the greatest part of them were so necessitous, that (to his great grief) he durst not promise to himself from their inability, all that his Majesty might expect from their good will: by which Abstract let any one judge of the Forces of the Kingdom, and what a King of France may propose to himself, having the Love, and Affection of his Subjects. The Duke, who knew by a long experience, what strange effects the good will of the people was able to produce, never ceased importuning the King to husband it, by granting some redress to their Oppressions; which though he always did, after the most humble, and respective manner could be imagined, it notwithstanding wrought no effect, but to his own prejudice: insomuch that, without receiving any Answer to his real Remonstrances, he was often pressed by very severe dispatches, to be assisting in the execution of several Edicts. Amongst all those that were set forth at this time, The Exc●se noon the Victuallers begets a Sedition in Bourdeaux. the lightest, and most inconsiderable was, that of the Excise upon the Victuallers; it brought in very little profit to the King, and was no burden to the gross of the people; none but the Victuallers themselves were concerned in it: this sort of men nevertheless, having not much to save, did so much the less care to hazard the losing of all. Some therefore of the most Seditious amongst them having upon the fourteenth of May put themselves in the Head of an unruly Rabble, gathered together at the first of all a Body of betwixt four and five hundred men. Some persons of note endeavoured to oppose this first Disorder; but these being too few to extinguish the flame, served only to make it mount to a greater, and more formidable height. The first effects of the Popular 〈◊〉. Desaigües a particular Servant of the Duke's, and of one of the best Families in the City, bore the first brunt of the people's fury; he had attempted by threats to have brought them to a sense of their Duty; but these Bruits incapable of Reason, were so exasperated at the very name of Punishment, that they ran immediately to Arms, when having forced ● Hostel de Ville, whither Desaigües had retired himself, they there in the first place Massacred him; neither was he the only man that tasted of their violence, an Archer belonging to the * Pr●vost de Hostel, an Officer belonging to the King's Household, that set▪ rates upon Victuallers; the same I suppose with one of our Officers of the Green-cloth. A Clerk of the Market. Prevost de l' Hostel, that the Partners had substituted, for the gathering in of this Impost, with five, or six other persons concerned in the same Employment, had the same measure. The Jurats at the first rumour of this Tumult, had caused the Captains of the City to take Arms for the defence of l' Hostel de Ville, which the people threatened to assault, who accordingly did indeed put themselves into some posture of defence: but being presently besieged, and hemmed in on all sides, by the multitude, soon capitulated, and retired. This first success having by the easiness thereof, increased the insolence of these rascally people, they in a moment overran the whole City; so that in less than two hours' time, they had got together betwixt four, and five thousand people. So soon as the Parliament saw the Sedition increase to such a formidable height, they endeavoured to stop the progress of it, by issuing out an Act for the suppression of the Edict: but the Mutineers believing (as it was true) that nothing, but the sole terror which had possessed all the Orders of the City, had procured this Arrest in their favour, raising their Impudence higher, upon the presumption of this Fear, would not so much as suffer it to be Published; and the Multitude was seen to hurry up and down the Streets after that audacious and threatening manner, as very much affrighted all the well disposed Inhabitants of the City. At the beginning of this uproar the Duke was at Cadillac in a course of Physic, for the confirmation of his health, which he had not yet perfectly recovered; where he was very much surprised to see in the close of the evening a Courier come in, that the first Precedent d' Agnesseau, had caused to steal privately out of the City, to bring him the first news of this Insurrection, of which he writ him a Letter in these terms. My Lord, I write you this Ticket in haste from the Palace (where I now am with some other Members of the Parliament, and a Jurat, and from whence I am advised by my Friends not to stir) to give you notice of the Sedition is raised in the City, about the establishment the Sieur de la Forest Archer to the Grand Prevost was about to make of an Excise upon the Victuallers. To stop the torrent of which Disorder, though the Parliament have granted out an Arrest of Suspension, it is notwithstanding so violent, that way will do no good. So that we are here in very great danger, which makes me send you this express Messenger, humbly to beseech you with all possible speed to interpose his Majesty's Authority, and your own to appease this tumult. A favour that I in my own particular have some reason to hope for from you, being as I am, My Lord, etc. Bourdeaux, May 14. 1635. at three of the Clock in the afternoon. The Duke had no sooner received this Dispatch, but that he ordered Letters to be sent forthwith to some Gentlemen thereabouts, whilst himself took order for the raising some men amongst his own Tenants to accompany him the next day to the City. In the mean time he dispatched away la Roche the Captain of his Guards the same night to the first Precedent, to assure him of the speedy relief he was preparing for him, and to inform himself more particularly of the state of the City. Whilst he was busy about this preparation, he had news brought, that the Rebels drunk with Wine, and tired with the work of the day, were in the evening retired every man to his own house, with a resolution to be quiet, provided no notice might be taken of what was passed. Had things remained in this condition, their offence, though very great, might have had some colour of excuse: but these people at their awaking, puffed up with the success of their last days temerity, The Progress of the Sedition. broke out again the next morning into new, and greater Fury than before. In which heat they drew up a List of above four hundred of the best Families of the City, under the Title of Gabellers: In which List many of the principal Members of the Parliament were comprised, and the rest were all Citizens of the best quality; all which the night following they intended to Massacre, and to rifle their Houses. The Duke had present notice of this design. The Officers of Parliament, The Parliament sends to the Duke to quicken his haste. astonished at the extreme danger they saw themselves exposed unto, had dispatched to him in all haste Lacheze, and Boucaut, two young Counsellors whom they knew to be acceptable to him, to beseech him to make haste to the City. These Gentlemen gave him an account of the condition the Town, and the infinite peril all good men were in; declaring withal that their Lives, and Fortunes depended upon his Presence, and Protection. These two Deputies found the Duke just ready to set out, as they came; he therefore took them into his Coach, and his House being but five Leagues distant from the City, arrived there the same day, which was the 16 th'. in very good time. The Authority and Power, The Duke's presence appeases the tumult. that the esteem of an extraordinary Virtue exercises over the minds of men, is hardly any where more remarkable, than upon this occasion; there being not one, even of the most Seditious, who did not manifest shame, and repentance for his past offences. They were no more the same men, who had determined to cut throats, and to plunder the richest houses the ensuing night; insomuch that even the very Incendiaaries themselves came, mixed with the honestest Burghers of the Town, to meet, and receive their Governor, a great way without the Gates of the City, with Acclamations that sounded nothing but Obedience, and Submission. With this general applause, the Duke went to alight at the Hostel de Ville, which was in his way, and which he found in a miserable plight, the Gates b●●nt down, the Inscriptions defaced, the Windows broken, the Prisons set open, and all things as in the desolation of a City taken and sacked by a Foreign Enemy. After having taken the best order he could for the securing the Hostel de Ville, he retired himself to his own House; and thus far all things looked well: but afterwards his design being to proceed about the late tumult, rather by moderate, and gentle, than by severe and exemplary ways, (the first being at this time the safest, and best, if they could succeed) the Mutineers began to gather heart from their impunity, and to believe they were feared. Nothing therefore being so sweet, and tempting, as Dominion, and Power, to those who are not acquainted with it, these men would by no means so soon lay down, that which they had so rebelliously taken up, and which they thought with their great numbers, they could so easily maintain. They began then to assemble themselves anew, giving out terrible threats of what strange things they would do; by which the Duke judging they would from high words, doubtless proceed to some mischievous effects; he sent the Court an account of all the evil dispositions he had observed, not only in the spirits of the Inhabitants of the City, but also of the whole Province; desiring withal the assistance of such Forces, as might be sufficient to remedy the evil he saw was already as good as concluded. But all his Remonstrances were neglected, they thought he only made this his pretence to Arm, and fortify himself in his own Government; and the design of the Court being to keep him weak, and disarmed, they rather chose to expose the Province to the danger of popular Sedition, than to enable him with Honour to maintain the King's Authority, and Interest. The Duke seeing himself thus naked, and alone, did very well judge he should not in this posture be able to suppress the Faction; so that their insolence daily more and more increased, till in the end either stirred up with the fear of being made examples, prompted on with the avarice of booty, The people run into open Arm●. or allured with the sole appetite of ill doing, without danger of punishment (which to abject minds is no small temptation) they betook themselves openly to Arms; and after many insolent Discourses, and several Tickets scattered up and down the Streets, to excite the people to Sedition, they cantoned, and fortified themselves in one part of the City, whereof they possessed themselves of the half, and, by making great Barricado's upon all the Avenues, made themselves absolute Masters of it. Within this Precinct there were five Gates, several Churches, with some Towers, and Fortifications which were joined to the City; all which they had carefully provided for, and were therein so well accommodated, that it seemed to them impossible they should be forced, having many more men than were necessary to defend their Works. This disorder happened the 15 th'. of june, it began about ten of the Clock in the morning, and the Duke had notice of it presently after Dinner; upon which Intelligence judging that a Sedition of this high nature, and premeditated as this was, was not to be tolerated without manifest danger both of the City, and the whole Province, and a very great diminution both of the King's Authority, and his own; he forthwith commanded those Gentlemen he had about him to mount to Horse, and la Roche the Captain of his Guards to put himself in the head of his Companies on Foot; The D●ke almost alone goes out against them. with which inconsiderable number himself, without further deliberation, went out about one in the afternoon, to execute one of the boldest actions he ever undertook in his whole life. Neither would he herein so much as consider his own weakness, or the temerity, and number of those he was to encounter, that the disproportion of their Forces might not divert him from his design. He had not with him above two and twenty Horse, and six and twenty of his Guards on Foot, whereas no less than the one half of the City were already in Arms against him, and little better to be expected from the rest. For the greater part of the Inhabitants looked upon these Mutineers, as the Champions of their Liberty; so that those of the bet●er sort, and some few honest Citizens excepted, the rest were prepossessed with so strange a blindness, that there were very few, who did not at least contribute their wishes to the prosperity of so Lewd a Cause. In fine, had not his promptitude and courage (and that beyond all probality) procured him the success of this Action, there had been an end of the City of Bourdeaux, and the whole Province of Guienne; and an invading Enemy could not have wrought a greater desolation, than had been justly to be feared from the wild Fury of a people, puffed up with the success of the least Victory they could have obtained. He therefore indeed hazarded a great deal to prevent so dire a mischief, and to preserve the whole: but there was also a necessity upon him, that he should do so; neither would the evil have been less, if he had rendered his Authority contemptible by his Toleration: of two extremes he therefore made choice of that, wherein, 'twas true, there was more danger; but that gave him withal opportunity, either suddenly to suppress the Commotion, or to end his Life with Honour in the Service of his Prince and Country. So soon as the Duke was on Horseback, the first place he went to was the Lodgings of the Premier Precedent, to secure his person from danger; which he did, by prevailing with him to retire himself to his House, and from thence advanced towards the Barricado's. The Hostel de Ville was comprehended in the Circuit, the Mutineers had possessed themselves of; but they were not Masters of the place: he would therefore, before he advanced any further, make some stay there to encourage the Guards, he had before there placed in Garrison, in their Duty. As he was upon his March thither, at the entry into the Market place, he found all the Chains up, and several of the Inhabitants in Arms, resolute to defend the pass. Whereupon la Roche by the Duke's Order, commanded them to make way, and retire; when perceiving them in suspense what to do, whether to obey, or stand upon their defence, lafoy Roche wisely taking advantage of their irresolution, leapt upon the Barricado, disarmed those who were more advanced, and forced the rest to retire, without any other violence to any. Though the little respect these first opposers manifested for the Age and venerable Person of their Governor, gave him very well to understand he was to expect no better from the rest, he desisted not nevertheless to go on. He alighted therefore at the Hostel de Ville, where, after he had taken the best Order he could, for the security of the place, and put it into a condition to send him some assistance if occasion were, he commanded lafoy Roche to assault a Barricado that was made at the entry of the Street called la Rüe Saint Michael. Those who defended this pass were too many to keep any good order; they indeed made show of great resolution, and received the Guards with several Musket shot, but confusedly made, and at random: but how irregularly soever, before any shot was fired against them, they wounded one of the Duke's Guards to death, The Duke, though stoutly opposed, forces the first Barricade. with a Musket Bullet in his Breast. The Duke had expressly commanded his people not to shoot till the last extremity, and as much as was possible to spare the Blood of the people, whose blindness he much more lamented, than he was with their temerity and insolence offended: but after this first Volley, his Guards having discharged theirs almost at the Muzzle of the Musket, it was soon seen how much Valour can prevail over Numbers, and what Experience, and Discipline can do against Brutality, and Disorder, They shot so right, and to so good effect, that few gave fire, who did not carry his man; insomuch that nine were killed outright at this first Volle●, and twelve more wounded that were in little bett●r condition; so brisk a Charge having a little startled those who were foremost, lafoy Roche with his Companions fell presently to work upon the Barricado to break it down, where they yet met with some opposition, and where a Gentleman called lafoy Serre, who would fight on foot with the Duke's Guards, amongst whom he had long born Arms, in mounting the Barricado, was by a thrust with a Halberd run quite through the shoulder, as some others were also more slightly wounded: And breaks through with his Horse. but in the end, the Duke who seconded his Guards, himself on Horseback at the head of his Troop, breaking in at the passage they had opened for him, forced the Defendants to retire. Yet was it not nevertheless to retreat very far, the squandered party soon recovering the other Barricades that were along the same street, and that called la Rüe de Faures, leading towards the Port de la Grave. There were three strong Barricado's in this Quarter, which were all so obstinately defended, that at every one there were men slain on both sides. The D●ke forces t●ree other 〈◊〉, wherein several of his men are slain, and wounded. The Duke there lost a young Gentleman of the House of Montagne, whom he had bred up a Page, and whom but a few days before he had made to take a Cassock in his Guards, which unfortunate Youth came to fall dead at his feet: Another of the same condition called le Poüy received his Death's wound by a Musket shot that broke his shoulder, five or six more were also wounded, what with Muskets and Pikes; and the Duke had moreover a Gentleman shot behind him on Horseback; all which opposition notwithstanding, every thing must give way to the valour of this little Party; and la Roche, seeing his Master engaged in so manifest a danger of his life, so bravely exposed both his own, and his fellows for his preservation, that nothing was able to withstand them. The five first Barricado's being forced, The Duke goes into another quarter of the City, which was also in mutiny, and Barricadoed. and taken, the Duke was informed, that in that part of the Town towards St. Croix, there were several others, some perfected, and others only begun: upon which intelligence he thought it very requisite to make use of the astonishment his first successes might possibly have imprinted in the minds of the people, and to go immediately to this second occasion. He met in truth with less resistance at these, than the former, there was notwithstanding something every where to do, and he had also here some men wounded: but it is not to be believed what infinite hazards he ran that day in his own person; for being on Horseback at the head of his Troop, and very remarkable by his grey Beard, and Head, he seemed to be the mark at which all the Musket-shot, Pistols, and Stones were directed. Neither was he only to apprehend those that were shot at him from the Barricado's, his greatest danger being from the Windows, and so much the more, by reason the Streets being exceeding narrow, took from him all possibility of avoiding the shot, that was poured perpendicular upon him. Even the women put him into no small danger, one of which failed but little of braining him with a Flowerpot, which came so near as to fall upon his Horse's Crupper; and a man through a Casement, with his Musket couched at his Cheek, was about to let fly at him, at no more than ten paces distance, had he not been prevented by one of the Duke's Guard called Caudere, who espied, and killed him. The Duke's danger. A greater resolution, than this day appeared in the people, has hardly at any time been observed; which was such, that even when the Duke's followers had made themselves Masters of the Barricades, they had much ado to make them retire; and when either they had taken their Arms from them, or that themselves in despair had thrown them away, they cried out, and entreated, rather to be dispatched than permitted to live to see the Gabelle imposed upon them: So hard a thing is it to cure the minds of the people, when prepossessed with false impressions. They could not nevertheless either by their obstinacy, or the ill will they had so violently manifested to the Duke's person, provoke him to consent to more Blood, or greater Slaughter, than what had inevitably passed in the heat of the action: he continually calling out to save the lives of the people; The Duke's Clemency. neither was there above five and twenty, or thirty persons killed upon the place, and some few wounded: one of which did a thing worthy a better Cause, and a more conspicuous Theatre. A Cooper that had put himself in the head of a crew of Rakels of his own profession, of which there are very many in this City, having at the defence of a Barricade received a Musket shot that broke his Arm, being a strong lusty fellow, without being daunted at the shattered limb, that hu●● down only by a little piece of skin, he went to the next Chirurgion's; where having caused it to be totally cut off, and a Plaster to be applied to it, he returned immediately to another Barricade, which he again defended with great bravery, and resolution, till in the end being taken, and presented to the Duke, with an account of his action, he commanded him to be carried back to his own house, and that care should be taken for his cure: but his life was not to be saved; for this unluchy fellow, by his obstinacy opposing the Grace the Duke had showed him, a new Sedition a few days after arising (for this was not the last) he start out of his Bed at the first noise of it, to put himself again in the head of his Comrades; which second agitation having put him into a continued Fever, he died a few days after. The Duke having scoured this great quarter of the City, and forced above three thousand persons to lay down their Arms, who had taken them up in this Commotion, carrying off with him his dead, and wounded, returned back to the Hostel de Ville, to give his men a little breath, who were almost tired out, and spent with the heat, and continuation of the Fight: But it was only to take a very short repose; for he was scarce alighted from his Horse, when he was advertised, that near to the Port de Saint julien, which is one of the principal Gates of the City, eight or nine hundred men were entrenched, within five great Barricades, that shut up all the Avenues, The D●ke prepares to go to a new occasion, which he effects without fight. by which there was any way to come to them. These Mutineers had a design to make themselves Masters of this Gate, which had been no hard matter for them to do, by that means to have let in the Country people thereabouts to their assistance; which they from without the Walls mainly cried out for, that they might share in the Plunder of the City, which they had already swallowed in their imagination, and looked upon it as a certain, and infallible Prey. The Duke was a little surprised to find he was to enter into new engagements, before he was well clear of the former: he knew very well that the small number of men he had left, would be too few to undertake this second Enterprise; yet would he not leave an action imperfect, which unless it was carried on to an absolute, and total Victory, he must of necessity lose the fruits of what he had already performed with so much Bravery and success. He resolved therefore to draw fifty men out of the Garrison of Chasteau-Trompette, all that could possibly be spared from thence, and some small Field-pieces to force those Entrenchments with less danger, than he had done the other Barricado's before. He had no sooner made his preparation, and was ready to go against these people, when either a panic terror, or the consideration of their Duty, or the Respect to their Governors' person, whom they saw so freely to expose himself for the public Safety, touched the hearts of some honest Burghers of that part of the City; who had, it should seem, so much credit with the Seditious, as to make them capable of Reason, and sensible of their Duty, so far as to prevail with them, without staying to be compelled unto it, to send the Duke a Protestation that they would return to their Obedience; which they accordingly did, at the same time falling to work to open their Barricado's: So that the Duke, presently advancing to see what condition they were in, caused them to be totally beaten down in his own presence. Whilst on this side of the Town the Duke went on at this prosperous rate, there was new work cutting out for him in the other part of the City, had he been less successful here: For although that Quarter called du Chapeau Rogue, The whole City upon the point to run into Sedition, was inhabited with a great many persons of very good quality, who were heartily concerned at these disorders; there were also very many who had been so prepossessed with false opinions, that they were much more inclined to join with the Seditious, than any ways to help to suppress them. These were doubtless the greater party, and these had been put into Arms under the Captains of the City, if occasion had been to have gone to the Duke's succour: but by good fortune he stood in no need of so dangerous a Relief; it being almost certain that they would have turned to the other side, and, had never so little misfortune befallen him, their Captains would have had very much ado to have withheld them; But are withheld by the Duke's success. but his success prevented their evil purpose: So that seeing him return Victorious with so few Forces, their Fury was turned into admiration; and they for that time satisfied themselves with muttering some discontent at their Companions defeat, without farther manifesting their malevolent designs by any considerable effects. Though this Action, that had had so violent a beginning, and so miraculous a conclusion, had made the Duke's generosity, and good conduct admired by all; it had nevertheless withal made the people sensible of his weakness, by the few that came into his defence, in a time of so great, and manifest danger. The Seditious therefore taking from thence a ●●uer measure of their own Forces, and comparing their numbers with his, doubted not, should they come to a second Trial, to do their work with greater facility: So that prepossessed with the hope of their cursed advantages, they highly, and publicly threatened what they would do; and doubtless, had not the sole respect to the Duke's person withheld them, they had again betaken themselves to Arms, and he would have been in very great danger to have perished by the hands of the people, and to have suffered the most unfortunate death could possibly have arrived to any person of his condition. Pressed therefore by the hourly intelligence he received of the evil disposition that still continued in the minds of the people, The D●ke 〈◊〉 the K●ng an Account of the lat● Insurrection. he resolved to dispatch away Magnas in all speed to Court, to let the King understand the estate of the City, and Province, and to beseech his Majesty to provide for the present ●vils, and against those that were reasonably to be feared for the time to come. In this Dispatch he, above all things, was importunate that the Duke de la Valette his Son might be sent away to him, that he might be assisted by a second self in occasions where the whole burden of Affairs were to depend upon his Fidelity, and care. In the mean time he writ to some Gentlemen of the Country to come speedily in to him, and moreover gave order for the raising some Forces in such of his own Territories, as lay nearest to the City. He had from thence often drawn out to the number of above two thousand good men, by which he had been exceedingly well served upon several important occasions: but at this time (which will appear very strange, and at which I observed him to be more aftonished, than at any thing that had happened during the whole disorder) he could not get so much as one man: so great was either their terror, or their correspondence with the Mutineers. There came in indeed some Gentlemen, but with much ado, and with very great danger, occasioned by the new disorder, The whole Province of Guienne. except Montauban, break into Sedition. which we shall now see; for Magnas was no sooner departed from him, but that most of the most considerable Cities of the Province, by the example of their Metropolis revolted; insomuch that there was scarce any, save Montauban only, that contained itself within the limits of its Duty, the rest breaking out into open Arms, and committing every where all the barbarous acts of an inhuman fury. Amongst all these horrid Riots, those which were committed at Again were the most extreme. * A Sovereign Court wherein all ca●●es that concern the Aid●, or Ta●les, that is T●x●s, or 〈◊〉 are ●ear'd, and determined▪ La Cour des Aides was at this time established in this City; and it was upon the Officers of this Court, that they exercised the most notable violence, all that the people could meet withal being miserably burnt, or Massacred (for in popular furies we seldom read of ordinary executions) the * Eleus, Assessors, or Collector● of the King's Subsidies. Precedent du Bernet opposes the Sedition of Agen. And Monsieur de Vert●mont that of Perigueux. Eleus were handled after the same manner, many honest Burghers were by their Enemies put into the number of Gabellers, and had the same measure: So that had not Precedent du Bernet (who was Precedent of the Chambre de l' Edict, that had its seat in the same City) opposed this Torrent of popular fury, with greater vigour than was to be expected from a man of his profession, it is certainly believed, that not one man of condition would have been left alive, in the whole City. Neither had the disorder been less at Perigueux, had it not been for the presence of Vertamont, Intendant de la justice; for the Duke knowing the humour of this people, inclined to Licence, had entreated Vertamont to go thither, under colour of some Commission of his Intendancy; where he was scarcely arrived, when the people rose in Commotion, as in other places, falling upon some Officers of the Election, and other innocent persons, to make a horrid Massacre: And then it was, that Vertamont, abandoning the care of his own person, encouraged the Magistrates boldly to oppose the popular Fury, and putting himself in the head of them, made no difficulty to rescue some poor people, who were going to be sacrificed to their barbarous cruelty, out of the hands of the insolent rabble: So that with an extraordinary fortune, the effect of his generous resolution, he contained this City in its Obedience, giving in himself at the same time, a great Example of Justice, and Moderation in so dangerous an occurrence. Though the Duke had enough to do in the City of Bourdeaux, The Duke sends his Orders into all parts of the Province, yet did he not fail however, even in the midst of these confusions, with incredible diligence, and care, to disperse his Orders throughout all parts of the Province; in the remotest parts whereof, the report being spread, that all things continued quiet at Bourdeaux by the respect to the Duke's Authority, and Person; Which a little calms the Sedition. the other Cities that had taken Arms by the example of this, quieted themselves also by the same consideration; by which means the Licence of the people was kept within some moderate bounds; a moderation nevertheless that hung by so slender a thread, that upon the least occasion worse, and more dangerous Commotions were to be expected. The Duke had no Forces, neither was any to be hoped for out of any part of the Province; and it was a matter of extraordinary difficulty to send him any from any other place; so that he was constrained in so great an exigency, to have recourse to other means, and to cause some of the promoters of this Sedition to be treated withal, for the bringing about of that, which he saw no other possible way to effect: Wherein he also succeeded so well, that these people allured by promises of Indemnity, and some hopes of reward, gave themselves up absolutely to his dispose; so that it was by this politic way of proceeding he in the end totally secured both the City of Bourdeaux, and the whole Province of Guienne. The disorder had continued so long, and with so much noise, that there was few of the Incendiaries, who were not in every quarter particularly known, of which there were very many who had formerly born Arms in the King's Regiments of Foot; and who, being grown weary of that profession, were returned again to their old Trades. These men wrought upon by the Duke's Exhortations, and the greatest part of them moreover touched with the sense of the moderation he had exercised towards them, notwithstanding the greatness of their offences, promised him, that nothing should pass amongst the people, of which he should not have continual notice; and they were as good as their words, giving him by their constant intelligence, means and opportunity to prevent those evils, which otherwise would infallibly have given the last blow to the public Peace. The Commotions of the City were no sooner in some measure appeased, but that the madness diffused itself into the Villages of the adjacent Country. The Boor● Mutiny. These people having in the time of one of the foremention'd Mutinies, taken occasion to rifle some Houses of the City, were returned with their Booty to their own homes; by whose ill example, their Neighbours were so excited to Rapine, that in a moment all the Boors threw away the instruments of their labour, and betook themselves to Arms. In this posture they robbed the Country houses, they assembled themselves in great numbers in all the Suburbs of Bourdeaux, and would attempt to make their way into the City itself; where they were so much desired by the basest of the people, that they did their endeavours also to let them in. The greatest appearance of them was in the Suburb de Saint Surin, to which place the Duke's house was near enough for him to hear their clamours, and hideous yells, and from his Chamber Window that looked into the Fields to see the Fire they had kindled in several houses, of which the greatest part were miserably consumed. The Duke of Esperno●● goes on● against them, At the sight of these barbarous Riots, it was impossible to detain him; but, although he was at last fallen into an almost unintermitted indisposition, he got out of his bed, mounted to Horse by night, and with forty or fifty Gentlemen, his Guards, and some of the Town Companies, went out towards these Mutineers. They had fortified themselves in several places of the Suburb, had Barricadoed the Church, and made a countenance of resolution to defend themselves; nevertheless at the Duke's arrival, they almost all disbanded, and ran away, none saving those in the Church making any resistance, who also at the first Volley was discharged upon them, fled after their fellows; when the Cavalry putting themselves in pursuit of those who had recovered the Fields, And disperses them. some forty or fifty of them were miserably slain. It is not to be imagined how strangely the Duke was afflicted at the death of these wretched people: This little evil nevertheless conduced very much to a far greater good; for the report of this Execution dispersing itself in a moment, throughout the whole Province, the other Country people who sat, expecting the good, or evil success of their fellows, made themselves, for this year, wise by the example of their misfortune; and without engaging in the folly of the greater Cities, were content to sit spectators of their Tumults, and Disorders. There were indeed hardly any more after this action; for the Duke de la Valette coming presently after to the Duke his Father, they bent their joint endeavours to the healing of some secret discontents that yet remained in the minds of the people; when having, by gentle and obliging ways, made them sensible of their late miscarriages, and of their Duty, and Obedience for the time to come, From whence a calm ensues. they soon after, by the King's Order, published an Act of Oblivion for all things that were passed; a Grace his Majesty had been pleased to grant to their intercession, and at their humble request. Who could have imagined that so many brave Actions of the Duke's (whether considered in the dangers to which he was so often obliged to expose his Person; The Duke ●soers'd after all his brave Service. the great conduct wherewith they were carried on, or the utility that derived from them to the public repose) that those Actions I say aught to have served for a pretence to the blackest, and most hateful calumny, that could possibly have been invented to the prejudice of his Honour? It was nevertheless the fruit, and reward of his brave Service, after which no man certainly is ever again to repine at Detraction, or complain of Envy. Briet, a Counsellor in the Parliament of Bourdeaux, openly professed himself to be no friend to the Duke, and secretly nourished in his bosom an implacable hatred, both to his Person and Name; instigated therefore with this accursed passion, he writ to the Archbishop of Bourdeaux (who was no better inclined to the Duke) that it was to be proved, the Duke himself had been the Author of all these Commotions; that it was he who had so long fomented them, and that he would again revive them whenever he thought it convenient so to do, for the promoting of his own Authority in the Province, and to get himself a Reputation at Court. He had not always writ after this manner, but on the contrary, after the action of the Barricades, the 15 of june, compelled to it by the virtue of Truth, which will dart her Rays through the darkest Clouds of Malevolence and Envy, he had writ to Monsieur de la Vrilliere, Secretary of State, with whom he had a particular Familiarity and Correspondence, a Letter that was sent to the Duke, containing these words. SIR, If you be curious to know what passed here upon Friday last, I send you this short, and true Account of it, as I could inform myself from the best hands. This Action of our Governor was very great, and performed with great Bravery, Judgement, and Fortune: had any sinister Action befallen him, we had all been lost, and for my part I cannot but highly esteem him. I have nothing more at present, but that, etc. From Bourdeaux the 18 th'. of june 1635. But if he had in the beginning so highly applauded this Action, he had with no less malignity censured the sequel of it, and the sinister interpretation he put upon the Duke's good intentions, wrought so much the greater effect, by how much they fell upon a spirit disposed of old, and of itself to convert to ill, what god soever could come from the Duke's side. The Archbishop therefore with open Arms embraced this new occasion of doing him a new mischief; he spoke of it to Cardinal Richelieu, of whom he easily obtained order to write to Briet, as he also did, that he might promise both impunity, and reward to such as should prove the Duke of Espernon to be the Author of these Disorders. The Archbishop's Letters to Briet, which were intercepted, spoke in these terms, and in others far more odious than these. Briet having received this Order, caused the Host of the Petit More, the first, and one of the chiefest Ringleaders, that had appeared in this Sedition, to be tempered withal, causing him to be often spoken to, and tempted by one of his own Domestics, who was very familiar with him: but the Fellow, what promises soever they could make him, The honesty of one of the Mutineers. would never be corrupted into so foul a practice; and the Duke's good Fortune would have it, that there was honesty enough in this man to secure him from those dangers, wherein persons of a much more eminent condition would otherwise have involved him. The Duke as yet knew nothing of the Mischief that was brewing against him; but on the contrary, relying upon the merit of his Services, and the acknowledgement the King had made him hope for in all his dispatches, he had never lived at greater ease in his Government, than he thought he might expect to do for the time to come. In his Majesties Dispatch of the last of june, he writ to the Duke these words. Cousin, I understand by your Letters of the 17 th'. and nineteenth instant, and by the Relation annexed unto them, besides the Account I received from the Sieur de Magnas, the Disorders that have happened in my City of Bourdeaux; whose ill example has also produced the like Insurrections in several other Cities, and places of my Province of Guienne: which I conceive to be of so high importance, that, had not powerful and speedy Remedies been seasonably applied, worse and more dangerous Consequences were yet to be feared; as it had doubtless fallen out in my said City of Bourdeaux, if by your wont Bravery, and Wisdom, you had not opposed the Torrent of that Mutinous People. And as all the Accounts have been given me of that business, as well by the Principal Officers of my said City, as other my Servants agree in this, That your Valour, together with your Zeal and Affection to my Service, have been equally eminent upon this occasion; so can I not omit to assure you, that I am so highly satisfied with your behaviour, that no opportunity shall ever present itself, wherein I may manifest my sense of your good Service in this Affair, by the effects of my Favour and Affect on, but you shall find me very ready to embrace it: which the Sieur de Magnas shall the more expressly confirm to you on my behalf, etc. The Duke's other performances upon this occasion received from his Majesty the same Approbation, and Applause, and in all appearance he ought to rest very well satisfied with the Acknowledgement his Majesty was pleased to profess; when on a sudden, and without dreaming in the least of any such matter, he saw himself reduced to the necessity of a Justification. He did not however do it after the submiss and abject manner of a guilty man; but on the contrary, confident in the security of a good Conscience, he had no sooner notice of the aspersion had been cast upon him; but that he sent away immediately to the King, to demand his Majesty's Justice, and writ to the Cardinal himself, complaining, that some persons had made use of his name to suborn false Witnesses, to the prejudice of him, and his Honour. The King granted him his desire, permitting him to prosecute his satisfaction on in the Parliament of Paris; and the Cardinal, after having utterly denied the giving of any Order to the prejudice of the Duke's Interests, or that he ever doubted of his Candour, and the sincerity of his intentions, writ him an answer in these words. My Lord, I have received the Letter you was pleased to send me, Cardinal Richelieu's civil Letter to the Duke of Espernon. and conferred with Mounsieur de Magnas, about the occasion of his Journey; in answer whereunto I have nothing to return, but this, that neither the King, nor any of his Servants, have ever doubted in the least of the sincerity of your affection to his Service, or of your passion to the prosperity of his Affairs; or that you had in the late business of Guienne, any other, than the same desires with his Majesty, and his Council; for which I shall ever very willingly be your Caution. If any persons have reported otherwise, they must have done it merely out of design to vex you, and not that they could themselves believe it; it being not to be imagined, that any one can be so senseless, who knowing what has happened at Bourdeaux, and how you have behaved yourself in those disorders, can possibly doubt, that you did not upon that occasion contribute all that in you lay, or that could be expected from your Vigilancy, and Valour to the security of the Province. I do therefore conjure you to set your heart at rest, for any thing of that kind; and to believe that neither the King, nor any of his Servants, who have the honour to be about him, can possibly either upon this, or any other occasion, entertain the least thought to your prejudice. His Majesty has caused the Sieur de Briet to be sent unto to come speedily hither, etc. The Cardinal could not in truth have writ to the Duke after a more obliging manner, or have carried himself more civilly to him, than he did at the beginning of this Affair; permitting Justice to be executed upon the fellow Briet had employed to corrupt the Petit More, who by Sentence of Parliament was condemned to make the Duke honourable satisfaction, and with a Torch in his hand, and a Halter about his Neck in his Shirt, to be Carted through the City of Bourdeaux, The Duke receives some satisfaction. and to serve ten years in the Galleys, which was accordingly executed upon him: but when it came to the business of Briet himself, who had reason to apprehend the issue of his cause, since he who had only been the Instrument of the Mischief, whereof he had been the Contriver, had been so roughly handled, the Cardinal interposed his Interest with the Parliament in his behalf; who having once appeared in his favour, his Power had so great an Ascendant over all other Powers, how great soever in the Kingdom, that it was impossible upon this occasion to obtain Justice contrary to his will and pleasure; so that the Duke notwithstanding all the Importunities he could after use, could never obtain from Briet the least Reparation. But not full. If the Duke was wounded to have this Justice denied him, in so public and so sensible a wrong, he was no less afflicted at the Order he soon after received, to permit that Briet might come, and execute the Functions of his Office in Parliament, in all security and freedom: He had expected at least that he should be detained at Paris, and that his Majesty would have had that complacency to his just indignation, as to have removed so hateful an object from his sight. But he saw very plainly, that the Cardinal was the Author of this Command: He knew also very well, how dangerous a thing it was, either to contradict, or provoke him. But how great soever his Credit might be, the violent effects whereof he had already felt, he would notwithstanding never submit to his will, nor lay down the Animosity he had justly taken up against a person from whom he had received so irreparable an Offence. Whilst the Duke was perplexed with these troublesome Affairs, The Cardinal de la Valette sent at the head of a great Army into Germany. both in his own Government, and at Court, the Cardinal de la Valette his Son had been employed in the conduct of the greatest Army his Majesty had at that time on foot; the Command whereof was equally divided betwixt Duke Veimar and him. And if the Jealousy of our Confederates (who had obliged our two Generals to enter a good way into Germany to their Succour) had not bounded their Conquests, it is most certain they had made a very considerable progress into this mighty Empire. But those who had implored their assistance, choosing rather to be left weak, as they were, than to see the French Name raised to a greater height of Glory, and Reputation, by the Victories they would infallibly have obtained over those of their own Nation, it was impossible to persuade them to join their Forces with ours. By which tergiversation, if (as they did) they deprived our Generals of the advantages they might reasonably expect, it was also to make them acquire the honour of so brave a Retreat, as might justly be ranked with the most famous Victories. Our Army, being advanced a great way into Germany, had all the Forces of the Emperor poured upon them; in which condition they had not only the Rhine, but several other Rivers also, and difficult passes to go over, A brave Retreat of the Cardinal de la Valette. and break through, before they could return into their own Country. Which notwithstanding they did, with their Swords in their hands; neither the incommodities of the ways, nor the interposition of the Enemy, being able to stop them: so that they fought eight days together almost without intermission, leaving the ways, by which they made their retreat, much more remarkable by the blood of their Enemies, than by that of their own Soldiers. Though the mouths of all men were full of the praise of this Action, that the Court appeared to be infinitely satisfied with it, and that the Duke himself from all parts received congratulatory applauses of so great an exploit in the person of his Son; The Duke dissatisfied that the Cardinal de la Valette his Son should follow the profession of Arms. he had notwithstanding much rather this Son, advanced into the Church by his Learning, Birth, and Fortune to so eminent a degree of Dignity, and Reputation, should wholly have applied himself to her Service, than that he should expose so dear a Life to so dangerous a Profession. He ever apprehended it would be fatal to him, and therefore had done all he could to dissuade him from it, employing to that end the endeavours of several his most intimate Friends and Servants: but all in vain, either the humour of the Time, the inclination of his Son, the necessity of his Destiny, or all together still prevailing with him, above the fears or foresight of so affectionate a Father. The Duke arrived now at an extreme old Age, worn out, The Duke of Espernon falls dangerously sick. and spent with the labours he had undergone during these Commotions, and the Vexations that had succeeded, was again in the beginning of Winter seized by a very troublesome, and very violent Disease. This season, for several years, had never passed over, without producing strange alterations in his health; insomuch that he would often say, he perceived in the end it would do his business, and that he could not long defend himself against two Winters at once, that of Age, and that of the Season; as it indeed fell out. At this time every one despaired of his Life, and the report of his Death, that was spread in all parts, followed a few days after with the certain news of his Recovery; having astonished all the world, that now scarce passed any longer for raillery, which had so pleasantly been said, That he had outlived the Age of dying. In truth all Foreign Parts, having for the space of threescore and eight, or threescore and ten years been continually full of the great Name of Espernon, finding him still in their Gazettes, one while taking Towns, another in the head of Armies; now Triumphing, and again in Disgrace: but ever in some great and illustrious Occasion; Strangers conceived of him, that this must be the Grandchild of that Duke of Espernon, who had been the Favourite of Henry the III. of France, and could not persuade themselves that the lives of two men could furnish this History with so many important Actions. The Duke, whilst he was yet sick, Anno 1636. and even in the worst of his Sickness, had an inkling of some designs the Spaniard had upon several Frontiers of this Kingdom, and particularly upon those of his own Government; of which to be better assured, he was careful to send thither such persons, The Spaniard m●kes preparation to invade Guienne. as were capable of discovery, and as he durst trust, to bring him true intelligence of what passed amongst our Neighbours abroad. By these Spies he understood that all the Frontiers of Arragon, Biscay, Guipuscoa, and other finitimous Provinces of Spain, had order to make Preparation of Arms, and were to set out a certain number of Soldiers by an appointed day: That to these Provincial Forces they would moreover add several standing Regiments, and of both together to make up a considerable Body. Of all which the Duke was so precisely informed, that he did not only know the number of men, but even the names of all the Captains who were to Command them. Neither did he fail to send the King an Account of the Intelligence he had received: The Co●rt neglects the Duke's Intelligence, but our great Ministers were so taken up with other nearer, and more immediate Affairs, that they were not much concerned at a danger two hundred Leagues from Paris. They therefore contented themselves with writing to the duke, that he should cause Bayonne (the place that was principally threatened) to be fortified at the Charge of the Inhabitants; and as to the rest, that he was by his Wisdom, and Interest, to provide for all things within the Precincts of his Command. These Orders so general, and of so vast a Latitude, had formerly been the fullest Commissions the Romans were wont to give their Generals in the greatest necessities of Public Danger: but they were in our times the narrowest, and the most limited that could possibly be granted, who had the King's Interest committed to their Trust. There were, already others established by Law, which no one without being Criminal was to exceed, and those were, That no one should make Levies, either of Men, or Money, without Order by Letters Patents from the Council: That no one should mount Artillery, or take necessary Arms out of the Arsenals, without special Order so to do. So that all the Power of the Kingdom, residing in the persons of the Prime Ministers, no Governor could make use of his own, without incurring the danger of Censure. The Duke knowing, that in the evil disposition the Court then was as towards him, this was only a device to make him run into some error, that might draw the King's Indignation upon him, wisely feared to be involved in those Calamities, under which, for Causes light enough in themselves, he had seen men of great Quality, and Merit to perish, was not easy to be trapped that way. He therefore again writ to the King for more precise Orders in occurrences that might happen, and in those dangers he had humbly represented to him; and in the end, with much importunity, And provides very slenderly ●or the defence of the Frontiers. obtained Order to send an Engineer to Bayonne, to see it fortified as far as forty thousand Livers would extend; the one half whereof was to be raised out of his Majesty's Revenue, and the other upon the Inhabitants of the place. The Duke, seeing he could obtain no more, did as he was commanded, and began some Fortifications, which the want of money caused to be left imperfect, and by that means the Town left in a weaker condition, than if nothing had been done at all. This Affair, which at this time was the only one of moment in the Province, being put into this forwardness, the Duke conceived he had now leisure to look a little after the recovery of his own health; which that he might do at better convenience, and greater vacancy, from the perpetual distraction of the Affairs of the Province, he humbly entreated the King to give him leave for a few days to retire himself to Plassac, to the end he might at greater liberty make use of those remedies, that were proper for his Disease. The King without any difficulty, and in very favourable terms, granted his so just request: whereupon he accordingly in the beginning of May came to his House of Plassac, but it was to make a very short stay, he being scarcely there arrived, but that he received Order to return speedily into Guienne, to look after the Affairs, that very much required his Presence there. The great Preparations that were every where making by the Enemies of France, to invade it, obliging him to provide also for his defence; as he did, and that so well, as in the end turned all their designs to their own confusion. There never perhaps in this Kingdom had been more to do for the great men of it, than at this time; and as the Government of Guienne by its vast extent, made up one of the most important, and considerable Members of the State; so did it consequently produce for its Governor, so many, and so various Affairs, that it is to be wondered at, a man of so extreme an Age could undergo so many, and so continual labours. The first thing the Duke did after his return into the Province (which was in the latter end of May) was to execute an Express Commission had been directed to him from the King, for the enrolling the * A Statute of Augmentation. Edict de Cr●e, newly passed by his Majesty, for the addition of one Precedent, and twelve Counsellors to the Parliament of Bourdeaux. This Affair could not pass without encountering several Difficulties, all the other Parliaments of France were charged with the same Augmentations proportionably to the extent of their several Jurisdictions; this being therefore a common interest amongst so many men of condition, it begat also a great correspondency amongst them to oppose it. The King having foreseen, and expected all these obstacles from the Parliament of Bourdeaux, thought fit to invest the Duke with as much Authority, as he could himself desire to overcome them; wherein his Majesty, and those of his Council doubted not, but that he would with great alacrity put all his Orders into severe Execution: they knew very well that there had been perpetual feuds betwixt him, and that Assembly, and, as it usually falls out, designed to make their own advantage of those Divisions: but the Duke taking a quite contrary course in this Affair, than what they had expected at Court, satisfied himself with only giving the Parliament to understand what, should it come to the push, he had power to do, in case the King should not be obeyed; exhorting them withal by their Wisdoms to prevent, what he for his part would avoid, as far as was consistent with his Duty; and remonstrating to them, that in a concern of this kind, they should not find him any ways to act by his own particular passion; neither would he either use, or abuse the King's Name to satisfy his own Resentments. This discreet, and moderate way of proceeding, having in time wrought upon some spirits, that a more violent course might perhaps have provoked into more untoward resolutions, succeeded so well, that by this means he procured a very considerable assistance to the advancement of his Majesty's Affairs; and that even with the good will, and free consent of the Company, whose interests in return he husbanded, upon this occasion, with the same tenderness, and care, as if they had effectually been his own. At the same time that these Affairs were in agitation in Guienne, the Enemy, who had been long preparing for some notable Enterprise, was now ready on all sides to invade the Kingdom; to provide therefore for the necessary expense in so critical an occasion (all ordinary, and extraordinary ways besides having been found to fall short) the King was constrained to lock up his Treasure from all other Expenses, which did not directly respect the War: so that all the great men of the Kingdom saw themselves excluded from all possibility of extracting from thence their Entertainments, Pensions, or other Assignments of right belonging, and annexed unto their several Offices, and Commands. To supply which defect, part of these expenses were thrown upon the people; they began at least to impose upon them the Entertainments of the Governors of Provinces to be Levied upon them, by Commissions of the * Taxes, or Imposts. Taille. Bullion, Sur-Intendant of the Finances, who professed a particular Friendship to the Duke of Espernon, and pretended to be very solicitous of his Interests, offered him one of these Impositions for the payment of his Salary; advising him moreover, that out of this stock he should pay himself several Arrears that were due to him: but the Duke rejected the proposition, with a generosity never enough to be commended; sending him word, That having for above threescore years served the Kings of France, A rare example of the Duke's love to the people. without ever touching penny of the Assignations they had pleased to think him▪ worthy of, excepting what came immediately out of the Exchequer, he would not begin towards his latter end, to extract a subsistence out of the poor and miserable people, he saw every day perish before his eyes for want of Bread: That being placed in his Government to serve the King, and to govern his People, it was from the Master he served, and not from those he commanded, that he was to expect his Reward: That he had much rather be reduced to the bare Revenue of his own Estate, than to see his Name in the Excise Office, or his Table furnished out at the price of the Poor. Such as solicited his business for him at Court, to render him more facile to their persuasions, represented to him the example of all the other great men of the Kingdom, as well Princes as others, who they said received now not one farthing any other way: But all would not prevail; he returning answer, That he did not take upon him to condemn any one for so doing, but that he did not nevertheless conceive himself obliged to follow the Examples of any whomsoever; and that he had much rather undergo the imputation of Singularity, in doing a thing he thought to be just, than to do the contrary in imitation of all the world besides. And indeed he continued to the last so constant in this noble, and generous Resolution, that he never after received one penny of any of his Assignments, not so much as of those that were due for the year before: So that at his Death he had near upon seven years' Arrears due to him, amounting to above five hundred thousand Livers: By which it may be judged how much his strongest inclinations (for I cannot deny but that he was exceedingly close handed in very many things) gave place to Interests, wherein his Honour was concerned, If in this particular he was so solicitous of easing the King's Subjects that were under his Government, even to the prejudice of his own Interests; he was no less careful to keep them within the just limits of their Obedience, and Duty. The gathering in of the Tailles was at this time a matter of so great difficulty, that in several neighbouring Provinces, as in Poictou, Xaintonge, and in Angoumois, the people were in manifest Rebellion. The Duke determinately opposed himself against this ill example, and would never tolerate the least Disobedience to his Majesty's Royal Pleasure; a strictness that being for their licentious Constitutions, or at least in their Opinions too severe, made the people no less murmur at him, for being too rough, than he was censured at Court for being too indulgent: But he was no more moved with Complaints of the one, than the Jealousy of the other; and his own satisfaction being his only Object, he did not much regard any other, than what he found in his own Conscience. Though the Duke's mind was taken up with so many Affairs of great difficulty, and trouble, he had yet so much room left there, as to allow something to his own particular resentments, which would ever upon occasion crowd in for a place with the Public Concerns. The Duke for all the injuries he had received of Briet, would take no other revenge, but only to put him into a fright. The impunity of Briet, and the liberty had been granted to him again to execute his Office in the Parliament of Bourdeaux, before his face, and as it were in defiance of him, was insupportable to such a spirit, as that he was possessed withal; so that, what command soever the King had been pleased to lay upon him, to permit him so to do, it was impossible for him to pay his Majesty that cheerful Obedience in this, he did in all other occasions. To which indigestive humour of his, his Animosity (but too just in itself) being every day exasperated more, and more by new Provocations; he, in the end, was no longer able so to conquer his passion; but that his patience, being wounded to the last degree, must of necessity overflow all bounds of moderation, and proceed to some effects of Revenge; so disproportionate nevertheless to the Injuries he had received, that if on the one side he was frugal of his own Conscience in sparing the Blood of an Enemy, he was not however excused from the blame of undertaking, and that with great bustle and noise, a thing of little, or no moment, and that notwithstanding had like to have turned very much to his own prejudice. After therefore the Duke had rejected the proposal of one of his own Soldiers, who offered to stab Briet, and to do it after such a manner, that he could never be suspected for the Murder; he commanded four of his Foot● men to kill his Coach-Horses in the open Street. This Command was executed one day, that Briet was returning out of the City to his own House; when his Coachman being assaulted by these four Footmen, they first pulled him out of his Coach-box, and afterwards thrust their Swords into the Flanks of the Horses; whereupon the poor Beasts enraged with the smart of their Wounds, ran away full speed, hurrying the Coach, and their Master in it three or four hundred paces along the Streets, till at last, at one and the same instant, upon the pavement they fell down, and died. Briet, who had at first been terribly frighted with the sight of the Swords, was not much less afraid of his Horses precipitous Career, which was also all the harm he received; the Coach stopped, and overturned at the death of the Horses, giving him time to come out, half dead with Fear, and to retire to his own House. The Parliament of Bourdeaux interest themselves in the affront offered to Bri●t. The Relation of this business was immediately carried to the Duke, which shadow of Revenge was to him matter of entertainment, and laughter for an hour after: But the Parliament took it after a quite contrary manner, who offended to the height at the Injury done to one of their Robe, the next day assembled their several Chambers, to inquire into the Fact: There was none of them who were not very well satisfied with the Justice of the Duke's resentment, and who would not have approved of his Revenge, had it proceeded a great deal further: but there was also hardly any one of them, who did not interest himself in the offence offered after so public a manner to the Dignity, and Honour of the Assembly. Without doubt the business would have gone very ill with the Duke, had matters continued upon these terms, and those of the Parliament after having declared themselves Parties, remaining still Judges, would neither have spared the Duke's Footmen, nor any other could have been proved concerned in the Action; they had already prepossessed the Cardinal, by representing to him, that neither the King's Authority, nor that of his Eminency, had been sufficient to protect an Officer in the Execution of his Duty, in the most honourable Body of the Province: but besides that the Cardinal (ever very ill satisfied with the Duke, who on his part also did not much study to please him) was of himself sufficiently disposed to do him a mischief, had not the occurrences of the time involved the Court in the greatest disorder, wherein perhaps it had ever been. The Enemy, after having long threatened the Kingdom, was in the end with a powerful Army entered into Picardy; and at their first coming had carried lafoy Capelle, and le Catelet, assaulted Corbie, which they also took, and alarmed Paris itself to such a degree, as is sufficiently known to all. They were likewise entered into Burgundy, and were preparing for the like attempt upon Languedoc: and Guienne was not to be spared; neither was it a little while after: So that the great Minister, wholly taken up with concerns of so high importance, had no leisure to look after the Duke's Affairs; neither did he think it convenient to nettle him, in a time when his services were so necessary to the Kingdom; and the Chancellor who still retained his old affection to the Duke's Interests, seeing himself absolute Master of this business, concealing it from the Parliaments knowledge, referred it to the ordinary Justice, where being animated with very little passion, it soon fell of itself. At this time of all others the Greatness of the Duke of Espernon seems especially to appear, The great Employments of the Duke of Espernon's Family. by the important Employments, and Commands wherewith his whole Family were invested. The Duke de Candale his eldest Son was Generalissimo to the Armies of the Republic of Venice, an Ally to this Crown. The Duke de la Valette his second Son, was in the Army of Picardy, wherein though he had not in truth the Principal Command (the Count de Soissons being General there) yet had he the honour to be chosen out by the King, to infuse life, and vigour into that Army, the Soldiers whereof, by some ill successes had befallen them, being exceedingly dejected, which were the express terms wherewith his Majesty allured him to that Service. The Cardinal de la Valette was also employed against Galas in Burgundy, into which Province the Enemy being entered with a formidable Army, had already made some Conquests before his arrival there. Mirebeau had been taken, Saint jean de Laonne was besieged, and the best Cities of the Country were highly threatened; the fear there was exceeding great, and the danger had been no less, if the Cardinal de la Valette, by opposing himself to their designs, had not stopped the progress of their Arms. He fought them with advantage in five or six several Engagements, and without ever being able to tempt them to a Battle with all the provocation he could use, forced them in the end to retire, with the ruin, and dissolution of their whole Army, that unprofitably mouldered away to nothing. As for the Father, his business lay in Guienne, a Province, that as it made up a principal part of the Kingdom, of how great utility must the Service necessarily be, that preserved it from disorder in so critical a time? A thing nevertheless fortunately effected, by his Wisdom so moderating the discontents of the people, as to keep them in so dangerous a Juncture of Affairs, from lashing into those extremes, whereinto by their former behaviour, it might reasonably be apprehended, should they find an opportunity of this nature, they would precipitously run. This was indeed one of the most important, The 〈…〉 Guienne. but not the only Service he did the King upon this occasion. The Spanish Council having (as has been said) determined to invade the Kingdom in several places at once, principally hasted to enter into Guienne; to come to which Province, they were to pass through the Country of Labourt (which is that of biscay) and by the way highly threatened the City of Bayonne. They knew very well the Duke of Espernon had no Forces to send into that Country; neither had he had them, durst he indeed have done it, without the consent of the Inhabitants; lest, being a choleric, and impatient people, as they naturally are, any thing he should do of that kind, out of care to preserve them, should put them upon desperate resolutions, and make them wilfully lose themselves. They had before they came so despised the Enemy's Forces, that they would not endure any one should think of contributing to their preservation; a security that did nor a little afflict the Duke, who had been of old acquainted with the humour of this people, and knew them to be as timorous, and dejected when any danger was near at hand, as they were stout and haughty, when it was remote, and out of the prospect of their fear. Not daring therefore to rely upon the valour, and Fidelity of such a people in an Affair of so high importance, and moreover importuned by the intelligence he received from all parts, that the Enemy was ready to enter the Country, he departed from Bourdeaux the 6 th'. of October, arrived the tenth at Nerac, and the sixteenth a● Bayonne; with a diligence so much above the strength of a man of his Age, that at his arrival there he was surprised with a sharp, The Duke of Espernon falls ●ick at Bayonne. and a dolorous distemper, so violent a Fever accompanying his pain, that for some days his Friends, and Servants knew not, what to hope would be the issue of his Disease. Though the Duke had with him no other Forces, save only his Company of Gens d' Arms, his Guards, and an hundred or sixscore Gentlemen Volunteers, he notwithstanding stuck not, boldly to expose his Person, for the security of that Frontier, in the preservation whereof consisted the safety of the whole Country. He was scarcely there arrived, when the people came running in crowds with news that the Enemy was upon the point to enter; who also on their part followed the intelligence so close, that there was scarce any interval betwixt the report of their coming, and their being come. The Spanish Army enters into Biscay. The Duke, though exceedingly ill, would by no means, that in an Affair of this Consequence they should conceal any thing from his knowledge; neither did he upon the first intimation fail to take order for all things with as much diligence, and care, as if he had been in the greatest vigour of health: wherein his instructions were also such, as had they been duly executed, and observed, the Enemy would have met with greater difficulties than they did; and their Entry into this little Country, though open on all sides, would have cost them, both more time, and more blood, than they laid out upon this occasion. But what he had ordered with so much prudence, and foresight, was very ill obeyed; and the people of the Country no sooner saw the Enemy appear, than they fled before them, none of their Leaders being able to prevail with them to stand, or so much as once to face about in any place of what advantage soever. The Duke sometime before he advanced towards this Frontier, foreseeing what work and trouble the invasion of a Foreign Army was likely to create him, had entreated the King to send the Duke de la Valette his Son, who also had the Government of Guienne settled upon him in reversion, to his assistance; who accordingly came to him to Bayonne, The Duke de la Valette comes to his Father to Bayonne. the same day the Enemy entered the Country, and who having, as he passed by Bourdeaux, heard of the Sickness of the Duke his Father, was by that ill news obliged to take Post, and was but newly alighted when intelligence was brought, that the Enemy was entering, and that thereupon had followed a great confusion amongst our own people. The Duke at this news was not a little distracted, betwixt two contrary Passions, by which he was at one, and the same time assaulted, either of paying the assistance to which he was in Nature, and Duty bound, to a good and languishing Father, or of pursuing what his Honour, and Bravery exacted from him, for the Service of his Prince, and Master: But that debate betwixt his Piety, and Honour was soon determined by the Father himself; and the mutual tenderness they had for one another was soon overcome, by the Affection they both had to their common duty. It was in the close of the Evening when the Duke de la Valette arrived at Bayonne, and the night was no sooner passed, when mounting on Horseback with some persons of on Condition, who had there waited in expectation of his coming, he went out to discover the Countenance of the Enemy: but neither his Presence, Exhortations, nor Example could work any effect upon the common people; whose Spirits had by the first days fright been so strangely subdued, that it was impossible to raise them the next, to any tolerable degree of resolution: so that in this general Consternation, all he could possibly do was to retreat without disorder, which also was not to be done without a very great deal of danger. The Duke de la Valette engaged his Person so far to make good this Retreat, and to preserve the little Honour he had to manage in this Encounter, that he very often ran a very great hazard of his life, and certainly exposed himself more, than he was any way obliged to do, when being in the end retired (himself always the last man) he commanded lafoy Roche Captain of the Duke his Father's Guards, and also of his own, to make good the Bridge (which separates the Bourg of Siboure, from that of Saint jean de Luz) against the Enemy that followed very close in his Rear. This Order was not to be executed without infinite danger, but the Duke de la Valette well enough knew, that he, to whom it was given, would not belly his former Actions; neither did la Roche deceive his expectation, who with forty Musketeers only which he had under his Command, stopped the torrent of a Victorious Army, and after having killed two hundred of their men upon the place, amongst whom were eight or ten of their best Officers, and having by that means given our Foot time to put themselves into a place of safety, after he had sufficiently manifested his own Conduct, with the Valour and Dexterity of his Soldiers, he drew up the Drawbridge that lay over the middle of the River, and with very little loss retired to the Duke de la Valette's Troop, who stayed to make good his Retreat. After this manner the Spanish Forces possessed themselves of the Country of Labourt, The Spaniards make themselves Masters of the Country of Labourt▪ and take the Fort of Soc●a without resistance. and our men were no sooner retired on this side Saint jean de Luz, but that the Enemy seized it, and the same day presented themselves before Socoa. This Socoa was a little point of Land, jetting out into the Sea, convenient, and proper enough for Fortification; but those of the Country would never consent to have it fortified. Which notwithstanding the place of itself was of so advantageous a situation, that they had ventured to put into it two hundred Soldiers; who having had leisure to cast up some Works, made a countenance before the arrival of the Spanish Army, there bravely to defend themselves: but their Resolution was of no long continuance, the fear of the people soon infected the Soldier; and some Gentlemen who upon other occasions had given testimony of their Valour, having been appointed to command them, were so unhappy as not to preserve the same Reputation here. So that to be short, contrary to the opinion of the two Dukes, the Father, and the Son, and of all the men of Command about them, the place was delivered up without the least resistance, and the Enemy at the same instant there fortified themselves. It is not to be believed what a terror the entry of the Spaniards, and the taking of Socoa, A panic fear in the City of Bayonne. it being but three Leagues distant from their City, struck into the Inhabitants of Bayonne; and, as all the Passions of the Populacy are extreme, they in a moment converted the absolute assurance, wherewith they had hitherto flattered themselves into a most infamous, and immoderate Fear; insomuch that had not the Duke been present in the City, it had doubtless been in very great danger to be lost: wherein nevertheless, if the Kingdom of France stood highly indebted to him for working by by his presence so good an effect; they stood little less obliged to the Spanish Gravity, and Circumspection, whose deliberate way of proceeding made them run into an error, usually committed by such, as persuade themselves their Enemies are provided against all sorts of Accidents. For his cautious Enemy, forbearing out of this belief to present themselves before Bayonne, unfurnished of all things necessary for its defence, gave the Duke time by that means to make the Inhabitants reassume their former courage; and that to such a degree, as from the despair of being able to defend themselves, being grown to a confidence of doing it with honour, and advantage, they were soon in a condition to repel any thing the Enemy could attempt against them. The Duke seeing them in this good disposition, They are encouraged by the Duke of Espernon. caused a Review to be made of all such as were able to bear Arms, which upon examination were found to be nine hundred only; and which notwithstanding he so encouraged, what by the consideration of their Duty, and their own Interest (an Argument as prevalent at least as any whatever in the minds of men) that they all unanimously swore to him, to live and die in the defence of their City. Such as were not capable of bearing Arms, were employed at the Fortifications which were yet imperfect; a labour wherein the more delicate Sex would no more be spared than the men; by which means the work was followed on all hands with so unwearied a Diligence, that what remained to be done, was perfected in fewer days, than months would have been required before the Enemy's approach. This being thus provided for, they proceeded in the next place to examine what Grain was in the City; of which search Vertamont, Intendant de la justice had the charge committed to his care: The order taken by the Duke of Espernon for the conservation of the p●ace. and in this they found the greatest defect, which was such, that in three days the place must infallibly have been lost, had the Enemy presently clapped down before it; for there was very little Corn to be found, and no Flower at all, all the Mills were without the City, and the nearest of them a League distant. This defect was therefore of all things to be supplied, which alone renders all sorts of Provision, how great soever the Store, altogether useless: that therefore in a few days was accordingly done; and being the City, which is divided from the rest of the Kingdom by the Doux, a great and deep River, was not to be relieved but on that side: The Duke was especially solicitous to secure the wooden Bridge that affords the City communication with the Suburb du St. Esprit, and from thence with the rest of France, by the County of Lannes. To that end therefore he caused two good Forts to be traced out in his own presence upon two Eminences that commanded that Bridge; and made the Work to be so diligently followed, that they were in a few days put into a condition of defence. They also by his order hastened the Levies for some Recruits that were raising in Guienne, that they might be put into those two Forts, by which means they were sufficiently man'd. He moreover put three months' Provision into the City, gave order for the perfecting of the Fortifications, wholly reassured the Inhabitants, and put the place into so good a condition, that nothing for the future, but by a regular Siege, was to be effected against it. After having thus provided for the safety of this City, he prepared himself to go take order for the defence of the other Cities, that were upon this Frontier, which were also in no little danger; yet was it not before he had further supplied the necessities of the Inhabitants of Bayonne, who complaining to him that their Corporation was reduced to so great poverty, that it would be impossible for them to provide against a thousand little Accidents that might happen to them, moved at their entreaties, he left with them all the money he had left of the Expense of his House, arising to four and twenty thousand Livers, which was owing to him at his Death, and was the only money he ever lent upon Security, and at Interest in the whole time of his Life. The Spaniards knew nothing of the ill condition of this place, A remarkable oversight in the Spaniard. till after it was fortified, and supplied in such manner, as you have heard; and then the● saw the error they had committed, but it was then too late. They declared however, to the Duke's Glory, and in their own Vindication, That they did not repent them of their wary manner of proceeding; but that if it were to do again, they should do the same, and that they could never think a place ill Fortified, that had a Duke of Espernon to defend it. The Duke, what testimonies soever they so highly, and publicly gave, of the esteem they had of his Virtue, was not notwithstanding so to be charmed with the Harmony of their Praises: but that being informed the Enemy, despairing for the future of being able to effect any thing upon Bayonne by force, was determined to pass the River Doux, to fall upon Dacqs, by that means to cut off all Relief that could be put into Bayonne; The Duke of Espernon goes from Bayonne to Dacqs. to the end, that of itself, and without the expense of a Siege, it might fall into their hands; he departed thence with the Duke de la Valette his Son, his faithful Companion in all the cares and troubles of this Expedition, to take order for the defence of this little place, which they also in six days that they made their abode there, what by their Vivacity, and good Conduct, and partly at their own expense, put into so good a posture of safety, And from thence sends a Dispatch to the King. that it was out of all danger of Surprise. Having thus provided for the security of the most Important Places, they dispatched away a Gentleman to the King, to give his Majesty an Account of what they had done for his Service, and to receive his Commands, what they were to do for the time to come. From Dacqs they went to Mont de Marsan, where they yet made some stay, as well in reference to the securing that place, as also to be better satisfied concerning an intimation had been given them, that the Spanish Army was resolved to pass the River in order to some notable Attempt. To this end Captain la Roche was sent to discover nearer hand the depth of the Enemy's Designs; who soon perceived by the Works they had begun at Socoa, that they had no thoughts of making any further progress into the Country that Winter. Having therefore at his return given his Masters this assurance, upon his Report, which they found afterwards to be very true, they continued on their way towards Bourdeaux. The Spaniards on the other side applying themselves to their Fortifications, laboured more successfully, than they imagined, to the Glory which was reserved for the Duke de la Valette in their Defeat the ensuing year; and having in the mean time lost all hopes of advancing further into the Country by force of Arms, fell to Cabals, and practices to seduce the Inhabitants of Labourt over to their side. They promised them Peace, freedom, Security, and all other advantages they could desire, if they would cohabit with them; they offered Protection to all such as would continue Neuters in their own Houses: but they threatened no little punishments to those, who should retire into France. All which Artifice nevertheless prevailed nothing with the biscain's, there being not so much as any one Family, that did not prefer a voluntary Exile, before any Benefit, or Immunity that could derive from the bounty of invading Neighbours: An exemplary Fidelity in the Inhabitants of Biscay. So that if they were in the beginning condemned by some, for having manifested too little heat at the Enemies first coming in, every one in the end applauded their Fidelity, who would rather choose to abandon their Country, and Fortunes, than to enjoy them in the greatest quiet, and security, under the usurpation of a Foreign and invasive Power. As it was evident enough both by the number of the Enemy, Anno 1637. and the good condition wherein they had had the leisure to fortify themselves, that it was impossible to attempt any thing against them, but by means proportionable to the greatness of their Forces; the Duke sat still at Bourdeaux in expectation of Orders from Court for their future proceeding. But they waited not long, Haumont, which was the Gentleman they had dispatched thither, returning to Bourdeaux almost as soon as they, furnished with several very favourable Dispatches; wherein after the King had highly magnified the Duke of Espernon's Conduct, who by so little means had preserved that Frontier, his Majesty proceeded to let him know, he infinitely desired the Enemy might be disobliged from the places they had already possessed; promising in order thereunto Men, Provisions, Ammunition, a Train of Artillery, and what was necessary to the execution of so great a design: All this notwithstanding remained in terms of a bare promise only, without ever coming to the least effect; nay, there was not so much money to be had, as would serve for the raising of two Regiments of Foot, and four Troops of Horse; though the Duke had not so much as one Soldier in the Province: a Sum, which though it amounted not to above fifty thousand Livers, yet the Exchequers of the several Provinces, and the King's other Banks being totally exhausted, there was a necessity for the Duke to advance it, The Duke of Espernon raises Forces with his own money. out of his own private Stock, which he also was willing to do; and though it went something hard with him, had much rather in this urgency of his Majesty's Affairs, lay out the money of his own private Revenue (for of two years he had not touched one penny of the King's) than that the Country the Enemy had invaded should be left unto them, which also was not to be preserved, but by the opposition of some considerable Forces. While the Frontier of Bayonne found work enough for the two Dukes, the Royal Arms were employed for the recovery of Corbie; that being almost the only place of importance, the Enemy had made a Conquest of, with all their long, and mighty preparation. In the beginning of this Siege, there was scarce any who did not believe the Fortune of the Cardinal depended upon the event of that Enterprise, and that, should the King happen to be baffled before it, his Majesty weary of maintaining the Quarrels of his Minister (for such were all the Wars of Europe at that time time reputed) at so vast an expense of Treasure, and with so much disquiet to his Kingdom, would infallibly sacrifice him to the Animosities of Strangers, and the Discontents of the Great Ones of his own people, who equally desired his Ruin: But the success of this Leaguer, more speedy, and fortunate than was to be expected, having reconciled the Cardinal to the King's opinion, and astonished all those who had prophesied an alteration in his Fortune, every one was struck with admiration at a prosperity so beyond all example, insomuch that even those who had most thirsted after his Ruin, were the first to congratulate him for the good success. 'Tis said that of those there were some, who, that they might with greater Elegancy shroud themselves from any jealousy the Cardinal might entertain against them, made no difficulty to prostitute their own Fidelity, and Honour, in discovering the Secrets either of their Masters, or Friends, to him who was their common Enemy. It was by that sort of people (as is believed) that the Cardinal had intelligence of a Plot, wherein the Monsieur, and the Count de Soissons had conspired against him, with whom the Duke de la Valette was also delivered to him for one, who had a great hand in this Affair; The fi●st cause of the D●ke de la Va●ette's Disgrace. and it is most certain that from thence the Cardinal laid the design to persecute his Families and his own particular Fortune to the last extreme; so that from that time forward, there was neither bound, nor moderation in the implacable Hatred he conceived against him upon this very account. How far the Duke de la Valette's Resentments might transport him towards the Cardinal, I cannot tell; but I am well enough informed in the ill usage he received from him, as well in the person of the Duke his Father, as his own, to be bold to say, that h● had all the reason in the world to be offended to a very high degree: but this Affair having been (as has been said) either the occ●sion, or at least the pretence of all the great Persecutions of this Family, it will not perhaps be impertinent to take things from the beginning, that they may be the better understood. The Duke de la Valette being (as we have observed) entered into the Alliance of Cardinal Richelieu, The manner of the Duke de la Valett's Conduct after he entered into Cardinal Richelieu's Alliance. had examples enough of several persons of very great Quality before his eyes, to make him stoop to extraordinary Applications, and respects towards him: but nothing could ever induce him to bend below the terms of decency, and his own condition; so that he only paid him what respect was due, and nothing more: a way of living that by no means satisfied the Cardinal, who would exact from all conditions of men, a Reverence without all reserve. A vanity of his, that although the Duke de la Valette was very perfect in, yet did not that knowledge make him alter his resolution, choosing rather to live with him in a less degree of Favour, than to beg Offices and Employments at the price of his own Honour. Many secret discontents arising from this first cause, it must of necessity follow, Discontents arise betwixt them. that these two Spirits having been so long dissatisfied with one another, and so equally disposed to a final Rupture, would at one time or another produce their ordinary effect. An occasion presented itself at the Enemies entering into Picardy, and about the taking of la Capelle. The Baron du Bec was Governor of this place, which this Gentleman very well known to, and entirely beloved by the Duke de la Valette, had surrendered sooner, than the Cardinal could have wished, for want (as he pretended) of Provision. The Cardinal, who by an example of high severity, would oblige the Governors of other places to hold out to the last extremities; or perhaps by that means to justify himself to the King, from any censure he might undergo, as Prime Minister of State, in not having sufficiently provided for the necessities of so important a place, caused an Honourable Council immediately to be Assembled. This Council consisted of all the Officers of the Crown, who were then to be found in Paris, together with some Counsellors of State, whose business it must be to condemn the Baron du Bec, as convict of Cowardice, and Treachery, to a privation of his Life and Honour. The Duke de la Valette was amongst the rest summoned to this Assembly, wherein as he saw he was not called to it to deliver his free Opinion, that the Gentleman was beforehand marked out for Ruin, and that Sentence of Death must consequently ensue; so did he endeavour with all the art he had to decline having any thing to do in that business: but it was altogether in vain. The Cardinal would admit of no excuses, but after having sent three times to his House to seek him, Chavigni, Secretary of State, went the fourth time to tell him plainly, he must either satisfy, or absolutely break with the Cardinal. This express, and positive Declaration prevailed in the end with the Duke de la Valette to go to the Council; but it was not nevertheless to comply in the least with the animosities of others. The Baron du Bec's Affair was laid open in the Presence of the King, and the Cardinal, and the greater part of the Judges concluded the Crimes laid to his charge, sufficient to condemn the party accused: but the Duke de la Valette did not think himself obliged to be of that opinion, and consequently could not consent to his Condemnation. If the Cardinal had manifested something of vehemency, in importuning the Duke to come to the Council, he expressed yet a far greater indignation to find him of a judgement so far dissenting from his own, insomuch that at his coming out of the Council, taking the Duke de la Valette aside, he could not contain himself from breaking into very unhandsome Language, proceeding to so bitter, and so injurious expressions, that the Duke was not able to forbear giving a very smart Reply, the Reverence due to the place where they than were permitting him at that time to do no more; though such as were acquainted with his temper, will easily judge, that he would omit no occasion of manifesting a higher resentment. In the heat of this Discontent he received the Command of which I have already spoken, to go join himself with the Count de Soissons in Picardy; and then the Cardinal could find some expressions of Civility, and Compliment, to smooth him withal, at his departure; but an Offence being much harder to be repaired, than committed, the Wound the Duke carried along with him in his Bosom, was not to be closed by so slender a Remedy. It was presently after this that the Cardinal was informed, the Duke de la Valette had harkened to the Propositions had been made to him by the Count d● Soissons, for the Revenge of their common Injuries, and that the Monsieur was also consenting with them. At the time the Cardinal received this intimation, the Duke de la Valette, The Monsieur, and the Count de Soissons retire from Court, to his good Fortune, was as far off as Bayonne; but the Monsieur, and the Count de Soissons, being both at Paris, escaped but a very few hours of being both Arrested, having nevertheless time enough to withdraw themselves, they departed suddenly from Paris: when, though they scarce knew which way to fly for refuge from the power of their Enemy; yet hoping that either the danger the Duke de la Valette ran equally with them; or that the Generosity of the Duke of Espernon (who on the other side was himself not very well satisfied with the Court) might induce him to receive them into Guienne: And send to the Duke of Espernon to engage him in their Quarrel. they dispatched away thither first the Count de Bourdeille, and after him the Count de Montresor his Brother; of which both the one and the other had instructions to address themselves to the Duke de la Valette, that by his persuasions the Father might be rendered more favourable to their desires: But this Duke, who had much rather be alone exposed to the Cardinal's whole stock of hatred, than to disquiet the old Age of the Duke his Father, by interessing him in his Quarrels, freely told them, That the Monsieur, and the Count were to expect nothing from his Mediation in this Affair: That he was indeed resolved to follow his Father's Resolutions; but that he would never prompt him to any thing that might trouble his repose. Montresor, who came last, and who would not depart without a positive resolution, finding no hopes of concurrence in the Duke de la Valette, desired to talk in private with the Duke of Espernon. He was accordingly admitted into his Chamber, at ten of the Clock at night, after all his Servants were retired, where he represented to him, The immediate danger wherein two great Princes of the Blood were at this time engaged by the violence of Cardinal Richelieu, their, and his particular Enemy: That in securing their lives he might also establish his own Fortune, and that of his Family: That he knew very well how great was the number of discontented persons, how violent the despair of the people, and how intolerable the oppression of all the several Orders of the Kingdom: That all these favourable dispositions wanted only some considerable heads, to work their common safety by the ruin of the Cardinal's Affairs: That there was not a person in the Kingdom, who would not be ready speedily to join with these Princes, seeing their good intention for the Redress of the Public, should their cause be supported by his prudent Conduct: That this Act would crown all the other actions of his life, for ever establish the Fortune of his own Family, and render obliged to him for their Lives, and Honour, two Princes, the one the Son, and Brother of the King his Master's, his own Nephew, and Friend; and the other so passionately enamoured of his Virtue, that he would with all his heart lay aside his condition, to obey his Orders in the conduct of those things they were to pursue for their common safety. All these Reasons, how plausible soever in themselves, and how handsomely soever laid before him, were not yet of force to shake a man so firm, and so confirmed in his Duty, as the Duke of Espernon; who, although he very well knew, and that it was no hard matter for him to judge by the Example of these Princes, and of most of the great men of the Kingdom, that the Cardinal would not long hold his hand from striking at his Fortune, which was the only one almost that remained unshaken, would nevertheless rather choose to lie exposed to this danger, than to secure himself, by being the promoter of a Civil War. Who exe●ses himself. He therefore answered Montresor, That he was the Monsieurs most humble Servant, that he was the Count's also: That they did a great deal of Honour in reposing so great a confidence in him, as to communicate so much of their Interests, and Designs: That they could not do it to one that was a more faithful Servant both to the King, and to them, or more passionate for their good: That the greatest testimony he could possibly give them of that passion, was, humbly to beseech, and (if he durst be so bold) to advise them, to have speedy recourse to his Majesty's Bounty, and Royal Favour: That for what concerned himself, he was very sensible of all the ill usage he received from Court; but that he did by no means impute it to the King: That seeing also he could not do himself right, without offending him, he rather chose still to support the oppression under which he now suffered, than to revenge himself of his particular Enemies, by troubling the Peace of the Kingdom, and by adding the mischief of a Civil War to those miseries wherewith the poor people were already afflicted: That he did most humbly conjure these Princes by the name, and quality they bore, and by the Interest they had in the Good of the Kingdom, to do the same, and to surrender all their Animosities, and Discontents to the Public, leaving to Heaven, which was just, the Revenge of their Wrongs: That as to the rest, they might assure themselves the Secret they had been pleased to entrust him withal, should be faithfully locked up in his heart, and that he would suffer all sorts of Extremities, rather than revel it. Montresor being able to obtain nothing more of the Duke, returned with this answer back to the Monsieur his Master; who either prevailed upon by the Duke's advice, or obeying the natural affection he had to the good of the Kingdom, very readily embraced the first overtures of Accommodation that were from the Court presented to him: But the Count de Soissons, not thinking it convenient to trust the Cardinal, what faithful, and sincere reconciliation soever could be promised to him, retired himself to Sedan, from whence he never more returned. As there is no secret that time does not in the end discover, the advice the Duke had given the Monsieur, upon the Propositions he had sent him, was not long concealed from the knowledge of the Court. I am certain the discovery was neither made by the Duke, nor by any of his, the Fidelity, and Secrecy he observed towards these Princes, giving on the contrary the Chancellor Seguier occasion to complain of him. This true Friend of his having understood his Prudent, and Loyal Conduct, in this so important Affair, writ to him, after other things, in these terms, Give me leave to assure you that the King is infinitely satisfied with your Behaviour: I was ever confident, and have ever said, that the Prince's solicitations would never prevail with you, who can entertain no overture, nor embrace no Proposition inconsistent with your Master's Service. I have learned this excellent Maxim from yourself, and your Actions have ever been so pure from any blemish of that kind, that your Fidelity, which will stand for a Precedent to succeeding Ages, was never in any possibility of being suspected; and did you stand in need of any one to undertake for you in this case, I should offer myself to be the man. I hope the Answer you sent this great Prince will make him see his own good, and consider that of the Kingdom: We here expect his Resolution, which we doubt not but will be very good; forasmuch as all things he has desired of his Majesty's Bounty are granted to him, etc. The Duke, who little expected such a Compliment as this, and that had not given the Monsieur this counsel with any intent to obtain thereby a thanks from the King, returned the Chancellor a very civil Answer; but sent him word withal, That if he had observed him in those times wherein they had served the King together wholly intent upon his Majesty's Interests, he was so far from having lost any thing of that Zeal, and Affection, that on the contrary those years which had passed over his head, had only served to confirm him in his Duty; but that he was infinitely surprised to hear the Court should be informed that he should have used any Arguments to the Monsieur concerning the present Affairs, of force to make him consider what he did owe to the Service of the King, the good of the Kingdom, or his own preservation: That he could assure him since his Highness departed last from Court he had not seen him, nor any one employed by him; neither had he directly, or indirectly heard from him at all: That the discourse therefore which had done him this good Office with the King, must be something he might perhaps have said in public without other design, than the vanity he had upon all occasions to manifest his passion to his Majesty's Service, and to exhort all men to continue firm in that Duty, etc. The Chancellor was by no means satisfied with this Answer, it seeming to him that the Duke was therein more reserved, than became their old acquaintance, or the entire confidence he might safely repose in his Friendship: but the Duke, who would by no means do the Monsieur the least ill office, or fail in his Fidelity to him, chose rather to give his friend this little discontent, which he also knew would soon be forgot, than to fail in his Faith, which would be an eternal blemish to him, and so great a forfeit to Honour, as he could never have forgiven himself, as it had been impossible for him ever to repair. Although the Cardinal prepossessed with the ill Offices had been done by the Duke de le Valette had conceived that high distaste against him, he usually manifested in such cases; he nevertheless made shift to smother it upon this occasion. The Cardinal dissembles his dissatisfaction with the Dukes of Espernon, and de la Valette. He had at this time great use both of the Father, and the Son, in the Affairs of Guienne, upon their shoulders (he being sufficiently taken up with troubles nearer home) to lay the burden of the care of that Province; so that he treated with them in terms of greater confidence, than ever, writing to the Duke of Espernon after this manner, My Lord, You will find by the King's Dispaches, that his Majesty is unmindful of nothing he conceives necessary for the driving his Enemies out of your Government, and does assure himself you will upon this occasion give him a testimony of your Valour and Experience, equally advantageous to the Reputation of his Majesty's Arms, and your own particular Glory. This Action will crown all the rest of your Life, which makes me confident you will undertake it, with the ardour both the King himself has reason to expect from your zeal to his Service, and amongst other his Majesty's most passionate Servants, one who honours you at the rate I do, who am, etc. The like Compliment was also sent to the Duke de la Valette, And puts them jointly in Commission for the Affairs of Guienne. which is a little too long to be inserted here, and wherein his Majesty sent a List, or form of a gallant Army, wherein were to be three Cnmpanies of Gens-d'Armes, twelve Troops of Light Horse, seven Regiments of Foot consisting of twenty Companies each, and three of ten, with Equipage for the Artillery, and other things necessary for the execution of a great Design. Had any part of these large promises been performed, the two Governors would have needed little persuasion to undertake the Enemy in what posture soever they had been: but the whole Winter almost being lapsed in vain expectation, the Duke de la Valette conceiving, that, if he did not do something of himself, the Enemy might be so established upon the Frontier, that it would be afterwards a matter of extraordinary difficulty to dislodge him, advanced with the sole Regiments of Guienne, and of Mun, composed of the Duke his Father's Servants, and his own, and raised at their own charge. He found upon the place their Company of Gens-d'Armes, and two Troops of Light-Horse, with which small Forces he undertook to oppose the progress of an Enemy three times as strong as himself in number of men; he forced them from some posts of Advantage they had fortified in the Country; and so straitened their Quarters, and constrained them to lie so close in their Trenches, that he thenceforwards made them begin to feel necessities, which in succession of time gave him a Victory beyond all humane hope or expectation. Whilst he was taken up with this Employment, which of itself was but too great for the small means he had wherewith to effect so great a Design; the Discontents that had so long lain hatching in the minds of the people, produced at this time the Mischief had so long been feared, and soreseen, and on a sudden closed one of the most formidable Revolts, that ever perhaps appeared in the Kingdom. This disorder began first in Perigort, from whence it suddenly crept into Quercy, and thence in a moment diffused itself into Agenois, and Bourdelois; A formidable Rebel on breaks out in several Provinces of France. nay, even the Provinces of Angoumois, Xaintonge, and Poictou also, which but a little before had been quieted by the Wisdom of Villemontée Intendant de la justice in that Country, being not yet well settled in their Obedience, stirred up by the ill example of their Neighbours, ran into new, and more dangerous Commotions, than before: so that these joining in the common mischief with the rest before mentioned, the Contagion spread itself almost as far as the River Loire. That which rendered the Sedition of Guienne the more considerable was, that those who ran into Arms were not unhandy Peasants, but old Soldiers of the most Warlike Provinces of the Kingdom, who having long followed the Profession of Arms, and not being able so soon to reduce themselves to their former condition, would in the disorders of popular Insurrection seek out that licence, the sweets whereof they had sometime tasted, when their Riots had been in some measure justified by their Arms. Most Commotions of this nature have been observed to proceed by certain degrees, and the forming of the design has usually been discovered, before the clap of Thunder has been heard; they commonly advance step by step, and proceed from one gradation to another, to their determinate end: but this at its very birth appeared in that excessive and formidable height, that like great Conflagrations which have long been smothering before they have broken out, it cast out flames in a moment, which were hardly possibly to be extinguished. The number of the Rebels, The first Intelligence the Duke of Espernon received of this accident, was, that there were already above thirty thousand men in Arms, and it was true: amongst whom many Gentlemen of good Quality were so indiscreet as to engage; who though none of them was able to govern so unruly, and so confused a rabble, they nevertheless made choice of a Gentleman a Borderer of Perguex, called lafoy Mothe-la-Forest to be their General, enforcing him to accept of that unhappy Command. This poor Gentleman finding himself the first day oppressed with so great a burden, after having in vain ttyed all ways to disengage himself, was fain in the end to undertake to Head them; wherein the most prudent thing he did, was to reduce this great multitude to regular number, by choosing out of the best Soldiers, and such as were best Armed, ten thousand good men, and dismissing the rest home to their own houses with order to be ready to March upon the first Summons. And their progress. This crew of Rakehells, made indeed in a few days a very considerable progress; but it was without any manner of opposition; the people generally having so great a kindness for the Rebellion, that there was scarce a City in the Province, which they might not conclude to be their own. They were received into Bergerac, and had possessed themselves of the Stone-Bridge which is upon the River Dordogne; they were moreover so confident as to fall upon Saint Foy, and had not the Duke fortified the honest Inhabitants, against the licence of the base sort of people, by sending first Coderé a Soldier of his Guards, a brave, and understanding fellow, and after him one of his Gentlemen called Friget, with an hundred ●nd fifty Foot, raised amongst his own Vassals, the place had infallibly been lost. It was a Town of no little importance at this time; for beside the advantage of its situation, all the Arms the Marshal de St. Luc, the King's Lieutenant of the Province, and particular Governor of this place, had formerly taken away from Broüage when he left that Government, were in the Citadel, as also some pieces of Cannon, which would have supplied the Rebels with such a conveniency, as would have encouraged, and enabled them to attempt the best Cities of the Province. The Duke of Espernon having in this extremity no more, than three very weak Regiments, which had been lately reformed, and that by little and little, were drawing together in the Province, to go towards the Frontier, the Service to which they were designed; writ to St. Torse Aide de Camp, who commanded them, to draw them out against the Mutineers: but that Gentleman, more discreet, and circumspect, than the Duke could have wished upon so urgent an occasion, chose rather betimes to abandon his Quarters to the Rebels, than to do them the honour to dispute them by any the least opposition. The Duke after this seeing no means left to suppress this dangerous Faction, which every day increased to a more formidable height, and startled with the news he received from all parts, that some of the best Cities were ready to revolt, and only expected the approach of the Rebels to receive them; writ in all haste to the Duke de la Valette to come speedily to the Relief of the Province with some of those Forces he had with him upon the Frontier, since those in the Lower Gascony were not able to make head against the mischief already grown too great to be withstood. The Duke at this Summons, without deliberating upon the Duke his Father's Command, immediately put himself upon his March; but yet so that the Foreign Enemy still continued shut up within their Trenches by the Marquis de Poganne Marshal de Camp, with whom during his absence he left the Command of the Army, whilst himself came to do the King, the Kingdom, and particularly the Province, one of the most important Services, could possibly be desired in so dangerous a time. Being come to Cadillac, where his Father expected him sick (for he was at last constrained to faint under the Burden 〈◊〉 Affairs, and the affliction wherewith these untoward occurrences had overcome his Spirits) and having from him received such Instructions, as he was at that time in a condition to give, he early the next morning took Horse to go in all haste to Marmanda. The Duke his Father had already there caused some Troops to be gathered together under the Command of the Marquis de Monferrant Marshal de Camp, and Lieutenant of his own Company of Gens-d'Armes; where the Duke was no sooner arrived, but he understood that at la Sauvetat, a little Town about four Leagues off, there was a considerable Body of the Rebels, who had there fortified themselves, and made show of a resolute Defence; an information that made him immediately March his Forces that way to go to assault them. All the strength he had with him were no more than two thousand five hundred Foot; but the Enemy were very many more, which notwithstanding he made no difficulty himself to go view the place. At the first sight he apprehended the danger of assaulting them without Cannon, fortified as they were on every side either with Walls, or strong Barricado's; and many of the Officers about him were of opinion, he should stay for some Field-Pieces, he had ordered to follow after: but having considered, that to dally with these kind of people only, were to give them greater encouragement, and to augment their Insolence; he gave order upon the instant to go on to the Assault. I have heard several who were present at, and had a share in this Action, say, that the Assault was as vigorously given, and as obstinately sustained, as any they had ever seen, though they had been in many very memorable occasions, and that they should eternally lament, that what was there on both sides performed, had not been done against the Enemies of the Crown; since doubtless whatever they had undertaken must have succeeded to their immortal Glory. The Duke's men fired no further off than at the Muzzle of the Musket, and the other party did the same; The Rebels suppressed by the Duke de la Valette. so that on either side a great many men, with some Officers of the Duke's Regiments were slain: and the slaughter had questionless been much greater, had the besieged been furnished with Pikes, to their Fire Arms; but being destitute of that sort of Defence, they were constrained, after they had discharged their Muskets, to abandon their Barricado's, and to retire. Madaillan who commanded the Rebels gave the first example of a cowardly, and shameful flight, whom they pursued as far as Quercy, to which place he fled for refuge: but having escaped the hands of the pursuers, he saved himself out of the Kingdom, from whence he returned not but to execute one of the most detestable Villainies against the Duke of Espernon that could ever have entered into the imagination of an accursed Villain. The fatal and unhappy circumstances whereof, we shall soon present before you, wherein this wicked, and abominable wretch will appear to be both the instrument, and the cause of the Duke's approaching Death, and Ruin. The forcing of this place was presently followed by the Surrender of Bergerac; the Mutineers had there made a countenance of defending themselves: but the example of their Complices being taken by Assault, rendered them more facile to the persuasions of their General, who was otherwise averse to War, than as he was compelled to it by the unbridled Fury of some of the more violent Spirits, who as they prompted their fellows to greater mischief, would also urge him on to the greatest extremes. These two places being thus reduced to their Obedience, secured all the other Cities of the Province; so that although some few of the people continued still on foot, they were rather thought fit to be undertaken by the ordinary * Des Prevosts. Officers of Justice, than worth the pains, or notice of men of Arms. The report of this Defeat soon spread itself into Angoumois, Xaintonge, and Poictou, whither the Duke de Valette also sent some few Forces, of those which were now supernumerary after this success, and where the people, through fear of punishment, remained in a posture of Obedience; by that means delivering the Court of one of the greatest, and most troublesome apprehensions wherewith the minds of the great Ministers could possibly be possessed. This Victory was by the Marquis de Duras judged of importance enough to deserve the pains of a Journey to Court, to carry news of it to the King; who as he had by his own Valour contributed very much to the good success, the Duke of Espernon, who had him in very great esteem, was also very willing that he should give his Majesty an account of the Action. Being therefore there arrived, The Court 〈◊〉 the news of t●e 〈◊〉 de 〈◊〉 Valett's Victory, very coldly. he omitted nothing that might any ways recommend the merit of the Service: but he did not find the Court disposed to receive things that came from the Duke's at so favourable a rate, as in themselves they did justly deserve; they looking upon all that had been performed as good as nothing, and imposing upon them the assault of the Forts the Spaniard had erected upon the Frontier upon pain of his Majesty's Indignation, which was the first recompense of their Service. Already the Duke de la Valette had taken the way to his ordinary Post, and was arrived at his Quarters, which he had ●ortified opposite to the Spanish Trenches; when the Duke his Father received his Dispatches from Court, wherein he had order, and express power to serve himself with the King's money, and strength of the Province; and moreover to lay what Impositions they should together think fit upon the people, for the execution of his Majesty's Designs. The Duke of Espernon very well judged what was to be expected from these kind of Levies, he knew with what difficulties, and delays the King's own Revenue was gathered in: He was also not ignorant of the little kindness they had for him at Court: He knew very well that his Obedience herein might be converted to a Crime, all Levies of money being expressly forbidden, excepting such Taxes as should be imposed by the King himself: all which being duly considered by him, made him resolve to write to his Majesty, That both himself, The Duke of Espernon refuses to 〈◊〉 money by Impositions upon the people. and his Son were very ready frankly to expose their Lives for the execution of his Majesty's Commands, provided something of what was necessary might be added to their Endeavours, that they might attempt to execute his Orders with some possibility of success: but that he should ever impose a Tax upon his Majesty's Subjects, he most humbly begged to be dispensed from any such Employment, and that his Majesty would be pleased, since hitherto he had kept his hands clean from any thing of that kind, he might still preserve his Reputation without exposing it to the Clamour of his miserable Subjects, whose Necessities were to him already too well known. These last words wrought the most dangerous effect imaginable against him, the Court persuading themselves that he affected Popularity, and sought this way to ingratiate himself with the people, to the end that he might by their assistance be able to maintain himself in his Government, and was in effect the principal Cause, if not the only Motive, that caused him to be removed from thence the ensuing year, Whilst the Duke of Espernon was engaged in these troublesome Disputes with the Court, the Duke de la Valette continued the War with the Enemy, after the same manner he had begun, keeping them close mewed up in their Trenches, without permitting them to receive any relief from the Country, or so much as to taste of the Air of the Field, where they never presented themselves without some notable disadvantage. This way of making War having continued for two whole months together, had reduced the Spaniard to Necessities were no longer to be endured; they were necessitated to have all their Provisions out of their own Country, and those to be brought to them by Sea, with infinite hazard, and inconvenience, and at an intolerable expense. The Duke de la Valette was very well informed of the ill condition to which they were reduced, their Necessities had bred an infinite number of Diseases in their Camp, and the number of six thousand men which they were at first, was diminished to that degree, that not above half of them were left alive. In this condition he prepared to make some attempt upon them, and to that end caused those Forces, which by reason of the late Commotions, he had been obliged to leave in the Lower Gascony, to advance toward the Frontier; not doubting but at this time to effect that, which they would have had him some time before have attempted with almost certain, and apparent ruin: but the Enemy informed of his resolution, by a shameful, and precipitous flight (which was the highest acknowledgement of their weakness he could possibly desire) prevented his design. They embarked therefore all their Artillery, their Equipage, and their Sick by night; the Port of Socoa (which they were Masters of) affording them conveniency so to do, by the same way, and with so little noise drawing off the rest of their Forces, that their design was not discovered, till they were all aboard. The Duke de la Valette was no sooner informed of their flight, The Duke de la Valette defeats the Spanish Army without Fight. but that he drew up to the Fort, which was surrendered to him without resistance: But it is not to be imagined how many several Objects of Misery were to be seen in their Camp; nor to what extremities, by his long perseverance, they had been reduced. They then quitted him their Forts, giving him thereby the most absolute, and most happy Victory could possibly be desired; so that he had the good fortune almost without men (at least with Forces not half so great as the Enemies) without money (having never touched a penny of the King's) almost without Victuals (having had none save what by the industry, and providence of Vertamont Intendant de la justice had been conveyed to the Frontier) and without the loss of any one man of note, to ruin an entire Army of an invading Enemy, to make them spend ten months' time in vain, to consume Provisions sufficient for the plentiful subsistence of the greatest Army, and to leave three thousand of their men behind them, for a testimony of their Defeat. Yet how great, and of what utility soever this Victory might be, to the Kingdom's Honour, and Safety, the Court was notwithstanding dissatisfied with the success; who seeing he had done more, than any one durst propose to himself, and outstriped the hopes, and expectation of those who were emulous of his Virtue, and would have been glad some disaster had befallen him, were by no means satisfied with this performance; as if he had not done enough in doing so much with so little means, and with so great safety, and reputation to his own Person, and Name. Had he been at this time in a state of Favour, what recompense might he not reasonably have expected for two Services of so high importance, and both performed in one Campagne? Which though he failed of through the ill Offices of some, that blinded by Animosity could not discern his Merit; yet such as will make a right Judgement of things, must maugre the ingratitude, and injustice of the Age, set a right Value upon them. Which nevertheless is but coldly received at Court. I know very well (without mentioning the Defeat of the Spanish Army, which speaks sufficiently for itself) that the other exploit has been highly magnified by disinterested persons, that had at that time the principal Command of Poictou, and Xaintonge; who have declared that all the Provinces on this side the River Loire, had run an extreme danger, had the general disorder, to which the people were apparently, and absolutely inclined, not been suppressed by the vigour and celerity, wherewith the Duke acted upon this occasion. If the King's Affairs had the good success you have heard, under the Conduct of the Duke de la Valette in Guienne, they succeeded no less fortunately upon the Frontier of Picardy, The Duke de Candale, and the Cardinal de la Valette command the Army in Picardy. under the command of the Duke de Candale, and the Cardinal de la Valette his Brothers. These two Generals jointly commanded the King's Army in those parts, and so well, that they had in a short time retaken the Castle of Cambresis, Maugbeuge, and Lendrecies in the end. That which was most remarkable in the Siege of this last place, was, that they employed fewer days to take it, than the Emperor Charles the Fifth had formerly squandered away months to go without it; who after a six months' Leaguer, had been constrained ingloriously to quit the Siege: And all these things were done in the very face of the Cardinal Infanta, who having been baffled in two signal Engagements, durst no more make trial of our Generals Arms. The Duke of Espernon victorious in two extremities of the Kingdom, by the Valour of his three Sons, and hoping that the utility of these important Services for the Crown, would at least secure the repose of his old Age, thought of nothing more, than by a gentle hand to compose the Affairs of his own Government, and so to order all things by his Moderation, and Justice, that the people committed to his Charge, might enjoy the sweets of Peace, even in the greatest tumults of War. To this end therefore he with great generosity, and constancy, rejected the offer that was made to him, of the Command of a great Army wherewithal to invade the Enemy's Country, proposing to himself a greater glory in maintaining that little part of the Kingdom entrusted to his care, in security, and peace, than in all the Pomp that was laid before his eyes to allure him. How great a happiness had it been if he could have effected this good design, and by that means have spun out the remainder of his exceeding old Age in the calms of Vacancy, and repose? neither was the fault his, that he did not bring this virtuous intention to the desired end: but some ambitious, and interested Spirits, having infatuated the Court with propositions of vain and imaginary Conquests, prevailed so far with the great Minister, that it was determinately resolved, the Scene of the War should be transferred into Spain, and that by the Siege of Fontarabie it should be begun. The Enterprise was of no small difficulty, as it has since been proved; which the Cardinal also was very perfect in, as having long before caused the place to be considered by the Duke de la Valette himself, who had then diverted him from that design: upon this occasion however he would no more remember the reasons by which he had sometimes suffered himself to be overruled; but having premeditated to engage both the Father, and the Son in an Enterprise, wherein he resolved they should both perish, he sent them positive word, that they must either absolutely undertake this War, and advance so much money, as was necessary to begin it, or that the King would send the Prince of Condé to command his Arms in Guienne. The Duke of Espernon, accustomed of old to the ill usage of the Court, was nothing surprised with these Threats; but on the contrary what was laid before him in the nature of a Penalty, being conformable to his own desire, he gave the Court to understand, that he should ever esteem it a great Honour, to have this Prince a Judge of his Actions; and that he should be very glad the King would please to give him a Command in his Government. He wanted not Servants about him, to dissuade him from sending such a Message, and to represent to him the danger of inviting a greater person than himself into a place where his Authority was absolute, and where he had no rival to dispute it with him; laying before him withal many more examples of such as had repent the having submitted their Power to a Superior, than of such as in so doing had found their expectation answered by the event: But the Duke was so confident in the Affection the Prince of Condé had manifested to him in these latter times, that he could not possibly entertain the least distrust, and moreover seeing it was absolutely determined, that the Province of Guienne should bear the burden of the War with Spain, he had much rather the Expenses of the War should be stated by a great Prince, who by his Quality was privileged from all Forms, than that he by imposing them should be constrained to submit to the severity of an Inquisition, and be brought by his Enemies to an Account. But that which most of all confirmed him in this Resolution, was the advantage that would thereby accrue to the Duke de la Valette his Son, who having nothing to do in Military Affairs, but to execute the Prince's Orders only, would by that means be nothing accountable for any event of the War; and as to any thing else, he was very well assured, that what Employment soever should be conferred upon him, he would ever so behave himself, as to deserve no other, than the greatest honour and applause. Upon these prudent Considerations it was that the Duke resolved to write to the Prince of Condé, to entreat he would please to accept the Command that was offered him in Guienne, assuring him (as it was very true) that nothing could be a greater satisfaction to him, than to have the Honour to kiss his Hands in a place where he might have opportunity to give him some testimonies of the passionate affection he had for his Service. Neither was he satisfied with sending him this Compliment from himself alone, he would moreover make the Duke de la Valette do the same; so that the Prince, who before would never consent to take upon him any Employment in the Duke's Governments made thenceforward no difficulty to accept it: However, things not succeeding according to the Duke's desire, men took hence an occasion to censure his Discretion, and to condemn his Conduct, (as it usually falls out) because he proved unhappy in the end. The End of the Eleventh Book. THE HISTORY Of the LIFE of the Duke of Espernon. The TWelfth Book. THE Prince of Condè had no sooner accepted the Employment, Ann● 1638. but that a very ample Commission was forthwith drawn up for him, by virtue whereof he was to Command, not only in Guienne, but also in Languedoc, Navarre, Bearne, and Foix. His Letters Patents were dispatched at St. Germains en Say the Tenth of March; a Copy of which the Prince took care to send to the Duke of Espernon the one and twentieth, by the Sieur Bonneau his Secreary, together with a Letter that contained these words. Monsieur, It is with great reluctancy, that by his Majesty's Order I must go to Command his Forces in your Government, knowing as I do, that to have his Majesty's Service there well performed, there had been no need of any other person than yourself, and Monsieur de la Valette your Son; notwithstanding such being his Royal Pleasure I must of necessity obey. Of my Commission I have here sent you a Copy, assuring you withal, that in the exercise of it, I shall take all occasions to manifest to you my entire affection; and that I will be so long as I live, Monsieur, Your Affectionate Cousin, and Humble Servant Henry of Bourbon. To this Letter the Duke returned a very civil Answer, The Duke asks leave to retire himself to Plassac. but, before he received it, had sent to desire leave to retire himself to his House Plassac; of which Request though the pretence was to enter into a course of Physic for the recovery of his Health; yet the true reason was, that he might be out of the way of having any Disputes with the Prince about the Affairs of his Government, which he could not, without great grief, have seen afflicted with those miseries wherewith it was threatened; nor perhaps without expressing such a dislike of that harsh way of proceeding, as might have given him Offence. A thing which all the Friends and Servants he had at Court having foreseen, they had advised him to this course; his Sons, who were best acquainted with his tickle, and impatient humour, were of this advice: but there is great appearance that the first thoughts of retiring were inspired by the Prince himself, who having in other Employments, where the Duke and he had served together, had trial enough of his difficult humour, would no more be subject to those contrarieties he had formerly endured, and had therefore doubtless prompted him with that resolution. The Duke's Request therefore being so conformable to the Prince's desires, and to the sense of the Court, it was no hard matter for him to obtain that in the quality of a favour, which had doubtless been enjoined him as a punishment, had he not by speaking first prevented a Command from the King to the same effect; for it had been from that time forward (as it has been evident since) been resolved upon to withdraw him from his Government, and to suspend him from all the Functions of his Command. Nevertheless having lighted so pat upon the humour of the great Ministers, by the advice of his Friends, he was very civilly treated in his Majesty's Answer, which was couched in these terms. Cousin, Having found by your Letter of the eigteenth instant, and moreover understood by the mouth of the Sieur de Laurilliere the * Secretaire de Commandemen, ou d'Estat, The four Principal Secretaries, who in the Court of France sign Letters Patents, and Dispatches of State. Secretary of my Dispatches, Anno 1637. that in order to your Health, by the change of Air, and the use of some Remedies have been prescribed you by your Physicians, you desire, for some time, to retire yourself to your House of Plassac: I send you this to let you know, that any thing which may either concern your health, or satisfaction being very pleasing to me, I do willingly grant you the liberty you desire, to go to your said House; assuring myself, that even from thence you will have a vigilant eye to whatsoever may concern the good of my Service within the precincts of your Government. In the mean time I shall pray to God, Cousin, to have you in his Holy Protection. From St. Germains en Say the 28 th'. day of March 1638. The Duke very well satisfied with this answer, began to make himself ready to begin his Journey, so soon as the Prince should be arrived in Guienne; where, whilst he waited in expectation of his coming, he passed away the time with the Duke de Candalé his eldest Son, entertaining him with greater familiarity, and freedom, than till that time he had ever done; whose complacency, and fine Behaviour made at this time so great an impression upon the Duke his Father, that certainly this Son had never been so dear to him, as when he was upon the point to lose him; in somuch that his present joy was no little disposition to augment the approaching grief soon after occasioned by his unexpected Death. The Duke de la Valette had in the interim of these Dispatches from the King, The Duke de la Valette is constrained to make a journey to Court, and the Prince of Condé been obliged to make a Journey to Court, to which he had been engaged contrary both to his Majesty's express Order, and also his own resolution. He knew very well the ill Offices had been done him to the Cardinal since the business of Corbie, glanced at in the preceding Discourse, he was moreover very well acquainted with the implacable nature of the person, who conceived himself so highly offended by him, to which his power was no less known to him, than his malice; considerations that altogether had made him positively determine not to put himself into his hands, that he might not add to the number of those who had already tasted the utmost effects of his Indignation; choosing rather to live in his Government in safety, though in disgrace, than to expose himself to the almost inevitable dangers he was to wade through to a faint, and dissembled Reconciliation. But how determinate soever he had been in that resolution, it was impossible for him to keep it; for those who had imprudently engaged his Majesty in a War with Spain, as maliciously made the Cardinal some overtures of Accommodation, as a thing solicited by the Duke de la Valette himself, who desired nothing less, exposing him by that means to the greatest hazard he perhaps ever ran in the whole time of his Life. The Treaty however being thus set on Foot, the Duke seeing himself reduced to a necessity, But with infinite danger either of breaking openly with the Cardinal, or of going immediately to him, chose in truth the most dangerous course; but withal that by which he could at that time alone secure the Fortune of his Family, and the repose of the Duke his Father, which he ever preferred before his own particular safety. This last consideration therefore prevailed with him to undertake this Journey, so that he went to Court, and had some Conference with the Cardinal; who, because he would make all the use of him he could before he would destroy him, thinking fit to spare him at that time, with a dissimulation peculiar to himself, received him at the greatest rate of kindness, and feeedom could possibly be put on; protesting an absolute Oblivion of all former discontents, and making the King to give him the same assurance; which being done, he dismissed him, much more satisfied that he had escaped the present danger, than any ways secure of his good intention for the time to come At his return from this Voyage, The Frince of Condé arrives in Guienne. he found the Prince of Condé already arrived in Guienne. The Duke his Father had received him at Bourdeaux with all imaginable Honours; wherein, though doubtless there was a great deal due to his Quality, as being a Prince of the Blood; yet it is most certain, that in this unusual complacency the Duke had an equal regard to his Person. His respect proceeded so far, that not content to pay him all the deference, and submission he was capable of in his own person, he would moreover extend his civility further, by employing his Authority, and interest with the Parliament of that City for his full satisfaction. The Prince would that at their coming to visit him, they should Compliment him by the title of Monseigneur, and the Company insisted upon the contrary, as a term at that time not in use: but the Duke interposing thereupon, the Interest he had in the Deputies of that Assembly, prevailed with them so far, that the Ceremony passed in the end according to the Prince's desire. All these Civilities paid by way of advance, met not however with that acknowledgement the Duke had reason to expect; he was not ignorant, that although the Prince used him with respect enough in outward show, he nevertheless did him underhand all the ill Offices he could; he knew that scarce any, but such as were his known, and declared Enemies, were admitted to his presence: That he made himself merry with Stories they reported of his behaviour, and was very attentive to, if not inquisitive after the Informations of such as were discontented with him: all which notwithstanding, the Duke very secure in the Conscience of his own Conduct, did not much concern himself at this unfriendly way of proceeding, but continued to live with the Prince at the same respective rate, paying him all imaginable Honours; and the inclination he had for his Service making him slight, or give little credit to those flying rumours that daily came to his ear, he could not be jealous in the least of an Affection he had by so many Titles so highly deserved. It is also true that the Prince on the other side showed him in public the best countenance he could possibly put on, would do him the honour to dine with him at his House, and to that purpose invited himself, where the Duke entertained him after his accustomed manner, and with a splendour natural to him upon such eminent occasions. To this Entertainment the Prince brought some of his particular Servants, as the Duke also invited some of his own Friends; so that the Company consisted of eighteen persons. It has been thought by some, that this was an appointment purposely contrived by the Prince, and those about him, to make themselves merry with the good old man, and with an intent to put him upon an extravagant recital of his old actions, full of Honour, and Glory, to turn afterwards his Gascon humour into Mirth, and Laughter. Neither did they fail to tempt him to it, by falling into discourse of his Favour, Wars, Mistresses, and other things, which vain and ambitious men are commonly well enough pleased withal, that they may have an occasion to vent their vainglory, by speaking loud in their own praises; but the wise old Duke deceived their expectation; answering to all that was propounded with so great modesty, and discretion, and therein so highly satisfying all the Company, as gave the Prince impressions much contrary to those wherewith he had perhaps been prepossessed, confirming him more than ever in the opinion of his virtue, which to him was already well known, and that to such a degree, that rising from the Table, full of admiration, at so prudent, and so happy an old Age, I myself heard him say to some of his Confidents, who perhaps had been brought thither to have their share of the sport, that certainly (speaking of the Duke) he was the greatest man in the world. But how great soever he might be, he was not, it seems, so happy to please him now, as he had been at other times; and either the Prince had changed his inclination with the face of Affairs, or if he yet retained a kindness for him, the strict Orders he had received from Court, would not give him leave to discover it; so that he grew impatient of his stay at Bourdeaux, from whence also the Duke was resolved not to depart, till some Assignments were first paid him, lest after his back should be once turned, that money might be converted to other use. The delays therefore growing insupportable to the Prince, he resolved to complain of them to the Court, from whence that he might the more speedily obtain the thing he desired (which was a positive command for the Duke to depart the Province) he accompanied his Complaint with a very ill Office, which though derived from a very light occasion, yet in the evil aspect of the ruling Planets of that time, the least pretext was but too powerful an argument to prejudice a man already proscribed for ruin. It was then no hard matter for the Prince to obtain his desire of the Court, and that in terms of the greatest severity, it being said that he had Orders for the Duke to depart from Bourdeaux without further delay, and to retire himself to his House Plassac, according to the leave he had desired, and obtained, with an Injunction moreover not to stir from thence till his Majesty's further Pleasure. It should seem that the Prince would retain so much respect for the Duke upon this occasion, as not to afflict him before his departure with the knowledge of this severe Command, contenting himself with communicating the Dispatch to some few only of the Duke's Friends, and Enemies, without delivering it to himself: but not one of his Friends would take upon him to be the bearer of so unwelcome news, all of them generally aprehending lest the Duke, after so ill usage, and so contrary from what he had reason to expect at the Prince's hands, might lash out into some passionate expressions, that would beget ill blood betwixt them. At last he departed from Bourdeaux in May, when not conceiving himself to be so ill used either by the Prince or the Court, as he really was, before he began his Journey, he would go to receive his Commands; where after some expressions of Compliment, and Respect, he told him, That he was going to undertake a War, wherein he would infallibly meet with greater difficulties than had been represented to him: That it was not likely the King of Spain, whose Power throughout all Europe was sufficiently known, would suffer one of the best places of his Dominions to be lost, without attempting to relieve it: That he did therefore humbly beseech his Highness, if any occasion should happen wherein he might be serviceable, either to the King, or to himself, he would be pleased to honour him with his Commands; that in case he would do him that favour, he would engage within fifteen days after he should receive his Summons, to bring him a thousand Gentlemen to the Frontier, at the head of whom he should take it for a great glory to die, thereby to acquire his Highness the Honour of a signal Victory. The Duke might without all doubt have been a great deal better than his word, had he been made use of upon this occasion, and have rendered by that means the Battle of Fontarabie as illustrious, and successful, as it proved cloudy, and malevolent to the French Renown. The Duke was no sooner gone, but that the Prince began to prepare all things for the War. The Land Army by the exceeding diligence he used was quickly set on foot: but the Sea Forces were so long in making ready, that the Prince impatient of their delays, by which he was likely to lose the season, and opportunity of doing the Service the King expected from him, advanced to the Frontier, invested the place, and began the Siege. The Enemy alarmed at the vigour, and Celerity, wherewith the Prince made his Approaches by Land in order to the taking of the place, having the Sea open to them, two several times conveyed Relief into the Fortress in the very face of our Land Army, The Royal Army baffled before Fontarabie. and at one of those put a Governor into it; a Relief of so infinite importance, as that it was first the cause of the places preservation, and afterwards of the disaster that befell the Royal Arms. I shall not trouble my Reader with a long Narrative of the manner of this Siege, I could on the contrary wish it were in my power to extinguish the memory of it for ever; not that the Enemy however obtained any so signal reputation by it, they only making use of a kind of Lethargy, of which our whole Army was at that time sick; so that although they made shift to kill a few people, that lay without motion, and consequently uncapable of any resistance; yet had they no other advantage by it, than what their Fortune, and our mischance combined together put into their hands, even beyond their own aim, or expectation. And this is all I should have said of this business, had not some endeavoured to have engaged the Duke de la Valett's Honour in the miscarriage: but his interests being not to be separated from those of the Duke his Father, and the concern here being the vindication of Truth, and the defence of both their Honours, from Calumny, and the malice of malevolent men, I conceive I may here be permitted to say (always retaining the respect due to those who were not very favourable to them) that it is not to be denied, For which the Duke de la Valette is unjustly blamed. but that the Duke de la Valette was the first man, who going over on foot, and up to the middle in water, at the head of the Army opened the way into the Enemy's Country, beating them from the Trenches they had cast up upon the Banks of the River, to defend that Pass: That at the Quarter where he commanded in the Siege, Reasons for his Justification. he had very much advanced his Approaches, and so as had infallibly reduced the place to a necessity of being taken on that side, had it not been relieved: neither is it to be contradicted, but that he gave advice to Fight th● Relief so soon as ever it began to appear. They know moreover very well, that he had nothing at all to do in the Siege, at the time it was raised, he having resigned his Post to the Archbishop of Bourdeaux, by express Order from the Prince, and under his own hand; that he was above a League distant from the Battle, when it was sought, and that being totally ignorant of the disorder, till he had it from the Runaways, who brought the Alarm into his Quarters; he thereupon immediately put himself into the head of those men he had with him: That he rallied as many as he could of those that were squandered, and that with these, and his own men having stayed the pursuit of the Conquerors, he by that means preserved all those, who had escaped from the Defeat. These truths, though sufficiently known to all the world, were not nevertheless of force to hinder his Enemies from laying the whole miscarriage of this business at his door, and from charging him, who was certainly innocent, with the fault of ten thousand who were guilty. He was not so much as permitted without a Crime, to set a manly countenance upon this disaster, or to manifest his Courage, and Assurance upon so dangerous an occasion; even his Valour, and constancy (an unheard of injustice) were the main things in his Accusation, it being objected against him that he was glad of the mischance, and was observed to laugh at the Defeat; because he did not appear dejected, and showed a countenance, void of fear, and confusion. He was not however so unjust to them, but has ever commended (as there was just cause) both the Actions, and Intentions of those who commanded at this Siege, never doubting in the least of their Sincerity, and passionate desire to serve the King effectually, and well; and ever believing, that had their Valour been seconded, as it ought to have been, they would have obtained those advantages over the Enemy, was reasonably to be expected from their Bravery, and good Conduct: But if the chance of Arms was contrary to them, if the panic Terror that seized the Soldier, would not permit them to follow the example of their Leaders; and if his Counsels which would have procured safety to the Army were not followed, or approved, why should he be rendered criminal, for not having been able to prevail upon the humours, or opinions of other men? Some days before this Disgrace happened, the Duke of Espernon had returned without Order into his Government, after having continued some months at his House Plassac, The Duke of Espernon returns without Order from the King inhis Government of Guienne. wherein his design in truth was to have passed away his time in repose at his other House Cadillac, without intermeddling at all with the trouble of Affairs: neither would he so much as go to Bourdeaux, to the end that what accident soever should happen, nothing might reflect upon him; nor that he might any ways appear responsible for the event of things, which he ever apprehended would be finister enough; and seeing the Orders had been left in the Province, deposited in the hands of men of very little Experience, and Authority, and who had scarce any other argument to recommend them to that trust, save only the hatred they openly bore to him; he very well judged by the appearance (which proved also in the end but too certain) that from these Orders ill executed (as they were like to be) nothing but disaster, and confusion could ensue. Whilst the Duke lived in apprehension of this mishap, The Duke of Espernon receive● news of the B●rth of the Dolphin. he received the joyfullest news that could possibly arrive, which was, that of the Birth of Monsegnieur the Dolphin, the same whom we now see reigning, with so much Glory, and Happiness in the Throne of France, that there is not that prosperity can fall within the limits of Humane Expectation, we may not reasonably promise to ourselves from so auspicious a beginning. By a Dispatch from the King, dated the fifth of September (the precise day of this illustrious Birth) the Duke was to order a public Thanksgiving, and to cause Bonfires to be made for Joy of this Blessing to his Majesty, and the whole Kingdom. The Courier, who had been expressly dispatched away to the Duke, having found him at Cadillac (willing (without all doubt) to flatter his credulity) told him, That it was his Majesty's desire he should himself in person be assisting at the Ceremonies which were to be performed in the City of Bourdeaux, to render the Solemnity the more Illustrious by his Presence; a deceit that gave a strange addition of joy to the good old Duke, who could not in himself but hug and applaud his own foresight, by which he had so seasonably prevented the King's desire; and in that pleasing error he departed from Cadillac the 29 th'. of the same month to go to Bourdeaux, where being arrived, he began the very same Evening by Bonfires, thundering of Cannon, and by infinite numbers of Lights, set up in all the Windows of the City, to manifest no less his own, than the public contentment; and for a final testimony of the high satisfaction he had received by this good news, he rewarded the Courier with a Chain of Gold, to the value of 500 Crowns, which he gave him at the time he dismissed him back with his answer to the King. But the inundation of this Joy, The Duke receives news of the Defeat of Fontarabie. than which nothing could be greater, was (as it commonly falls out) only a forerunner of the worst tidings could almost arrive, which was the disaster of Fontarabie, a private and uncertain murmur of the defeat of our Army arising even in the height of these public Solemnities, and Acclamations; and as ill News does for the most part prove too true; so this which for the space of two, or three hours was a rumour only, passed on a sudden for certain, and met ●o little contradiction, that the truth of it was no longer to be doubted. The Duke of Espernon, though infinitely surprised, at this evil success; yet not believing the Duke de la Valette could be any ways accountable for the miscarriage, he was at present no further afflicted at it, than for what concerned the prejudice he saw must thence of necessity derive to the prosperity of his Majesty's Affairs, and the reputation of his Arms: but understanding soon after that their commond Enemies endeavoured to lay the blame of this baffle upon the Duke his Son, he then began prudently to apprehend, that in the evil dispositions of the Court against them at that time, such as were emulous of their Virtue, or that had particular animosities to the person either of the one, or the other, would with great eagerness embrace this occasion, though infinitely remote, to work their desired ruin. As if therefore he had at a distance discovered the Cloud that was gathered to break upon him, The Duke of Espernon returns to Plass●c. he withdrew himself insensibly from Bourdeaux, under colour of going to visit his Territories in Medoc, where he received the first Command by the ordinary way of the Post to return to Plassac, and from thence not to stir, till his Majesty's further pleasure; and presently after had another brought him by Miller's one of the Gentlemen in ordinary to the King. This Gentlemen had been expressly dispatched to the Duke de la Valette, to summon him from the King, to come render his Majesty an account of his actions; whom he also found very ready to obey the Order, and to begin his Journey so soon as he should receive permission so to do, by the return of a Gentleman, he had dispatched away to his Majesty for that purpose, upon the intimation he had received of the ill Offices had been done him at Court. As for the Duke of Espernon having prevented this second Order, by his early retiring, Milleres found him already at Plassac; from whence he also never after departed till three, or four years after, that he went to end his days at Loches. Though it be no part of my design to anticipate the minds of men by extraordinary accidents, or to forge, and obtrude upon their belief Predictions, and Prodigies, to render the person of whom I speak more venerable, and esteemed; I ought not, I conceive, nevertheless to omit such memorable accidents, as sometimes happened during the progress of this long and illustrious Life. I shall therefore tell you, A very extraordinary accident by Lightning. that when the Duke parted from Bourdeaux to go this Journey into Medoc, of which I was now speaking, he commanded me to stay behind in the City, there to expect his return. According to which Order I remained in the Town, when happening one afternoon to be in a House opposite to the Duke's Place of Puipaulin, about three, or four of the Clock, on a sudden, though the day was exceeding clear, and bright, there arose so violent a Storm, that after two, or three Claps of Thunder, a Bolt falling upon the highest Tower of his Lodgings, first carried away part of the covering, and from thence piercing through the roof of the main Body of the House, set fire on some Furniture of considerable value, that were bestowed in the Garret, from whence descending lower into the Duke's own Chamber, it made a great Breach in the Chimney, and thence piercing further still into the Chamber underneath the same, wherein his Sons were used to lie, it left its mark there also in the Transom of a Window, which it broke in two pieces, and proceeded thence to lose itself in the Foundations of the Fabric. Who is it that would not have been struck at this ill Omen? I must confess that at that time I was rather willing to ranek this accident amongst things of chance, than thence to derive conjectures of any misadventure to come; considering the Portent (if such it were) threatened him, in whose Honour, and good Fortune, I was myself so nearly concerned: So that all I made of it was to run to the Lodging with a Kinsman of mine, who had been spectator with me of this Tempest, to look if the flash of Lightning we had seen to dart upon the Tower, had not fired the House; which proved to be no unseasonable precaution, we finding the Furniture already flaming, so as to threaten the whole Pile with a total ruin: but we made shift to get it suddenly quenched, which was also the only fruit of our Care, and all that could be done upon that occasion. The Duke was no sooner arrived at his House Plassac, but that he understood by Haumont, whom he had a few days before dispatched to Court, Passionate expressions of the Cardinal against the Duke de la Valette. to what a degree the King had been incensed against the Duke de la Valette his Son; the Cardinal having declared so highly against him, as to protest in public, That he would in this case execute the Office of the King's Attorney General in his prosecution (which were his express words) and that his Majesty had not forgot the business of Corbie; nor as yet granted him an Indemnity concerning that Affair. To be short, he appeared so immeasurably animated against him, that no one doubted of the Duke de la Valett's manifest ruin, should he in this juncture of Affairs adventure to go to Court. He had notwithstanding put himself upon his way in order to that Journey, when being arrived near B●rdeaux, he there received information of the evil dispositions of the Court towards him, and above all, that the business of Corbie was still upon Record (for as touching that of Fontarabie, he was not much concerned) which made him send an express Dispatch to the Duke his Father, to entreat him, that by some one of his Servants, in whom they might equally confide, he would send him his opinion concerning his Journey to the King. This Servant accordingly arrived at Bourdeaux the same day that the Duke de la Valette himself came thither, where he told him from the Duke his Father, That in an Affair of the importance of that which was now in agitation, he ought not to expect advice from a Father, who was much more solicitous of his safety than he himself could be: That herein his tenderness and affection ought to stand equally suspected to them both: That as he durst not give him counsel to go to Court, knowing as he did, to what a dangerous degree it was animated against him; so could he not advise him to depart the Kingdom, perhaps never to see his face again: That therefore he was himself to clear all those doubts, and thereupon to form his own determination; wherein if he should resolve upon withdrawing himself out of France, By which he is diverted from going to Cour●. he was by no means of opinion that he ought to engage his Safety on this side so many Rivers, to come to take his leave of him, lest his Enemies might take that opportunity to attempt something upon his Person: That so short a Visit would only serve to augment their mutual Affliction: That he was therefore to have patience, and to reserve himself for better times: And that he might assure himself of his Affection, which should never be wanting to him, whatever could possibly arrive. We are now come to the time of the Duke of Espernon's greatest Disgraces, The Duke of Espernon's D●sgraces. which from henceforward also were continual, and unintermitted to the hour of his Death; and Fortune, who had hitherto made a show of going hand in hand with Virtue, and Prudence in the conduct of his Life, by a volubility, by so much the more dangerous and unseasonable, as it was the less suspected, and unforeseen, now totally forsaken his Interests to leave him in the Arms, and to the protection of his own single Virtue. The first, and the rudest shock his constancy could possibly receive, was the absence of the Duke de la Valette his beloved Son; which after he had a few days lamented, H● is deposed of his Government. with the tenderness, and compassion of an excellent, and passionately affectionate Father, he had news brought him of a rumour, that was already spread at Bourdeaux, that the Prince of Condé was to be made sole Governor of Guienne, and had already received Orders to dispossess him of Chasteau-Trompette, therein to place one of the King's Domestic Servants. The Duke had all his best Furniture, besides other Riches, laid up in this place; who having not so much as once dreamed of being so suddenly divested of his Command, had not consequently at his departure out of the Province, removed any thing from thence: Sudden order was therefore to be taken in an Affair of this importance, and even the very moments of time to be husbanded, which also were not many more, than was necessary for the effecting his purpose. Those to whose fidelity and care he entrusted the management of this business were so diligent, and so faithful, that in one night, they secured to the value of above a million of Livers, what in Money, Jewels, and Plate; of which the Money, and Jewels were carried to Plassac, and there safe delivered into his own hands, and the Plate was conveyed to Cadillac, and all done with so great secrecy, that those to whom the Government of the place was a few days after committed, expected to have found all this Treasure there; which if they had, it would have been in great danger of being put into the King's hands, as the Arms, and other of the Duke's own peculiar Goods were, which he could never again recover, to the hour of his Death. So soon as they had thus stripped the Duke of his Command, The D●ke of Espernon calumniated and wrested tho●e places he held in Guienne out of his hands, their common Enemies began openly to labour the persecution not only of the Duke de la Valette, but of the Duke his Father also; wherein the Father being no ways questionable for the disafter of Fontarabie, as having had nothing at all to do in that Affair, he was blemished with all the ignominy that malice could invent, or the tongue of Calumny utter, against a man of Fidelity, and Honour; and his Son, who by his absence lay exposed to all the mischief was intended against him, was proceeded against as a Criminal, and a Traitor. In order to the Duke de la Valett's Trial, Accusers, and Witnesses were found out, some whereof were frighted by menaces, and others suborned by money (for nothing was spared upon this occasion) into these excellent Offices; and out of this kind of Evidence an Information was suddenly drawn up, sufficient to darken, and overwhelm the clearest, and most unspotted innocence in the world. The Intercessions, and Services of the Duke de Candale, and the Cardinal de la Valette, who commanded the Army of Italy were fruitless, and invalid upon this occasion; nay, they had much ado to prevail for a little Truce, and cessation from those persecutions, wherewith the Ruling Powers were resolved to disquiet the old Age of the Duke their Father; and that was granted to them in the quality of an extraordinary Grace, and Favour, which was hardly to be excused without shame: With so unjust a return were they rewarded for the expense of their Fortunes, the hazard of their Lives, and their continual vigilancy and care, with an Army unfurnished of all necessaries of War, to withstand the greatest power of the most dangerous Enemies to the Crown, and Kingdom. All these Afflictions, Anno 1639. how great soever, were yet but the forerunners of those, which by the Divine Justice, or Bounty were prepared, The Duke of Espernon falls dangerously sick. wherewith to exercise the Duke's Virtue. They soon shifted from outward things, to wound him more sensibly in his own person; and whether it were the unkindness he took at the ill usage he daily suffered, or the infirmities of his very great Age only, that occasioned his distemper, so it was that he fell into the most acute, and most dangerous Disease, he had ever before sustained, during the whole course of his Life. He was for four months together seized with a defluxion of Rheum, by which all his Members were strangely benumbed, and that numbness accompanied with excessive dolours in all his parts: from which pain he no sooner began to find some ease the March following, but that the joy of his Amendment was soon quashed with the sad news of the Death of the Duke de Candale his eldest Son. The Death of the Duke de Candale. This Son, become infinitely dear to the Duke his Father since his last Visit, lay at Cazal with part of the Army he had in charge jointly with the Cardinal de la Valette his Brother; where the tenth day of March, falling ill of a Tertian Ague, and that growing to a double Tertian at the third Fit, and afterwards to an unintermitted Fever, it proved in the end mortal the eleventh day of his Sickness. The Cardinal his Brother immediately upon this accident dispatched away a Courier to the Duke their Father to acquaint him with it; but some days passed over before any one durst tell him the news, for fear left the grief, which could not but be exceeding great, might cause him to relapse into his former disposition, from which also he was yet but upon the mending hand. At last his Servants apprehending it might by some, or other be indiscreetly and unseasonably blurted out, they conceived it better with some preparatory arguments, to sweeten the bitterness of his loss, to make him acquainted with it, than to detain him still in ignorance of a thing, which could not always, nor very long be concealed from him. The Duke had kept about him during all the time of his last Sickness, a Father Capuchin, in whom he reposed a singular Confidence: This good Father therefore as he was one day talking with him, having fallen into a Discourse of the inconstancy of Humane Life, and the necessity of dying, and therein slipped in some mention of the Duke de Candale's Sickness, the Duke presently understood the rest, and thereupon spared the good man the pains of any further preparation. When his countenance, wherein before this part of their Discourse something of cheerfulness had appeared, suddenly changing into a more severe Gravity (though only so as to compose it to his constancy) he said, Father, I have ever been disposed to submit myself, and all my concerns to the good pleasure of God; and I beseech him of his goodness to give me Fortitude enough to conform myself also to it upon this occasion: My Son is dead, I am certain of it; and if he died in the fear of God, he is happier than we, at least out of the reach of those persecutions Fortune is preparing for us who are left behind. After which they presented him the Letters that contained the Relation of his Death; by which the Duke being satisfied, it had been very constant, and Christian, he said again, That he praised God from the bottom of his heart, that in depriving him of one of his chiefest comforts, he had yet left him the hope in a short time to see his ●on in a better Life. He afterwards entertained himself some time in pious Discourse with that Holy Man; after which being again laid in bed, that he yet quitted not, but by intervals, he was heard in that privacy, a great while to weep those tears, and vent those sighs, which with extraordinary violence upon himself he had suppressed whilst there was any witness by: But after having paid what was due to the impulse of Nature, he summoned his wont constancy to encounter this Accident; the bitterness whereof, though he could by no art banish from his remembrance; yet did he ever keep himself upright from manifesting his sorrow with the least weakness. There were very few persons of condition in the Kingdom, who did not signify to him by very civil Messages, and kind Letters, the part they shared with him in his grief upon this occasion; amongst whom Cardinal Richelieu himself was one, who made shift to find out some consolatory Compliments for a man he at the same instant persecuted with the most bloody effects he could possibly inflict upon him, he at the same time prosecuting the Duke de la Valette to the last extreme: The Duke de la Valette sentenced to Death, with Confiscarion of Offices, Honours, and Estate. For the information that had been drawn up against him, having been laid open in the presence of his Majesty the 25 th'. day of May, the greater part of the Judges had concluded him worthy of Death, the forfeiture of his Offices, and the confiscation of his Estate; yet were they not all of that opinion, Precedent Belieure, amongst the rest, taking upon him the honest boldness, to defend the innocence of the accused, and by an Oration no less Judicious, and Eloquent, than hardy and equitable, acquitting his own Conscience, and confirming himself in the high esteem already conceived of the great Worth, and Integrity which for so many happy years have been eminent in his Name, and Race. It would not become me in this place to enlarge myself upon the words of this Sentence, it having been pronounced by persons, to whom too great a respect is due, for any one to dare to complain: neither in truth is it to them, that the severity of it ought to be imputed: for in criminal matters the Evidence are the chief Judges, and consequently they at whose doors all that was extraordinary or severe in his proceeding aught of right to be laid. It has since appeared by the high and public justification of the party accused, and that in the face of the most August Tribunal of Justice in all Europe, what has been thought of the Depositions that were preferred against him, the Parliament of Paris having restored him to his Honour, Life, Offices, and Estate, which had been all taken from him by the Arrest of the Council: And he has this Obligation to his Enemies, not only by their means to have had an occasion wherein to vindicate his Innocency, and Honour: The Duke de la Valette solemnly justified. but moreover to have received the Eulogies for his brave Services, which his modesty would not have permitted him to have endured, had his Virtue never been disputed. But this last good not arriving in time to serve for any consolation to the Duke of Espernon, and that all his misfortunes succeeded in the neck of one another, without any the least shadow of Prosperity intervening to sweeten his Affliction, is not the stability of his mind, and the constancy of his Courage highly to be commended, The Duke of Espern●n still persecuted by the privation of a good part of his Estate. and admired, that could continue so firm in all the shocks of Fortune? A Fortitude that will discover itself, much better to our observation, if we separately consider the various occasions he had at this time wherein to exercise that Heroic Virtue. Disgrace knocked at his Door from the first arrival of the Prince in Guienne, as you may have already observed, and his Afflictions began to unveil themselves in the ill usage he at that time received by Order from the Court, very much contrary to what he had all the reason in the world to hope for, and expect; they were continued to him by the Command he received to withdraw himself out of his Government, which seemed to blast him with some kind of Ignominy and reproach: But what an overplus of vexation must it needs be, when by the ill success of Fontarabie, he saw all the miscarriage of that Expedition cast upon his Son? what a grief to see him prosecuted for a Criminal, and himself at the same time looked upon as a guilty man? They were both of them divested of their Offices, and Commands, and those transferred into the hands of their mortal, and most implacable Enemies: So that the Duke de la Valette was constrained to give way to their Power, and through infinite dangers to fly for Sanctuary into England, a Kingdom at that time agitated with Mutinous Factions, and Civil Discords of their own; whilst the Father in a Country House, exposed to their discretion, saw himself stripped of all his Employments, and his venerable old Age, so highly reverenced, and esteemed throughout the whole Kingdom, become an Object of Scorn to such as a few days before had truckled under his Authority, and trembled at his Name. If he was touched to the quick by these Afflictions, he was no less sensible of the privation of all his Privileges, Appointments, Pensions, and other Emoluments, that were the lawful Perquisits of his several Offices, and Commands; whereby they cut him off at one blow above fifty thousand Crowns of yearly Revenne, and by which means he found himself reduced to the bare Revenue of his own Estate, wherein he also suffered a very considerable diminution. These Affronts, and injuries were succeeded by long, and painful Diseases, and those by the death of his eldest Son, together with the Condemnation of the second, by which Sentence he also was dead in Law. Yet was not this all, and Almighty God, who upon so great, and illustrious a Subject would please to manifest the strength of his Arm, left him nothing entire, upon which He did not evidently make it appear. There remained to him in all these mishaps one refuge, that might still afford some stay, and support to his Affairs, and cherish him with some hope one day to restore them to their primitive condition: The Cardinal de la Valette his Son, was in a great Employment, he had formerly obliged Cardinal Richelieu to the highest degree, he was believed to be in great favour, and consideration with him; he had at least obtained a promise from him, that the old Age of the Duke his Father should not be molested; this Son was also ravished from him with the rest, and nothing left him to which he could in his greatest extremities have any visible recourse. We have often heard mention of the several afflictions and chastisements wherewith Almighty God hath sometimes been pleased to visit sinful men: The Death of the Cardinal de la Valette. but let us consider whether amongst all the examples of his Justice, there be many more eminent, than these in the case of the duke of Espernon. It had now been threescore and two years since the Duke first tasted the sweets of Favour, from which time Fortune, together with his own Virtue had raised him to all the degrees of Greatness, that render men considerable upon earth: There had scarce a year passed over his head, which had not added something to his Prosperity, he had acquired as great Riches, as many Offices, and Titles, as much Respect, Reputation, and Authority, as any other whoever of his time: but above all, his Greatness seemed to be established, and secure in the support of his three Sons; any of which by his merit was sufficient alone to sustain the Burden, who all three in less than six months' space were ravished from him, and himself reduced to the most deplorable solitude was possibly to be seen, or conceived. He acknowledged the Finger of God to be in all this, he submitted to his Justice, and was never observed more to reverence his unresisted Power, than when his hand lay most heavy upon him. But would it not be too light a preterition, to pass over the Death of the Cardinal de la Valette with so little Ceremony, and to take no further notice of it, than by what has been already said? Yes doubtless, and it was of too great importance to the interests of the Duke his Father, to be slipped over with so slight a mention. I shall therefore tell you, that this Cardinal, after the Death of the Duke de Candale his Brother, had alone sustained the King's declining Affairs in Italy, and with a very inconsiderably Army, had at once withstood the power of our Enemies, and the infidelity of our Allies: but in the end, either worn out with the continual toil of so many Affairs, or wounded with the ill usage he saw his Family daily receive, he fell into a Melancholy, that put him at last into a desperate Disease. The beginning of this Distemper was as light, as it had been in that of the Duke de Candale, and the issue of it as fatal. At the first news the Duke of Espernon received of his indisposition, though he had an account withal, that it was without any symptom of danger, he could not nevertheless forbear crying out aloud to those who were about him, That his Son was a dead man. A saying which, though at first spoke in passion only, in a few days turned into a Prophecy; the intelligence, that came in from time to time of his condition, still signified an increase of his Distemper, till after having seventeen days struggled with a Disease, that at the fifth had been concluded mortal, he ended a glorious Life, by a very constant and Christian Death. The Prince of joinville, eldest Son to the Duke of Guise, exercised at that time his first Arms, under the Discipline of so dear, and so generous a Kinsman; the Marshal de Turenne had also an Employment of Marshal de Camp in his Army; both which writ the Duke of Espernon the sad news of his Death, But the Thou, who never parted almost from his Bedside in all the time of his Sickness, and who had his entire Confidence in all things, writ a long Relation of it to be presented to the Duke, so soon as he should be in a condition to endure the reading. Here it was that his Servants were in the greatest strait: they doubted not, but that this loss, which apparently gave the last blow to all his hopes, would afflict him to the last degree; and although Nature, and the Virtues of this Son, should have taken a less impression upon him, than all the world knew they had done; they yet feared, his Constancy being exhausted by preceding misfortunes, he had not a sufficient stock left wherewithal to sustain the assault of this new affliction. In this perplexity they had recourse to d' Espruets Bishop of Saint Papoul, a Prelate whom the Duke, as well for his profound Learning as his exemplary Piety, and Goodness had in great Reverence, and particular Esteem. The Bishop at the first word very readily put himself into his Coach, and in all diligence came to Plassac, where presenting himself before the Duke, after he had some time entertained him with indifferent things, falling at last into discourse of his Son's Sickness, he told him that all his Friends and Servants were in great suspense at some uncertain rumours that were spread abroad in the Country. At that word the Duke was no more in doubt, but that he was dead; yet would he not upon the instant extract the utmost truth of his unfortunate loss: but changing his Discourse, entertained the Bishop with Affairs of another nature, till they were both called to Dinner, as they soon after were. It may easily be judged what a Dinner this was for the Duke, who could feed on nothing save his own sad Imaginations; his restlessness all the while he sat at meat, sufficiently mani●esting the anguish of his Soul: he notwithstanding contained himself in this violent agitation of mind, and continued at Table so long as was necessary to satisfy what was due to Decency, and Respect, without suffering himself to be transported into any action unbecoming his Gravity, and Wisdom. The Table being taken away, and he having retired himself into his Chamber sooner, than he ordinarily used to do, he caused his Secretary to be called in his behalf to write to Messieurs de joinville, de Turenne, de Thou, and de Fontravilles, to recommend to them the care of his Son's health, to whom all humane help was already fruitless, and vain; writing moreover to him himself some few lines under his own hand. One of his Gentlemen, who had lately been sent on the same errand, was now ready to depart with this new Dispatch, when the Duke, overcome with the violent agitations of his mind, was constrained to cast himself upon his Bed; where calling his Secretary to him, he said to him these words: I do not know why you should all dally with me thus long, nor to what end you should conceal from me the Death of the Cardinal my Son: is it that you imagine me so weak, I have not fortitude enough to support the News? Do not you deceive me, as the rest have done, but tell me the naked truth, which also cannot long be concealed from me. At which words the poor Gentleman, who for four or five days had had the power to govern his Tongue, had not now the same command over his Eyes; so that, his Tears having whether he would or no betrayed him to be the Messenger of the ill news he had hitherto so faithfully concealed, he proceeded by word of mouth to interpret, what was before but too legible in his tears, The Duke of Espe●non's constancy. and told his Master, That what he had prophesied the first hour he heard of his Son's Sickness, was but too true: That the news of his Death had been brought four days ago, but that his people, apprehending left so great a blow of mishap might ruin his health, had addressed themselves to Monsieur de Saint Papoul, to fortify him with his Consolation, in acquainting him with the fatal News. At which words he lift up his hands to Heaven, and after a profound Sigh, cried out aloud, O Lord, since thou hast reserved my old Age to survive the loss of my three Children, be pleased withal to give me strength wherewith to support the severity of thy Judgements. Hereupon the Bishop of Saint Papoul was presently called in to him, who, after having highly commended his resignation of himself, and his Affairs to the Will of God, made him a Learned Discourse infinitely full of such admirable Arguments, and Examples both Christian, and Moral, as were proper for his disconsolate condition: And then it was that they presented him with the relations of the Sickness, and Death of the Cardinal his Son; wherein was observed so many testimonies of Piety, and Resignation, so firm a confidence in the Divine Mercy, and so little concern for Humane Life, that every one concluded him infinitely happy, to have take his leave of it in so good, and so holy a disposition; and it was also from thence that the Duke derived his chiefest Consolations. After this he requested some respite from his Friends wherein to satisfy the resentments of Nature, and in private to pay some tears to his Affliction. His Curtains were therefore drawn, when his tears, which he had hitherto with so great violence to his sorrow suppressed, having now liberty to ●ally out flowed in so great abundance, that those about him began to fear his immoderate passion might endanger his health: but having remained two hours in this condition, he himself at last roused up his spirits so long overcharged with grief, and was heard to say, That Tears were to be left to women, and that it would be a shame a man could not allay his grief, but by so poor and effeminate a Remedy: That he would live perhaps to survive his Enemies: When starting from his Bed, he had so great a power over himself, as the same day again to appear in public. He entreated the Bishop of Papoul to bear him company, where he walked with him above two hours on foot, entertaining him all the while, either with Discourses of Piety, or the state of his present Fortune, and that with a constancy this good Prelate could never sufficiently magnify, and admire. It must nevertheless be confessed, The Duke of Espernon receives many Consolatory Letters, both from the King, Queen, the Monsieur, Cardinal, and most of the Eminent persons of the Kingdom. that amongst all these afflictions which were many, and extreme; the Duke likewise received very many, and great Consolations, or at lest what were intended for such, there being few persons of any eminent condition in France, who did not manifest the part they shared with him in his grief. The King did him the Honour to write very obligingly to him; he received the same Favour from the Queen, the Monsieur, all the Princes, Cardinal Richelieu; and almost all who were any ways considerable, either in Birth, or Dignity in the Kingdom, gave him testimonies, either of their Affection, or Esteem upon this sad occasion. But if out of all these Compliments he did extract any real Consolation, it was chiefly from the gracious manifestations of the Queen's Royal Favour to him, which took so much the deeper impression upon his mind, by how much he knew they proceeded from the heart of this excellent Princess. He had ever made her the object of all his Services; neither was there any he would not have been very ready to have performed for her, even in this moment of his greatest Adversity: An inclination, that as it gave him a legitimate Title to her Grace, and Favour, so was he the man of all the other Great Ones of the Kingdom, that had the highest place in her Esteem: but the condition of the time not permitting her to manifest it to that degree her Majesty could have desired, she did upon this occasion all she had the liberty to do; which was to send him a very obliging Letter, written with her own hand, of which the Contents were these. Cousin, I can here neither fully express, The Queen's Letter to the Duke of Espernon. nor altogether conceal the sorrow I share with you for the loss you have sustained in the person of my Cousin the Cardinal de la Valette your Son; the sense whereof being too great to be expressed by words, I shall only entreat you to believe, that I partake in it equally with any person living: And since it is from God alone, that you are to hope for a true Consolation, I do from my heart beseech him of his Divine Goodness to fortify your mind against the severity of this accident, and to pour his Blessings upon you in the abundance that is heartily wished by her, whom you know really to be, Your very good Cousin Anne. From St. Germains en Say the 12th of Octob. 1639. Cardinal Richelieu also would not upon such an occasion be wanting in the Ceremony of a Compliment; but it signified no more than so, and these were the words. My Lord, I can not sufficiently manifest to you the extreme sorrow I sustain for the Death of Monsieur, The Cardinal's Letter to the Duke of Espernon. the Cardinal de la Valette, and the affliction wherewith you must of necessity resent it. So that being myself incapable of receiving any Consolation upon this sad Accident, I am so much the more unfit to administer it to you. The manner wherewith I ever lived with him, his Affection towards me, and the singular Esteem I ever had for him, will without much difficulty persuade you to believe this truth; which is so certain, that were it possible for a man with his Blood to redeem such a Friend, I would give a great deal of mine to retrieve him. There is none save God Almighty himself, who can allay your Griefs, I beseech you therefore to apply yourself to him, and to believe that I am, My Lord, Your, etc. From Lions the 19 th'. of Octob. 1639. It was sufficiently known to all France, that if one Friend can oblige another, the Cardinal de la Valette had obliged that of Richelieu to the highest degree: which made the Duke of Espernon (importuned by his Friends to try if he yet retained any memory of that Friendship he in his Letter so highly professed) in the end to obtain so much of his own haughty humour, as to write to him this that follows. My Lord, The Testimonies you have done me the honour to give me in one of your Letters of the part you share with me in the grief I sustain for the loss of my Son the Cardinal de la Valette, The Duke of Espernon's Letter to Cardinal Richelieu. has made me hope you will be no less sensible of the other Afflictions, and Grievances wherewith I am from all parts assaulted. I shall therefore take the liberty to represent them to you, and to tell your Lordship, that since the time I left my Government to retire myself to this place, there is no sort of Injury, or Outrage with which I have not by my Enemies been unjustly offended: Who after having dissected me in public by injurious Declarations, have since published defamatory Libels against me, therewith, as much as in them lies, to blemish the Honour I have justly acquired in the Service of the Kings my Masters. Neither have they been satisfied with attempting upon my single Person, and the Persons of my Sons only; but I have neither Friend, nor Servant, they do not most violently, and injuriously persecute, as if it were a Crime to embrace, or own my Interests, and Concerns. I know (my Lord) that neither the King, nor yourself know any thing of this proceeding, and that you are too just to consent, that after fourscore years passed, of which the greatest part have been employed in the Service of the Kings my Masters, and for the good of the Kingdom, I should be so severely used under your Administration. I have now lost the Cardinal my Son, whilst serving the King in Italy, his elder Brother but a few months since went before him; which great losses I have born with patience out of the sole consideration of the Service they perished in, which has served for some allay to my Affliction. I assure myself that their Merits, and Services (since I myself am no more in a condition to serve either his Majesty or you) will (my Lord) at least secure the repose of an afflicted Father, who daily expects that benefit from his Age, and Nature, etc. From Plassac this first of Decemb. 1639. This Letter with how great reluctancy soever the Duke had consented to write it, though it produced no good effect, the Duke notwithstanding who had expected no better success, reaped this advantage by it, that he by that means delivered himself from the importunities of those who otherwise would upon other occasions have been pressing with him to have been still imploring the Cardinal's Favour. But after this Repulse nothing of that nature was ever more to be extorted from him; so that if he afterwards writ, it was ever either to preserve the Decorum of common civility, or upon pure necessity, or to the end his Friends might not condemn him for having by his own obstinacy pulled upon himself the mischiefs which had long been preparing against him. Thus therefore deprived of all humane assistance, since the Cardinal (without whom all the rest of what Quality soever signified nothing) was opposite to his Interests, he wholly resigned himself into the hands of God, and would no more make application to any other but to him alone. He had ever born a great Respect, and Zeal to Religion; and for above twenty years before his Death, had been observed to be so constant to his Beads, that not a day passed over his head wherein he did not spend three whole hours in Devotion. At this time, as the persecutions of malevolent men grew more violent against him, so did he redouble his Prayers to Heaven, and has ever believed, that it was from thence he derived the strength, and fortitude to support all the accidents that befell him, and the disgraces that were hourly multiplied upon him. This calm and innocent way of living created either so great an esteem for his Virtue, Anno 1640. or so great a compassion for his Adversity in the minds of men, that there was scarce any who did not manifest some tenderness for a person of his eminent condition so unjustly oppressed. Insomuch that the Prince of Condé, who had not been able (so positive his Orders were) to avoid employing his Authority to the ruin of his Fortune, could not but discover, that he also amongst the rest was touched with commiseration of his Wrongs, and deplorable condition; so that whether it were, that he therein glanced at some particular advantages to himself, or that it was merely an act of his Generosity in order to the Duke's repose, he sent him word as he was upon his Journey to Bourdeaux: That he had compassion on his Misfortune, The Prince of Condé offers his Service to the Duke of Espernon upon some Conditions. and Solitude, and if he unluckily had formerly had a hand in the Disgraces had befallen him, he would much more willingly employ it to his redress: That his Afflictions how great soever, were not altogether without remedy; but that he had one Son still surviving, from whom he might yet derive comfort: That although the Court was highly animated, and incensed against him, he would notwithstanding do his utmost endeavour, and set it hard to obtain his return into France; provided he would be content to resign his Governments, in lieu whereof he would also procure him some reasonable recompense; and that by this means he might spend the remainder of his days in company, which itself would render the worst of evils supportable to him. Geneste a Counsellor in the Parliament of Bourdeaux, known of long to have been a particular Friend to the Duke, was made choice of by the Prince to offer this proposal to him; but he had Instructions withal, not to own he did it by any express Order from the Prince, unless he should first perceive the Duke very ready to embrace the motion. The Duke, unable to endure the first overture, would return no answer at all, thinking by that means to disengage himself from that unpleasing Treaty: but the Prince, who (as it was said) having cast his eye upon Languedoc, and openly discovered a desire to be invested in that Government, had perhaps a design to make that of Guienne the Price of the other. It was moreover believed he had a mind to translate the Office of Colonel into the hands of a Favourite, thereby to promote his own pretence: For one, or both of these reasons therefore he would not be repulsed at the Duke's first tacit denial: but not long after having left Bourdeaux to return to Court, his way through Xaintonge gave him opportunity, as he passed by to see the Count de jonzac, the King's Lieutenant in that Province, and one of the most intimate Friends the Duke at that time had in the Kingdom. To him therefore he gave express charge to go to the Duke, and to go through with that Negotiation, he had not only occasionally committed to Geneste; to which he also required a precise and positive answer. The Count de jonzac could do no other, than obey the Prince in this particular, though he was already very well assured, he should bring him no satisfactory return from the Duke concerning this Affair. This Gentleman was without all doubt the depositary of the Duke's most secret thoughts, and intentions; and I am certain in several very important occasions had proved exceeding faithful to him: So that, there being scarce any thing reserved, which he did not freely commit to his Secrecy, and Trust, it is to be presumed the Duke had not concealed from him this Proposition from the Prince, together with the fixed and determinate Resolution he had put on as to that business. He therefore only confirmed to him anew, what he had already sufficiently assured him of; desiring him withal, since the Prince would have a positive answer, to tell him on his behalf, That he could have wished, having ever honoured him as he had done, Which are rejected by the Duke. he had sooner had those considerations for him, he was pleased at present to profess: That his compassion was now out of season: That he was content alone to undergo all his misfortunes the remaining part of his life, and that he had much rather never more see the Duke de la Valette his Son, than to see him reduced to the condition of a private person: That he would accept no Recompense for his Offices, and Commands, forasmuch as he was resolved never to part with them; and that he had enough remaining through the favour and liberality of the Kings his Masters, to spare those profits, and emoluments he had formerly received. And to the end that for the time to come he might secure himself from being any more importuned with such distasteful proposols, he declared aloud, that should any of his Friends ever entertain him with the like discourse, he should never take that man for his Friend again: but in case any over whom he had an Authority should presume once to open his mouth to such a purpose, he would handle him so as should manifest to all the world how highly he was offended at the motion. The Duke soon perceived that the Court was by no means pleased with this answer, the ill usage he had hitherto received, being after this refusal evidently doubled upon him; insomuch that he had news brought the Cardinal had been importuned by the Enemies of his Family, to remove him from Plassac, that being (as they pretended) too near to Bourdeaux, where, by the convenience of so dangerous a vicinity, he might still maintain a Correspondence there, and set what practices he pleased on foot, to the prejudice of the Public Peace. New persecutions for the Duke of Espernon. Thus even when confined to a Country House, disarmed, and naked, as he then was, and as it were buried under his own ruins, his sole Name, and Authority was formidable to his Enemies, even in so low a condition. Such as were most violent against him, advised to have him shut up in Prison, and the more moderate sort would only have him confined to some remote places, which they had already pointed out for him i● Auverg●e. Yet did all these ill-sounding rumours at this time produce no evil effects; and it was said the Cardinal would keep his word, he had given to the Cardinal de la Valette, not to add to the persecution of the Duke his Father; but if he did not openly do it, and so as to own his own act, he at least gave the Duke's most implacable Enemies leave to do what he himself was either ashamed of, or had no mind to own; men who abusing that liberty committed outrages against him, unworthy both of their own, and his condition; and such as the Prince, who at this time was no ways favourable to him, could not himself endure, and therefore did him a noble right: but I rather choose to omit the recital of it, than to revive the resentment of things almost, if not altogether, extinguished and forgot, by a relation that would otherwise perhaps, he pertinent enough to my story. In this violent persecution, the Duke's Servants humbly advised him to slacken the stiffness, he had hitherto ever maintained, and especially towards the Cardinal; in hopes that by a little soothing his vain humour (immeasurably greedy of Glory) with something above what he had formerly used to do, he might obtain some satisfaction from him. Whereupon they represented to him the examples of the Princes of the Blood, who by having a little warped from their degree, and parted with some small advantages in his consideration, had by so doing given the other Great Ones of the Kingdom an honourable colour, and pretext to go something less in their Quality also in the Cardinal's Favour: but these Arguments could by no means prevail upon his invincible Spirit. He made answer; The Duke of Espernon's noble constancy. That could he ever deliberate to submit to civilities beyond what he had usually done, he should however much less do it in the time of his Disgrace, than at any other: That he ought no more to consider the condition to which Fortune had now reduced him, than that from which he was fallen: That what at another time would pass only for Compliment, would now be interpreted an act of Fear: That if he must perish, he had much rather have the injustice of his Enemies whereof to complain, than to stand obliged to his own weakness for his preservation: That the example of the Princes of the Blood signified nothing to him: That their Quality was inseparably annexed to their Birth: That therefore it could never by any demission of theirs be alienated from them: That what would be called Prudence in persons of that condition to accommodate themselves to the time, would be interpreted an inexcusable meanness in him; and that they should never see him do any thing, either by example or persuasion, that should in the least prejudice, or reflect upon his Honour. Before this, and soon after the Death of the Cardinal de la Valette, some there were who endeavoured to persuade him to ask of the King, and the Cardinal some of the Benefices which were become vacant by his Decease; but he with the same constancy refused to do that also, telling those who urged him so to do, That he would not augment the grief of his loss, by the dishonour of a repulse: That being deprived of the person of his Son, his Estate was to him of very little consideration; and that if his Enemies had had the pleasure of making him unhappy, they should never have that of reproaching him, that they had made him do any mean, or unhandsome thing. So long before this also, as from the Duke's first arrival at Plassac, some of his Servants thinking thereby to flatter his thrifty humour, had proposed to him, in the great diminution of his Revenue, some retrenchment in his Expenses also: a proposition in truth by the Duke well enough received, considering that in a private Country House, neither his Table, nor his Stables required the same Splendour, as when he resided in his Government; so that he moreover gave way an account should be stated, to see what they could reduce his Expenses to: but when it came to the push, he rejected all, saying, That he had for above threescore years together maintained himself in the same Port, and Lustre, and that those who were his persecuters should never have that advantage over him, as to make him abate in the least of his ordinary way of living, and that finally in the same Splendour he had lived, he was resolved he would die. 'Tis methinks a very strange thing, and very well worthy our observation, that amongst all the Alarms were daily given him, in all the adversities he was made to undergo, and with all the ill news, which either to afflict, or forewarn him, he hourly received, he never lost (as he himself did profess) so much as one night's sleep. A thing no one can impute to his insensibility, who was but too tender that way, and over-sensible of the least touch of Offence. Who is it then, but must admire the stability, and unshaken constancy of that noble Soul, which in the fury of all these Tempests (sufficient to disorder the greatest resolution) remained as calm, and undisturbed, as in the most tranquil estate of his most prosperous Fortune? Neither was he content to maintain this serenity, and Stoical contempt of injuries in his own person: he would moreover that his Servants should be inspired with the same Courage, and generous Principles, of which I have seen some incur his disgrace, for having only wept before him. He thought men of such mean Spirits unworthy of his Dependence, and would above all things that without disguise, or reservation, they should acquaint him with the true state of his Affairs, how foul soever it might be; being accustomed to say, That it was a kind of Consolation to know the worst of things, and to what a degree a man was unhappy; since Doubts, and Fears, rendering an evil infinite to the imagination, it was in that incertitude utterly impossible, for any one to take a true measure, or to form right resolutions, from things that were boundless, and unlimited: But withal, he whose Office it was to acquaint him with any thing of that nature, was also to have a care so to compose his countenance, that he might not therein discover either sorrow, or apprehension. Nay he would himself oftentimes antedate his own Affliction, by ask such as were obliged to discourse his Affairs to him, if they had heard no ill news that day? occasionally comforting those in whom he reposed the greatest confidence, and appearing himself, in all outward show, the least concerned at the misfortunes befell him. In the greatest Confusion of things, and the most violent heat of his Persecution, he was with nothing so much delighted, as to hear what a fear his Enemies were in, and how much they apprehended his Power. Unhappy as he was, he yet retained so much vanity, as to suffer himself to be transported with that kind of adulation; a frailty, which as it soon, and with great facility insinuates itself into the most generous minds, was also the last thing almost that forsook him. He was never heard in the greatest height of Adversity to complain of Fortune; but on the contrary, when some of his Friends have sometimes put him upon that Discourse, would say, That he should be very ungrateful for the benefits of Fortune, who had for the space of threescore years been continually favourable to him, should he murmur, or repine, that she should forsake him for the small remainder of time he had now to live: That he had rarely observed a whole life to be fortunate, even of those had been much shorter than his; and that in the inconstancy, and instability of Humane Affairs, it was no little advantage to have been reserved for the Trial of Disgrace, till a time when he was hardly any more capable of tasting the sweets of a more prosperous Fortune. That which ought yet further to make us admire the Constancy, and Vigour he ever kept entire in all his Words, and Actions is, that he was neither withheld by a morose Gravity in the one, nor hurried on by an impetuous Fury in the other. He very well understood that his way of living was utterly contrary to the constitution of the time, and in speaking of his own Conduct, would sometimes confess to his particular Friends, that having often reflected upon his own Carriage, long before it had pulled upon him those Disgraces which now lay so heavy upon him; should he have discovered his Sons inclined to follow the same Maxims, he would have dissuaded them from it: but that having himself kept up something of a steady humour throughout the past Reigns, he thought it now unfit to deprave, and give the lie to threescore years of life, to preserve what yet remained, with imbecility, and shame; and that if he must fall he would perish altogether. But though he obstinately maintained this sullen, and wilful humour in matters wherein he conceived his Honour to be concerned, he wanted not nevertheless complacency, and respect enough in things that only respected his Duty. This year therefore having produced the King two brave Conquests, namely, that of Arras, and that of Turin, he would not, upon this occasion, fail to manifest the interest, that, as a good Frenchman he pretended to, in the prosperity of his Majesty's Arms. A Compliment that was further directed to the Cardinal, who doubtless had a very great share in all the successes of his Majesty's Affairs. The Count de Maillé was the Envoy of this Dispatch, by whom this Affair, and some other of the Duke's concerns, were so discreetly managed, that he brought back a very favourable Letter from the Cardinal, together with several expressions by word of mouth of far greater kindness: but the effects were very different, as we shall see in the revolution of the ensuing year. But before we take our leaves of this, I must present you with the Relation of a little Accident, by which it will appear, that even in the height of his Disgraces, Fortune could not so altogether forget the Duke, but that she must impart some of her petty Favours to him; which though not sufficient to compensate his Adversity, she, at least by those trifling Obligations, made it seem she could not find in her heart totally to abandon a person who had formerly been so dear unto her. Three remarkable stories of the Duke of Espernon's good Fortune, whereof this is the first. A young Fellow the Duke had bred, and brought up from his Infancy to the age of man, and by whom he had long been attended in his Chamber, so far at last forgot his Duty, as to design to rob his Master. He was not long before he executed that design, and with such dexterity, that he purloined two thousand Pistols out of a Trunk in his Chamber, the Duke discovering nothing of his loss till above six months after. This Companion having thus performed his Feat, was, with his Masters leave retired into his own Country, upon the Frontiers of Spain, where he had either imbezzeled, or laid out a good part of the money. The Duke no sooner discovered the Theft, but that he as soon guest who had been the Thief, and named him to those who were then waiting in his Chamber: but he was at first in some suspense, whether or no he should bustle in a business, that it would be no easy matter for him to prove. In the end importuned by some of his Servants, not to tolerate an Action of so ill example, he sent away a Prevost to take him, wherein he was also so successful, as to have him forced away from his own Country (the most favourable to Actions of this nature in France) and brought before him, where he was no sooner come, but that he confessed his fault, and restored the money he had taken to a * A piece of money to the value of xviii. pence sterling. Teston. This Story puts me in mind of two others, * The second Story. which I conceive ought not to be omitted, Being one day in the great Church of Metz, at Vespers upon a solemn Festival: he whose Office it was to Cense the Priests, came also to offer it to the Duke, who pulling off his Gloves with greater respect to receive the Honour was done him, a Diamond of very great value he wore upon his Finger, dropped out of the Socket, and fell to ground without his taking any notice of it at all: But the Censor was soon aware of the accident, and that he might with the more cleanly conveyance gather up the Diamond, having made a Reverence so low, as with his knees to touch the ground, he with great dexterity snapped up the Stone without being observed by any, and retired. The Duke having again put on his Gloves, stayed out the remainder of the Office, which being done, he returned home to his own Lodging. Supper time being come, and the Duke being to wash before he sat down to Table, going to pull off his Ring, as he always used to do, when he washed his hands, he perceived the Stone to be lost: Whereupon without further astonishment, or deliberation, he gave order to have the man that Censed at Vespers brought before him. He had observed, though without any kind of suspicion, the extraordinary low Reverence the Fellow had made him, and his quick and ready apprehension made him now jealous, that so unusual a Compliment had not been paid him without some design. The man being therefore brought before him, he without more Ceremony, or Examination, positively demanded of him his Diamond, which the other at first denied: but being commanded the second time to produce it, and that presently, or he should be presently hanged, the poor man, as if that word had been of as great validity, as an hundred Witnesses, and so many Judges, without making any other reply, humbly besought the Duke to let some of his people go home with him for his Diamond, which he also immediately restored. In this his own Wisdom was his Friend, and another l●ss circumspect would also have been less favoured by Fortune. But I shall here present you with a third The third S●ory. accident of the same nature, which was a pure effect of Chance, and of which the example may go hand in hand with those marvellous Successes, which are related for wonderful, even of such as have been the most eminently favoured by Fortune. The Duke many years before all this, going one time to Paris, had taken Loches in his way, as he ordinarily used to do; when being come to la hay in Tourain at the time of year when days are at the longest, he would after supper go take a walk in the Meadows without the City. The Grass was not yet cut, but ready for the Scythe, when playing with some of his Followers, (for he was at this time in that wanton Age) a Pearl in the fashion of a Pear of two which he always wore in his Ears, fell down into the Grass, without being at present perceived by him. Those two Pearls were noted for the fairest of that time, each of them being valued at ten thousand Crowns. The men of the French Court in those days used to trick themselves with such things as these, which now even amongst the Ladies are scarcely any more in use. The Duke going at night to put off his Pendants, before he went to Bed, perceived one of them to be lost: the night was already shut up, and in the clearest light of day it had been almost impossible to have found so little a thing, in so great a clutter of thick, and deep Grass, as in that place covered the face of the ground. He had nevertheless so great a confidence in his good luck, as to command one of his Valetts de Chambre to go seek his Pearl, and to bring it to him; as if he had been in fee with Fortune, and that she had been obliged to second all his desires. But it so fell out, that she immediately put that into the hands of the Valette de Chambre, which he despaired ever to find, and he brought the Pearl presently back to his Master: a thing that rendered all the Company no less astonished at the confidence the Duke had in his good Fortune, than at his good Fortune itself. After these digressions it is now high time for us to pursue our former Discourse. Anno 1641. The Count de Maillé then being returned from Court in the beginning of Winter, The Duke of Espernon falls dangerously sick. found the Duke fallen sick of a very troublesome Disease. This season for some years passed had been so inauspicious to him, that he would ordinarily call it his Enemy; as it proved in the end, and that to such a degree as to deprive him of his Life. At this time nevertheless it contented itself a second time to afflict him with another defluxion of Rheum, which having run through all the parts of his Body with extraordinary torment, left him at last in so great a weakness, that he lay near six months before he could recover to any indifferent posture of health. In this tedious, and troublesome Sickness, he received very great comfort in the company of the Duchess de la Valette his Daughter-in-law, and the Marquis de la Valette his Grandchild, who forsook the Court to attend him in his Solitude, and Retirement. Both these arrived at Plassac sometime before the Duke's Sickness: The Marquis de la Valette, now Duke the Candale, had been there a good while before, the Duke his Grand father having resolved himself to take care of his Education, and to form him betimes to those great Actions; of which his Predecessors had left him so beautiful Examples. In the sweet Conversation of this innocent Family, did this Illustrious old man flatter his Grief, and deceive his Afflictions; creating to himself a kind of fruition out of that Confinement, and Privacy, his Enemies had for a punishment inflicted on him. Living in this Calm of Repose, which the Tempests of his Fortune had at last fretted themselves into, and hoping therein to spin out the remainder of his Life, he was surprised with an unexpected Command from the King, to leave his House of Plassac, and to remove thence to Loches. And seeing this Affair (of itself untoward enough) was the fountain from whence several other afflictions derived themselves, which also in the end occasioned his Death, it should not methinks be impertinent to give a full Relation of a Transaction, by which we are now about to conclude his Life. From the time that the Count de Soissons departed from Court to retire himself to S●dan (of which we have already spoken) this Prince had rested content with the enjoyment of his own Estate, The estate of the Affairs of the Kingdom, from whence the Cardinal took occasion to send the Duke of Espernon to Loches. and the payment of those Pensions assigned him from the Crown; and (it has been said) that had those Pensions been continued to him, would have remained in the same quiet posture wherein he had lived ever since his departure from Court, choosing rather to languish in Sloth, and out of all Employment, than by his Ambition to discompose the Peace of his Country. But as if his Enemies had been disposers of his Destiny, they would never grant him those just, and reasonable conditions he desired; insomuch that they imposed upon him a necessity of applying himself to Foreign Princes. These therefore having supplied him with some Forces, his own Interest having procured him some others within the Kingdom, and the Duke de Boüillon (who was equally interested with him in his cause) having armed a great number of his Friends, he of all these together made up a very considerable Army. These Forces however, how great soever they were, would notwithstanding have given the Cardinal no very great Alarm, had he not found withal, that even at home there was so formidable a Faction formed in this Prince's favour, as that the Kingdom was universally engaged in his designs: But when he saw that the people openly declared in his Quarrel, and that the whole Frontier of Champagne, together with the best Cities of that Province, threatened to revolt in his Favour, that Paris itself opened her Arms to receive him; and that it was to be feared, if some sudden course was not taken, that without a blow struck, or the least resistance, he should see himself reduced to his Mercy, than it was (as has been reported) that he seriously repented himself he had not been more just to him, and that he had not rendered himself more facile to his equitable demands: But having fruitlessly attempted to quiet this storm, by some overtures of Accommodation, those Propositions being rejected, there was now a necessity of coming to the decision of Arms. The Cardinal therefore endeavoured with all imaginable expedition to oppose a good Army against him under the Command of the Marshal de Chastillon; to whom he also gave express Orders at any hand to hazard the fortune of a Battle, before the evil dispositions of the people could produce those sinister effects, he had all the reason in the world to apprehend. In this posture of Affairs, his most redoubted Enemies, being the Great Ones he had offended, he conceived it in the first place necessary to secure the Duke of Espernon, not doubting but that a man of his known spirit, and so highly offended by him, would take hold of the first opportunity to revenge himself of those insupportable Injuries he had so continually received at his hands. But over and above this jealousy which the Cardinal had reasonably enough conceived upon the foremention'd accounts, the Duke's ill Fortune would moreover at this time join with his Enemy to give him some colourable pretence for this new injury, and injustice. All the Kingdom believed that the Cardinal de la Valette had before his Decease, obtained of this great Minister an assurance of repose for his Father the remaining part of his Life; and there had been no new occasion offered, that could justify the violation of this promise; so that his private, and solitary way of living sheltering him from all the Tempests of the busy World, he thought to live quiet, and secure in that harbour whereinto even by his misfortunes he had been so fortunately thrown. In this estate a wretched Fellow, utterly unknown to the Duke, or to any of his, without any the least acquaintance with any of his Family, or any frequentation in his House, was so malicious, as in his name to go to the Sieur du Bourg, Governor of the little Fort the Spaniards had possessed themselves of at their entry into biscay, and by me before called Socoa, offering him in the names of the Dukes of Espernon, and de la Valette (whom he had never seen) a very great recompense, if he would deliver up that Fort into their hands. Le Bourg easily imagined that this place being so well known as it was to these two Dukes, could not be so ardently coveted by them, it being of very little importance; and consequently did at the very first believe the person that made him this Proposition, must be some Impostor, who hoped to obtain some recompense for informing against him, and afterwards to run away; but a Rope in the end was his reward. Though (as I have said) le Bourg well enough understood this Fellow to be a Counterfeit, A malicious Contrivance against the Duke of Espernon. he notwithstanding either to render himself more considerable at these two Duke's Expense, or more exactly to discharge his Duty than upon such an occasion he was obliged to do, failed not however to give the Court an account of the Proposition had been made to him, detaining the impostor Prisoner in the mean time. Whereupon he soon after received Orders to deliver him into the hands of Lauson Intendant de la justice in Guienne; by whom though he was condemned to die, and the Sentence accordingly executed upon him, yet at present they made use of this Imposture to colour a Command to the Duke of Espernon, to depart from Plassac, and to transfer himself to Loches. Varennes one of the Gentlemen in Ordinary to the King, was appointed to carry this Order, who the 20 th'. of june, about two of the Clock in the afternoon arrived with it at Plassac. The Duke was at that time a Bed, where he used to take two or three hours repose every afternoon; by reason whereof Varennes being necessitated to attend his waking, he asked to speak with the Count de Maillé in the mean time; which he did to anticipate the Duke by some excuses, in that he was so unhappy, as to be always sent upon unwelcome Commissions (for it was he also who in the business of the Archbishop of Bourdeaux, had been the Bearer of the Order was sent the Duke to retire out of his Government to Plassac.) The Count de Maillé, having by discoursing with him understood Varenne's Errand, doubted not but that the Duke must needs infinitely surprised at the Novelty of this Command; wherefore having consulted with such of the Duke's Servants as were of most consideration about him, they concluded it most convenient, that he should by his Secretary be beforehand acquainted with it, to the end he might be prepared to receive it with less emotion. The business therefore being thus ordered amongst them, was accordingly executed, and the Duke was no sooner awake, but that the Secretary coming to his Bedside, told him that a Gentleman from the King was newly arrived, who had brought him an Order to depart from Plassac, and go away to Loches. The Duke, who had of old fortified his mind against the worst of events, and not finding in this that extremity of evils it lay in his Enemy's power to inflict upon him, without being at all moved at the suddenness of the thing; calmly replied, and is that all? After which words a little composing himself, he commanded his Secretary to call the Gentleman in. Varennes was presently brought into his Chamber, who, advancing to the Bedside, presented him with the King's Letter, which the Duke opening, he found it to contain these words. Cousin, I am sorry that by your Sons ill carriage, The King's Letter to the Duke of Espernon. together with some Intelligence I have lately received out of Guienne, I am constrained to tell you, that I desire you will at present leave your abode at Plassac, where you now are, and come to Loches. Varennes one of my Gentlemen, by whom you will receive this Dispatch, will inform you more particularly of my intention herein, in whom you are to repose an entire confidence, and belief. In the mean time I pray God, Cousin, to have you in his Holy Protection. From Abbeville this 13 th'. of june 1641. This Letter being read, and Varennes offering a new at the same excuses he had already made to the Count de Maillé, the Duke cut him short, by telling him, that whatever came from the King was infinitely welcome, and that excuses were not necessary where a man did nothing but what it was his Duty to do; after which he fell into a pretty long discourse, wherein he manifested so much judgement, and constancy upon so unpleasing an accident, as made every one admire that heard him: It was very near word for word in these terms, That threescore years being now lapsed since he had first had the Honour to serve the Kings his Masters, and to teach such as their Majesties had subjected under his Authority to obey, it would be inexcusable in him, should he in that time have profited so little himself, as not to know how in his own person to practise the Precepts he had laid down to others: That he was very ready to pay the King all the Obedience his Majesty could himself desire: That had he a sufficient stock of strength, and health to perform that Journey Post, he would immediately mount to House, by that promptness to show how every Subject aught to obey his Prince; not that he did not nevertheless understand himself to be very unkindly used, and looked upon this proceeding as excessively severe to him who had never failed in the least in his Majesty's Service, and to whom no one living could impute the least offence to his Duty: That his Enemies made it their pretence to use him ill, from the ill carriage of his Son; as if a Father could be any ways responsible for the defaults of his Children, or aught to suffer for their Offences. Not that I do (he presently caught himself) in the least confess those wherewith they have charged my Son the Duke de la Valette; he is an honest man, and innocent: and had the King been rightly informed of his Actions, his Majesty might with better reason have commended his Services, than (as he is pleased to do) to condemn his Conduct. Upon which expression, excusing himself for that little escape of his resentment, he proceeded to say, Is it not very hard that my Enemies will expose my old Age to the scorn, and mockery of the one half of the Kingdom I am to pass through to the place of my Exile? Why will they not at least give me leave to finish the small remainder of my days I have to live in the obscurity of this Solitude? After which, ask him if there was any time limited for his setting out, or if he had received any Order to continue with him till his departure? and Varennes having denied both the one, and the other, he continued to say, That since they were pleased to proceed so favourably with him, he would be no ill Husband of his time: That he would give order to have his Equipage made ready with the soon; but that he had let them hang by to rust, and rot for four years together, that he had been in that House. In the conclusion of all, Varennes having entreated an Answer to his Letter, the Duke gave him one in these terms. SIR, I have by the Sieur de Varennes received the Command your Majesty has been pleased to send me to quit my Residence in this place, The Duke of Espernon's Letter to the King. and to go to Loches, upon some information your Majesty has received to the prejudice of the Duke de la Valette my Son. If my said Son continue to follow my Counsels, and Example, as I am certain he will ever do, he can never commit any thing that may either offend your Majesty, or that shall be unworthy of his Birth. For what concerns myself Sir, who for threescore years passed have never ceased to render the Kings your Royal Predecessors, and your Majesty all sorts of faithful, and humble Service, and Obedience, I shall continue with all possible expedition to testify my respect to this new Command. It is true, Sir, that I am something surprised at it, and that having continued now four years together in this House, I had set up my rest, and concluded here to end my days; by which mistake I am at present utterly destitute of Equipage both for myself, my Daughter-in-law, and my little Children: but I shall with all possible diligence make my preparation, and though my Health be exceedingly impaired, both by my great Age, and my late Sickness; which having detained me four months in Bed, has left me in a very weak condition: I shall notwithstanding cheerfully expose my little remainder of Life, to this long, and troublesome Journey, in obedience to your Majesty's good pleasure, and shall think myself exceeding happy if I may conclude it in manifesting my Zeal, and Passion, as I have ever done my Obedience, and inviolate Fidelity, etc. From Plassac this 20 th'. of june, 1641. Neither in this answer, nor in his Discourse to Varennes, had he made any Reply to that part of the King's Letter, which mentioned the intelligence his Majesty had received out of Guienne; forasmuch as he was as yet totally ignorant of the business of Socoa: but having sometime after understood that his name had been made use of in that Affair, he conceived it very necessary for him to address himself to the Marshal de Scomberg, to request that he would penetrate into the bottom of that Imposture, that so he might be able to inform his Majesty of the truth of the Story. This Marshal had been withdrawn from his Government of Languedoc, as well as the Duke of Espernon had been out of that of Guienne: but being it had been done without any visible mark of Disgrace, and only out of deferenee to the Prince, who was impatient of the least contradiction from any of the Governors of the Provinces, where he had any thing to do, The generous proceeding of the Marshal de Scomberg. he had been dismissed with an honourable Commission into Guienne, to Command as the King's Lieutenant in that Province. His carriage there towards the Duke of Espernon was very different from that of those who had preceded him in that Employment, he highly, and publicly declaring, that he shared in the feeling an honest man ought to have of the ill usage had been inflicted upon a man of that eminent Quality, and who had ever behaved himself without all manner of reproach: Neither was this the only testimony of his Friendship, he proceeding from these favourable expressions, to effects of a much more obliging nature. They had proposed to him the Government of Guienne in recompense of that of Languedoc (with the privation of which he had also been tacitly threatened) but all those offers, and menaces could never prevail upon him, he professing that he had much rather choose to be without any Employment at all, than to be invested with the spoils of two persons of that eminent condition yet living, and with whom he was not convinced that any fault could justly be found; exercising moreover the Commission he had there with so great tenderness and respect to them, that though he had thereby as ample Authority, as he could himself desire; he would notwithstanding never come to execute any of his Functions at Bourdeaux, the Capital City of that Province. He would not so much as come near it, but contented himself to stay at Again, which he made the seat of his residence till his return into Languedoc: and whereas others, who had commanded there before him, had carried themselves very rudely to the Duke's Friends, and Servants there, the Marshal on the contrary took them into his especial Trust, and Favour, conceiving he could not make a better choice, than of such men, as had passed the trial of his late Adversity. This noble way of proceeding had so highly obliged the Duke, that he made no difficulty to solicit his Favour, a thing he had never done to any since his persecution; he writ to him therefore before he departed from Plassac, entreating him to cause the Impostor by whom▪ he had been accused to be throughly sifted, that he might be able to satisfy the Court of what could be discovered from his Examination. The Marshal upon this Letter did the Duke all the good Offices could be expected from his generous and noble Nature, and writ so favourably to the Council in his behalf, as from des noyer's Secretary of State to obtain this answer: a Copy whereof he sent to the Duke. For what concerns the Fellow that is detained Prisoner at Socoa, I could have wished that Monsieur du Bourg had better examined the business, before he had acquainted the King with it, and brought so great an inconvenience upon persons of that condition: Monsieur de Lauzon, who is at Bayonne, will in two hours' time be able to clear all doubts, observing the Order I have sent him according to your desire. In effect the business was perfectly cleared, and the Duke's Innocence sufficiently manifest: but notwithstanding the resolutions that had been taken against him were nothing altered; neither indeed did he solicit any thing of that kind, nor would address himself to any other, saving the Marshal de Scomberg only, his design being only to secure his Reputation, and not to receive any the least favour from his Enemies. Yet whatever he had said to Varennes, or whatsoever he had writ to the King concerning the diligence he would use to put himself upon his way; The Duke of Espernon's irresolution concerning the Journey of Loches, he did not for all that make so much haste, that three weeks at least were not lapsed before he began his Journey. He spun out the preparation of his Equipage in great length, and although he at first manifested an absolute, and frank disposition to depart, either the tenderness, and apprehension of his Friends, or his own doubts, and diffidences, had possessed him with so great a jealousy, that he could not easily persuade himself to perform a thing he saw was nevertheless by no means to be avoided. Some, who would seem to be most solicitous of his Person, and Safety, had often represented to him, That the Castle of Loches was a Prison of State: That it had already been made use of in that nature upon very considerable * One whereof I find in Davila when the Duke of Elbeauf was sent thither Prisoner presently after the Death of the Duke of Guise at Blois. occasions: That it being situate in the heart of the Kingdom, his Captivity would be the more severe, by how much there was no possibility of an escape, and that so soon as he should be come thither, it would be in the power of any one of the Exempts-des Guards, to charge the Garrison, and to make himself Master of the Gate to engage his Liberty for ever. It was no hard matter to foresee, that all these inconveniences might possibly arrive: but being his forbearing to go, would inevitably convince him of the highest disobedience, the discreeter sort of men concluded it the safest for him to try if he could not avoid the utmost extremes, by an entire confidence in his Majesty's Justice, and in outward show to perform that with great alacrity, and freedom, which in effect there was a necessity upon him, he must however do. The Duke saw clearly enough into the truth of this last advice; yet could he not without great repugnancy, and unwillingness follow that Counsel; and the natural desire of the Liberty, he believed ready to be ravished from him (or that at best depended only upon his Enemies Capricio) possessed him with so great a disquiet of mind, as failed little of endangering his health by a new relapse. He nevertheless by his constancy, once more overcame all his resentments, and mistrusts, and arming himself with a generous resolution, determined in the end to do, what must either speedily be done, or he must inevitably lose himself for ever. But forasmuch as he discovered some little beam of hope in the Count de Soisson's undertaking (whose party was tacitly favoured by all the Malcontents, and with greater reason by him, than all the rest) he observed such an Order in his departure from Plassac, and throughout the whole progress of his Journey, as on the one side to avoid the imputation of Disobedience, should the Count's Affairs meet with any ill success; and on the other to be in a condition suddenly to return into his Government to favour his Cause, should there be the least appearance (as there was a great deal) that this Prince could receive any advantage by his joining with him. The better than to fit all things for his proposed design, he was near a month in preparing his Equipage: the most necessary things must by all means be bought at places a great way off, though they might have been had much nearer at hand; and when all things were got ready, he was advised to feign some incommodities in his Health, as the remains of his late Sickness: an advice he for a few days put in practice, though in the end he must of necessity set out, and it was the 12 th'. day of july. He had been sometime in suspense, whether he should take the Duchess de la Valette and her little Children along with him this Journey, or no; he could not in the great apprehensions had been infused into him of the loss of his own Liberty, consent that persons so dear unto him should bear a part in so great a Disgrace; who as they were in other things the greatest Consolation he had, so were they in this none of the least causes of his Affliction: but their Piety soon cut off all deliberation, and they carried that by the violence of their importunity, which they could not otherwise obtain of so good a Father, and were at last admitted to the Voyage. During these delays in the Duke's slender Preparation, the Count de Soissons, The Count de Soissons makes great preparation for War. and the Duke de Boüillon, had made so mighty ones wherewith to oppose the Power of the King, that they were apparently the stronger Party, and in a condition to bring over the Victory to their own side. The Armies of the one, and the other party were so near, and both so animated against one another, that it was hardly possible they should avoid coming immediately to Blows; every one in his wishes favoured the Count's Designs, and all the people, the Cities, and generally all France opened their Arms to receive him: neither was the Duke of Espernon ignorant of these good dispositions towards him, with whom he went along in his Heart, and Judgement; so that hoping much on the one side, and fearing something nevertheless on the other, he began his Journey. From Plassac, his first days Journey was to Pons, a League and a half only distant from his own House, which although a very little one, and that he performed it in his Litter, he notwithstanding went to Bed presently after his arrival, and all the next day rested there. The day following he went to Cognac, to visit the Count de jonzac, in which little Town, which had formerly been a member of his Government of Angoumois, he found a great number of Gentlemen, and Ladies of very good Quality, whom the compassion of his finister Fortune had assembled there to pay him their last Visit, as they believed, and as indeed it proved to be. He could not upon this occasion, so govern his own humour, as to be persuaded to feign himself indisposed, that being a part he could only play, when there was none by to see him: but in the great world his Prudence could never obtain so great an Authority over his haughty Spirit: but that he must ever make a show of more Health and vigour, than he really had. A thing his Servants were very much afflicted at, as very much out of season; some of which having represented to him the example of the Duke of Rhetz, who a long time preserved his Life, and kept his Offices, by having with great art, and industry given hopes, that the latter, would soon become vacant by the loss of the other; he despised that sort of Prudence, telling them that the malignity of old Age, would soon enough, and to his great grief render him altogether useless, without that he needed to antedate that unhappy time by artifice, and dissimulation. That which I conceive made him so resolute to despise all Counsels that carried with them any similitude of fear, was the frequent intelligence he received from a very good hand of the good posture the Count's▪ Affairs were in: full of which good news he departed from Cognac to go to Neuvy, a House belonging to the Baron of Auton his Nephew, where he intended to counterfeit the sick man, till he should have certain intelligence of the success of the Count's Arms: but he had no time to make a long dissimulation of it, for two days after his arrival at this place, the Countess de Brienne passing that way to go into Angoumois, News brought to the Duke of Espernon of the Death of the Count de So●ssons, slain at the Battle of Sedan. came to give him a Visit, and brought him the first news of the winning of the Battle of Sedan, but withal of the Count's unhappy Death. The truth of this disaster soon cured the Duke of his pretended Indisposition; he very well knew that the loss of this Prince did not only take away the fruits of his Victory, but would moreover infallibly transfer it to the contrary side: And then it was that he saw how much he stood obliged to his own Wisdom, and how great an error he had run into, had he yielded more to the tenderness of his Friends, than to his own ma●urer Counsels; for had this news found him yet at Plassac, with what probable excuses could he have palliated the Intelligence, he was believed to maintain with the Count; or what more specious pretence could his Enemies have desired, to have added to the ill usage they had so long made him undergo? Even his own delays, and some too free expressions had escaped from him in the almost certain expectation he had been possessed withal of a hopeful issue, did not a little afflict him; wherefore the better to conceal all that had passed, he immediately resolved upon sending away a Gentleman to Court with a Letter antedated some few days before, to the end it might not be imagined, he had writ since the Death of the Count; which Letter contained these words. SIR, I send this Gentleman to acquaint your Majesty with the Obedience I have paid to the command you was pleased to send me to go to Loches; The Duke of Esp●rn●n's Letter to the King. 'tis now six days since I set out to begin this Journey, which I should also Sir have done much sooner, would my health have permitted; or could I with less trouble have procured the Equipages necessary for my departure. From the time that I have been in a condition to move, I have been in motion, having never had the least repugnancy to your Majesty's command: I shall ever have the same inclimation to obey them, and in the last moments of my Life, make it my glory to manifest to your Majesty, that I have never swerved from the absolute Obedience, that was vowed to you from your birth, by Sir, Your, etc. And being he conceived it not enough to give the King this account only, unless at the same time the Cardinal was also satisfied with his Conduct, he wrote to him in like manner, and almost in the same words he had done to the King. Whilst these Letters were posting to Court, he, by very short Journeys was still advancing towards Loches, where, notwithstanding all the delays he could make, having the hazard of his Liberty ever present to his imagination, he thought he should but too soon arrive. With these melancholy thoughts going on to Poicti●rs, the compassion which the principal Officers, and the people of that City manifested for his present Adversity, did much augment his Grief, and suspicion of some future mischief. He there received from all the Orders of the City the same Honours, and Respect, as if he had still stood in the highest degree of his Prosperity, and Favour, and every one making the same reflections upon his present condition, that he himself did; the people ran from all parts to see so great an example of the Injustice, Vicissitude, and Extravagancy of Fortune, which occasioned so great a crowed even in his own Lodgins, as put him upon a resolution to go out on foot into the Marketplace of the City, which was also near to his Inn, to satisfy the curiosity they had to behold him: but he was thereby in so great danger to be stifled by the multitude, that he had no way to free himself, but by the favour of his Coach, that he was of necessity constrained to send for to disengage him. From Poitiers he continued his way to l● Tricherie; but he had made so little haste withal, as had given his Courier time to go to Court, and to return, whilst he had been advancing, twelve, or fifteen Leagues of his Journey only; so that he found him still upon his way, when he brought him this Dispatch from the King. Cousin, I was very well pleased to find by your Letter, His Majesty's Letter to the Duke. that you had put yourself upon your way to Loches, so soon as your health would permit; neither did I doubt, but you would upon this occasion conform yourself unto my desires: and I do moreover assure myself you will ever do the same, whereby you will oblige me to continue to you the testimonies of my Affection; upon which assurance I pray God, etc. From Rheims the 21. of july, 1641. That of the Cardinal was couched in these terms. Monsieur, The King is very well satisfied with your Obedience to his Commands, The Cardinal's Letter to the Duke. which he also has laid upon you in order to your own particular good; and I for my part have received a very high contentment in understanding by this Gentleman the good disposition wherein you now are; a continuation whereof I heartily wish you, as being, etc. To add yet something more to the satisfaction the Duke had received by these two kind Letters, the Gentleman that brought them moreover assured him, that he had observed at Court no other than Serene, and Auspicious Countenances; and that there was nothing which for the future threatened any worse usage, than what he had already received: Insomuch that even his best Friends there, and those who were most solicitous of him did believe, that had he not already received a Command to depart from Plassac, they would not now have enjoined him that trouble, the Cardinal being reassured by the Death of the Count de Soissons: but seeing that Order had been already sent him, they would rather choose to have it executed, contrary to all reason, than to revoke it with any kind of Justice. These Dispatches, and this news from Court, being so much better than the Duke had expected, did a little quiet his mind; so that in the end he arrived at Loches, with much less apprehension, and far greater cheerfulness than he had parted from Plassac. This satisfaction was improved to him by the extraordinary Acclamations wherewith all the people received him at his arrival there, The D●ke of Esp●rnon 〈◊〉 at Leches, and is there received with great Honour. which was upon the third of August, there being no kind of Honours, nor any evidences of Public Joy omitted at his Reception. All the Persons of Quality, of which there are a very great number thereabouts, came to visit him: The City of Towers paid him the same Respect, and the Archbishop having given the example to the rest of the City, the Chapter, and Precedent also sent to Compliment him: besides which Civilities from the Body in general, and the several Societies, and Fraternities in particular, almost all the Magistrates, and Officers, at least the most considerable of them, came in their own persons to wait upon him; insomuch that it seemed, whilst Courted, and Complemented at this unexpected rate, he was nothing fallen from his former Prosperity, and Greatness. All these Honours (of which he was as sensible as any) having revived his Spirits, and consequently quickened, and raised his Wit, and Fancy, he made himself to be highly admired, by an infinite number of the Curious, who being continually ask him a thousand Questions concerning the State Secret of past Transactions, he cleared them of several important Doubts, which few men living could unriddle; and explained to them many passages in d' Avila's History, which at this time was so new in France, that it was in the hands of very few. He had a complacency for all sorts of people, far above what till now he had ever had, and a gracious and winning sweetness for his own Servants they had never known before: by which obliging and free fashion, together with the ancient esteem annexed to his Person, and Virtue, he in an instant won the Love, and Applause of all the world. In this public and universal Favour, and Reputation, and in the assurance had been given him from Court, that nothing ●inister was to be apprehended thence, the memory of his ancient Authority began again to revive in his mind, and that put him upon a desire to exercise it in this little Government; which that he might the better do, he particularly informed himself of all the Affairs of the City, and Country about it, he caused all the Courriers that passed that way to come immediately to himself, and suffered nothing of Public Business, to be determined without first giving him an account: so that in a place where it seemed he had nothing at all to do, he was ingenious enough to find himself employment, and to create himself some diversion, and delight. Who is it but must be astonished in this condition of the Duke's, and after so many, and so great Severities exercised upon him, to see the Cardinal, who was the Author of all, make no difficulty to address to him, and to request favours at his hands? In the height of all his Persecutions, they had still retained for him some shadow of his Office of Colonel; and about this time one of his Officers Aid Major to the Regiment of Guards, called Ocamp, having been slain at the Siege of Air, Montant his Brother addressed himself to the Cardinal, by his Intercession to be invested with his Brother's Command. The Duke would never descend so low towards the Cardinal (though he had met with several occasions wherein he might with much more reason have done it) not so much as after the death of the Cardinal his Son, he being (as has been already said) never to be prevailed upon to ask him any one of his Benefices: but Cardinal Richelieu, without being moved at the generosity of this Example, writ this Letter to the Duke. Monsieur, The Sieur de Montant who is coming to wait upon you, The Cardinal's Letter to the Duke of Esp●rnon. to make suit for the Office of Aide Major to the Regiment of Guards, formerly possessed by his Brother, slain at the Siege of Air, having entreated me to fortify his Request by my Recommendation: I write this to satisfy his desire, and to tell you, that in my opinion, you cannot make choice of any one that will either be more acceptable to the Regiment, or that in his own person will more worthily discharge it. For what concerns my own particular, I shall think myself highly obliged, if you manifest to him, upon this occasion, that my Intercession has been useful to him, and that you have a consideration for the Request of Monsieur, Your, etc. From Rethel this 28 th'. of july, 1641. There was not any about the Duke, who was not astonished at this Request, and he himself to that degree, that he had much ado to persuade himself the Letter was not supposititious, and forged: having nevertheless considered how unlikely it was, that in so public a thing, any person whatever durst be so bold, as to counterfeit the Seal of so powerful, and so feared a Minister, he began to suspect it might be some Artifice to extract from him a denial, from thence to derive a pertext for the future to dispose of all Offices that should become vacant in the French Infantry, without having any more recourse to him for his Consent. Knowing therefore very well, that he, who only entreated, had Power to take; and that he would doubtless do it, did he not presently grant his request, he rather quitted to him, than gave him the Command, and thereupon sent him a Letter, of which this is the Copy. Monsieur, The Sieur de Montant being come to me with a Letter from you, The Duke's answer. wherein you desire of me in his Favour the Office of Aide Major to the Regiment of Guards, become vacant by the Death of his Brother; I was no less pleased than amazed to see, that in the Condition I now am, I have any thing left that may be acceptable to you. This is it has obliged me to dispatch away this Gentleman, on purpose to bring you a Blank Commission of the Office you desire, that you may fill it up with any you have a mind to gratify with that Command, reserving to myself herein nothing, save the sole satisfaction of letting you see how much I am, Monsieur, etc. From Loches this 12 th'. of August, 1641. The Cardinal would by no means comprehend the terms of this Letter, though they were not so obscure, but that the true sense was very easy to be understood; he accepted the Office however very well, without considering nevertheless, how few occasions of that kind remained to the Duke, wherein to oblige his own Servants, and to add yet more to our wonder, returned him thanks in these words. Monsieur, The obliging fashion wherewith you have been pleased to gratify me concerning the Office of Aide Major to the Regiment of Guards, The Cardinal's Return to the Duke's answer. for which I writ to you in the behalf of the Sieur de Montant, has given me so high a sense of the Favour, that I can never sufficiently thank you, nor express how infinitely kindly I take it. I beseech you to believe that my gratitude is such, as thereto nothing can be added, no more than to the desire I have to meet with occasions, wherein by my Services I may manifest to you, That I am, etc. From Blerancour this 16 th'. of August, 1641. Was it any other than a mere mockery to accompany these smooth words with the severest usage, wherewith an honest man could possibly be persecuted? Yet was not all the Favour of that time absolutely contrary to the Duke, Commotions at Court, stirred up by the Favourite Cinq-Mars. and his Interests; and if he was by the Cardinal persecuted to the degree we have already seen, Cinq-Mars Grand Escuyer of France, and the King's true Favourite, had at least as great an inclination to serve, as the other had manifested a desire to hurt him. This young Gentleman one of the most accomplished, and unhappy that Nature ever produced in his time, either jealous of the Cardinal's Power, or prompted by more virtuous and laudable Motives, openly laboured to overthrow his Credit with the King. He had for his principal Confidents, de Thou, and Fontrailles, both the one and the other a particular Friend, and Servant to the Duke of Espernon, by whose good Offices Cinq-Mars had been wrought into so great a kindness for the Duke, that he often received very respective Compliments from him. I do not believe notwithstanding, that the Duke had any hand in his Designs, if not so far as they might be conducing to the Service of the Queen; for in truth he had so wholly devoted himself to the Service of this Princess (every day threatened with the loss of the King by his continual Sicknesses) that he was resolved, upon occasion, to expose all things for her Service, and that of the Princes her Children; a disposition in him the Queen was very well assured of: Neither did she a little rely upon the Credit, and Fidelity of so considerable a Servant. As to the other disorders of the Court, I very well know he did by no means approve them: but on the other side fearing left Fontrailles, whom he entirely loved, should engage himself too far in those Factions, he never writ to him, though he did it very often, without adding in a Postscript under his own hand. * Above all things take heed of the Ba●●ille. Sur tout gardez vous de la Bastille, an advice he as discreetly followed, and in good time: But for the Thou, being come to see him at Loches, soon after his arrival there, I know very well, as having been a Witness to it, that he exhorted and conjured him by all the Ties betwixt them, to forsake the frequentations, and engagements he had at Court, and to settle himself to some moderate condition in the Long Robe, which he had taken upon him. He had acquired so many rare, and eminent qualities proper for that calling, as might have rendered him one of the greatest men of the Profession: and besides that, the Duke was induced to give him these prudent Exhortations, by the consideration of their Alliance, and the Affection and Esteem he had for his person, he did moreover herein not a little gratify the desire of his Relations, and Friends, who, knowing what a Power the Duke had with him, never ceased importuning him to use his utmost interest, and endeavour to withdraw him from that unquiet kind of life, Monsieur de Thou involved in the Grand Es●uyer's ruin he had for some time lead. But his Destiny carried it above their Prudence▪ and Foresight; and he must in the end add to the number of the Illustrious unhappy of his time. The Duke had not the grief of seeing his deplorable end, his own Death sometime preceding, as we shall shortly see, and of which this in my opinion was the cause. From the time that the Duke of Espernon had been established in the Government of Guienne, The Calumny of Madaillan against the Duke, the cause of his Death. he having conceived, that to add greater weight to his Authority, it would not be inconvenient to inflict some exemplary punishment, upon some notable Offenders: a Gentleman of that Province, but one the most unworthy of that Quality of any that ever wore that Character, called Madaillan, fell within the danger of his Justice. The Duke therefore being solicited, and importuned on a thousand hands, to cause Justice to be executed upon this man, for an infinite number of Crimes, whereof he stood Convict, he at last attempted to seize him, that he might be brought to condign Punishment: but this wretch as Distrustful and Cunning, as Villainous, and Wicked, still found means to escape the hands of the Sergeants, who had order from the Duke to apprehend him, Madaillan's Character. and lay a long time concealed in the Province. In the end notwithstanding he was constrained to fly, which he did, and put himself into the Enemy's Armies, not to Fight, for he was never guilty of any handsome Action, but to Plunder and to Betray; insomuch that in a very little space, he had to his other Crimes added that of a Fugitive from all Parties. He was in Pay with the Imperialists, the Swedes, the Spaniards, and the States of Holland; after which famous Exploits he returned home to his own house, hoping that time had worn out of the Duke's mind the memory of his former Offences: but he soon perceived there was no abiding in the Duke's Government, for men of his known and detected manners. He there lived therefore in so perpetual fear, as made him to keep a kind of Garrison in his House; which the Duke having notice of, he resolved to cause some of his Soldiery to beset the House, and by fine force to take him. This Deliberation, which could not be executed without some noise, gave Madaillan leisure to make his escape: he took therefore at this time the way of Italy, and went to Genoa, where he presented Prince Auria with some counterfeit Letters from the Duke of Montmorency, under favour of which, he gulled this Prince of some very considerable Sums of Money. From thence he went to Rome, where he insinuated himself into the Family of the Count de Brassac, Ambassador there for the King of France, of whom, by virtue of other Counterfeit Letters, he was favourably received: But it is not to be believed how many Cheats, Insolences, and other abominable Crimes he committed under our Ambassador's Protection; till in the end the Count tired out with the Complaints he daily received of his lewd Behaviour, was upon the point to have delivered him into the hands of Justice, if he had not fairly ran away. After this manner Madaillan returns back into France; neither could he possibly have arrived in a more favourable conjuncture for such men as he, it being precisely at the time of the great Revolts of Guienne, and wherein he also had the share that was his due. The King being willing to communicate his Grace at the Duke's instance towards such as had been guilty of those Disorders, the said Duke had nevertheless a care, to cause such to be excepted from the general Indemnity, as were taxed with other heinous and notorious Crimes, conceiving it neither just, nor of good Example, that by new Crimes men should pretend to Pardon for the old, and that by great Offences they should obtain an impunity for others of less importance. The King maturely weighing these good Reasons of the Duke, proceeded according to his Advice; by which means Madaillan found himself in much more danger after the Pardon of the other Delinquents, than at any time before he had ever been. His Conscience, besides the Crimes already mentioned, did moreove accuse him of several others, of a horrid, and unheard of nature; For the incest he had committed with his own Daughter, had in his Process been proved against him; the Parricide having moreover caused three Children he had by her to be murdered before his own eyes. He had been Convict of having four Wives at one, and the same time, and of all the other abominable Actions can be imagined: what was there then that aught to be suspected from an Enemy armed with so much wickedness, and so many horrid, and detested Crimes? This desperate Villain seeing himself, and his Affairs, in so lost and irrecoverable a condition, and knowing the persecution the Duke of Espernon, and all his Family suffered under at that time, His Resolution to ruin the D●ke of Espernon. took a resolution to fall upon him to his final Ruin, and to assault him with so hateful a Calumny, as that the sole Accusation should of itself, and of course, put the party accused out of all manner of defence. Big therefore with this accursed design, he goes to Paris, where not finding the King, he addresses himself to the Duchess of Eguillon; to whom concealing his Name, as being too well known, in a studied Discourse of which he was capable enough, he delivers in great secrecy, That there was a Conspiracy on foot against the proper Person of the King himself, and also against that of the Cardinal her Uncle. Neither was he content to make a bare discovery of the pretended Treason, and proceeded moreover to undertake to justify what he had said by literal proofs, provided he might have three months' Protection granted him in Guienne, where his Enemies, he said, had invented false Crimes against him, on purpose to destroy him. His Artifice herein. It is to be presumed, he did not forget the Duke of Espernon's name, in this first Accusation, though it was afterwards denied at Court, when the business came to be discovered. The Duchess however, interested as she was in the Person of the Cardinal, and startled as she ought to be, with the horror of so prodigious a Treason, writ in all haste to the Court, which was then at Amiens; from whence without any difficulty at all she obtained the safe Conduct Madaillan had desired in order to the producing his Proofs. He must needs have some money also, which was likewise given him, with an Order to take up more in the Province; so that to the astonishment of all good men, behold this wicked Villain restored to his Country, and again settled in his own House. He presents his Letters of safe Conduct to the Parliament, where they were Recorded, and soon after Assembles all those whom the Relation of their Offences could any ways render favourable to him, to his own House. Amongst this sort of people there were three or four notorious Impostors, to whom with the rest of his Complices he very gravely represented, He proposes his Design to his Complices. The Obligation they all had to him, for the special care he had taken, both of their Lives, and Fortunes; telling them that he had now that of the Duke of Espernon their common Persecutor, absolutely in his power, to dispose of it to their Benefit, and Advantage: That in order hereunto he had undertaken by his diligence to prove, the Duke had meditated an Artempt upon the Persons of the King, and the great Minister: That therefore every one there was to do his utmost endeavour, that an act of that merit, utility, and importance to them all might not be left imperfect; especially considering, that thereupon depended their happiness, Security, Repose, and Advancement. These promises were far greater than had been any ways necessary to allure such mean, and abject Minds into his wicked design; so that they immediately, and without further deliberation, put their hands to the work: The Secretary's Character was easy enough to be imitated; but they could never Counterfeit the Duke's Seal, which being very intricate, was exceedingly difficult to be resembled to any tolerable degree. Madaillan then seeing this way would not take, applies himself to one Grillety a notorious Ring Leader of the Padders: This Fellow, after the Defeat, and Dissipation of his Complices, had retired himself into a Forest of Perigort, where with strange Boldness, and Impudence, he committed so many Robberies, and Murders, as had rendered his name Famous even in the very Court itself. To this man, as he had done before to the rest, he offers Indemnity, and Recompense, if he would accuse the Duke of Espernon to have dealt with him to attempt an Assassinate upon the Persons of the King, and Cardinal Richelieu. 'Tis said, that, although nourished in Blood, and Slaughter, and oppressed with Crimes, for which he could expect no Pardon, this man nevertheless was not wicked enough to hearken to this Proposition; insomuch that at the first he absolutely refused to do it, and if afterwards the hopes of Pardon tempted him into that damnable practice, it was not however to persist in his wickedness to the utmost trial, as we shall hereafter see. Madaillans' practices had alarmed the whole Country, no body doubting but that the frequent Assemblies of such a crew of Villains, would infallibly produce some prodigious mischief. The Duke's Servants, of which there were very many in that Neighbourhood, as in all other parts of the Province, did easily judge that this Consultation was principally intended against him, and were not a little troubled at it: but they could not at first imagine the wickedness of their design to be so great, as it really was. Saint Quentin a Servant from Father to Son, The Duke 〈…〉 very affectionate to the Duke's Family, and who had been bred up from his younger years with the Duke de la Valette his Son, sent the first intelligence of this Conspiracy: but it was no other than Conjecture only; the certainty of it was brought the Duke by Auterive, who came post to him (and I think it was upon the 8 th'. day of November) to discover to him the whole contrivance of this treacherous design. Another Gentleman a Neighbour of his had a Nephew who was a great Comrade of Madaillan's, and a great Confident of his, from whom he had learned the whole Affair, of which he was not content to deliver Auterive a simple Relation by word of mouth only, but would moreover give him the whole Circumstance of it in writing, that it might by the Duke be the better believed. The Duke having read, and communicated this Intelligence to some of his Domestics, was surprised with so great an astonishment, as the like had never, upon any occasion whatever been observed in him before. He was in Bed, according to his custom, though it was in the afternoon, when this news came to him; and doubtless it was convenient for him, that it should find him in that posture, the better to resist so strange a surprise. His first thought was, that an Accusation of so black, and odious a nature had not been contrived without order, and concluded thence, that his Enemies, weary of his long Life, would at one blow deprive him of that, And dispatches his Secretary to Court, to justify himself. his Estate, Offices, and Honour. In this violent agitation of mind, which was visible enough in his Countenance, he commanded his Secretary immediately to depart to go with Auterive to the Court. He would ●ound to the bottom what opinion they there had concerning this Affair; but he desired withal, that the Truth might be exactly sifted out, that so he might have means to justify his own Innocency, and to cause the Authors of so damnable a mischief to be severely punished. The Secretary had order to address himself to Monsieur Fabert, at that time Captain of the Regiment of Guards, by his means to get access to Chavigny, the Secretary of State, by him with greater facility to be admitted to the Cardinal's presence. The business was carried on according to the Duke's desire; Auterive and the Secretary, without any difficulty, got to speak with Chavigny, who promised the next day to procure them Audience. The next day being come, which was the 15 th'. of November, they were accordingly admitted into the Cardinal's Presence, where the Secretary having a Letter of Credence from the Duke his Master, he advanced to present it; which the Cardinal having received, and read, he told him; That Monsieur d' Espernon had referred the further explication of what he desired he should be acquainted withal to him, who was the Bearer; wherefore he desired to know what Service he desired of him? He had been before sufficiently informed of all by Chavigny, who was there present: but would nevertheless permit, that he who had delivered him the Letter, should again report to him the life of the wretched person, who had so vilely accused his Master. Whereupon the Secretary summarily repeated, All you have heard before, setting out Madaillan in his own colours, and for such as he truly was; acquainting the Cardinal moreover of the diligence the Duke had used to apprehend him, and to bring him to condign Punishment for his many, and heinous Crimes; making it appear, that from thence proceeded the malice of this Accuser, and that that was the thing which had prompted him to invent this hateful Calumny, by which he intended to eclipse the Duke's Honour; entreating him at last, as the highest Favour his Master could receive at his hands, to give order that the falsity of this Accusation might be strictly examined by any person he should think fit to appoint, and not to permit that the most ancient Officer of the Crown, who had served four Kings without Reproach, should in the last Act of his Life undergo the most odious of all Aspersions, without receiving the satisfaction he might reasonably promise to himself from his Eminences Justice, and his own Innocency. The Cardinal, after he had harkened to this Discourse, which was pretty long, with great Civility, and Patience, the Secretary having done, His Secretary is favourably received by the Cardinal. made answer, That it was true, the King being five or six weeks ago at Amiens, Messieurs, the Ministers who stayed behind at Paris, had given him intimation of a man of the Province of Guienne, who delivered himself to be a Gentleman, and whom they had found to be a man of understanding, that was purposely come thither to assure them, that a Conspiracy had been made in Guienne, to attempt upon the Life of the King, and that he had offered to prove his Accusation by sufficient evidence in Writing, under the Hands of the Conspirators. You will very well judge (added the Cardinal) that an Advertisement of this kind, was of too important a nature to be neglected: but he denied withal that the Duke's name had ever been mentioned in that Affair; assuring him moreover, that had it been so much as glanced at in that Information, he should immediately have concluded the whole thing altogether forged, and false, as he now absolutely did: That he knew the Duke to be too good a man to entertain so criminal a thought, and that he would ever answer for him, as for himself: That therefore he ought not to concern himself about his Justification, and that he had been very well washed (which was his own expression) but that notwithstanding they were to consider which way to give him satisfaction, in causing those who had been the Authors of his Calumny, to be brought to exemplary punishment. After which he enquired by what means Madaillan might be taken, concluding in the end that the King should give the Duke power to apprehend him, if possible, even in Guienne itself; that in the mean time he would give order to have him sent for to Court, whither in a very short time he had also promised to come; that by one means or other, it should be a hard matter for him to escape; and, that if he did once fall into his hands, he would deliver him up into those of Justice, as he afterwards did, and in that was very just to his word. The King's Dispatch was made ready at this time; but the Secretary could not however so soon depart, as by this successful beginning he was in hopes he should have done, Chavigny, who had order to deliver him his Dispatch, appointing him to stay yet some few days longer. But these few days were spun out into some few weeks, during which interval he had notice given him by several of his Friends, that there was an Order granted out to Arrest him, to make him give an account of those Counterfeit Papers were laid to his charge. These advertisements, which he received from very good hands, did much more trouble him for the regard he had to the Duke his Master, than for any thing that concerned himself; he believed that they would proceed in this Affair by the way, and in the forms of Justice, which was nothing consonant to what had been promised him in the beginning. The Duke's Servants, to whom he had instructions to communicate all things, were also infinitely surprised at the news: but he forbore not, what danger soever had been represented to him, to appear as at other times in all places where his business lay-After he had given all the time was necessary, wherein to clear any doubts that might have been started concerning this Affair, and weary to see no more than the first hour he came, he resolved at last, finding he could obtain nothing from Chavigny, to make his Address immediately to the Cardinal himself, hoping from him at least to learn the true reasons, why he had been thus long delayed. This design accordingly took effect, and the Cardinal having espied him amongst a crowd of other Solicitors, and Suitors that were attending in the Hall, caused him presently to be called to tell him, That upon the hopes Madaillan had given him of his coming every day to Town, And an Order granted to apprehend Madaillan, and his Complices. he had desired he might stay to be a witness of his Confinement: but that seeing there was no end of his delays, he might now return to his Master, and assure him, that what he had promised upon this occasion, should be punctually performed: That it would also be necessary he on his part should employ all the Friends, and Servant's he had in Guienne, to cause the Slanderer to be taken, and that, the thing being of that importance to his Honour, he did not doubt but the Duke would herein use endeavours proportionable to the quality of the Affair. After which he poured out himself in several expressions of very great Civility concerning the Duke: but they were so▪ distant from his manner of proceeding, and so differing from the ill usage he made his Master at the same time undergo; that giving them no place in his belief, he scarce allowed them a room in his memory. After this manner the Duke's Secretary departed from Court, charged with Letters from the King, and the Cardinal, which were couched in these terms. Cousin, Having understood by the Sieur Girard, The King's Letter to the Duke of Espernon. the intimation you have received, that one Madaillan of Sauvetat had an intent to accuse you of a design to attempt upon my Person, as also upon that of my Cousin the Cardinal of Richelieu; I write you this to let you know, It is my pleasure, that you cause the said Madaillan to be apprehended in any place where he shall be found; as also the named le Sage, Bois-Martin, Seingoux, and a certain Scrivener dwelling at la Lined in Perigort, whom, it is said, he intends to make use of to fortify his Calumny. I doubt not but you will use all imaginable diligence to cause the forementioned persons to be taken, and to dispose them into some secure hold until you receive my further Order. In which assurance I pray God, Cousin, etc. At St. German en Say this 10 th'. of Decemb. 1641. That of the Cardinal contained these words. Monsieur, The Sieur Girard will acquaint you with how great facility the King has been pleased to give way to the clearing the Calumny, The Cardinal's Letter to the D●ke of Espernon. wherewith you have discovered some malicious people have a design to asperse you. I can assure you that such a justification is not at all necessary for the possessing his Majesty, touching the business in agitation, with such impressions of you, as you would yourself desire: but he will be very glad for your own satisfaction, that so wicked an Imposture be punished according to its desert. For my own particular I shall ever be very proud to meet occasions wherein I may manifest how great an esteem▪ I have for your Person, and how much I am, etc. From Ruel this 10th of Decemb. 1641. The Duke after the departure of his Secretary was fallen into so profound a Melancholy, accompanied with a lingering Fever, that the reading the favourable Letters he brought him back at his return, was not of Virtue wholly to cure a Disease that had already taken too deep root in his mind. He was affected with grief to that degree, that nothing could content him: but he was nevertheless a little revived to find that this Affair had not derived itself from the source he had at first suspected, nor produced those dangerous effects he reasonably apprehended it would. In this little interval of repose, he dispatched Auterive in all diligence into Guienne, with the most express Orders he could possibly tell how to give, to cause Madaillan, and his Complices to be apprehended: but it was labour lost; he went of his own accord to put himself into the Cardinal's hands, who kept his word with the Duke, committing him the very day of his arrival to the * O● Prison. conciergery du Palais, from whence he came no more forth, but to suffer the punishment of his Crimes. But that was not till after the return of the Duke de la Valette, who with so much passion, and generosity prosecuted this accursed Villain, the real instrument of the Duke his Father's Death, that in the end he procured his chastisement by the hand of the Hangman. After the dismission of Auterive, of which I have now spoken, the Duke made yet another dispatch, which also was almost the last of his Life, and that was to Cardinal Richelieu. The D●ke of Espernon sends a Letter of thanks to Cardinal Richelieu. All his Friends at Court, knowing how civilly the Duke had been used by him in the business of Madaillan, had jointly given him advice to return him thanks by some express Messenger; at whose persuasions he writ to him by the Count de Maillé (whom he entreated to undertake that Journey) and these were the words of the Letter. Monsieur, After the Favours wherewith you were pleased to oblige me, when my Secretary a few days since took a journey to wait upon you, I were of all men living the most ingrate, should I not to the utmost of what I possibly can, manifest to you the the high sense I have of so great an Obligation. The care of which Commission, I thought I could not better entrust to any, than to my Cousin Monsieur de Maillé, whom I have entreated to protest to you in my behalf, that I will preserve the memory, and acknowledgement of that signal Favour to the last hour of my life. I do beseech you to believe this great truth, which by my Actions should be justified, and confirmed to you, if the power to serve you were equal to the will he shall ever retain, who is, Monsieur, Your most Humble, and most Obedient Servant, etc. This Compliment of Most Obedient, which I have here purposely transcribed, was none of his usual stile, it had now also by inadvertency scaped his Pen, and he sent an express Courier after the Count de Maillé, to retrieve his Letter so soon as he perceived he had subscribed it after that manner: Instead thereof sending him another with the ordinary Subscription of Most Humble and most Affectionate, choosing rather to be thought stiff, and punctilious, than to go less in the condition he then was, and to descend to an extraordinary civility, which might rather be interpreted, and imputed to weakness, and want of courage, than to complacency, and gratitude. His first Letter was indeed never delivered: but he also never saw it again. His Death preceded the return of the Count de Maillé, who had still kept it in his hands; and the time was now come, when this long life, which had escaped from so many, and so eminent dangers, must end by a Disease that was easily enough to be foreseen: but for which no remedy could possibly be found. I have already given an account of the dangerous effect, Anno 1642. the news of Madaillan's Conspiracy produced to the ruin of the Duke's Health. The Sickness and Death of the Duke of Espernon. And I shall now tell you that it was a wound which had pierced so deep into his heart, as no Balsam, neither of the King's, nor Cardinal's civil, and obliging Letters, of his Friends Consolations, or of the conscience of his own Innocency, of greater virtue than them both, that could be applied, could possibly cure. The assurances he had received from Court, that this Calumny had made no impression to his disadvantage there, nor the hopes he had thence received of receiving thereupon a full, and honourable satisfaction, could never so appease the tempest of his mind, that the discontents he had derived from this accursed cause, was not continually working upon all the unpleasing Objects his unquiet thoughts could represent to his imagination. He was grown impatient almost of all kind of Company, the divertisements which had formerly been most acceptable to him were become nauseous, and offensive, and nothing was now so pleasing to him as solitude, which till this time he had ever abhorred. An alteration that he himself was very sensible of, and would often speak of it to those with whom he was pleased to be the most familiar about him, as a certain presage of his approaching End: he nevertheless did all he could to disappoint his ill humour, which he had no way to do but by play sometimes in his Chamber, seeing he found himself incapable of taking any pleasure abroad. Thus spinning out the small remainder of his life in this perpetual trouble of mind, his strength was every day observed visibly to impair: not long before he had been seen to tyre out young, and vigorous men with walking (for it must needs be confessed that never man perhaps felt the infirmities of Age so late as he) whereas now, and on a sudden he appeared so faint, and overworn, that he could scarce take two turns in his Chamber without reposing himself. It was now come to that pass, that he must repose for good and all, and the seventh of january, having in the night been surprised with a grudging of a Ague, he passed it over with great unquietness, and without any rest at all. The next day notwithstanding he could make a shift to rise to talk with some of his principal Servants of his Affairs, and to make some Dispatches, as in the times of his better health: but he found withal so great a thirst upon him, as he could neither by a Broth, nor two great Glasses of cold water, his familiar, and best Remedy, quench, and overcome. He went nevertheless to Mass in a Cabinet adjoining to his own Chamber; but he was not able to stay it out: insomuch that presently after the Elevation, he was constrained to retire, and to betake himself to his Bed. And it was for the last time, his Fever immediately seizing him with so great violence, that it never after left him, but with his Life. Within a few hours after he had been laid in Bed, Fabert, whom he had a passionate desire to see, and had a long time expected, came to see him. He was by him presented with a great many Letters from several of his Friends: But the Duke without opening any one of them, contented himself with embracing him only, and entreating to be excused, that he was not in a condition that day to entertain him, referred it till the next morning, in hopes by that time to be in a better posture of Health. At another time his active, and curious Spirit, that was never tired out with business, would not have referred the discoursing with a Friend he so dearly loved, till the morrow: but now, as if he had foreseen what a small share remained to him of Worldly things, he had not so much as the Curiosity to inform himself of any. His Fever, which the first day was judged to be Quotidian (a sort of Ague he used frequently to have, and which also did not a little contribute to the better support of his Health) continued from the first, to the second, and from the second, to the third Fit, with so excessive violence, that Motivier his Physician, a man very excellent in his profession, and who had for many years been very diligent about his Person, judged him from that time forwards to be in very great danger, as well by reason of his wonderful great Age, and the evil dispositions that had preceded his Disease, as from the Disease itself. He was therefore of opinion that a Father Capuchin should be sent for, to the end he might in due time prepare him for Confession; the Fathers of that Order having a particular privilege to administer that Sacrament to him. They were the more hasty to make this provision for his Conscience, by how much they perceived him sometimes to fall into Fits of Raving, which gave them an apprehension, that his distemper increasing, his judgement might be totally taken from him, which notwithstanding did not so fall out. This good Father being come to the Duke, under pretence of a mere Visit only, put him insensibly upon the contempt of worldly things, and the necessity of Death, and came at last by degrees to touch a little at Confession. The Duke though by this discourse he presently guessed at the ill opinion they had of him, and that they began to despair of his Life, yet did he nevertheless make no show of astonishment, or surprise: but on the contrary submitting, with great serenity, and calmness to the good Pleasure of Almighty God, The D●ke's good dispositions to die. he told the Holy Father, That he had highly obliged him in putting him in mind of his Conscience: That he was Old, and Sick: That in a better estate of Health his end could not be far distant from him; and that being by the Grace of God a Christian, he intended to die after a Christian manner. After which few words, entreating he would give him some time to prepare himself for this Sacrament, he caused him to retire into another Room. He commanded his Servants also to leave him alone, and to depart out of his Chamber; which being accordingly done, after he had two hours recollected himself, he caused the Father to be again called in, who could never enough commend the Zeal, and Repentance he observed in this illustrious Penitent. It was about noon that he made his Confession, and about four of the Clock the same day, he desired the Holy Eucharist, which he received with so great Piety, and Reverence, as was not a little edifying to all the Assistants. He at the same time gave charge to his Almoner to acquaint him when it was time to receive the Extreme Unction, taking order for all these last Ceremonies, with so manly an indifferency, and so great a tranquillity of mind, as if he had rather been taking care for some other in a dying condition, than busy about any thing that immediately concerned himself. He was never heard at any time either to wish for Life, or to repine at Death; but performing without trouble and disorder what was to be done, so well to receive the one, and to part fairly with the other, he, in my opinion, at this time gave the greatest proof, and example of his Courage, and Constancy, that he had ever done. His Disease growing every day more violent than other, he was, the fourth day of his Sickness, observed to fall into more and more extravagant Rave, than at any time before, to which his Chest also began to be so obstructed, that there was a visible difficulty of Breathing: All which dangerous Accidents, and mortal Symptoms, in an Age like that of his, making every one conclude his dissolution to be very near, they talked to him no more of any thing, but God; a Discourse that he also on his part harkened to, with great willingness, and a●●ention. He had at all times had a Crucifix fastened to his Beds-feet, upon which he now perpetually fixed his eyes, and having caused his Chaplet to be put about his Arm, because he wanted strength to hold it in his hand, he was continually lifting it to his mouth to kiss it. The fifth day of his Sickness was very much worse, than those that had gone before; and if upon his other days he had had some intervals of repose, the continuation of his Disease having infected all that remained in him of found, and uncorrupt; he was totally oppressed without any release, or intermission at all. The extremities of his Disease therefore causing it to be judged convenient to make use of the extremest Remedies both for Soul and Body; his Physician resolved upon a Bleeding, and the ecclesiastics upon the Extreme Unction, of which the last named preceded the other. About two hours after midnight, the Duchess de la Valette, the Marquis, and Marquis de la Valette her Children, got up to be assisting at this Holy Ceremony; to whom the Servants also being come in, he in the presence of all his Family, with exceeding Meekness, and profound Reverence received that Sacrament. So soon as he saw the Priest enter the Chamber, he raised himself up in his Bed, and having pulled off his Cap, remained uncovered all the time of the Administration, making his Responces aloud to all the Prayers of the Church, and to all the Psalms, especially the Miserere, which he repeated by heart, with a great many Penitent Tears. This Ceremony being over, they left him some time to his repose, and about ten in the morning the sixth day of his Sickness, and also that of his Death, his Physician caused him to be let Blood. He found himself yet capable of this Remedy, and moreover found by it some kind of present Relief, his Chest was much less obstructed, and his Deliriums had far longer intervals than before; insomuch that he began to have a better opinion of himself, telling us (as it was very true) that two years before a Bleeding had saved his Life, and that he found himself very much relieved by this: but all these Hopes were no other than feeble Rays, that threatened us with a sudden, and fatal Eclipse. At three in the Afternoon he appeared so infinitely changed, that it was judged impossible for him to pass over that day; neither was he himself insensible of it: and certainly it was an extraordinary mercy he received in this Extremity, to have his Judgement more perfect, and entire, and his mind better composed at this, than at any other time during the whole course of his Sickness. His last moments he employed in entertaining Fabert, from the day of his arrival he had never seen him; but having now on a sudden remembered he was in the house, he caused him immediately to be called, where, after he had embraced him in his Arms, The Duke's last request to the King concerning his Children. he told him, That he would not now lose time in giving hi● new assurances of an Affection, which would henceforward be useless to him: but that he would conjure him by those testimonies he had sometime received, that he would preserve his to his declining Family: That he did entreat him to assure the King he died his Majesty's most humble, and most faithful Servant, and in his Name humbly to beseech him, to Honour his little Children, whom the Disgrace of the Duke their Father exposed to infinite Injuries, with his gracious Protection: That they had the Honour to appertain to his Majesty: That nothing could be imputed to their Innocency, and that he hoped they would one day by their Services manifest their Gratitude for his Bounty, and Favour. Though to render the King more favourable to this Request, and to those Relations he did recommend thereby, there seemed to be a kind of necessity that he should also send some Compliment to the Cardinal, he did not do it nevertheless; which some of his people thinking he had through forgetfulness omitted, they made bold to put him in mind; to whom after a little pause, he returned no other answer, but that he was his Servant. The same Compliment, but with a very great deal of difference in the tender manner of delivery, he sent to the Chancellor Monsieur Seguier, who had ever manifested for him a constant, and inviolate Friendship; as also to several other Persons of Quality at Court. The severity that had been exercised upon his Family, making him believe that their Enemies aimed at no less, than their total Ruin, he would enjoin Fabert of all his Governments, and Commands to ask the Castle of Loches only in favour of the Marquis de la Valette his Grandchild, and that only, because seeing himself upon the point to expire, he could have wished, that his Body after his Death, might have been in the power of no other, than those of his own Blood. A request so modest, and so inconsiderable in itself, that he doubted not, but it would be easily granted, and that he might have retrieved this little piece from the wrack of his great Fortune: but he was deceived, and the ill nature of his Enemies was such, that even that was also denied him. After he had dismissed Fabert, he caused the Duchess de la Valette his Daughter-in-Law, the Marquis de la Valette, and the Marquis his Sister to come to his Bedside, to whom after he had in general delivered himself in several expressions of great Passion, and tenderness, and exhorted them to Unity, and Mutual Affection; directing his Speech to the Marquis, He in the first place recommended to him the Service of God, and next that of the King, without ever alienating himself from it upon any colour, or pretence whatever: to honour his Father, and in what estate soever to pay him all the Duty, and Service of a good, and Obedient Son; and never to remember the Injuries had been done him; of which he charged him in express terms to retain no kind of resentment; assuring them all, that living in that Unity, and good Intelligence with one another, he had recommended to them, God Almighty would bless them, as he blessed them with all his heart. After which, proceeding to some consolatory Admonitions, wherewithal to moderate their Grief, he with great difficulty lifted up his hand to give them his last Benediction. This Action thus passed, he turned himself to the other side of the Bed, either to repose himself after this last effort of his Spirits, and Voice; or to conceal his Tears, which although by tenderness, and good Nature, rather than want of Courage, extracted from him; yet would he not be reproached with such a weakness, still retaining so much vigour, as to maintain decency, and the constancy he had ever manifested in all his Actions, even in death itself. He was heard indeed to fetch some profound sighs, and often to repeat the name of his Son de la Valette, who of all his Children had ever been dearest to him: but that also was all he yielded to the impulse of nature, in this final Separation. Having thus paid some Sighs to his Grief, several good, and Learned Divines, who were assisting about him, again put him upon the Discourse of Piety, and the forgiveness of his Enemies; to whom he still constantly replied, that he freely forgave them all, naming withal those from whom he had received the greatest and most irreparable wrongs: when some of them, more zealous than the rest, seeing him in so good a disposition, asked him if he did not also forgive his Servants, who had any way displeased him? To whom he again replied, that yes, and withal his heart: but there being one of them, who a few days before he had fallen upon with very severe, and passionate Language, the same person who had engaged in the former Interrogatories, proceeding (indiscreetly enough) to ask him, if he did not also ask pardon of those he might have himself offended? His courage, not totally abated in this last extremity, being a little inflamed at the proposal of this reciprocal submission, he made answer, that it was sufficient, he had pardoned those of his people who had offended him, and that he had never heard, that to die well a Master was obliged to make * Amende honourable signifies something more, but what cannot be intended by the Author in this place. Honourable Satisfaction to his own Domestics. Those who were nearest to him perceived him to be a little transported at that word: but it was very easy to pacify, and compose him; and after that nothing was heard from him but ardent Prayers to God: neither was he observed to do any thing more, than to turn his eyes towards the Crucifix, and to kiss his Beads. In this condition he lay, when his strength visibly impairing, but his mind remaining in a great tranquillity, and calm, they perceived him by little and little to decline, and faint away, sensibly observing Death to disperse itself over all his Limbs. His Death. His Legs first grew stiff, and cold; which cold in a few hours seized of his other parts, till it came at last to his Heart. Thus the thirteenth day of january, and the sixth of his Disease, he died environed by three of his Children, several Divines, and all his Domestic Servants; the last whereof having with unparallelled Care, and Diligence attended him all the time of his Sickness, continued still the same Services, and Respect, till they brought him to his Grave. He was entered into the fourscore, and eighth year of his Age, by which long series of time he had had the advantage of seeing himself the most Ancient Duke, and Peer of France, the most Ancient Officer of the Crown, the most Ancient General of an Army, the most Ancient Governor of a Province, the most Ancient Knight of the Order, the most Ancient Counsellor of State, and the Oldest Man of Condition almost of his Time. The End of the Twelfth and Last Book of the Life of the Duke of Espernon. FINIS. Some Books Printed for Henry Brome, at the Gun, at the West End of St. Paul's. Mr. Simpson's Division Viol, in three Parts, in Folio. His Compendium of Music, in five Parts, Octavo. Bishop saunderson's Five Cases of Conscience, Octavo. Sir Kenelm Digbies Receipts in Physic and Chirurgery: Also his Cabinet opened for making Metheglin, Sydar, Cherry-Wine, with Directions for Cookery, Preserving, Conserving, and Candying, Octavo. The Complete Body of the Art Military both for Horse and Foot, with the Art of Gunnery: By Richard Elton, L. C. and Thomas Rudd, Chief Engineer to King Charles the First, Folio. Scarronnides, or Virgil Travestié, a Mock Poem, Octavo. Mr. A. Brome's Poems, and Songs, Octavo. Dr. Brown's Vulgar Errors, and Urn Burial, Quarto.